Skip to main content

Full text of "A new and corrected version of the New Testament; or, A minute revision, and professed translation of the original histories, memoirs, letters, prophecies, and other productions of the evangelists and apostles; to which are subjoined a few, generally brief, critical, explanatory, and practical notes"

See other formats


The  original  of  tiiis  book  is  in 
tine  Cornell  University  Library. 

There  are  no  known  copyright  restrictions  in 
the  United  States  on  the  use  of  the  text. 


http://www.archive.org/details/cu31924029309774 


Cornell  University  Library 
BS2095  .D55 
+ 
New  and  corrected  version  of  the  New  Tes 


3   1924  029  309  774 

olln  Overs 


DICKINSON'S 


CORRECTED    VERSION 


OF      THE 


CHRISTIAN    SCRIPTURES 


Jchcerwr  Pinxit 


Pendleton  direx'Ba 


Sdd^,  scalpsit 


Rector  of  tlie  Episcopal  Parish, _^rmituj,-ue,  Massaclms.n 


NEW   AND    CORRECTED    VERSION 


THE    NEW    TESTAMENT; 


MINUTE   KEViSION,  AND  PROFESSED   TRANSLATION 


or    THE    ORIGINAL 


HISTORIES,   MEMOIRS,   LETTERS,  PROPHECIES, 


AND    OTHER  PRODUCTIONS    OF    THE 


EVANGELISTS    AND    APOSTLES  ; 


TO    WHICH 

ARE  SUBJOINED,  A  FEW,  GENERALLY  BRIEF,  CRITICAL,  EXPLANATORY,  AND 
PRACTICAL  NOTES. 


By  RODOLPHUS   DICKINSON, 

a  presbyter   op   the   protestant   episcopal  church   in   the   united   states;   and   rector  of  st 
Paul's    parish,   district    of    pendleton,  south  Carolina. 


BOSTON: 

PUBLISHED  BY  LILLY,  WAIT,  COLMAN,  &  HOLDEN. 
1833. 


Entered,  according  to  Act  of  Congress,  in  the  year  1831, 

By    RODOLPHUS   DiCKISSON, 

In  the  Clerk's  Office  of  the  District  Court  of  South  Carolina. 


ALPHEUS  FLETCHER  STONE, 


MEMBEK   OF    THE    MASSACHUSETTS    MEDICAL    SOCIETT. 


ZEALOUS     AND     FAITHFUL     FRIEND, 

Permit  me,  without  privately  requesting  the  favor,  to  inscribe  this 
volume  to  you,  with  an  intimation  to  the  reader,  that  it  is  now  originally 
introduced  to  your  knowledge  and  notice  ;  and  therefore,  that  you  have 
given  it  no  countenance,  and  are  not  responsible  for  any  participation 
in  its  projection,  or  accomplishment. 

This  effort  may,  perhaps,  render  me  odious  to  some  individuals  :  and 
though  your  personal  attachment  forbids  that  you  should  be  thus  im- 
pressed, and  however  highly  your  favorable  reception  of  the  work  would 
be  estimated ;  yet,  it  is  hitherto  problematical,  whether  you  will  view  it 
with  approval,  or  pleasure.  Whatever  may  be  your  sentiments,  receive 
my  cheerful  offering,  as  a  testimony  of  unshaken  friendship,  and  a 
tribute  to  distinguished  virtue. 

The  propriety  of  this  address  is  greatly  enhanced  by  the  reflection, 
that  the  sacred  principles  displayed  in  the  publication,  are,  in  no  in- 
stance, within  the  circle  of  my  acquaintance,  more  impressively  exem- 
plified, than  in  your  interesting  life.  The  theatre  of  your  usefulness 
has,  indeed,  been  most  honorably  and  amply  occupied.  The  Christian 
church  records  your  eminently  deserved  memorials.  The  sick,  the 
imprisoned,  the  widow,  the  orphan,  the  indigent,  and  the  afilicted  in 
every  form,  arise  in  countless  cases,  and  pronounce  you  happy.  Your 
appropriate  meed  is  reserved  for  a  higher  sphere.  In  this  transient  and 
mercenary  state,  neglect  too  often  clothes  with  moss  the  threshold  of 


vi  INSCRIPTION. 

the  wise  and  good  man's  door ;  but,  he  is  happily  destined  to  a  renewed 
existence,  in  which  righteousness  will  perpetually  reside.  'Virtuous 
Independence  is  the  sun,  which  irradiates  the  morning  of  his  day,  and 
warms  its  noon,  tinges  the  serene  evening  with  every  beautiful  variety 
of  color,  and  on  the  pillow  of  religious  hope,  he  sinks  to  repose  in  the 
bosom  of  Providence.'  And  O  that  I  might  duly  imitate,  as  well  as 
justly  appreciate  you,  in  your  self-direction,  philanthropy,  and  piety  ; 
in  the  purity  of  your  faith,  and  the  excellence  of  your  example ;  in  your 
solid  integrity,  and  devout  sincerity  of  character  ;  in  your  professional 
ability  and  faithfulness  ;  in  your  assiduous  preparation  of  the  dearest 
objects  of  your  solicitude,  for  heaven ;  in  your  unwearied  devotion  to 
various  deeds  of  beneficence ;  in  your  hearty  frowns  on  all  the  low 
pursuits  of  human  artifice  ;  in  your  habitual  contempt  of  all  sordid 
ambition;  in  your  absolute  abhorrence  of  every  despotic  and  oppressive 
theory,  or  practice  ;  in  your  entire  disregard  of  every  personal,  or  social 
distinction,  not  founded  on  spiritual  worth  ;  and  in  your  noble  superiori- 
ty to  all  temporal  plans,,  not  formed  for  the  advancement  of  the  sublime 
interests  of  eternity  S 

May  that  kind  '  Providence,  which,  by  aU  its  dispensations,  proves 
that  it  delights  in  the  happiness  of  man  here,  and  his  greater  happiness 
hereafter,'  prosper  you  in  these  exalted  concerns,  till  you  attain  the 
elevation  of  the  highest  human  hopes,  in  the  divine  splendor,  glory,  and 
felicity,  of  the  celestial  world  ! 

Be  pleased  to  accept  my  warmest  gratitude,  for  your  multiplied,  and 
most  disinterested  kindness  to  myself  and  family,  amid  the  checkered 
scenes  of  life ;  and  be  assured,  of  the  continuance  of  my  cordial  esteem, 
respect,  and  afiection. 

R.  DICKINSON. 

Deekfield,  Fbanklin  County,  Massachusetts, 
January  1,  1833. 


PREFACE. 


Fancy,  in  her  wild  excursions,  is  frequently  enraptured,  while  she 
delineates  and  surveys  those  lofty  heights,  that  defy  the  ascent  of  the 
understanding.  She  is  ever  portraying  elevated  results,  which  only 
deride  intellectual  weakness.  Her  flight  far  transcends  all  practical 
attainment.  Imperfection  is  the  perpetual  attendant  of  the  human  mind 
and  heart ;  and  deeply  engraves  its  name  and  traits,  on  every  earthly 
exertion. 

In  oiFering  to  the  public,  this  edition  of  a  part  of  the  sacred  scriptures, 
I  am  fully  aware,  that  should  the  work  become  a  theme  of  criticism,  it 
may  be  assailed  from  that  department,  as  a  presumptuous  and  useless 
effort :  and  I  am  well  apprised,  from  the  veneration  in  which  the 
received  text  is  so  extensively  held,  that  by  many  of  those,  who  may 
accidentally  cast  their  eye  on  this  version,  the  charge  of  pernicious 
innovation  may  be  reiterated.  Such  considerations,  as  far  as  justice  to 
myself  admits,  and  deference  to  others  requires,  claim  a  frank  avowal 
and  vindication  of  the  motives,  that  have  induced  the  pubUcation,  and  a 
brief  illustration  of  its  supposed  utility. 

It  is  well  known,  to  those  conversant  with  the  history  of  Biblical 
translations,  that  the  division  of  chapters  and  verses,  in  all  languages,  is 
a  device  of  comparatively  modern  days.  In  this  edition,  the  separate 
compositions  are  restored  to  their  ancient  form  ;  attended  with  no 
subdivisions,  except  those  dictated  by  the  sentiment.  Instead  of  inno- 
vation, therefore,  it  is  thus  far  founded  on  primitive  example  :  and  it  is 
a  favorable  circumstance,  that  this  original  arrangement,  contrasted 
with  that  of  the  authorized  copy,  is  more  congenial  to  the  polished 
character  and  improved  taste  of  the  present  age. 

The  lapse  of  centuries  has  produced  a  revolution  in  the  English 
language,  requiring  a  correspondent  change  in  the  version  of  the  scrip- 
tures :  and  I  may  add,  that  the  errors  in  grammar  and  rhetoric,  the 
harsh  and  indelicate  expressions,  dispersed  through  the  generally  adopt- 
ed text,  demand  amendment.  The  style  of  that  translation,  regarding 
either  its  propriety,  or  purity,  is,  to  a  great  extent,  obsolete.  There  is 
much  inelegance  and  inaccuracy,  in  the  selection  of  words,  the  structure 


viii  PREFACE. 

of  sentences,  and  in  every  compartment  of  composition.  Elementary 
expressions,  individual  and  complex  phrases  of  various  description,  per- 
vade it,  unknown  to  the  existing  advanced  state  of  literature.  If  they 
were  admissible,  at  the  period  of  that  publication,  it  is  sufficient  to  aver, 
that  thej  are  now  exploded. 

Though,  various  impositions,  confirmed  by  established  usage,  still  re- 
main to  afflict  many  of  the  intelligent  and  the  worthy  ;  yet,  a  thousand 
objects,  that  so  lately  allured  and  fully  occupied  minds  of  a  parallel 
cast,  are  vanishing  from  the  intellectual  and  moral  vision.  Adherence 
to  earlier  modes  of  instruction,  and  disrespect  to  the  progress  of  later 
improvements,  are  retiring  to  the  shades  of  oblivion.  The  ashes  of  the 
departed  are  less  disturbed.  The  mansions  of  refinement  are  less 
haunted  by  the  spectres  of  decayed  or  impoverished  learning.  Cultivat- 
ed life  extensively  recoils  from  the  familiar  survey  of  relics,  that  belong 
to  the  quiet  of  the  tomb.  They  are  fast  ceasing  to  deface  the  exquisite 
elegance  of  the  literary  and  theological  landscape.  Luminaries  more 
effiilgent,  enlighten  and  adorn  the  summits  of  the  social  state.  A  re- 
newed lustre  illumines  the  vales.  The  fortresses  of  human  nature  are 
defended  by  a  more  select  and  skilful  corps.  The  well  disciplined 
legions  of  freedom,  truth,  and  justice,  are  becoming  invincible.  The 
foes  to  the  march  of  knowledge  and  felicity,  are  flying,  in  dismay,  from 
the  conflict.  Novelty,  iu  the  application  of  physical,  mental,  and  moral 
powers,  to  the  diversified  purposes  of  erudition  and  the  arts,  is  efiecting 
prodigies.  Auspicious,  indeed,  are  the  movements  among  communities 
and  nations.  The  ascendant,  republican  genius,  aided  by  the  concen- 
trated wisdom  and  efficiency  of  the  crisis,  is  still  bursting  the  shackles 
of  ignorant  and  lawless  usurpation  ;  and  unfolding  to  the  rapturous 
view,  the  magnificent  resources  of  individual  and  collective  prosperity. 
The  edicts  of  civil  and  ecclesiastical  tyrants,  fall  powerless  at  the  feet  of 
freemen.  The  impious  league  of  political  supremacy  with  the  perverted 
altar,  is  fast  dissolving.  Authoritative  dogmas  and  inquisitorial  prac- 
tices, are  disappearing  before  the  signal  triumphs  of  good  principles, 
and  kind  afiections.  Intolerance,  in  every  guise,  is  gradually  abating 
its  severity,  and  through  the  prevalent  temper  of  the  times,  passing  to  a 
state  of  banishment,  or  imbecihty.  The  decretals  of  fanatics  and  bigots, 
formerly  so  appalling,  are  losing  the  force  of  statutes,  and  now  widely 
excite  commiseration,  instead  of  alarm.  Unrestrainedly  to  think,  is  be- 
yond the  interdiction  of  arbitrary  rule  ;  and  praise  to  the  munificence  of  . 
Heaven,  it  is  no  longer  perilous  to  speak  and  act  freely,  within  the 
indefinite  range  of  virtue  !    The  engine  of  an  unfettered  press,  for  which 


PREFACE.  ix 

our  grateful  orisons  should  daily  reach  the  skies,  is  crushing  the  mon- 
sters of  despotism  in  every  section  of  society.  The.  innumerable,  theo- 
retical requisites,  so  long  decreed  as  indispensable  to  the  constitution  of 
the  Christian  character,  and  to  the  awards  of  future  blessedness,  are 
rapidly  diminishing,  and  approaching  the  scriptural  standard  :  and  im- 
posture is  less  successful  in  subjecting  the  public  mind  to  its  endless 
detail  of  questionable,  unimportant,  or  worthless  deductions.  Reason, 
enlightened  by  the  real  revelation,  is  brushing  away  the  fragile  webs  of 
self-created  mysticism  and  folly,  and  all  the  flimsy  drapery  with  which 
the  vanity  of  earthly  invention  has  attempted  to  disfigure  the  incom- 
parable symmetry  of  celestial  truth.  Liberty  of  opinion  and  discussion, 
clad  in  the  unassuming  habiliments  of  new  energies,  expanding  views, 
and  increasingly  celebrated  sanctions,  continues  to  persevere  in  the  mild 
and  glorious  plans  of  reform  ;  and  through  the  far  extended  line  of  a 
brilliant  career,  daily  to  exhibit  the  fresh,  but  peaceful  trophies  of  con- 
quest, over  the  devotees  of  error  and  delusion. 

The  triumphant  advance  of  the  human  faculties  is  not  to  be  arrested. 
Posterity  will  not  blindly  tread  in  the  tracks  of  ancestry.  Time  dis- 
plays numerous  dilapidations.  AncieTitly  admired  edifices  are  in  ruins. 
New  and  more  beautiful  forms  arise.  Classic  and  critical  acquisitions 
command  respect.  This  is  an  era  in  the  development  of  sacred  learn- 
ing. Successive  history  is  marked  by  gradual  ravages  among  the  rub- 
bish of  the  language.  The  republic  of  letters  would  not  now  endure  the 
earliest  English  translations,  or  the  original  efiusions  of  the  Biblical 
press  of  James  the  First.  Subsequent  impressions  have  been  discarded. 
Many  peculiarities  of  unenlightened  origin,  have,  to  a  more  recent  date, 
been  compelled  to  surrender,  and  many  more  must  yield,  to  the  vicis- 
situdes of  that  judicious  taste  and  sohd  discernment,  which  establish  the 
most  approved  models  of  fine  writing.  Correct  exhibitions  of  the  sacred 
oracles  must  always  have  an  intimate  relation  to  such  fluctuations. 
Review,  at  intervals,  may  be  usefiil,  however  slowly  and  reluctantly  ap- 
proved. Our  ordinary  translation  is  not  inspired.  No  book  can  give 
permanent  law  to  language :  and  an  unalterable  version  of  the  Bible  is 
no  part,  even  of  any  of  the  discordant  systems,  that  have  assumed  the 
very  indeterminate  appellation  of  Orthodoxy.  It  would  be  easy  to  vin- 
dicate the  plan  of  a  work  of  this  class,  by  the  disconnected  materials  in 
aid  of  its  completion,  and  by  the  actual  translations  of  various  compass, 
which  have  been  furnished  by  some  of  the  greatest  and  best  men  of  dif- 
ferent religious  tenets.  Though  hallowed,  here  is  no  prohibited  scene 
of  devotion.  The  incense  of  the  meanest  votary  may  ascend  from  the 
2 


X  PREFACE. 

holy  censer.  On  this  topic,  the  most  illustrious  precedents  justify  the 
most  obscure  imitation.  But  still,  the  profession  of  multitudes  continues 
to  be  strangely  arrayed  against  their  practice.  With  all  the  influence 
in  favor  of  our  estabhshed  version  of  the  word  of  God,  derived  from 
early  and  habitual  associations,  much  of  its  peculiar  phraseology  is 
scarcely  tolerated  in  any  other  accredited  form.  The  train  of  slavish, 
ordinary  composuists,  and  particularly  of  the  clerical  profession,  who, 
from  their  apparent,  reverential  awe  for  the  matter,  so  uniformly  incor- 
porate the  manner,  of  the  translators  of  the  English  Bible,  with  their 
habits  of  reflection  and  expression,  qualify,  in  no  material  degree,  the 
abstract  correctness  of  the  preceding  remark.  The  unpleasant  eflTects, 
derived  from  this  subserviency  to  the  commonly  received  standard,  are 
rapidly  vanishing.  Many  of  those  distinguished  writers,  who  are  very 
lavish  in  its  praise,  take  the  precaution  not  to  follow  its  example  in  their 
own  publications.  Every  general  commentator,  particular  expositor,  or 
more  private  preacher,  is  perpetually  informing  his  readers,  or  hearers, 
how  the  text  should  be  interpreted,  in  contrariety  to  the  authorized 
translation.  On  what  foundation,  then,  can  its  sacredness,  or  infalli- 
bility, be  vindicated  1  If  it  is  thus  incorrectly  rendered,  why  should  not 
these  multiplied  corrections  be  embodied  1  Why  should  they  remain  so 
unavailing  to  the  great  aggregate  of  society,  by  their  dispersion  through 
unnumbered,  inaccessible  sources  ?  It  may  be  viewed  as  mere  em- 
piricism, bordering  on  idolatry,  to  withhold  them  :  but,  while  the  ruling 
members  of  the  spiritual  faculty  are  suffered  to  prescribe,  and  in  the  in- 
dulgence of  a  despicable  chicanery  and  finesse,  to  exercise  an  uncon- 
trolled sway,  the  heavenly  balm  will  be  extensively  untried  ;  and  the 
deprivation  may  cause  many  a  valuable  patient  to  be  successively  visit- 
ed by  the  lethargy  of  spiritual  death. 

The  beautiful  outline,  sublime  imagery,  magnificent  sentiments,  ex- 
pressive incidents,  pure  narration,  unequalled  proportions,  and  wonder- 
ful designs,  of  originally  revealed  truth,  are,  in  no  inconsiderable  degree, 
masked,  under  the  frequently  rude,  and  occasionally  barbarous  attire,  of 
the  prevalent  text.  That,  and  many  other  versions  may  be  compared 
to  valuable  mines,  in  which  the  materials  require  painful  excavation, 
and  remain  to  be  patiently  wrought  and  refined.  Notwithstanding  all 
the  labor  hitherto  devoted  to  the  object,  a  good  and  acceptable  transla- 
tion of  the  scriptures,  founded  in  uniform  impartiality,  and  adapted  to 
the  exigencies  of  the  day,  exists  only  in  imagination,  or  in  the  region  of 
possibility.  Happily  to  effectuate  such  a  design,  amid  so  many  conflict- 
ing elements,  is  confessedly,  a  most  difficult  and  invidious  task  :  but  if 


PREFACE.  xi 

its  limited  execution  in  this  case,  be  simply  admitted  as  a  partial  im- 
provement, of  which  I  humbly  trust,  no  opposition  can  be  fairly  sustain- 
ed, by  representing  how  far  that  melioration  may  be  extended.  It 
would,  indeed,  become  a  subject  of  unfeigned  joy  to  me,  that  this  edi- 
tion, without  the  use  of  any  thing  exclusive  in  its  plan  or  execution, 
might  be  thus  superseded  :  and  though  I  am  prepared  to  acknowledge, 
that  the  numerous  modifications,  which  have  here  been  deemed  neces- 
sary, or  expedient,  and  under  that  conviction,  fearlessly  introduced, 
would  astonish  any  one,  whose  situation  has  not  enabled  him  to  com- 
mand a  view  of  the  whole  ground ;  yet,  the  general  configuration,  even 
the  titles  of  the  entire  work  and  its  subdivisions,  which,  in  the  usual 
translation,  are  so  imperfectly  adapted  to  the  general  and  particular 
contents ;  the  fervent  wish  of  obviating  a  series  of  objections  arrayed 
against  the  sacred  volume,  by  divesting  the  version  in  common  use,  of 
many  superfluous  and  unauthorized  appendages  ;  the  alarming  fact,  that 
a  rejection  of  the  gospel,  or  a  total  insensibility  to  its  invaluable  trea- 
sures, may  not  unfrequently  be  attributed  to  the  ostensible  form  it  as- 
sumes in  our  language,  or  to  causes  intimately  blended  with  that  cir- 
cumstance ;  the  surprise  of  a  scientific  host,  disenthralled  from  tradition- 
ary superstition,  that  it  should  be  thought  necessary  to  the  improvement 
of  the  Christian  world,  or  for  any  other  desirable  purpose,  that  the  pre- 
cise features  of  an  old  scriptural  pattern,  with  its  numberless  and  un- 
wieldy, expository  trappings,  in  derision  of  the  advancement  of  know- 
ledge, and  in  defiance  of  the  most  innocent  and  impressive  allurements, 
should  be  so  long,  and  so  scrupulously,  and  so  obstinately  retained  ;  the 
burlesque,  which  many  in  the  fashionable  world,  and  particularly  among 
the  admirers  of 'elegant  literature,  make  of  what  they  denominate  the 
quaint  monotony  and  affected  solemnity  of  the  established  Bible,  without 
harboring  any  real  hostility  to  the  substantial  tenor  of  its  injunctions  ;  the 
duty  of  rendering  the  powerful  attachments,  inspired  by  the  graces  of 
style,  and  by  other  incentives  to  a  love  of  reading,  as  far  as  possible,  con- 
tributive  to  the  great  cause  of  that  Benevolent  Being,  who  bestows  them 
as  important  instruments  in  his  service,  and  as  some  of  the  purest  and 
most  delightful  fountains  of  human  happiness  ;  the  striking  inequalities, 
which,  in  rapid,  alternate  succession,  pervade  the  common  version,  ope- 
rating, by  the  degradation  of  the  objectionable  parts,  to  the  disparage- 
ment of  those  that  are  unexceptionable,  and  surpassing  all  praise, — 
and  thus,  through  a  most  unfortunate  connexion,  defeating  the  general, 
unmingled  influence  of  revelation,  by  diminishing  the  native,  moral 
energy,  and  dignity  of  its  instructions ;   the  great  perversion  of  the 


xii  PREFACE. 

scriptures,  that  results  from  alleged,  glaring  incongruities,  and  minor 
discrepancies,  in  the  instituted  copy,  and  which  may  be  greatly  coun- 
tervailed, by  removing  defects,  without  impairing  any  essential  excel- 
lence, or  contravening  the  fair  import  of  the  original ;  the  variety  of 
versions  apparently  proceeding  from  sectarian  hypotheses ;  the  many 
passages  in  the  prevailing  version,  which,  either  entirely  or  partially, 
are  indefensible  as  a  part  of  the  sacred  volume,  on  any  just  or  safe  rules 
of  criticism ;  the  diversity  in  the  numerous  editions,  under  the  general 
denomination  of  the  standard-text ;  the  obscurity  in  which  it  is  envelop- 
ed by  general  incorrectness,  and  particularly,  by  a  want  of  perspicuity 
in  the  grammatical  construction,  unhappily  affected  even  by  erroneous 
orthography  and  punctuation ;  the  philological  transmutations,  that 
have  occurred  during  a  long  period  ;  and  the  comparatively  recent, 
rapid,  and  successful  advances,  in  collating  ancient  manuscripts  and 
versions,  and  in  exploring  and  applying  the  principles  of  sound  exposi- 
tion ;  have  so  completely  persuaded  me  of  the  pertinency  and  useful- 
ness of  something  still  attainable,  in  the  sphere  attempted  to  be  occupi- 
ed, that  I  might,  perhaps,  reasonably  forbear  to  descend  to  the  posture 
of  apology,  and  rather  incline  to  assume  the  attitude  of  justification,  on 
the  face  of  the  record. 

Elegance  of  style  and  correctness  of  sentiment,  are  extensively  sacri- 
ficed by  idiomatic  interpretation.  The  genius  of  language  forbids  a 
perfectly  literal  version,  in  the  ordinary  and  restricted  acceptation  of 
the  term.  Every  such  attempt  is  injustice  to  the  original,  as  well  as  to 
the  translation.  This  characteristic  is  abundantly  applicable  to  the 
established  text,  though  no  inconsiderable  latitude  has  been  taken  in  its 
construction.  It  is  literal  to  a  great  extent ;  and  yet,  many  glosses 
designated  by  italic  letters,  are  interwoven  with  its  very  texture.  In 
either  respect,  alterations  may  promote  improvement.  In  this  work, 
every  thing  evidently  interpolated,  or  accompanied  by  a  decided  pre- 
ponderance against  its  admission,  is  rejected.  It  still  comprises  many 
passages,  which  are  of  disputed,  or  doubtful  authority,  some  of  which, 
embracing  the  most  important  and  equivocal,  are  distinguished  in  the 
notes  by  small  capitals.  Free  illustrations,  and  precise,  substituted 
translations  and  paraphrases,  of  the  most  difiicult  and  inscrutable  parts 
of  the  work,  have  likewise  been  introduced,  in  the  summary  form  of 
explanatory  notes.  The  results  of  illustrious,  critical  inquiries,  referring 
to  different  readings,  in  some  of  the  most  important  cases,  could  not, 
with  even  the  most  distant  appearance  of  candor  and  equity,  be  over- 
looked.    It  is  also  characterized,  in  reference  to  the  received  version, 


PREFACE.  xiii 

by  some  amplification,  as  well  as  retrenchment,  derived  from  the  most 
correct,  approved,  and  learned  revisions  of  the  primitive  text ;  together 
with  a  few  words,  (noted  by  brackets),  which,  though  not  founded  on 
the  original,  were  deemed  conducive  to  a  more  lucid  communication  of 
the  sentiment.  It  was  not,  however,  thought  advisable,  thus  to  desig- 
nate, invariably,  the  very  brief  clauses,  necessarily  inserted,  to  fill  the 
chasms  occurring  in  the  ancient  text.  The  version  here  presented, 
without  disregard  to  the  letter,  and  indeed,  the  declaration  may  be  con- 
fidently hazarded,  with  a  far  more  unqualified  reference  to  it,  liberally 
and  accurately  explained,  than  any  vernacular  production  of  the  kind, 
now  in  the  public  possession,  exhibits,  is  at  the  same  time  intended  to 
be  invariably  conformable  to  the  spirit  of  the  original  Greek.  Profess- 
ing such  a  knowledge  on  that  siflSject,  as,  I  humbly  apprehend,  has 
proved,  in  some  due  degree,  adequate  to  that  part  of  the  performance,  I 
have  also  been  enabled,  in  the  course  of  an  unwearied,  personal  render- 
ing, and  reiterated  correction  and  revision,  of  the  entire  work,  which 
has  engaged  the  most  assiduous  attention  of  many  years,  to  avail  myself 
of  all  the  critical,  exegetical,  and  other  subsidiary  lights,  that  were 
desirable,  for  a  just  expUcation,  and  otherwise  faithful  accomplishment 
of  the  general  object. 

Whatever  may  be  conceded  to  the  convenience  of  the  authorized 
version,  for  the  use  of  the  sanctuary,  as  a  text-book,  a  manual  of  re- 
ference, or  for  some  other  purposes,  its  disadvantages  for  the  general 
reader  must  be  obvious.  Aside  from  some  chapters,  which  are  careless- 
ly divided,  the  continued  scheme  of  short,  detached  verses,  often  inju- 
diciously arranged,  and  even  admit  the  reverse,  cannot  fail  to  encumber 
the  meaning,  and  in  a  proportionate  degree  to  impede  the  mind,  in  ac- 
quiring that  knowledge  of  the  scriptures,  which  a  more  unrestrained 
and  consolidated  work  would  impart.  And  when  it  is  considered  what 
an  antiquated,  and  in  other  particulars  forbidding  aspect,  the  inspired 
writings,  in  their  usual  style  and  conformation,  present  to  the  view  of 
many  intelligent,  refined,  and  amiable  persons,  who  might  be  induced  to 
peruse  them  in  a  less  interrupted  and  more  inviting  form,  in  connexion 
with  the  typographical  execution  here  displayed,  which,  it  is  presumed, 
will  be  regarded  by  such,  as  no  small  improvement ;  can  any  valid  ob- 
jection be  urged  to  the  prevalent  spirit  and  character  of  this  undertak- 
ing ?  "Why  should  the  inestimable  gift  of  God  to  man,  be  proffered,  in  '' 
a  mode  that  is  unnecessarily  repulsive  1  Why  should  the  received  \ 
translation  be  permitted  to  perpetuate,  to  legalize,  and  almost  to  sancti- 
fy, many  and  unquestionable  defects  1     While  various  other  works,  and ; 


xiv  PREFACE. 

especially  those  of  the  most  trivial  attainment,  are  diligently  adorned 
with  a  splendid  and  sweetly  flowing  diction,  why  should  the  mere,  unin- 
teresting identity  and  paucity  of  language  be  so  exclusively  employed,  in 
rendering  the  word  of  God  1  Why  should  the  Christian  scriptures  be  di- 
vested even  of  decent  ornament.  Why  should  not  an  edition  of  the  heav- 
enly institutes  be  furnished  for  the  reading-room,  saloon,  and  toilet,  as 
well  as  for  the  church,  school,  and  nursery  ?  for  the  literary  and  accom- 
plished gentleman,  as  well  as  for  the  plain  and  unlettered  citizen  1  The 
researches,  illustrative  of  sacred  criticism,  are  progressive  ;  and  while 
the  vast  region  of  general  science,  continues  to  be  gradually  subservient 
to  the  elucidation  of  the  holy  scriptures,  why  should  not  all  such  auxilia- 
ry resources  be  transferred  to  their  appropriate  precinct  7  Why  should 
the  Bible  be  stationary,  amid  the  progress  of  refinement  and  letters  1 
Why,  in  antique  fashion,  should  it  remain  solitary,  in  the  enchanting 
and  illimitable  field  of  modern  improvements  1 

Though  Bigotry,  by  the  promulgation  of  mandates,  may  pertinacious- 
ly strive  to  consecrate  as  indefectible,  the  reigning  exterior,  in  which 
the  writings  of  the  prophets  and  apostles  are  exhibited  to  the  world  ; 
to  proclaim  implicit  faith  in  it  as  essential  to  salvation ;  to  denounce 
every  dissent  from  the  dominant  opinion  on  the  subject  as  heretical,  and 
the  practical  application  of  such  difierence  of  sentiment,  as  sacrilegious ; 
to  canonize  every  historical  contradiction,  doctrinal  discordancy,  pre- 
ceptive misconstruction,  general  falsity,  or  irreconcilable  opposition ;  to 
reverence  unnumbered  faults,  extending  to  almost  every  verse  ;  to  idolize 
the  most  adventitious  accompaniments  ;  to  hallow  the  insertion  or  omis- 
sion of  the  most  minute  point ;  and  proceed  even  to  decree  an  apotheo- 
sis to  the  irrelative,  literary  celebrity  of  the  translators ;  yet,  this  free- 
dom of  remark  is  indulged,  from  an  absolute  conviction,  that  Christian 
Philosophy,  in  its  enlarged  and  comprehensive  views,  reflecting  how  far 
the  advancement  of  scriptural  information  has  been  arrested,  by  a  rigid 
adherence  to  the  present  system ;  deploring  the  immense  mischiefs  of 
the  public  version,  the  inconsistencies  of  its  advocates,  and  the  singular 
and  long  protracted  refusal  of  a  vast  division  of  the  universal  church,  in 
a  magnanimous  concert  and  coalition,  to  remove  the  deprecated  evils, 
by  a  radical  and  salutary  revisal,  commensurate,  as  far  as  susceptible, 
with  the  wants  and  wishes  of  a  pre-eminent  portion  of  society,  and  co- 
extensive, if  possible,  with  the  circulation  of  the  English  Scriptures  ; 
contemplating  the  variegated  phases  assumed  by  every  living  language ; 
and  surveying  the  divine  disclosures  in  the  improved  and  resplendent 
mirror  of  the  original ;  must  concede,  that  isolated,  human  authority, 


PREFACE.  XV 

can  superadd  to  the  frequently  represented,  dark  glass  of  the  prevalent 
translation,  no  inherent  excellence ;  that  it  rests  on  the  same  universal 
basis  with  every  other,  its  respective,  intrinsic  worth  ;  that  it  is  equally 
open  to  just  exception ;  and  can  derive  no  title,  by  general  sanction,  or 
any  extraneous  attribute,  to  paramount  integrity,  immunity  from  error, 
exemption  from  investigation,  or  to  any  necessary  alliance,  or  privileged 
communion  with  the  revealed  will  of  God. 

It  is  a  source  of  self-gratulation,  that  a  happy  concurrence  of  events 
has,  for  a  considerable  period,  placed  me  in  a  situation,  which,  by  with- 
drawing me  from  the  contentions  on  theological  topics,  that  have  long 
distracted  so  great  a  portion  of  our  country,  has  conduced  to  cherish  a 
dispassionate  spirit,  and  enabled  me,  in  coincidence  with  my  course  of 
reading  and  reflection,  to  approach  this  undertaking,  with  views  propi- 
tious to  the  cause  of  ingenuousness,  truth,  integrity,  and  impartial  obser- 
vation ;  and  with  a  mind  unperverted  by  disgusting,  sectarian  singulari- 
ties. To  the  divine  authority  of  the  original  scriptures,  unless  I  am  a 
stranger  to  my  own  heart,  I  feel  most  conscientiously  disposed  to  sur- 
render my  sentiments  on  every  subject,  and  unreservedly  to  bow  with 
the  most  humble  and  unbiassed  submission.  Having  had,  therefore,  no 
private  speculations  to  subserve,  the  preparation  of  the  work  has  not 
been  remotely  influenced,  by  any  favorite  tenets,  or  preconceived  system 
of  doctrines,  or  duties.  I  have  also  disdained  the  obsequious  and  servile 
predicament,  of  floating,  at  random,  in  the  wake  of  others.  The  original 
has  been  my  compass,  the  commentaries,  my  explanatory  chart ;  and 
the  principles  of  the  highest  authorities,  my  general  guide  ;  independent 
of  all  party,  conscious  of  great  responsibility,  and  ever  reserving  to  my- 
self, in  its  most  unshackled  exercise,  the  invaluable  privilege  of  private 
judgment.  Avoiding,  as  far  as  practicable,  in  the  prosecution  of  this 
experiment,  a  limited  and  unpleasant  series  of  verbal  repetition  ;  and  i 
instituting  the  more  eligible,  and  in  fact,  if  not  in  form,  the  no  less  literal  '. 
plan  of  a  diversified  interpretation ;  I  have  sedulously  endeavored,  to 
mingle  the  sublime  principles,  and  afiiecting  events,  of  our  religion,  with 
the  rich  and  varied  luxuriance  of  our  language  ;  and  by  devoting  to  the 
chaste  decoration  of  the  former,  some  of  the  innumerous  embellishment^ 
of  the  latter,  to  induce  a  more  extensive  and  pleasant  perusal  of  this 
great  division  of  the  holy  writings.  Ardently  desirous  to  display  to  my 
readers,  with  fidelity,  an  interesting  view  of  the  inestimable  consumma- 
tion of  our  faith,  and  hope,  and  practice,  I  have  engaged  in  the  publica- 
tion ;  and  notwithstanding  the  melancholy  extent,  to  which,  works  of  an 
indifferent  character  arrest  the  public  consideration  ;  and  that  the  real 


xvi  PREFACE. 

merit  of  any  literary,  or  other  effort,  is  among  the  most  uncertain  pass- 
ports to  general  countenance  ;  yet,  if  the  approbation  and  patronage  of 
the  community  will  attend  honest  intention  and  laborious  exertion,  to 
render  a  public  service  in  the  present  instance,  some  confidence  is 
cherished,  that  such  favor  may  be  imparted  to  its  pretensions. 

Something  on  this  subject,  of  a  comparatively  novel  and  satisfactory 
description,  appears,  as  far  as  our  language  extends,  to  have  been  long 
required  by  many  reflecting  men,  scattered  over  the  face  of  an  immense 
section  of  Christendom  ;  and  the  reasonable  requisition  has  beea  as  long, 
and  as  widely  disregarded.  It  is  still  presumed,  that  this  engagement 
wiU  prove,  in  general,  a  very  thankless  office.  Circumstances,  uncon- 
nected with  its  deserts,  may  render  it  obnoxious.  Remarkable  facility 
may  be  displayed,  in  vague  censures,  to  its  detriment.  Reproachful 
epithets  and  satirical  taunts,  may  occupy  the  place  of  more  formidable 
weapons,  and  produce  great  effect.  '  Where  arguments  are  wanting,  it 
is  always  easy  to  calumniate  motives.'  Prejudice  is  the  ally  of  igno- 
rance ;  and  when  the  channel  of  misapprehension  is  once  opened,  the 
current  of  displeasure  freely  flows.  It  may  be  unpopular  even  to  doubt 
the  entire  validity  of  the  general  version.  A  far  spread  apathy  may  rest 
satisfied  with  present  acquisition,  regard  it  as  infallible,  and  quietly  con- 
sent to  bar  the  portals  of  the  mind,  against  the  light  of  all  future  exam- 
ination ;  and  thus  cause  the  darkness  of  existing  errors,  to  remain  undi- 
minished. Preppssessions,  in  favor  of  antiquarian  foundations  and  su- 
perstructures, may  be  misplaced,  or  pressed  to  an  unjustifiable  extreme. 
The' lovers  of  black-letter,  and  the  admirers  of  other  superannuations, 
may  be  startled,  and  disposed  to  dispute  every  encroachment  on  their 
favorite  premises.  The  frowns  of  many  tenacious  subjects  of  the  old 
school,  from  loyalty  to  their  leading  principles  and  settled  habits,  are 
very  naturally  expected.  It  may  be  more  practicable  to  take  captious 
and  severe  exceptions  to  any  new  production,  than  to  furnish,  without 
its  aid,  a  superior  substitute.  There  is  little  difficulty  in  railing  at  what 
may  be  deemed  rash  adventure,  arrogant  pretension,  unhallowed  bold- 
ness, or  profane  interference :  and  while  it  may  be  impossible  to  dis- 
credit a  modern  work  of  this  stamp,  by  successfully  penetrating  the 
panoply  of  accurate  and  refined  taste,  sound  and  unassailable  criticism, 
with  which  it  might  be  mainly  shielded ;  it  may  yet  be  a  feasible  alter- 
native, for  awakening  extensive  disapprobation  of  such  a  performance, 
indefinitely  to  inveigh  against  it,  by  characterizing  as  a  zeal  of  danger- 
ous tendency,  and  stigmatizing  as  the  hardihood  of  irreverent  novelty 
and  investigation,  the  spirit  by  which  it  is  pervaded.     With  regard  to 


PREFACE.  ivii 

numerical  suffrage,  there  may,  therefore,  be  few,  and  perhaps  no  laurels 
to  gather  in  this  field.  The  enterprise,  however,  antecedently  to  its 
commencement,  occupied  long  and  mature  reflection,  and  has,  subse- 
quently, been  the  result  of  patient  and  protracted  apphcation,  has  no 
imaginable  apology  to  be  offered  in  extenuation  of  its  defects,  which 
would  not  have  excluded  it  from  the  world  ;  has  proceeded  from  a  deep 
sense  of  duty  ;  and  especially,  from  an  inexpressible  anxiety,  for  an  in- 
teresting class  of  readers,  to  the  nature  of  which,  it  is  perhaps  inexpe- 
dient, minutely  to  advert :  and  I  am  therefore  happy,  that  I  have  lived 
to  this  period  ;  and  I  trust,  that  I  am  suitably  impressed  towards  the 
Great  Dispenser  of  every  blessing,  for  enabling  me  to  present  even  this 
small  testimony,  of  allegiance  to  his  authority,  attachment  to  his  service, 
and  devotion  to  his  praise.  I  aspire  to  no  conspicuous  place,  in  the 
evanescent  temple  of  public  sentiment.  The  difiiculties  of  attaining  it, 
in  such  a  province  as  this,  cannot  be  disguised :  but,  any  zeal,  to  exile 
from  the  human  mind  some  of  those  baleful  repugnancies,  which  have 
proved  so  hostile  to  the  reception  and  nourishment  of  divine  truth  ;  any 
opposition  to  erroneous  impressions,  of  which  mankind  have  so  long 
been  the  passive  vehicles  ;  any  promulgation  to  the  recent  discoveries  of 
science  ;  any  recognition  of  the  late  glorious  triumphs  of  Biblical  criti- 
cism and  general  literature  ;  any  contribution  to  the  rapidly  progressive 
spread  of  universal  knowledge  ;  any  offering  to  the  sacred  and  divine 
right  of  individual  opinion  ;  any  protest  against  that  daring  spirit  of  in- 
quisition, which  unblushingly  conflicts  with  that  inalienable  privilege  ;  or, 
any  encouragement  to  the  excellent  cause  of  free  and  rational  inquiry, 
and  to  the  transcendent  interests  of  an  enlarged  and  elevated  benevo- 
lence, is  not  to  be  depreciated,  and  must,  eventually,  be  rewarded. 

The  reputation,  even  of  a  rough  pioneer,  in  removing  some  of  the 
rugged  points  in  the  usual  version,  would  amply  gratify  my  ambition  : 
and  I  shall  be  abundantly  satisfied,  if  the  difiident  achievement  serves 
no  other  purpose,  than  to  awaken,  in  conjunction  with  the  far  higher 
efforts  of  cotemporaries,  a  spirit  of  liberal  and  impartial  research,  on 
subjects  surpassing  all  others  in  importance  ;  or  if  it  may  induce  only  a 
very  few  assailants,  to  abandon  the  grovelling  grounds  of  a  pitiful  and 
unprofitable  warfare,  and  to  occupy  the  dignified  positions  of  a  Christian 
neutrality ;  or  even  if  one  reader,  fascinated  by  any  attractive  dress, 
which  these  pages  may  be  found  to  present,  shall  ultimately  regard 
divine  inspiration,  with  a  complacency,  or  consolation,  an  interest,  or 
homage,  in  any  degree  enhanced. 
3 


iviii  PREFACE. 

It  would  be  a  fruitless  attempt  to  interpose,  in  favor  of  this  effort,  any 
incident  foreign  to  the  character  of  its  claims.  I  am  not  disposed  to 
weary  public  attention,  with  any  inconclusive,  or  trivial  test,  of  the 
correctness,  or  utility,  of  this  undertaking ;  but  I  may  perhaps,  be 
permitted,  without  the  imputation  of  enthusiasm,  or  obtrusion,  to  allege, 
as  an  indication  of  the  feelings  with  which  I  have  been  animated,  that 
sincere  prayers  for  the  aid  and  direction  of  the  Holy  Spirit,  have  habit- 
ually mingled  in  its  prosecution  ;  and  that  conscience,  in  awful  respect 
to  the  rapidly  approaching  day,  when  all  human  conduct  wUl  be  review- 
ed by  that  Perfect  Being,  whose  omniscience  rives,  like  an  electric 
flash,  the  deepest  recesses  of  the  soul,  at  the  tribunal  of  that  Blessed 
Redeemer,  whose  divine  counsels  I  have  earnestly  wished,  by  new  and 
superadded  inducements,  to  recommend  to  those,  who  are  travelling  in 
the  same  infinitely  momentous  pilgrimage  ;  though,  it  may  greatly  re- 
gret the  unworthiness  of  numerous  motives,  that  involuntarily  adhere  to 
all  human  frailty  ;  still,  complacently  surveys  the  predominant  integrity 
of  design,  which  has  incited  me  to  this  feeble  endeavor,  for  the  extension 
of  the  benign  effects  of  his  most  holy  word. 

Reference  to  my  wife,  children,  and  particular  friends  ;  to  my  undis- 
sembled  love  of  the  scriptures,  and  profound  solicitude  ever  to  confirm 
that  affection,  alas  too  faintly  inspiring  my  own  heart  !  had  further  in- 
ducements failed  to  operate,  would  have  produced  the  performance. 
The  instruction  and  advantage  of  others,  however,  have  been  principally 
contemplated ;  and  the  volume,  while  it  is  reverently  committed  to  the 
Divine  Blessing,  is  respectfully  offered  to  the  ingenuous  attention  of 
some  of  the  enlightened,  unprejudiced,  and  devout,  of  evei-y  class  of 
society ;  in  the  indulgence  of  the  delightful  anticipation,  that  not  only  a 
cursory  perusal,  but  even  a  critical  examination,  will,  in  their  estima- 
tion, have  justified  its  appearance  ;  and  that  they  will  be  disposed  to 
regard  it,  at  least,  as  a  labor  of  love,  in  the  cause  of  our  common 
Christianity. 

THE    TRANSLATOR. 


REFERENCES, 


Deaigiiating  the  Pago  and  Lino  in  this  Work,  where  any  Chapter  of  the  Received  Text  commences. 


MATTHEW 

i,     page 

«. 

Mj 

42, 

iii, 

43, 

i^) 

44 

V, 

45 

"! 

■*7, 

vii, 

48, 

viii. 

49 

ix, 

51 

2} 

52, 

xi. 

54, 

xii, 

55, 

3[iii, 

57, 

xiv, 

59, 

XV, 

61 

xvi, 

62 

xvii. 

63 

xviii, 

64, 

xix. 

66, 

XX, 

67 

xxl, 

68 

xxii, 

70, 

xxiii, 

72, 

xxiv. 

74, 

XXVj 

75, 

XXVI, 

77, 

xxviij 

80, 

xxviii, 

83; 

MAEK. 

ij 

84, 

") 

85 

iii, 

87, 

91, 
93, 
95, 
96, 
98, 
100, 
102, 
104, 
305, 
108, 
110, 


line  1 

1 

23 

10 

8 

1 

21 

27 

43 

22 

5 

15 

16 

35 

1 

21 

30 

39 

16 

30 

45 

43 

21 

3 

43 

30 


LUKE. 


Xllj 

xiii, 


112, 
114, 
116, 
118, 
120, 
121, 
123, 
126, 
128, 
131, 
132, 
135, 
137, 
139, 


XV^ 

140, 

33 

KOMANS. 

XVI, 

141 

44 

i. 

237, 

xvii, 

143, 

16 

'■i 

238, 

xviii, 

144, 

34 

iii. 

239, 

xix, 

146 

14 

iv. 

240, 

XX, 

148, 

3 

V, 

242, 

xxi. 

149, 

38 

^ij 

243, 

xxii, 

151, 

11 

vii. 

244, 

xxiii, 

153 

34 

viii. 

245, 

xxiv. 

155; 

37 

ix, 

X, 

246, 
248, 

JOHN 

XI, 

249, 

i, 

158, 

1 

xii. 

250, 

"? 

159, 

44 

xiii. 

251 

iii, 

160, 

40 

xiv. 

252, 

iv, 

162, 

10 

XV, 

253, 

V, 

164 

7 

XVI, 

254, 

vjj 

165, 

43 

vii, 

168; 

27 

1  COEIN. 

viii,  V. 

12,  170, 

19 

i. 

256, 

ix, 

i72,  ' 

12 

ii, 

257; 

X, 

173; 

36 

iii. 

257, 

xi. 

175, 

9 

iv. 

S58, 

xii, 

177 

11 

V, 

259, 

xiii. 

179 

12 

VI, 

260, 

xiv, 

180, 

35 

vii. 

260, 

XV, 

182, 

1 

viii. 

262, 

xvi. 

183, 

3 

ix. 

263, 

xvii. 

184, 

21 

X, 

264, 

xviii, 

185, 

27 

XI, 

265, 

xix. 

187, 

15 

xii, 

266, 

XX, 

189, 

13 

xiii. 

26?; 

xxi, 

190, 

28 

xiv, 

XV, 

268, 
269 

ACTS 
i, 

192, 

1 

xvi. 

27i; 

ii, 

193, 

28 

2  CORIN. 

ill. 

195 

19 

i. 

273, 

iv, 

196 

23 

ii. 

274, 

Vy 

198, 

5 

iii. 

274, 

^j 

199, 

44 

iv. 

275, 

vii. 

200, 

29 

T, 

276, 

viii, 

203, 

3 

", 

277, 

ix. 

204, 

31 

vii. 

277, 

JT) 

206, 

23 

viii. 

278, 

xi, 

203, 

21 

ix. 

279, 

xiij 

209, 

32 

X, 

280, 

xiii. 

210, 

43 

xi, 

281 

xiv, 

213, 

9 

xii. 

282, 

XV, 

214; 

20 

xiii. 

283, 

xvi, 

216, 

12 

xvii, 

218, 

1 

GAI^ 

ITIANS 

xviii, 

219, 

30 

i. 

285, 

xix. 

220, 

41 

ii. 

285, 

XX, 

222, 

34 

iii. 

287, 

xxij 

224, 

17 

iT, 

288, 

xxli, 

226 

14 

V, 

389, 

xxiii. 

227 

30 

VI, 

290, 

xxiv. 

229, 

12 

XXV, 

230, 

23 

EPH£ 

SIANS 

XXVI, 

231, 

38 

i, 

291, 

xxvii, 

233 

12 

"< 

292, 

xxviii. 

235 

3 

iii, 

292, 

iv,            293, 

27 

xiii. 

337, 

25 

V,             294, 

34 

VI,            295, 

36 

JAMES. 

i. 

339, 

1 

PHILIPPIANS 

i'! 

340, 

6 

i,             297, 

1 

iii. 

341, 

4 

ii,             298, 

12 

iv, 

34i; 

34 

iii,            299, 

15 

V, 

342, 

10 

iv,            300, 

9 

1  PETEK. 

COLOSSIANS 

344, 

I 

i,              302, 

1 

ii, 

345, 

10 

ii,             303, 

15 

iii. 

346, 

10 

iii,           304, 

11 

iv. 

347 

9 

iv,            305, 

5 

V, 

348, 

3 

1  THESS. 

2  PETER. 

i,              306, 

1 

i. 

349, 

I 

ii,             306, 

21 

ii; 

350, 

1 

iii,           307, 

21 

iii. 

35i; 

S 

iv,            308, 

1 

v,             308, 

34 

1  JOHN. 

i. 

352, 

1 

2  THESS. 

ih 

352 

21 

i,             310, 

1 

iii. 

353, 

41 

ii,            310, 

25 

iv, 

354, 

,39 

iii,           311, 

20 

V, 

355, 

30 

1  TIMOTHY. 

2  JOHN. 

i,              313, 

1 

357. 

ii,             313, 

39 

iii,            314, 

21 

3  JOHN. 

iv,            315, 

5 

358. 

V,             315, 

33 

VI,            316, 

32 

JUDE. 

359. 

2  TIMOTHY. 

i,              318, 

1 

REVELATIONS. 

ii,             318, 

38 

i. 

361, 

1 

iii,            319, 

41 

"t 

362, 

6 

iv,            320, 

23 

iii. 

363 

23 

iv. 

364, 

27 

TITUS. 

V, 

365, 

7 

i,              322, 

1 

VI, 

365, 

28 

ii,             322, 

33 

vii. 

366, 

35 

iii,            323, 

18 

viii. 

367, 

31 

ix, 

368, 

22 

PHILEMON. 

X, 

369, 

21 

324. 

XI, 

370, 

3 

xii, 

371, 

4 

HEBREWS. 

xiii. 

371 

44 

i,             325, 

1 

xiv, 

372, 

39 

ii,             325, 

31 

XV, 

373, 

43 

iii,           326, 

31 

xvi. 

374 

17 

iv,            327; 

16 

xvii. 

375, 

17 

V,             328, 

4 

xviii. 

376, 

12 

vi,            328, 

30 

xix. 

37?; 

27 

vii,           329, 

24 

XX, 

378, 

30 

viii,         330, 

35 

XXI, 

379, 

21 

ix,            331, 

22 

xxii. 

380; 

30 

332, 
334, 


DIVISIONS 


Inscription, 

Page 
5 

Preface, 

7 

References, 

19 

Subdivisions, 

23 

APOSTOLIC   PRODUCTIONS. 
History  ty  Matthew, 

SubdivisionB. 

23 

Text. 
41 

Appendix. 
401 

Marls, 

25 

84 

435 

Luke, 

26 

112 

443 

John, 

28 

158 

453 

Luke's  History  of  Apostolic  and  Ecclesiastical 

Transactions, 

29 

192 

464 

Paul's  Letter  to  the  Romans, 

31 

237 

470 

First  Letter  to  the  Corinthians, 

32 

256 

481 

Second,  to  the  Same, 

33 

273 

484 

Letter  to  the  Galatians, 

34 

285 

485 

Ephesians, 

34 

291 

486 

Philippians, 

35 

297 

486 

ColoBsians, 

35 

302 

489 

First  Letter  to  the  Thessalonians, 

35 

306 

491 

Second,  to  the  Same, 

36 

310 

491 

First  Letter  to  Timothy, 

36 

312 

492 

Second,  to  the  Same, 

36 

318 

494 

Letter  to  Titus, 

37 

322 

494 

Philemon, 

37 

324 

495 

The  Letter  to  the  Hebrews, 

37 

325 

495 

James'  General  Letter, 

38 

339 

496 

Peter's  First  General  Letter, 

38 

344 

496 

Second, 

38 

349 

497 

John's  General  Address  to  Christians, 

39 

352 

497 

Letter  to  an  Eminent  Christian  Woman, 

39 

357 

498 

to  a  Distinguished  Christian  Man, 

39 

358 

499 

Jude's  General  Letter, 

39 

359 

499 

John's  Letters,  Visions,  and  Prophecies, 

40 

361 

499 

APPENDIX.    Notes  to  the  Preface, 

383 

Notes  on  the  Text, 

401 

SUBDIVISIONS. 

APOSTOLIC    PRODUCTIONS. 


MATTHEWS    HISTORY. 

Lineage  of  Jesus  Christ,  and  its  recapitulation,  page  41.  Incidents  of  his  nativity ; 
eastern  magians  repair  to  Jerusalem ;  their  interview  with  Herod,  departure  to  Beth- 
lehem, and  return  to  their  own  country ;  with  the  removal  of  Joseph  to  Egypt,  42. 
Massacre  of  the  infants  ;  return  of  Joseph  to  Galilee ;  reference  to  John  the  Baptist ; 
his  preaching,  and  administration  of  baptism  in  the  dispersed  country  of  Judea ;  his 
reproof  and  injunctions,  43.  Baptism  of  Christ,  and  his  trial  in  the  desert ;  arrest  of 
John  the  Baptist  j  preaching  of  Christ }  commission  of  four  apostles,  44.  His  miracu- 
lous restoration  of  the  diseased  j  discourse  on  the  mount ;  the  felicities ;  Christ's  disci- 
ples the  salt  of  the  earth,  and  light  of  the  world  ;  he  establishes  the  law ;  its  spiritual 
requisitions,  45.  Impurity ;  divorce  ;  perjury  ;  profanity ;  revenge  ;  love  to  enemies, 
46.  Ostentatious  beneficence  ;  hypocrisy  ;  Lord's  prayer ;  forgiveness  of  injuries  ; 
fasting ;  celestial  and  terrestrial  treasures,  47.  Anxiety  relative  to  secular  affairs ; 
inconsiderate  judgment ;  profanation ;  inducements  to  prayer  ;  great  principle  of  rela- 
tive duty ;  difficulties  of  Christian  virtue,  48.  Actions  the  test  of  Christian  charac- 
ter ;  religious  profession,  alone,  unavailing  ;  the  house  erected  on  the  rock,  and  that, 
on  the  sand  j  Christ  heals  a  leper,  and  the  centurion's  servant  j  condition  of  those  who 
reject  the  gospel,  49.  Peter's  wife's  mother  healed  ;  a  scribe  resolves  to  be  a  disciple  ; 
one  requests  to  bury  his  father ;  a,  great  tempest  at  sea ;  Jesus  commands  a  calm ;  he 
restores  demoniacs,  and  the  fiends  assail  a  herd  of  swine,  50.  He  heals  a  paralytic 
person  ;  calls  Matthew ;  and  eats  with  public  exactors  and  pagans,  at  which  the  phari- 
sees  are  offended,  and  he  vindicates  his  conduct ;  the  disciples  of  John  come  to  him, 
and  inquire  about  fasting ;  a  ruler  requests  him  to  heal  his  daughter  ;  on  his  way  to 
the  ruler's  house,  he  heals  a  diseased  woman ;  arriving  at  the  ruler's  house,  he  restores 
the  young  woman  to  life,  51.  He  heals  two  blind  men  ;  and  restores  a  dumb  demo- 
niac ;  preaches,  and  performs  miracles ;  commiserates  the  situation  of  the  people  ;  di- 
rects to  supplication  that  God  would  give  them  teachers ;  commissions  his  twelve 
disciples,  and  gives  them  various  instructions,  52.  These  are  accompanied  with  pre- 
dictions, admonitions,  and  promises,  53.  He  departs  to  instruct;  John  sends  disciples 
to  him ;  Jesus  testifies  relative  to  John ;  reproves  the  Jews  ;  condemnation  of  certain 
cities,  54.  He  concurs  with  the  Father  in  respect  to  the  Christian  revelation,  and 
declares  that  by  it  God  is  known ;  invites  the  distressed  to  come  to  him  for  relief; 
passes  through  the  grain  on  the  sabbath ;  phaiisees  offended  with  his  disciples,  but  he 
vindicates  them ;  heals  the  man  with  the  withered  hand ;  the  pharisees  seek  his 
destruction ;  heals  the  people,  and  accomplishes  certain  prophecies,  55.  He  heals  a 
demoniac  ;  reprehends  the  malignity  of  the  pharisees ;  the  offence  of  detraction  from 
the  Holy  Spirit ;  good  and  bad  trees  known  by  their  fruits,  good  and  bad  men  by  their 
conduct ;  the  sign  of  Jonah ;  the  Ninevites  and  queen  of  the  south  will  condemn  the 
Jews,  56.  The  impure  spirit ;  Christ's  mother  and  brothers  seek  him ;  he  instructs 
the  people  from  a  vessel ;  parable  of  the  sower ;  he  assigns  his  reasons  for  this  mode 


xxiv  SUBDIVISIONS. 

of  instruction,  57.  He  explains  the  comparison  ;  parable  of  the  wheat  and  the  darnel ; 
of  the  grain  of  mustard-seed ;  of  the  leaven ;  prophecy  fulfilled ;  he  illustrates  the 
parable  of  the  wheat  and  the  darnel,  58.  Parable  of  the  concealed  treasure;  of  the 
pearl-merchant ;  of  the  drag-net ;  his  application  of  the  whole  ;  he  teaches  in  his  own 
country,  and  his  neighbors  are  offended ;  his  remarks  on  this  ;  he  performs  no  mira- 
cles among  them  on  account  of  their  incredulity ;  Herod,  informed  respecting  Christ, 
supposes  him  to  be  John  the  Baptist ;  particular  notice  of  the  decapitation  of  John,  59. 
Fire  thousand  men  miraculously  fed  ;  the  disciples  enter  a  vessel,  and  Jesus  retires  to 
a  mountain ;  a  violent  storm  on  the  lake ;  Jesus  repairs  to  them  ;  the  tempest  ceases  ; 
they  reach  the  land  of  Gennesaret,  and  he  heals  many  diseased  persons,  60.  The 
Pharisees  accuse  the  disciples  of  eating 'with  unwashed  hands;  our  Lord  replies  to 
them ;  teaches  what  renders  men  impure  ;  heals  the  daughter  of  a  woman  of  Canaan, 
and  many  diseased  people  on  a  mountain  of  Galilee,  6] .  Four  thousand  men  miracu- 
lously fed ;  dismissing  the  people,  he  arrives  at  the  coast  of  Magdala ;  the  pharisees 
require  of  him  a  sign ;  he  severely  reproves  them  ;  cautions  his  disciples  to  beware  of 
their  doctrine ;  different  sentiments  in  reference  to  Christ,  62.  Peter's  profession,  with 
our  Lord's  remarks ;  he  predicts  his  sufferings,  and  reproves  Peter ;  inculcates  self- 
denial  ;  adverts  to  a  subsequent  retribution ;  and  promises  soon  to  display  the  glory  of 
his  dominion  on  earth ;  the  transfiguration  of  Christ,  with  his  observations,  63.  Heals 
a  lunatic,  and  makes  some  remarks  on  the  subject ;  predicts  his  own  sufferings  and 
death ;  he  is  required  to  pay  a  tax,  and  provides  the  money  by  a  miracle  ;  inquiry  of 
the  disciples  respecting  precedence  in  Christ's  kingdom ;  he  recommends  humility 
and  other  virtues,  64.  He  charges  and  admonishes  them  against  pernicious  examples ; 
parable  of  the  lost  sheep  ;  of  a  brother  who  trespasses  ;  promise  to  social  prayer ;  duty 
of  forgiveness  to  an  offending  brother;  parable  of  the  king,  who  remits  the  debt  of  one 
of  the  public  servants  whom  he  called  to  account,  65.  Of  the  unmerciful  servant, 
and  the  punishment  inflicted  on  him ;  Jesus  leaves  Galilee  and  enters  the  confines  of 
Judea ;  multitudes  follow,  and  he  heals  their  sick  ;  remarks  concerning  marriage  and 
divorce  ;  little  children  brought  to  Christ ;  of  the  young  man  who  wished  to  attain 
eternal  life,  66.  The  salvation  of  a  rich  man  difiioult ;  of  those  who  have  abandoned 
all  in  the  cause  of  Christ ;  of  the  master  of  a  family  who  hired  laborers  into  his  vine- 
yard, 67.  Jesus  predicts  his  sufferings  and  death ;  the  mother  of  Zebedee's  children 
solicits  preferments  for  her  sons,  and  he  replies  to  her ;  he  enjoins  humility  ;  imparts 
sight  to  two  blind  men,  68.  His  entrance  into  Jerusalem ;  he  expels  the  dealers  in 
the  temple ;  heals  the  blind  and  lame ;  confounds  the  offended  chief-priests  and 
scribes ;  of  the  unfruitful  fig-tree ;  he  confutes  those  who  question  his  authority,  69. 
Parable  of  the  man,  and  his  two  sons  who  were  directed  to  labor;  parable  of  the  leased 
vineyard,  applied  to  those  who  wish  to  destroy  our  Lord,  but  are  restrained ;  parable 
of  the  marriage  of  a  king's  son,  70.  Christ  is  questioned  concerning  tlie  payment  of 
taxes,  and  respecting  the  future  existence,  71.  Inquiry  relative  to  the  great  command- 
ment, and  to  the  lineage  of  Christ;  character  of  the  scribes  and  pharisees  delineated; 
directions  how  far  to  regard  them ;  humility  enjoined ;  he  reproves  the  scribes  and 
pharisees  for  their  various  vices  and  crimes,  72.  Their  persecutions  of  the  apostles  and 
others,  and  their  destruction  predicted ;  Christ's  lamentation  over  Jerusalem,  73.  He 
predicts  the  destruction  of  the  temple  ;  enumerates  the  various  indications  of  this  de- 
struction ;  predicts  the  hostile  investment  of  the  city,  the  public  calamities,  and  the 
.  entire  overthrow  of  the  Jewish  pohty ;  blended  with  cautions  against  the  seduction  of 
false  prophets,  74.  The  whole  illustrated  by  the  parable  of  a  fig-tree ;  the  event  cer- 
tain, the  time  uncertain ;  the  insensibility  of  the  people  ;  necessity  of  vigilance  and 
fidelity,  exhibited  in  the  parable  of  the  two  servants ;  parable  of  the  ten  virgins,  75. 
Parable  of  the  talents,  76.  Retribution  to  the  righteous  and  the  wicked;  Christ  pre- 
dicts his  arrest  and  crucifixion  ;  the  chief  priests  and  others  conspire  to  destroy  him  ;  a 
woman  anoints  his  head,  77.  Judas  engages  to  betray  him ;  our  Saviour  partakes  of 
the  passover  ;  refers  to  the  treachery  and  death  that  are  soon  to  befall  him ;  institutes 
the  eucharist ;  they  commemorate  with  the  psalm,  and  retire  to  the  mount  of  Olives  ; 
he  again  announces  hia  approaching  death  and  resurrection  ;   Peter  asserts  his  resolu- 


SUBDIVISIONS.  xxy 

tion  to  be  faithful  to  his  Master,  and  Christ  predicts  his  denial  and  apostacy  ;  our  Lord 
repairs  to  Gethsemane,  78.  The  transactions  there  ;  Judas  approaches  with  a  multi- 
tude and  surrenders  him ;  Peter  resists ;  Christ  discourses  with  the  multitude  ;  the 
disciples  desert  him,  and  he  is  conducted  to  Caiaphas ;  Peter  follows,  79.  The  chief 
priests  and  others  seek  false  witnesses  against  our  Lord,  and  question  him,  who  de- 
clares himself  to  be  the  Messiah ;  they  accuse  him  of  impious  language,  and  abuse 
him ;  Peter's  renunciation  and  repentance  ;  Jesus  is  bound  and  delivered  to  Pilate  ; 
repentance  of  Judas,  80.  Proceedings  before  Pilate  ;  Jesus  is  scourged  j  insolent  and 
injurious  conduct  of  the  soldiers  towards  him,  81.  Circumstances  of  the  crucifixion, 
82.  Subsequent  events  ;  the  resurrection  of  Christ,  with  the  transactions  attending 
it ;  his  appearance,  commission,  and  instructions  to  his  disciples,  83. 


MARK'S  HISTORY. 

Introddction  ;  notice  of  John  the  Baptist ;  the  temptation  of  Christ ;  imprisonment 
of  John;  Jesus  begins  to  preach,  and  calls  severed  disciples;  teaches  in  Capernaum ; 
expels  a  demon,  84.  Heals  Peter's  mother-in-law,  and  many  diseased  persons  ;  pro- 
ceeds to  the  desert,  and  is  followed  by  his  disciples  ;  preaches  in  various  places  of 
Galilee,  and  expels  demons;  purifies  a  leper;  preaches  in  Capernaum;  <i  paralytic 
person  healed,  and  his  sins  forgiven,  85.  The  people  astonished  and  improved ;  he 
calls  Levi ;  associates  with  tax-gatherers  and  pagans ;  of  fasting  and  the  sabbath,  8C. 
Our  Saviour  heals  the  man  with  the  withered  hand ;  the  pharisees  conspire  his  de- 
struction, he  departs  ;  heals  many ;  commissions  twelve  disciples  ;  his  miracles  attri- 
buted to  evil  influence,  87.  Detraction  from  the  Holy  Spirit;  his  relatives  send  for 
him  ;  parable  of  the  sower,  88.  Use  of  instructions  ;  parable  of  the  gradually  advanc- 
ing seed ;  of  the  mustard-seed  ;  storm  on  the  sea,  89.  The  man  possessed  with  a  legion 
of  demons  restored  ;  our  Saviour  raises  the  daughter  of  Jairus  to  life,  and  heals  a  cer- 
tain woman,  90.  His  countrymen  astonished  and  ofiended  ;  he  performs  few  miracles 
among  them;  sends  forth  his  disciples,  91.  Different  views  respecting  Christ ;  de- 
capitation of  John  the  Baptist ;  return  of  the  disciples  ;  he  retires  with  them,  but  the 
people  follow,  92.  He  miraculously  feeds  five  thousand  ;  sends  the  disciples  away  by 
sea ;  they  experience  a  storm ;  he  proceeds  to  them ;  they  reach  the  land,  and  he  per- 
forms numerous  miracles  ;  inquiry  in  reference  to  ablutions,  93.  And  to  real  purity  ; 
of  the  Syrophenician  woman  ;  he  heals  a  man  who  was  dumb,  and  had  an  impediment 
in  his  speech,  94.  Four  thousand  persons  miraculously  fed  ;  a  sign  to  the  pharisees 
refused ;  admonition  against  their  depraved  doctrine,  95.  Christ  restores  sight  to  a 
blind  man  ;  inquires  what  is  the  public  sentiment  concerning  him  ;  acknowledges  that 
he  is  the  Messiah,  and  must  suffer  ;  exhibits  the  duties  of  his  true  disciples  ;  his  trans- 
figuration, 96.  He  expels  a  dumb  spirit ;  predicts  his  death,  97.  Dispute  of  liis  dis- 
ciples relative  to  supremacy  ;  of  the  person  who  expelled  demons  in  Christ's  name ; 
of  kind  offices  and  injuries  to  the  disciples  of  Christ ;  necessity  of  self-denial,  and  of 
union  among  Christians  ;  he  proceeds  to  the  borders  of  Judea  on  the  Jordan,  and  con- 
tinues to  teach ;  the  pharisees  inquire  relative  to  divorce,  98.  The  disciples  renew  the 
inquiry  ;  young  children  are  brought  to  him ;  a  person  interrogates  him  respecting  the 
attainment  of  eternal  life  ;  those  devoted  to  wealth  reluctantly  enter  upon  the  spiritual 
life ;  his  promise  to  his  followers,  99.  His  prediction  of  his  arraignment,  death,  and 
resurrection ;  James  and  John  request  distinguished  privileges  in  his  kingdom ;  our 
Saviour  inculcates  humility,  and  restores  sight  to  a  blind  man,  100.  Christ  enters 
Jerusalem ;  the  sterile  fig-tree  ;  he  purifies  the  temple ;  reflections  on  the  withered 
fig-tree;  of  prayer  and  forgiveness,  101.  His  authority  questioned,  and  his  reply; 
parable  of  the  vineyard  leased  to  iniquitous  tenants ;  inquiry  respecting  the  payment  of 
taxes,  102.  In  reference  to  the  future  state,  the  principal  commandment,  and  to  the 
Messiah  ;  adnionition  against  the  scribes,  103.  The  widow's  contribution ;  our  Saviour 
predicts  the  demolition  of  the  temple,  unfolds  its  preceding  and  attendant  circumstan- 
ces, 104.  He  inculcates  the  necessity  of  vigilance  and  prayer;  the  Jews  conspirs 
4 


ixvi  SUBDIVISIONS. 

against  him;  he  is  anointed,  105.  Judas  betrays  him;  the  passover;  Jesus  predicts 
his  approaching  death ;  institutes  the  eucharist ;  predicts  the  desertion  of  his  disciples, 
and  the  denial  of  Peter,  106.  His  agony  in  the  garden ;  the  disciples  overpowered  by 
sleep ;  Judas  surrenders  him ;  he  is  arrested,  and  the  disciples  fly ;  a  young  man 
makes  his  escape ;  Jesus  is  brought  before  the  chief  priests,  and  Peter  follows  at  a 
distance  ;  our  Lord  is  examined,  107.  He  is  insulted,  and  abused,  and  condemned  on 
false  testimony  ;  Peter's  denial  and  repentance  ;  Jesus  is  arraigned  before  Pilate,  108. 
He  is  surrendered,  and  crucified  with  two  robbers,  under  various  indignities  ;  the  mi- 
raculous darkness,  and  our  Lord's  death ;  the  rending  of  the  veil  of  the  temple,  and 
the  centurion's  confession  ;  several  women  attend,  and  witness  his  death,  109.  Joseph 
of  Arimathea  solicits  the  body  from  Pilate,  and  buries  it ;  some  of  the  women  note  the 
place  of  his  burial ;  the  three  Marys  proceed  to  the  sepulchre  to  embalm  the  body ;  an 
angel  announces  to  them  his  resurrection  ;  Jesus  appears  to  Mary  Magdalene,  and  the 
two  disciples ;  also  to  the  eleven,  and  commissions  them  to  proclaim  the  gospel  to  all 
mankind,  110.  Promises  to  endue  them  with  power  to  perform  miracles ;  his  ascen- 
sion to  heaven;  his  disciples  proceed  to  preach,  and  to  perform  miracles,  111. 


LUKE'S  HISTORY. 

PRErACE  ;  prediction  of  the  birth  of  John  the  Baptist,  with  the  incredulity  of  Zecha- 
riah,  112.  Annunciation  of  the  birth  of  Christ ;  Mary  visits  Elizabeth  ;  Mary's  hymn 
of  exultation  and  praise,  113.  Birth  of  John;  his  father's  prophetic  anthem ;  John  is 
reared  in  the  desert;  the  decree  of  Augustus  to  enrol  the  Roman  empire,  114.  Joseph 
and  Mary  go  to  Bethlehem  to  be  registered  ;  Christ  is  born  ;  his  birth  is  announced  to 
the  shepherds,  who  repair  to  Bethlehem ;  the  circumcision  of  Christ ;  his  parents  pre- 
sent him  in  the  temple  ;  Simeon  receives  him ;  his  ejaculation,  115.  Notice  of  Anna ; 
the  family  return  to  Nazareth ;  go  to  Jerusalem  at  the  passover,  and  leave  him ;  they 
return  and  find  him  in  the  temple,  discussing  with  the  teachers  of  the  law ;  his  mother 
reproves  him ;  his  defence  ;  they  all  return  to  Nazareth,  116.  Commencement  of  the 
preaching  of  John  the  Baptist ;  the  predictions  accomplished  in  him ;  the  subjects  and 
success  of  his  preaching ;  his  testimony  concerning  Christ ;  Herod's  reason  for  im- 
prisoning John ;  baptism  of  Christ,  117.  His  lineage;  his  temptation;  he  teaches  in 
Galilee,  118.  His  instruction  at  Nazareth,  and  in  Capernaum  ;  expels  a  demon  ;  heals 
Peter's  mother-in-law,  and  other  sick  persons,  119.  He  departs  to  the  desert,  and 
preaches  in  Galilee  ;  the  miraculous  draught  of  fishes ;  Christ  heals  a  leper ;  his  celebrity 
published ;  he  cures  the  diseased,  and  instructs,  120.  Heals  a  paralytic  ;  calls  Levi, 
and  attends  a  feast  at  his  house  ;  the  inquiry  about  fasting ;  parable  of  the  new  cloth 
and  old  garment ;  of  the  new  wine  and  old  bottles  ;  the  disciples  gather  and  eat  the 
ears  of  grain  on  the  sabbath,  121.  Our  Lord  heals  the  withered  hand  ;  goes  to  a  moun- 
tain to  pray,  and  calls  twelve  disciples  ;  multitudes  are  instructed  and  healed  ;  he  an- 
nounces blessings  and  calamities ;  imparts  various  instructions,  122.  Parable  of  the 
blind  ;  of  the  splinter  in  a  brother's  eye ;  the  good  and  bad  tree  ;  the  good  and  evil 
treasure  ;  parable  of  the  two  houses,  123.  Our  Saviour  heals  the  centurion's  servant; 
raises  the  widow's  son ;  John  the  Baptist  hears  of  his  fame,  and  sends  to  him  two  of 
his  disciples;  Christ's  character  of  John,  124.  The  obduracy  of  the  Jews  ;  a  pharisee 
invites  him  to  his  house  ;  a  woman  anoints  his  head  and  washes  his  feet ;  the  pharisee 
offended,  and  reproved  by  a  parable  ;  the  woman  vindicated,  and  her  sins  forgiven,  125. 
Jesus  extensively  preaches ;  women  who  had  been  healed  attend  upon  him ;  parable 
of  the  sower ;  directions  to  improve  by  hearing  the  gospel ;  his  relatives  seek  him,  126. 
Storm  on  the  lake ;  he  and  his  disciples  arrive  among  the  Gadarenes ;  he  restores  a 
demoniac,  and  a,  diseased  woman,  127.  Reanimates  the  daughter  of  Jairus ;  com- 
missions his  apostles ;  Herod  is  perplexed  concerning  Jesus  ;  various  suppositions 
relative  to  him ;  the  apostles  return  ;  he  retires,  and  the  people  follow,  128.  Miracu- 
lously feeds  five  thousand  men ;  interrogates  the  disciples  as  to  the  public  opinion 
respecting  him ;  predicts  his  sufferings ;  of  self-denial,  and  the  importance  of  salvation  ; 


SUBDIVISIONS.  xxni 

lenunciation  of  Christ ;  the  traoasfiguratron,  129.  He  restores  a  demoniac ;  predicts 
his  surrender ;  the  disciples  contend  for  superiority ;  of  the  person  who  expelled 
demons  in  Christ's  name  ;  the  Samaritans  who  would  not  receive  him ;  the  man  who 
wished  to  follow  Jesus ;  he  calls  another  disciple,  who  requests  permission  to  bury  his 
father,  130.  Another  proposes  to  follow  him ;  Christ  appoints  seventy  disciples  to 
precede  him ;  calamities  pronounced  on  Chorazin  and  Capernaum ;  the  seventy 
return;  to  whom  the  gospel  is  revealed,  131.  Its  great  privileges;  a  teacher  of  the 
law  inquires  relative  to  eternal  life ;  the  beneficent  Samaritan ;  Martha  and  Mary,  132. 
Of  prayer ;  he  expels  a  dumb  demon ;  this  is  ascribed  to  evil  influence ;  wretched 
state  of  the  Jews ;  the  truly  happy,  133.  He  preaches  to  the  people ;  a  pharisee 
invites  him  to  dine ;  he  reproves  the  pharisees  and  teachers  of  the  law,  134.  Some 
are  greatly  oifended,  and  strive  to  entangle  him  in  his  words ;  preaches  to  his  disciples 
against  hypocrisy  and  timidity ;  inculcates  confidence  in  Divine  Providence ;  admon- 
ishes them  against  renouncing  him  ;  promises  direction  and  support  in  persecution  ; 
warns  the  people  against  covetousness,  135.  Parable  of  the  rich  man  who  demolished 
his  granaries  ;  cautions  against  undue  anxiety;  of  living  in  reference  to  heaven;  our 
Saviour  explains  the  preceding  discourse,  136.  The  efiects  of  the  gospel ;  the  indica- 
tions of  the  times,  and  the  necessity  of  preparation ;  from  certain  examples  Christ 
enjoins  reformation ;  parable  of  the  barren  fig-tree,  137.  He  heals  a  woman  long 
afflicted ;  the  director  of  the  synagogue  is'  incensed,  and  is  reproved  by  our  Lord ; 
parable  of  the  mustard  seed;  of  the  leaven  ;  the  number  saved,  138.  He  is  informed 
that  Herod  purposes  to  kill  him  ;  predicts  his  death  at  Jerusalem,  and  judgments  upon 
that  city ;  Christ  heals  a  man  ill  of  the  dropsy  on  the  sabbath ;  inculcates  humility  by 
a  parable ;  the  poor  to  be  fed,  and  not  the  rich ;  parable  of  the  great  supper,  139.  How 
men  must  become  disciples  of  Christ,  parable  of  the  prudent  builder,  and  the  con- 
siderate king ;  use  of  these  illustrations ;  the  utility  of  salt ;  tax-collectors  and  pagans 
approach  to  hear  our  Lord,  at  which  the  pharisees  are  ofiended ;  he  vindicates  his 
reception  of  them  by  the  parable  of  the  lost  sheep,  140.  Parable  of  the  lost  drachma, 
of  the  profligate  son,  and  of  the  unjust  steward,  141.  His  application  gives  offence; 
he  reproves  them,  and  shows  the  immutability  of  the  law  ;  counsels  against  divorce ; 
narrative  of  the  rich  and  the  poor  man,  142.  Christ  teaches  the  necessity  of  avoiding 
occasions  of  offence  ;  how  to  treat  an  offending  brother ;  efficacy  of  faith  ;  no  one  can 
profit  God ;  our  Lord  purifies  ten  lepers,  143.  The  pharisees  inquire  when  the  domin- 
ion of  God  will  commence  ;  he  replies,  and  corrects  their  views ;  parable  of  the  im- 
portunate widow,  144.  Of  the  pharisee  and  public  exactor ;  infants  brought  to  Christ; 
the  ruler's  inquiry  respecting  eternal  life,  and  our  Lord's  reflections ;  the  requital  of 
those  who  follow  him ;  he  predicts  his  approaching  death  and  resurrection,  145.  He 
restores  a  blind  man  to  sight ;  notice  of  Zaccheus ;  parable  of  the  royal  descendant 
and  his  ten  servants,  146.  Christ  enters  Jerusalem;  weeps  over  the  city,  and  predicts 
its  destruction;  enters  the  temple,  and  expels  the  dealers,  147.  The  chief  priests  and 
scribes  desire  to  destroy  him,  but  are  afraid  of  the  people ;  inquiry  concerning  the 
authority  of  Christ,  and  the  baptism  of  John ;  parable  of  the  vineyard  rented  to  hus- 
bandmen, and  its  application ;  the  chief  priests  and  scribes  are  offended,  and  attempt 
to  ensnare  him,  148.  The  question  about  tribute,  the  future  life,  and  the  lineage  of 
Christ ;  he  warns  his  disciples  against  the  hypocrisy  of  the  scribes,  to  whose  punish- 
ment he  adverts  ;  the  poor  widow's  contribution ;  destruction  of  the  temple  predicted, 
149.  The  signs  of  this  desolation ;  the  public  calamities,  with  directions  to  escape 
them;  parable  of  the  fig-tree,  150.  Necessity  of  sobriety  and  vigilance;  he  teaches  by 
day  in  the  temple,  and  retires  at  night  to  the  mount  of  Olives  ;  our  Lord's  destruction 
conspired ;  Judas  betrays  him ;  he  eats  the  last  supper  with  his  disciples ;  institutes 
the  eucharist ;  announces  the  treachery  of  one  of  them,  151.  The  contention  which 
should  be  the  greatest ;  he  admonishes  Peter ;  Peter's  resolution ;  his  denial  predicted ; 
advises  his  disciples  to  provide  for  their  support;  his  agony  in  tlie  garden;  circum- 
stances of  his  arrest,  152.  Peter's  renunciation  of  him  ;  Jesus  is  derided,  and  vari- 
ously insulted ;    questioned  before  the  sanhedrin ;   his  acknowledgment ;   he  is  con- 


ixTiii  SUBDIVISIONS. 

demned,  153.  History  of  his  arraignment  and  examination  before  Pilate  and  Herod  ; 
his  condemnation  and  surrender  to  the  Jews,  154.  Incidents  of  his  crucifixion  and 
death;  he  is  entombed ;  preparation  for  the  embalming,  155.  History  of  his  resurrec- 
tion, and  appearance  to  various  persons,  157.  His  promise  of  the  Holy  Spirit ;  his 
ascension  ;  return  of  the  disciples  to  Jerusalem. 


JOHN'S  HISTORY. 

REM.4.RKS  relative  to  the  Word ;  the  mission  of  John  and  his  testimony ;  his  re- 
ply to  the  inquiry  respecting  his  mission  and  his  baptism,  158.  His  testimony  on 
seeing  Christ;  he  designates  him  to  two  of  his  disciples,  who  follow  Jesus;  Christ's 
address  to  them;  Andrew  invites  Peter ;  Christ's  address  to  Peter;  Jesus  calls  Philip, 
and  Philip  invites  Nathaniel ;  Christ's  character  of  Nathaniel ;  and  his  conversation 
with  that  disciple,  159.  Our  Lord's  miracle  at  Cana;  he  visits  Capernaum  ;  purifies 
the  temple ;  the  Jews  require  a  miracle  as  a  proof  of  his  authority ;  he  refers  to  his 
own  death  and  resurrection ;  many  confide  in  him,  but  he  would  not  trust  himself  to 
them ;  his  conversation  with  Nicodemus,  160.  The  love  of  God,  the  source  of  hu- 
man salvation;  who  are  condemned,  and  who  are  approved;  Jesus  and  his  disciples 
baptize  in  Judea ;  John  baptizes ;  dispute  about  purification ;  discourse  between  John 
and  his  disciples,  161.  The  pharisees  are  offended ;  Jesus  leaves  Judea  and  passes 
into  Galilee  ;  his  discourse  with  the  woman  of  Samaria,  163.  And  also  with  his  dis- 
ciples ;  many  Samaritans  believe  in  him ;  he  departs  to  Galilee ;  heals  the  courtier's 
son,  103.  And  also,  on  the  sabbath,  the  man  long  diseased ;  hostility  of  the  Jews  on 
this  account ;  our  Lord's  vindication,  164.  He  represents  himself  as  the  light  and 
salvation  of  the  world ;  his  reproof  of  the  Jews ;  he  crosses  the  lake  of  Tiberias,  165. 
Miraculously  feeds  five  thousand  persons;  he  is  acknowledged  as  a  prophet;  retires 
from  the  people  ;  the  disciples  embark  and  meet  with  a  storm ;  Jesus  proceeds  to  them 
walking  on  the  water ;  the  people  take  boats  and  follow  him ;  he  reprehends  their  mo- 
tives, 166.  At  their  request  he  preaches  to  them,  and  in  reply  to  their  cavils,  illus- 
trates his  preceding  remarks,  167.  Several  of  the  disciples  are  offended,  and  with- 
draw; his  defence,  interrogation  to  the  twelve,  and  the  reply  of  Peter;  Christ  exposes 
the  perfidy  of  Judas ;  continues  in  Galilee  ;  of  his  departure  to  the  feast  of  taberna- 
cles, 168.  He  teaches  in  the  temple,  and  confounds  the  Jews ;  their  hostility ;  many 
people  believe ;  the  pharisees  murmur,  and  our  Lord  reasons  with  them ;  his  observa- 
tions on  the  last  day  of  the  festival,  169.  Division  of  public  sentiment  concerning 
him ;  of  the  officers  sent  to  arrest  him ;  their  employers  are  offended ;  Nicodemus  rea- 
sons with  them  ;  Jesus  declares  himself  the  light  of  the  world ;  the  pharisees  cavil ; 
his  reply ;  he  again  addresses  them ;  they  question  him ;  he  answers,  and  predicts  his 
own  death,  170.  Many  believe  in  him;  his  advice  to  them;  the  Jews  plead  the  ad- 
vantages of  their  birth ;  our  Saviour  exhibits  the  vanity  of  their  pretensions,  and  the 
character  of  his  mission,  171.  They  attempt  to  stone  him;  account  of  the  man  who 
was  born  blind ;  Christ  heals  him ;  the  man  is  questioned  by  his  neighbors  and  by  the 
pharisees ;  inquiry  is  also  made  of  his  parents,  172.  The  phaiisees  again  interrogate 
the  man,  who,  vindicating  the  conduct  of  Christ,  is  expelled  by  them  from  the  syna- 
gogue ;  apprized  of  their  conduct,  Jesus  subsequently  finds  the  man,  and  reveals  him- 
self to  him,  and  condemns  the  perverseness  of  the  pharisees ;  parable  of  the  sheep- 
fold,  173.  Christ  announces  himself  the  door,  and  the  good  shepherd ;  some  revile 
but  others  vindicate  him ;  his  remarks  in  the  temple  at  the  festival  of  dedication ;  the 
Jews  attempt  to  stone  him  for  his  pretensions;  his  vindication  and  appeal,  174.  They 
strive  to  apprehend  him,  he  escapes  and  retires  towards  the  Jordan ;  many  repair  to 
him  and  believe  ;  account  of  the  sickness  and  death  of  Lazarus,  175.  Jesus  arrives  at 
Bethany,  and  raises  him  from  the  dead  ;  for  this  the  chief  priests  and  pharisees  plot 
his  destruction  ;  prophecy  of  Caiaphas,  and  Uie  consequent  proceedings  of  the  Jews, 
176.    Jesua  retiree  to  the  city  of  Ephraim;  they  conspire  to  arrest  him  at  the  pass- 


SUBDIVISIONS.  xxix 

over;  Jesus  returns  to  Bethany,  sups  in  the  house  of  Lazarus,  and  Mary  annoints  his 
feet ;  Judas  reproves  her  ;  Jesus  vindicates  Mary,  and  reproves  Judas ;  a  consultation 
to  destroy  Lazarus ;  Christ  enters  Jerusalem ;  the  people  meet  him,  and  the  pharisees 
are  alarmed,  177.  Greeks  inquire  for  him;  his  remarks;  speaks  of  his  approaching 
exaltation,  and  is  answered  by  a  voice  from  heaven ;  the  people  are  astonished ;  he 
explains,  and  predicts  his  death ;  question  concerning  the  Messiah ;  many  disbelieve  ; 
prophecy  of  Isaiah  fulfilled  ;  rulers  afraid  to  acknowledge  him,  178.  Proclaims  him- 
self the  light  of  the  world,  and  shows  the  danger  of  rejecting  his  words  ;  Christ  wash- 
es the  feet  of  his  disciples,  and  inculcates  humility  and  kindness,  179.  He  adverts  to 
the  treachery  of  Judas,  who  leaves  the  company  ;  Jesus  refers  to  his  approaching  de- 
parture and  triumph,  and  commands  his  disciples  to  love  each  other ;  Peter  professes 
strong  attachment  to  him,  and  is  informed  of  his  denial ;  Christ  comforts  his  disciples 
by  the  consideration  that  on  his  departure  he  will  prepare  a  place  for  them  in  his  Fath- 
er's house ;  proclaims  himself  as  the  way  to  the  Father,  180.  He  assures  them  of  his 
intimate  connexion  with  the  Father,  and  that  whatever  is  asked  in  his  name  shall  be 
obtained;  promises  them  the  Holy  Spirit;  shows  that  he  is  soon  to  leave  them,  and 
inculcates  love ;  that  he  is  to  be  revealed  to  those  who  love  God  ;  and  that  such  are  to 
be  fully  instructed  by  the  Holy  Spirit ;  he  bequeaths  his  peace  to  them,  and  fortifies 
thera  against  discouragements ;  predicts  his  approaching  death,  181.  His  union  with 
his  followers,  represented  by  the  figure  of  a  vine  and  its  branches ;  he  exhorts  them  to 
mutual  love  ;  calls  them  his  friends ;  refers  to  their  duty ;  again  enjoins  love ;  predicts 
the  opposition  they  must  encounter  ;  the  sin  of  rejecting  him ;  the  Spirit  of  Truth 
promised,  182.  He  refers  again  to  persecutions,  predicts  his  death,  and  promises  the 
Monitor ;  speaks  figuratively  of  his  death  and  resurrection,  which  he  illustrates  by  a 
parable,  183.  Of  prayer  in  his  name ;  the  disciples  comprehend  him  ;  he  again  pre- 
dicts their  persecution,  and  promises  them  his  peace  and  support ;  Christ's  prayer  to 
the  Father  with  respect  to  himself,  and  to  his  disciples,  184.  And  in  reference  to  those 
who  should  believe  on  him  through  their  instruction;  Jesus  goes  to  the  garden  of 
Gethsemane  ;  Judas  having  betrayed  him,  comes  to  the  place  with  a  body  of  men,  185. 
They  seize  him,  and  conduct  him  to  the  palace  of  the  high  priest ;  Christ  is  interroga- 
ted ;  Peter  renounces  him ;  Jesus  is  led  to  the  pretorium ;  conversation  of  Pilate  with 
the  Jews,  and  with  our  Lord,  186.  Pilate  announces  his  innocence ;  the  Jews  clamor 
for  his  condemnation;  proceedings  before  Pilate  ;  he  delivers  Christ  into  the  hands  of 
the  Jews,  187.  History  of  the  crucifixion,  188.  Joseph  of  Arimathea  begs  the  body 
of  Jesus ;  and  Nicodemus  brings  spices  to  embalm  it ;  he  is  laid  in  a  new  sepulchre  ;  of 
the  facts  consequent  upon  his  resurrection,  with  his  appearance  to  Mary  of  Magdala, 
189.  And  also  to  his  disciples ;  the  extent  of  John's  history  ;  the  miraculous  draught 
of  fishes,  190.  Jesus  dines  with  his  disciples ;  questions  Peter  concerning  his  love  to 
him,  and  directs  him  to  feed  his  sheep  ;  predicts  the  manner  of  Peter's  death  ;  Peter's 
inquiry  respecting  John ;  and  John's  concluding  testimony,  191. 


LUKE'S  APOSTOLIC  AND  ECCLESIASTICAL  TRANSACTIONS. 

Luke's  introductory  observations  referring  to  Christ's  history;  circumstances  of  the 
ascension  ;  return  of  the  disciples  to  Jerusalem,  192.  Death  of  Judas ;  necessity  of 
instituting  another  apostle  in  his  place  ;  the  day  of  Pentecost,  and  the  descent  of  the 
Holy  Spirit,  193.  Peter's  discourse  joyfully  received,  194.  Three  thousand  added  to 
the  church  in  a  day  ;  seriousness  and  stability  of  Christian  character  manifested ;  the 
apostles  perform  numerous  miracles,  and  the  disciples  have  all  things  in  common,  and 
live  in  a  state  of  great  harmony ;  Peter  and  John  go  to  the  temple  at  the  hour  of  prayer, 
and  heal  a  man  who  had  been  lame  from  his  birth,  195.  In  an  address  to  the  people, 
Peter  attributes  the  miracle  to  the  power  of  Jesus,  whom  they  had  crucified,  and  urges 
them  to  reformation  and  faith  in  Christ ;  those  apostles  are  committed  to  prison  ;  their 
authority  questioned  by  the  rulers ;  Peter  replies  and  proclaims  Jesus,  196.    They  are 


XXX  SUBDIVISIONS. 

commanded  not  to  preach  in  that  name,  but  refuse  to  obey,  and  are  menaced  and  dis- 
missed ;  they  return  to  their  associates,  who  all  unite  in  prayer  and  praise  to  God,  who 
answers  and  fills  them  with  the  Holy  Spirit ;  the  happy  state  of  the  primitive  disci- 
ples, 197.  Joses  sells  his  estate  and  contributes  the  money  to  the  common  stock  ;  the 
case  of  Ananias  and  Sapphira ;  many  miracles  are  performed,  and  the  church  is  in- 
creased ;  the  apostles  are  imprisoned,  but  being  delivered  by  an  angel  of  God,  they  go 
and  preach  in  the  temple,  198.  They  are  arraigned ;  proceedings  before  the  SEUihe- 
drin ;  they  are  beaten,  again  commanded  not  to  teach  in  the  name  of  Jesus,  and  dis- 
charged; they  depart,  rejoicing  in  their  persecutions,  and  continue  to  proclaim  Jesus 
Christ ;  complaint  of  the  Hellenistic  Jews  against  the  Hebrews,  199.  The  apostles 
appoint  seven  subordinate  officers;  the  progress  of  the  word  of  God;  Stephen,  one  of 
those  officers,  is  brought  before  the  sanhedrin,  200.  His  defence,  201.  He  is  stoned, 
and  expires  praying  for  his  murderers,  202.  General  persecution ;  Stephen's  burial ; 
Saul's  persecution ;  Philip  preaches  in  Samaria ;  and  Peter  and  John  confer  the  Holy 
Spirit;  Simon  the  magician,  reproved  by  Peter,  implores  an  interest  in  his  prayers, 
203.  Peter  and  John,  having  preached  in  Samaria,  return  to  Jerusalem ;  of  Philip 
and  the  Ethiopian ;  Philip  goes  to  Azotus  and  Cesarea ;  Saul's  persecution  of  the 
Christians  ;  his  vision  and  renovation,  204,  He  proclaims  Christ ;  of  attempts  to  de- 
stroy Saul;  the  churches  relieved  from  persecution,  205.  Peter  heals  Eneas  ;  sickness 
and  death  of  Tabitha,  and  her  restoration  to  life  by  the  instrumentality  of  Peter ;  Cor- 
nelius sends  for  Peter ;  in  a  vision  Peter  is  instructed  how  he  should  treat  the  Gen- 
tiles, 206.  The  messengers  arrive,  and  he  accompanies  them  to  Cesarea ;  his  conver- 
sation with  Cornelius,  207.  Peter  proclaims  Jesus  as  the  Saviour  and  Judge  of  the 
world ;  the  descent  of  the  Holy  Spirit ;  Peter  returns  to  Jerusalem ;  is  accused  of  hav- 
ing associated  with  the  Gentiles  ;  his  defence,  and  its  reception,  208.  Proceedings  of 
those  who  were  dispersed  by  the  persecution  in  reference  to  Stephen ;  mission  of 
Barnabas ;  a  predicted  famine  ;  the  disciples  send  relief  to  the  poor  brethren ;  Herod 
persecutes  the  Christians ;  destroys  James,  and  imprisons  Peter,  209.  His  liberation ; 
the  soldiers  condemned  to  death ;  Herod  incensed  with  the  people  of  Tyre  ;  his  death ; 
the  word  of  God  advances  ;  Barnabas  and  Saul  return  from  Jerusalem ;  of  teachers  in 
the  church  at  Antiocli,  210.  Particular  appointment  and  mission  of  Paul  and  Bar- 
nabas ;  they  preach  at  various  places  in  the  Jewish  synagogue ;  of  Elymas  the  magi- 
cian; the  apostles  proclaim  the  gospel  at  Antioch,  211.  They  are  persecuted;  they 
announce  salvation  to  the  Gentiles,  212.  The  latter  rejoice  and  receive  the  truth,  but 
the  Jews  persecute  and  expel  them ;  they  joyfully  proceed  to  Iconium ;  they  success- 
fully preach,  but  being  persecuted,  fly  to  Lystra;  they  preach,  and  heal  a  cripple; 
Paul  is  stoned,  213.  The  apostles  having  visited  many  churches  return  to  Antioch  ; 
they  are  sent  to  consult  the  church  at  Jerusalem  with  respect  to  the  circumcision  of 
the  Gentiles;  that  consultation,  214.  Its  result,  their  return  to  Antioch,  and  recep- 
tion ;  the  preaching  of  Judas  and  Silas,  and  of  others,  215.  Disagreement  of  Paul  and 
Barnabas ;  Paul  chose  Silas  and  departed ;  the  apostles  visit  various  churches ;  Paul 
proceeds  to  Derbe  and  Lystra,  and  meets  Timothy ;  they  deliver  the  apostolic  injunc- 
tions to  the  churches ;  they  extensively  travel ;  Paul's  vision  relative  to  Macedonia ; 
he  reaches  Philippi ;  of  Lydia,  a  vender  of  purple  ;  a  young  woman,  with  a  spirit  of 
divination,  216.  She  is  dispossessed  by  Paul ;  he  and  Silas  are  brought  before  the 
magistrates,  beaten,  and  imprisoned ;  they  are  miraculously  liberated  from  tlieir 
chains ;  the  goaler  and  his  family  are  baptized ;  the  apostles  are  dismissed ;  Paul 
pleads  his  privilege  as  a  Roman  citizen ;  they  are  solicited  to  depart  from  the  city,  217. 
They  proceed  to  Theesalonica,  where  they  preach ;  riotous  proceedings ;  they  are  sent 
away  to  Berea;  a  persecution  is  excited  ;  Paul  is  conducted  to  Athens,  218.  He  ex- 
plains his  doctrine,  and  gives  a  general  view  of  theological  principles  ;  he  proceeds  to 
Corinth ;  his  residence  with  Aquila ;  his  instruction,  and  the  opposition  he  encounters 
219.  His  vision,  and  continuance  there  ;  he  is  brought  before  Gallic  ;  outrages  of  the 
Jews;  Paul  sails  to  Syria,  to  Ephesus,  and  to  Cesarea;  of  ApoUos,  and  his  preaching, 
320.    Paul  preaches  at  Ephesus,  and  performs  many  miracles  ;  of  the  vagrant  exorcist 


SUBDIVISIONS.  xxxi 

Jews,  221.  Tumultuous  proceedings  at  Ephesus;  he  retires  to  Macedonia;  passes 
into  Greece ;  and  reaches  Troas,  222.  He  there  preaches,  and  restores  Eutychus  to 
life  ;  he  departs,  and  passing  through  various  places,  arrives  at  Miletus  ;  he  sends  for 
the  presbyters  of  the  church,  223.  His  discourse  to  them,  and  departure  with  a  view 
to  go  to  Jerusalem  ;  Paul  and  his  company  sail  from  Miletus,  and  touching  at  many 
places,  come  to  Cesarea ;  his  persecution  at  Jerusalem  is  predicted,  and  an  attempt  is 
made  to  dissuade  him  from  going  ;  but  he  is  resolute,  and  departs  with  his  associates, 
224.  He  is  kindly  received  by  James  and  the  presbyters ;  his  purification  in  the  tem- 
ple ;  an  insurrection  excited  against  him  by  some  of  the  Asiatic  Jews  ;  the  tribune 
commands  him  to  be  bound  and  conveyed  to  the  castle,  225.  Paul  addresses  the  peo- 
ple, 226.  The  Jews  are  indignant,  and  demand  his  life  ;  the  tribune  orders  him  to  be 
examined  by  scourging ;  Paul  pleads  his  privilege  as  a  Roman  citizen,  and  escapes  the 
torture ;.  he  is  arraigned  before  the  sanhedrin ;  proceedings  before  them ;  Paul's  re- 
marks awaken  a  controversy  between  the  pharisees  and  sadducees,  227.  A  great  dis- 
sension arises,  and  the  tribune,  apprehensive  for  the  safety  of  Paul,  orders  that  he  be 
brought  to  the  castle ;  many  conspire  to  destroy  Paul,  and  the  tribune  sends  him  by 
night  under  a  strong  military  escort  to  Felix  in  Cesarea,  228.  Paul  is  arraigned  before 
Felix ;  the  accusation  of  TertuUus ;  Paul's  defence,  229.  Felix  postpones  the  final 
determination  of  the  case  ;  directs  Paul  to  be  treated  with  humanity,  is  greatly  afiected 
in  listening  to  his  remarks,  but  retains  him  in  prison  ;  the  apostle's  trial  before  Festus, 

230.  The  appeal  to  Cesar  ;  Festus  presents  to  Agrippa  a  statement  of  Paul's  case, 

231.  The  Apostle's  address  to  Agrippa,  232.  The  confession  of  Agrippa;  Paul's 
reply ;  the  tribunal  breaks  up,  and  he  is  pronounced  innocent ;  it  being  determined 
that  Paul  should  be  sent  to  Rome,  he  is  delivered  to  Julius,  a  centurion ;  they  embark  in 
an  Adramyttian  vessel,  and  arrive  at  Myra ;  they  are  transferred  to  an  Alexandrian  ves- 
sel bound  to  Italy,  233.  They  encounter  storms,  and  are  wrecked  on  the  island  of  Malta, 
234.  The  entire  passengers  and  crew  are  saved ;  they  are  received  with  great  hospi- 
tality by  the  Maltese  ;  a  viper  seizes  Paul's  hand ;  he  receives  no  injury  ;  the  inhabit- 
ants denominate  him  a  God ;  kindness  and  politeness  of  Publius,  the  governor  of  the 
island ;  Paul  miraculously  heals  the  sick  father  of  Publius,  and  several  others ;  after 
three  months  they  embark  in  an  Alexandrian  ship ;  particulars  of  their  passage  and 
journey  to  Rome,  245.  Paul's  reception  at  Rome,  subsequent  employment,  and  resi- 
dence, 236. 


PAUL'S   LETTER  TO   THE   ROMANS. 

Paul's  designation  to  the  apostleship ;  his  salutation  to  the  Christians  at  Rome ;  his 
commendation  of  their  faith,  and  desire  to  see  them  ;  his  delineation  of  Christianity, 
237.  He  describes  the  iniquity  of  the  Gentiles,  and  also  that  of  the  Jews,  238.  The 
inutility  of  Jewish  rites,  laws,  and  privileges,  without  obedience,  239.  The  plan  of 
salvation,  through  the  religion  of  Jesus  Christ,  developed,  240.  The  impartiality  of 
the  divine  mercy  in  the  extent  of  this  plan,  241.  As  alike  embracing  Jews  and  Gen- 
tiles, 242.  The  preceding  remarks  relative  to  the  Mosaic  law,  are  not  to  be  understood 
so  as  to  sanction  the  inference,  that  Christians  are  permitted  to  indulge  themselves  in 
unrestrained  licentiousness,  243.  Though,  exonerated  from  that  law,  yet,  the  gospel 
furnishes  motives  of  the  most  powerful  kind,  to  the  cultivation  of  piety  and  virtue, 
244.  The  inability  of  the  law  of  Moses,  though  excellent  and  divine,  to  restrain  from 
iniquity,  in  consequence  of  the  depravity  of  the  human  character,  and  its  inclination  to 
evil ;  to  the  gospel  only,  and  not  to  the  law,  is  to  be  attributed  the  power  of  forgive- 
ness ;  with  respect  to  the  benefits  referred  to,  the  law  was  incompetent,  because  it  was 
not  intended  to  impart  these  benefits,  245.  Christianity,  in  the  consecrated  character 
of  its  motives  to  believers,  and  in  its  very  encouraging  and  consolatory  influence,  con- 
tains much  more  distinguished  and  efiicacious  means  to  animate  and  fortify  in  the 
practice  of  virtue  ;  all  of  which  are  offered  to  the  Christian,  to  aid  his  advancement  in 


xxxii  SUBDIVISIONS. 

piety  and  happiness,  among  the  various  and  distressing  evils,  by  which  human  life  is 
assailed,  246.  The  apostle,  in  this  discussion,  vindicates  divine  Providence,  in  the  pre- 
sent rejection  of  the  Jewish  nation  from  a  covenant  state,  and  in  the  invitation  of  the 
Gentiles  ;  and  also  illustrates  the  character  of  the  gospel,  as  embracing  mankind  in 
general  within  the  purview  of  its  promises,  247.  He  testifies  the  great  affection  which 
he  cherished  for  the  Jewish  nation ;  the  extreme  sorrow  he  experienced  in  conse- 
quence of  their  infelicity,  arising  from  disbelief  and  vain  confidence  ;  his  earnest  wish 
to  promote  their  salvation  ;  and  the  certain  and  undoubted  hope,  which  he  entertained, 
of  their  future  accession  to  the  faith  of  Christ,  248.  He  cherishes  the  same  expecta- 
tion in  reference  to  the  Gentiles ;  and  applies  to  them  the  preceding  discussions,  249. 
He  admonishes  them  against  vain  confidence ;  and  offers  an  apostrophe  of  admiration 
to  the  divine  wisdom  and  benignity,  250.  He  inculcates  general,  Christian  piety, 
particularly  sobriety  of  character,  displayed  by  fidelity  in  the  discharge  of  official  duty, 
and  by  mildness  in  bearing  the  injuries  of  enemies ;  he  requires  obedience  to  magis- 
trates, kindness  towards  all  men,  and  purity  of  manners,  251.  He  urges  mutual  affec- 
tion among  the  better  instructed  and  the  weaker  Christians ;  and  cautions  them  against 
making  external  rites  and  observances  subjects  of  division  and  contention,  252.  As- 
cription of  praise  to  God  ;  the  apostle  inculcates  patience  and  forbearance  towards  the 
infirmities  of  eacli  other ;  various  exhortations  to  charity  and  kindness ;  his  invocation 
of  the  divine  blessing  upon  the  brethren  at  Rome,  with  the  expression  of  his  regard  for 
them,  253.  The  success  of  his  ministry ;  his  intention  to  visit  them  ;  his  desire  for  an 
interest  in  their  prayers,  254.  He  closes  the  Letter  with  various  circumstances  relat- 
ing to  himself,  with  a  caution  against  divisions,  accompanied  with  salutations,  and  a 
benediction,  255. 


PAUL'S   FIRST   LETTER   TO   THE   CORINTHIANS. 

Salutation  and  benediction  of  the  apostle  ;  his  expression  of  gratitude  for  the  pros- 
perity of  the  Corinthian  church ;  he  reprehends  their  dissensions ;  means  of  salvation, 
25t).  Causes  of  unbelief;  the  character  and  result  of  the  apostle's  preaching ;  revela- 
tion and  its  proclamation  to  mankind  powerfully  efficient  through  divine  influence  . 
imperfect  state  of  the  church  at  Corinth,  257.  The  dispensers  of  the  gospel  are  only 
God's  instruments ;  Christ,  its  foundation ;  Christians,  the  temple  of  God ;  caution 
against  self-deception ;  the  true  Christian  profits  by  all  things ;  office  and  duty  of 
ministers  ;  human  judgment  subordinate  ;  admonition  against  offence  ;  258.  All  good 
proceeds  from  God ;  trials  of  the  apostles ;  Paul  sends  to  them  Timothy,  and  promises 
to  come  himself ;  the  spiritual  dominion  of  God ;  of  certain  evils  at  Corinth ;  the 
apostle  orders  the  transgressor  to  be  expelled ;  Christians  must  not  associate 
with  transgressors,  259.  He  reproves  the  litigious  disposition  of  the  Corinthians ; 
iniquitous  persons  excluded  from  the  kingdom  of  God ;  of  things  lawful  but  not  ex- 
pedient; Christ's  resurrection  a  pledge  of  ours;  Christians  are  members  of  Christ,  and 
temples  of  the  Holy  Spirit ;  powerful  dissuasives  from  sin,  260.  Remarks  in  reference 
to  the  single  and  the  married  state,  261.  The  obligations  and  duties  they  severally 
involve  ;  of  food  offered  to  idols ;  false  and  true  worship  ;  a  man  should  not  act  injuri- 
ously, even  in  things  otherwise  indifferent,  262.  Paul's  resolution  on  this  subject ;  of 
the  secular  support  of  those  who  minister  in  spiritual  things  ;  the  apostle's  disinterest- 
edness ;  his  accommodation  to  the  prejudices  of  men,  263.  The  way  to  heaven  assimi- 
lated to  a  race  ;  the  necessity  of  perseverance  ;  facts  in  Jewish  history  illustrative  of 
Christian  ordinances ;  transgressions  of  the  ancient  Jews,  and  their  punishments ; 
these  are  recorded  as  admonitions ;  the  nature  and  design  of  the  Lord's  supper  264' 
Of  things  lawful  but  not  expedient ;  we  should  strive  to  act  so  as  to  improve 'each 
other ;  all  thmgs  should  be  done  to  the  praise  of  God ;  the  apostle  commends  the  Cor- 
mthians  for  their  remembrance  of  him,  but  gives  them  certain  cautions,  and  reprehends 
them  for  their  divisions  and  irregularities  in  conducting  public  worship,  265     And  in 


SUBDIVISIONS.  xxiiii 

celebrating  the  Lord's  supper ;  account  of  its  institution,  directions  relative  to  the  per- 
formance of  this  sacred  rite,  and  the  danger  of  its  unworthy  reception  ;  the  former  and 
present  state  of  the  Corinthians  ;  of  spiritual  gifts ;  origin  of  the  diversities  of  gifts, 
administrations,  and  operations ;  the  nature  of  these  gifts,  and  how  dispensed,  266. 
Christ  and  the  church  represented  under  the  similitude  of  the  human  body  ;  the  mem- 
bers of  the  church,  or  spiritual  body,  and  their  respective  offices  ;  we  should  earnestly 
desire  the  best  gifts ;  benevolence,  or  love,  comprises  all  true  religion ;  without  it  all 
things  else  are  unavailing,  267.  The  description  and  praise  of  this  grace,  and  its  du- 
ration ;  notice  of  the  present,  imperfect  state  of  man ;  of  all  the  Christian  graces  love 
is  the  best ;  the  desire  of  spiritual  gifts  ;  of  spiritual  instruction ;  the  regulation  of  the 
supernatural  gifts  of  languages,  so  that  the  hearers  may  be  instructed,  2C8.  Of  teachers 
in  the  church  ;  all  should  be  humble,  and  every  thing  should  be  done  in  love  ;  how 
the  apostle  preached  to  the  Corinthians,  269.  Arguments  to  prove  the  resurrection  of 
the  dead,  270.  The  manner  in  which  that  great  work  will  be  performed ;  the  astonish- 
ing events  that  will  occur  at  the  last  day ;  the  apostle  apostrophizes  the  imbecility  of 
death  and  the  grave  ;  improvement  of  the  doctrine  of  the  resurrection,  271.  He  ex- 
horts them  to  contribute  to  the  relief  of  the  poor  Christians  at  Jerusalem ;  promises  to 
pay  them  a  visit ;  refers  to  Timothy  and  Apollos  ;  enjoins  vigilance  ;  commends  the 
family  of  Stephanas  ;  sends  the  salutations  of  different  persons ;  shows  the  awful  state 
of  those  who  were  enemies  to  Christ ;  and  concludes  with  a  benediction,  272. 


PAUL'S  SECOND  LETTER  TO  THE  CORINTHIANS. 

Salutation  and  benediction ;  the  apostle  enjoins  trust  in  God  in  all  adversities ; 
his  personal  calamities ;  exultation  of  a  genuine  Christian ;  he  appeals  to  their  own 
knowledge  for  the  truth  of  what  he  had  written ;  his  purpose  to  visit  them,  273.  The 
character  of  his  instruction  ;  he  assigns  his  reason  for  writing  to  them  in  such  a 
manner ;  exhorts  them  to  forgive  the  oifending,  but  penitent  person ;  refers  to  Titus  ■ 
praises  God  for  his  own  success  ;  different  effects  of  the  gospel,  274.  He  professes  to 
preach  the  pure  doctrine  of  God ;  exhibits  the  testimony  of  his  divine  mission  ;  the 
comparative  excellence  of  the  old  and  new  covenants  ;  he  shows  his  integrity  in 
preaching  the  gospel ;  attributes  its  unprofitableness  in  any  instances  to  unbelief;  how 
he  preached,  and  how  he  was  qualified  for  the  work,  275.  His  afflictions  and  difficul- 
ties, hopes  and  consolations ;  and  his  prospect  of  eternal  blessedness ;  Christians  ar- 
dently desire  this  glorious  destination  ;  all  must  appear  before  the  tribunal  of  Christ ; 
necessity  of  preparation ;  Christ  died  for  all,  276.  He  who  is  in  Christ  is  a  new  crea- 
tion ;  the  reconciliation  to  God  through  him ;  its  appropriate  influence  ;  the  conduct 
of  the  apostles ;  Paul's  affectionate  concern  for  the  Corinthians  ;  he  counsels  them  not 
to  be  connected  with  unbelievers  ;  exhorts  them  under  a  divine  promise  to  avoid  evil 
companions,  and  evil  practices ;  inference  from  the  preceding  exhortation,  277.  His 
affectionate  interest  in  their  prosperity  ;  his  joy  in  their  reformation  ;  its  true  charac- 
teristics ;  he  rejoices  over  them ;  excites  them  to  contribute  to  the  relief  of  the  poor, 
278.  God  provides  for  the  wants  of  all  men  ;  Titus  engaged  in  this  work  ;  his  charac- 
ter ;  additional  remarks  and  directions  relative  to  contributions  for  the  poor,  279.  The 
results  of  such  liberality ;  God,  the  author  of  every  good,  should  have  the  exclusive 
praise;  Paul  particularly  adverts  to  false  apostles;  refers  to  his  own  authority, 
and  field  of  instruction,  2S0.  He  disapproves  their  self-commendation ;  and  asserts 
that  we  should  glory  only  in  the  Lord  ;  he  apologizes  for  distrusting  the  true  state  of 
the  Corinthians  ;  is  apprehensive  of  their  danger ;  vindicates  his  own  ministry  ;  the 
character  of  false  apostles,  281.  Paul's  privileges,  labors,  persecutions,  sufferings  and 
dangers  ;  his  great  care  and  concern  for  the  church  ;  his  escape  from  his  enemies  at 
Damascus  ;  of  some  astonishing  revelations  he  received  ;  a  messenger  of  the  adversary 
is  sent  to  afflict  him  ;  he  exults  in  afflictions,  282.  He  vindicates  his  official  conduct ; 
promises  to  visit  them  ;  answers  some  objections ;  expresses  his  apprehensions  that  he 
5 


ixxiT  SUBDIVISIONS. 

shall  find  unreformed  transgressors  among  them  ;  he  again  communicates  his  purpose 
to  visit  them  ;  exhorts  them  to  examine  themselves  ;  prays  that  they  may  do  no  evil ; 
Vifishes  their  complete  restoration,  283.  His  reason  for  virriting  to  them ;  his  farewell, 
aocompajiied  with  injunctions,  salutations,  and  a  benediction,  284. 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  GALATIANS. 

Direction  of  the  letter  ;  Paul  asserts  his  divine  call  to  the  apostleship  ;  and  that  he 
had  not  received  his  doctrine  from  man  ;  he  recurs  to  his  different  journeys  ;  his  visit 
to  the  apostles  at  Jerusalem,  285.  He  mentions  another  journey  to  that  city,  and  how 
he  conducted  himself;  he  speaks  of  his  treatment  there  ;  his  opposition  to  Peter  at 
Antioch,  and  the  cause  of  it ;  of  the  plan  of  divine  acceptance,  286.  He  adverts  to 
the  renunciation  of  the  gospel  by  the  Galatians ;  and  again  discusses  the  subject  of 
divine  forgiveness,  287.  The  condition  of  an  heir  while  in  a  state  of  minority ;  the 
mission  of  the  Son  of  God  ;  the  great  privileges  and  comforts  of  the  children  of  God  ; 
the  apostle  fears  that  his  labor  in  behalf  of  the  Galatians  is  in  vain  ;  his  trials  among 
them,  and  their  kindness  to  him  ;  he  shows  his  affection  for  them,  and  exhorts  them  to 
return  to  the  gospel,  28S.  He  exhibits  its  superiority  to  the  "law  by  an  allegory ;  the 
Gentiles  are  children  of  the  promise  ;  the  apostle  exhorts  the  Galatians  to  stand  firmly 
in  the  Christian  faith ;  shows  its  superior  excellence  ;  reference  to  their  former  sta- 
bility, with  an  admonition ;  his  confidence  in  their  restoration ;  punishment  of  him 
who  perverts  them ;  love  is  the  consummation  of  the  law,  289.  The  works  of  the 
flesh ;  the  fruits  of  the  Spirit ;  he  exhorts  them  to  live  in  the  Spirit ;  tender  affection 
inculcated  towards  those  who  sin  through  surprise,  or  violent  temptation;  of  relief; 
of  humility ;  character  rests  on  the  evidence  of  works ;  support  of  instructors  ;  of 
self-deception,  and  retribution ;  perseverance  and  beneficence  ;  his  love  induced  him 
to  write  this  letter  ;  he  exults  in  the  Christian  plan  of  salvation,  and  wishes  peace  to 
those  who  act  on  this  plan;  the  strong  assurance,  and  benediction  of  the  apostle,  290. 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  EPHESIANS. 

Intkoduction  to  the  letter ;  the  apostle  praises  God  for  calling  the  Gentiles  to  the 
privileges  of  the  gospel ;  forgiveness  of  sins  through  Jesus  Christ ;  God,  in  his  abun- 
dant goodness,  designs  to  gather  Jews  and  Gentiles  into  one  church ;  Paul's  prayer 
for  the  Ephesians,  291.  Their  previous  character,  and  accession  to  Christianity  ;  the 
mode  of  salvation  ;  their  former  state  miserable,  their  present  state  happy ;  reconcilia- 
tion through  Christ  to  Jews  and  Gentiles ;  privileges  of  believers ;  the  annunciation 
of  the  gospel  to  the  Gentiles  as  well  as  to  the  Jews,  292.  The  intention  of  the  apos- 
tle's ministry ;  his  afflictions ;  his  prayer  for  the  Ephesians ;  ascription  of  praise  to 
God ;  he  exhorts  them  to  adorn  their  profession,  and  to  live  in  peace  and  unity ;  of 
various  gifts  and  offices;  the  necessity  of  being  well  instructed  in  divine  things  ;  how 
the  church  is  constituted,  293.  Deplorable  conduct  of  certain  Gentiles  ;  the  result  of 
Christianity;  he  inculcates  purity,  holiness,  truth,  self-command,  honesty,  and  indus- 
try ;  he  also  enjoins  a  chaste  and  pious  conversation,  the  avoidance  of  evil  tempers, 
affectionate  kindness  to  each  other,  and  a  spirit  of  forgiveness,  in  imitation  of  the  di- 
vine benignity  ;  Christians  should  imitate  their  heavenly  Father,  and  walk  in  love 
after  the  example  of  Christ ;  dissuasive  from  various  vices,  294.  They  are  instructed 
to  walk  as  children  of  light,  and  not  to  participate  in  works  of  darkness ;  they  are  urg- 
ed to  awake,  to  conduct  prudently,  to  retrieve  the  time,  and  to  ascertain  the  Lord's 
will ;  directions  to  sobriety,  gratitude,  and  obedience ;  injunctions  to  husbands  and 
wives  ;  marriage,  an  emblem  of  the  union  of  believers  with  Christ ;  the  inference  ; 
duties  of  parents  and  children,  of  masters  and  servants,  295.  All  should  be  fortified 
in  the  Lord,  against  their  enemies ;  delineation  of  the  Christian  armor ;  prayer  and 
vigilance  required  ;  commission  of  Tychicus  ;  the  benediction,  296. 


SUBDIVISIONS. 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  PHILIPPIANS. 

Padl's  address  and  benediction ;  he  is  grateful  for  the  prosperity  of  the  Phihppians ; 
discloses  his  ardent  affection,  and  prays  for  them ;  the  gospel  advanced  by  the  persecu- 
tion of  the  apostle ;  of  those  who  proclaim  the  gospel  from  unworthy  motives,  297. 
He  is  uncertain  as  to  his  liberation,  or  martyrdom,  but  suggests  a  hope  that  he  should 
be  restored  to  them  ;  expresses  strong  confidence  in  God ;  exhorts  them  to  a  pious 
life,  and  consoles  them  under  their  calamities  ;  he  enjoins  unity,  love,  humility,  defer- 
ence, and  disinterestedness ;  enforces  the  imitation  of  Christ,  derived  from  his  hu- 
miliation and  exaltation ;  they  are  exhorted  to  attain  salvation,  and  as  the  fruits  of  his 
labor  to  be  irreproachable,  and  otherwise  exemplary;  he  declares  his  readiness  to  offer 
his  life  for  the  gospel ;  intends  to  send  Timothy  to  them,  of  whom  he  gives  a  very  high 
character  ;  yet  hopes  soon  to  see  them  himself,  398.  He  commends  Epaphroditus  to 
their  particular  tenderness;  exhorts  them  to  rejoice  in  the  Lord,  and  to  beware  of  false 
teachers  ;  concerning  the  spiritual  worshippers ;  his  high  estimation  of  Christianity ; 
his  zealous  assiduity  in  the  Christian  course  ;  admonishes  them  to  be  diligent  and  fer- 
vent in  the  way  of  life,  299.  He  exhibits  the  ineffable  privileges  of  Christians;  af- 
fectionately exhorts  the  Philippians  to  religious  improvement ;  communicates  requests 
to  particular  persons ;  directs  in  respect  to  their  habitual  temper ;  shows  how  to  con- 
duct in  all  respects  as  becomes  the  purity  and  excellence  of  the  gospel ;  thanks  them 
for  their  attention  in  his  captivity  ;  his  contentment  in  all  situations  ;  he  refers  to  par- 
ticular instances  of  their  kindness,  300.  His  promises  to  them ;  his  gratitude ;  saluta- 
tions, and  benediction,  301. 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  COLOSSIANS. 

The  salutation  of  Paul  and  Timothy  to  the  Colossian  church;  their  praise  for  its 
welfare,  and  for  the  extension  of  the  gospel;  their  prayer  for  the  spiritual  advance- 
ment of  the  Colossians ;  of  deliverance  through  Jesus  Christ ;  his  glorious  character ; 
the  reconciliation  which  the  Colossians  had  realized,  302.  Character  of  the  apostle's 
preaching ;  his  great  concern  for  the  church,  injunction  to  continue  in  faith  and  piety, 
and  to  beware  of  seducers ;  spiritual  import  of  baptism ;  their  former  and  present 
state ;  warns  them  against  particular  tenets,  which  are  the  mere  commandments  and 
doctrines  of  men,  303.  He  inculcates  celestial  affections,  and  preparation  for  heaven ; 
exhorts  them  to  self-command ;  recalls  their  former  state,  and  alludes  to  their  subse- 
quent improvement;  gives  directions  relative  to  truth,  mildness,  forbearance,  forgive- 
ness, and  benevolence  ;  he  enjoins  peace,  unity,  and  gratitude  ;  directs  them  to  cherish 
the  doctrine  of  Christ,  to  teach  and  admonish  each  other,  and  to  do  every  thing  in  the 
name  of  the  Lord  Jesus ;  the  relative  duties  of  wives,  husbands,  children,  fathers, 
servants,  304.  The  retribution  of  an  impartial  God;  the  duty  of  masters  to  their 
servants;  recommendation  of  prayer,  vigilance,  praise,  and  general  good  conduct; 
particular  directions ;  salutations  and  benediction,  305. 


PAUL'S  FIRST  LETTER  TO  THE  THESSALONIANS. 

Imscription  by  Paul  and  others  to  the  church  of  the  Thessalonians ;  the  apostle 
praises  God  for  their  prosperous  situation ;  displays  the  happy  results  of  the  gospel 
among  them,  in  reference  to  their  life,  example,  and  anticipations ;  persecution  caused 
the  gospel  to  be  proclaimed  to  them  by  the  apostles ;  their  manner  of  preaching,  doc- 
trine, and  conduct,  306.  Paul  commends  their  reception  of  the  gospel,  and  adverts  to 
their  persecutions ;  apology  for  his  absence  ;  ardent  desire  to  see  them,  in  consequence 
of  his  great  affection ;  he  sends  Timothy ;  trials  and  difficulties  unavoidable ;  he  re- 


ixxvi  SUBDIVISIONS. 

joices  in  the  intelligence  of  their  Christian  stability  ;  he  prays  that  they  might  advance 
in  love,  and  be  established  in  holiness,  307.  He  urges  them  to  attend  to  his  previous 
injunctions  ;  he  counsels  them  respecting  continence,  chastity,  and  conjugal  fidelity  ; 
in  reference  to  Christian  love,  an  inoffensive  conduct,  attention  to  their  own  business, 
and  to  integrity  ;  consolation  in  affliction ;  the  future  advent  of  Christ,  and  the  con- 
siderations and  conduct  it  should  inspire,  308.  Various  charges  of  a  pious  iind  prac- 
tical nature  ;  the  apostle's  salutation  and  benediction,  309. 


PAUL'S  SECOND  LETTER  TO  THE  THESSALONIANS. 

The  salutation  of  Paul  and  his  companions ;  the  apostle  offers  thanks  to  God  for 
their  Christian  characteristics  ;  the  future  advent  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  310.  The 
preceding  apostacy,  and  other  circumstances,  accompanied  with  prayer  for  the  Thessa- 
lonians,  and  confidence  in  their  stability,  and  attainment  of  future  blessedness  ;  he  re- 
quests their  prayers  for  the  success  of  the  gospel ;  and  gives  them  various  directions, 
311.     He  prays  for  their  peace  ;  and  concludes  with  his  salutation  and  benediction,  313. 


PAUL'S  FIRST  LETTER  TO  TIMOTHY. 

Paul's  salutation  to  Timothy ;  for  what  purpose  he  had  left  him  at  Ephesus  ;  what 
the  false  apostles  taught  in  opposition  to  the  truth ;  the  utility  of  tiie  law ;  the  apostle 
speaks  of  his  former  mode  of  life  ;  the  object  of  Christ's  mission  in  the  salvation  of  sin- 
ners ;  ascription  of  praise  to  God ;  Paul's  charge  to  Timothy,  313.  Prayer  for  all  men, 
because  God  desires  the  salvation  of  all ;  how  men  should  pray ;  how  women  should 
adorn  themselves ;  they  are  not  permitted  to  teach,  or  to  usurp  authority  over  the 
men  ;  how  they  may  expect  to  be  saved ;  of  spiritual  superintendents,  their  qualifica- 
tions and  duties ;  of  subordinate  officers,  and  how  they  should  be  proved ;  of  their 
wives  and  children,  and  how  they  should  be  governed  ;  how  Timothy  should  conduct 
himself  in  the  church,  314.  The  disclosed  doctrine  of  piety ;  apostacy  from  the  true 
faith  predicted ;  exhortations  to  Timothy  to  teach  the  truth,  to  discard  fables,  to  cul- 
tivate piety,  to  labor,  command,  and  instruct,  to  act  so  that  none  might  despise  his 
youth,  to  devote  himself  to  study,  and  to  the  entire  duties  of  the  ministry,  with  a  pro- 
mise of  reward  ;  rules  in  reproving  the  old  and  the  young ;  directions  concerning  wi- 
dows, 315.  Of  presbyters  who  rule  well ;  how  to  proceed  against  presbyters  when 
accused,  and  against  notorious  offenders ;  injunctions  respecting  imposition  of  hands  ; 
relative  to  Timothy's  health ;  reasons  why  no  person  should  he  hastily  appointed  to  a 
sacred  office;  the  duty  of  servants;  false  teachers  who  mistake  gain  for  piety,  316. 
The  dangerous  state  of  those  who  determine  to  be  rich ;  and  of  the  love  of  money; 
Timothy  is  exhorted  to  achieve  the  good  warfare  of  faith,  and  to  keep  the  charge  de- 
livered  to  him;  description  of  the  majesty  of  God  ;  how  the  rich  should  conduct  them- 
selves ;  and  the  use  they  should  make  of  their  property  ;  Timothy  is  exhorted  to  attend 
to  his  trust,  and  to  avoid  impious  declamations ;  the  benediction,  317. 

PAUL'S  SECOND  LETTER  TO  TIMOTHY. 

Paul's  address  to  Timothy,  and  declaration  of  his  affection ;  the  undissembled  faith 
of  Timothy;  Paul  reminds  him  to  improve  the  ministerial  office;  the  disclosures  of 
the  gospel ;  the  apostle's  call  to  preach  it,  and  his  persecutions ;  sound  precepts  to 
be  firmly  retained ;  the  apostacy  of  individuals ;  kindness  of  Onesiphorus ;  Paul  ex- 
horts Timothy  to  conduct  as  a  good  Christian  soldier,  318.  Enjoins  him  to  approve 
himself  to  God ;  to  avoid  vain  declamation ;  of  the  sure  foundation  ;  numerous  injunc- 
tions; the  apostle  predicts  dangerous  periods,  from  the  iniquities  of  men  319  That 
the  pious  will  be  persecuted ;  directs  Timothy  to  continue  in  the  truths  he  had  receiv- 


SUBDIVISIONS.  xxxvii 

ed  ;  every  divinely  inspired  production  is  useful :  he  charges  Timothy  to  be  diligent, 
incessant,  and  faithful,  in  his  official  duties  ;  he  predicts  his  own  approaching  death  ; 
and  expresses  the  confidence  of  being  eternally  happy,  320.  He  communicates  par- 
ticular requests,  directions,  and  representations ;  and  concludes  with  various  saluta- 
tions, and  the  apostolic  benedictions,  321. 


PAUL'S   LETTER  TO  TITUS. 

The  apostle's  office  ;  his  address  to  Titus  ;  qualifications  of  presbyters,  or  supervisors 
in  the  church  ;  character  of  the  Cretans ;  the  duty  of  Titus  enforced  ;  directions  to  the 
aged  and  the  young,  322,  To  Titus  relative  to  his  own  conduct ;  and  to  servants  ; 
the  present  purposes,  and  future  prospects  of  Christianity  ;  Paul  enforces  obedience  to 
civil  authority,  and  gentle  deportment  to  all  men  ;  the  wretched  state  of  man,  preced- 
ing the  advent  of  Christ ;  the  astonishing  revolution  which  the  gospel  produces ;  the 
necessity  of  a  Christian  life,  and  of  avoiding  contentions  ;  how  to  demean  towards  the 
factious  ;  particular  directions  to  Titus  ;  salutations  and  benediction,  323. 


PAUL'S   LETTER  TO  PHILEMON. 

The  apostle's  inscription  to  Philemon  and  others ;  he  extols  his  faith,  love,  and 
Christian  beneficence ;  entreats  forgiveness  for  his  servant  Onesiraus  ;  urges  motives 
to  induce  Philemon  to  forgive  him  ;  proposes  to  repair  any  wrong  he  had  done  to  his 
master ;  expresses  his  confidence  that  Philemon  would  comply  with  his  request ; 
directs  Philemon  to  prepare  him  a  lodging ;  salutations  and  benediction,  324. 


THE  LETTER  TO  THE  HEBREWS. 

Various  revelations ;  exalted  characteristics  of  Christ ;  his  superiority  to  the  angels ; 
exhortation  diligently  to  seek  the  salvation  proifered  by  the  Lord  of  glory,  325.  Addi- 
tional declaration  of  Christ's  superiority  to  the  Jingels ;  objections  to  this  removed ; 
comparison  of  Christ  with  Moses ;  warning  not  to  disregard  his  admonitions,  326. 
The  rest  promised  to  believers  in  ancient  times  is  still  proffered ;  the  threatenings 
against  unbelief  remain  in  full  force,  327.  Comparison  of  Christ  with  the  Jewish  high 
priest  introduced ;  reproof  for  ignorance  of  the  higher  doctrines  of  the  Christian 
religion,  328.  This  is  followed  by  encouragement  and  exhortation ;  comparison  of 
Christ  as  a  priest  with  Melchisedek,  329.  The  new  order  of  things  required  by  the 
appointment  of  such  a  priest ;  which  appointment  was  made  with  the  solemnity  of  an 
oath;  and  the  office  created  by  it  was  perpetual,  allowing  of  no  succession  like  that  of 
the  Jewish  priests ;  the  subject  of  Christ's  qualifications  for  the  office  of  a  priest,  pre- 
viously proposed  and  briefly  discussed,  resumed ;  his  superiority  to  the  Jewish  priests, 
in  respect  to  these,  exhibited,  330.  The  nature  of  Christ's  office  as  a  priest;  his 
powers,  the  dispensation  under  which  they  are  exercised,  the  place  of  exercising  them, 
331.  The  manner  and  effects  of  them,  332.  Compared  with  those  of  the  Jewish 
priests ;  exhortation  to  perseverance,  from  a  consideration  of  the  faithfulness  of  God,  euid 
of  the  severe  doom  of  apostates,  333.  Of  the  sufferings  which  the  Hebrew  Christians 
had  already  endured  in  the  cause  of  religion ;  description  of  faith,  suid  of  the  effects  of 
it,  334.  In  respect  to  the  saints  of  ancient  times,  335.  Encouragement  to  persevere ; 
trials  must  not  dishearten,  for  God  sends  them  in  kindness  to  his  children,  336.  The 
gospel  holds  out  more  that  is  cheering  and  encouraging  than  the  law ;  the  voice  of  its 
author  must  not  be  disregarded ;  various,  practical  directions  and  cautions,  337.  The 
writer  concludes  with  invocations,  affectionate  requests,  and  salutations,  338. 


SUBDIVISIONS. 


JAMES'   GENERAL  LETTER. 


Jamks  addresses  the  dispersed  of  the  twelve  tribes ;  shows  that  trials  produce 
patience ;  they  are  exhorted  in  faith  to  implore  wisdom  from  God ;  directions  to  the 
rich  and  the  poor ;  endurance  of  trials ;  causes  of  temptation ;  all  good  proceeds  from 
God;  cautions  against  passionate  language,  and  perverse  temper;  obedience,  and  not 
mere  audience  to  the  word,  required ;  the  law  of  liberty,  339.  Character  of  true 
religion ;  partiality  prohibited,  and  benevolence  inculcated ;  he  who  violates  one  com- 
mand, impugns  the  authority  of  all ;  the  unmerciful  are  not  to  expect  mercy ;  the 
unavailing  character  of  that  faith,  which  is  not  accompanied  by  good  works,  340.  Ex- 
hortation not  to  accumulate  teachers ;  the  utility  and  perversion  of  language ;  the 
character  and  results  of  true  and  false  wisdom ;  the  origin  and  misery  of  wars  and 
contentions ;  why  so  little  heavenly  good  is  obtained ;  the  friendship  of  the  world ; 
humility,  and  submission  to  God,  341.  Calumny;  disregard  of  divine  Providence; 
the  sin  of  conscious  disobedience  ;  rich  profligates  in  danger  of  God's  judgments ;  the 
oppressed  followers  of  God  should  be  patient ;  profanity  forbidden  ;  directions  to  the 
aiHicted,  342.  Acknowledgment  of  offences ;  great  efficacy  of  prayer ;  the  blessedness 
of  restoring  the  transgressor  from  his  erroneous  course,  343. 


PETER'S  FIRST   GENERAL  LETTER. 

Peter's  introduction,  and  the  state  of  those  persons  addressed ;  he  describes  their 
privileges,  and  praises  God  for  their  fidelity ;  happy  result  of  their  afflictions ;  from 
the  salvation  announced}  they  should  be  encouraged  to  a  holy  obedience,  344.  Of 
prayer,  purity,  and  mutual  love ;  the  frailty  of  man,  and  the  immutability  of  God ; 
discarding  evil  dispositions,  they  are  directed  to  desire  advancement  through  the 
word ;  their  spiritual  privileges ;  he  enjoins  purity,  integrity,  obedience  to  civil 
authority,  a  prudent  use  of  their  Christian  liberty,  and  the  fear  of  God ;  the  duties 
of  servants,  345.  Illustrated  by  the  example  of  Christ ;  their  former  wandering  and 
their  return ;  the  duty  of  husbands  and  wives ;  how  to  obtain  happiness ;  retribu- 
tion of  God ;  endurance  of  persecution ;  the  reason  of  their  hope ;  preservative  of  a 
good  conscience,  346.  Suffering  and  resurrection  of  Christ ;  his  preaching  to  the 
ancient  world;  the  preservation  of  Noah  and  his  family,  an  emblem  of  baptism; 
ascension  and  dominion  of  Christ ;  we  should  suffer  patiently  in  imitation  of  him ; 
abandon  our  former  vices  ;  accountability  to  God ;  proclamation  of  the  gospel ;  various 
Christian  duties  recommended  ;  persecutions  predicted,  and  how  they  were  to  endure 
them,  347.  Approaching  judgments  of  God,  and  preparation  for  them;  directions  to 
the  presbyters,  with  promises ;  to  the  young ;  humihty,  contentment,  sobriety,  vigil- 
ance, and  resistance  to  evil,  inculcated,  and  eternal  glory  proffered ;  salutations,  and 
benediction,  348. 


PETER'S  SECOND   GENERAL  LETTER, 

The  apostolic  address,  and  the  state  of  those  persons  to  whom  the  letter  is  sent ;  ex- 
hortation to  attain  various  Christian  virtues ;  he  intimates  his  immediate  dissolution, 
and  the  previous  duties  of  which  it  reminds  him ;  the  certainty  of  the  gospel ;  evidence 
of  its  truth  from  his  own  experience  ;  the  nature  of  prophecy,  349.  False  teachers 
predicted,  the  injurious  effects  of  their  doctrines,  and  the  punishment  that  will  befall 
them;  examples  of  God's  judgments;  retribution  to  the  pious  and  the  impious  ;  char- 
acter of  those  perverse  teachers ;  wretched  state  of  those  who  have  apostatized,  350. 


SUBDIVISIONS. 


The  apostle's  design  in  liis  letters ;  the  contemners,  who  will  appear  in  the  last  pe- 
riod ;  God's  judgment  of  the  world,  and  its  attendant  events ;  necessity  of  prepara- 
tion ;  difficulties  in  Paul's  letters ;  vigilance  against  apostacy  ;  advancement  in  divine 
favor ;  ascription  of  praise,  35] . 


JOHN'S   GENERAL  ADDRESS  TO  CHRISTIANS. 

John's  testimony  respecting  the  Word  of  Life ;  as  God  is  light,  Christians  should 
walk  in  the  light ;  all  have  sinned  ;  acknowledgment  of  sin  requisite  to  forgiveness ; 
Christ  is  a  conciliation  for  the  sins  of  the  whole  world  ;  obedience  to  God's  commands, 
and  imitation  of  Christ's  example  ;  we  should  walk  in  the  light,  and  possess  Christian 
love,  352.  Directions  to  Christians  of  different  grades  ;  what  prevails  in  the  world  ; 
of  obedience  to  God  ;  cautions  against  antichrists  ;  exhortation  to  perseverance ,  with 
a  promise  of  eternal  life  ;  the  love  of  God  to  mankind,  353.  Christ  was  manifested  to 
remove  our  sins ;  how  the  children  of  God  are  known ;  we  should  love  each  other, 
not  in  mere  profession,  but  in  fact ;  how  we  may  know  that  we  are  of  the  truth  ;  an- 
swer to  prayer  ;  obedience  to  the  commandments  of  Christ ;  the  divine  commission  of 
teachers  must  be  tested ;  every  spirit  that  professes  Jesus  Christ  is  from  God,  354. 
The  duty  of  love  to  God  and  to  each  other,  from  God's  love  to  us  ;  every  Christian 
knows  God  by  divine  influence  ;  God  is  love  ;  the  nature  and  quality  of  perfect  love  ; 
the  falsity  of  pretending  to  love  God,  while  we  hate  each  other  ;  characteristics  of  a 
believer ;  faith  in  Christ  subdues  the  world  ;  the  three  witnesses  ;  the  believer  has  the 
testimony  in  himself,  355.  God  has  given  us  eternal  life  in  his  Son ;  the  object  of 
John  in  writing  this  communication ;  the  character  of  sin  ;  Jesus  is  come  to  give  us 
an  understanding,  that  we  may  know  the  true  God  ;  all  idolatry  to  be  avoided,  356. 


JOHN'S  LETTER  TO  AN  EMINENT   CHRISTIAN  WOMAN. 

The  apostle's'  introductory  remarks  ;  he  rejoices  to  find  that  some  of  the  family  of 
Cyria  had  received,  and  continued  to  adorn  the  truth  ;  and  he  exhorts  them  to  continue 
to  love  each  other  according  to  the  commandment  of  Christ ;  he  admonishes  them  against 
deceivers,  and  to  be  vigilant,  that  they  might  not  lose  the  benefit  of  what  they  had  re- 
ceived ;  the  necessity  of  remaining  in  the  doctrine  of  Christ ;  he  commands  them  not 
to  countenance  those  who  did  not  bring  such  doctrine ;  excuses  himself  from  writing 
more  extensively,  and  purposes  soon  to  pay  her  and  family  a  visit ;  salutation,  357. 


JOHN'S  LETTER  TO  A  DISTINGUISHED   CHRISTIAN  MAN. 

The  apostle's  address  to  Caius,  and  his  good  wishes  for  his  prosperity ;  he  commends 
him  for  his  stability  in  the  truth,  and  his  general  hospitality ;  character  of  Diotrephes  ; 
exhorts  Caius  to  avoid  his  example,  and  to  follow  what  is  good;  commends  Deme- 
trius ;  apologizes  for  writing  so  briefly,  and  intends  immediately  to  visit  him ;  saluta- 
tions, 358. 


JUDE'S  GENERAL  LETTER. 

Preface  and  benediction ;  Christians  are  excited  to  contend  for  the  true  faith,  and  to 
beware  of  false  teachers,  whose  iniquitous  character  the  apostle  describes,  in  reference 
to  ancient  example  and  prophecy,  359.  We  should  remember  the  admonitions  given 
us  by  the  apostles,  who  predicted  the  appearance  of  these  men ;  how  Christians  should 
conduct  towards  the  deluded  ;  the  apostle's  ascription  of  praise,  360. 


xl  SUBDIVISIONS. 


JOHN'S  LETTERS,  VISIONS,  AND   PROPHECIES. 

Pkeliminary  observations ;  John's  address  to  the  seven  churches  of  Asia ;  predicts 
the  advent  of  Jesus  Christ ;  mentions  his  ovra  exile  to  Patmos,  the  command  to  write 
what  he  saw,  and  the  explanation  of  the  seven  stars,  361.  Letter  to  the  church  of 
Ephesus  ;  of  Smyrna ;  of  Pergamos,  362.     Of  Thyatira ;  of  Sardis  ;  of  Philadelphia, 

363.  Of  Laodicea ;  John  sees  the  throne  of  God  in  heaven  surrounded  by  twenty- 
four  seniors,  and  four  living  beings,  who  all  unite  in  adoring  and  praising  the  Almighty, 

364.  The  book  sealed  with  seven  seals,  is  opened,  365.  The  circumstances  which  at- 
tended the  opening  of  six  seals  ;  the  four  winds  of  heaven ;  the  angel  with  the  seal  of 
the  living  God  ;  description  of  those  who  were  sealed,  366.  The  seventh  seal  is  open- 
ed ;  of  the  seven  angels  with  the  seven  trumpets,  six  of  the  angels  sound  their  trum- 
pets, 367.  With  the  attendant  circumstances,  368.  The  description  of  a  powerful  angel 
with  a  little  volume  in  his  hand,  369.  The  injunction  to  measure  the  temple  of  God ; 
the  seventh  angel  sounded  his  trumpet ;  the  twenty-four  seniors  worship  God,  370. 
The  temple  of  God  in  heaven ;  of  the  woman  clad  with  the  sun ;  the  overthrow  of 
the  enemy  ;  his  pursuit  of  the  woman,  371.  Description  of  the  beast  with  seven  heads 
rising  from  the  sea ;  of  the  beast  with  two  horns  rising  from  the  earth  ;  representation 
of  a  Lamb  on  Mount  Zion,  372.  Account  of  three  angels,  the  first  having  the  per- 
petual, joyful  message,  and  of  the  man  on  the  white  cloud  ;  the  seven  angels  with  the 
seven  last  scourges,  373.  Ascription  of  praise ;  the  temple  opened  in  heaven ;  the 
seven  angels  proceed  from  the  temple,  receive  from  one  of  the  four  living  ones  seven 
golden  vials  full  of  the  displeasure  of  God,  and  they  are  commanded  to  pour  out  their 
vials  upon  the  earth,  374.  The  judgment  of  the  great  courtesan  who  sits  on  many 
waters ;  her  character  ;  the  emblem  of  the  woman,  and  of  the  beast,  375.  A  lumin- 
ous angel  descends  from  heaven,  and  proclaims  the  fall  of  Babylon,  376.  The  mar- 
riage of  the  Lamb,  377.  The  august  title  and  character  of  the  Word  of  God ;  an  angel 
standing  in  the  sun ;  an  angel  descends  from  heaven,  and  binds  the  adversary  a  thou- 
sand years ;  the  first  resurrection,  378.  Discharge  of  the  adversary  from  his  imprison- 
ment ;  the  great  white  throne,  and  the  dead  small  and  great  standing  before  God  ;  a 
new  heaven  and  a  new  earth,  379.  Description  of  the  new  Jerusalem ;  admission  to 
the  city,  380.  Representation  of  Christ ;  denunciation  against  those  who  shall  pervert 
the  words  of  the  volume  of  this  prophecy  ;  benediction  of  the  apostle,  381. 

Note.  It  is  desirable  to  oiTer  to  the  public  one  translation  even  of  the  Christian  Scriptures,  without  any 
thing  extraneous  blended  with  the  text.  It  may  not  be  superfluous  to  some  readers  for  the  translator  to  re- 
mark, that  the  references  at  the  commencement  of  the  chapters,  in  so  many  editions  of  the  received  text, 
form  no  part  of  the  original ;  and  that  he  could  not  presume  to  present  a  table  of  contents,  except  in  a  form 
disconnected  with  inspiration,  since  he  deems  such  a  procedure,  no  less  than  the  other  numerous  additions 
and  mutilations  with  which  the  general  version  is  distorted,  to  be  unfair,  and  otherwise  justly  reprehensi- 
ble. The  text  may,  or  may  not  contain  the  import  and  construction  attributed  to  it  by  any  uninspired  au- 
thority ;  and  this  consideration  absolutely  forbids,  that  the  effusions  of  any  such  authority  should  be  thus 
mingled  with  it.    Teans. 


PRODUCTIONS 


OP     THE 


EVANGELISTS    AND    APOSTLES, 


THE   HISTORY  BY   MATTHEW. 

A  REGISTER  of  the  lineage  of  Jesus  Christ,  the  descendant  of  Abraham, 
and  of  David. 

From  Abraham  proceeded  Isaac  ;  from  Isaac,  Jacob  ;  from  Jacob, 
Judah  and  his  brothers  ;  from  Judah,  Pharez  and  Zarah,  by  Tamar  ; 
from  Pharez,  Hezron ;  from  Hezron,  Aram  ;  from  Aram,  Aminadab  ; 
from  Aminadab,  Nashon  ;  from  Nashon,  Salmon  ;  from  Salmon,  Boaz, 
by  Rahab  ;  from  Boaz,  Obed,  by  Ruth  ;  from  Obed,  Jesse  ;  and  from 
Jesse,  David  the  king. 

David  the  king  had  Solomon,  by  the  widow  of  Uriah  ;  Solomon  had 
Rehoboam  ;  Rehoboam  had  Abijah  ;  Abijah  had  Asa ;  Asa  had  Jehosh- 
aphat ;  Jehoshaphat  had  Joram  ;  Joram  had  Uzziah ;  Uzziah  had  Jotham ; 
Jotham  had  Ahaz  ;  Ahaz  had  Hezekiah  ;  Hezekiah  had  Mannasseh  ; 
Manasseh  had  Amon  ;  Amon  had  Josiah  ;  and  Josiah  had  Joachim  and 
his  brothers. 

From  Joachim  descended  Jeconiah,  near  the  time  of  the  removal  to 
Babylon ;  from  Jeconiah,  Salathiel,  after  the  migration  to  Babylon ; 
from  Salathiel,  Zerubbabel ;  from  Zerubbabel,  Abiud ;  from  Abiud, 
Eliakim  ;  from  Eliakim,  Azor ;  from  Azor,  Zadok  ;  from  Zadok,  Achim ; 
from  Achim,  Eliud ;  from  Eliud,  Eleazer ;  from  Eleazer,  Matthan  ;  from 
Matthan,  Jacob  ;  and  from  Jacob,  Joseph,  the  husband  of  Mary ;  of 
whom  was  born  Jesus,  who  is  called  the  Messiah. 

All  the  generations,  therefore,  from  Abraham  to  David,  are  fourteen  ; 
the  same,  from  David  tUI  the  departure  to  Babylon ;  and  from  that 
departure  to  the  Messiah,  a  like  number. 
6 


43  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

Moreover,  the  nativity  of  Jesus  Christ  thus  occurred.  While  his 
mother  Mary  was  pledged  to  Joseph,  before  they  united,  she  was  found 
in  gestation,  through  the  Holy  Spirit.  Then  Joseph,  her  affianced 
husband,  being  a  benevolent  man,  and  reluctant  to  expose  her,  was 
inclined  to  divorce  her  privately.  But  as  he  was  reflecting  on  the  sub- 
ject, behold,  a  messenger  of  the  Lord  appeared  to  him  in  a  dream,  and 
said,  Joseph,  descendant  of  David,  hesitate  not  to  receive  to  yourself 
Mary,  your  affianced  wife  ;  for  this,  her  inceptive  offspring,  is  from  the 
Holy  Spirit.  And  she  shall  have  a  son  ;  and  you  must  call  his  name 
Jesus,  that  is,  Saviour  ;  for  he  will  save  his  people  from  their  sins. 
Now  all  this  was  done,  agreeably  to  the  subsequent  declaration  of  the 
Lord  by  the  prophet ;  Behold,  the  virgin  shall  gestate,  and  shall  have  a 
son,  and  his  name  must  be  called  Immanuel,  which,  being  translated, 
signifies,  God  with  us.  Joseph,  therefore,  being  awakened  from  sleep, 
did  as  the  messenger  of  the  Lord  had  commanded,  and  received  her  as 
his  wife  ;  but  was  not  conversant,  till  she  had  her  first-born  son  ;  and  he 
called  his  name  Jesus. 

Besides,  the  Saviour  being  born  at  Bethlehem  in  Judea,  during  the 
reign  of  Herod  the  king,  behold,  eastern  magians  came  to  Jerusalem,  say- 
ing. Where  is  the  infant  king  of  the  Jews  1  for,  at  the  east,  we  have  seen 
his  star,  and  have  come  to  render  him  homage.  But  Herod  the  king, 
being  thus  apprised,  was  alarmed,  together  with  all  Jerusalem.  And 
when  he  had  assembled  all  the  chief  priests  and  instructors  of  the  peo- 
ple, he  demanded  of  them  where  the  Messiah  was  to  be  born  1  And  they 
answered  him.  At  Bethlehem  in  Judea,  for  thus  it  is  written  by  the 
prophet ;  And  thou  Bethlehem,  in  the  territory  of  Judah,  art  by  no 
means  the  least  illustrious  among  the  cities  of  Judah,  for  from  thee  shall 
proceed  a  Ruler,  who  will  nourish  my  people  Israel. 

Then  Herod,  having  privately  called  the  magians,  minutely  inquir- 
ed of  them  the  time  when  the  star  appeared.  And  sending  them  to 
Bethlehem,  he  said,  Departing,  search  strictly  for  the  infant,  and  when 
you  have  found  him,  inform  me,  that  I  also  may  come,  and  pay  him 
reverence.  And  after  listening  to  the  king,  they  departed  ;  and  behold, 
the  star,  which  they  had  viewed  at  the  east,  preceded  them,  tiU  it  came 
and  remained  over  the  place  where  the  infant  was.  And  still  perceiving 
the  star,  they  were  transported  with  very  great  joy.  And  arriving  at 
the  house,  they  saw  the  young  child  with  Mary  his  mother ;  and  prostrat- 
ing themselves,  they  oflered  him  homage  :  and  opening  their  treasuries, 
they  imparted  to  him  as  presents,  gold,  and  franldncense,  and  myrrh. 
And  being  warned  in  a  dream,  not  to  return  to  Herod,  they  retired  to 
their  own  country,  by  another  way. 

But,  on  their  departure,  behold,  a  messenger  of  the  Lord  appears  to 
Joseph  in  a  dream,  sa3dng,  Arise,  and  take  with  you  the  infant  and  his 
mother,  and  fly  to  Egypt,  and  continue  there,  tDl  I  shall  communicate 
with  you  ;  for  Herod  will  search  for  the  little  child  to  destroy  him.  And 
he  arose,  took  with  him  the  infant  and  his  mother  by  night,  and  with- 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  43 

drew  to  Egypt ;  and  remained  there  till  the  death  of  Herod.  Thus  was 
verified  the  declaration  of  the  Lord  by  the  prophet,  From  Egypt  I  have 
recalled  my  Son. 

Then  Herod,  discovering  that  he  had  been  deluded  by  the  magians, 
was  excessively  enraged,  and  sending  emissaries,  destroyed  all  the  male 
children,  who  were  in  Bethlehem,  and  in  all  its  vicinity,  from  those  en- 
tering the  second  year,  down  to  the  period,  which  he  had  particularly 
learnt  from  the  magians.  Then  that  was  verified,  which  was  thus 
spoken  by  Jeremiah  the  prophet.  In  Ramah  a  voice  was  heard ;  mourn- 
ing, and  weeping,  and  multipUed  lamentation ;  Rachel  bewailing  her 
children,  and  refusing  to  be  consoled,  because  they  are  dead. 

But,  when  Herod  was  deceased,  behold,  a  messenger  of  the  Lord 
appears  in  a  dream  to  Joseph  in  Egypt,  sajdng.  Arise,  and  take  with 
you  the  infant  and  his  mother,  and  return  to  the  land  of  Israel,  for  they 
are  dead,  who  sought  the  life  of  the  young  child.  Then  he  arose,  and 
took  with  him  the  infant  and  his  mother,  and  proceeded  towards  the  land 
of  Israel.  Hearing,  however,  that  Ai'chelaus  reigned  over  Judea,  as  the 
successor  of  his  father  Herod,  he  was  afraid  to  return ;  but  being  ad- 
monished in  a  dream,  he  retired  to  the  region  of  Galilee.  And  having 
arrived  there,  he  resided  in  a  city  called  Nazareth  ;  and  thus  was  ac- 
compUshed  the  declaration  of  the  prophet,  [respecting  Jesus],  that  he 
should  be  regarded  as  a  Nazarean. 

Further,  during  that  period  appeared  John  the  Baptist,  proclaiming  in 
the  wilderness  of  Judea,  and  saying,  Reform,  for  the  dominion  of  heaven 
has  approached.  Now  this  is  he,  who  was  thus  alluded  to  by  the  prophet 
Isaiah,  A  voice  of  one  exclaiming  in  solitary  regions,  prepare  the  way  of 
the  Lord,  make  his  paths  straight.  And  this  John  was  clad  in  a  vest- 
ment of  camel's  hair,  and  wore  a  girdle  of  leather  encircling  his  waist ; 
and  his  food  consisted  of  locusts  and  wild  honey. 

Then  the  people  of  Jerusalem,  and  of  all  the  land  of  Judea,  and  of  all 
the  settlements  bordering  on  the  Jordan,  resorted  to  him  ;  and  were 
baptized  by  him  Ln  the  Jordan,  fiilly  acknowledging  their  sins.  But 
when  he  perceived  many  of  the  pharisees  and  sadducees  coming  to  his 
baptism,  he  said  to  them.  Broods  of  vipers  !  who  has  privately  admonish- 
ed you  to  fly  from  the  approaching  vengeance  1  Produce,  therefore,  the 
appropriate  fruit  of  reformation  ;  and  presume  not  to  say  to  yourselves, 
We  have  Abraham  as  our  father  ;  for  I  declare  to  you,  that  God  has 
power  from  these  stones,  to  raise  children  to  Abraham.  And  even  now, 
the  axe  is  placed  at  the  root  of  the  trees  ;  every  tree,  therefore,  which 
does  not  yield  good  fruit,  must  be  cut  down,  and  cast  into  the  fire.  I 
indeed  baptize  you  with  water,  that  you  may  reform  ;  but  he,  who  is  to 
succeed  me,  is  more  powerful  than  I,  whose  shoes  I  am  not  worthy  to 
convey  ;  he  will  baptize  you  with  the  Holy  Spirit,  and  with  fire.  His 
fan  is  in  his  hand,  and  he  wiU  effectually  clear  his  floor,  and  collect  his 
wheat  into  the  granary ;  but  he  will  consume  the  chaff  with  inextin- 
guishable fire. 


44  APOSTOLIC   PRODUCTIONS. 

Jesus  then  came  from  Galilee  to  John  at  the  Jordan,  to  be  baptized 
by  him.  But  John  earnestly  protested  to  him,  saying,  It  is  necessary 
that  I  should  be  baptized  by  thee,  and  dost  thou  come  to  me  1  And  Jesus 
repljdng,  said  to  him,  Yet,  permit  this ;  for  thus  it  becomes  us  to  perform 
whatever  is  right.  Then  John  acquiesced.  And  Jesus,  being  baptized, 
immediately  ascended  from  the  water ;  and  behold,  the  heavens  were 
opened  to  his  view,  and  John  saw  the  Spirit  of  God,  descending  like  a 
dove,  and  resting  on  him.  And  behold,  a  voice  from  the  heavens 
announced.  This  is  my  dearly  beloved  Son,  with  whom  I  am  delighted. 

After  this  Jesus  was  conducted  by  the  Spirit  into  the  wilderness,  to  be 
tried  by  the  enemy.  And  having  fasted  forty  days  and  forty  nights,  he 
was  then  hungry.  And  when  the  tempter  came,  he  said  to  him.  If  thou 
art  a  Son  of  God,  command  that  these  stones  may  become  loaves  of 
bread.  But  he  alleged  in  reply.  It  is  written,  Man  shall  not  live  on 
bread  alone,  but  on  every  word  proceeding  from  the  mouth  of  God. 
Then  the  enemy  conducts  him  to  the  holy  city,  and  places  him  on  the 
turret  of  the  temple  ;  and  says  to  him.  If  thou  art  a  Son  of  God,  throw 
thyself  down  ;  for  it  is  written.  He  will  charge  his  angels  respecting 
thee,  and  they  shall  sustain  thee  in  their  hands,  lest  thou  shouldst  strike 
thy  foot  against  a  stone.  Jesus  said  to  him.  On  the  contrary,  it  is  writ- 
ten. Thou  shalt  not  make  trial  of  the  Lord  thy  God.  Again,  the  enemy 
conducts  him  to  a  very  lofty  mountain,  and  displays  to  him  all  the  king- 
doms of  the  land,  with  their  splendor ;  and  declares  to  him.  All  these 
things  I  will  give  thee,  if,  in  humble  posture,  thou  wilt  pay  me  homage. 
Then  Jesus  says  to  him.  Depart  from  me,  adversary  !  for  it  is  written. 
Thou  shalt  worship  the  Lord  thy  God ;  and  to  him  alone,  thou  shalt  offer 
reUgious  adoration.  Then  the  enemy  leaves  him  ;  and  behold,  angels 
came  and  ministered  to  him. 

Now  Jesus,  hearing  that  John  was  imprisoned,  withdrew  to  Galilee. 
And  entirely  leaving  Nazareth,  went  and  resided  at  Capernaum,  a  mar- 
itime place,  in  the  limits  of  Zebulun  and  Naphtali ;  and  then  was  ver- 
ified that  which  was  thus  announced  by  the  prophet  Isaiah  ;  the  district 
of  Zebulun,  and  the  district  of  Naphtali,  by  the  course  of  the  sea,  and 
by  the  side  of  Jordan,  in  Galilee  of  the  nations,  the  people,  seated  in 
darkness,  saw  a  great  light ;  and  to  those  who  inhabited  the  land  of  the 
shadow  of  death,  light  has  arisen. 

From  that  time  Jesus  began  to  proclaim  and  to  say,  Reform,  for  the 
dominion  of  heaven  approaches. 

And  walking  around  near  the  sea  of  Galilee,  he  saw  two  brethren, 
Simon,  called  Peter,  and  Andrew  his  brother,  extending  a  seine  in  the 
water ;  for  they  were  fishermen.  And  he  said  to  them.  Follow  me,  and 
I  will  enable  you  to  take  men  :  and  immediately  abandoning  the  nets, 
they  followed  him.  And  proceeding  thence,  he  saw  two  other  brethren, 
James,  the  son  of  Zebedee,  and  John  his  brother,  in  a  fishing-boat  with 
Zebedee  their  father,  repairing  their  nets ;  and  he  called  them.  And 
instantly  leaving  the  vessel,  and  their  father,  they  accompanied  him. 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  45 

Moreover,  Jesus  passed  through  all  GaUlee,  instructing  in  their  syn- 
agogues, and  proclaiming  the  good  message  concerning  the  reign  of 
God,  and  heaUng  every  kind  of  disease  and  infirmity  among  the  people. 
And  his  fame  pervaded  all  Syria ;  and  they  conveyed  to  him  aU  sick 
persons,  having  various  disorders,  and  arrested  by  severe  complaints  ; 
and  demoniacs,  and  lunatics,'  and  paraljrtics  ;  and  he  healed  them. 

Great  crowds,  therefore,  followed  him,  from  Gahlee,  and  Decapolis, 
and  Jerusalem,  and  Judea,  and  the  vicinity  of  the  Jordan.  And  Jesus, 
viewing  the  numerous  people,  ascended  a  mountain,  and  after  seating 
himself,  his  disciples  came  to  him.  And  he  thus  addressed  and  taught 
them  ;  Happy  the  poor  who  repine  not,  for  the  dominion  of  heaven  is 
theirs  !  happy  the  afflicted,  because  they  will  be  consoled  !  happy  the 
meek,  for  they  wiU  possess  the  land  !  happy  those  that  hunger  and  thirst 
for  righteousness,  since  they  will  be  satisfied !  happy  the  merciful,  be- 
cause they  will  obtain  mercy  !  happy  the  pure  in  heart,  since  they  wUl 
realize  God  !  happy  the  peacemakers,  for  they  will  be  recognised  as  the 
sons  of  God  !  happy  those,  who  are  persecuted  in  the  cause  of  integrity, 
since  theirs  is  the  kingdom  of  heaven  !  happy  are  you,  since  men  will  re- 
vile and  prosecute  you,  and  will  deceitfully  allege  every  kind  of  evil  against 
you,  on  my  account.  Rejoice,  and  triumphantly  exult,  because  your 
reward  in  heaven  will  be  great ;  for  thus  the  prophets  were  persecuted, 
who  preceded  you. 

You  are  the  salt  of  the  earth  ;  but  if  the  salt  become  tasteless,  with 
what  shall  it  be  restored  ?  It  is  then  worthless,  except  to  be  cast  out, 
and  trodden  down  by  men.  You  are  the  light  of  the  world.  A  city, 
built  on  a  mountain,  cannot  be  concealed  :  nor  do  persons  light  a  lamp, 
and  place  it  under  a  measure,  but  on  a  stand  ;  and  it  gives  Ught  to  all 
who  are  in  the  house.  Thus,  let  your  light  shine  before  men ;  that  they, 
seeing  your  good  works,  may  praise  your  Father,  who  is  in  heaven. 

Imagine  not,  that  I  have  appeared  to  subvert  the  law,  or  the  prophets; 
I  have  not  come  to  subvert,  but  to  estabhsh.  For  I  assure  you,  sooner 
shall  heaven  and  earth  vanish,  than  even  a  single  point  or  particular  be 
taken  from  the  law,  till  its  object  is  accomplished.  Any  person,  there- 
fore, who  shall  violate  one  of  the  least  of  these  injunctions,  and  incul- 
cate the  same  on  others,  will  be  regarded  as  the  least  in  the  reign  of 
heaven  ;  but  he  who  shall  perform  and  teach  them,  will  be  received  as 
great  in  the  same  dominion.  For  I  declare  to  you,  that  unless  your 
integrity  shall  surpass  that  of  the  scribes  and  pharisees,  you  cannot, 
indeed,  enter  the  kingdom  of  heaven. 

You  have  heard  that  it  was  announced  to  the  ancients.  Thou  shalt  do 
no  murder,  and  he  who  commits  it,  will  be  amenable  to  the  judges.  But 
I  affirm  to  you,  that  every  one,  malignantly  incensed  with  his  brother, 
will  be  liable  to  the  judges  ;  and  he  who  shall  denounce  his  brother  as  a 
miscreant,  will  be  subject  to  the  sanhedrin  ;  but  he  who  shall  denounce 
him  as  an  abandoned  apostate,  wUl  be  exposed  to  the  gehenna  of  fire.  If, 
therefore,  thou  art  conveying  thy  gift  to  the  altar,  and  dost  there  recol- 


46  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

lect,  that  thy  brother  has  any  complaint  against  thee,  leaving  there  thy 
gift  before  the  altar,  depart,  and  first  be  reconciled  to  thy  brother,  and 
then  approach,  and  ofier  thy  gift.  Make  an  immediate  compromise 
with  thy  creditor,  while  thou  art  on  the  road  with  him  ;  lest  the  creditor 
consign  thee  to  the  judge,  and  the  judge  commit  thee  to  the  officer,  and 
thou  be  thrust  into  prison.  I  assure  thee,  that  thou  wilt  by  no  means  be 
discharged  from  that  place,  till  thou  hast  paid  the  last  farthing. 

You  have  learned  that  it  was  declared,  Thou  shalt  not  commit  adul- 
tery. But  I  apprise  you,  that  any  one,  who,  in  beholding  the  wife  of 
another,  intends  to  cherish  impure  desire,  has  already  committed  that 
offence  in  his  heart.  If,  therefore,  even  thy  right  eye  ensnare  thee,  tear 
it  out,  and  cast  it  from  thee  ;  since  it  is  better  for  thee,  that  one  of  thy 
members  should  perish,  than  that  thy  whole  body  should  be  thrown  into 
gehenna.  And  if  thy  right  hand  cause  thee  to  sin,  cut  it  off,  and  cast  it 
from  thee,  since  it  is  better  for  thee,  that  one  of  thy  members  should 
be  destroyed,  than  that  thy  entire  body  should  be  consigned  to  gehenna. 

Further,  it  has  been  asserted,  every  one  who  would  divorce  his  wife, 
let  him  give  her  a  precept  of  separation.  But  I  declare  to  you,  that  he 
who  shall  divorce  his  wife,  except  in  the  case  of  incontinence,  may 
render  her  guilty  of  adultery ;  and  he  who  shall  marry  the  discarded 
woman,  commits  the  same  transgression. 

You  have  also  heard  that  it  was  affirmed  to  the  ancients,  Thou  shalt 
not  perjure  thyself,  but  shalt  perform  to  the  Lord  thy  solemn  oaths. 
But  I  charge  you.  Swear  not  at  all ;  either  by  the  heaven,  because  it  is 
the  throne  of  God  ;  or  by  the  earth,  for  it  is  his  footstool ;  or  by  Jeru- 
salem, since  it  is  the  city  of  the  great  Bang ;  nor  shalt  thou  swear  by 
thy  head,  for  thou  canst  not  make  one  hair  white  or  black.  But  let 
your  language  be — yes,  yes;  no,  no;  for  that  which  exceeds  these, 
originates  from  evil. 

You  are  informed  that  it  was  said,  Eye  for  eye,  and  tooth  for  tooth. 
But  I  say  to  you.  Resist  not  the  injurious  person  ;  but  if  any  one  strike 
thee  on  thy  right  cheek,  turn  to  him  even  the  other ;  and  whoever  deter- 
mines to  sue  thee  at  law,  and  to  take  away  thy  «assock,  let  him  also 
have  thy  mantle.  And  if  any  one  press  thee  to  ■go  with  him  one  mile, 
accompany  him  two.  Give  to  him  who  solicits  thee,  and  him,  who 
would  borrow  from  thee,  do  not  reject. 

You  are  reminded  that  it  was  announced,  Thou  shalt  love  thy  friend, 
and  hate  thine  enemy.  But  I  say  to  you,  Love  your  enemies,  bless  those 
who  curse  you,  do  good  to  those  who  hate  you,  and  pray  for  those  who 
insult  you,  and  persecute  you  ;  that  you  may  resemble  your  Father  who 
is  in  heaven  ;  for  he  makes  his  sun  rise  on  the  evil  and  the  good,  and 
disperses  rain  to  the  righteous  and  the  unrighteous.  For  if  you  love 
those  only,  who  love  you,  what  reward  can  you  expect  1  Do  not  even 
the  public  exactors  the  same  1  And  if  you  show  courtesy  to  your  friends 
only,  in  what  do  you  excel  1  Do  not  even  the  pagans  the  same  1  Be 
ye  therefore  perfect,  even  as  your  heavenly  Father  is  perfect. 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  47 

Beware,  that  you  perform  not  your  religious  duties  before  men,  that 
you  may  be  seen  by  them  ;  otherwise,  you  will  obtain  no  recompense 
from  your  Father  who  is  in  heaven. 

When,  therefore,  thou  performest  acts  of  liberality,  sound  not  a  trum- 
pet before  thee,  as  the  hypocrites  do,  in  the  public  assemblies  and  in  the 
streets,  that  they  may  be  applauded  by  men.  I  assure  you,  that  they 
have  received  their  reward.  But  when  thou  art  beneficent,  let  not  thy 
left  hand  be  conscious  of  what  thy  right  hand  performs  ;  that  thy  chari- 
ties may  be  private,  and  thy  Father,  to  whom  nothing  is  secret,  will 
himself  publicly  reward  thee. 

And  when  thou  prayest,  thou  shalt  not  imitate  the  hypocrites,  for  they 
love  to  continue  praying  in  the  public  assemblies,  and  at  the  corners  of 
the  streets,  that  men  may  observe  them  ;  I  assure  you,  that  they  have 
received  their  recompense.  But  thou,  when  thou  wouldst  pray,  enter 
thy  retired  apartment,  and  closing  thy  door,  pray  to  thy  Father  who  is 
invisible,  and  thy  Father,  to  whom  nothing  is  secret,  will  publicly  remu- 
nerate thee.  But  when  you  pray,  use  not  unmeaning  repetitions,  as  the 
pagans  do,  for  they  think  that  they  shall  be  accepted  for  their  multiplied 
words.  Be  not  therefore  like  them  ;  for  your  Father  knows  your  neces- 
sities, before  you  supplicate  him.  Pray  therefore  in  this  manner  ;  Our 
Father,  who  art  in  heaven  ;  revered  be  thy  name  ;  thy  kingdom  come  ; 
thy  will  be  done  on  earth,  even  as  in  heaven.  Give  us  this  day  our 
necessary  subsistence  ;  and  forgive  us  our  trespasses,  as  we  also  forgive 
those  who  trespass  against  us  ;  and  abandon  us  not  to  temptation ;  but 
preserve  us  from  evil. 

Moreover,  if  you  forgive  the  offences  of  men,  your  heavenly  Father 
will  also  forgive  you  ;  but  if  you  do  not  pardon  the  trespasses  of  others, 
neither  wiU  your  Father  pardon  your  trespasses. 

When  also,  you  observe  a  fast,  be  not  like  the  hypocrites,  assuming  a 
melancholy  aspect ;  for  they  deform  their  features,  that  they  may  pub- 
licly appear  to  fast.  I  assure  you,  that  they  have  received  their  reward. 
But  when  thou  keepest  a  fast,  anoint  thy  head,  and  wash  thy  face  ;  that 
thou  mayst  not  appear  to  men  as  one  who  fasts,  but  to  thy  Father  who 
is  unseen  ;  and  thy  Feather,  to  whom  nothing  is  secret,  will  recompense 
thee.  '' 

Accumulate  not  for  yourselves  treasures  on  earth,  where  the  moth 
and  rust  consume,  and  where  thieves  dig  through  and  steal :  but  depo- 
sit for  yourselves  treasures  in  heaven,  where  neither  moth  nor  rust  can 
destroy,  and  where  thieves  cannot  invade,  nor  steal.  For  where  your 
treasure  is,  there  your  heart  will  also  be. 

The  eye  is  the  lamp  of  the  body.  If,  therefore,  thine  eye  be  clear, 
thy  whole  body  will  be  illumined ;  but  if  thine  eye  be  diseased,  thy 
whole  body  will  be  darkened.  And  if  even  the  light  that  pervades  thee 
be  darkness,  how  great  will  be  that  darkness  ! 

No  man  can  serve  two  masters  ;  for  he  will  either  hate  one,  and  love 
the  other  ;  or  at  least,  he  will  attend  one,  and  neglect  the  other.     You 


48  APOSTOLIC   PRODUCTIONS. 

cannot  serve  God  and  an  idol.  On  this  account,  I  charge  you,  be  not 
anxious  relative  to  your  life,  what  you  shall  eat,  and  what  you  shall 
drink  ;  nor  in  reference  to  your  body,  what  you  shall  wear.  Is  not  the 
life  of  more  value  than  nourishment,  and  the  body  than  raiment  1  Ob- 
serve the  birds  of  the  air ;  that  they  neither  sow,  nor  reap,  nor  gather 
into  stores ;  but  your  heavenly  father  feeds  them.  Do  you  not  greatly 
excel  them  7  Besides,  which  of  you  can,  by  anxiety,  prolong  his  life  a 
single  moment  1  And  why  are  you  anxious  with  respect  to  raiment  7 
Contemplate  the  lilies  of  the  field,  how  they  advance  ;  they  neither  la- 
bor nor  spin  ;  yet  I  aflSrm  to  you,  that  even  Solomon,  in  all  his  splendor, 
was  not  equally  adorned  with  one  of  these.  And  if  God  so  decorate  the 
herbage  of  the  ground,  which  vegetates  to-day,  and  to-morrow  wiU  be 
cast  into  the  furnace,  will  he  not  much  more  clothe  you,  who  are  of 
feeble  faith  ?  Be  not,  therefore,  anxious,  saying,  What  shall  we  eat,  or 
what  shall  we  drink,  or  what  shall  we  wear  1  (because  all  these  objects 
the  pagans  pursue),  for  your  heavenly  Father  knows  that  you  want  these 
necessaries.  But  seek  first  the  empire  of  God,  and  the  integrity  he  re- 
quires, and  all  these  things  shall  be  superadded  to  you.  Be  not,  there- 
fore, anxious  for  to-morrow  ;  since  that  will  claim  correspondent  atten- 
tion.    Sufficient  for  each  day  is  its  own  adversity. 

Do  not  judge,  that  you  may  not  be  judged.  For  by  your  rule  of  deci- 
sion, you  will  be  judged ;  and  by  that  measure  which  you  dispense,  it 
will  be  imparted  to  you  in  return.  Why,  therefore,  dost  thou  observe 
the  splinter  which  is  in  thy  brother's  eye,  but  perceivest  not  the  thorn 
in  thine  eye  ?  Or,  how  wilt  thou  say  to  thy  brother.  Let  me  take  the 
splinter  from  thine  eye,  and  behold,  a  thorn  is  in  thine  own  eye  7  Hy- 
pocrite !  first  extract  the  thorn  from  thine  eye,  and  then  thou  wilt  clearly 
discern  how  to  remove  the  splinter  from  the  eye  of  thy  brother. 

Give  not  that  which  is  consecrated  to  the  dogs,  lest  they  turn  and 
tear  you ;  nor  cast  your  pearls  before  swine,  lest  they  trample  them 
under  their  feet. 

Ask,  and  it  will  be  given  you  ;  search,  and  you  will  find  ;  knock,  and 
it  will  be  opened  to  you  :  for  every  one  who  asks,  receives  ;  and  he  who 
searches,  finds  ;  and  to  him  who  knocks,  the  door  will  be  opened.  In- 
deed, what  man  is  there  among  you,  of  whom,  if  his  son  request  bread, 
will  he  offer  him  a  stone  7  or,  if  he  ask  for  a  fish,  will  he  present  him  a 
serpent  7  If  then,  you  who  are  sinful,  know  how  to  impart  good  gifts  to 
your  children,  how  much  more  will  your  Father  in  heaven  give  good 
things  to  those  who  ask  him. 

Further,  all  things  which  you  would  wish  that  others  should  do  to 
you,  perform  also  in  like  manner  to  them ;  for  this  is  the  law  and  the 
prophets. 

Enter  through  the  diflScult  gate  ;  since  wide  is  the  gate,  and  spacious 
the  way  that  leads  to  destruction,  and  there  are  many  who  pass  through 
it.  But,  how  narrow  is  the  gate,  and  rugged  the  way,  which  conducts  to 
life  !  and  how  few  are  those  who  find  it ! 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  49 

Guard  yourselves,  however,  against  false  teachers,  who  approach  you 
in  the  clothing  of  sheep,  while  at  heart,  they  are  ravenous  wolves.  By 
their  fruits  you  may  discover  them.  Do  men  gather  grapes  from  thorns, 
or  figs  from  thistles  1  Thus  then,  every  good  tree  yields  good  fruit ; 
but  a  bad  tree,  produces  bad  fruit.  A  good  tree  cannot  bear  evil  fruit ; 
nor  an  evil  tree,  good  fruit.  Every  tree  which  produces  not  good  fruit, 
is  cut  down,  and  thrown  into  the  fire.  Therefore,  by  their  fruits  you 
shall  know  them. 

Not  whoever  says  to  me.  Lord,  Lord,  shall  enter  the  kingdom  of 
heaven  ;  but  he  who  performs  the  will  of  my  Father  who  is  in  heaven. 
Many  will  say  to  me  in  that  very  day.  Lord,  Lord,  have  we  not  instruct- 
ed in  thy  name  ?  and  in  thy  name  expelled  demons  1  and  in  thy  name 
performed  numerous  miracles  ?  And  then  I  will  profess  to  them.  Surely, 
I  never  approved  of  you ;  depart  from  me,  you  who  practice  iniquity. 

Every  one,  therefore,  that  hears  these  my  precepts,  and  obeys  them, 
I  will  compare  to  a  prudent  man,  who  built  his  house  on  the  rock ;  for 
though  the  rain  descended,  and  the  torrents  came,  and  the  winds  blew, 
and  beat  against  that  house,  it  fell  not,  for  it  was  founded  on  the  rock. 
But  every  one,  who  hears  these  my  injunctions,  and  disobeys  them,  may 
be  compared  to  a  thoughtless  man,  who  erected  his  house  on  the  sand  ; 
for  when  the  rain  descended,  and  the  torrents  came,  and  the  winds 
blew,  and  dashed  against  that  house,  it  fell ;  and  great  was  its  ruin. 

And  it  happened,  when  Jesus  had  concluded  this  discourse,  that  the 
people  were  exceedingly  astonished  at  his  mode  of  instruction  ;  for  he 
was  teaching  them  as  one  who  possessed  authority,  and  not  as  the 
scribes. 

Moreover,  as  Jesus  was  descending  from  the  mountain,  great  crowds 
followed  him.  And  behold,  a  leper  came,  and  prostrating  himself  be- 
fore him,  said.  Sir,  if  thou  wilt,  thou  canst  cleanse  me.  And  Jesus 
extended  his  hand  and  touched  him,  declaring,  I  will ;  be  thou  cleans- 
ed :  and  he  was  instantly  purified  from  his  leprosy.  And  Jesus  says  to 
him,  See  that  you  inform  no  one  ;  but  go,  present  yourself  to  the  priest, 
and  make  the  oblation  prescribed  by  Moses,  as  an  evidence  to  the 
people. 

Further,  when  Jesus  had  arrived  at  Capernaum,  a  centurion  came  to 
him,  earnestly  addressing  him  and  saying,  Sir,  my  servant  lies  in  my 
house,  seized  with  paralysis,  and  greatly  distressed.  And  Jesus  says  to 
him,  I  am  coming,  and  will  heal  him.  And  the  centurion  said  in  reply. 
Sir,  I  am  not  worthy  that  thou  shouldst  enter  under  my  roof;  but  com- 
mand by  word,  and  my  servant  will  be  healed.  For  even  I,  who  am 
subject  to  authority,  having  soldiers  under  me,  say  to  this  one,  Go,  and 
he  goes  ;  and  to  another.  Come,  and  he  comes  ;  and  to  my  own  servant, 
Do  this,  and  he  does  it.  And  Jesus  listening,  admired  him,  and  pro- 
claimed to  those  who  followed.  Indeed,  I  declare  to  you,  that  I  have  not 
found,  even  in  Israel,  such  great  reUance.  And  I  remind  you,  that 
many  will  come  from  the  east  and  west,  and  will  recline  with  Abraham, 
7 


50  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

and  Isaac,  and  Jacob,  in  the  kingdom  of  heaven  ;  while  the  sons  of  the 
kingdom  will  be  driven  into  outward  darkness,  where  will  be  weeping 
and  gnashing  of  teeth.  Then  Jesus  said  to  the  centurion.  Depart,  and 
as  you  have  believed,  be  it  done  to  you.  And  his  servant  was  immedi- 
ately restored. 

And  when  Jesus  had  entered  the  house  of  Peter,  he  perceived  his 
wife's  mother  lying  under  a  fever ;  and  he  touched  her  hand,  and  the 
fever  left  her  ;  and  she  arose  and  entertained  him.  Now,  in  the  even- 
ing, they  brought  to  him  many  demoniacs  ;  and  he  cast  out  the  spirits 
with  a  word,  and  healed  all  that  were  sick  ;  thus  verifying  the  declara- 
tion of  the  prophet  Isaiah,  He  removed  our  infirmities,  and  has  endured 
our  diseases. 

Moreover,  Jesus,  viewing  the  great  assemblage  about  him,  gave  direc- 
tion to  depart  to  the  other  side  of  the  lake.  And  a  certain  scribe  ap- 
proaching, declared  to  him,  Teacher,  I  will  follow  thee  wherever  thou 
goest.  And  Jesus  replied  to  him,  The  foxes  have  burrows,  and  the 
birds  of  the  air  have  perches,  but  the  Son  of  Man  has  no  place  to  rest 
his  head. 

And  another,  one  of  his  disciples,  said  to  him.  Lord,  permit  me  first 
to  go  and  bury  my  father  ;  but  Jesus  answered  him.  Follow  me,  and 
leave  the  dead  to  bury  their  own  dead. 

And  when  Jesus  had  entered  the  vessel,  his  disciples  followed  him. 
And  afterwards,  a  violent  tempest  arose  on  the  sea,  so  that  the  vessel 
was  covered  with  the  waves  ;  but  he  was  sleeping.  The  disciples  came 
and  awoke  him,  saying.  Master,  save  us  ;  we  are  perishing.  And  he  says 
to  them.  Why  are  you  so  fearful,  and  of  such  feeble  faith  1  Then  he 
arose,  commanded  the  winds  and  the  waves,  and  there  was  a  great 
calm.  And  the  men  were  astonished,  announcing,  What  personage  is 
this,  whom  even  the  winds  and  the  sea  obey  ! 

And  when  he  had  passed  to  the  opposite  shore,  into  the  region  of  the 
Gadarenes,  there  met  him  two  demoniacs,  proceeding  from  the  sepul- 
chres ;  so  excessively  fiirious  that  no  one  could  safely  pass  that  way. 
And  immediately,  they  cried,  saying.  What  have  we  to  do  with  one 
another.  Son  of  God  ?  Hast  thou  come  here,  prematurely  to  torture  us  ? 
Now  at  some  distance  from  them,  a  numerous  herd  of  swine  was  feed- 
ing. And  the  fiends  thus  besought  him.  If  thou  shouldst  cast  us  out, 
send  us  away  to  the  herd  of  swine.  And  he  said  to  them.  Go.  And 
having  been  expelled,  they  departed  to  the  swine  ;  and  instantly,  the 
whole  herd  rushed  down  the  steep  bank  into  the  sea,  and  perished  in 
the  waters.  Then  the  herdsmen  fled,  and  reaching  the  city,  published 
all  this,  and  what  had  happened  to  the  demoniacs.  And  soon  after,  the 
whole  city  went  out  to  meet  Jesus.  And  when  they  saw  him,  they  en- 
treated that  he  would  depart  from  their  borders.  And  having  entered 
the  vessel,  he  crossed  the  lake,  and  came  to  his  own  city. 

And  subsequently,  they  brought  to  him  a  paralytic  person,  lying  on  a 
bed  ;  and  Jesus,  perceiving  their  faith;  said  to  the  paralytic,  Son,  take 


MATTHEW'S    HISTORY.  51 

courage,  your  sins  are  forgiven  you.  And  upon  this,  some  of  the  scribes 
thus  secretly  affirmed,  This  man  speaks  impiously.  And  Jesus,  discern- 
ing their  thoughts,  said,  Why  do  you,  think  evil  in  your  hearts  1  For 
which  is  least  difficult,  to  say.  Thy  sins  are  forgiven  1  or  [eifectually]  to 
command,  Arise  and  walk  1  But  that  you  may  be  assured,  that  the  Son 
of  Man  has  authority  on  the  earth  to  forgive  sins,  Arise,  (said  he  then 
to  the  paralytic),  take  up  thy  bed,  and  go  to  thy  house.  And  he  arose 
and  went  to  his  house.  And  the  people  who  saw  this,  were  astonished, 
and  praised  God,  who  had  given  such  authority  to  men. 

And  Jesus,  passing  from  that  place,  saw  a  man,  by  the  name  of  Mat- 
thew, sitting  at  the  tax-office,  and  says  to  him.  Follow  me.  And  he 
arose  and  followed  him. 

And  it  happened  that  Jesus  was  reclining  at  table  in  a  house,  and  ac- 
cordingly, many  public  exactors  and  Gentiles  came  and  placed  them- 
selves with  him  and  his  disciples.  And  some  pharisees,  observing  it,  said 
to  his  disciples.  Why  does  your  Teacher  eat  with  tax-gatherers  and  sin- 
ners ?  Jesus  hearing  it,  says  to  them.  Those  that  are  in  health,  do  not 
want  a  physician  ;  but  they  who  are  sick.  Go,  therefore,  and  learn 
what  that  means,  I  require  humanity  rather  than  sacrifice  ;  for  I  came 
not  to  call  righteous  persons,  but  sinners. 

The  disciples  of  John  then  accosted  him,  inquiring.  Why  do  we  and 
the  pharisees  frequently  fast,  while  thy  disciples  fast  not  7  And  Jesus 
replies  to  them.  Can  the  bridemen  mourn,  as  long  as  the  bridegroom 
is  with  them  1  But  the  days  will  arrive,  when  the  bridegroom  will  be 
taken  from  them,  and  then  they  will  fast.  No  one  places  a  piece  of  un- 
finished cloth  on  an  old  garment ;  for  the  new  piece  divests  the  garment 
of  its  fiilness,  and  a  worse  rent  is  made.  Nor  do  persons  put  new  wine 
into  old  leathern  bottles ;  for  if  they  do,  the  bottles  burst,  and  the  wine 
is  wasted,  and  the  bottles  are  destroyed ;  but  they  put  new  wine  into 
new  bottles,  and  both  are  preserved. 

As  he  was  making  these  remarks  to  them,  a  certain  ruler  suddenly 
came  to  him,  and  prostrating  himself,  said.  My  daughter  was  just  now 
dying ;  but  come  and  lay  thy  hand  on  her,  and  she  will  revive.  And 
Jesus,  with  his  disciples,  arose  and  followed  him.  And  behold,  a  woman, 
who  had  been  afflicted  with  a  hemorrhage  for  twelve  years,  came  behind 
him,  and  touched  the  border  of  his  mantle.  For  this  was  her  secret 
reflection.  If  I  can  only  touch  his  garment,  I  shall  be  restored.  But 
Jesus  turned  around,  and  beholding  her,  said,  Take  courage,  daugh- 
ter, your  faith  has  recovered  you.  And  the  woman  was  healed  from 
that  hour. 

And  Jesus  coming  to  the  house  of  the  ruler,  and  perceiving  the  musi- 
cians and  the  crowd  making  lamentation,  says  to  them,  Withdraw; 
for  the  young  woman  is  not  dead,  but  sleeps.  And  they  derided  him. 
But  when  the  company  was  excluded,  he  went  in  and  took  her  hand,  and 
the  young  woman  was  raised.  And  this  transaction  was  published 
through  all  that  region. 


53  APOSTOLIC   PRODUCTIONS. 

And  as  Jesus  departed  thence,  two  blind  men  followed  him,  exclaim- 
ing, and  saying.  Son  of  David,  have  mercy  on  us  !  And  when  he  arrived 
at  the  house,  the  blind  men  came  to  him  :  and  Jesus  says  to  them,  Do 
you  believe  that  I  am  able  to  perform  this  t  They  reply  to  him.  Cer- 
tainly, Master.  He  then  touched  their  eyes,  proclaiming,  Let  it  be  done 
to  you,  according  to  your  faith.  And  their  eyes  were  opened  ;  and  Jesus 
thus  strictly  charged  them,  See  that  you  inform  no  one.  But  having 
departed,  they  spread  his  fame  through  all  that  land. 

Now,  these  men  having  withdrawn,  the  people  immediately  presented 
to  him  a  dumb  man,  who  was  a  demoniac.  And  the  demon  having  been 
expelled,  the  dumb  man  spoke,  and  the  people  were  astonished,  saying. 
Never  was  it  thus  seen  in  Israel.  But  the  pharisees  said.  He  casts  out 
demons  through  the  prince  of  the  demons. 

And  Jesus  traversed  all  the  cities  and  villages,  teaching  in  their  syn- 
agogues, and  announcing  the  good  news  respecting  the  dominion  of 
God,  and  healing  every  disease,  and  every  infirmity.  Observing,  how- 
ever, the  vast  crowds,  he  was  deeply  impressed  with  compassion  for 
them,  because  they  were  sorrowfully  afflicted,  and  dispersed  as  sheep 
having  no  shepherd.  He  then  says  to  his  disciples.  The  harvest  is  in- 
deed abundant,  but  the  laborers  are  few.  Implore,  therefore,  the  Lord 
of  the  harvest,  that  he  would  thrust  forth  laborers  to  gather  it. 

And  after  Jesus  had  summoned  his  twelve  disciples,  he  gave  them 
authority  to  expel  impure  spirits,  and  to  heal  diseases  and  infirmities  of 
every  kind.  Moreover,  these  are  the  names  of  the  twelve  apostles :  the 
first,  Simon  who  is  called  Peter,  and  Andrew  the  brother  of  Peter  ; 
James  the  son  of  Zebedee,  and  John  the  brother  of  James.  PhiUp  and 
Bartholomew ;  Thomas,  and  Matthew  the  public  exactor  ;  James  the 
son  of  Alpheus  ;  and  Lebbeus,  whose  surname  was  Thaddeus  ;  Simon 
the  Canaanite  ;  and  Judas  Iscariot,  even  he  who  betrayed  him.  Jesus 
commissioned  these  twelve,  instructing  them,  and  saying,  Go  not  away 
to  the  Gentiles  ;  and  enter  not  any  city  of  the  Samaritans  ;  but  go 
rather  to  the  lost  sheep  of  the  race  of  Israel.  And  as  you  proceed, 
proclaim  like  heralds,  saying.  The  empire  of  heaven  is  approaching. 
Heal  the  sick,  cleanse  the  lepers,  raise  the  dead,  expel  evil  spirits  ;  lib- 
erally you  have  received,  liberally  give.  Provide  not  gold,  nor  silver,  nor 
brass,  in  your  purses  ;  nor  receptacles  of  provisions  for  your  journey ; 
no  spare  coats,  shoes,  nor  staves  ;  for  the  workman  is  worthy  of  his 
maintenance.  And  whatever  city  or  village  you  shall  visit,  inquire  what 
person  of  worth  resides  there  ;  and  remain  with  him  till  you  depart 
from  the  place.  And  when  you  come  to  a  house,  thus  salute  it.  Peace 
be  to  this  house.  And  if  the  family  be  worthy,  let  your  peace  attend 
them  ;  but  if  they  be  unworthy,  let  your  peace  return  to  you.  And 
wherever  they  will  not  receive  you,  nor  hear  your  words,  when  you 
withdraw  from  that  house,  or  city,  shake  the  dust  from  your  feet.  I 
assure  you,  that  the  condition  of  the  land  of  Sodom  and  Gomorrah, 
will  be  more  tolerable,  on  a  day  of  trial,  than  the  condition  of  that  city. 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  53 

Remember,  I  send  you  forth  as  sheep  in  the  midst  of  wolves.  Be, 
therefore,  sagacious  as  the  serpents,  and  innocent  as  the  doves.  But 
beware  of  these  men ;  for  they  will  deliver  you  to  the  sanhedrins,  and 
will  scourge  you  in  their  assemblies  of  magistrates  ;  and  you  will  be 
arraigned  before  governors  and  kings,  on  my  account,  to  bear  testimony 
to  them,  and  to  the  Gentiles.  But  when  they  deliver  you  up,  be  not 
anxious  how,  or  what  you  shall  speak  ;  because  what  you  should  say 
shall  be  suggested  to  you,  in  that  very  hour.  For  it  is  not  you  that  shall 
speak  ;  but  the  Spirit  of  your  Father  who  will  speak  by  you.  Then  the 
brother  will  consign  the  brother  to  death  ;  and  the  father,  the  child ; 
and  children  will  arise  against  their  parents,  and  destroy  them.  And 
you  will  be  universally  hated,  on  account  of  my  name.  But  he,  who  per- 
severes to  the  end,  shall  be  preserved. 

But  when  they  persecute  you  in  one  city,  fly  to  another ;  and  from 
that,  if  they  persecute  you,  take  refuge  in  another ;  for  in  truth,  I  de- 
clare to  you,  that  you  shall  not  have  travelled  through  the  cities  of 
Israel,  till  the  son  of  Man  shall  come.  A  disciple  is  not  above  his 
teacher,  nor  a  servant  above  his  master.  It  is  sufiicient  for  the  disciple 
that  he  should  be  as  his  teacher,  and  the  servant  as  his  master.  If  they 
have  called  the  master  of  the  family,  Beelzebul ;  how  much  more  those 
of  his  household  ? 

However,  fear  them  not ;  for  there  is  nothing  concealed,  which  shall 
not  be  discovered ;  nor  any  thing  secret,  that  shall  not  be  known. 
What  I  communicate  to  you  in  darkness,  publish  in  the  light ;  and 
what  is  whispered  in  your  ear,  proclaim  from  the  house-tops.  Be  not 
afraid  of  those  who  kill  the  body,  but  cannot  destroy  the  existence  ; 
fear  rather  him,  who  is  able  to  destroy  both  body  and  existence  in 
gehenna.  Are  not  two  sparrows  sold  for  an  assarius  1  and  yet,  not  one 
of  them  falls  on  the  ground,  without  the  permission  of  your  Father. 
Indeed,  even  the  hairs  of  your  head  are  all  numbered.  Fear  not,  there- 
fore ;  you  are  of  more  value  than  many  sparrows.  Moreover,  every 
one,  who  shall  acknowledge  me  before  men,  him  will  I  also  acknowl- 
edge before  my  Father  in  heaven.  But  he  who  shall  renounce  me  be- 
fore men,  I  will  also  renounce  him  before  my  Father  who  is  in  heaven. 
Think  not,  that  I  have  come  to  bring  peace  to  this  land  ;  I  came  not 
to  send  peace,  but  a  sword.  For  my  coming  will  place  a  man  at  vari- 
ance with  his  father,  and  the  daughter  with  her  mother,  and  the  daugh- 
ter-in-law with  her  mother-in-law ;  so  that  a  man's  enemies  will  be 
found  in  his  own  family.  He  who  loves  his  father  or  mother  more  than 
me,  is  unworthy  of  me ;  and  he  that  loves  his  son  or  daughter  more  than 
me,  is  undeserving  of  me  ;  and  he  who  does  not  take  his  cross,  and  fol- 
low me,  is  not  worthy  of  me.  He  that  preserves  his  Ufe,  will  lose  it ; 
and  he  that  loses  his  life,  in  my  cause,  will  preserve  it.  He  who  shall 
receive  you,  receives  me ;  and  he  who  shall  receive  me,  receives  him 
that  sent  me.  He  that  entertains  a  prophet,  because  he  is  a  prophet, 
will  obtain  a  prophet's  reward  ;  and  he  that  entertains  a  righteous  man 


54  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

in  the  name  of  a  righteous  man,  will  obtain  a  righteous  man's  reward. 
And  whoever  shall  impart,  in  the  name  of  a  disciple,  a  cup  of  cold 
water  only,  to  refresh  one  of  these  my  humble  followers,  I  assure  you, 
that  he  will  by  no  means  lose  his  reward. 

And  it  occurred,  when  Jesus  had  concluded  his  injunctions  to  his 
twelve  disciples,  that  he  departed  thence,  to  instruct  and  to  preach  in 
the  cities  of  the  Jews. 

Further,  John  having  heard  in  prison  respecting  the  works  of  the 
Messiah,  sent  two  of  his  disciples  to  say  to  him,  Art  thou  he  that  is  to 
come  ;  or  are  we  to  expect  another  1  And  Jesus  answering,  said  to 
them.  Go  and  relate  to  John  what  you  have  heard  and  seen ;  that  the 
blind  receive  their  sight,  and  the  lame  walk ;  the  lepers  are  cleansed, 
and  the  deaf  hear  ;  the  dead  are  raised,  and  joyful  intelligence  is  pro- 
claimed to  the  poor.  And  happy  is  he,  to  whom  I  shall  not  prove  an 
offence. 

And  as  they  were  departing,  Jesus  proceeded  to  say  to  the  people 
concerning  John,  What  went  you  out  into  the  wilderness  to  behold  1 
A  reed  shaken  by  the  wind  ?  But  what  went  you  out  to  see  ?  A  man 
robed  in  soft  raiment  ?  Recollect,  that  those  who  wear  fine  clothing, 
are  in  royal  palaces.  But  what  went  you  out  to  see  ?  A  prophet  1 
Indeed,  I  say  to  you,  and  one  more  excellent  than  a  prophet.  For  this 
is  the  person,  of  whom  it  was  written,  Behold,  I  send  my  messenger  be- 
fore thy  face,  who  will  prepare  thy  way  before  thee.  I  assure  you,  that 
among  the  entire  human  race,  there  has  not  arisen  a  prophet  greater 
than  John  the  Baptist ;  yet,  the  least  in  the  kingdom  of  heaven,  is  su- 
perior to  him.  And  from  the  days  of  John  the  Baptist  till  now,  the 
kingdom  of  heaven  is  forcibly  assaulted,  and  the  assailants  take  it  by 
violence.  For  all  the  prophets  and  the  law  continued  to  instruct  till 
John  appeared.  And  if  you  are  disposed  to  receive  the  declaration,  he 
is  Elijah  who  was  to  come.     Let  him  hear,  who  has  ears  to  hear. 

To  what,  therefore,  shall  I  compare  this  race.  It  is  like  children  sit- 
ting in  the  place  of  public  resort,  and  calUng  to  their  companions,  and 
saying.  We  have  played  to  you  upon  the  pipe,  but  you  have  not  danced; 
we  have  sung  mournful  anthems  to  you,  but  you  have  not  lamented. 
For  John  came,  abstemious  as  to  food  and  drink,  and  they  say.  He  has 
a  demon.  The  Son  of  Man  came  partaking  of  food  and  drink,  and 
they  say.  Behold,  a  lover  of  banquets  and  wine,  a  friend  of  tax-gather- 
ers and  sinners.     But  wisdom  is  vindicated  by  her  works. 

Then  he  began  to  reprove  the  cities  in  which  most  of  his  miracles 
had  been  wrought,  because  they  did  not  reform.  Alas  for  thee,  Chora- 
zin !  alas  for  thee,  Bethsaida !  for  if  the  miracles,  which  have  been  per- 
formed in  you,  had  been  done  in  Tyre  and  Sidon,  they  would  long  since 
have  reformed  in  sackcloth  and  ashes.  Therefore,  I  say  to  you,  the 
condition  of  Tyre  and  Sidon,  on  a  day  of  trial,  will  be  more  tolerable 
than  yours.  And  thou,  Capernaum,  who  hast  been  exalted  to  heaven, 
wilt  be  brought  down  to  hades ;  for  if  the  miracles,  which  have  been 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  55 

wrought  in  thee,  had  been  performed  in  Sodom,  it  would  certainly 
have  remained  to  this  day.     But,  I  say  to  you,  That  the  condition  of  the 
land  of  Sodom,  on  a  day  of  trial,  will  be  more  tolerable  than  thine. 
At  that  time,  Jesus  took  occasion  to  say,  I  entirely  concur  with  thee, 

0  Father,  Lord  of  heaven  and  earth ;  because,  having  concealed  these 
things  from  the  wise  and  intelligent,  thou  hast  revealed  them  to  babes. 
Be  it  thus,  O  Father,  since  such  is  thy  pleasure.  All  things  are  deliv- 
ered to  me  by  my  Father  ;  and  no  one,  but  the  Father,  knows  the  Son; 
nor  does  any  one  know  the  Father,  except  the  Son,  and  he,  to  whom 
the  Son  is  pleased  to  reveal  him.  Come  to  me  all  who  suffer,  and  are 
heavily  burdened  ;  and  I  will  relieve  you.  Take  my  yoke  upon  you, 
and  learn  of  me,  for  I  am  condescending  and  humble  in  heart ;  and  you 
will  find  refreshment  to  your  souls.  For  my  yoke  is  easy,  and  my 
burden  is  light. 

At  that  period,  Jesus  went  on  the  sabbath  through  the  grain  ;  and  his 
disciples  were  hungry,  and  began  to  gather  the  ears  of  grain,  and  to 
eat.  Now  the  pharisees,  seeing  this,  SEiid  to  him,  Behold,  thy  disciples 
are  doing  what  is  not  lawful  to  do  on  the  sabbath.  But  he  replied  to 
them.  Have  you  not  read  what  David  did,  when  he  and  his  attendants 
were  hungry  ?  how  he  entered  the  house  of  God,  and  did  eat  the  bread 
of  the  presence,  which  it  was  not  lawful  for  him  to  eat,  nor  for  those 
who  were  with  him,  but  solely  for  the  priests  1  Or,  have  you  not  read 
in  the  law,  that  the  priests  in  the  temple  violate  the  rest  to  be  observed 
on  sabbaths,  and  are  yet  blameless  ?  But,  I  say  to  you,  that  one  greater 
than  the  temple  is  here.     If,  therefore,  you  had  known  what  this  means, 

1  desire  mercy  and  not  sacrifice,  you  would  not  have  condemned  the  in- 
nocent :  for  the  Son  of  Man  is  Lord  of  the  sabbath. 

And  having  left  that  place,  he  proceeded  to  their  synagogue :  and  be- 
hold, there  was  a  man  who  had  a  withered  hand.  And  they  thus  ques- 
tioned Jesus,  Is  it  lawful  to  heal  on  the  sabbath  7  with  a  design  to  ac- 
cuse him.  But  he  said  to  them.  What  man  is  there  among  you,  who, 
having  one  sheep,  if  it  fall  into  a  pit  on  the  sabbath,  will  not  seize  and 
extricate  it  1  Now  does  not  a  man  greatly  surpass  a  sheep  1  It  is 
therefore  lawful,  to  do  good  on  the  sabbath.  He  then  says  to  the  man. 
Extend  your  hand  ;  and  he  extended  it ;  and  it  became  sound  like  the 
other.  The  pharisees,  however,  departed,  and  conspired  against  Jesus, 
to  destroy  him.  ^ 

But  Jesus,  knowing  this,  withdrew  from  the  place  ;  and  being  followed 
by  a  vast  multitude,  healed  all  their  sick  ;  enjoining  them  not  to  disco- 
ver him.  Thus  was  accompUshed  that  which  was  spoken  by  Isaiah  the 
prophet,  saying.  Behold  my  servant,  whom  I  have  chosen,  my  beloved 
in  whom  my  soul  is  delighted.  I  will  invest  him  with  my  Spirit ;  and 
he  will  announce  my  institutes  to  the  nations.  He  will  not  be  conten- 
tious, nor  clamorous  ;  nor  shall  any  one  hear  his  voice  in  the  streets. 
He  will  not  break  a  bruised  reed,  and  the  dimly  burning  taper  he  will 


56  APOSTOLIC   PRODUCTIONS. 

not  extinguish,  till  he  render  his  laws  victorious.  And  the  nations  will 
hope  in  his  name. 

Then  a  blind  and  dumb  man,  a  demoniac,  was  brought  to  Jesus,  who 
healed  him,  so  that  the  blind  and  dumb  man  both  spoke  and  saw.  And 
all  the  people  were  astonished,  and  said.  Is  not  this  the  Son  of  David  1 
But  the  pharisees  hearing  it,  said,  This  man  could  not  cast  out  demons, 
except  through  Beelzebul,  the  prince  of  the  demons.  Then  Jesus, 
knowing  their  thoughts,  said  to  them.  Any  kingdom  may,  by  dissensions, 
be  desolated ;  and  no  city  or  family,  where  such  dissensions  are,  can 
subsist.  Now,  if  the  adversary  cast  out  the  adversary,  his  kingdom  is 
torn  by  divisions  ;  how  then  can  it  be  sustained.  Besides,  if  I  through 
Beelzebul  expel  demons,  through  whom  do  your  sons  expel  them  7 
Therefore,  they  will  decide  against  you.  But,^f  it  be  by  the  Spirit  of 
God  that  I  expel  demons,  then  the  dominion  of  God  has  unexpectedly 
appeared  to  you.  Moreover,  how  can  any  one  enter  the  strong  one's 
house,  and  plunder  his  goods,  unless  he  first  bind  the  strong  one  1  and 
then  he  may  plunder  his  house.  He  that  is  not  with  me,  is  against  me ; 
and  he  that  gathers  not  with  me,  scatters.  Therefore,  I  say  to  you, 
though  every  other  sin  and  detraction  in  men  may  be  forgiven ;  yet 
their  detraction  from  the  Spirit  will  not  be  forgiven.  Even  he,  who  in- 
veighs against  the  Son  of  Man,  may  obtain  pardon ;  but  whoever  shall 
speak  against  the  Holy  Spirit,  will  never  be  pardoned,  either  in  the  pre- 
sent state,  or  in  the  ftiture. 

Either  call  the  tree  good,  and  its  fruit  good  ;  or  call  the  tree  bad,  and 
its  fruit  bad :  for  the  tree  is  known  by  its  fruit.  Offspring  of  vipers  ! 
how  can  you  that  are  evil,  speak  good  things  1  since  it  is  from  the  over- 
flowings of  the  heart,  that  the  mouth  speaks.  A  good  man,  from  his 
good  treasure,  produces  good  ;  and  an  evil  man,  from  his  evil  treasure, 
produces  evil.  Be  assured,  however,  that  for  every  injurious  expres- 
sion, which  men  shall  utter,  they  shall  be  responsible,  on  a  day  of  judg- 
ment. For  by  thy  conversation  thou  shalt  be  acquitted,  or  by  thy  con- 
versation thou  shalt  be  condemned. 

Some  of  the  scribes  and  pharisees  then  interposed,  saying,  Teacher, 
we  wish  to  witness  a  sign  from  thee.  But  he  answering,  said  to  them, 
A  depraved  and  dissolute  race  of  people  demand  another  sign ;  but  no 
sign  shall  be  given  them,  except  the  sign  of  the  prophet  Jonah.  For  as 
Jonah  was  three  days  and  three  nights  in  the  body  of  the  great  fish  ;  so 
will  the  Son  of  Man  be  three  days  and  three  nights  in  the  bosom  of  the 
earth.  The  Ninevites  will  stand  up  in  the  trial  against  this  race  of  peo- 
ple, and  cause  them  to  be  condemned ;  for  they  reformed  when  they 
were  warned  by  Jonah ;  and  behold,  something  greater  than  Jonah  is 
here.  The  queen  of  the  south  will  rise  in  the  trial  against  this  race  of 
people,  and  cause  them  to  be  condemned  ;  for  she  came  from  a  great 
distance  to  hear  the  wise  discourses  of  Solomon  ;  and  behold,  some- 
thing superior  to  Solomon  is  here. 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  57 

An  impure  spirit,  when  he  has  departed  from  a  man,  roves  through 
desolate  regions,  in  search  of  a  resting  place  ;  but,  not  finding  any,  he 
says,  I  will  return  to  my  house,  whence  I  withdrew.  And  coming,  he 
fiiids  it  unoccupied,  swept,  and  furnished.  He  then  departs,  and  as- 
sociates with  him  seven  other  spirits  more  abandoned  than  himself ;  and 
they  enter  and  abide  there  ;  and  the  last  state  of  that  man  becomes 
worse  than  the  first :  thus  will  it  also  be  with  this  evil  race. 

While  he  yet  addressed  the  multitude,  behold,  his  mother  and  his 
brothers  stood  without,  desiring  to  speak  with  him.  Some  person  there- 
fore said  to  him.  Behold,  thy  mother  and  thy  brothers  are  without,  wish- 
ing to  speak  with  thee.  But  he  replying,  said  to  the  individual  that  in- 
formed him,  who  is  my  mother,  and  who  are  my  brothers  ?  And  ex- 
tending his  hands  towards  his  disciples,  he  exclaimed.  Behold  my  moth- 
er, and  my  brothers  !  for  whoever  shall  perform  the  will  of  my  Father 
who  is  in  heaven,  he  is  my  brother,  and  sister,  and  mother. 

On  that  day,  Jesus,  departing  from  the  house,  sat  on  the  sea-shore; 
and  so  many  people  were  assembled  around  him,  that  he  entered  a  ves- 
sel, and  seated  himself;  and  the  whole  multitude  stood  on  the  beach. 
And  he  discoursed  much  to  them  in  parables,  saying.  Behold,  the  sower 
went  out  to  sow ;  and  while  he  was  sowing,  some  seeds  fell  by  the  side  of 
the  road,  and  the  birds  came  and  devoured  them.  And  others  dropped 
on  rocky  ground,  where  they  had  not  much  soil ;  and  they  immediately 
vegetated,  because  they  had  no  depth  of  earth ;  and  when  the  sun  had 
risen,  they  were  scorched ;  and  having  no  root,  they  withered.  And 
some  lodged  among  briers ;  and  the  briers  arose  and  overpowered  them. 
But  others  fell  on  fertile  land,  and  produced  grain,  some  a  hundred,  and 
some  sixty,  and  some  thirty  fold.  Let  him  who  has  ears  to  hear,  give 
audience. 

And  the  disciples  approaching,  said  to  him,  Why  dost  thou  address 
them  in  parables  1  And  he  remarked  to  them,  in  reply.  You  are  per- 
mitted to  understand  the  secrets  of  the  kingdom  of  heaven ;  but  they  are 
not  thus  privileged.  For  he  who  has  much,  to  him  wUl  be  given,  and  he 
shall  abound  ;  while  he  who  has  but  Uttle,  wUl  be  deprived  even  of  that 
little.  For  this  reason,  I  speak  to  them  in  parables ;  because  they  care- 
lessly overlook  what  they  see,  and  are  inattentive  to,  and  regardless  of 
what  they  hear  ;  so  that  the  prophecy  of  Isaiah  is  fulfilled  in  them, 
which  announces.  You  may  indeed  listen,  but  will  not  understand ;  you 
may  look,  but  will  not  perceive.  For  the  understanding  of  this  people 
is  stupefied,  they  hear  heavily  with  their  ears,  and  obstinately  shut  their 
eyes  ;  lest  at  any  time,  seeing  with  their  eyes,  and  hearing  with  their 
ears,  and  comprehending  with  their  mind,  they  should  retrace  their 
steps,  and  I  should  reclaim  them.  But  happy  are  your  eyes,  since  they 
see,  and  your  ears,  since  they  hear.  For  I  aver  to  you,  that  many  pro- 
phets and  righteous  men  have  desired  to  see  the  things  which  you  be- 
hold, but  never  saw  them ;  and  to  hear  the  things  to  which  you  listen, 
but  have  not  heard  them. 
8 


58  APOSTOLIC   PRODUCTIONS. 

Attend,  therefore,  to  the  parable  of  the  sower.  When  one  hears  the 
doctrine  concerning  the  kingdom  of  heaven,  and  disregards  it,  the  evil 
one  appears,  and  seizes  that  which  was  sown  in  his  heart.  This  ex- 
plains what  fell  by  the  side  of  the  road.  And  that  which  dropped  on 
rocky  ground,  denotes  him  who,  hearing  the  word,  receives  it  at  first 
with  pleasure  ;  yet,  not  having  it  rooted  in  his  mind,  retains  it  only  a 
short  time  ;  for  when  affliction  or  persecution  comes,  in  consequence 
of  the  word,  he  instantly  relapses.  And  that  which  lodged  among  bri- 
ers, denotes  that  hearer,  in  whom  worldly  anxiety  and  delusive  wealth, 
jointly  stifle  the  word,  and  render  it  unproductive.  But  that  which  fell 
on  fertile  land,  and  produced  fruit,  some  a  hundred,  and  some  sixty,  and 
some  thirty  fold,  denotes  him,  who  not  only  hears  and  regards,  but  obeys 
the  word. 

He  proposed  to  them  another  parable,  saying.  The  kingdom  of  hea- 
ven may  be  compared  to  a  field,  in  which  the  proprietor  had  sown  good 
grain;  but  while  people  were  asleep,  his  enemy  came  and  sowed  darnel 
among  the  wheat,  and  departed.  And  when  the  blade  germinated  and 
put  forth  the  ear,  then  the  darnel  also  appeared.  And  the  servants 
came,  and  said  to  their  master.  Sir,  you  sowed  good  seed  in  your  field ; 
whence  then  came  the  darnel  1  And  he  answered.  An  evil  man  has 
done  this.  And  the  servants  said  to  him.  Do  you  wish  us  to  go  and 
weed  it  out  ?  But  he  replied.  No  ;  lest  in  weeding  out  the  darnel,  you 
also  tear  up  the  wheat.  Let  both  grow  together  till  the  harvest ;  and  in 
the  time  of  harvest,  I  will  say  to  the  reapers,  First  gather  the  darnel, 
and  bind  it  in  bundles  for  burning  ;  but  carry  the  wheat  into  my  barn. 

And  he  proposed  another  parable  to  them,  saying,  The  kingdom  of 
heaven  may  be  compared  to  a  grain  of  mustard-seed,  which  a  man  took 
and  planted  in  his  field ;  for  though  it  is  one  of  the  least  of  all  seeds  ; 
yet,  when  it  is  grown,  it  is  larger  than  any  herb,  and  becomes  a  tree,  so 
that  the  birds  of  the  air  come  and  construct  their  nests  on  its  branches. 

He  then  addressed  to  them  another  comparison.  The  kingdom  of 
heaven  resembles  leaven,  which  a  woman  taking,  mingled  in  three  mea- 
sures of  meal,  till  the  whole  fermented. 

Jesus  communicated  all  these  things  to  the  multitude  in  parables ;  for 
he  taught  them  only  by  parables  :  and  thus  was  accomplished  that  which 
was  uttered  by  the  prophet  Asaph,  saying,  I  will  discourse  in  parables, 
and  will  disclose  things  that  have  been  concealed  from  all  antiquity. 

Then  Jesus,  dismissing  the  people,  retired  to  a  house  ;  and  his  disci- 
ples approached  him,  saying,  Explain  to  us  the  parable  of  the  darnel  in 
the  field.  And  he  answered  and  said  to  them.  He  who  sowed  the  good 
seed  denotes  the  Son  of  Man ;  the  field  denotes  the  world  ;  the  good 
seed,  represents  the  sons  of  the  kingdom;  but  the  darnel  represents  the 
sons  of  the  evil  one ;  the  mischievous  man  that  sowed  it,  indicates  the 
adversary ;  the  harvest  illustrates  the  conclusion  of  this  state ;  and  the 
reapers  represent  the  messengers.  As  therefore,  the  darnel  is  coUected, 
and  burnt,  so  will  it  be  at  the  conclusion  of  this  state.     The  Son  of 


MATTHEWS  HISTORY.  59 

Man  will  send  his  messengers,  and  they  will  gather  from  his  kingdom 
all  seducers  and  iniquitous  persons ;  and  will  consign  them  to  the  fur- 
nace of  fire  ;  where  will  be  lamentation  and  gnashing  of  teeth.  Then 
will  the  righteous  be  resplendent  as  the  sun,  in  the  kingdom  of  their 
Father.     Let  him  who  has  ears  to  hear,  give  attention. 

Moreover,  the  kingdom  of  heaven  is  like  a  hidden  treasure  in  a  field, 
which,  when  a  man  has  found,  he  conceals  the  discovery,  and  through  joy 
thereof,  departs,  and  sells  all  his  possessions,  and  purchases  that  field. 

Further,  the  kingdom  of  heaven  is  like  a  pearl  of  great  value,  which, 
a  merchant  who  was  in  pursuit  of  fine  pearls,  having  met  with,  went  aqd 
disposed  of  all  that  he  had,  and  purchased  it. 

Besides,  the  kingdom  of  heaven  resembles  a  drag-net,  cast  into  the 
sea,  and  enclosing  fishes  of  every  kind ;  which,  when  it  is  full,  they  draw 
to  the  shore,  and  proceed  to  deposit  the  good  in  receptacles,  but  throw 
the  useless  away.  Thus  will  it  be,  at  the  conclusion  of  this  state.  The 
messengers  will  come,  and  separate  the  iniquitous  from  the  midst  of  the 
righteous  ;  and  commit  them  to  the  furnace  of  fire  ;  where  will  be  weep- 
ing and  gnashing  of  teeth. 

Jesus  asked  them.  Have  you  understood  all  these  things  1  They  an- 
swered him,  Yes,  Lord.  He  then  observed  to  them.  Every  scribe, 
therefore,  instructed  in  the  kingdom  of  heaven,  is  Uke  a  householder, 
who  produces  from  his  treasury  new  things  and  old. 

And  it  occurred,  that  when  Jesus  had  concluded  these  illustrations, 
he  departed  thence. 

And  when  he  entered  his  own  country,  he  so  taught  the  inhabitants 
in  their  synagogue,  that  they  were  astonished,  and  said.  Whence  has 
this  man  such  wisdom,  and  these  miraculous  powers  1  Is  not  this  the 
son  of  Joseph,  the  carpenter  1  Is  not  his  mother  called  Mary  1  And 
do  not  his  brothers,  James,  and  Joses,  and  Simon,  and  Jude,  and  all  his 
sisters,  live  among  us  1  From  what  source  then,  does  he  derive  all  these 
things  ?  Thus,  they  were  provoked  with  him.  But  Jesus  said  to  them, 
A  prophet  is  held  in  estimation,  except  in  his  own  country,  and  among 
his  relatives.  And  he  did  not  perform  many  miracles  there,  in  conse- 
quence of  their  incredulity. 

At  that  period,  Herod  the  tetrarch  heard  of  the  celebrity  of  Jesus, 
and  said  to  his  servants.  This  is  John  the  Baptist ;  he  is  raised  from  the 
dead ;  and  therefore  miracles  are  performed  by  him.  For  Herod  had 
caused  John  to  be  apprehended,  chained,  and  imprisoned,  on  account  of 
Herodias,  his  brother  Philip's  wife ;  since  John  had  declared  to  him,  It 
is  not  lawfiil  for  you  to  have  her.  And  Herod  would  have  destroyed 
him,  but  was  afraid  of  the  populace,  who  really  regarded  John  as  a 
prophet.  But  when  Herod's  birthday  was  kept,  the  daughter  of  Hero- 
dias danced  before  the  company,  and  pleased  Herod  so  highly,  that  he 
promised  with  an  oath,  to  give  her  whatever  she  might  request ;  and 
she,  being  instigated  by  her  mother,  said.  Give  me  here,  in  a  basin,  tlie 
head  of  John  the  Baptist.     And  the  king  was  grieved,  yet,  from  a  re- 


60  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

gard  to  his  oaths,  and  his  guests,  he  commanded  that  it  should  be  be- 
stowed; and  he  sent  and  decapitated  John  in  prison.  And  his  head 
was  conveyed  in  a  basin,  and  presented  to  the  daughter,  and  she  brought 
it  to  her  mother.  And  his  disciples  coming,  took  the  body  and  buried 
it,  and  departing,  informed  Jesus. 

And  Jesus,  hearing  it,  withdrew  thence  in  a  vessel  to  a  retired  place, 
and  when  the  people  were  apprised  of  it,  they  pursued  him  by  land  from 
the  cities.  And  Jesus,  disembarking,  perceived  a  numerous  assembly, 
and  he  was  moved  with  tender  compassion  for  them,  and  healed  their 
sick. 

And  when  evening  approached,  his  disciples  came  to  him,  saying. 
This  is  an  uninhabited  place,  and  the  day  is  now  past ;  dismiss  the 
multitude,  that  they  may  go  to  the  villages,  and  procure  themselves 
food.  But  Jesus  said  to  them,  They  need  not  depart ;  supply  them 
yourselves.  They,  however,  replied  to  him,  We  have  here,  only  five 
loaves  and  two  fishes.  And  he  said,  Bring  them  forth  to  me.  And 
commanding  the  people  to  rechne  on  the  grass,  he  took  the  five  loaves 
and  the  two  fishes,  and  looking  towards  heaven,  praised  God ;  and 
breaking  the  loaves,  he  imparted  them  to  his  disciples,  and  the  disciples 
to  the  multitude.  And  when  all  had  partaken,  and  were  satisfied,  they 
collected  twelve  full  baskets  of  the  fragihents  that  remained.  Now  they, 
who  had  eaten,  were  about  five  thousand  men,  besides  women  and  chil- 
dren. 

And  immediately,  Jesus  constrained  his  disciples  to  enter  the  ves- 
sel, and  precede  him  to  the  other  side,  while  he  dismissed  the  people. 
And  discharging  the  multitude,  he  privately  ascended  a  mountain  to 
pray,  and  continued  there  alone  till  it  was  late.  By  that  time  the  ves- 
sel was  in  the  midst  of  the  sea,  tossed  by  the  waves,  for  the  wind  was 
adverse.  And  in  the  fourth  watch  of  the  night,  he  proceeded  to  them, 
walking  on  the  sea.  And  when  the  disciples  saw  him  walking  on  the 
sea,  they  were  terrified,  exclaiming.  It  is  an  apparition  !  and  they  cried 
aloud,  through  fear.  But  Jesus  immediately  addressed  them,  saying. 
Take  courage,  it  is  I,  be  not  afraid.  And  Peter  answering,  said  to  him, 
Lord,  if  it  be  thou,  bid  me  come  to  thee  on  the  water.  And  Jesus  said. 
Come.  Then  Peter,  descending  from  the  vessel,  walked  on  the  water 
towards  Jesus.  But  perceiving  the  wind  strong,  he  was  afraid ;  and 
beginning  to  sink,  he  exclaimed.  Lord,  save  me  !  And  Jesus,  instantly 
extending  his  hand,  caught  him,  and  said  to  him.  Distrustful  man,  why 
did  you  doubt  1  And  as  they  entered  the  vessel,  the  wind  subsided. 
Then  those  who  were  in  the  vessel  came,  and  prostrated  themselves 
before  him,  saying.  Assuredly,  thou  art  a  Son  of  God. 

And  having  passed  over,  they  came  to  the  land  of  Gennesaret.  And 
when  the  citizens  of  that  place  were  informed  of  him,  they  sent  to  the 
whole  adjacent  country,  and  brought  to  him  all  that  were  diseased ;  who 
implored  him,  that  they  might  touch  only  the  tuft  of  his  mantle ;  and 
as  many  as  touched  it,  were  restored. 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  61 

Then  some  of  the  scribes  and  pharisees  of  Jerusalem  came  to  Jesus, 
inquiring,  Why  do  thy  disciples  violate  the  traditionary  precept  of  the 
elders  ?  for  they  wash  not  their  hands  before  meals.  But  he  answer- 
ing, said  to  them.  Why  do  you  also  violate  the  commandment  of  God, 
through  your  tradition  1  For  God  has  commanded,  saying.  Honor  thy 
father  and  thy  mother ;  and  he  who  reviles  father  or  mother,  shall  be 
punished  with  death.  But  you  assert.  If  any  one  declare  to  his  father 
or  mother.  That  is  become  a  religious  offering,  by  which  you  might 
derive  assistance  from  me,  he  shall  be  discharged  from  the  maintenance 
of  his  father  or  his  mother.  Thus,  by  your  tradition,  you  supersede 
the  commandment  of  God.  Hypocrites  !  Isaiah,  under  a  divine  im- 
pulse, thus  truly  referred  to  you  ;  This  people  approach  me  with  their 
mouth,  and  reverence  me  with  their  Ups,  but  their  heart  is  far  removed 
from  me.  In  vain  do  they  worship  me,  while  they  teach  as  divine 
truths,  the  injunctions  of  men. 

And  having  called  the  people,  he  said  to  them,  Hear,  and  be  instruct- 
ed. Not  that,  which  enters  the  mouth,  contaminates  a  man  ;  but  that 
which  proceeds  from  the  mouth,  pollutes  a  man.  Then  his  disciples 
approaching,  said  to  him,  Art  thou  conscious  that  the  pharisees  were 
offended,  when  they  heard  this  observation  1  But  he  answering,  said. 
Every  plantation,  which  my  heavenly  Father  has  not  cultivated,  shall 
be  extirpated.  Leave  them  ;  they  are  blind  conductors  of  the  blind ; 
and  if  the  blind  conduct  the  bUnd,  both  must  fall  into  the  pit.  And 
Peter  replying,  said  to  him.  Elucidate  to  us  this  parable.  And  Jesus 
observed,  Are  you  still  destitute  of  understanding  ?  Are  you  not  yet 
apprised,  that  whatever  enters  the  mouth,  passes  on,  and  is  emitted  1 
But  those  things,  which  proceed  from  the  mouth,  issue  from  the  heart, 
and  such  pollute  a  man.  For,  from  the  heart  proceed  iniquitous  designs, 
murders,  adulteries,  fornications,  thefts,  false  testimonies,  calumnies. 
These  are  the  things  which  pollute  a  man ;  but  to  eat  with  unwashed 
hands,  does  not  render  him  impure. 

And  Jesus,  departing  thence,  retired  toward  the  confines  of  Tyre  and 
Sidon.  And  behold,  a  woman  of  Canaan  came  from  those  borders, 
and  exclaimed  to  him,  saying,  Have  mercy  on  me.  Master,  Son  of 
David  ;  my  daughter  is  tortured  by  an  evil  spirit.  But  he  made  no  re- 
ply to  her.  And  his  disciples  coming,  thus  entreated  him.  Dismiss  her, 
for  she  importunes  us.  But  he  answered  and  said.  My  mission  is  only 
to  the  lost  sheep  of  the  stock  of  Israel.  She  still  advanced,  and  pros- 
trated herself  before  him,  saying,  O  Master,  help  me  !  But  he  said  in 
reply.  It  is  not  proper  to  take  the  children's  bread,  and  throw  it  to  the 
dogs.  And  she  said,  I  beseech  thee.  Sir  ;  for  even  the  dogs  are  allowed 
the  crumbs,  which  fall  from  their  master's  table.  Jesus  then  replied  to 
her,  O  woman,  great  is  your  reliance  !  be  it  to  you  as  you  wish  ;  and 
her  daughter  was  instantly  healed. 

And  Jesus,  withdrawing  from  that  place,  came  to  the  sea  of  Galilee, 
and  ascending  the  mountain,  seated  himself  there.     And  many  people 


62  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

came  to  him,  having  with  them  those  that  were  disabled,  blind,  dumb, 
mutilated,  and  many  others  in  distress,  whom  they  laid  at  the  feet  of 
Jesus,  and  he  healed  them  -,  so  that  the  multitude  were  astonished,  when 
they  observed  the  speechless  converse,  the  mutilated  restored,  the  dis- 
abled walk,  and  the  sightless  perceive  ;  and  they  praised  the  God  of 
Israel. 

Then  Jesus,  having  called  his  disciples,  said,  I  feel  a  tender  commis- 
eration for  this  people,  because  they  have  now  continued  with  me  three 
days,  and  have  nothing  to  eat ;  and  I  am  unwilling  to  dismiss  them 
fasting,  lest  they  should  faint  by  the  way.  And  his  disciples  said  to 
him.  How  can  we  obtain  sufficient  bread  in  this  solitude,  to  satisfy  such 
a  crowd  1  And  Jesus  says  to  them.  How  many  loaves  have  you  7  And 
they  said.  Seven,  and  a  few  small  fishes.  And  he  commanded  the  mul- 
titude to  place  themselves  on  the  ground.  And  having  taken  the  seven 
loaves  and  the  fishes,  and  offered  thanks,  he  divided  the  loaves,  and 
gave  them  to  his  disciples,  who  distributed  them  among  the  people. 
And  when  all  had  partaken,  and  were  satisfied,  they  gathered  seven 
full  hand-baskets  of  the  redundant  fragments.  Now  those,  who  had 
eaten,  were  four  thousand  men,  besides  women  and  children. 

And  dismissing  the  multitude,  he  embarked,  and  sailed  to  the  coast  of 
Magdala ;  where  some  of  the  pharisees  and  sadducees  repaired,  who, 
to  try  Jesus,  desired  that  he  would  show  them  a  sign  in  the  sky.  But 
he  answered  and  said  to  them.  In  the  evening,  you  say.  It  will  be  fair 
weather,  for  the  sky  is  red  ;  and  in  the  morning.  There  wUl  be  a  storm 
to-day,  for  the  sky  is  red  and  lowering.  You  can  correctly  determine 
the  appearance  of  the  sky  ;  but  cannot  discern  the  signs  of  the  times. 
A  vicious  and  sensual  race  require  another  sign,  but  no  sign  shall  be 
given  them,  except  the  sign  of  Jonah  the  prophet.  And  leaving  them, 
he  departed. 

Now,  his  disciples  passed  to  the  other  side,  and  had  forgotten  to  take 
bread.  And  Jesus  said  to  them,  Be  very  cautiously  on  your  guard 
against  the  leaven  of  the  pharisees  and  sadducees.  And  they  conversed 
among  themselves,  saying,  It  is  because  we  have  brought  no  bread. 
But  Jesus  perceiving  it,  said,  Why  do  you  surmise  among  yourselves,  O 
ye  of  feeble  trust,  that  I  speak  thus,  because  you  have  brought  no  loaves. 
Do  you  not  yet  comprehend,  or  recollect  the  five  loaves  of  the  five 
thousand,  and  how  many  baskets  you  filled  1  nor  the  seven  loaves  of 
the  four  thousand,  and  how  many  hand-baskets  you  filled  ?  Why  do 
you  not  perceive,  that  I  spoke  not  to  you  relative  to  bread,  in  guarding 
you  against  the  leaven  of  the  pharisees  and  sadducees  1  Then  they 
understood,  that  he  did  not  command  them  to  beware  of  the  leaven  of 
bread,  but  of  the  doctrine  of  the  pharisees  and  sadducees. 

When  Jesus  was  approaching  the  border  of  Cesarea  Philippi,  he  thus 
questioned  his  disciples.  Whom  do  men  declare  that  the  Son  of  man  is  1 
And  they  replied,  some  affirm,  John  the  Baptist ;  but  others,  Elijah ; 
and  others,  Jeremiah,  or  one  of  the  prophets.     He  says  to  them.  But 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  63 

whom  do  you  pronounce  me  to  be  ?  And  Simon  Peter  replied  and  said, 
Thou  art  the  Messiah,  the  Son  of  the  Uving  god.  And  Jesus  answer- 
ing, said  to  him,  Happy  art  thou,  Simon,  son  of  Jonah  ;  for  no  human 
being  has  revealed  this  to  you,  but  my  Father  who  is  in  heaven.  And 
I  also  aver  to  you.  That  thou  art  named  Peter,  that  is.  Stone,  and  on 
that  very  rock,  I  will  build  my  church,  and  the  powers  of  hades  shall 
not  overthrow  it.  And  I  will  give  you  the  keys  of  the  kingdom  of  hea- 
ven ;  and  whatever  you  sanction  on  earth,  shall  be  confirmed  in  heaven  ; 
and  whatever  you  absolve  on  earth,  shall  be  remitted  in  heaven.  He 
then  strictly  charged  his  disciples,  that  they  should  not  disclose  to  any 
one,  that  he  was  the  Messiah. 

From  that  period,  Jesus  began  to  communicate  to  his  disciples,  that 
he  must  go  to  Jerusalem,  and  endure  much  from  the  elders,  and  chief 
priests,  and  scribes,  and  be  slain  ;  and  that  he  must  be  raised  on  the 
third  day.  And  Peter,  interrupting  him,  began  thus  to  protest  to  him ; 
Heaven  be  propitious  to  thee,  Lord !  This  shall  not  befall  thee.  But 
he,  turning,  said  to  Peter,  Depart  from  me,  opposer  !  you  are  an  obsta- 
cle in  my  way  ;  for  you  do  not  discern  the  things  of  God,  but  those  of 
men. 

Jesus  then  said  to  his  disciples.  If  any  one  will  come  under  my  guid- 
ance, let  him  entirely  renounce  himself,  and  take  up  his  cross,  and 
follow  me.  For  whoever  would  desire  to  save  his  life,  shall  lose  it ;  and 
whoever  will  lose  his  life,  for  my  sake,  shall  find  it.  For  what  has  a 
man  profited,  if  he  should  acquire  the  whole  world,  and  forfeit  his  own 
life  ?  or  what  would  a  man  refuse  to  give  as  a  ransom  for  his  life  ?  For 
the  Son  of  Man  is  about  to  come  in  the  glory  of  his  Father,  with  his 
angels  ;  and  then  he  will  recompense  every  man,  according  to  his  con- 
duct. I  assure  you.  Some  of  those  who  are  present,  will  not  decease, 
till  they  have  seen  the  Son  of  Man  entering  upon  his  reign. 

And  after  six  days,  Jesus  took  Peter,  and  James,  and  John  the  bro- 
ther of  James,  and  privately  conducted  them  to  a  lofty  mountain  ; 
where  he  was  transformed  in  their  presence  ;  for  his  face  became  bril- 
liant like  the  sun,  and  his  vestments  were  dazzling  as  the  light.  And 
behold,  Moses  and  Elijah  appeared  to  them,  conversing  with  him.  And 
Peter,  upon  this,  observed  to  Jesus,  Lord,  it  is  fortunate  that  we  are  in 
this  place  ;  if  thou  wilt  permit,  we  will  here  construct  three  booths  ; 
one  for  thee,  and  one  for  Moses,  and  one  for  Elijah.  As  he  was  yet 
speaking,  behold,  a  cloud  of  light  surrounded  them  ;  and  behold,  a 
voice  from  the  cloud,  declaring,  This  is  my  Son,  the  beloved  person,  in 
whom  I  have  delighted  ;  listen  to  him.  And  the  disciples,  having  heard 
it,  fell  prostrate  on  their  faces,  and  were  exceedingly  dismayed.  And 
Jesus,  approaching,  touched  them,  and  said.  Arise,  and  fear  not.  And 
raising  their  eyes,  they  saw  no  one,  except  Jesus. 

And  as  they  were  descending  from  the  mountain,  Jesus  charged  them, 
saying.  Relate  the  vision  to  no  one,  till  the  Son  of  Man  shall  have  risen 


64  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

from  the  dead.  And  his  disciples  inquired  of  him,  saying,  Why  then  do 
the  scribes  assert,  that  Elijah  must  previously  appear  ■?  And  Jesus  re- 
marked, in  reply  to  them,  EUjah,  indeed,  must  come  first,  and  will  at- 
tempt to  place  all  things  in  preparation.  But  I  affirm  to  you,  that 
Elijah  has  already  appeared,  and  they  did  not  acknowledge  him,  but 
treated  him  as  they  pleased  ;  and  thus  will  the  Son  of  Man  suffer  from 
them.  The  disciples  then  understood,  that  he  spoke  to  them  relative  to 
John  the  Baptist. 

And  when  they  had  reached  the  multitude,  a  man  approached  him, 
kneeling  to  him,  and  saying.  Sir,  commiserate  my  son,  as  he  is  afflicted 
with  lunacy,  and  suffers  greatly  ;  for  he  frequently  falls  into  the  fire, 
and  frequently  into  the  water.  And  I  presented  him  to  thy  disciples, 
but  they  could  not  restore  him.  Jesus  then  said,  in  answer,  O  incredu- 
lous and  perverse  race  !  how  long  must  I  remain  with  you  ?  how  long 
must  I  tolerate  you  1  bring  him  here  to  me.  And  Jesus  reprimanded 
the  evil  spirit,  and  he  departed  from  him  ;  and  the  child  was  restored 
from  that  hour. 

The  disciples  then  came  privately  to  Jesus,  and  asked,  Why  were  we 
unable  to  expel  this  demon  ?  Jesus  answered  them.  On  account  of  your 
unbelief ;  for  in  truth,  I  inform  you,  that  if  you  had  no  greater  faith, 
than  a  grain  of  mustard-seed,  you  might  say  to  this  mountain,  remove 
from  this  place,  and  it  would  remove  ;  and  nothing  would  be  impossible 
to  you.  This  description,  however,  is  not  dispossessed,  except  by  prayer 
and  fasting. 

Now,  while  they  continued  in  Galilee,  Jesus  said  to  them,  the  Son  of 
Man  is  about  to  be  surrendered  to  the  hands  of  men,  and  they  will  kill 
him,  and  he  will  be  raised  on  the  third  day.  And  they  were  exceeding- 
ly grieved. 

Moreover,  as  they  arrived  at  Capernaum,  those,  who  collected  the 
taxes,  came  to  Peter,  and  inquired.  Does  not  your  Instructer  pay  the 
didrachma  1  He  rephed.  Yes.  And  when  he  had  entered  the  house, 
Jesus  thus  anticipated  him.  What  think  you,  Simon  ?  From  whom  do 
the  kings  of  the  earth  exact  tribute  or  custom  1  from  their  own  sons,  or 
from  others  ?  Peter  says  to  him,  From  others.  Jesus  declared  to  him. 
The  sons  are  therefore  exempted.  But  lest  we  should  offend  them,  go 
to  the  lake,  throw  a  line,  draw  out  the  first  fish  that  is  hooked ;  and 
having  opened  its  mouth,  you  will  find  a  stater  ;  take  that,  and  give  it  to 
them,  for  me  and  you. 

At  that  period,  the  disciples  came  to  Jesus,  saying.  Who  now  is  the 
greatest  in  the  reign  of  heaven  l  And  Jesus,  having  called  a  little  child, 
placed  him  in  the  midst  of  them,  and  said,  I  assure  you,  that  unless  you 
retrace,  and  become  like  the  little  children,  you  will  never  enter  the 
kingdom  of  heaven.  Whoever,  therefore,  shall  become  humble  like  tliis 
little  child,  he  will  be  the  greatest  in  the  kingdom  of  heaven.  Indeed, 
whoever  shall  receive  one  such  little  child  in  my  name,  receives  me. 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  65 

But  he  who  shall  tempt  one  of  the  least  of  these,  that  believe  in  me,  to 
transgress,  it  would  be  better  for  him  that  an  upper  millstone  were  sus- 
pended to  his  neck,  and  that  he  were  plunged  in  the  depth  of  the  sea. 

Alas  for  the  world,  on  account  of  pernicious  examples  !  for  allure- 
ments to  sin  wUl  occur  ;  but  alas  for  that  man,  from  whom  the  cause  of 
offence  proceeds  !  If,  therefore,  thy  hand  or  thy  foot  cause  thee  to 
offend,  cut  them  off,  and  cast  them  from  thee ;  it  is  better  for  thee  to 
enter  life  crippled  or  maimed,  than  having  two  hands,  or  two  feet,  to  be 
cast  into  the  perpetual  fire.  And  if  thine  eye  tempt  thee  to  trangress, 
tear  it  out,  and  cast  it  from  thee  ;  it  is  better  for  thee  to  enter  life  with 
one  eye,  than  vnth  two  eyes  to  be  consigned  to  the  gehenna  of  fire. 
Beware,  that  you  do  not  disdain  one  of  the  least  of  these  ;  for  I  apprise 
you,  that  their  attendant  messengers  in  the  heavens,  incessantly  survey 
the  face  of  my  heavenly  Father.  Moreover,  the  Son  of  Man  came  to 
recover  the  lost.  What  are  your  views  ?  If  a  man  have  a  hundred 
sheep,  and  one  of  them  be  lost,  does  he  not  leave  the  ninety-nine  on  the 
mountains,  and  departing,  search  for  the  one  that  had  wandered  away. 
And  if  he  happen  to  find  it,  I  assure  you,  that  he  rejoices  more  on  ac- 
count of  this  sheep,  than  of  the  ninety-nine,  that  did  not  stray.  In  like 
manner,  it  is  not  the  will  of  your  heavenly  Father,  that  one  of  the  least 
of  these  should  be  lost. 

Besides,  if  thy  brother  shall  trespass  against  thee,  go  and  expostulate 
with  him,  between  thee  and  him  alone  ;  if  he  listen  to  thee,  thou  hast 
gained  thy  brother.  But  if  he  will  not  hear,  take  vrith  thee  one  or  two 
more,  that  by  the  testimony  of  two  or  three  witnesses,  every  thing  may 
be  ascertained.  But  if  he  disregard  them,  communicate  it  to  the  reli- 
gious assembly,  and  then,  if  he  disregard  that  assembly,  let  him  be  to 
thee  as  a  pagan  and  an  extortioner.  Indeed,  I  announce  to  you,  that 
whatever  you  determine  on  earth,  shall  be  confirmed  in  heaven ;  and 
whatever  you  remit  on  earth,  shall  be  absolved  in  heaven. 

Again,  I  assure  you,  that  if  two  of  you  on  earth  shall  concur,  in  rela- 
tion to  any  thing  which  they  shall  request,  it  will  be  performed  for 
them,  by  my  Father  who  is  in  heaven.  For  where  two  or  three  are  as- 
sembled in  my  name,  I  am  there  in  the  midst  of  them. 

Then  Peter,  approaching  him,  inquired.  Master,  if  my  brother  repeat- 
edly trespass  againt  me,  how  often  must  I  forgive  him  1  Must  I,  seven 
times  ?  Jesus  replied,  I  say  to  you.  Not  only  seven  times  ;  but  even 
seventy  times  seven.  In  this,  the  administration  of  heaven  may  be  com- 
pared to  a  certain  king,  who  determined  to  settle  his  accounts  with  his 
public  servants.  Now,  when  he  began  to  compute,  one  debtor  was 
brought  to  him,  who  owed  him  ten  thousand  talents.  But  as  that  ser- 
vant could  not  refund,  his  master,  to  obtain  payment,  commanded  that 
he  and  his  wife  and  children,  and  all  that  he  possessed,  should  be  sold. 
Then  the  servant,  throwing  himself  prostrate  before  his  master,  thus 
humbly  entreated ;  My  master,  grant  me  indulgence,  and  I  will  pay  the 
whole.  And  the  master  of  that  servant  was  melted  with  compassion, 
9 


66  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

and  discliarged  him,  and  surrendered  to  him  the  debt.  But  that  servant 
withdrew,  found  one  of  his  fellow-servants,  who  owed  him  a  hundred 
denarii  ;  and  seizing  him  by  the  throat,  demanded.  Pay  me  what  you 
owe.  And  his  fellow-servant,  falling  at  his  feet,  thus  entreated  him  ; 
Be  indulgent  with  me,  and  I  will  pay  you.  But  he  refused ;  and  de- 
parting, committed  him  to  prison,  till  he  should  pay  the  debt.  Now,  his 
fellow-servants,  perceiving  what  was  done,  were  deeply  afflicted,  and 
repairing  to  their  master,  disclosed  the  whole  transaction.  Then  his 
master,  having  called  him,  said  to  him.  Iniquitous  servant,  I  acquitted 
you  from  all  that  debt,  because  you  implored  me.  Did  it  not  become 
you,  also,  to  compassionate  your  fellow-servant,  even  as  I  commiserated 
you  1  And  his  master  was  incensed,  and  deUvered  him  to  the  goalers, 
till  he  should  pay  all  that  was  due  to  him.  And  thus  will  my  celestial 
Father  treat  every  one  of  you,  who  does  not,  from  the  heart,  forgive  his 
brother. 

And  it  happened,  when  Jesus  had  closed  these  remarks,  that  he  de- 
parted from  GaUlee,  and  entered  the  confines  of  Judea,  near  the  Jordan. 
And  many  people  followed  him,  and  he  healed  their  sick. 

Then  some  of  the  pharisees  resorted  to  him,  and  trying  him,  asked,  Is 
it  lawfiil  for  a  man  to  divorce  his  wife  for  every  fault  1  And  he  said  to 
them,  in  reply.  Have  you  not  read,  that  at  the  beginning,  when  the 
Creator  made  man,  he  formed  a  male  and  a  female,  and  declared,  For 
this  cause,  let  a  man  relinquish  father  and  mother,  and  adhere  to  his 
wife  ;  and  they  two  shall  be  one  person  1  In  truth,  they  are  no  longer 
two,  but  one  person.  What  God,  therefore,  has  united,  let  not  man 
disjoin.  They  said  to  him.  Why  then  did  Moses  command  to  issue  a 
precept  of  divorce,  and  dismiss  her  1  He  repUed  to  them,  Moses,  in- 
deed, permitted  you  to  divorce  your  wives,  on  account  of  your  intract- 
able disposition  ;  however,  it  was  not  thus  from  the  beginning.  But  I 
say  to  you,  that  whoever  shall  repudiate  his  wife,  except  for  inconti- 
nence, and  shall  marry  another,  is  an  adulterer  ;  and  whoever  shall 
marry  her  that  is  repudiated,  is  an  adulterer.  His  disciples  said  to  him. 
If  such  be  the  situation  of  a  husband,  in  relation  to  his  wife,  it  is  inex- 
pedient to  marry.  But  he  remarked  to  them,  They  alone  are  capable 
of  living  thus,  on  whom  the  power  is  conferred.  For  there  are  persons 
of  subdued  desire  by  natural  constitution ;  and  there  are  those,  who 
were  rendered  impotent  by  men  ;  and  there  are  others,  who  have  prac- 
tised self-restraint,  in  the  cause  of  the  kingdom  of  heaven.  Let  him 
perform  this  part,  who  is  able  to  do  it. 

They  then  presented  to  him  young  children,  that  he  might  place  his 
hands  on  them,  and  pray  [for  them]  ;  and  the  disciples  reproved  [those 
who  brought]  them.  But  Jesus  said.  Permit  the  little  children  to  come 
to  me,  and  not  prohibit  them ;  for  of  such  is  the  kingdom  of  heaven. 
And  having  put  his  hands  on  them,  he  departed  thence. 

And  behold,  one  approaching,  said  to  him,  Excellent  Teacher,  what 
laudable  thing  shall  I  perform,  that  I  may  possess  eternal  life  ?     And 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  67 

he  said  to  him,  why  do  you  denominate  me  excellent  1  There  is  none 
excellent,  but  the  one  God.  If,  however,  you  are  disposed  to  enter  that 
life,  keep  the  commandments.  He  asked  him,  Which  1  and  Jesus  thus 
answered,  Thou  shalt  not  commit  murder  ;  thou  shalt  not  commit 
adultery  ;  thou  shalt  not  steal ;  thou  shalt  not  testify  falsely ;  honor  thy 
father  and  mother ;  and  thou  shalt  love  thy  neighbor  as  thyself.  The 
young  man  said  to  him.  All  these  injunctions  I  have  obeyed  from  my 
childhood ;  what  do  I  further  want  ?  Jesus  replied  to  him,  If  you  would 
be  perfect,  go,  sell  your  property,  and  distribute  to  the  poor,  and  you 
shall  have  treasure  in  heaven ;  and  come,  follow  me.  And  the  young 
man,  having  heard  this  proposal,  departed  disconsolate  ;  for  he  had  ex- 
tensive possessions. 

Jesus  then  said  to  his  disciples,  I  assure  you,  that  it  will  be  difficult 
for  a  rich  man  to  enter  the  kingdom  of  heaven.  And  I  further  state  to 
you,  that  it  is  easier  for  a  camel  to  pass  through  the  eye  of  a  needle, 
than  for  a  rich  man  to  enter  the  kingdom  of  God.  When  his  disciples 
heard  it,  they  were  greatly  astonished,  saying.  Who  then  can  be  saved  1 
But  Jesus,  taking  notice,  said  to  them.  With  men  this  is  impracticable ; 
but  with  God  all  things  are  practicable. 

Peter  then  said  to  him,  in  return.  Behold,  we  have  abandoned  all, 
and  followed  thee  ;  what  reward  shall  we  therefore  obtain  ?  And  Jesus 
remarked  to  them,  In  truth  I  declare  to  you,  that  as  for  you  who  have 
followed  me,  in  the  renewed  existence,  when  the  Son  of  Man  shall 
sit  on  his  glorious  throne,  you  will  also  sit  on  twelve  thrones,  presiding 
over  the  twelve  tribes  of  Israel.  And  every  one  who  has  relinquished 
houses,  or  brothers,  or  sisters,  or  father,  or  mother,  or  wife,  or  children, 
or  lauds,  on  account  of  my  name,  will  receive  a  hundred  fold,  and  in- 
herit eternal  life. 

Moreover,  many  shall  be  first,  that  are  last ;  and  last,  that  are  first. 
For  the  administration  of  heaven  will  resemble  the  conduct  of  the  master 
of  a  family,  who  went  out  at  the  dawn  of  day,  to  hire  laborers  for  his 
vineyard.  And  having  contracted  with  some  laborers  for  a  denarius  a 
day,  he  sent  them  into  his  vineyard.  And  going  out  about  the  third 
hour,  he  saw  others  standing  unemployed  in  the  market-place,  and  said 
to  them.  Go  also  into  the  vineyard,  and  whatever  is  reasonable,  I  will 
give  you  ;  and  they  went.  Further,  having  gone  out  about  the  sixth, 
and  ninth  hour,  he  did  in  like  manner.  And  going  out  about  the  elev- 
enth hour,  he  found  others  unemployed,  and  inquired  of  them.  Why  do 
you  remain  here,  all  the  day,  idle  1  They  reply  to  him,  Because  no 
man  has  hired  us.  He  says  to  them.  Go  also  into  the  vineyard,  and 
whatever  is  reasonable,  you  shall  receive.  And  when  it  was  night,  the 
proprietor  of  the  vineyard  said  to  his  steward.  Call  the  laborers,  and 
give  them  their  recompense,  from  the  last,  regularly,  to  the  first.  And 
they  who  came  about  the  eleventh  hour,  received,  each  one,  a  denarius. 
But  those  who  came  first,  expected  that  they  should  receive  more  ;  and 
they  also  received,  individually,  a  denarius.     Yet,  on  receiving  it,  they 


68  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

murmured  against  the  master  of  the  house,  alleging,  These  last  have 
toiled  but  one  hour,  and  you  have  made  them  equal  to  us,  who  have  en- 
dured the  burden  and  heat  of  the  day.  But  he  answering,  said  to  one 
of  them.  Friend,  I  have  not  injured  you ;  did  you  not  contract  with  me 
for  a  denarius  1  Take  what  is  yours,  and  depart ;  I  will  give  to  this 
last,  even  as  to  you.  Is  it  not  lawful  for  me  to  do  what  I  please  with 
my  own  ?  Is  your  eye  envious,  because  I  am  liberal  1  Thus  the  last 
shall  be  first,  and  the  first  last ;  for  there  are  many  called,  but  few 
chosen. 

And  Jesus,  travelUng  to  Jerusalem  with  the  twelve  disciples,  private- 
ly on  the  road  announced  to  them.  Behold,  we  proceed  to  Jerusa- 
lem ;  and  the  Son  of  man  will  be  deUvered  to  the  chief  priests  and 
scribes,  and  they  will  condemn  him  to  death,  and  will  dehver  him  to  the 
Gentiles,  to  be  derided,  and  scourged,  and  crucified ;  and  on  the  third 
day,  he  will  return  to  Ufe. 

Then  the  mother  of  Zebedee's  children  came  to  him  with  her  sons, 
and  prostrating  herself,  entreated  that  he  would  grant  her  request. 
And  he  said  to  her.  What  do  you  wish  ?  She  replied  to  him,  Command, 
that  in  thy  kingdom,  one  of  these  my  two  sons  shall  sit  at  thy  right 
hand,  and  the  other  at  thy  left.  But  Jesus  observed,  in  reply.  You 
know  not  what  you  request.  Can  you  partake  of  the  cup,  which  I  shall 
drink  ?  They  answered  him.  We  can.  And  he  aflirmed  to  them.  You 
will,  indeed,  drink  such  a  cup  ;  but  to  sit  on  my  right  hand,  and  on  my 
left,  is  not  mine  to  impart,  except  to  those,  for  whom  it  is  prepared  by 
my  Father. 

And  the  ten,  hearing  it,  were  indignant  against  the  two  brothers. 
But  Jesus,  having  called  them,  remarked,  You  are  apprised,  that  the 
princes  of  the  Gentiles  tyrannised  over  the  people,  and  the  great  exer- 
cised arbitrary  power  over  them.  It  must  not  be  thus  among  you  ;  but 
he  who  is  disposed  to  be  illustrious  among  you,  let  him  be  your  assistant ; 
and  he  who  is  ambitious  to  be  most  distinguished  among  you,  let  him 
become  your  servant :  in  the  same  manner,  as  the  Son  of  Man  did  not 
come  to  be  served,  but  to  render  service,  and  to  ofier  his  life  a  ransom 
for  many. 

And  as  they  departed  from  Jericho,  numerous  people  followed  him. 
And  behold,  two  blind  men,  seated  by  the  road,  having  heard  that  Jesus 
was  passing,  exclaimed,  saying.  Master,  Son  of  David,  have  pity  on  us  ! 
And  the  multitude  reproved  them,  that  they  might  be  kept  silent ;  but 
they  exclaimed  the  more  vehemently,  saying,  Master,  Son  of  David, 
have  pity  on  us  !  And  Jesus  pausing,  called  them,  and  inquired.  What 
do  you  wish  that  I  would  do  for  you  ?  They  answered  him.  Sir,  that 
thou  wouldst  open  our  eyes.  And  Jesus,  being  moved  with  tender  com- 
passion, touched  their  eyes  ;  and  their  sight  was  instantly  restored,  and 
they  followed  him. 

And  when  they  approached  Jerusalem,  and  arrived  at  Bethphage,  on 
the  mount  of  Olives,  Jesus  sent  two  disciples,  saying  to  them.  Go  to  the 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  69 

village  opposite  to  you,  and  you  wUl  immediately  find  an  ass  fastened, 
and  a  colt  with  her  ;  loose  them,  and  lead  them  to  me.  And  if  any  one 
questions  you,  reply,  that  the  Lord  wants  them  ;  and  he  will  promptly 
send  them.  All  this  was  performed,  in  accordance  with  the  following 
declaration  of  the  prophet ;  Proclaim  to  the  daughter  of  Zion,  behold, 
your  king  comes  to  you,  meek,  sitting  on  an  ass,  (namely,  the  colt  of  a 
laboring  beast).  And  the  disciples  departed,  and  did  as  Jesus  directed 
them,  and  brought  the  ass  and  the  colt,  and  put  their  garments  on  them; 
and  they  placed  him  upon  the  colt.  And  a  very  great  multitude  spread 
their  vestments  in  the  road ;  and  others  cut  branches  from  the  trees, 
and  scattered  them  in  the  road.  And  the  crowds  of  people  preceding, 
and  those  that  followed,  exclaimed,  saying,  Hosanna  to  the  Son  of 
David !  Blessed  is  he  who  comes  in  the  name  of  the  Lord !  Hosanna 
in  the  highest  heaven !  And  as  he  entered  Jerusalem,  the  whole  city 
was  in  commotion,  asking.  Who  is  this  1  And  the  multitude  answered, 
This  is  Jesus,  that  prophet,  who  is  from  Nazareth  in  Galilee. 

And  Jesus  entered  the  temple  of  God,  and  expelled  all  those  who 
were  vending  and  purchasing  in  the  temple,  and  overturned  the  tables  of 
the  bankers,  and  the  seats  of  those  who  sold  doves  ;  and  proclaimed  to 
them.  It  is  written,  My  house  shall  be  denominated  a  house  of  prayer ; 
but  you  have  rendered  it  a  den  of  robbers.  And  the  blind  and  lame 
came  to  him  in  the  temple,  and  he  healed  them.  And  the  chief  priests 
and  the  teachers  of  the  law,  viewing  the  wonderfiil  things  which  he 
accomplished,  and  the  children  exclaiming  in  the  temple,  and  saying, 
Hosanna  to  the  Son  of  David !  were  exasperated,  and  thus  questioned 
him.  Dost  thou  hear  what  these  proclaim  ?  and  Jesus  rephes  to  them. 
Yes;  have  you  never  read,  that  from  the  mouth  of  infants  and  nurslings, 
thou  hast  consummated  praise  1  And  leaving  them,  he  departed  from 
the  city  to  Bethany  ;  and  passed  the  night  there. 

Moreover,  in  the  morning,  as  he  was  returning  to  the  city,  he  was 
hungry ;  and  seeing  a  fig-tree  by  the  side  of  the  road,  he  came  to  it, 
and  found  nothing  on  it  except  leaves  ;  and  he  says  to  it.  Let  there  be, 
from  this  time,  no  fruit  on  thee,  forever  !  and  the  fig-tree  instantly  with- 
ered. And  the  disciples,  perceiving  it,  were  astonished,  exclaiming. 
How  suddenly  is  the  fig-tree  bUghted  !  But  Jesus  answered  and  said  to 
them,  I  assure  you,  if  you  have  an  unshaken  faith,  you  will  not  only 
perform  this  miracle  of  the  fig-tree  ;  but  also,  if  you  should  say  to  this 
mountain.  Be  extirpated,  and  cast  into  the  sea,  it  will  be  efiiected.  And 
whatever  you  shall  implore  in  prayer,  duly  confiding,  you  will  receive. 

He  entered  the  temple,  and  as  he  was  instructing,  the  chief  priests 
and  the  rulers  of  the  people  came  to  him,  inquiring.  By  what  authority 
dost  thou  perform  these  things  1  and  who  empowered  thee  ?  And  Jesus 
answering,  said  to  them,  I  will  also  ask  you  one  question,  to  which,  if 
you  will  answer  me,  I  likewise  will  inform  you,  by  what  authority  I  do 
these  things.  Whence  was  the  baptism  of  John  ?  was  it  from  God,  or 
from  men  7     And  they  thus  surmised  among  themselves.  If  we  reply, 


70  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

From  God ;  he  will  rejoin  to  us,  Why  then  did  you  not  believe  him  1 
And  if  we  answer,  From  men,  we  are  afraid  of  the  people  ;  for  all  re- 
gard John  as  a  prophet.  And  they  said  to  Jesus,  in  reply,  We  do  not 
know.  And  he  declared  to  them,  Neither  do  I  communicate  to  you  the 
authority,  by  which  I  perform  these  things. 

Aside  from  this,  what  is  your  impression  1  A  man  had  two  sons ;  and 
coming  to  the  first,  he  said.  Son,  go  and  work  to-day,  in  my  vineyard. 
But  he  replying,  declared,  I  will  not ;  subsequently  repenting,  however, 
he  went.  And  coming  to  the  other,  he  similarly  addressed  him.  And 
he,  in  answer,  aifirmed,  I  will  comply.  Sir,  but  did  not  go.  Which  of 
these  two  accomplished  the  will  of  his  father  1  They  say  to  him.  The 
first.  Jesus  said  to  them,  I  assure  you,  that  the  public  exactors  and  the 
courtesans  precede  you  to  the  kingdom  of  God.  For  John  came  to  you 
in  a  way  of  righteousness,  and  you  trusted  him  not ;  but  the  pubUc 
exactors  and  the  courtesans  confided  in  him  :  and  when  you  saw  this, 
you  did  not  afterwards  repent,  and  believe  him. 

Hear  another  parable.  A  certain  man,  who  was  master  of  a  family, 
planted  a  vineyard,  and  placed  a  hedge  around  it,  and  dug  a  wine-vat 
in  it,  and  erected  a  tower,  and  having  leased  it  to  husbandmen,  travelled 
to  foreign  parts.  And  when  the  vintage  approached,  he  sent  his  ser- 
vants to  the  husbandmen,  to  receive  its  productions.  And  the  tenants, 
seizing  them,  excessively  scourged  one,  and  drove  away  another  with 
stones,  and  murdered  another.  Again,  he  sent  other  servants,  more 
honorable  than  the  first,  and  they  treated  them  in  a  similar  way.  And 
he  finally  sent  to  them  his  son,  saying.  They  will  reverence  my  son. 
But  the  occupants,  seeing  the  son,  said  among  themselves.  This  is  the 
heir  ;  come,  let  us  kill  him,  and  forcibly  detain  his  inheritance.  And 
taking  him,  they  cast  him  from  the  vineyard  and  slew  him.  When, 
therefore,  the  proprietor  of  the  vineyard  returns,  what  will  he  do  to 
those  occupants  ?  They  reply  to  him.  He  will  dreadfiiUy  destroy  those 
iniquitous  men,  and  will  lease  the  vineyard  to  other  cultivators,  who 
vnll  render  him  the  fruits  in  their  seasons. 

Jesus  says  to  them.  Have  you  never  read  in  the  scriptures,  A  stone, 
which  the  builders  rejected,  the  same  is  constituted  the  headstone  of  the 
corner  1  This  was  the  operation  of  the  Lord,  and  it  is  astonishing  in 
our  sight  1  Whoever  shall  fall  on  this  stone,  will  be  broken  ;  and  him, 
on  whom  it  shall  fall,  it  will  crush  to  pieces.  For  this  cause,  I  assert 
to  you,  that  the  kingdom  of  God  will  be  taken  from  you,  and  given  to 
the  Gentiles,  who  will  produce  the  fruits  thereof. 

And  the  chief  priests  and  the  pharisees,  listening  to  his  parables,  per- 
ceived that  he  alluded  to  them ;  and  were  desirous  to  arrest  him,  but 
they  feared  the  people,  for  they  esteemed  him  as  a  prophet. 

Jesus  proceeded,  and  fiirther  addressed  them  in  parables,  remarking, 
The  kingdom  of  heaven  may  be  assimilated  to  a  certain  king,  who  pre- 
pared a  marriage-feast  for  his  son.  And  he  sent  his  servants  to  call 
those,  who  had  been  invited  to  the  marriage,  and  they  refiised  to  come. 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  71 

Again,  he  sent  other  servants,  saying.  Inform  those  who  have  been 
invited,  behold,  I  have  prepared  my  dinner  ;  my  oxen  and  fattened 
sheep  are  slaughtered,  and  all  is  ready  ;  come  to  the  festival.  But 
they,  disregarding  it,  departed,  one  to  his  farm,  and  another  to  his  mer- 
chandise. And  the  rest  of  them  seized  his  servants,  insulted,  and  slew 
them.  But  the  king  himself,  hearing  of  it,  was  indignant,  and  sending 
his  military  bands,  destroyed  those  murderers,  and  burned  their  city. 
He  then  says  to  his  servants,  the  entertainment  is  indeed  prepared,  but 
they  who  have  been  invited,  were  unworthy.  Go,  therefore,  to  the  in- 
tersections of  the  roads,  and  as  many  as  you  find,  invite  to  the  mar- 
riage. And  those  servants  went  to  the  public  ways,  and  assembled  all 
that  they  met,  the  evil  as  well  as  the  good  ;  and  the  hall  was  furnished 
with  guests.  Now  the  king,  entering  to  view  the  guests,  discovered  there 
a  man  not  clad  in  a  marriage-garment ;  and  he  says  to  him.  Companion, 
how  came  you  here,  not  having  a  marriage-garment  ?  But  he  was 
silent.  The  liing  then  said  to  his  inferior  officers.  Bind  his  hands  and 
feet ;  take  him,  and  consign  him  to  the  outward  darkness,  where  will  be 
weeping  and  gnashing  of  teeth.  For  there  are  many  invited,  but  few 
selected. 

At  that  time,  the  pharisees  withdrawing,  consulted  how  they  might 
ensnare  him  in  discussion.  And  they  sent  to  him  their  disciples,  with 
the  Herodians,  saying.  Teacher,  we  are  conscious  that  thou  art  true, 
and  teachest  the  way  of  God  in  fidelity,  and  dost  not  partially  regard 
any  one  ;  for  thou  lookest  not  to  the  appearance  of  men  ;  inform  us, 
therefore,  what  is  thy  sentiment  7  Is  it  lawfiil  to  render  tribute  to  Cesar, 
or  not  1  But  Jesus,  perceiving  their  iniquity,  said.  Why  would  you  en- 
tangle me,  dissemblers  ?  Present  me  the  tribute-money.  And  they 
reached  him  a  denariyis.  And  he  inquires  of  them.  Whose  representa- 
tion and  inscription  is  this  ?  They  reply  to  him,  Cesar's.  He  then 
rejoins  to  them.  Restore,  therefore,  to  Cesar,  what  belongs  to  Cesar ; 
and  to  God,  the  things  of  God.  And  having  heard  this,  they  were  con- 
founded ;  and  leaving  him,  they  departed. 

On  that  day,  the  sadducees,  who  deny  a  future  state,  came  to  him, 
and  said.  Teacher,  Moses  commanded,  that  if  any  man  should  decease, 
without  offspring,  his  brother  shall  marry  his  widow,  and  raise  posterity 
to  the  deceased.  Now,  there  were  with  us  seven  brothers  ;  and  the 
first,  marrying,  died ;  and  not  having  children,  left  his  wife  to  his  broth- 
er ;  and  likewise  the  second,  and  the  third,  even  to  the  seventh ;  and 
last  of  all,  the  woman  also  died.  In  the  fiiture  life,  therefore,  whose 
wife  of  the  seven  will  she  be  ?  for  they  all  married  her.  And  Jesus 
replying,  observed  to  them.  You  are  deceived,  not  knowing  the  scrip- 
tures, nor  the  miraculous  power  of  God.  For  in  the  fiiture  life,  they 
neither  mai-ry,  nor  are  pledged  in  marriage,  but  are  as  the  celestial 
messengers  of  God.  Have  you  not,  however,  read  that  which  was 
spoken  to  you  by  God,  respecting  the  future  existence  of  those  who 
are  dead,  saying,  I  am  the  God  of  Abraham,  and  the  God  of  Isaac, 


72  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

and  the  God  of  Jacob  ?  God  is  not  a  God  of  the  dead,  but  of  the 
living.  And  the  people,  having  heard  this,  were  astonished  at  his 
doctrine. 

The  pharisees,  therefore,  being  apprised  that  he  had  silenced  the  sad- 
ducees,  convened  for  the  same  purpose.  And  one  of  them,  a  teacher  of 
the  law,  questioned  him,  endeavoring  to  confound  him,  and  said,  Teach- 
er, which  is  the  great  commandment  in  the  law  ?  And  Jesus  replied  to 
him.  Thou  shalt  love  the  Lord  thy  God  with  all  thy  heart,  and  with  all 
thy  soul,  and  with  all  thy  mind.  This  is  the  first  and  great  command- 
ment. And  the  second  is  similar  to  it,  Thou  shalt  love  thy  neighbor 
as  thyself.  On  these  two  commandments,  rest  the  entire  law  and  the 
prophets. 

And  while  the  pharisees  were  assembled,  Jesus  thus  questioned  them. 
What  are  your  views  relative  to  the  Messiah  ?  whose  son  should  he  be  ? 
They  answer  him.  The  son  of  David.  He  says  to  them.  How  then  does 
David,  by  inspiration,  call  him  his  Lord ;  saying,  Jehovah  said  to  my 
Lord,  Sit  thou  at  my  right  hand,  till  I  make  thy  foes  thy  footstool  7  If 
the  Messiah  were  David's  son,  would  David  call  him  his  Lord  1  And 
to  this  no  one  could  answer  him  ;  nor  did  any  one  from  that  time,  pre- 
sume further  to  question  him. 

Jesus  then  addressed  the  people  and  his  disciples,  saying,  The  scribes 
and  the  pharisees  continue  to  occupy  the  chair  of  Moses  ;  therefore, 
attentively  regard  and  practice  all  that  they  have  commanded  you,  yet 
follow  not  their  example  ;  since  they  profess,  but  do  not  perform.  For 
they  prepare  heavy  and  insupportable  burdens,  for  other  men's  shoul- 
ders, burdens  to  which  they  themselves  will  not  put  a  finger.  And  they 
perform  all  their  works  to  be  observed  by  men :  For  this  purpose,  they 
extend  the  breadth  of  their  scrolls,  and  enlarge  the  fringes  of  their 
garments,  and  love  the  most  exalted  positions  at  festivals,  and  the  prin- 
cipal seats  in  the  synagogues,  and  salutations  in  the  public  places  ;  and 
to  be  denominated  by  men.  Teacher,  Teacher.  But  as  for  you,  assume 
not  the  title  of  teacher,  since  you  have  only  one  Teacher.  And  style  no 
man  on  the  earth  your  father,  for  he  alone  is  your  Father,  who  is  in 
heaven  ;  and  all  of  you  are  brothers  :  nor  be  entitled  guides  ;  because 
you  have  only  one  Guide,  the  Messiah.  But  let  the  most  eminent 
among  you,  become  your  spiritual  servant :  for  he  who  elevates  himself, 
will  be  abased  ;  and  he  who  humbles  himself,  will  be  exalted. 

But,  alas  for  you,  scribes  and  pharisees,  dissemblers  !  for  you  plunder 
the  mansions  of  widows,  and  indeed,  for  a  disguise,  make  long  prayers  ; 
therefore,  you  shall  receive  a  more  severe  chastisement. 

Alas  for  you,  scribes  and  pharisees,  dissemblers  !  for  you  preclude 
men  from  the  kingdom  of  heaven  ;  since  you  neither  enter,  nor  permit 
those  who  are  approaching,  to  enter.  Alas  for  you,  scribes  and  phari- 
sees, dissemblers  !  because  you  encompass  sea  and  land  to  make  one 
proselyte,  and  when  he  is  gained,  you  render  him  a  more  deceitful  son 
of  gehenna  than  yourselves. 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  73 

Alas  for  you,  blind  guides  !  that  say,  He  who  shall  make  oath  only 
by  the  temple,  it  is  not  obligatory ;  but  he,  who  shall  make  oath  by  the 
gold  of  the  temple,  is  bound.  Foohsh  and  blind  !  for  which  is  more  sa- 
cred, the  gold,  or  the  temple  consecrating  the  gold  ?  And  he,  who  shall 
make  oath  only  by  the  altar,  it  is  of  no  validity ;  but  he,  who  shall  make 
oath  by  the  offering  that  is  upon  it,  is  under  obUgation.  Void  of  under- 
standing and  perception  !  for,  which  is  more  sacred,  the  sacrifice,  or  the 
altar  that  consecrates  the  sacrifice.  Whoever,  therefore,  shall  swear 
by  the  altar,  makes  oath  by  it,  and  by  all  things  on  it ;  and  whoever 
shall  swear  by  the  temple,  makes  oath  by  it,  and  by  him  who  dwelt 
therein  ;  and  whoever  shall  swear  by  heaven,  makes  oath  by  the  throne 
of  God,  and  by  him  who  sits  thereon. 

Alas  for  you,  scribes  and  pharisees,  dissemblers  !  for  you  pay  the 
tithe  of  mint,  and  dill,  and  cummin,  but  have  neglected  the  more  impor- 
tant institutes  of  the  law, — justice,  mercy,  and  fideUty.  You  ought,  in- 
deed, to  have  practised  these,  and  not  omitted  those.  BUnd  conductors, 
who  filter  out  the  gnat,  yet  swallow  a  camel ! 

Alas  for  you,  scribes  and  pharisees,  dissemblers !  since  you  purify  the 
exterior  of  the  cup  and  the  dish,  but  within,  they  are  replete  with  rapine 
and  injustice.  Blind  pharisee  !  first  cleanse  the  interior  of  the  cup  and 
dish,  that  the  external  part  may  hkewise  become  pure. 

Alas  for  you,  scribes  and  pharisees,  dissemblers !  because  you  are 
precisely  like  whitened  tombs,  which  indeed  appear,  outwardly,  beauti- 
ful ;  but  within,  are  full  of  the  bones  of  the  dead,  and  of  all  impurity. 
Thus  also  you,  in  fact,  externally  appear  righteous  to  men  ;  but  inter- 
nally, you  are  fraught  with  deception  and  dishonesty. 

Alas  for  you,  scribes  and  pharisees,  dissemblers  !  since  you  build  the 
sepulchres  of  the  prophets,  and  adorn  the  monuments  of  the  just,  and 
thus  protest.  If  we  had  existed  in  the  days  of  our  fathers,  we  would  not 
have  been  their  confederates,  in  the  murder  of  the  prophets.  You  thus 
testify  against  yourselves,  that  you  are  the  sons  of  those  who  murdered 
the  prophets.  And  you  will  accomplish  the  measure  of  your  fathers. 
Serpents,  offspring  of  vipers  !  how  can  you,  for  this,  escape  the  punish- 
ment of  gehenna  1 

Behold,  I  send  to  you  prophets,  and  wise  men,  and  instructers  ;  and 
some  of  them  you  will  kill  and  crucify  ;  and  others  you  will  scourge  in 
your  synagogues,  and  banish  from  city  to  city ;  so  that  all  the  innocent 
blood,  which  has  been  shed  in  the  land,  may  react  upon  you,  from  the 
blood  of  Abel  the  just,  to  the  blood  of  Zechariah,  the  son  Barachiah, 
whom  you  murdered  between  the  sanctuary  and  the  altar.  In  truth,  I 
allege  to  you,  that  all  these  things  will  befall  this  race  of  men. 

O  Jerusalem,  Jerusalem,  that  destroyest  the  prophets,  and  stonest 
those  sent  to  thyself,  how  frequently  have  I  wished  to  assemble  thy  chil- 
dren, even  as  a  bird  collects  her  young  under  her  wings,  but  ye  refiised ! 
Behold,  your  temple  will  be  left  to  you  desolate !     For  I  announce  to 
10 


74  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

you,  that  you  shall  not  see  me  from  this  time,  till  you  proclaim.  Blessed 
is  he,  who  appears  in  the  name  of  the  Lord  ! 

And  Jesus,  having  retired,  was  departing  from  the  temple ;  and  his 
disciples  came  to  him,  to  show  him  the  edifices  of  the  temple.  Then 
Jesus  said  to  them.  View  all  these  things  !  I  assure  you,  that  not  a 
stone  shall  here  be  left  on  another :  —  all  shall  be  overthrown. 

Now,  as  he  was  on  the  mount  of  Olives,  the  disciples  approached  him 
privately,  saying.  Disclose  to  us,  when  will  this  happen  1  and  what 
will  be  the  sign  of  thy  arrival,  and  of  the  conclusion  of  this  state  ?  And 
Jesus,  replying  to  them,  remarked.  Beware  that  no  one  delude  you :  for 
many  will  assume  my  character,  individually  affirming,  I  am  the  Messi- 
ah, and  will  deceive  many.  And  you  will  in  future  hear  of  wars,  and 
reports  of  wars  :  take  the  precaution,  however,  not  to  be  dismayed  ;  for 
all  these  things  must  occur,  but  the  end  is  protracted. 

Moreover,  nation  will  be  excited  against  nation,  and  kingdom  against 
kingdom  ;  and  there  will  be  famines,  and  pestilences,  and  earthquakes, 
in  various  places.  All  these  are  only  the  introduction  to  calamities. 
They  will  then  deliver  you  up  to  affliction,  and  will  destroy  you  ;  and 
you  will  be  detested  by  all  nations,  on  account  of  my  name.  And  sub- 
sequently, many  will  be  ensnared,  and  will  betray  their  associates,  and 
abhor  them.  And  numerous  false  prophets  will  arise,  and  will  seduce 
many.  And  because  vice  will  abound,  the  love  of  the  greater  number 
will  become  cold.  But  he,  who  perseveres  to  the  end,  will  be  preserved. 
And  this  joyftd  intelligence  of  the  kingdom  of  God  will  be  promulgated 
in  all  the  habitable  earth,  for  a  testimony  to  all  nations  ;  and  then  the 
end  will  arrive. 

When  therefore,  you  shall  see  stationed  on  sacred  ground,  that  de- 
structive abomination,  as  is  affirmed  by  Daniel  the  prophet,  (Reader 
attend  !)  then  let  those,  who  are  in  Judea,  escape  to  the  mountains  ;  let 
not  him,  that  is  on  the  roof,  descend  to  take  the  things  from  his  house  ; 
and  let  not  him,  who  is  in  the  field,  return  to  take  his  apparel.  But 
alas,  for  those  who  are  in  gestation,  and  for  such  as  impart  nourishment 
in  those  days  !  Implore,  however,  that  your  flight  may  not  be  in  the 
winter,  nor  on  the  sabbath.  For  then,  there  will  be  great  adversity, 
such  as  never  happened  from  the  beginning  of  the  world  to  this  time, 
nor  indeed,  will  ever  occur.  And  unless  those  days  be  restricted,  no 
individual  could  survive  ;  but  on  account  of  the  chosen,  that  period  will 
be  limited. 

Then,  if  any  one  shall  say  to  you.  Behold,  here  is  the  Messiah,  or 
there  ;  do  not  confide  in  it :  because  false  messiahs  and  false  prophets 
wUl  arise,  and  display  great  signs  and  prodigies,  that  if  possible,  they 
would  delude  even  the  chosen.  Recollect,  I  have  premonished  you.  If 
therefore,  they  should  state  to  you.  Behold,  he  is  in  the  desert ;  depart 
not :  or  behold,  he  is  in  private  apartments  ;  do  not  rely  upon  it.  For 
as  the  lightning  emerges  from  the  east,  and  exhibits  a  lustre  even  to  the 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  75 

west ;  thus  will  be  the  appearance  of  the  Son  of  Man.     For  where  the 
dead  carcass  is,  there  the  eagles  will  be  collected. 

Immediately  consequent  to  the  affliction  of  those  days,  the  sun  will  be 
obscured,  and  the  moon  will  not  diffuse  her  light,  and  the  stars  will  fall 
from  heaven,  and  the  celestial  powers  will  be  shaken.  And  the  sign  of 
the  Son  of  Man  will  then  appear  in  heaven  ;  and  then  all  the  tribes  of 
the  land  will  mourn,  and  will  see  the  Son  of  Man  coming  in  the  clouds 
of  heaven,  with  power  and  great  glory.  And  he  will  send  his  messen- 
gers with  a  loud-sounding  trumpet,  and  they  wiU  assemble  his  chosen 
from  the  four  winds,  from  one  extremity  of  the  firmament  to  the  other. 

Moreover,  attend  to  this  illustration  from  the  fig-tree.  When  its 
branch  is  yet  tender,  and  puts  forth  leaves,  you  are  aware  that  summer 
is  near.  And  thus,  when  you  shall  perceive  all  these  things,  understand 
that  he  is  near,  even  at  the  doors.  I  indeed  allege  to  you,  that  this  race 
will  not  pass  away,  till  all  these  events  have  occurred.  Heaven  and 
earth  may  disappear,  but  my  words  shall  be  perpetual. 

Besides,  no  man  knows  concerning  that  day  and  season,  nor  even  the 
heavenly  messengers,  but  the  Father  alone.  As,  therefore,  it  happened 
in  the  time  of  Noah,  so  it  will  also  happen  at  the  appearance  of  the  Son 
of  Man.  For  as,  in  the  antediluvian  period,  even  to  the  day  that  Noah 
entered  the  ark,  they  were  eating  and  drinking,  marrying,  and  pledging 
in  marriage,  and  considered  not,  till  the  deluge  came,  and  swept  them 
all  away ;  thus  will  it  also  be  at  the  return  of  the  Son  of  Man.  Two 
men  shall  then  be  in  the  field ;  one  will  be  seized,  and  the  other  will 
escape.  Two  women  shall  be  grinding  at  the  mill ;  one  will  be  taken, 
and  the  other  left. 

Be  vigilant,  therefore  ;  for  you  have  not  ascertained  at  what  time  your 
Lord  will  come.  But  you  know  this,  that  if  the  master  of  the  family  had 
known  at  what  hour  of  the  night  the  thief  would  come,  he  would  have 
watched,  and  not  permitted  his  house  to  be  invaded.  Therefore,  be  ye 
always  prepared  ;  since  at  an  hour  when  you  are  not  apprised,  the  Son 
of  Man  will  come.  Who,  indeed,  is  the  faithful  and  provident  servant, 
whom  his  master  has  appointed  over  his  household,  to  dispense  to  them 
food  in  due  season  1  Happy,  that  servant,  whom  his  master,  when  he 
arrives,  shall  find  thus  employed  !  In  truth,  I  declare  to  you,  that  he 
will  estabUsh  him  over  aU  his  possessions.  But  as  to  the  vicious  servant, 
who  shall  say  in  his  heart,  My  master  delays  to  come  ;  and  shall  begin 
to  beat  his  fellow-servants,  and  to  feast  and  carouse  with  the  intemper- 
ate ;  the  master  of  that  servant  will  come  in  a  day  when  he  does  not  ex- 
pect him,  and  at  an  hour  of  which  he  is  not  aware,  and  will  discard  him, 
and  assign  his  allotment  with  the  perfidious ;  there,  will  be  weeping  and 
gnashing  of  teeth. 

The  kingdom  of  heaven,  at  that  time,  may  be  compared  to  ten  virgins, 
who  having  taken  their  lamps,  departed  to  meet  a  bridegroom.  Now 
five  of  them  were  prudent,  and  five  were  careless.  Those  who  were 
careless,  took  their  lamps,  but  carried  no  oil  with  them.     The  prudent. 


76  APOSTOLIC   PRODUCTIONS. 

however,  besides  their  lamps,  took  oil  in  their  vessels.  And  as  the 
bridegroom  delayed,  they  all  slumbered,  and  fell  asleep.  But  at  mid- 
night, there  was  a  great  exclamation,  Behold,  the  bridegroom  comes, 
depart  to  meet  him  !  Then  all  those  virgins  arose,  and  decorated  their 
lamps.  And  the  careless  said  to  the  prudent.  Give  us  of  your  oil ;  for 
our  lamps  are  expiring.  But  the  prudent  replied,  saying.  Go  rather  to 
those  who  seU,  and  purchase  for  yourselves,  lest  there  should  not  be  suf- 
ficient for  us  and  you.  And  while  they  were  gone  to  buy,  the  bride- 
groom came  ;  and  they,  who  were  prepared,  entered  with  him  to  the 
marriage-feast ;  and  the  door  was  closed.  Afterwards,  the  other  virgins 
came  likewise,  saying.  Sir,  Sir,  open  it  for  us.  But  he  announced  in 
reply,  I  assure  you,  that  I  do  not  acknowledge  you.  Watch  therefore  ; 
for  you  are  not  conscious  of  the  day,  nor  the  hour. 

[My  arrival]  may,  therefore,  be  illustrated  by  a  man,  who  intending 
to  take  a  distant  journey,  called  his  own  servants,  and  delivered  to  them 
his  effects.  And  to  one  he  gave  five  talents,  and  to  another  two,  and  to 
another  one  ;  to  each,  according  to  his  respective  capacity,  and  imme- 
diately departed.  Then  he  who  had  received  the  five  talents,  went  and 
traded  with  them,  and  acquired  five  talents  more.  And  likewise  he, 
who  had  been  entrusted  with  the  two,  obtained  two  more.  But  he,  who 
had  received  one,  retired  and  dug  in  the  earth,  and  concealed  his  mas- 
ter's money.  And  after  a  considerable  time,  the  master  of  those  ser- 
vants returned  and  settled  with  them.  Then  he,  who  had  received  the 
five  talents,  came  and  presented  five  talents  more,  saying.  Sir,  you  de- 
livered to  me  five  talents,  observe,  I  have  added  to  them  five  other 
talents.  And  his  master  said  to  him,  Well-done,  good  and  provident 
servant !  you  was  faithful  in  a  limited  sphere,  I  will  give  you  a  more 
extensive  superintendence  ;  participate  in  the  happiness  of  your  master. 
He  also,  who  had  received  the  two  talents,  approached  and  said.  Sir, 
you  committed  to  me  two  talents,  observe,  I  have  gained  two  additional 
talents.  His  master  said  to  him.  Well-done,  good  and  prudent  servant ! 
you  have  been  faithfiil  in  a  small  degree,  I  will  place  you  in  a  more  im- 
portant station  ;  partake  in  the  felicity  of  your  master.  Then  also,  he 
who  had  received  the  single  talent,  advancing,  declared  ;  Sir,  I  knew 
you,  that  you  were  a  severe  man,  reaping  where  you  did  not  sow,  and 
gathering  where  you  had  not  scattered  :  and  being  terrified,  I  withdrew, 
and  hid  your  talent  in  the  ground  ;  recollect,  that  you  have  your  own. 
And  his  master  proclaimed  to  him  in  reply,  Mahcious  and  indolent  ser- 
vant, did  you  know  that  I  reap  where  I  did  not  sow,  and  gather  where  I 
have  not  scattered  ?  Ought  you  not  then,  to  have  deposited  my  money 
with  the  bankers,  that,  on  my  return,  I  might  have  received  it,  with  in- 
terest. Take  from  him,  therefore,  the  talent,  and  give  it  to  him,  who 
has  the  ten  talents  :  for  to  every  one,  who  attends  to  what  he  has,  shall  be 
imparted,  and  he  shall  be  in  afiluence  ;  but  he  who  neglects  it,  shall  be  di- 
vested even  of  that  which  he  possesses.  And  consign  the  unprofitable  ser- 
vant to  outward  darkness  ;  where  will  be  weeping  and  gnashing  of  teeth. 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  77 

Moreover,  when  the  Son  of  Man  shall  come  in  his  glory,  attended  by- 
all  the  angels,  and  shall  be  seated  on  his  glorious  throne  ;  then  all  the 
nations  shall  be  assembled  before  him  ;  and  he  will  separate  them  from 
each  other,  even  as  a  shepherd  separates  the  sheep  from  the  goats  ;  and 
he  will  place  the  sheep  at  his  right  hand,  but  the  goats  at  his  left. 

The  king  will  then  announce  to  those  on  his  right-hand.  Come,  bless- 
ed children  of  my  Father,  inherit  the  kingdom  prepared  for  you,  from 
the  formation  of  the  world  ;  for  I  was  hungry,  and  you  gave  me  food  ; 
I  was  thirsty,  and  you  gave  me  drink  ;  I  was  a  stranger,  and  you  enter- 
tained me  ;  I  was  naked,  and  you  clothed  me  ;  I  was  sick,  and  you  as- 
sisted me  ;  I  was  in  prison,  and  you  visited  me.  The  righteous  will 
then  reply  to  him,  inquiring.  Lord,  when  did  we  see  thee  hungry,  and 
feed  thee  ?  or  thirsty,  and  give  thee  drink  1  and  when  did  we  see  thee 
a  stranger,  and  entertain  thee  ?  or  naked,  and  clothe  thee  ?  and  when 
did  we  see  thee  sick,  or  in  prison,  and  repair  to  thee  ?  And  the  King, 
answering,  will  affirm  to  them.  In  truth,  I  remind  you,  that  since  you 
performed  this  to  the  least  individual  of  these  my  brethren,  you  have 
performed  it  to  me. 

He  will  then  also  declare  to  those  on  his  left-hand.  Depart  from  me, 
ye  execrated,  to  the  continual  fire,  prepared  for  the  adversary  and  his 
messengers  :  for  I  was  hungry,  but  you  gave  me  no  food  ;  I  was  thirsty, 
but  you  gave  me  no  drink  ;  I  was  a  stranger,  but  you  did  not  entertain 
me  ;  naked,  but  you  did  not  clothe  me  ;  sick,  and  in  prison,  but  you  did 
not  relieve  me.  Then  will  they  also  answer,  inquiring.  Lord,  when 
have  we  beheld  thee  hungry,  or  thirsty,  or  a  stranger,  or  naked,  or  sick, 
or  in  prison,  and  did  not  relieve  thee  ?  He  will  then  say  to  them,  in 
reply,  I  assure  you,  that  since  you  refused  it  to  one  of  the  least  of  these, 
you  have  refused  it  to  me.  And  these  wiU  depart  to  perpetual  correc- 
tion ;  but  the  righteous,  to  perpetual  hfe. 

And  it  happened,  when  Jesus  had  concluded  this  discourse,  that  he 
remarked  to  his  disciples  ;  You  are  apprised,  that  after  two  days  will 
be  the  feast  of  the  passover,  and  the  Son  of  Man  will  be  surrendered  to 
be  crucified. 

About  this  time  the  chief  priests,  and  the  scribes,  and  the  elders  of 
the  people,  assembled  at  the  palace  of  the  high  priest,  whose  name  was 
Caiaphas  ;  and  consulted  by  what  stratagem  they  might  apprehend 
Jesus,  and  destroy  him.  They  observed,  however,  Not  during  the  fes- 
tival, lest  there  should  be  a  tumult  among  the  people. 

Besides,  when  Jesus  was  at  Bethany,  in  the  house  of  Simon,  formerly 
a  leper,  a  woman  came  to  him,  having  an  alabaster  box  of  very  valuable 
balsam,  and  poured  it  on  his  head,  as  he  was  at  table.  Now  his  disci- 
ples, observing  it,  were  displeased,  asking,'  Why  was  this  extravagance  1 
for  this  balsam  might  have  been  sold  at  a  great  price,  and  the  money 
given  to  the  poor.  And  Jesus,  perceiving  it,  said.  Why  do  you  molest 
the  woman  1  since  she  has  rendered  me  a  kind  office  ;  because  you  ever 
have  the  poor  with  you  ;  but  me  you  have  not  always  :  for  in  pouring 


7£j  APOSTOLIC   PRODUCTIONS. 

this  balsam  on  my  body^  she  has  intended  to  embalm  me.  I  indeed  an- 
nounce to  you,  that  wherever  this  gospel  shall  be  preached,  in  the  whole 
world,  what  this  woman  has  performed,  will  also  be  proclaimed  to  her 
praise. 

Then  one  of  the  twelve,  named  Judas  Iscariot,  proceeding  to  the  chief 
priests,  said.  What  will  you  give  me,  to  deliver  him  to  you  1  And  they 
contracted  with  him  for  thirty  shekels.  And  from  that  time,  he  sought 
a  convenient  opportunity  to  surrender  Jesus. 

Further,  on  the  first  day  of  unleavened  bread,  the  disciples  came  to 
Jesus,  saying  to  him,  Where  dost  thou  wish  that  we  should  prepare  for 
thee  to  eat  the  paschal  supper.  And  he  answered.  Go  to  a  particular 
person  in  the  city,  and  inform  him,  the  teacher  says.  The  time;  of  my 
crucifixion  is  near  ;  I  must  celebrate  the  passover  at  your  house,  with 
my  disciples.  And  the  disciples  did  as  Jesus  had  directed  them  ;  and 
they  prepared  the  passover. 

Now,  in  the  evening,  he  placed  himself  at  table  with  the  twelve  ;  and 
as  they  were  eating,  he  remarked,  I  solemnly  state  to  you,  that  one  of 
you  will  surrender  me.  And  being  exceedingly  aflflicted,  they  began, 
individually,  to  ask  him,  Lord,  is  it  I  ?  And  he  thus  answered.  The 
one,  whose  hand  is  in  the  dish  with  mine,  is  he  who  will  surrender  me. 
The  Son  of  Man  is  assuredly  about  to  die,  as  the  scripture  declares 
respecting  him  ;  but  alas  for  that  man,  by  whom  the  Son  of  Man  shall 
be  surrendered  !  it  would  have  been  well  for  that  man,  if  he  had  not 
been  born.  Judas,  however,  who  delivered  him  up,  inquired  in  return. 
Teacher,  is  it  I  ?     Jesus  replied  to  him.  It  is. 

Moreover,  during  their  repast,  Jesus  took  bread,  and  having  praised 
God,  broke  it,  and  gave  it  to  the  disciples,  and  said.  Take,  eat, — this 
represents  my  body.  He  took  also  the  cup,  and  having  ofifered  thanks, 
he  gave  it  to  them,  saying,  Let  all  drink  of  it ;  for  this  represents  my 
blood  of  the  new  covenant,  which  is  poured  out  for  many,  in  relation  to 
the  removal  of  sins.  Now,  I  say  to  you,  that,  from  this  period,  I  will 
not  drink  of  this  product  of  the  vine,  till  that  day,  when  I  shall  drink  it 
new  with  you,  in  the  kingdom  of  my  Father.  And  having  celebrated 
with  the  psalm,  they  departed  to  the  mount  of  Olives. 

Jesus  then  announced  to  them.  You  will  all  be  guilty  of  ofience,  in 
reference  to  me,  this  night ;  for  it  is  written,  I  will  smite  the  shepherd, 
and  the  sheep  of  the  flock  will  be  dispersed.  Yet,  after  I  am  raised,  I 
will  precede  you  to  Galilee.  But  Peter,  in  reply,  affirmed  to  him.  If  all 
should  commit  offence  with  respect  to  thee,  I  will  never  cause  offence. 
Jesus  said  to  him,  I  assure  you,  that,  this  very  night,  before  a  watch- 
trumpet  shall  sound,  you  will  thrice  disown  me.  Peter  avers  to  him. 
Though  doomed  to  die  with  thee,  by  no  means  will  I  disown  thee.  And 
all  the  disciples  made  similar  declarations. 

Jesus  then  proceeded  with  them  to  a  place  called  Gethsemane,  and 
said  to  his  disciples,  Remain  here,  while  I  retire  and  pray.  And  taking 
with  him  Peter  and  the  two  sons  of  Zebedee,  he  began  to  be  greatly  af- 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  7!) 

flicted,  and  to  be  overwhelmed  with  anguish.  Jesus  then  says  to  them, 
My  soul  is  surrounded  with  a  most  deadly  sorrow  ;  continue  here,  and 
watch  with  me.  And  proceeding  a  Uttle  distance,  he  fell  on  his  face, 
supplicating  and  saying,  O  my  Father,  if  it  be  possible,  let  this  cup  be 
removed  from  me  !  not  however,  as  I  would,  but  as  thou  wilt !  And  he 
returned  to  his  disciples,  and  finding  them  asleep,  said  to  Peter,  Is  it 
thus,  then,  that  ye  could  not  keep  awake  with  me  one  hour  1  Watch 
and  pray,  that  ye  be  not  vanquished  by  temptation.  The  spirit,  indeed, 
may  be  incUned  ;  but  the  body  is  feeble.  In  like  manner,  departing  the 
second  time,  he  prayed,  saying,  O  my  Father,  if  there  be  no  exemption 
for  me  ;  if  I  must  drink  this  cup,  thy  will  be  accompUshed  !  And 
having  returned,  he  finds  them  still  sleeping  ;  for  their  eyes  were  over- 
powered. He  left  them,  departed  again,  and  prayed  the  third  time,  re- 
peating the  same  language.  He  then  comes  to  his  disciples,  and  says 
to  them,  Do  you  continue  to  sleep  and  to  take  rest  ?  behold,  the  hour 
has  arrived,  and  the  Son  of  Man  must  be  delivered  into  the  hands  of 
sinners.  Arise,  let  us  advance  ;  behold,  he,  who  surrenders  me,  has 
approached. 

Now,  while  Jesus  was  speaking,  behold,  Judas,  one  of  the  twelve, 
came,  accompanied  by  a  great  multitude,  armed  with  swords  and  clubs, 
and  sent  by  the  chief  priests  and  rulers  of  the  people.  And  he,  who 
delivered  him  up,  had  given  them  a  signal,  saying.  He  is  the  person 
whom  I  shall  kiss,  apprehend  him.  And  immediately  advancing  to 
Jesus,  he  exclaimed,  HaU,  Teacher  !  and  repeatedly  kissed  him.  But 
Jesus  said  to  him.  Companion,  against  whom  are  you  come  1  Then 
approaching,  they  laid  their  hands  on  Jesus,  and  arrested  him. 

And  behold,  one  of  those  who  were  with  Jesus,  laying  his  hand  on 
his  sword,  drew  it,  and  striking  a  servant  of  the  high  priest,  cut  off  his 
ear.  Jesus  then  says  to  him.  Return  your  sword  to  its  place  ;  for  all 
who  have  recourse  to  the  sword,  shall  die  by  the  sword.  Do  you  sup- 
pose that  I  cannot  now  entreat  my  Father,  and  he  would  fiirnish  me 
with  more  than  twelve  legions  of  angels  1  But,  in  that  case,  how  will 
the  scriptures  be  fulfilled,  [which  declare,]  that  thus  it  must  terminate  1 
At  the  same  time  Jesus  said  to  the  people.  Have  you  come  with  swords 
and  clubs  to  seize  me,  like  persons  in  pursuit  of  a  robber  1  I  was  every 
day  with  you,  instructing  in  the  temple,  and  you  did  not  arrest  me.  All 
this,  however,  was  done,  in  accomplishment  of  the  writings  of  the 
prophets.     All  the  disciples  then  deserted  him,  and  fled. 

Moreover,  those  who  had  apprehended  Jesus,  conducted  him  to  Caia- 
phas  the  high  priest,  in  whose  house  the  scribes  and  the  magistrates 
were  convened.  But  Peter  followed  him  at  a  distance,  even  to  the 
palace  of  the  high  priest ;  and,  having  entered,  was  sitting  with  the  at- 
tendants to  see  the  result. 

Now  the  chief  priests,  and  rulers,  and  the  whole  sanhedriu,  sought 
false  testimony  against  Jesus,  that  they  might  destroy  him ;  but  they 
did  not  find  it,  though  many  perjured  witnesses  appeared.    Ultimately, 


80  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

two  false  witnesses  came  and  testified,  that  he  affirmed,  I  am  able  to 
demolish  the  temple  of  God,  and  to  rebuild  it  in  three  days.  And  the 
high  priest  arising,  said  to  him.  Dost  thou  make  no  reply  7  what  do 
these  testify  against  thee  1  But  Jesus  was  silent.  And  the  high  priest 
further  said  to  him,  I  adjure  thee  on  the  part  of  the  living  God,  that 
thou  inform  us,  whether  thou  art  the  Messiah,  the  Son  of  God.  Jesus 
says  to  him,  It  is  true  :  and  I  also  declare  to  you,  that  hereafter,  ye 
shall  see  the  Son  of  Man  seated  at  the  right  hand  of  power,  and  com- 
ing in  the  clouds  of  heaven.  The  high  priest  then  rent  his  garments, 
asserting.  He  has  spoken  impiously  ;  what  additional  necessity  have  we 
for  witnesses  ?  behold,  you  have  now  heard  his  impious  language  ;  how 
do  you  regard  it  ?  And  they  repUed,  He  deserves  to  die.  Then  did 
they  spit  in  his  face,  and  beat  him  with  their  fists ;  and  some  struck 
him  on  the  cheek  with  the  open  hand,  saying.  Divine  to  us,  Messiah, 
who  it  was  that  smote  thee  1 

Further,  Peter  was  sitting  without,  in  the  palace  ;  and  a  maid-servant 
came  to  him,  affirming,  You  was  also  with  Jesus  the  GaHlean.  But  he 
denied  it  in  presence  of  all,  declaring,  I  am  ignorant  of  your  sugges- 
tion. And  as  he  passed  to  the  piazza,  another  female  servant  saw  him, 
and  said  to  them.  This  person  was  also  there,  withivJesus  the  Nazarean. 
And  he  repeated  the  denial  with  an  oath,  I  have  never  known  the  man. 
And  afterwards,  some  of  those  who  were  present,  came  and  said  to  Pe- 
ter, You  also  are  absolutely  one  of  them ;  for  even  your  dialect  exposes 
you.  He  then  began  positively  to  affirm,  and  to  asseverate,  I  am  unac- 
quainted with  the  man.  And  instantly  a  watch-trumpet  sounded.  And 
Peter  recollected  the  declaration,  which  Jesus  had  made  to  him,  that. 
Before  a  watch-trumpet  shall  sound,  you  wiU  thrice  disown  me.  And 
he  went  out,  and  wept  bitterly. 

Now,  at  the  dawn  of  day,  all  the  chief  priests  and  the  rulers  of  the 
people,  held  a  consultation  relative  to  Jesus,  that  they  might  destroy 
him.  And  binding  him,  they  conducted  and  surrendered  him  to  Pontius 
Pilate  the  procurator. 

Then  Judas,  who  had  betrayed  him,  perceiving  that  he  was  condem- 
ned, repented  ;  and  returned  the  thirty  shekels  to  the  chief  priests  and 
the  magistrates,  acknowledging,  I  have  sinned  in  delivering  up  an  inno- 
cent man.  But  they  answered,  How  does  that  concern  us  1  attend  thou 
to  that.  Then  throwing  down  the  money  near  the  temple,  he  withdrew ; 
and  having  gone  away,  was  strangled.  And  the  chief  priests,  taking 
the  money,  remarked.  It  is  unlawful  to  place  it  in  the  sacred  treasury, 
because  it  is  the  price  of  blood.  And  having  deliberated,  they  purchas- 
ed with  it  the  potter's  field,  as  a  cemetery  for  the  strangers.  That  field 
is,  therefore,  denominated  the  field  of  blood,  even  to  this  period.  Then 
was  verified  that  which  was  thus  announced  by  Jeremiah  the  prophet ; 
The  thirty  shekels,  the  stipulated  price  at  which  he  was  estimated,  I 
took,  as  the  Lord  appointed  me,  from  the  sons  of  Israel,  who  gave  them 
for  the  potter's  field. 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  81 

Now  Jesus  appeared  before  the  governor,  who  thus  questioned  him, 
Thou  art  then  the  King  of  the  Jews  1  And  Jesus  replied  to  him  in  the 
affirmative.  But  he  made  no  answer  to  the  accusations  of  the  chief 
priests  and  the  elders.  Then  Pilate  says  to  him.  Dost  thou  not  hear 
how  much  they  testify  against  thee  7  And  he  uttered  not  a  word  in  re- 
ply to  him  ;  so  that  the  governor  was  greatly  astonished. 

Moreover,  at  the  festival,  the  governor  was  accustomed  to  release  to 
the  people  some  prisoner,  whom  they  desired.  And  they  had  then  a 
notorious  prisoner,  named  Barabbas.  Therefore,  when  they  were  as- 
sembled, Pilate  said  to  them.  Which  do  you  prefer  that  I  should  release 
to  you  ?  Barabbas,  or  Jesus  who  is  called  Messiah  1  For  he  was  con- 
scious, that  through  malice,  they  had  surrendered  him. 

(Aside  from  this,  while  he  was  sitting  on  the  tribunal,  his  wife  sent 
him  this  message.  Interfere  in  no  manner  with  that  just  person  ;  for  I 
have  suffered  much  this  day  in  a  dream,  on  account  of  him.) 

But  the  chief  priests  and  the  elders  persuaded  the  people  to  request 
the  release  of  Barabbas,  and  the  execution  of  Jesus.  Then  the  gover- 
nor, in  return,  said  to  them,  Which  of  the  two  are  you  inclined  that  I 
should  release  to  you  ?  And  they  said,  Barabbas.  Pilate  says  to  them, 
How  then  shall  I  dispose  of  Jesus,  whom  they  call  Messiah  ?  They  all 
declared  to  him.  Let  him  be  crucified.  And  the  governor  said.  Why, 
what  offence  has  he  committed  t  But  they  the  more  eagerly  vocifer- 
ated, saying.  Let  him  be  crucified.  Now  Pilate,  perceiving  that  he 
could  have  no  influence,  and  that  only  a  greater  commotion  was  pro- 
duced, taldng  water,  washed  his  hands  before  the  multitude,  saying,  I 
am  innocent  of  the  blood  of  this  righteous  person,  be  ye  witnesses. 
And  all  the  people  observed,  in  answer.  Let  his  blood  rest  on  us,  and  on 
our  children.  He  then  released  to  them  Barabbas  ;  and  having  caused 
Jesus  to  be  scourged,  he  delivered  him  up  to  be  crucified. 

Then  the  soldiers  of  the  governor,  having  conducted  Jesus  to  the  pre- 
torium,  assembled  against  him  the  whole  band.  And  divesting  him  of 
his  mantle,  they  clothed  him  in  a  splendid  robe.  And  wreathing  an 
acanthine  crown,  they  placed  it  on  his  head,  and  put  a  reed  in  his  right 
hand ;  and  kneeling  before  him,  they  derided  him,  exclaiming.  Hail, 
king  of  the  Jews  !  And  spitting  upon  him,  they  took  the  reed,  and 
beat  him  on  the  head.  And  when  they  had  insulted  him,  they  divested 
him  of  the  robe,  and  clothed  him  with  his  own  raiment,  and  led  him 
away  to  crucify  him. 

Now,  as  they  proceeded,  they  met  a  citizen  of  Cyrene,  by  the  name  of 
Simon  ;  and  they  compelled  him  to  sustain  his  cross.  And  having  ar- 
rived at  a  place  called  Golgotha,  which  is  denominated.  The  place  of  a 
skull,  they  gave  him  sour  wine  to  drink,  mingled  with  a  bitter  drug ; 
which,  having  tasted,  he  refiised  to  drink.  And  after  they  had  nailed 
him  to  the  cross,  they  distributed  his  apparel  by  lot.  And  having  sat 
down  there,  they  guarded  him.  And  over  his  head  they  placed  this 
inscription,  denoting  the  cause  of  his  death  :  This  is  Jesus,  the  king  of 
11 


82  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

the  Jews.  Two  robbers  were  also  crucified  with  him,  one  at  his  right 
hand,  and  the  other  at  his  left. 

Now  those,  who  passed  by,  reviled  him,  shaking  their  heads,  and  say- 
ing. Thou  that  canst  destroy  the  temple,  and  erect  it  in  three  days, 
preserve  thyself.  If  thou  art  God's  Son,  descend  from  the  cross.  In  a 
similar  way,  the  chief  priests  also,  with  the  scribes  and  elders,  deriding 
him,  said.  He  save  others  !  he  cannot  save  himself.  If  he  be  the  king 
of  Israel,  let  him  now  come  down  from  the  cross,  and  we  will  believe 
in  him.  He  confided  in  God  ;  let  him  now  rescue  him,  if  he  delights 
in  him  ;  for  he  affirmed,  I  am  God's  Son.  And  the  robbers  also,  who 
were  crucified  with  him,  in  like  manner  reproached  him. 

Further,  from  the  sixth  hour  to  the  ninth,  the  whole  country  was  in 
darkness.  And  about  the  ninth  hour,  Jesus  exclaimed  with  a  loud  voice, 
saying,  Eli,  Eli,  lama  sabachthani  1  that  is.  My  God,  my  God,  to  whom 
hast  thou  surrendered  me  1  And  some  of  those  who  stood  there,  hear- 
ing this,  said.  He  calls  Elijah.  And  immediately,  one  of  them  ran,  and 
taking  a  sponge,  saturated  it  with  vinegar,  and  affixing  it  to  a  reed,  pre- 
sented it  to  him  to  drink.  But  others  said.  Desist ;  let  us  see  if  Elijah 
will  come  to  save  him.  And  Jesus,  having  again  exclaimed  with  a  loud 
voice,  resigned  his  spirit. 

And  behold,  the  veil  of  the  temple  was  dissevered,  from  the  upper  to 
the  lower  extremity ;  and  the  earth  trembled ;  and  the  rocks  were  rent ; 
and  the  tombs  were  opened  ;  and  many  bodies  of  the  saints  that  slept, 
were  raised,  and  proceeding  from  the  sepulchres,  subsequently  to  his 
resurrection,  entered  the  holy  city,  and  appeared  to  many.  Now  the 
centurion,  and  they  who  with  him  guarded  Jesus,  perceiving  the  earth- 
quake, and  those  occurrences,  were  exceedingly  terrified,  saying,  This 
was  certainly  a  Son  of  God. 

And  many  women  were  there,  as  distant  spectators,  who  followed 
Jesus  from  Galilee,  to  serve  him ;  among  them  were  Mary  Magdalene, 
and  Mary  the  mother  of  James  and  Joses,  and  the  mother  of  the  sons  of 
Zebedee. 

And  in  the  evening,  a  rich  Arimathean  named  Joseph,  who  also  was 
personally  a  disciple  of  Jesus,  went  to  Pilate,  and  solicited  the  body  of 
Jesus.  Pilate  then  commanded  the  body  to  be  delivered.  And  Joseph, 
taking  the  body,  wrapped  it  in  pure,  fine  linen,  and  laid  it  in  his  own 
new  tomb,  which  he  had  excavated  in  the  rock ;  and  having  rolled  a 
great  stone  to  the  door  of  the  sepulchre,  he  departed.  And  Mary  Mag- 
dalene was  there,  and  the  other  Mary,  sitting  opposite  the  tomb. 

Besides,  on  the  day,  next  succeeding  that  of  the  preparation,  the  chief 
priests  and  the  pharisees  convened  before  Pilate,  and  said.  Sir,  we  re- 
collect that  this  impostor  declared,  while  living.  Within  three  days  I 
shall  be  restored  to  life.  Therefore  order,  that  the  sepulchre  be  made 
secure  till  the  third  day,  lest  his  disciples  should  come,  clandestinely 
convey  him  away,  and  say  to  the  people.  He  is  raised  from  the  dead  ; 
for  this  last  imposture  would  be  more  pernicious  than  the  first.    Pilate 


MATTHEW'S   HISTORY.  83 

said  to  them,  Take  a  guard,  go,  and  make  the  sepulchre  as  secure  as 
you  can.  And  they  went  and  secured  it,  by  seaHng  the  stone,  and  ap- 
pointing a  guard. 

Moreover,  after  the  end  of  the  week,  as  it  began  to  dawn  towards  the 
first  day  of  the  week,  Mary  Magdalene  and  the  other  Mary  went  to  visit 
the  sepulchre.  And  behold,  there  was  a  great  earthquake  ;  for  a  mes- 
senger of  the  Lord,  having  descended  from  heaven,  came  and  rolled 
back  the  stone  from  the  entrance,  and  was  sitting  on  it.  Now  his  aspect 
was  like  lightning,  and  his  vestments  white  as  snow.  And  through  fear 
of  him,  the  guards  trembled,  and  apparently  became  dead  men.  But 
the  angel  said  to  the  women,  be  not  dismayed  ;  for  I  know  that  you  are 
seeking  Jesus,  who  was  crucified.  He  is  not  here  ;  for  he  is  risen,  as 
he  predicted.  Come,  see  the  place  where  the  Lord  lay.  And  immedi- 
ately go,  and  inform  his  disciples,  that  he  is  risen  from  the  dead  ;  and 
behold,  he  precedes  you  to  Galilee,  where  you  will  see  him.  Remem- 
ber, I  have  apprised  you. 

And  instantly  departing  from  the  tomb,  with  fear  and  great  joy,  they 
ran,  to  inform  his  disciples.  And  behold,  Jesus  met  them,  saying.  Re- 
joice. And  approaching,  they  prostrated  themselves  before  him,  and 
embraced  his  feet.  Jesus  then  said  to  them.  Be  not  alarmed  ;  depart, 
direct  my  brethren  to  repair  to  Galilee,  and  they  will  there  see  me. 

(And  when  they  had  gone,  behold,  some  of  the  guard,  entering  the 
city,  informed  the  chief  priests  of  aU  that  had  happened.  And  these, 
having  assembled  with  the  elders,  and  held  a  consultation,  gave  sufii- 
cient  money  to  the  soldiers,  with  this  injunction.  Declare,  that  his  dis- 
ciples came  by  night,  and  stole  him,  while  we  were  asleep.  And  if  the 
procurator  should  hear  of  this,  we  will  conciliate  him,  and  indemnify 
you.  And  having  received  the  money,  they  did  as  they  were  instructed ; 
and  this  is  a  prevalent  report  among  the  Jews,  to  this  day.) 

The  eleven  disciples  then  departed  for  Galilee,  to  the  mountain  where 
Jesus  had  directed  them.  And  having  seen  him,  they  oiFered  him  hom- 
age ;  though  some  had  doubted.  And  Jesus  approaching,  thus  address- 
ed them.  All  authority  in  heaven  and  on  earth,  is  imparted  to  me.  Pro- 
ceed, and  christianize  all  nations,  baptizing  them  in  the  name  of  the 
Father,  and  of  the  Son,  and  of  the  Holy  Spirit ;  teaching  them  to  ob- 
serve all  things  which  I  have  commanded  you  ;  and  behold,  I  am  per- 
petually with  you,  even  to  the  conclusion  of  this  state. 


THE    HISTORY  BY  MARK. 

The  commencement  of  the  benevolent  message  of  Jesus  Christ,  the 
Son  of  God,  as  it  is  written  by  Isaiah  the  prophet,  Behold,  I  send  my 
messenger  before  thy  face,  who  shall  prepare  thy  way ;  a  voice  of  one 
exclaiming  in  the  desert,  prepare  the  way  of  the  Lord,  make  his  paths 
direct.  John  was  accordingly  baptizing  in  the  wilderness,  and  publish- 
ing the  baptism  of  amendment,  for  the  remission  of  sins.  And  all  the 
country  of  Judea,  and  the  inhabitants  of  Jerusalem  resorted  to  him,  and 
were  all  baptized  by  him  in  the  river  Jordan,  earnestly  professing  their 
sins.  Now  John  was  clothed  in  camel's  hair,  with  a  leathern  girdle 
about  his  waist ;  and  he  lived  upon  locusts  and  wild  honey.  And  he 
thus  proclaimed ;  One  more  powerful  than  I  succeeds  me,  the  string  of 
whose  shoes,  I  am  not  worthy  to  stoop  down  and  untie.  I  have,  indeed, 
baptized  you  with  water ;  but  he  wiU  baptize  you  with  the  Holy  Spirit. 

And  it  occurred,  at  that  period,  that  Jesus  came  from  Nazareth  in 
Galilee,  and  was  baptized  by  John  in  the  Jordan  :  and  as  he  ascended 
from  the  water,  John  saw  the  firmament  opened,  and  the  Spirit  like  a 
dove  descending  upon  him.  And  this  voice  proce'eded  from  the  heavens. 
Thou  art  my  beloved  Son,  in  whom  I  am  delighted. 

And  the  Spirit  subsequently  conveyed  him  into  the  wilderness ;  and 
he  continued  in  the  desert  forty  days,  tempted  by  the  adversary ;  and 
he  was  among  the  wild  beasts  ;  and  the  angels  served  him. 

Moreover,  after  John  was  surrendered,  Jesus  came  to  Galilee,  pro- 
claiming the  good  news  of  the  reign  of  God.  The  time,  said  he,  is  ac- 
complished ;  and  the  dominion  of  God  has  arrived ;  reform,  and  con- 
fide in  the  joyful  intelligence. 

And  as  he  was  walking  about  by  the  sea  of  Galilee,  he  saw  Simon, 
and  Andrew  the  brother  of  Simon,  casting  a  net  into  the  sea,  for  they 
were  fishers.  And  Jesus  said  to  them.  Come  with  me,  and  I  wiU  render 
you  fishers  of  men.  And  immediately  relinquishing  their  nets,  they  at- 
tended him.  And  proceeding  a  little  distance,  he  saw  James  the  son  of 
Zebedee,  and  John  the  brother  of  James,  who  were  in  a  vessel,  prepar- 
ing their  nets.  And  he  instantly  called  them  ;  and  leaving  their  father 
Zebedee  in  the  vessel  with  the  hired  servants,  they  accompanied  him. 

And  they  went  to  Capernaum  ;  and  on  the  sabbath,  he  repaired  di- 
rectly to  the  synagogue,  and  instructed  the  people,  who  were  astonished 
at  his  mode  of  teaching ;  for  he  taught  them,  as  one  having  authority, 
and  not  as  the  scribes.  * 

Now  there  was  a  man,  in  their  synagogue,  with  an  impure  spirit,  who 
exclaimed,  saying.  Ah,  Jesus  of  Nazareth  !  what  connexion  hast  thou 
with  us  1  hast  thou  come  to  destroy  us  ?  I  know  thee  who  thou  art, 
The  Consecrated  of  God.     And  Jesus  reproving  him,  said,  Be  silent. 


MARK'S  HISTORY.  85 

and  depart  from  him.  And  the  impure  spirit  convulsed  him,  and  crying 
with  a  loud  voice,  left  him.  And  they  were  all  so  astonished,  that  they 
thus  questioned  each  other.  What  does  this  mean  1  and  what  new  in- 
struction is  this  7  for  with  authority,  he  commands  even  the  impure 
spirits,  and  they  obey  him.  And  his  fame  rapidly  extended  through  all 
the  region  of  Galilee. 

And  immediately  withdrawing  from  the  synagogue,  they  went,  vdth 
James  and  John,  to  the  house  of  Simon  and  Andrew.  And  the  mother- 
in-law  of  Simon  was  confined  with  a  fever,  and  they  soon  inform  Jesua 
respecting  her.  And  he  came,  and  taking  her  hand,  raised  her  ;  and 
the  fever  instantly  left  her,  and  she  entertained  them. 

Further,  in  the  evening,  when  the  sun  was  set,  they  brought  to  him 
all  those  who  were  sick,  and  such  as  were  possessed  by  evil  spirits. 
And  the  whole  city  was  assembled  at  the  door.  And  he  healed  many 
that  vmere  affected  by  various  diseases  ;  and  expelled  many  demons  ; 
and  suffered  not  the  evil  spirits  to  allege  that  they  knew  him. 

And  in  the  morning,  rising  a  long  time  before  day,  he  departed,  and 
retired  to  a  solitary  place,  and  there  prayed.  And  Simon  and  those 
with  him,  eagerly  followed  him.  And  having  found  him,  they  said  to 
him.  All  seek  thee.  And  he  observed  to  them.  Let  us  go  to  the  adjacent 
villages,  and  there  also  announce  [the  reign]  ;  since,  for  this  purpose,  I 
have  come  forth.  And  he  continued  to  proclaim  it  in  their  synagogues 
through  all  Galilee,  and  to  cast  out  evil  spirits. 

And  a  leper  came  to  him,  entreating  him,  and  kneeling  before  him, 
and  saying  to  him.  If  thou  wilt,  thou  canst  cleanse  me.  And  Jesus, 
moved  with  tender  compassion,  reached  out  his  hand,  touched  him,  and 
said  to  him,  I  will ;  be  thou  cleansed.  And  when  he  had  spoken,  the 
leprosy  instantly  departed  from  the  man,  and  he  was  cleansed.  And 
Jesus,  having  strictly  enjoined  him,  immediately  sent  him  away ;  and 
observed  to  him.  See  that  you  say  nothing  to  any  person  ;  but  go,  pre- 
sent yourself  to  the  priest,  and  offer  for  your  purification  what  Moses 
commanded,  for  the  information  of  the  people.  The  man,  however,  de- 
parting, began  to  proclaim  many  things,  and  so  extensively  to  publish 
the  occurrence,  that  Jesus  could  no  longer  appear  publicly  in  the  city, 
but  remained  without  in  desert  places  ;  and  the  people  resorted  to  him 
from  all  parts. 

Moreover,  Jesus  again  entered  Capernaum  after  some  days  ;  and  it 
was  understood  that  he  was  in  a  house  there.  And  presently,  so  many 
were  assembled,  that  there  was  no  room  to  receive  them,  not  even  near 
the  door  ;  and  he  taught  them  the  word  [of  God.] 

Then  they  came  to  him,  bringing  a  paralytic  person,  carried  by  four  , 
men.     And   being  unable  to  approach  Jesus,  in  consequence  of  the 
crowd,  they  opened  a  passage,  where  he  was,  through  the  roof,  and  let 
down  the  couch  on  which  the  paralytic  lay.     Now  Jesus,  observing  their 
faith,  said  to  the  paralytic,  Son,  your  sins  are  forgiven  you.     But  some 


86  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

of  the  scribes  were  sitting  there,  and  inquiring  in  their  hearts,  Why  does 
this  man  use  such  impious  language  1  Who  can  forgive  sins,  but  the 
one  God  1  And  Jesus,  immediately  perceiving  in  his  spirit,  that  they 
thus  conferred  with  themselves,  said  to  them.  Why  do  you  revolve  these 
things  in  your  hearts  1  Which  is  easiest,  to  say  to  the  paralytic,  Thy 
sins  are  forgiven  thee  ?  or  to  command,  [with  effect].  Arise,  take  up  thy 
couch,  and  walk  1  But  that  you  may  know,  that  the  Son  of  Man  has 
authority  on  the  earth  to  forgive  sins,  (he  said  to  the  paralytic,)  I  com- 
mand thee.  Arise,  take  up  thy  couch,  and  return  to  thy  residence.  And 
he  instantly  arose,  and  taking  his  couch,  departed  in  presence  of  all,  so 
that  they  were  universally  amazed,  and  praised  God,  asserting,  We 
never  saw  any  thing  like  this. 

And  he  went  out  again  by  the  sea ;  and  the  whole  multitude  repaired 
to  him,  and  he  instructed  them.  And  passing  along,  he  saw  Levi,  the 
son  of  Alpheus,  sitting  at  the  tax-office,  and  said  to  him.  Follow  me. 
And  he  arose  and  followed  him. 

Now  it  occurred,  that  Jesus  was  partaking  refreshment  in  this  man's 
house,  and  many  tax-collectors  and  GentUes  placed  themselves  at  table 
with  Jesus  and  his  disciples  ;  for  those  people  were  numerous,  and  they 
accompanied  him.  And  when  the  scribes  and  the  pharisees  saw  him  eating 
with  the  tax-gatherers  and  pagans,  they  said  to  his  disciples,  Why  does 
he  eat  and  drink  with  these  public  exactors  and  sinners  1  And  Jesus 
having  heard  it,  remarked  to  them.  They,  who  are  entirely  well,  do  not 
require  a  physician  ;  but  those  that  are  sick.  I  came  not  to  call  right- 
eous persons,  but  sinners. 

Further,  the  disciples  of  John  and  the  pharisees  were  accustomed  to 
fasting ;  and  they  came  and  said  to  Jesus,  Why  do  the  disciples  of  John, 
and  those  of  the  pharisees  fast,  but  thy  disciples  fast  not  ?  And  Jesus 
observed  to  them.  Can  the  bridemen  fast,  while  the  bridegroom  is  with 
them  1  During  the  time  they  have  the  bridegroom  with  them,  they 
cannot  fast.  But  the  period  will  arrive,  when  the  bridegroom  shall  be 
removed  from  them,  and  in  that  day  they  will  fast.  No  one  sews  a 
piece  of  undressed  cloth  on  an  old  garment ;  if  so,  the  new  piece  dimin- 
ishes the  size  of  the  old,  and  a  worse  rent  is  made.  And  no  one  puts 
new  wine  into  old  leathern  bottles  ;  if  so,  the  new  wine  breaks  the  bot- 
tles, and  the  wine  is  spilled,  and  the  bottles  are  lost ;  but  new  wine  must 
be  put  into  new  bottles. 

And  it  happened,  that  he  passed  through  the  grain-fields  on  the  sab- 
bath ;  and  his  disciples  began,  by  the  way,  to  gather  the  ears  of  grain. 
And  the  T)harisees  said  to  him.  Look,  why  are  they  doing  that  which  is 
unlawful,  on  the  sabbath  1  And  he  observed  to  them,  Have  you  never 
read  what  David  did  in  his  necessity,  when  he  and  those  with  him  were 
hungry  1  how  he  entered  the  sanctuary  of  God,  under  Abiathar  the  high 
priest,  and  did  eat  the  loaves  of  the  presence,  which  none  but  the  priests 
could  lawfully  eat ;  and  likewise  gave  to  those  who  were  with  him  ? 


MARK'S  HrSTORY.  87 

And  Jesus  declared  to  them,  The  sabbath  was  made  for  man,  and  not 
man  for  the  sabbath.  Therefore,  the  Son  of  Man  is  Lord  even  of  the 
sabbath. 

Besides,  Jesus  again  entered  the  synagogue,  where  was  a  man,  who 
had  a  withered  hand.  And  the  pharisees  maliciously  watched  Jesus, 
whether  he  would  heal  the  man  on  the  sabbath,  that  they  might  accuse 
him.  And  he  said  to  the  man  having  the  withered  hand.  Arise  in  the 
midst.  And  he  inquired  of  them.  Is  it  not  more  lawful  to  perform  a 
good  action  on  the  sabbath,  than  an  evil  one  ?  to  preserve  Ufe,  than  to 
destroy  it  1  But  they  were  silent.  And  surveying  them  with  displear 
sure,  and  grieving  in  consequence  of  the  bUndness  of  their  minds,  he 
said  to  the  man.  Extend  your  hand  ;  and  he  extended  it ;  and  his  hand 
was  restored.  And  the  pharisees  having  departed,  immediately  con- 
spired with  the  Herodians  against  Jesus,  that  they  might  destroy  him. 

However,  Jesus  retired  with  his  disciples  to  the  sea ;  and  a  great 
multitude  followed  him  from  Galilee,  and  from  Judea,  and  from  Jerusa- 
lem, and  from  Idumea,  and  from  the  banks  of  the  Jordan  ;  and  a  nume- 
rous assembly  from  the  vicinity  of  Tyre  and  Sidon,  having  heard  what 
he  had  done,  came  to  him.  And  he  directed  his  disciples  that  a  small 
vessel  should  attend  him,  on  account  of  the  concourse  of  people,  lest 
they  should  press  upon  him  :  for  he  had  healed  a  great  number  ;  there- 
fore, as  many  as  had  diseases  rushed  towards  him,  that  they  might  touch 
him.  And  the  impure  spirits,  when  they  saw  him,  fell  prostrate  before 
him,  and  thus  exclaimed,  Thou  art  the  Son  of  God.  And  he  repeatedly 
charged  them,  that  they  should  not  make  him  known. 

Then  Jesus  ascended  a  mountain,  and  called  to  him  such  as  he  ap- 
proved ;  and  they  repaired  to  him.  And  he  constituted  twelve,  that 
they  should  accompany  him,  and  that  he  might  send  them  to  proclaim 
the  reign,  empowering  them  to  cure  diseases,  and  to  cast  out  evil  spi- 
rits. Now  these  comprised  Simon,  to  whom  he  gave  the  name  of  Peter; 
and  James  the  Son  of  Zebedee,  and  John  the  brother  of  James,  whom 
he  surnamed  Boanerges,  which  signifies  Thunderers  ;  and  Andrew,  and 
Philip,  and  Bai-tholomew,  and  Matthew,  and  Thomas,  and  James  the 
son  of  Alpheus,  and  Thaddeus,  and  Simon  the  Canaanite,  and  Judas  Is- 
cariot  also,  who  betrayed  him. 

And  they  came  to  a  house.  And  so  great  a  multitude  again  assem- 
bled, that  Jesus  and  his  disciples  could  not  even  take  food.  And  those, 
who  were  with  him,  having  been  informed  of  it,  went  out  to  restrain  the 
multitude  ;  for  they  affirmed,  The  people  are  mad.  But  the  scribes, 
who  came  down  from  Jerusalem,  alleged.  He  is  confederate  with  Beel- 
zebul,  and  he  expels  fiends  by  the  prince  of  the  fiends.  And  having 
summoned  them,  he  remarked  to  them  by  comparison ;  How  can  the 
adversary  eject  the  adversary  ?  And  if  a  kingdom  be  torn  by  factions, 
that  kingdom  cannot  endure.  And  if  a  family  be  distracted  by  divisions, 
that  family  cannot  exist.  Thus,  if  the  adversary  assail  himself,  and  be 
at  variance,  he  cannot  continue,  but  is  near  his  end.     No  one  can  enter 


88  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

the  dwelUng  of  the  powerful  one,  to  plunder  his  property,  unless  he  first 
bind  the  powerful  one,  and  then  he  may  ravage  his  house.  I  confidently 
state  to  you,  that  though  all  other  sins  may  be  ft)rgiven  to  the  sons  of 
men,  and  such  maledictions  as  they  shaU  utter ;  yet  whoever  shall  revile 
the  Holy  Spirit,  can  never  be  pardoned,  but  is  exposed  to  perpetual 
transgression.  [He  said  this,]  because  they  asserted,  that  he  was  leagued 
with  an  impure  spirit. 

His  mother  and  his  brothers  then  came,  and  standing  without,  sent  to 
him,  calling  him.  And  the  multitude  sat  around  him  ;  and  they  said  to 
him,  Behold,  thy  mother,  and  thy  brothers,  and  thy  sisters,  are  without, 
and  seek  thee.  And  he  thus  replied  to  them.  Who  is  my  mother,  and 
who  are  my  brothers  ?  And  looking  about  on  those  who  were  seated 
with  him,  he  observed.  Behold  my  mother,  and  my  brothers  !  For  who- 
ever shall  perform  the  will  of  God,  the  same  is  my  brother,  and  my  sis- 
ter, and  mother. 

Moreover,  he  again  proceeded  to  teach  by  the  side  of  the  lake,  and 
so  many  people  gathered  about  him,  that  he  entered  a  boat,  and  sat  in  it 
upon  the  lake  ;  and  the  whole  assembly  remained  there  on  the  shore. 
And  he  extensively  taught  them  in  parables. 

And  in  his  instruction,  he  said  to  them.  Attend ;  behold,  the  sower 
went  out  to  sow  ;  and  it  happened,  as  he  sowed,  that  part  of  the  seed 
fell  by  the  public  way,  and  the  birds  came  and  devoured  it.  And  part 
fell  on  rocky  land,  where  it  possessed  an  inconsiderable  soil ;  and  it 
arose  the  sooner,  because  there  was  no  depth  of  soil :  but  when  the  sun 
operated,  it  was  scorched  ;  and  since  it  had  no  root,  it  withered.  And 
part  fell  among  briers,  and  the  briers  grew  up  and  stifled  it,  and  it  pro- 
duced nothing.  But  the  remainder  fell  on  good  ground,  and  yielded 
fruit,  rising  and  flourishing ;  so  that  some  grains  produced  thirty,  some 
sixty,  and  some  a  hundred.  And  he  said.  Let  him  who  has  ears  to  lis- 
ten give  attention. 

When,  however,  he  had  retired,  his  attendants,  with  the  twelve,  re- 
quested him  to  explain  the  parable.  And  he  replied  to  them.  It  is  im- 
parted to  you  to  know  the  secrets  of  the  dominion  of  God ;  but  to  those 
who  are  strangers,  every  thing  is  veiled  in  parables-;  so  that  they  do  not 
perceive  what  they  look  at,  or  understand  what  they  hear ;  lest  they 
should  be  reclaimed,  and  their  sins  should  be  forgiven  them.  And  he 
said  to  them,  do  you  not  understand  this  parable  1  How  then  will  you 
comprehend  all  my  parables  7 

The  sower  denotes  him  who  dispenses  the  word.  The  highway  on 
which  some  of  the  grain  fell,  represents  those  who  have  no  sooner  lis- 
tened to  the  word,  than  the  adversary  comes  and  takes  away  that  which 
was  sown  in  their  hearts.  The  rocky  ground  indicates  those  who,  hear- 
ing the  word,  receive  it  at  first  with  delight ;  yet  not  having  it  rooted  in 
their  minds,  retain  it  but  a  short  time  ;  for  when  afiliction  or  persecution 
occurs  on  account  of  the  word,  they  instantly  relapse.  The  ground 
overrun  with  briers,  exhibits  those  hearers  in  whom  the  anxious  cares  of 


MARK'S  HISTORY.  89 

the  world,  and  the  delusion  of  riches,  and  the  strong  desires  for  other 
things  conspiring,  counteract  the  word,  and  it  becomes  unfruitful.  But 
the  good  soil,  on  which  some  grains  yielded  thirty,  some  sixty,  and  some 
a  hundred,  represents  those  who  hear  the  word,  and  retain  it,  and  pro- 
duce its  fruits. 

Moreover,  Jesus  said  to  them.  Is  a  lamp  brought  to  be  put  under  a 
measure,  or  under  a  bed  t  and  not  to  be  placed  on  a  stand  ?  For  there 
is  nothing  suppressed,  that  will  not  be  divulged  ;  nor  any  thing  conceal- 
ed, that  will  not  be  discovered.  If  any  one  has  ears  to  hear,  let  him 
hear. 

And  he  said  to  them,  consider  how  you  hear.  The  measure  which 
you  use,  will  be  dispensed  to  you.  For  to  him  who  has  much,  more  will 
be  given  ;  but  from  him  who  has  little,  even  that  which  he  possesses 
will  be  taken. 

He  accordingly  remarked,  Such  is  the  kingdom  of  God,  as  if  a  man 
should  cast  seed  into  the  ground,  and  should  both  sleep  by  night,  and 
wake  by  day,  and  the  seed  should  germinate  and  increase,  in  what  man- 
ner, he  cannot  discern.  For  the  spontaneous  earth  originally  produces 
the  blade,  then  the  ear,  and  eventually,  the  full  wheat  in  the  ear.  But 
when  the  grain  is  matured,  he  immediately  sends  out  the  sickle,  for  the 
harvest  has  arrived. 

He  further  observed.  To  what  shall  we  compare  the  kingdom  of  God  1 
or  by  what  parable  shall  we  illustrate  it  7  It  resembles  a  grain  of  mus- 
tard-seed, which  when  it  is  committed  to  the  earth,  is  one  of  the  least  of 
all  the  seeds  that  are  in  the  ground ;  but  when  it  is  sown,  it  grows  and 
becomes  greater  than  any  herb,  and  puts  forth  extensive  branches,  so 
that  the  birds  of  the  air  may  rest  under  its  shadow. 

And  in  such  comparisons  he  conveyed  instruction  to  the  people,  as 
far  as  they  were  able  to  understand  ;  but  he  did  not  address  them  with- 
out a  parable  ;  and  he  privately  explained  all  things  to  his  disciples. 

And  in  the  evening  of  the  same  day,  he  says  to  them,  Let  us  pass  to 
the  opposite  shore.  And  they,  dismissing  the  multitude,  but  having  him 
in  the  vessel,  sailed  in  company  with  other  small  vessels.  And  a  tem- 
pestuous wind  arose,  and  the  waves  dashed  into  the  vessel,  so  that  it  was 
nearly  filled.  And  he  was  at  the  stern,  sleeping  on  a  little  couch  ;  and 
they  awaken  him,  and  interrogate  him.  Master,  does  it  not  concern  thee, 
that  we  are  perishing  1  And  he  arose  and  commanded  the  wind,  say- 
ing to  the  sea,  Be  silent !  be  still !  And  the  wind  was  allayed,  and  a 
great  calm  ensued.  And  he  said  to  them.  Why  are  you  so  alarmed  1 
How  is  it  that  you  have  no  trust  ?  And  they  were  thrown  into  violent 
consternation,  and  observed  to  each  other.  Who,  indeed,  is  this,  that 
even  the  wind  and  the  sea  obey  him  !  And  they  reached  the  opposite 
coast  of  the  lake,  in  the  country  of  the  Gadarenes. 

And  as  he  left  the  boat,  a  man  immediately  met  him  from  the  sepul- 
chres, with  an  impure  spirit,  who  had  his  residence  in  the  tombs  ;  and 
none  could  confine  him,  even  with  chains  :  for  he  had  been  repeatedly 
12 


90  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

bound  with  fetters  and  chains,  and  had  wrenched  off  the  chains,  and 
broken  the  fetters  ;  and  no  one  could  subdue  him.  And  he  was  contin- 
ually, night  and  day,  on  the  mountains,  and  in  the  tombs,  exclaiming, 
and  cutting  himself  with  flints.  Now,  perceiving  Jesus  at  a  distance, 
he  ran  and  prostrating  himself  before  him,  cried  with  a  loud  voice,  and 
said.  What  concern  hast  thou  with  me,  Jesus,  Son  of  the  Most  High 
God  1  I  adjure  thee,  in  the  name  of  God,  not  to  afflict  me.  (For  Jesus 
had  said  to  him.  Depart  from  the  man,  impure  spirit) !  And  he  asked 
him.  What  is  your  name  1  And  he  thus  answered,  My  name  is  Legion, 
for  we  are  many.  And  he  earnestly  entreated  Jesus,  that  he  would  not 
send  them  from  the  country.  Moreover,  a  large  herd  of  swine  was  feed- 
ing in  the  vicinity  of  the  mountain.  And  the  demons  besought  him,  say- 
ing. Suffer  us  to  go  to  the  swine,  that  we  may  possess  them.  And  Jesus 
instantly  permitted  them.  And  the  impure  spirits  departing,  possessed 
the  swine  ;  and  the  herd,  consisting  of  about  two  thousand,  furiously 
ran  down  the  steep  declivity  into  the  sea,  and  were  strangled  in  the 
water.  And  the  herdsmen  fled,  and  announced  it  in  the  city,  and  in 
the  country.  And  the  people  went  out  to  see  what  had  occurred.  And 
they  came  to  Jesus,  and  saw  the  recent  demoniac  sitting  and  clothed, 
and  of  a  sound  mind ;  and  they  were  terrified.  And  those  who  were 
spectators,  related  to  them  what  had  happened  to  the  former  demoniac, 
and  likewise,  respecting  the  swine.  And  they  desired  him  to  depart 
from  their  borders.  And  when  he  had  entered  the  vessel,  the  late  de- 
moniac implored  him,  that  he  might  continue  with  him.  This  he  did 
not  permit,  but  said  to  him.  Return  home  to  your  friends,  and  tell  them 
how  much  the  Lord  has  performed  for  you,  and  that  he  has  compassion- 
ated you.  So  he  departed,  and  began  to  publish  in  Decapolis,  how 
much  Jesus  had  done  for  him.     And  all  were  astonished. 

And  Jesus  having  again  repassed  in  the  vessel  to  the  other  side,  a 
numerous  assembly  was  gathered  to  him  ;  and  he  remained  near  the 
sea.  And,  behold,  there  came  one  of  the  directors  of  the  synagogue, 
named  Jairus,  who  seeing  him,  fell  at  his  feet,  and  earnestly  solicited 
him,  saying.  That  little  daughter  of  mine  is  in  the  last  extremity ;  I 
pray  thee,  come  and  put  thy  hands  on  her  to  restore  her,  and  she  will 
be  well.  And  Jesus  went  with  him  ;  and  many  people  followed  him, 
and  pressed  upon  him. 

And  a  certain  woman,  having  had  a  hemorrhage  for  twelve  years,  and 
suffered  much  from  several  physicians,  and  exhausted  all  her  property, 
and  had  received  no  benefit,  but  the  malady  rather  increased,  when  she 
heard  of  Jesus,  came  behind  in  the  crowd,  and  touched  his  garment. 
For  she  said.  If  I  may  but  touch  his  clothes,  I  shall  recover.  And  the 
source  of  her  disease  was  instantly  counteracted  ;  and  she  perceived  in 
her  system,  that  she  was  released  from  that  scourge.  And  Jesus,  in- 
stantly conscious  in  himself,  of  the  efficacy  which  had  departed  from 
him,  turning  to  the  people,  said.  Who  touched  my  clothes  ?  And  his 
disciples  said  to  him,  Thou  beholdest  the  populace  pressing  thee,  and 


MARK'S  HISTORY.  91 

dost  thou  inquire,  Who  touched  me  1  And  he  looked  around  to  see  her, 
who  had  done  this.  Then  the  woman,  sensible  of  what  was  wrought 
upon  her,  came  trembUng  with  fear,  and  prostrated  herself  before  him, 
and  disclosed  to  him  the  whole  truth.  And  he  said  to  her.  Daughter, 
your  faith  has  preserved  you  ;  go  in  peace,  rescued  from  your  disease. 

While  he  was  speaking,  messengers  came  from  the  house  of  the  ruler 
of  the  synagogue,  saying.  Your  daughter  is  dead ;  why  do  you  further 
interrupt  the  Teacher  1  But  Jesus,  hearing  this  message  delivered, 
immediately  said  to  the  director  of  the  synagogue.  Fear  not ;  only  be- 
lieve. And  he  permitted  no  one  to  attend  him,  except  Peter,  and  James, 
and  John  the  brother  of  James.  And  he  proceeds  to  the  house  of  the 
ruler  of  the  synagogue,  and  observes  the  confusion,  excessive  weeping, 
and  lamentation.  And  having  entered,  he  says  to  them,  Why  do  you 
weep,  and  make  this  disturbance  ?  the  child  is  not  dead,  but  asleep. 
And  they  derided  him.  But,  excluding  them  all,  he  takes  with  him  the 
father  and  the  mother  of  the  child,  and  those  with  him,  and  enters  the 
chamber  where  the  child  was.  And  taking  the  child  by  the  hand,  he 
said  to  her,  Talitha  cumi ;  which,  being  translated,  signifies.  Young 
maiden  arise,  I  command  you.  And  the  young  maiden  instantly  arose, 
and  walked ;  for  she  was  twelve  years  of  age.  And  they  were  confound- 
ed with  astonishment.  And  he  strictly  charged  them  not  to  mention  it 
to  any  one  ;  and  directed  that  food  should  be  given  her. 

And  Jesus  departed  from  Capernaum,  and  came  to  his  own  city ;  and 
his  disciples  attended  him.  And  on  the  sabbath,  he  began  to  teach  in 
the  synagogue  ;  and  the  numerous  hearers  were  deeply  impressed,  say- 
ing. Whence  has  this  man  these  powers  1  and  what  wisdom  is  this,  which 
is  imparted  to  him  ?  and  how  are  such  miracles  achieved  by  his  hands  ? 
Is  not  this  the  carpenter,  the  son  of  Mary,  and  the  brother  of  James, 
and  Joses,  and  Jude,  and  Simon  1  and  are  not  his  sisters  present  with 
us  1  And  they  revolted  at  him.  And  Jesus  observed  to  them,  A  pro- 
phet is  no  where  less  honored,  than  in  his  own  country,  and  among  his 
relatives,  even  in  his  own  family.  And  he  was  unwilling  to  perform 
any  miracles  there,  except  that  he  put  his  hands  on  a  few  sick  persons, 
and  healed  them.     And  he  was  surprised  at  their  want  of  confidence. 

Moreover,  he  visited  the  adjacent  villages,  teaching.  And  he  called 
to  him  the  twelve  disciples,  and  sent  them  out  in  pairs  ;  and  gave  them 
authority  over  the  impure  spirits  ;  and  commanded  them  that  they  should 
take  nothing  for  their  journey,  but  a  single  stafi";  no  bag,  no  bread,  no 
money  in  their  girdle  :  but  to  bind  sandals  on  their  feet ;  and  not  to 
wear  two  coats.  And  he  said  to  them.  Whatever  house  you  enter,  re- 
main there,  till  you  leave  the  place.  And  wherever  they  wiU  not  receive 
you,  nor  hear  you,  shalie  off  the  dust  under  your  feet  at  your  departure, 
as  a  protestation  against  them.  And  having  departed,  they  pubUcly 
admonished  men  that  they  should  reform.  And  they  expelled  many 
demons,  and  anointed  numerous  invalids  with  oil,  and  healed  them. 


92  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

And  Herod  the  king  heard  of  him,  (for  he  had  been  extensively  pro- 
claimed) ;  and  he  declared,  John  the  Baptist  is  raised  from  the  dead, 
and  therefore  miracles  are  performed  by  him.  Others  announced.  It  is 
Elijah.  And  others  affirmed,  It  is  a  prophet,  like  those  of  ancient  times. 
But  Herod,  being  reminded  of  him,  alleged,  This  is  John,  whom  I  de- 
capitated ;  he  is  raised  from  the  dead. 

Now  Herod  had  sent  and  seized  John,  and  bound  him  in  prison,  on 
account  of  Herodias,  the  wife  of  his  brother  Philip,  whom  he  had  himself 
married.  For  John  had  said  to  Herod,  it  is  not  lawful  for  you  to  have 
your  brother's  wife.  Herodias  was  therefore  incensed  against  him,  and 
would  have  killed  him,  but  could  not,  because  Herod  respected  John, 
knowing  that  he  was  a  just  and  holy  man,  and  protected  him  ;  and  did 
many  things  recommended  by  him,  and  cheerfully  listened  to  him.  At 
length  a  favorable  opportunity  offered,  which  was  Herod's  birthday, 
when  he  made  an  entertainment  for  his  principal,  civil  and  mihtary 
officers,  and  other  distinguished  persons  in  Galilee.  For  the  daughter 
of  Herodias,  having  entered  and  danced  before  them,  so  delighted  Herod 
and  his  guests,  that  the  king  declared  to  the  damsel,  Ask  me  whatever 
you  please,  and  I  will  give  it  to  you.  Indeed,  he  made  oath  to  her,  I 
will  give  you  whatever  you  wish,  even  were  it  half  of  my  kingdom.  And 
withdrawing,  she  said  to  her  mother,  What  shall  I  request  1  And  she 
replied.  The  head  of  John  the  Baptist.  And  instantly  returning  with 
haste  to  the  king,  she  presented  this  request,  I  desire  that  you  would 
give  me  presently,  in  a  basin,  the  head  of  John  the  Baptist.  And  the 
king  was  exceedingly  grieved ;  however,  from  a  regard  to  liis  oaths,  and 
his  guests,  he  would  not  refuse  her.  And  the  king,  having  immediately 
sent  one  of  his  guards,  commanded  that  liis  head  should  be  brought. 
And  departing,  the  guard  beheaded  John  in  the  prison,  and  brought  his 
head  in  a  basin,  and  gave  it  to  the  damsel,  and  the  latter  gave  it  to  her 
mother.  And  his  disciples,  receiving  the  intelligence,  came  and  removed 
his  remains,  and  placed  them  in  a  sepulchre. 

And  the  apostles  proceeded  in  company  to  Jesus,  and  related  every 
thing  to  him,  both  what  they  had  done,  and  what  they  had  taught.  And 
he  said  to  them.  Privately  retire  by  yourselves  to  a  solitary  place,  and 
repose  awhile :  for  so  many  were  coming  and  going,  that  they  had  no 
leisure  even  to  eat.  And  they  went  privately  to  a  desert  place,  in  a 
vessel.  And  the  people  observed  their  departure,  and  many  recognised 
him,  and  hastened  there  by  land  from  all  the  cities,  and  preceding  them, 
collectively  repaired  to  him.  And  when  Jesus  disembarked,  he  saw  a 
great  multitude,  and  was  moved  with  compassion  for  them,  since  they 
were  as  sheep  having  no  shepherd  ;  and  he  taught  them  many  things. 

Further,  when  the  day  had  nearly  passed,  his  disciples  approaching 
him,  remarked.  This  is  an  uninliabited  place,  and  the  time  is  far  ad- 
vanced;  dismiss  the  people,  that  they  may  proceed  to  the  adjacent 
country  and  villages,  and  purchase  for  themselves  bread  ;  for  they  have 


MARK'S   HISTORY.  93 

nothing  to  eat.  But  he  answering,  said  to  them,  Supply  them  yourselves 
with  food.  And  they  asked  him,  Shall  we  go  and  buy  bread  to  the  value 
of  two  hundred  denarii,  and  give  them  provisions  1  And  he  says  to  them. 
How  many  loaves  have  you  1  Go  and  see.  And  having  ascertained, 
they  replied.  Five,  and  two  fishes.  And  he  commanded  them  to  cause 
all  the  people  to  sit  down  by  companies  on  the  green  grass.  And  they 
arranged  themselves  in  squares,  by  hundreds  and  by  fifties.  And  taldng 
the  five  loaves  and  the  two  fishes,  and  looking  towards  heaven,  he  praised 
God,  and  broke  the  loaves,  and  gave  to  his  disciples,  that  they  might  dis- 
pense to  the  multitude  ;  and  he  distributed  the  two  fishes  among  them 
all.  And  they  all  did  eat  and  were  satisfied.  And  they  carried  away 
twelve  full  baskets  of  the  fragments  of  bread,  and  of  the  fishes.  And 
they  who  had  eaten  of  the  loaves,  were  five  thousand  men. 

And  immediately  he  obliged  his  disciples  to  enter  the  vessel,  and  go 
before  to  the  opposite  coast,  towards  Bethsaida,  till  he  should  send  away 
the  people.  And  having  dismissed  them,  he  retired  to  a  mountain  to 
pray.  And  when  evening  came,  the  vessel  was  in  the  midst  of  the  sea, 
and  he  was  alone  on  the  land.  And  he  saw  them  toiling  at  the  oar,  for 
the  wind  was  against  them  :  and  about  the  fourth  watch  of  the  night, 
he  went  to  them,  walking  on  the  water,  and  inclined  to  pass  them.  But 
when  they  perceived  him  walking  on  the  sea,  they  fancied  him  to  be  a 
spectre,  and  uttered  a  shriek:  (for  they  all  saw  him,  and  were  dismayed). 
And  he  quickly  conversed  with  them,  and  said  to  them,  Have  courage, 
it  is  I,  be  not  intimidated.  And  having  gone  aboard  to  them,  the  wind 
ceased,  which  struck  them  still  more  with  astonishment  and  admiration  : 
for  their  minds  were  so  stupefied,  that  they  never  reflected  upon  the 
loaves. 

Now  having  passed  over,  they  approached  the  territory  of  Gennesaret, 
and  put  to  shore.  And  when  they  had  left  the  boat,  the  inhabitants  im- 
mediately recollected  him,  and  running  through  all  the  adjacent  country, 
began  to  carry  about  the  sick,  on  couches,  to  every  place  where  they 
heard  that  he  was.  And  wherever  he  entered  villages,  or  cities,  or 
towns,  they  laid  the  diseased  in  the  streets,  and  entreated  him  that  they 
might,  at  least,  touch  the  border  of  his  garment ;  and  as  many  as  touched 
him,  were  healed. 

And  the  pharisees,  and  some  of  the  scribes,  who  had  come  from  Jeru- 
salem, resorted  together  to  Jesus.  And  they  perceived  some  of  his  dis- 
ciples eating  bread  with  impure,  that  is,  with  unwashed  hands.  (For 
the  pharisees  and  all  the  Jews  refiise  to  eat,  till  they  have  washed  their 
hands  to  the  wrists,  retaining  the  tradition  of  the  elders.  And  returning 
from  the  market,  they  eat  not,  except  they  are  washed.  And  there  are 
many  other  things  which  they  receive  and  maintain  ;  —  for  example,  — 
the  washing  of  cups,  and  measures,  and  brazen  vessels,  and  seats). 
Therefore,  the  pharisees  and  the  scribes  interrogated  him.  Why  do  thy 
disciples  disregard  the  tradition  of  the  elders,  and  receive  food  with  un- 
washed hands  ?     He  answered  and  said  to  them.  Dissemblers  !     Isaiah 


94  APOSTOLIC   PRODUCTIONS. 

justly  described  your  character,  when  he  declared,  This  people  reverence 
me  with  their  hps,  but  their  heart  is  far  estranged  from  me.  They  vainly 
affect,  however,  to  worship  me,  while  they  teach  as  doctrines,  the  insti- 
tutes of  men.  For,  rehnquishing  the  command  of  God,  you  retain  the 
tradition  of  men,  such  as  the  cleansing  of  measures  and  cups,  and  many 
similar  practices.  And  he  remarked  to  them.  You  absolutely  frustrate 
the  authority  of  God,  that  you  may  establish  your  tradition.  For  Moses 
said.  Honor  thy  father  and  thy  mother  ;  and  whoever  reviles  father  or 
mother,  let  him  be  punished  with  death.  But  you  teach,  that  a  man  may 
say  to  father  or  mother.  Let  that  be  a  pious  gift,  through  which  you  might 
receive  aid  from  me  ;  and  then,  you  no  more  permit  him  to  do  any  thing 
for  his  father  or  his  mother  ;  disannuUng  the  word  of  God  by  your  tra- 
dition, which  you  have  instituted.  And  you  thus  conduct  in  many  other 
instances. 

Moreover,  having  again  called  the  people,  he  said  to  them,  let  all  hs- 
ten  to  me,  and  understand.  There  is  nothing  extrinsic  to  a  man,  which 
entering  him  can  pollute  him ;  but  the  things,  which  proceed  from  a 
man,  are  those  that  contaminate  him.  If  any  one  has  ears  to  hear,  let 
him  hear. 

And  when  Jesus  had  passed  from  the  people  into  a  house,  his  disci- 
ples asked  him  concerning  the  parable.  And  he  says  to  them,  Have 
even  you,  hkewise,  no  comprehension  1  Do  you  not  perceive  that  what- 
ever enters  a  man  from  without,  cannot  contaminate  him  ?  For  it  enters 
not  his  heart,  but  the  stomach,  and  ultimately  operates  to  the  purifying 
disposal  of  all  food.  But  he  alleged.  It  is  what  proceeds  from  a  man, 
that  pollutes  him.  For,  from  the  interior,  from  the  heart  of  man,  em- 
anate unprincipled  reasonings,  adulteries,  fornications,  murders,  thefts, 
avarice,  malignity,  fraud,  sensuality,  envy,  calumny,  pride,  and  folly. 
All  these  evils  originate  from  within,  and  render  a  man  impure. 

And  arising  thence,  he  withdrew  to  the  country  between  Tyre  and 
Sidon,  and  entered  a  house,  intending  that  no  one  should  know  it ;  but 
he  could  not  be  concealed.  For  a  woman,  whose  young  daughter  had 
an  impure  spirit,  having  heard  of  him,  came  and  fell  at  his  feet,  (now 
she  was  a  Grecian  woman,  a  native  of  Syrophenicia) ;  and  besought 
him  that  he  would  expel  the  evil  spirit  from  her  daughter.  But  Jesus 
said  to  her.  Let  the  children  first  be  satisfied ;  for  it  is  not  proper  to 
take  the  children's  bread,  and  throw  it  to  the  dogs.  And  she  said  to 
him  in  reply,  I  implore  thee.  Sir  ;  since  even  the  dogs  under  the  table 
eat  of  the  children's  crumbs.  And  he  said  to  her,  For  this  remark,  re- 
tire ;  the  demon  has  departed  from  your  daughter.  And  returning  to 
her  house,  she  found  the  polluted  spirit  expelled,  and  her  daughter  re- 
clining on  a  couch. 

And  again  leaving  the  borders  of  Tyre  and  Sidon,  he  came  to  the 
lake  of  Galilee,  through  the  precincts  of  DecapoUs  :  And  they  brought 
to  him  one  who  was  deaf  and  partly  dumb,  and  entreated  him  that  he 
would  put  his  hand  upon  him.    And  Jesus,  having  privately  taken  him 


MARK'S  HISTORY.  95 

aside  from  the  multitude,  the  deaf  man  put  his  fingers  into  his  own  ears, 
and  spitting,  touched  his  tongue,  and  looking  up  to  heaven,  he  groaned ; 
and  Jesus  said  to  him,  Ephphatha,  that  is.  Be  opened.  And  immediately 
his  ears  were  opened,  and  the  cord  of  his  tongue  was  loosed,  and  he 
spoke  distinctly.  And  Jesus  charged  them  not  to  inform  any  one  ;  but 
the  more  strictly  he  enjoined  it  on  them,  the  more  extensively  did  they 
publish  it.  And  they  were  struck  with  exceeding  astonishment,  declar- 
ing. He  has  performed  all  things  well ;  he  makes  even  the  deaf  to  hear, 
and  the  dumb  to  speak. 

At  that  period,  there  being  again  a  great  multitude,  and  having  no 
food,  Jesus  calling  his  disciples,  says  to  them,  I  tenderly  pity  this  as- 
semblage, since  they  have  already  continued  with  me  three  days,  and 
have  nothing  to  eat.  And  if  I  send  them  to  their  residence  fasting, 
they  will  faint  by  the  way ;  for  some  of  them  came  from  a  distance. 
And  his  disciples  replied  to  him,  How  can  any  one  satisfy  these  persons 
with  bread,  in  this  wilderness  ?  And  he  asked  them,  How  many  loaves 
have  you  1  And  they  said.  Seven.  And  he  commanded  the  people  to 
sit  down  on  the  ground  :  and  taking  the  seven  loaves,  and  offering 
thanks  to  God,  he  broke  them,  and  gave  them  to  his  disciples  for  dis- 
tribution ;  and  they  placed  them  before  the  multitude.  And  they  had  a 
few  small  fishes  ;  and  rendering  thanks,  he  said.  Place  these  also  before 
them.  Thus  did  they  eat  and  were  satisfied ;  and  seven  hand-baskets 
of  remaining  fragments  were  taken  away.  Now  they,  who  had  eaten, 
were  about  four  thousand. 

And  having  left  them,  he  immediately  embarked  with  his  disciples, 
and  proceeded  to  the  confines  of  Dalmanutha.  And  the  pharisees 
came,  and  began  to  argue  with  him ;  and  with  a  view  to  prove  him, 
requested  of  him  a  sign  from  heaven.  And  sighing  deeply  within  him- 
self, he  said.  Why  does  this  race  seek  a  sign  1  I  assure  you  that  no 
sign  shall  be  given  to  this  race.  And  leaving  them,  he  again  entered 
the  vessel,  and  passed  to  the  other  side. 

Now  the  disciples  had  forgotten  to  take  bread,  and  had  but  one  loaf 
with  them  in  the  boat.  And  he  charged  them,  saying.  Be  vigilantly  cau- 
tious of  the  leaven  of  the  pharisees,  and  of  the  leaven  of  Herod.  And 
they  thus  conferred  with  each  other ;  This  is  because  we  have  no  bread. 
And  Jesus  knowing  it,  says  to  them.  Why  do  you  converse,  because  you 
have  no  bread  ?  Do  you  not  yet  perceive,  nor  reflect  ?  Do  you  still 
retain  your  blinded  understanding  1  Having  eyes,  do  you  not  see  ?  and 
having  ears,  do  you  not  hear  1  And  do  you  not  recollect,  when  I  broke 
the  five  loaves  among  the  five  thousand,  how  many  full  baskets  of  frag- 
ments you  collected  1  They  answer  him.  Twelve.  And  when  the  seven 
loaves  among  the  four  thousand,  how  many  baskets  of  remaining  frag- 
ments you  gathered  1  And  they  replied,  Seven.  And  he  said  to  them, 
How  is  it  that  you  do  not  comprehend  me  ? 

And  he  came  to  Bethsaida  ;  and  they  brought  to  him  a  blind  person, 
and  implored  him,  that  he  would  touch  him.     And  taking  the  hand  of 


96  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

the  blind  man,  he  conducted  him  out  of  the  town  ;  and  having  put  spit- 
tle on  his  eyes,  and  placed  his  hands  upon  him,  he  asked  him  whether 
he  discerned  any  thing.  And  raising  his  eyes,  he  said,  I  see  men,  whom 
I  distinguish  from  trees  only  by  their  walking.  Then  Jesus  again  plac- 
ed his  hands  on  the  eyes  of  the  man,  and  caused  him  to  look  up  ;  and 
he  was  restored,  and  saw  every  object  clearly.  And  he  sent  him  away 
to  his  own  house,  saying.  Do  not  enter  the  village,  nor  disclose  this  to 
any  one  in  the  place. 

Moreover,  Jesus  and  his  disciples  went  out  to  the  towns  of  Cesarea 
Philippi  ;  and  in  the  journey  he  thus  questioned  his  disciples.  Whom  do 
men  say  that  I  am  1  And  they  replied,  John  the  Baptist ;  though  some 
say,  Elijah ;  and  others.  One  of  the  prophets.  And  he  says  to  them, 
whom,  however,  do  you  announce  me  to  be.  And  Peter  answering,  de- 
clares to  him,  Thou  art  the  Messiah.  And  he  charged  them,  that  they 
should  not  inform  any  one  respecting  him. 

And  he  began  to  apprise  them  how  exceedingly  the  Son  of  Man  must 
suffer,  and  be  rejected  by  the  elders,  and  chief  priests,  and  scribes,  and 
be  slain,  and  return  to  life  after  three  days.  And  he  communicated  that 
information,  with  great  plainness.  And  Peter  officiously  interposed, 
and  proceeded  to  remonstrate  with  him.  But  turning  around,  and  sur- 
veying his  disciples,  he  reprimanded  Peter,  saying.  Impede  not  my 
course,  adversary  !  for  you  do  not  regard  the  concerns  of  God,  but 
those  of  men. 

And  having  called  the  people  with  his  disciples,  he  remarked  to  them, 
"Whoever  inclines  to  go  with  me,  let  him  perfectly  renounce  himself, 
and  take  up  his  cross,  and  follow  me.  For  whoever  desires  to  save  his 
life,  will  lose  it ;  but  whoever  would  sacrifice  his  life  in  my  cause,  and 
that  of  the  gospel,  he  will  preserve  it.  For  what  will  it  avail  a  man,  if 
he  should  gain  the  whole  world,  and  lose  his  life  1  Or  what  can  a  man 
give  to  redeem  his  life  1  If,  therefore,  any  one  shall  be  ashamed  of  me, 
and  of  these  my  words,  among  this  impious  and  iniquitous  race  of  peo- 
ple ;  the  Son  of  Man  will  also  be  ashamed  of  him,  when  he  comes  in  the 
glory  of  the  Father,  with  the  holy  angels.  And  Jesus  said  to  the 
people  and  his  disciples,  I  solemnly  declare  to  you,  that  some,  here 
present,  vnll  not  die,  till  they  have  seen  the  reign  of  God  introduced 
with  power. 

Now  after  six  days,  Jesus  takes  Peter,  and  James,  and  John,  and  pri- 
vately leads  them,  by  themselves,  to  an  elevated  mountain ;  where  his 
aspect  was  changed  to  their  view  ;  for  his  garments  became  resplendent, 
exceedingly  white,  even  as  snow ;  such  as  no  fuller  on  the  earth  could 
bleach.  And  there  appeared  to  them  Elijah,  with  Moses  ;  and  they 
were  conversing  with  Jesus.  And  Peter,  in  return,  says  to  Jesus,  Mas- 
ter, it  is  well  for  us  to  remain  here  ;  and  let  us  build  three  booths  ;  one 
for  thee,  and  one  for  Moses,  and  one  for  Elijah.  He  was  not,  however, 
conscious  what  he  said ;  for  they  were  greatly  alarmed.  And  a  cloud 
enveloped  them ;  and  a  voice  proceeded  from  the  cloud,  announcing. 


MARKS  HISTORY.  97 

This  is  my  beloved  Son  ;  hear  him.  And  suddenly  looking  around, 
they  no  longer  saw  any  one  with  them,  except  Jesus. 

And  as  they  were  descending  from  the  mountain,  he  commanded  them 
not  to  relate  to  any  one  what  they  had  seen,  at  least,  till  the  Son  of  Man 
were  risen  from  the  dead.  And  they  retained  this  injunction  among 
themselves,  zealously  inquiring,  when  he  would  arise  from  the  dead  1 
Then,  they  thus  questioned  him.  Why  do  the  scribes  declare,  that  Elijah 
must  first  come  ?  And  he  said  to  them  in  answer,  Elijah,  indeed,  first 
comes  and  consummates  all  things ;  and  (as  it  is  recorded  of  the  Son  of 
Man),  must  likewise  suffer  much,  and  be  contemptuously  rejected.  But, 
I  say  to  you,  that  Elijah  has  even  appeared,  and  they  have  done  to  him 
whatever  they  were  disposed,  as  it  was  predicted  concerning  him. 

And  when  he  returned  to  the  other  disciples,  he  saw  a  numerous  as- 
sembly about  them,  and  the  scribes  disputing  with  them.  And  the  whole 
multitude,  when  they  saw  him,  were  greatly  surprised,  and  running  to 
him,  saluted  him.  And  he  asked  the  scribes.  On  what  are  you  contend- 
ing with  them  1  And  one  of  the  people  answering  said.  Teacher,  I 
have  brought  to  thee  my  son,  having  a  dumb  spirit ;  and  wherever  it 
seizes  him,  it  rends  him  ;  and  he  foams,  and  grinds  his  teeth,  and  lan- 
guishes. And  I  applied  to  thy  disciples  to  cast  out  the  evil  spirit ;  but 
they  were  unable.  And  Jesus  said  to  him  in  reply,  O  distrustfiil  race  ! 
how  long  must  I  remain  with  you  t  how  long  shall  I  endure  you  ?  bring 
him  to  me.  And  they  brought  the  man  to  him.  And  when  Jesus  saw 
him,  the  spirit  instantly  convulsed  him  ;  and  falling  on  the  ground,  he 
rolled,  foaming.  And  Jesus  inquired  of  his  father,  How  long  is  it  since 
this  first  befell  him  1  And  he  replied,  From  his  infancy :  and  it  has 
frequently  thrown  him  even  into  the  fire,  and  into  the  water,  to  destroy 
him.  If  thou  canst  therefore  effect  any  thing,  take  pity  on  us,  and  re- 
lieve us.  Then  Jesus  said  to  him,  [I  can,]  if  you  can  believe  ; — all 
things  are  attainable  by  the  beUever.  And  the  father  of  the  child  im- 
mediately exclaiming,  said  with  tears,  I  do  believe  ;  fortify  me  against 
unbelief.  But  Jesus,  perceiving  that  the  people  hastened  together,  re- 
proved the  polluted  spirit,  saying  to  it.  Dumb  and  deaf  spirit,  I  com- 
mand you  to  depart  from  him,  and  to  enter  him  no  more.  And  the 
spirit  departed,  having  cried  aloud,  and  violently  distorted  him.  And 
he  was  so  much  like  one  dead,  that  many  aflirmed.  He  is  dead.  But 
Jesus,  taking  him  by  the  hand,  raised  him,  and  he  stood  up. 

And  when  Jesus  had  entered  a  house,  his  disciples  privately  asked 
him.  Why  could  not  we  expel  the  demon  1  And  he  said  to  them,  This 
class  cannot  be  dislodged  by  any  means,  except  through  prayer  and 
fasting. 

Further,  departing  thence,  they  passed  through  Galilee,  and  he  desir- 
ed that  no  one  should  know  it :  for  he  was  instructing  his  disciples. 
And  he  said  to  them,  the  Son  of  Man  will  soon  be  delivered  into  the 
hands  of  men,  and  they  will  kill  him  ;  and  after  he  is  slaiii,  he  will  be 

13 


98  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

restored  to  life  on  the  third  day.  But  they  did  not  comprehend  the 
declaration,  and  feared  to  interrogate  him. 

And  he  came  to  Capernaum  :  and  being  in  the  house,  he  asked  them, 
what  had  been  their  altercation  with  each  other  on  the  road  1  But  they 
were  silent ;  for  they  had  been  debating  among  themselves  on  the  road, 
as  to  their  relative  superiority.  And  being  seated,  he  called  the  twelve, 
and  observed  to  them  ;  If  any  person  wish  to  be  first,  let  him  be  the 
last  of  all,  and  the  servant  of  all.  And  taking  a  little  child,  he  placed 
him  in  the  midst  of  them  ;  and  having  embraced  him  in  his  arms,  he 
said  to  them.  Whoever  shall  entertain  one  such  little  child,  in  my  name, 
entertains  me  ;  and  whoever  shall  receive  me,  not  only  receives  me,  but 
him  who  sent  me. 

(Now  John  thus  remarked  to  him,  Master,  we  saw  one  expelUng  evil 
spirits  in  thy  name,  and  we  prohibited  him,  because  he  does  not  follow 
us.  But  Jesus  said.  Do  not  prohibit  him  ;  since  no  one  who  shall  per- 
form a  miracle  in  my  name,  will  rashly  reproach  me.  For  he  who  is 
not  against  you,  is  for  you). 

Whoever,  indeed,  shall  present  you  with  a  cup  of  water  to  drink,  in 
my  name,  because  you  belong  to  Christ,  I  assure  you,  that  he  will  not 
lose  his  reward.  But  whoever  shall  pervert  any  of  the  humble  disciples 
who  believe  in  me,  it  would  be  better  for  him  that  a  millstone  were  fast- 
ened to  his  neck,  and  that  he  were  thrown  into  the  sea.  Moreover,  if 
thy  hand  cause  thee  to  sin,  cut  it  off;  it  is  better  for  thee  to  enter  life 
maimed,  than,  with  two  hands,  to  depart  to  gehenna,  to  the  inextin- 
guishable fire ;  where  their  worm  dies  not,  and  the  fire  is  not  quenched. 
And  if  thy  foot  cause  thee  to  stumble,  cut  it  off;  it  is  better  for  thee 
to  enter  life  lame,  than,  with  two  feet,  to  be  cast  into  gehenna,  into 
the  unquenchable  fire  ;  where  their  worm  dies  not,  and  the  fire  is  not 
extinguished.  And  if  thine  eye  lead  thee  to  transgress,  pull  it  out ; 
it  is  better  for  thee  to  enter  the  kingdom  of  God  with  one  eye,  than, 
with  two  eyes,  to  be  cast  into  the  gehenna  of  fire  ;  where  their  worm 
expires  not,  and  the  fire  is  not  extinguished.  For  every  one  will  be 
salted  with  fire  ;  and  every  sacrifice  will  be  seasoned  with  salt.  Salt  is 
good  ;  but  if  the  salt  become  tasteless,  how  will  you  restore  it  ?  Pre- 
serve salt  in  yourselves  ;  and  maintain  peace  with  each  other. 

And  Jesus  departed  from  Galilee,  and  came  to  the  borders  of  Judea, 
on  the  opposite  bank  of  the  Jordan  ;  and  multitudes  again  resorted  to 
him  ;  and,  as  he  was  accustomed,  he  continued  to  teach  them. 

And  the  pharisees  approaching,  tried  him  with  this  question.  Is  it  law- 
ful for  a  man  to  divorce  his  wife  ?  And  he  replying,  said  to  them.  What 
injunction  has  Moses  given  you  1  And  they  said,  Moses  has  permitted 
us  to  give  a  writing  of  divorce,  and  to  dismiss  her.  And  Jesus  answer- 
ing, remarked  to  them.  He  gave  you  this  permission  in  consequence  of 
your  intractable  character.  But  from  the  beginning,  at  the  creation, 
God  made  them  a  male  and  a  female.     For  this  reason,  a  man  will 


MARK'S  HISTORY.  99 

leave  his  father  and  mother,  and  adhere  to  his  wife  ;  and  they  two  will 
be  one  person.  They  are,  then,  no  longer  two,  but  one  pei-son.  What, 
therefore,  God  has  blended,  let  not  man  separate. 

And  in  the  house,  his  disciples  again  questioned  him,  on  the  same 
subject.  And  he  declared  to  them.  Whoever  shall  discard  his  wife,  and 
marry  another,  commits  adultery  against  her.  And  if  a  woman  shall 
repudiate  her  husband,  and  be  married  to  another,  she  is  an  adulteress. 

Then  they  brought  young  children  to  him,  that  he  might  touch  them  ; 
but  the  disciples  reprimanded  those  who  brought  them  ;  but  Jesus,  per- 
ceiving it,  was  greatly  displeased,  and  said  to  them.  Permit  the  little 
children  to  come  to  me,  and  forbid  them  not ;  for  of  such,  is  the  king- 
dom of  God.  In  truth,  I  declare  to  you,  Whoever  shall  not,  like  a  little 
child,  receive  the  kingdom  of  God,  he  cannot  enter  it.  And  taking 
them  in  his  arms,  he  put  his  hands  upon  them,  and  blessed  them. 

And  as  he  passed  along  to  the  road,  a  certain  person  ran,  and  kneel- 
ing before  him,  inquired  of  him.  Excellent  Teacher,  what  good  thing 
shall  I  do,  that  I  may  inherit  eternal  life  1  But  Jesus  said  to  him.  Why 
do  you  call  me  excellent  7  God  alone  is  excellent.  You  know  the 
commandments  ;  Do  not  commit  adultery  ;  do  not  commit  murder  ;  do 
not  steal ;  do  not  give  false  testimony  ;  do  no  injury ;  honor  your  father 
and  mother.  And  he  said  to  him  in  reply,  Teacher,  I  have  obeyed  all 
these  precepts,  from  my  childhood.  And  Jesus,  intensely  surveying 
him,  loved  him,  and  observed  to  him.  In  one  particular,  you  are  defi- 
cient ;  go,  dispose  of  your  possessions,  and  give  the  price  to  the  poor, 
and  you  will  have  treasure  in  heaven  ;  and  come,  take  up  the  cross,  and 
follow  me.  But  he  was  deeply  impressed  at  that  requisition,  and  went 
away  dejected ;  for  he  had  a  vast  estate. 

And  Jesus  looking  around,  observed  to  his  disciples.  With  what  diffi- 
culty do  they,  who  have  wealth,  come  into  the  kingdom  of  God  ?  And 
the  disciples  were  surprised  at  his  suggestion.  But  Jesus  again  pro- 
claimed to  them  in  return.  Children,  how  difficult  is  it  for  those  who 
trust  in  riches,  to  come  into  the  kingdom  of  God  !  It  is  easier  for  a 
camel  to  go  through  the  eye  of  a  needle,  than  for  a  rich  man  to  enter 
the  kingdom  of  God.  And  they  were  inexpressibly  astonished,  and  said 
to  each  other.  What  rich  man  then  can  be  saved  1  And  Jesus,  earnest- 
ly looking  on  them,  affirmed.  With  men  it  may  be  impossible,  but  not 
with  God,  for  all  things  are  possible  with  God. 

Then  Peter  proceeded  to  announce  to  him.  Behold,  we  have  left  all, 
and  followed  thee.  And  Jesus  answering,  alleged,  I  confidently  apprise 
you,  that  there  is  no  one,  who  has  left  mansion,  or  brothers,  or  sisters, 
or  father,  or  mother,  or  wife,  or  children,  or  lands,  on  my  account,  and 
in  the  cause  of  the  gospel ;  who  will  not  receive  now,  at  this  very 
period,  a  hundred  fold, — houses,  and  brethren,  and  sisters,  and  fathers, 
and  mothers,  and  children,  and  lands, — but  with  persecutions  ;  and  in 
the  future  state,  eternal  life.  But  many  will  be  first,  who  are  last ;  and 
last,  who  are  first. 


100  APOSTOLIC   PRODUCTIONS. 

Now,  they  were  on  the  road,  ascending  to  Jerusalem  ;  and  Jesus  was 
preceding  them  :  and  they  were  surprised  ;  and  as  they  followed,  they 
were  in  consternation  ;  for  having  again  taken  the  twelve  aside,  he  pro- 
ceeded to  inform  them  what  events  would  befall  him.  Behold,  says  he, 
we  advance  to  Jerusalem,  and  the  Son  of  Man  will  be  surrendered  to 
the  chief  priests  and  the  scribes  ;  and  they  will  sentence  him  to  death, 
and  will  consign  him  to  the  Gentiles,  who  will  deride  him,  and  scourge 
him,  and  spit  upon  him,  and  kill  him  ;  and  on  the  third  day  h§  will 
return  to  life. 

And  James  and  John,  the  sons  of  Zebedee,  thus  accosted  him,  Mas- 
ter, we  wish  that  thou  wouldst  perform  for  us  whatever  we  may  request. 
And  he  said  to  them,  What  do  you  desire  me  to  do  for  you  7  And  they 
replied  to  him,  Permit  us  to  sit,  one  at  thy  right  hand,  and  the  other  at 
thy  left,  in  thy  glory.  But  Jesus  declared  to  them.  You  know  not  what 
you  request.  Can  you  partake  of  the  cup  which  I  am  to  drink  ?  or  re- 
ceive the  baptism,  which  I  am  to  realize  1  And  they  answered  him.  We 
can.  And  Jesus  affirmed  to  them.  You  will,  indeed,  drink  from  the  cup, 
of  which  I  must  participate  ;  and  endure  a  baptism  like  that  which  I 
must  endure  ;  biut  to  sit  on  my  right  hand,  and  on  my  left,  I  am  not  em- 
powered to  grant,  except  to  those,  for  whom  it  is  prepared. 

And  the  ten,  having  heard  it,  were  exasperated  against  James  and 
John.  Jesus,  therefore,  having  summoned  the  disciples,  reminded  them. 
You  are  aware,  that  the  rulers  of  the  nations  domineered  over  them  ; 
and  their  princes  exercised  despotic  authority  over  them.  But,  it  must 
not  be  thus  with  you  ;  since,  ijrhoever  would  be  exalted  among  you,  let 
him  attend  upon  you  ;  and  whoever  is  disposed  to  be  your  master,  let 
him  be  the  servant  of  all.  For  even  the  Son  of  Man  came  not  to  be 
served,  but  to  render  service,  and  to  give  his  life  a  ransom  for  many. 

Moreover,  they  came  to  Jericho  ;  and  as  he  left  the  place  with  his 
disciples  and  a  great  multitude,  the  blind  man,  Bartholomew,  the  son  of 
Timeus,  sat  by  the  side  of  the  road,  begging.  And  being  informed  that 
it  was  Jesus  the  Nazarean,  he  began  to  cry  out,  and  say,  Jesus,  son  of 
David,  have  compassion  on  me  !  And  many  charged  him  to  keep  si- 
lence ;  but  he  cried  the  more  eagerly.  Son  of  David,  have  compassion  on 
me !  Then  Jesus,  standing  there,  commanded  him  to  be  called.  And 
they  called  the  bhnd  man,  saying,  Have  confidence,  arise  ;  he  calls  you. 
And  throwing  aside  his  garment,  he  arose,  and  came  to  Jesus,  And 
Jesus  in  return  says  to  him,  What  do  you  wish  me  to  do  for  you  1  The 
blind  man  repUed  to  him,  Teacher,  that  thou  wouldst  restoi-e  my  sight. 
Jesus  then  said  to  him,  Depart ;  your  faith  has  preserved  you.  And  he 
immediately  recovered  his  sight,  and  followed  Jesus  in  the  road. 

Now  as  Jesus  and  his  disciples  approached  Jerusalem,  in  Bethphage 
and  Bethany,  at  the  foot  of  the  mount  of  Olives,  he  sent  two  of  his  dis- 
ciples, and  thus  directed  them,  Go  to  the  viUage  opposite  to  you  ;  and 
as  soon  as  you  enter  it,  you  will  find  a  colt  tied,  on  which  no  man  ever 
rode  ;  untie  it,  and  bring  it  here.     And  if  any  one  says  to  you,  why  do 


MARK'S  HISTORY.  101 

you  this  1  declare,  that  the  Master  requires  him,  and  will  speedily  re- 
turn him.  So  they  went,  and  found  a  colt  fastened  at  a  little  distance 
from  the  door,  at  the  junction  of  two  roads  ;  and  they  unfastened  it. 
Now  some  persons  who  were  present,  said  to  them,  Why  do  you  loose 
the  colt  ■?  And  they  answered  the  men  as  Jesus  had  commanded ;  and 
received  permission.  And  the  disciples  led  the  colt  to  Jesus,  and  plac- 
ed their  mantles  on  it ;  and  he  sat  thereon.  And  many  spread  their 
garments  in  the  road ;  and  others  cut  branches  from  the  trees,  and 
strewed  them  in  the  way.  And  those  that  preceded,  and  those  that  fol- 
lowed, thus  excleiimed ;  Hosanna !  Blessed  is  he  who  comes  in  the 
name  of  the  Lord !  Happy  be  the  approaching  dominion  of  our  Father 
David  !  Hosanna  in  the  highest  heaven  !  And  Jesus  went  into  Jeru- 
salem, and  entered  the  temple  ;  and  having  examined  every  thing,  when 
evening  was  come,  he  departed  to  Bethany,  with  the  twelve. 

And  on  the  next  day,  as  they  were  proceeding  from  Bethany,  he  was 
hungry.  And  perceiving  a  fig-tree,  at  a  distance,  having  foUage,  he 
went  to  search  for  fruit  on  it.  And  approaching  it,  he  found  nothing 
but  leaves  ;  though  the  season  for  gathering  figs,  had  nearly  arrived. 
And  upon  this,  Jesus  said  to  it ;  Let  no  man,  from  this  period,  ever  par- 
take of  thy  fruit !     And  his  disciples  heard  him. 

And  they  came  to  Jerusalem  ;  and  Jesus,  having  gone  into  the  tem- 
ple, turned  out  those  who  bought  and  sold  in  the  temple,  and  overthrew 
the  tables  of  the  bankers,  and  the  seats  of  those  who  sold  doves  ;  and 
would  not  permit  any  one  to  convey  a  vessel  through  the  temple.  And 
he  taught  them,  saying.  Is  it  not  written.  My  house  shall  be  called  a 
house  of  prayer  for  all  nations  ?  but  you  have  made  it  a  den  of  robbers. 
And  the  scribes  and  the  chief  priests  heard  this,  and  they  endeavored 
to  destroy  him ;  for  they  dreaded  him,  because  all  the  people  were 
deeply  affected  by  his  instruction.  And  when  it  was  evening,  he  retired 
from  the  city. 

And  in  the  morning,  as  they  returned,  they  saw  the  fig-tree  withered 
away  from  the  roots.  And  Peter  recollecting,  said  to  him.  Master,  be- 
hold the  fig-tree,  which  thou  hast  devoted,  already  withered.  And  Jesus 
thereupon  observed  to  them,  Have  strong  faith  in  God.  For  in  truth,  I 
inform  you.  Should  any  one  say  to  this  mountain.  Be  removed,  and 
thrown  into  the  sea ;  and  should  doubt  not  in  his  heait,  but  beheve  that 
what  he  expresses  will  be  accomplished ;  he  shall  have  whatever  he 
might  direct.  For  this  reason,  I  announce  to  you,  that  as  to  all  things, 
which  you  shall  request  in  prayer,  having  confidence  that  you  will 
receive  them,,  they  shall  be  imparted  to  you. 

Besides,  when  you  are  praying,  forgive,  if  you  have  any  thing  against 
any  person  ;  that  your  Father,  who  is  in  heaven,  may  also  forgive  you, 
your  offences.  But  if  you  do  not  pardon,  neither  will  your  Father,  who 
is  in  heaven,  pardon  your  transgressions. 

And  they  arrived  again  at  Jerusalem ;  and  as  he  was  walking  about  in 
the  temple,  the  chief  priests,  and  the  scribes,  and  the  elders,  approach- 


]02  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

ed  him,  and  said  to  him,  By  what  authority  dost  thou  perform  these 
things  1  and  who  invested  thee  with  this  power  to  perform  them  1  And 
Jesus  remarked  to  them  in  reply,  I  will  also  ask  you  one  question,  and 
if  you  answer  me,  I  will  likewise  inform  you  by  what  authority  I  do 
these  things.  "Was  the  baptism  of  John  from  God,  or  from  men  1  And 
they  conferred  among  themselves,  saying.  If  we  should  assert.  From 
God  ;  he  will  reply.  Why  then  did  you  not  believe  him  ?  But,  shall  we 
affirm.  From  men  1  we  fear  the  people  ;  for  they  all  maintain,  that  John 
was  indeed  a  prophet.  And  in  answer,  they  declared  to  Jesus,  We  do 
not  know.  And  Jesus,  in  return,  alleges  to  them.  Neither  do  I  disclose 
to  you  by  what  authority  I  perform  these  things. 

Further,  Jesus  commenced,  by  addressing  them  in  parables.  A  man 
planted  a  vineyard,  and  put  a  fence  about  it,  and  dug  a  place  for  the 
wine-vat,  and  built  a  tower,  and  leased  it  to  husbandmen,  and  went  to  a 
distant  country.  And  at  the  season,  he  sent  a  servant  to  the  tenants, 
that  he  might  receive  from  them  the  fruit  of  the  vineyard.  But  they 
seized  the  servant,  beat  him,  and  sent  him  away  destitute.  And  again, 
he  sent  to  them  another  servant,  and  having  stoned  him,  they  proceeded 
summarily,  and  sent  him  away  disgracefully  treated.  And  he  sent 
another,  and  they  killed  him,  and  many  more  ;  beating  some,  however, 
but  killing  others.  And  having  yet,  one  son,  his  sincerely  beloved,  he 
ultimately  sent  him  also  to  them,  averring.  They  will  revere  my  son. 
But  those  occupants  observed  among  themselves.  This  is  the  heir ; 
come,  let  us  kill  him,  and  the  inheritance  will  be  ours.  So  they  seized 
him,  and  having  thrust  him  from  the  vineyard,  killed  him.  What  there- 
fore will  the  proprietor  of  the  vineyard  do  ?  He  will  come,  and  destroy 
those  husbandmen,  and  wiU  give  the  vineyard  to  others.  Moreover, 
have  you  not  read  this  passage  of  scripture  1  A  stone  which  the  build- 
ers refused,  is  made  the  head  of  the  corner  ?  The  Lord  has  performed 
this,  and  we  behold  it  with  admiration  1  And  they  were  desirous  of 
arresting  him,  (but  dreaded  the  people);  for  they  knew  that  he  had 
spoken  the  parable  respecting  them. 

And  leaving  him,  they  withdrew.  Then  they  dispatched  to  him  some 
of  the  pharisees,  and  of  the  Herodians,  that  they  might  ensnare  him  in 
conversation  ;  who  approaching,  thus  addressed  him.  Teacher,  we  are 
assured  that  thou  art  true,  and  dost  not  concern  thyself  about  any  one ; 
for  thou  disregardest  the  appearance  of  men,  but  teachest  the  way  of 
God  with  integrity.  Is  it  lawful  to  give  tribute  to  Cesar,  or  not  1  Should 
we  give,  or  should  we  not  give  1  But  he,  aware  of  their  artifice,  said  to 
them,  why  would  you  perplex  me  1  Bring  me  a  denarius,  that  I  may  see  it. 
And  they  brought  one.  And  he  says  to  them.  Whose  is  this  representa- 
tion and  inscription  ?  And  they  declared  to  him,  Cesar's.  And  Jesus 
answered  and  said  to  them,  Render  to  Cesar  that  which  is  Cesar's  ;  and 
to  God  that  which  is  God's.     And  they  viewed  him  with  astonishment. 

Then  the  sadducees,  who  maintain  that  there  is  no  future  existence, 
came  to  him,  and  interrogated  him,  observing.  Teacher,  Moses  instruct- 


MARK'S  HISTORY.  103 

ed  us,  that  if  a  man's  brother  die,  survived  by  a  wife,  without  children, 
he  shall  marry  the  widow,  and  raise  posterity  to  his  brother.  Now  there 
were  seven  brothers  ;  and  the  eldest  took  a  wife,  and  dying,  left  no  chil- 
dren. And  the  second  married  her,  and  died  without  offspring ;  and 
likewise,  the  third.  Thus,  aU  the  seven  married  her,  and  left  no  pos- 
terity. Last  of  all  the  woman  also  died.  In  the  ftiture  life,  therefore, 
when  they  shall  revive,  to  which  of  the  seven  will  she  belong,  for  she 
has  been  the  wife  of  each.  And  Jesus  answering,  said  to  them,  In  this 
are  you  not  deceived,  neither  understanding  the  scriptures,  nor  the  great 
power  of  God  1  For  when  the  dead  shall  return  to  life,  they  will  neith- 
er marry,  nor  be  contracted  in  marriage  ;  but  wiU  be  as  the  angels  in 
heaven.  In  relation,  however,  to  the  dead,  that  they  are  raised ;  have 
you  not  read  in  the  book  of  Moses,  how  God  thus  announced  to  him  in 
the  bush,  I  am  the  God  of  Abraham,  and  the  God  of  Isaac,  and  the  God 
of  Jacob  1  He  is  not  the  God  of  the  dead,  but  of  the  Uving.  You, 
therefore,  greatly  misapprehend. 

And  one  of  the  teachers  of  the  law  approached,  having  heard  them 
reasoning  together,  and  perceiving  that  he  had  ably  answered  them,  ask- 
ed him.  Which  is  the  first  commandment  of  all  1  And  Jesus  replied  to 
him.  The  first  of  all  the  commandments  is.  Attend,  Israel,  the  Lord  is 
our  God  ;  the  Lord  is  one ;  and  Thou  shalt  love  the  Lord  thy  God  with 
thy  whole  heart,  and  with  all  thy  life,  and  with  thy  whole  mind,  and 
with  all  thy  strength  ;  this  is  the  first  commandment.  And  the  second 
is  similar  to  it.  Thou  shalt  love  thy  neighbor  as  thyself.  There  is  no 
other  commandment  superior  to  these.  And  the  scribe  exclaimed  to 
him.  Most  admirably.  Teacher,  hast  thou  disclosed  the  truth !  since 
there  is  one  God,  and  aside  from  him,  there  is  no  other  ;  and  to  love 
him  with  the  whole  heart,  and  with  the  entire  intellect,  and  with  all  the 
spirit,  and  with  all  the  energy,  and  to  love  his  neighbor  as  himself,  is 
preferable  to  all  the  entire  burnt  ofierings  and  the  sacrifices.  And 
Jesus,  perceiving  that  he  had  ingenuously  replied,  declared  to  him.  You 
are  not  far  from  the  kingdom  of  God.  And  no  one  afterwards  presum- 
ed to  interrogate  him. 

Jesus,  in  continuation,  questioned  them,  as  he  was  instructing  in  the 
temple,  and  observed.  Why  do  the  scribes  assert,  that  the  Messiah  must  be 
a  son  of  David.  Yet  David  personally  affirmed,  through  the  Holy  Spirit, 
The  Lord  said  to  my  Lord,  sit  at  my  right  hand,  till  I  place  thine  enemies 
under  thy  feet.  If  David  himself,  therefore,  denominates  him  Lord,  how 
is  he  then  his  son.     And  the  great  multitude  heard  him  with  pleasure. 

Now  he  said  to  them,  in  his  discourse.  Beware  of  the  scribes,  who 
affect  to  walk  about  in  long  robes,  and  love  gratulations  in  the  public 
places,  and  pre-eminent  seats  in  the  synagogues,  and  the  most  distin- 
guished positions  at  the  feasts  ;  who  devour  the  abodes  of  widows,  and 
through  ostentation,  make  protracted  prayers.  Such  shall  receive  a 
more  exemplary  judgment. 


104  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

And  Jesns,  sitting  opposite  the  treasury,  beheld  how  the  people  cast 
money  into  the  treasury.  And  numerous  rich  persons  contributed  libe- 
rally. And  a  certain  poor  widow  approaching,  threw  in  two  small  coins 
which  make  a  farthing.  And  having  called  his  disciples,  he  says  to 
them,  I  confidently  announce  to  you,  that  this  poor  widow  has  bestowed 
more  than  all  those  who  have  imparted  to  the  treasury  :  for  all  of  them 
contributed  from  their  afHuence  ;  but  she,  from  what  she  wanted  for  her- 
self, oiFered  all  that  she  possessed,  even  all  her  subsistence. 

Moreover,  as  Jesus  was  retiring  from  the  temple,  one  of  his  disciples 
remarked  to  him.  Master,  behold,  what  stones,  and  what  structures  ! 
And  Jesus  replying,  said  to  him.  Do  you  survey  these  great  fabrics  1  not 
a  stone  shall  remain  upon  another,  that  shall  not  be  demolished. 

And  as  he  was  sitting  on  the  mount  of  Olives,  opposite  the  temple, 
Peter,  and  James,  and  John,  and  Andrew,  privately  questioned  him.  In- 
form us  when  these  things  will  occur  1  and  what  will  be  the  sign,  when 
all  these  events  shall  be  accomplished  1  And  Jesus  answering,  began  to 
say  to  them.  Be  cautious  that  no  one  deceive  you :  for  numbers  will 
come  in  my  name,  severally  alleging,  I  am  the  person  ;  and  will  seduce 
many.  But  when  you  shall  hear  of  wars  and  rumors  of  wars,  be  not 
disturbed  ;  for  this  must  happen ;  the  end,  however,  is  deferred. 

Further,  nation  will  be  arrayed  against  nation,  and  kingdom  against 
kingdom  ;  and  there  will  be  earthquakes  in  various  places,  and  there 
will  be  famines  and  tumults.  These  are  the  prelude  of  adversities. 
Besides,  take  heed  to  yourselves  ;  for  they  will  surrender  you  to  the 
sanhedrins  ;  and  you  will  be  beaten  in  the  tribunals  of  magistrates  ;  and 
you  will  stand  before  governors  and  kings,  on  my  account,  to  bear  tes- 
timony to  them.  But,  when  they  conduct  you  to  deliver  you  up,  be 
not  previously  solicitous  what  you  shall  utter ;  nor  premeditate  :  for 
whatever  shall  be  disclosed  to  you,  at  such  a  period,  that  communicate ; 
since  it  will  not  be  you  who  speak,  but  the  Holy  Spirit.  Then  the 
brother  will  surrender  the  brother  to  death,  and  the  father,  the  child  ; 
and  children  will  rise  against  parents,  and  destroy  them.  And  you  will 
be  hated  by  all,  on  account  of  my  name  ;  but  he,  who  endures  to  the 
end,  shall  be  preserved.  Moreover,  the  good  message  of  God  must  first 
be  proclaimed  among  all  nations. 

But,  when  you  shall  see  the  desolating  abomination,  announced  by 
Daniel  the  prophet,  posted  where  it  should  not  he,  (let  him,  who  reads, 
understand),  then  let  those,  that  are  in  Judea,  take  refuge  in  the  moun- 
tains ;  and  let  not  him,  who  is  on  the  roof,  descend  into  the  house,  nor 
otherwise  enter,  to  remove  any  thing  from  his  dwelling ;  and  let  not 
him,  who  is  in  the  field,  return,  to  take  his  garment.  But  alas,  for  those 
who  are  in  gestation,  and  for  such  as  nourish  infancy,  in  those  days. 
And  pray  that  your  flight  may  not  be  in  the  winter.  For  at  that  crisis, 
there  will  be  afiliction,  such  as  never  existed,  from  the  commencement 
of  the  universe,  which  God  has  created,  to  the  present  time,  nor  will 


MARK'S   HISTORY.  105 

ever  afterwards  occur.  And  unless  the  Lord  should  circumscribe  those 
days,  no  person  could  escape  ;  but  in  behalf  of  the  chosen,  whom  he  has 
favorably  designated,  he  will  limit  that  period. 

And  if  any  one  shall  then  say  to  you.  Behold,  here  is  the  Messiah  ; 
or.  Behold,  he  is  there  ;  do  not  believe  it :  for  false  messiahs  and  false 
prophets  will  arise,  and  will  exhibit  signs  and  prodigies,  to  seduce,  if 
possible,  even  the  chosen.  Be,  therefore,  circumspect ;  remember,  I 
have  foretold  you  all  things. 

Moreover,  in  those  days,  succeeding  that  affliction,  the  sun  will  be 
darkened,  and  the  moon  will  withhold  her  light,  and  the  stars  of  heaven 
will  be  falling,  and  the  powers,  that  are  in  the  heavens,  will  be  shaken. 
And  they  will  subsequently  see  the  Son  of  Man  coming  in  the  clouds, 
with  great  power  and  glory.  And  then,  he  will  send  his  messengers, 
and  gather  his  chosen  from  the  four  winds,  from  the  extremity  of  the 
earth,  to  the  utmost  bound  of  heaven. 

Further,  receive  this  comparison  from  the  fig-tree.  When  its  branch 
is  yet  tender,  and  puts  forth  leaves,  you  know  that  summer  is  near  :  and 
thus,  when  you  shall  see  these  occurrences,  know  that  the  Son  of  Man 
is  approaching,  even  at  the  door.  I  assure  you,  that  even  this  genera- 
tion will  not  pass  away,  till  all  these  things  are  accomplished.  Heaven 
and  earth  will  sooner  vanish,  than  these  words  of  mine  shall  fail. 

However,  respecting  that  day,  or  that  season,  no  one  knows,  (not 
even  the  angels  who  are  in  heaven,  nor  indeed  the  Son),  but  the  Father. 
Beware,  watch  and  pray  ;  for  you  are  not  conscious  when  the  time  will 
arrive. 

[My  coming  is]  as  a  man  taking  a  distant  journey,  who  left  his  fa- 
mily, and  gave  authority  to  his  servants,  and  to  each  his  own  work,  and 
commanded  the  doorkeeper  to  watch.  Be  therefore  circumspect ;  for 
you  know  not  when  the  master  of  the  house  will  return,  whether,  late  in 
the  evening,  or  at  midnight,  or  at  the  third  watch,  or  at  early  dawn ; 
lest,  coming  unexpectedly,  he  should  find  you  asleep.  Further,  what  I 
say  to  you,  I  repeat  to  all.  Be  vigilant. 

Now,  two  days  after,  was  the  passover,  and  the  time  of  unleavened 
bread  ;  and  the  chief  priests  and  the  scribes  endeavored  to  arrest  Jesus 
by  artifice,  that  they  might  destroy  him.  But  they  said.  Not  during  the 
festival,  lest  there  should  be  a  commotion  among  the  people. 

And  while  he  was  at  Bethany,  in  the  house  of  Simon  the  leper,  at  a 
repast,  a  woman  came,  having  an  alabaster  box  of  exceedingly  valuable 
ointment,  of  unadulterated  nard ;  and  she  broke  the  seal,  and  poured 
the  contents  on  his  head.  But  there  were  some,  who  were  indignant 
within  themselves,  and  said.  Why  was  this  waste  of  the  ointment  made  1 
For  this  ointment  could  have  been  sold  for  more  than  three  hundred  de- 
narii, which  might  have  been  given  to  the  poor.  And  they  loudly  re- 
proached her.  But  Jesus  said.  Let  her  alone  ;  why  do  you  molest  her  ? 
she  has  performed  for  me  a  benevolent  work  :  since  you  will  ever  have 
the  poor  with  you,  and  when  disposed,  you  may  do  them  good  ;  but  me 
14 


106  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

you  will  not  always  have.  She  has  bestowed  what  she  possessed.  She 
has  previously  undertaken  to  anoint  my  body,  in  reference  to  its  being 
embalmed.  I  solemnly  aver  to  you,  that  wherever  this  Gospel  shall  be 
preached,  through  the  whole  world,  what  she  has  done  will  be  proclaim- 
ed to  her  memory. 

And  Judas  Iscariot,  one  of  the  twelve,  went  to  the  chief  priests,  that 
he  -might  betray  Jesus  to  them.  And  hearing  it,  they  rejoiced,  and  en- 
gaged to  give  him  money.  And  he  sought,  how  he  might  conveniently 
surrender  him. 

Moreover,  on  the  first  day  of  unleavened  bread,  when  they  used  to 
sacrifice  the  passover,  his  disciples  said  to  him.  Where  wilt  thou  that 
we  go  and  prepare,  that  thou  mayst  eat  the  passover  ?  And  he  sends 
two  of  his  disciples,  and  says  to  them.  Go  to  the  city,  and  a  man  will 
meet  you,  carrying  a  pitcher  of  water ;  follow  him.  And  whatever 
house  he  enters,  say  to  the  master  of  the  family.  The  teacher  inquires. 
Where  is  the  dining-hall,  in  which  I  may  eat  the  passover  with  my  dis- 
ciples 7  And  he  will  show  you  a  spacious  room  spread  and  provided  : 
there,  make  preparation  for  us.  And  his  disciples  departed,  and  enter- 
ed the  city,  and  found  every  thing  as  he  had  informed  them  ;  and  they 
prepared  the  passover. 

And,  in  the  evening,  he  arrives  vrith  the  twelve.  And  as  they  reclined 
at  table,  and  were  eating,  Jesus  observed,  In  truth,  I  declare  to  you, 
that  one  of  you,  who  is  eating  with  me,  will  deliver  me  up.  And  they 
began  to  be  sorrowful,  and  respectively  to  say  to  him,  Is  it  I  ?  And 
another  repeated,  Is  it  I  ?  And  he  replying,  said  to  them,  It  is  one  of 
the  twelve, — he  who  dips  with  me  in  the  dish.  The  Son  of  Man  indeed 
departs,  even  as  it  was  written  concerning  him,  but  alas  for  that  man, 
by  whom  the  Son  of  Man  is  surrendered  !  Happy  were  it  for  that  man, 
if  he  had  never  existed. 

And  as  they  were  eating,  Jesus  took  bread,  and  having  praised  God, 
broke  it,  and  gave  it  to  them,  and  said.  Take,  eat ;  this  is  my  body. 
And  taking  the  cup,  having  rendered  thanks,  he  gave  it  to  them  ;  and 
they  all  drank  of  it.  And  he  said  to  them.  This  is  my  blood  of  the  new 
covenant,  which  is  poured  out  for  many.  I  assure  you,  that  I  will  no 
more  drink  of  the  produce  of  the  vine,  till  that  day  when  I  shall  drink  it 
new  in  the  lungdom  of  God.  And  having  used  the  psalm,  they  withdrew 
to  the  mount  of  Olives. 

And  Jesus  remarked  to  them.  You  will  all  forsake  me,  this  very  night ; 
for  it  is  written,  I  will  smite  the  shepherd,  and  the  sheep  will  be  scatter- 
ed. But  after  I  am  risen,  I  wiU  precede  you  to  Galilee.  Then  Peter 
declared  to  him.  Though  all  should  forsake  thee,  yet  I  will  not.  And 
Jesus  says  to  him,  I  truly  afiirm  to  you,  that  you,  this  day,  on  this  very 
night,  before  a  watch-trumpet  shall  sound  twice,  you  will  thrice  renounce 
me.  But  he,  the  more  strenuously  alleged,  Though  I  should  die  with 
thee,  in  no  respect  will  I  renounce  thee.  And  moreover,  they  all  said 
the  same. 


MARK'S  HISTORY.  107 

Then  they  came  to  a  place  called  Gethsemane ;  and  he  says  to  his 
disciples,  Sit  here,  tiU  I  shall  have  prayed.  And  he  takes  with  him 
Peter,  and  James,  and  John  ;  and  he  began  to  be  in  terrible  consterna- 
tion, and  the  deepest  agony.  And  he  says  to  them.  My  soul  is  envelop- 
ed in  aggravated  grief,  even  to  death ;  remain  here,  and  watch.  And 
advancing  a  little,  he  fell  on  the  ground,  and  prayed,  that  if  it  were  pos- 
sible, the  hour  might  pass  from  him.  And  he  said,  O  Father,  Father, 
all  things  are  possible  with  thee  ;  remove  this  cup  from  me  ;  yet,  not 
what  I  would,  but  what  thou  wilt.  And  he  comes  and  finds  them  sleep- 
ing, and  says  to  Peter,  Simon,  do  you  sleep  ?  Could  you  not  watch  one 
hour  7  Be  vigilant,  and  pray,  that  ye  be  not  overpowered  by  tempta- 
tion. The  spirit,  indeed,  may  be  disposed ;  but  the  body  is  faint.  And 
again  departing,  he  prayed,  repeating  the  same  words.  And  returning, 
he  found  them  again  asleep  ;  for  their  eyes  were  heavy ;  and  they  knew 
not  how  they  should  answer  him.  And  he  approaches  the  third  time, 
and  says  to  them.  Sleep  now,  and  take  your  rest.  It  is  sufScient ;  the 
period  has  arrived ;  behold,  the  Son  of  Man  is  consigned  to  the  hands 
of  sinners.     Arise,  let  us  go  ;  behold,  he  who  surrenders  me  is  near. 

And  instantly,  while  he  was  yet  speaking,  Judas,  one  of  the  twelve, 
came,  and  with  him  a  great  multitude,  with  swords  and  staves,  from  the 
chief  priests,  and  the  scribes,  and  the  elders.  And  his  betrayer  had 
given  them  this  intimation.  He,  whom  I  shall  kiss,  is  the  individual ; 
arrest  him,  and  securely  conduct  him  away.  And  having  approached, 
he  immediately  advanced  to  him,  and  said,  Master,  Master,  and  fre- 
quently kissed  him.  And  they  laid  their  hands  on  him,  and  arrested 
him.  And  one  of  those  standing  near,  drew  a  sword,  and  assailed  a 
servant  of  the  high  priest,  and  cut  off  his  ear.  And  Jesus,  in  return, 
said  to  them.  Have  you  come  forth,  as  against  a  robber,  with  swords 
and  clubs,  to  seize  me  ?  I  was  daily  with  you,  teaching  in  the  temple, 
and  you  did  not  take  me  :  but  thus  the  scriptures  are  fultiUed.  Then 
aU  the  disciples  deserted  him,  and  fled. 

And  there  was  a  certain  youth  who  followed  him,  having  only  a  linen 
cloth  wrapped  around  his  body  ;  and  the  young  men  seized  him  ;  but 
he  left  the  sheet,  and  fled  from  them  unclad. 

Now  they  conducted  Jesus  to  the  high  priest,  with  whom  all  the  chief 
priests,  and  the  elders,  and  the  scribes,  were  assembled.  And  Peter 
followed  him  at  some  distance,  even  to  the  palace  of  the  high  priest ; 
and  sat  with  the  inferior  ofiicers,  and  warmed  himself  at  the  fire. 

Moreover,  the  chief  priests,  and  all  the  sanhedrin  sought  testimony 
against  Jesus,  to  destroy  him  ;  but  found  none  :  for  though  many  testi- 
fied falsely  against  him,  yet  their  testimonies  were  discordant.  Then 
certain  witnesses  arising,  gave  false  testimony  against  him,  saying,  We 
heard  him  declare,  I  will  destroy  this  temple,  which  is  built  with  hands, 
and  in  three  days,  I  wiU  erect  another,  constructed  without  hands.  But 
neither  did  their  evidence  correspond.  And  the  high  priest,  rising  in 
the  midst,  thus  interrogated  Jesus,  Makest  thou  no  answer  1  what  do 


108  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS, 

these  testify  against  thee  1  But  he  continued  silent,  and  made  no  reply. 
Again  the  high  priest  questioned  him,  and  says  to  him.  Art  thou  the 
Messiah,  the  son  of  the  Blessed  God.  Then  Jesus  said,  I  am  ;  indeed, 
you  will  see  the  Son  of  Man  sitting  on  the  right  hand  of  divine  power, 
and  coming  in  the  clouds  of  heaven.  Upon  this  the  high  priest,  rending 
his  vestments,  said.  What  further  necessity  have  we  for  witnesses  ?  You 
have  heard  the  impious  language  :  what  are  your  views  ?  And  they  all 
condemned  him  to  be  deserving  of  death.  Then  some  began  to  spit  on 
him,  and  to  cover  his  face,  and  to  beat  him,  and  to  say  to  him.  Who 
smote  thee,  prophet  1  And  the  inferior  officers  struck  him  with  the  open 
hand. 

And  Peter  being  in  the  hall  below,  one  of  the  maid-servants  of  the 
high  priest  came  ;  and  seeing  Peter  warming  himself,  she  earnestly 
looked  at  him,  and  said.  You  also  was  with  Jesus  of  Nazareth.  But  he 
denied,  saying,  I  do  not  know  him,  nor  do  I  understand  what  you  mean. 
And  he  went  out  into  the  portico,  and  a  watch-trumpet  sounded.  And 
the  maid-servant,  seeing  him  again,  began  to  say  to  those  who  were 
present.  This  is  one  of  them.  But  he  again  denied  it.  And  a  little 
after,  those  standing  near,  said  again  to  Peter,  You  are  certainly  one  of 
them  ;  for  you  are  a  Galilean,  and  your  language  implies  it.  But  he 
began  to  imprecate,  and  impiously  to  aver,  I  know  not  this  man  of  whom 
you  speak.  And  the  second  time  a  watch-trumpet  sounded.  And  Peter 
recalled  the  declaration,  which  Jesus  made  to  him,  that^  Before  a  watch- 
trumpet  shall  twice  sound,  you  will  thrice  deny  me.  And  he  meditated, 
and  wept. 

And  moreover,  in  the  morning,  the  chief  priests  consulted  with  the 
elders,  and  scribes,  and  all  the  sanhedrin,  and  having  bound  Jesus,  car- 
ried and  delivered  him  to  Pilate. 

And  Pilate  asked  him.  Art  thou  the  king  of  the  Jews  ?  and  Jesus 
alleged  to  him,  in  answer,  I  am.  And  the  chief  priests  brought  many 
accusations  against  him  ;  but  he  made  no  reply.  And  Pilate  again  in- 
terrogated him,  saying,  Makest  thou  no  answer  1  consider,  how  many 
charges  they  produce  against  thee.  But  Jesus  answered  no  more,  so 
that  Pilate  was  astonished. 

Further,  at  the  festival,  he  always  released  to  them  some  one  prisoner, 
whom  they  solicited.  And  there  was  one,  named  Barabbas,  imprisoned 
with  certain  insurgents,  who  had  committed  murder  in  the  insurrection. 
And  the  populace  vociferating,  began  to  importune,  that  he  would  grant 
them  the  customary  favor.  Then  Pilate  thus  answered  them.  Do  you 
wish  that  I  should  release  to  you  the  King  of  the  Jews  ?  For  he  knew, 
that  the  chief  priests  had  delivered  him  up  through  hatred.  But  the 
chief  priests  incited  the  people  to  request  rather,  that  Barabbas  might 
be  released  to  them.  And  Pilate  again  said  to  them,  in  reply,  What 
will  you  then,  that  I  shall  do  with  him,  whom  you  denominate,  the  King 
of  the  Jews.  And  they  again  exclaimed,  Crucify  him.  But  Pilate  said 
to  them.  Why,  what  crime  has  he  committed  7     But  they,  the  more  ex- 


MARKS   HISTORY.  109 

cessively  vociferated,  Crucify  him.  Then  Pilate,  wishing  to  satisfy  the 
people,  released  Barabbas  to  them ;  and  having  scourged  Jesus,  deliver- 
ed liim  to  be  crucified. 

Then  the  soldiers  led  him  away  into  the  hall,  which  is  called  the  pre- 
torium  ;  and  they  summoned  the  whole  cohort.  And  they  clothed  him 
with  purple,  and  having  woven  a  crown  of  acanthus,  they  placed  it  upon 
him,  and  began  thus  insolently  to  salute  him.  Hail,  king  of  the  Jews  ! 
And  they  struck  him  on  the  head  with  a  cane,  and  spit  on  him,  and 
kneeling,  affected  to  reverence  him.  And  when  they  had  mocked  him, 
they  divested  him  of  the  purple,  and  clothed  him  with  his  own  garments, 
and  led  him  out  to  crucify  him. 

And  one  Simon,  a  Cyrenian,  the  father  of  Alexander  and  Rufus,  was 
passing,  as  he  came  from  the  country,  and  they  compelled  him  to  carry 
his  cross.  And  they  conducted  him  to  the  place  called  Golgotha,  which 
is,  being  interpreted.  The  place  of  a  sciill.  And  they  gave  him  sour 
wine  to  drink,  mingled  with  myrrh  ;  but  he  refused  it. 

And  having  nailed  him  to  the  cross,  they  distributed  his  vestments, 
deciding  by  lot,  which  of  them  each  should  take.  And  it  was  the  third 
hour,  when  they  nailed  him  to  the  cross.  And  there  was  an  inscription, 
referring  to  the  accusation  against  him,  written  above.  The  King  of  the 
Jews.  And  with  him,  they  crucified  two  robbers ;  one  on  his  right  hand, 
and  the  other  on  his  left.  Thus  the  scripture  was  accomplished,  which 
says,  He  was  numbered  with  the  transgressors. 

And  those  who  passed,  reviled  him,  shaking  their  heads,  and  saying. 
Ah  !  thou  who  canst  destroy  the  temple,  and  rebuild  it  in  three  days,  save 
thyself,  and  come  down  from  the  cross  !  And  in  like  manner,  the  chief 
priests,  in  derision  among  themselves,  with  the  scribes,  alleged.  He  save 
others  !  he  cannot  save  himself.  Let  this  Messiah,  this  King  of  Israel, 
now  descend  from  the  cross,  that  we  may  see,  and  beUeve  in  him.  And 
they,  also,  who  were  crucified  with  him,  reproached  him. 

Now  when  the  sixth  hour  came,  there  was  darkness  through  the  whole 
land,  till  the  ninth  hour.  And  at  the  ninth  hour,  Jesus  exclaimed  with 
a  loud  voice,  saying,  Eloi,  Eloi,  lamma  sabachthani  1  which  is,  being 
translated,  My  God,  my  God,  to  whom  hast  thou  abandoned  me  1  And 
some  of  those  who  were  present,  listening  to  this,  declared.  Behold,  he 
calls  Elijah.  And  one  ran,  and  having  filled  a  sponge  with  vinegar, 
attached  it  to  a  cane,  and  gave  him  to  drink,  saying.  Desist ;  let  us  see 
whether  Elijah  will  come  to  rescue  him.  And  Jesus  cried  with  a  loud 
voice,  and  expired. 

Then  the  veil  of  the  temple,  from  the  extreme  points,  was  dissevered. 
And  the  centurion,  who  stood  opposite  to  him,  (perceiving,  that  having 
thus  exclaimed,  he  expired),  announced.  This  man  was  assuredly  a  Son 
of  God. 

And  there  were  also  certain  women,  beholding  at  a  distance,  among 
whom  were  Mary  of  Magdala,  and  Mary  the  mother  of  James  the  young- 
er, and  of  Joses  and  Salome  ;  (who,  also,  when  he  was  in  Galilee,  fol- 


110  APOSTOLIC   PRODUCTIONS. 

lowed  him,  and  ministered  to  him)  ;  and  many  other  women,  who  afc- 
companied  him  to  Jerusalem. 

And  the  evening  having  now  arrived,  since  it  was  the  preparation, 
that  is,  the  day  preceding  the  sabbath,  Joseph  of  Arimathea,  an  hon- 
orable man  of  the  council,  and  who  himself  was  awaiting  the  kingdom 
of  God,  came,  and  went  in  boldly  to  Pilate,  and  earnestly  requested  the 
body  of  Jesus.  And  Pilate  was  surprised,  that  he  was  already  dead ; 
and  having  summoned  the  centurion,  he  inquired  of  him,  if  he  had  yet 
expired.  And  being  apprised  of  his  decease  by  the  centurion,  he  grant- 
ed the  body  to  Joseph.  And  he  purchased  fine  linen,  and  took  him 
down,  and  shrouded  him  in  the  linen,  and  placed  him  in  a  sepulchre, 
which  was  hewn  from  a  rock,  and  he  rolled  a  stone  to  the  entrance  of 
the  tomb.  And  Mary  Magdalene,  and  Mary  the  mother  of  Joses,  saw 
where  he  was  deposited. 

Now,  the  sabbath  being  passed,  Mary  Magdalene,  and  Mary  the 
mother  of  James  and  Salome,  purchased  aromatics,  that  they  might 
proceed  to  embalm  the  body  of  Jesus.  And  very  early  in  the  morning 
of  the  first  day  of  the  week,  they  came  to  the  sepulchre,  at  the  rising  of 
the  sun.  And  they  said  among  themselves,  who  will  remove  the  stone 
for  us  from  the  door  of  the  sepulchre  ?  (for  it  was  very  great).  And  as 
they  looked,  they  perceived  that  the  stone  was  removed.  And  having 
entered  the  tomb,  they  saw  a  young  man  sitting  on  the  right,  invested 
with  a  long  white  robe  ;  and  they  were  alarmed.  But  he  says  to  them. 
Be  not  alarmed  ;  you  seek  Jesus  of  Nazareth,  who  was  crucified  :  he  is 
risen ;  he  is  not  here :  behold  the  place  where  they  laid  him.  But 
depart,  remind  his  disciples,  particularly  Peter,  that  he  has  preceded 
you  to  GaUlee ;  there  you  will  see  him,  as  he  disclosed  to  you.  And 
departing,  they  fled  from  the  sepulchre  ;  for  trembling  and  consternation 
seized  them  :  and  they  said  nothing  to  any  one,  because  they  were 
dismayed. 

Moreover,  Jesus  having  arisen  early  the  first  day  of  the  week,  origi- 
nally appeared  to  Mary  Magdalene,  from  whom  he  had  expelled  seven 
demons.  And  she  went  and  informed  those  who  had  attended  him,  as 
they  were  mourning  and  weeping.  But,  though  they  heard  that  he  was 
alive,  and  had  been  seen  by  her,  they  did  not  believe  it. 

Afl;er  these  events,  he  appeared  in  another  dress  to  two  of  them,  as 
they  were  walking  on  their  way  into  the  country.  And  they  returned 
and  announced  it  to  the  other  disciples,  who  would  not  believe  even 
them. 

Subsequently,  he  appeared  to  the  eleven,  as  they  sat  together,  and 
reproved  their  incredulity  and  obduracy,  because  they  believed  not  those 
who  had  seen  him,  after  he  was  risen.  And  he  said  to  them.  Go  to  all 
the  world,  and  proclaim  the  good  message  to  the  whole  creation.  He 
who  believes,  and  is  baptized,  will  be  saved ;  but  he  who  believes  not, 
will  be  condemned.  And  these  miraculous  powers  will  accompany 
those  who  believe  :  in  my  name  they  will  expel  fiends ;  they  will  speak 


MARK'S  HISTORY.  Ill 

in  new  languages ;  they  will  handle  serpents  with  safety  ;  and  if  they 
drink  any  deadly  poison,  it  will  not  injure  them ;  and  the  sick,  on  whom 
they  shall  place  their  hands,  will  recover. 

When  the  Lord  had  thus  addressed  them,  he  was  received  to  heaven, 
and  continues  to  sit  at  the  right  hand  of  God.  And  they  departed,  and 
published  the  intelligence  everywhere,  the  Lord  co-operating,  and  con- 
firming the  word  by  the  attendant  miracles. 


THE   HISTORY  BY  LUKE. 

Though,  many  have  attempted  to  prepare  a  history  of  those  facts, 
which  were  established  among  us  by  the  most  ample  testimony,  even  as 
they,  who  were  personal  witnesses  and  dispensers  of  the  word  from  the 
beginning,  transmitted  them  to  us  ;  yet,  I  have  deemed  it  appropriate, 
having  accurately  traced  the  whole  from  their  origin,  to  communicate  a 
systematic  narrative  of  them  to  you,  most  excellent  Theophilus ;  that 
you  may  attain  to  absolute  certainty,  relative  to  those  particulars,  in 
which  you  have  been  instructed. 

In  the  reign  of  Herod,  the  king  of  Judea,  there  was  a  certain  priest 
named  Zechariah,  of  the  succession  of  Abijah ;  and  his  wife  was  one 
of  the  daughters  descended  from  Aaron,  and  her  name  was  Elizabeth. 
And  these  two  were  righteous  in  the  sight  of  God,  walking  irreproach- 
ably in  all  the  commands  and  institutions  of  the  Lord.  And  they  had  no 
child,  for  Elizabeth  was  sterile,  andboth  were  far  advanced  in  years. 

Now  it  occurred,  while  he  was  performing  the  priest's  office  before 
God,  in  the  order  of  his  class,  according  to  the  custom  of  the  priesthood, 
that  it  became  his  lot  to  burn  incense,  as  he  entered  the  temple  of  the 
Lord.  And  the  whole  assembly  of  the  people  were  praying  without,  at 
the  time  of  the  incense.  And  a  messenger  of  the  Lord  appeared  to  him, 
standing  at  the  right  hand  of  the  altar  of  incense.  And  Zechariah  be- 
holding him,  was  confounded,  and  fear  assailed  him.  But  the  angel 
said  to  him.  Fear  not,  Zechariah,  for  your  prayer  is  heard  ;  and  your 
wife  Elizabeth  shall  present  you  a  son,  and  you  must  call  his  name 
John.  And  he  will  be  to  you  joy  and  exultation  ;  and  many  will  rejoice 
in  consequence  of  his  birth.  For  he  will  be  illustrious  in  the  view  of 
the  Lord,  and  will  not  partake  of  wine,  nor  inebriating  drink  ;  and  he 
will  be  replete  with  the  Holy  Spirit,  even  from  the  commencement  of 
his  existence.  And  he  will  turn  many  of  the  children  of  Israel  to  the 
Lord  their  God.  Moreover,  he  will  precede  him  in  the  spirit  and  power 
of  Elijah,  to  restore  the  hearts  of  the  fathers  to  the  children,  and  the 
faithless  to  the  wisdom  of  the  just ;  to  qualify  a  people  prepared  for  the 
Lord. 

And  Zechariah  said  to  the  angel,  how  can  I  be  assured  of  this  ?  for  I 
am  an  aged  man,  and  my  wife  is  in  the  decline  of  years  ?  And  the  angel 
answering,  declared  to  him,  I  am  Gabriel,  who  attend  in  the  presence  of 
God ;  and  am  sent  to  commune  with  you,  and  to  announce  to  you  this 
joyful  message.  And  behold,  you  shall  be  silent,  and  unable  to  speak, 
till  the  day  in  which  these  things  are  accomplished,  because  you  have 
disbelieved  my  words,  which  will  be  fulfilled  in  their  appointed  period. 

And  the  people  were  waiting  for  Zechariah,  and  were  surprised  that 
he  continued  so  long  in  the  temple.     But,  when  he  came  out,  he  could 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  m 

not  epeak  to  them  ;  and  they  perceived  that  he  had  seen  a  vision  in  the 
temple  ;  for  he  thus  intimated  to  them  by  signs,  and  remained  speech- 
less. And  it  happened,  when  the  days  of  his  ministration  terminated, 
that  he  returned  to  his  own  house.  And  afterwards,  Elizabeth  his  wife 
was  in  gestation,  and  lived  in  retirement  five  months,  and  said,  The 
Lord  has  thus  done  for  me,  favorably  intending  at  this  time  to  remove 
my  reproach  among  men. 

Now,  in  the  sixth  month,  the  messenger  Gabriel  was  sent  from  God 
to  a  city  of  Galilee,  called  Nazareth,  to  a  virgin  contracted  to  a  man 
whose  name  was  Joseph,  of  the  house  of  David ;  and  the  virgin's  name 
was  Mary.  And  the  angel  approaching  her,  said.  Hail,  highly  favored  ! 
the  Lord  is  with  you  ;  and  blessed  are  you  among  women !  But  she  was 
disconcerted  at  his  annunciation,  and  revolved  in  her  mind,  what  kind 
of  salutation  this  could  be.  And  the  angel  said  to  her,  Fear  not,  Mary ; 
for  you  have  found  favor  with  God.  And  behold,  you  shall  be  in  a  state 
of  gestation,  and  shall  have  a  son,  and  you  must  call  his  name  Jesus. 
He  will  be  illustrious,  and  will  be  esteemed  the  Son  of  the  Most  High 
God  ;  and  the  Lord  God  will  give  him  the  throne  of  his  ancestor  David  ; 
and  he  will  perpetually  reign  over  the  house  of  Jacob ;  and  his  kingdom 
will  never  cease.  Mary,  however,  said  to  the  angel,  How  can  this  be, 
since  I  am  hitherto  pure  ?  And  the  angel  replying,  said  to  her.  The 
Holy  Spirit  will  descend  to  you,  and  the  power  of  the  Most  High  will 
invest  you ;  and  therefore,  that  hallowed,  future  offspring,  must  be  re- 
garded as  the  Son  of  God.  And  behold,  your  cousin  Elizabeth  is  also 
in  gestation  with  a  son,  in  her  old  age  ;  and  this  is  the  sixth  month  with 
her  who  is  reputed  sterile.  For  nothing  is  impossible  with  God.  And 
Mary  said.  Behold  the  handmaid  of  the  Lord  ;  may  it  be  to  me  in  con- 
formity to  thy  disclosure  !   And  the  angel  departed  from  her. 

And  Mary  arose,  at  that  period,  and  went  to  the  highlands,  with  ex- 
pedition, to  a  city  of  Judah  ;  and  entered  the  house  of  Zechariah,  and 
saluted  Elizabeth.  And  it  happened,  that  when  Elizabeth  heard  the 
salutation  of  Mary,  the  embryo  was  joyfully  agitated;  and  Elizabeth 
was  pervaded  by  the  Holy  Spirit ;  and  she  exclaimed  with  a  loud  voice, 
and  said,  Blessed  are  you  among  women  !  and  blessed  is  your  incipient 
offspring !  And  whence  this  occurrence  to  me,  that  the  mother  of  my 
Lord  should  visit  me  1  For  behold,  when  the  voice  of  your  salutation 
sounded  in  my  ears,  the  embryo  was  enlivened  with  joy.  And  happy  is 
she  who  has  believed,  that  those  things,  communicated  to  her  from  the 
Lord,  will  be  accomplished. 

And  Mary  declared.  My  soul  celebrates  the  praises  of  the  Lord,  and 
my  spirit  exults  in  God  my  Saviour  ;  because  he  has  kindly  viewed  the 
humble  situation  of  his  handmaid ;  for  behold,  from  this  time,  all  pos- 
terity will  pronounce  me  happy  :  since,  he  who  is  powerful  has  wrought 
for  me  great  miracles  ;  and  boundless  beneficence  is  his  attribute.  And 
hi?  commiseration  from  age  to  age  rests  on  those  who  fear  him.  He 
has  achieved  the  victory  by  his  arm ;  he  has  dispersed  the  haughty  in 
15 


114  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

the  imagination  of  their  hearts.  He  has  precipitated  potentates  from 
their  thrones,  and  has  exalted  the  lowly.  He  has  satisfied  the  necessi- 
tous with  benefits  ;  but  the  afiiuent  he  has  dismissed  destitute.  He  has 
sustained  Israel  his  son,  in  remembrance  of  his  perpetual  mercy  ;  even 
as  he  promised  to  our  fathers,  —  to  Abraham,  and  to  his  race. 

And  Mary  remained  with  Elizabeth  about  three  months,  and  returned 
to  her  own  residence. 

Moreover,  the  period  of  Elizabeth's  parturition  arrived ;  and  she  had 
a  son.  And  her  neighbors  and  her  relatives  heard  that  the  Lord  had 
signally  displayed  his  kindness  towards  her;  and  they  rejoiced  with 
her.  And  it  occurred,  on  the  eighth  day,  that  they  proceeded  to  circum- 
cise the  child ;  and  they  would  have  him  called  Zechariah,  after  the 
name  of  his  father.  But  his  mother  interposed,  and  said.  No  ;  but  he 
shall  be  named  John.  And  they  replied  to  her.  There  is  not  one  of 
your  relatives,  who  is  called  by  that  name.  So  they  asked  his  father  by 
signs,  what  he  would  have  him  called.  And  having  requested  a  tablet, 
he  thus  wrote.  His  name  is  John.  And  they  were  all  astonished,  for  his 
mouth  was  instantly  opened,  and  his  tongue  loosed ;  and  he  spoke, 
praising  God.  And  a  dread  came  on  all  who  resided  near  them ;  and 
all  these  incidents  were  published  through  all  the  highlands  of  Judea. 
And  all  who  heard  them,  deposited  them  in  their  hearts,  inquiring, 
What  description  of  child  will  this  be  1  And  the  hand  of  the  Lord  was 
with  him. 

And  Zechariah,  his  father,  was  replenished  with  the  Holy  Spirit,  and 
thus  prophesied  ;  Blessed  be  the  Lord  God  of  Israel,  for  he  has  visited 
and  redeemed  his  people  ;  and  has  raised  a  prince  of  salvation  for  us, 
in  the  family  of  his  servant  David  ;  (even  as  he  anciently  announced  by 
the  mouth  of  his  holy  prophets),  for  our  deUverance  from  our  enemies, 
and  from  the  hand  of  all  who  hate  us  ;  in  kindness  towards  our  fathers, 
and  remembrance  of  his  sacred  covenant ;  according  to  the  oath  which 
he  promulged  to  our  father  Abraham,  to  permit  us,  being  rescued  from 
the  hand  of  our  enemies,  fearlessly  to  worship  him,  by  holiness  and 
righteousness  in  his  sight,  all  our  days.  And  thou,  child,  wilt  be  ac- 
counted a  prophet  of  the  Most  High  God ;  for  thou  wilt  go  before  the 
face  of  the  Lord  to  prepare  his  ways ;  to  impart  the  science  of  salvation 
to  his  people,  in  the  forgiveness  of  their  sins,  through  the  tender  com- 
passions of  our  God,  who  has  caused  the  dawn  of  day  from  on  high,  to 
visit  us,  to  illumine  those  who  sit  in  darkness  and  the  shadow  of  death, 
to  direct  our  feet  into  the  way  of  peace. 

Now  the  child  advanced,  and  became  powerfiil  in  mind,  and  was  in 
soUtary  regions,  till  the  period  of  his  public  appearance  to  Israel. 

Further,  it  occurred  in  those  days,  that  an  edict  was  issued  by  Augus- 
tus Cesar,  that  a  register  of  the  whole  empire  should  be  taken.  (This 
enrolment  was  made  before  Quirinius  was  governor  of  Syria).  And  all 
went,  each  to  his  own  city,  to  be  enrolled.  And  Joseph  also  went  up 
from  the  city  of  Nazareth  in  Galilee,  to  the  city  of  David  in  Judea, 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  115 

which  is  called  Bethlehem  ;  because  he  was  of  the  family  and  lineage  of 
David  ;  to  be  registered  with  Mary  his  affianced  wife,  being  far  advanc- 
ed in  gestation.  And  it  happened,  that  while  they  were  there,  the  time 
of  her  parturition  was  accompUshed  ;  and  she  had  her  first-born  son,  and 
swathed  him,  and  laid  him  in  a  manger;  because  there  was  no  place  for 
them  in  the  house  allotted  to  strangers. 

And  there  were  shepherds  in  that  country,  residing  in  the  fields,  and 
keeping  over  their  flocks  the  watches  of  the  night.  And  suddenly,  a 
messenger  of  the  Lord  appeared  above  them,  and  the  glory  of  the  Lord 
shone  around  them  ;  and  they  were  exceedingly  dismayed.  But  the 
angel  Sedd  to  them.  Be  not  terrified ;  for  behold,  I  bring  you  a  good 
message,  which  shall  be  a  subject  of  great  joy  to  all  people  ;  because  to 
you  is  this  day  born  in  the  city  of  David,  a  Saviour,  who  is  the  Lord 
Messiah.  And  this  shall  be  an  indication  to  you  ;  you  shall  find  an  in- 
fant, in  swathing  bands,  lying  in  a  manger.  And  there  was  instantly 
with  the  angel,  a  multitude  of  the  celestial  army,  praising  God,  and  say- 
ing, Glory  to  God  in  the  highest  heaven,  and  on  earth  peace,  benevo- 
lence among  men. 

Now  it  occurred,  that  as  the  angels  departed  from  them  to  heaven, 
the  shepherds  said  to  each  other,  let  us  go  directly  to  Bethlehem,  and 
witness  this  event  that  has  transpired,  which  the  Lord  has  revealed  to 
us.  And  they  went  in  haste,  and  found  Mary  and  Joseph,  with  the  in- 
fant who  lay  in  the  manger.  And  when  they  saw  this,  they  widely  pub- 
lished the  communication  made  to  them  concerning  this  child.  And  all 
who  heard  it  were  astonished  at  those  things,  which  were  related  to 
them  by  the  shepherds.  But  Mary  treasured  all  these  circumstances, 
weighing  them  in  her  heart.  And  the  shepherds  returned,  lauding  and 
praising  God  for  all  things  which  they  had  heard  and  seen,  even  as  it 
was  declared  to  them. 

And  on  the  eighth  day,  when  the  child  was  circumcised,  his  name  was 
called  Jesus,  which  the  angel  had  given  him  before  he  was  in  embryo. 

And  when  the  time  of  their  purification,  according  to  the  law  of 
Moses,  had  expired,  they  carried  him  to  Jerusalem,  to  present  him  to 
the  Lord ;  (Even  as  it  is  written  in  the  law  of  the  Lord,  Every  first- 
born male  child  shall  be  consecrated  to  the  Lord) ;  and  to  ofier  a  sacri- 
fice, agreeably  to  what  is  enjoined  in  the  law  of  the  Lord,  —  a  pair  of 
turtle-doves,  or  two  young  pigeons. 

And  behold,  there  was  a  man  in  Jerusalem,  whose  name  was  Simeon ; 
and  he  was  a  righteous  and  pious  person,  waiting  for  the  consolation 
of  Israel ;  and  the  Holy  Spirit  was  upon  him.  And  he  was  divinely  in- 
formed by  the  Holy  Spirit,  that  he  should  not  die,  till  he  had  beheld  the 
Anointed  of  the  Lord.  And  he  came  through  the  Spirit  into  the  temple, 
when  the  parents  brought  in  the  child  Jesus,  that  they  might  do  for  him 
what  the  law  required,  and  he  took  him  into  his  arms,  and  praised  God, 
and  said,  Now,  Lord,  thou  dost  in  peace  dismiss  thy  servant,  according 
to  thy  word ;  for  mine  eyes  have  witnessed  thy  salvation,  which  thou 


116  APOSTOLIC   PRODUCTIONS. 

hast  prepared  in  the  view  of  all  the  world  ;  a  light  for  the  illumination 
of  the  Gentiles,  and  the  glory  of  Israel  thy  people. 

Now  Joseph  and  the  mother  of  Jesus  were  astonished  at  what  was 
said  respecting  him.  And  Simeon  blessed  them,  and  said  to  Mary 
his  mother.  Behold  this  child  is  designated  for  the  defection  and  restora- 
tion of  many  in  Israel ;  and  for  a  mark  of  contradiction  ;  (and  indeed, 
a  dart  will  transfix  your  own  soul),  that  the  reasonings  of  many  hearts 
may  be  disclosed. 

And  there  was  one  Anna,  a  prophetess,  the  daughter  of  Phanuel,  of 
the  tribe  of  Asher.  She  was  at  a  very  protracted  age,  having  lived  with 
a  husband  seven  years  from  her  marriage,  and  remained  a  widow  about 
eighty-four  years  ;  who  uniformly  attended  in  the  temple,  by  night  as 
well  as  day,  and  served  God  with  abstinence  and  supplications.  And 
approaching  at  that  very  time,  she  offered  her  acknowledgments  to  the 
Lord,  and  spoke  of  him  to  all  those  who  were  expecting  redemption  in 
Jerusalem. 

And  when  they  had  performed  all  things,  according  to  the  law  of  the 
Lord,  they  returned  to  Galilee,  to  their  own  city  Nazareth.  And  the 
child  matured,  and  strengthened  in  spirit,  wholly  imbued  with  wisdom ; 
and  the  approbation  of  God  attended  him. 

Moreover,  his  parents  went  annually  to  Jerusalem,  at  the  feast  of  the 
passover.  And  when  he  was  twelve  years  old,  they  went  up  to  Jerusa- 
lem, in  conformity  to  the  usage  of  the  festival.  And  when  they  had  re- 
mained the  usual  time,  and  as  they  were  returning,  the  child  Jesus  con- 
tinued in  Jerusalem  ;  and  Joseph  and  his  mother  were  not  apprised  of 
it.  Supposing,  however,  that  he  was  in  the  company,  they  performed  a 
day's  journey ;  and  they  earnestly  sought  him  among  their  relatives 
and  acquaintance  ;  but  not  finding  him,  they  returned  to  Jerusalem,  in 
diligent  search  of  him.  And  it  happened,  after  three  days,  that  they 
found  him  in  the  temple,  seated  in  the  midst  of  the  teachers,  giving  them 
audience,  and  interrogating  them.  And  all  who  heard  him,  were  in  a 
transport  of  admiration  at  his  intelligence  and  replies.  And  when  his 
parents  saw  him,  they  were  in  consternation  ;  and  his  mother  said  to 
him,  Son  why  have  you  thus  conducted  towards  us  1  Behold,  your 
father  and  I  have  anxiously  sought  you.  And  he  said  to  them.  For 
what  cause  did  you  seek  me  1  Were  you  not  aware,  that  I  must  be 
engaged  in  my  Father's  concerns  ]  But  they  did  not  understand  the 
words  which  he  addressed  to  them. 

And  he  went  down  with  them,  and  came  to  Nazareth,  and  was  sub- 
ject to  them.  And  his  mother  retained  all  these  things  in  her  memory. 
And  Jesus  advanced  in  stature  and  wisdom,  and  in  favor  with  God  and 
men. 

Besides,  in  the  fifteenth  year  of  the  reign  of  Tiberius  Cesar,  when 
Pontius  Pilate  was  governor  of  Judea,  and  Herod  was  tetrarch  of 
Galilee,  and  his  brother  Philip  tetrarch  of  Iturea,  and  the  province  of 
Trachonitis,   and  Lysanias    tetrarch  of  Abilene,   while   Ananias    and 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  117 

Caiphas  were  high  priests,  the  word  of  God  came  to  John,  the  son  of 
Zechariah,  in  the  wilderness.  And  he  went  through  all  the  adjacent 
country  of  the  Jordan,  publishing  the  baptism  of  reformation,  for  the 
remission  of  sins :  as  it  is  written  in  the  book  of  discourses  of  the 
prophet  Isaiah,  saying,  The  voice  of  one  announcing  in  the  desert,  pre- 
pare the  way  of  the  Lord,  make  his  paths  straight.  Every  valley  will 
be  filled,  and  every  mountain  and  hill  will  be  excavated  ;  even  the  de- 
vious roads  will  be  rendered  direct,  and  the  rugged  places  will  be 
levelled.  And  every  individual  will  realize  the  salvation  of  God.  He 
then  observed  to  the  multitude  that  came  forth  to  be  baptized  by  him. 
Progeny  of  vipers,  who  has  induced  you  to  fly  from  the  impending  ven- 
geance 1  Produce,  therefore,  fruits  characteristic  of  reformation  ;  and 
begin  not  to  allege  among  yourselves.  We  have  Abraham  as  our  father  ; 
for  I  af&rm  to  you,  that  God  is  able  from  these  stones  to  perpetuate 
children  to  Abraham.  And  even  now,  the  axe  is  laid  at  the  root  of  the 
trees.  Every  tree,  therefore,  which  does  not  yield  good  fruit,  is  felled, 
and  thrown  into  the  fire. 

And  the  people  thus  questioned  him,  What,  then,  shall  we  do  1  And 
he  remarks  to  them  in  reply.  He  who  has  two  coats,  let  him  impart  to 
him  who  has  none  ;  and  he  who  has  food,  let  him  do  the  same.  Then 
came  also  tax-collectors  to  be  baptized,  and  said  to  him.  Teacher,  what 
shall  we  do  1  And  he  replied  to  them,  Exact  no  more  than  you  are 
authorized  to  require.  And  the  soldiers  likewise  interrogated  him,  say- 
ing. And  what  shall  we  do  1  And  he  said  to  them.  Assault  no  person, 
nor  accuse  any  one  on  a  frivolous  pretence  ;  and  be  contented  with 
your  compensation. 

Now,  while  the  people  were  in  suspense  respecting  John,  every  man 
imagining  within  himself  that  he  might  be  the  Messiah ;  John  thus  ad- 
dressed them  all,  I  indeed  baptize  you  with  water;  but  one  more  power- 
ful than  I  succeeds,  the  string  of  whose  shoes  I  am  not  worthy  to  untie ; 
he  will  baptize  you  with  the  Holy  Spirit  and  with  fire ;  whose  fan  is  in 
his  hand,  and  he  will  completely  cleanse  his  thrashing-floor,  and  will 
gather  the  wheat  into  his  granary  ;  but  he  will  consume  the  chaff  with 
inextinguishable  fire.  And  moreover,  in  offering  many  other  exhorta- 
tions, he  continued  to  proclaim  this  joyfiil  intelligence  to  the  people. 

Further,  Herod  the  tetrarch,  being  reproved  by  him,  respecting  He- 
rodias  his  brother's  wife,  and  in  relation  to  all  the  crimes  which  Herod 
had  committed,  added  even  this  to  the  number,  that  he  confined  John  in 
prison. 

And  it  occurred,  when  all  the  people  were  baptized,  that  Jesus  being 
also  baptized,  and  in  supplication,  the  heaven  was  opened,  and  the  Holy 
Spirit  descended  upon  him,  in  a  corporeal  form,  like  a  dove,  and  a  voice 
proceeded  from  heaven,  which  announced.  Thou  art  my  beloved  Son ; 
in  thee  I  have  delighted. 

And  Jesus  himself  was  about  thirty  years  of  age,  when  he  commenced 
[his  ministry] ;  being,  as  he  was  reputed,  a  son  of  Joseph,  [or  of  Mary 


118  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

the  daughter  of  Heli],  who  was  [the  son-in-law]  of  Heli,  the  son  of 
Matthat,  who  descended  from  Levi,  from  Melchi,  from  Jannah,  from 
Joseph,  from  Mattathiah,  from  Amos,  from  Nahum,  from  Eli,  from 
Naggai,  from  Shimei,  from  Joseph,  from  Judah,  from  Johanan,  from 
Rhesa,  from  Zerubbabel,  from  Salathiel,  from  Neri,  from  Melchi,  from 
Addi,  from  Cosam,  from  Elmodam,  from  Er,  from  Joses,  from  Eleazer, 
from  Jorim,  from  Matthat,  from  Levi,  from  Simeon,  from  Judah,  from 
Joseph,  from  Jonan,  from  Ehakim,  from  Mattathiah,  from  Nathan,  from 
David,  who  was  the  son  of  Jesse  ;  the  son  of  Obed,  of  Boaz,  of  Salmon, 
of  Nashon,  of  Aminadab,  of  Aram,  of  Hezron,  of  Pharez,  of  Judah,  of 
Jacob,  of  Isaac,  of  Abraham,  of  Terah,  of  Nahor,  of  Serug,  of  Ragau, 
of  Peleg,  of  Eber,  of  Salah,  of  Cainan,  of  Arphaxad,  of  Shem,  of  Noah, 
of  Lamech,  of  Methusalah,  of  Enoch,  of  Jonah,  of  Mahalaleel,  of 
Cainan,  of  Enos,  of  Seth,  of  Adam,  [who  was  the  creation]  of  GOD. 

Now  Jesus,  replete  with  the  Holy  Spirit,  returned  from  the  Jordan, 
and  was  carried  about  by  the  Spirit  into  the  wilderness,  being  forty  days 
tempted  by  the  enemy.  And  in  that  period  he  had  eaten  nothing ;  and 
after  it  terminated,  he  was  hungry.  And  the  enemy  said  to  him,  If  thou 
art  a  Son  of  God,  command  that  this  stone  may  become  bread.  And 
Jesus  thus  replied  to  him.  It  is  written,  Man  shall  not  live  by  bread 
alone,  but  by  every  word  of  God.  And  the  enemy  taking  him  to  a  very 
elevated  mountain,  exhibited  to  him,  in  a  moment,  all  the  kingdoms  of 
the  land.  And  the  enemy  declared  to  him,  I  will  impart  to  thee  all  this 
authority,  with  its  splendor  ;  since  it  is  delivered  to  me,  and  I  give  it  to 
whom  I  please.  If,  therefore,  thou  wilt  render  homage  to  me,  it  shall  all 
be  thine.  And  Jesus  answering,  said  to  him.  It  is  written,  thou  shalt 
worship  the  Lord  thy  God,  and  pay  adoration  to  him  alone.  And  the 
enemy  brought  him  to  Jerusalem,  and  set  him  on  the  turret  of  the  tem- 
ple, and  said  to  him.  If  thou  art  a  Son  of  God,  cast  thyself  down  from 
this  place ;  for  it  is  written,  He  will  give  his  angels  direction  concerning 
thee,  to  protect  thee  ;  and  they  shall  support  thee  in  their  hands,  lest 
thou  shouldst,  at  any  time,  injure  thy  foot  against  a  stone.  And  Jesus 
replying,  said  to  him.  It  is  announced.  Thou  shalt  not  make  trial  of  the 
Lord  thy  God.  And  the  enemy,  having  concluded  every  temptation, 
departed  from  him  for  a  time. 

And  Jesus,  in  the  great  power  of  the  Spirit,  returned  to  Galilee  ;  and 
his  renown  pervaded  all  the  adjacent  country.  And  he  instructed  in 
their  synagogues,  with  universal  applause. 

And  he  came  to  Nazareth,  where  he  had  been  brought  up,  and  ac- 
cording to  his  custom,  he  entered  the  synagogue  on  the  sabbath  day, 
and  arose  to  read.  And  the  volume  of  Isaiah  the  prophet  was  accord- 
ingly delivered  to  him  :  and  having  unrolled  the  volume,  he  found  the 
place  where  it  was  written.  The  Spirit  of  the  Lord  is  upon  me,  for  the 
purpose  to  which  he  has  consecrated  me ;  for  he  has  sent  me  to  publish 
good  news  to  the  poor  ;  to  heal  those  whose  hearts  are  broken,  to  an- 
nounce liberation  to  captives,  and  restoration  of  sight  to  the  blind,  to 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  119 

dispense  freedom  to  the  oppressed,  to  proclaim  the  grateful  year  of  the 
Lord.  And  having  rolled  up  the  volume,  he  returned  it  to  the  usual 
attendant,  and  sat  down.  And  the  eyes  of  all  in  the  synagogue  were 
attentively  fixed  on  him.  And  he  proceeded  to  say  to  them.  To-day, 
this  Scripture  is  iulfiUed  in  your  hearing.  And  the  approbation  of  all 
was  awarded  him  ;  and  they  admired  the  elegance  of  language,  that 
flowed  from  his  lips.  And  they  inquired,  Is  not  this  the  son  of  Joseph  1 
And  he  said  to  them,  You  will  unquestionably  refer  me  to  this  illustra- 
tion. Physician,  heal  thyself;  and  perform  here,  in  thy  own  country, 
such  works  as  we  have  learned  were  done  at  Capernaum.  But  he  said, 
I  assure  you,  that  no  prophet  is  acceptable  in  his  own  country.  More- 
over, I  state  to  you,  in  truth.  There  were  many  widows  in  Israel,  in  the 
days  of  Elijah,  when  the  heaven  was  closed  for  three  years  and  a  half, 
so  that  a  great  famine  prevailed  in  all  the  country  ;  and  EUjah  was  sent 
to  none  of  them ;  but  rather,  to  a  widowed  woman  at  Sarepta,  a  city  of 
Sidon.  And  there  were  many  lepers  in  Israel,  in  the  time  of  Elisha  the 
prophet ;  and  none  of  them  were  purified ;  but  rather,  Naaman  the 
Syrian.  And  all  in  the  synagogue,  when  they  heard  these  things,  were 
filled  with  fiiry,  and  arising,  they  expelled  him  from  the  city,  and 
brought  him  even  to  the  steep  declivity  of  the  mountain,  on  which  their 
city  was  built,  to  precipitate  him  thence.  But,  passing  through  the 
midst  of  them,  he  departed. 

And  he  descended  to  Capernaum,  a  city  of  Galilee,  and  taught  them 
on  the  sabbath.  And  they  were  powerfully  impressed  by  his  instruc- 
tion ;  for  his  word  was  with  authority. 

Now  there  was  a  man  in  the  synagogue,  having  a  spirit  of  an  impure 
demon ;  and  he  exclaimed  with  a  loud  voice,  saying.  Ah  !  what  have 
we  to  do  with  thee,  Jesus  of  Nazareth  ?  Hast  thou  come  to  destroy  us  ? 
I  know  thee,  who  thou  art.  The  Sanctified  of  God.  And  Jesus  reproved 
him,  saying,  Be  silent,  and  depart  from  him.  And  the  demon,  having 
thrown  him  into  the  midst  of  them,  left  him,  but  did  him  no  injury. 
And  astonishment  pervaded  all,  and  they  conferred  among  themselves, 
saying.  What  language  is  this  !  for  with  authority  and  power  he  com- 
mands the  impure  spirits,  and  they  depart.  And  his  fame  extended  to 
every  part  of  the  surrounding  country. 

Then  retiring  from  the  synagogue,  he  entered  the  house  of  Simon. 
And  Simon's  wife's  mother  was  confined  with  a  violent  fever  ;  and  they 
entreated  him  in  her  behalf.  And  standing  near  her,  he  rebuked  the 
fever  ;  and  it  left  her ;  and  she  instantly  arose,  and  waited  upon  them. 

Further,  as  the  sun  was  setting,  all  who  had  any  sick,  of  whatever 
kind  of  disease,  brought  them  to  him  ;  and  he  laid  his  hands  on  every 
one  of  them,  and  healed  them.  And  demons  also  departed  from  many, 
exclaiming  and  saying.  Thou  art  the  Messiah,  the  Son  of  God.  But  re- 
prehending them,  he  would  not  permit  them  to  allege,  that  they  recog- 
nised him  to  be  the  Messiah. 


120  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

Moreover,  departing  at  the  dawn  of  day,  he  withdrew  to  a  desert 
place  ;  and  the  multitude  earnestly  sought  him,  and  came  to  him,  and 
urged  him  not  to  leave  them.  But  he  said  to  them,  I  must  also  proclaim 
the  good  message  of  the  reign  of  God  to  other  cities  ;  since  for  that  pur- 
pose I  am  sent.  And  he  made  the  publication  in  the  synagogues  of 
Galilee. 

Now  it  occurred,  as  the  multitude  pressed  upon  Jesus  to  hear  the 
word  of  God,  that  he  was  standing  by  the  lake  of  Gennesaret,  and  saw 
two  vessels  stationed  near  the  shore  ;  but  the  fishermen  had  left  them, 
and  were  washing  their  nets.  And  entering  one  of  the  barks,  which 
belonged  to  Simon,  he  requested  him  to  move  a  little  distance  from  the 
land.     And  sitting  down,  he  taught  the  people  from  the  boat. 

And  having  concluded  his  remarks,  he  said  to  Simon,  Proceed  to  deep 
water,  and  let  down  your  nets  for  a  draught.  And  Simon  answering, 
said  to  him.  Master,  we  have  labored  during  the  whole  night,  and  have 
caught  nothing  ;  but,  I  will  let  down  the  net,  at  thy  command.  And 
having  done  this,  they  enclosed  such  a  vast  number  of  fishes,  that  their 
net  began  to  break.  And  they  intimated  to  their  companions  who  were 
in  the  other  vessel,  to  come  and  assist  them  ;  and  they  came,  and  laded 
both  the  boats,  so  that  they  were  about  to  sink.  But  Simon  Peter,  per- 
ceiving this,  fell  down  at  the  knees  of  Jesus,  declaring.  Depart  from  me. 
Lord,  for  I  am  a  sinful  man.  Indeed,  astonishment  seized  him,  and  all 
who  were  with  him,  particularly  James  and  John,  the  sons  of  Zebedee, 
who  were  partners  with  Simon,  in  consequence  of  the  draught  of  the 
fishes,  which  they  had  taken.  But  Jesus  said  to  Simon,  fear  not ;  from 
this  period  you  shall  catch  living  men.  And  having  brought  their  boats 
to  land,  they  left  all,  and  followed  him. 

And  it  happened  that  he  was  in  a  certain  city,  and  behold,  a  man  full 
of  leprosy,  seeing  Jesus,  fell  on  his  face,  and  importuned  him,  saying. 
Master,  if  thou  wilt,  thou  canst  cleanse  me.  And  extending  his  hand, 
he  touched  him,  saying,  I  will ;  be  thou  cleansed.  And  the  leprosy 
instantly  departed  from  liim.  And  he  charged  him  to  inform  no  one  : 
but  go,  said  he,  show  yourself  to  the  priest,  and  present  the  offering 
appointed  by  Moses,  for  notifying  to  the  people  that  you  are  cleansed. 
But  his  celebrity  was  more  exceedingly  diffused ;  and  many  people 
assembled  to  hear,  and  to  be  restored  by  him  from  their  infirmities. 
Moreover,  he  frequently  retired  to  solitary  places,  and  prayed. 

Now  it  occurred,  on  a  certain  day,  as  he  was  instructing,  that  phari- 
sees  and  teachers  of  the  law  were  sitting  near,  who  were  convened  from 
Jerusalem,  and  from  every  town  of  Galilee,  and  of  Judea ;  and  the 
miraculous  power  of  the  Lord  was  exerted  to  heal  the  diseased.  And 
behold,  some  persons  brought,  on  a  bed,  a  man  who  was  palsied  ;  and 
they  endeavored  to  convey  and  place  him  in  the  presence  of  Jesus.  But, 
being  unable  to  devise  any  means,  by  which  they  could  introduce  liim, 
on  account  of  the  crowd,  they  ascended  the  house,  and  lowered  him. 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  121 

with  his  couch,  through  an  aperture  of  the  tiling,  into  the  midst,  before 
Jesus.  And  seeing  their  faith,  he  affirmed,  Man,  your  sins  are  forgiven 
you.  And  the  scribes  and  the  pharisees  began  thus  to  debate.  Who  is 
this,  that  utters  impious  expressions  ?  Who  can  forgive  sins,  but  God 
alone  1  And  Jesus  recognising  their  discussions,  said  to  them,  in  an- 
swer. Why  do  you  speculate  in  your  hearts  1  Which  is  easiest,  to  allege, 
Thy  sins  are  forgiven  thee,  or  to  command,  [with  effect].  Arise  and 
walk  1  But  that  you  may  know  that  the  Son  of  Man  has  authority  on 
the  earth  to  forgive  sins.  Arise,  (sEiid  he  to  the  palsied  man),  take  up 
your  bed,  and  repair  to  your  residence.  And  instantly  arising  before 
them,  and  taking  that  on  which  he  reclined,  he  proceeded  to  his  house, 
praising  God.  And  amazement  seized  all,  and  they  praised  God,  and 
were  filled  with  fear,  averring.  We  have  beheld  prodigies  to-day. 

And  after  these  events,  Jesus  went  out,  and  saw  a  pubUc  exactor,  by 
the  name  of  Levi,  sitting  at  the  tax-office  ;  and  he  said  to  him.  Follow 
me.  And  completely  abandoning  all,  he  arose,  and  followed  him.  And 
Levi  made,  in  his  own  house,  a  splendid  entertainment  for  him.  And 
there  was  a  great  number  of  tax-gatherers  and  of  others,  who  sat  down 
with  them.  And  the  scribes  and  the  pharisees  of  the  place  thus  mur- 
mured at  his  disciples  ;  Why  do  you  eat  and  drink  with  pubUc  exactors 
and  sinners  ?  And  Jesus  replying,  said  to  them,  They  who  are  weU,  do 
not  require  a  physician ;  but  those  that  are  sick.  I  came  to  call,  not 
righteous  beings,  but  sinners  to  reformation. 

Then  they  said  to  him,  why  do  the  disciples  of  John,  and  likewise 
those  of  the  pharisees  frequently  fast  and  make  prayers  ;  but  thine  eat 
and  drink  t  And  he  replied  to  them.  Would  you  have  the  bridemen  fast, 
while  the  bridegroom  is  with  them  1  But  the  time  will  come,  when  the 
bridegroom  shall  be  removed  from  them,  and  during  that  period  they 
will  fast.  And  besides,  he  addressed  to  them  this  similitude.  No  one 
attaches  a  piece  of  new  cloth  to  an  old  garment ;  lest  indeed,  the  new 
should  cause  a  rent,  and  the  piece  from  it  not  correspond  with  the  old. 
And  no  one  puts  new  wine  into  old  leathern  bottles  ;  lest  the  new  wine 
burst  the  bottles,  and  be  lost,  and  the  bottles  be  destroyed.  But  new 
wine  is  put  into  new  bottles  ;  and  both  are  preserved.  And  no  one 
having  drank  old  wine,  immediately  desires  new ;  for  he  affirms,  that 
the  old  is  more  agreeable. 

Now  it  occurred,  on  the  first  sabbath  after  the  second  [day  of  the 
passover],  as  Jesu«  went  through  the  grain,  that  his  disciples  gathered 
the  ears,  and  did  eat,  rubbing  them  in  their  hands.  But  some  of  the 
pharisees  said  to  them.  Why  do  you  perform  that  which  it  is  unlawftil  to 
do,  on  the  sabbath  1  And  Jesus  observed  to  them,  in  reply,  Have  you 
not  read  even  this,  what  David  did  when  he  was  hungry,  and  they  who 
were  with  him  1  how  he  entered  the  temple  of  God,  and  did  take  and 
eat  the  show-bread,  and  ftirther  gave  to  those  who  were  with  him, 
though  it  cannot  be  lawftiUy  eaten  by  any  but  the  priests  1  And  he 
declared  to  them,  the  Son  of  Man  is  Lord  even  of  the  sabbath. 

16 


122  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

And  it  also  happened,  on  another  sabbath,  that  he  entered  the  syna- 
gogue and  taught :  and  a  man  was  present,  whose  right  hand,  was  with- 
ered. And  the  scribes  and  the  pharisees  maliciously  watched  him,  to 
see  whether  he  would  heal  on  the  sabbath  ;  that  they  might  find  an 
accusation  against  him.  But  he  knew  their  thoughts,  and  said  to  the 
man  who  had  the  withered  hand,  Arise,  and  stand  in  the  midst.  And 
he  arose  and  stood  there.  Jesus  then  said  to  them,  I  will  ask  you  one 
question  ;  Is  it  not  lawful  to  do  good  on  the  sabbath,  rather  than  evil  ? 
to  save  life,  rather  than  to  destroy  it  7  And  surveying  them  all,  he  said 
to  him.  Reach  out  your  hand ;  and  he  complied  ;  and  his  hand  was  ren- 
dered sound  like  the  other.  And  they  were  filled  with  madness ;  and 
consulted  with  each  other,  what  they  could  do  to  Jesus. 

And  it  occurred,  at  that  period,  that  he  departed  to  a  mountain  to 
pray  ;  and  he  remained,  through  the  night,  in  a  place  of  supplication  to 
God.  And  when  it  was  day,  he  summoned  his  disciples  ;  and  he  select- 
ed from  them  twelve,  whom  he  likewise  denominated  Apostles  ;  Simon, 
(whom  he  also  named  Peter),  and  Andrew  his  brother,  James  and  John, 
PhiUp  and  Bartholomew,  Matthew  and  Thomas,  James  the  son  of  Al- 
pheus,  and  Simon  styled  the  Zealous,  Jude  the  brother  of  James,  and 
Judas  Iscariot,  even  he  who  was  the  traitor. 

And  Jesus,  descending  with  them,  stood  on  a  plain,  with  a  company 
of  his  disciples  ;  and  a  great  multitude  of  people  from  all  Judea,  and 
Jerusalem,  and  from  the  maritime  section  of  Tyre  and  Sidon,  came  to 
hear  him,  and  to  be  recovered  from  their  diseases.  Those  also,  who 
were  annoyed  by  unclean  spirits,  came  and  were  restored.  And  the 
whole  assemblage  endeavored  to  touch  him ;  for  a  salutary  efficacy  pro- 
ceeded from  him,  and  healed  them  all. 

Then  lifting  his  eyes  towards  his  disciples,  he  declared,  Happy  are 
you  who  are  poor,  for  the  kingdom  of  God  is  yours ;  happy  are  you  who 
are  now  hungry,  since  you  will  be  supplied ;  happy  are  you  who  now 
mourn,  because  you  will  be  joyful ;  happy  are  you  when  men  shall  hate 
you,  and  when  they  shall  banish  you,  and  reproach  you,  and  discard 
your  names  as  evil,  on  account  of  the  Son  of  Man.  Rejoice  in  that  day, 
and  triumph,  recollecting  that  your  reward  in  heaven  is  great  ;  for  thus 
their  fathers  did  to  the  prophets.  But  alas  for  you  who  are  rich,  since 
you  have  received  your  consolation  !  alas  for  you  who  are  satisfied, 
because  you  will  hunger  !  alas  for  you  who  now  inordinately  exult,  for 
you  will  lament  and  weep  !  alas  for  you  when  men  shall  applaud  you, 
for  thus  their  fathers  demeaned  towards  the  false  prophets  ! 

But,  I  charge  you  who  hear,  Love  your  enemies,  kindly  conduct  to- 
wards those  who  hate  you,  favorably  represent  those  who  execrate  you, 
pray  for  those  who  malignantly  injure  you.  And  to  him  that  strikes 
thee  on  one  cheek,  present  also  the  other  ;  and  from  him  who  takes 
away  thy  mantle,  withhold  not  even  thy  cassock.  Moreover,  give  to  every 
one  who  asks  thee ;  and  from  him  who  extorts  thy  possessions,  do  not 
servilely  solicit  them.     Besides,  as  ye  would  that  men  should  do  to  yoiu, 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  123 

thus  do  ye  likewise  to  them.  For  if  you  love  those  only  who  love  you, 
what  thanks  are  due  to  you  1  since  even  sinners  love  those  who  love 
them.  And  if  you  are  beneficent  to  those  only  who  are  beneficent  to 
you,  to  what  gratitude  are  you  entitled  1  since  even  sinners  do  the  same. 
And  if  you  lend  to  those  only  from  whom  you  expect  a  return,  what  ap- 
probation do  you  merit  1  for  even  sinners  lend  to  sinners,  that  they  may 
receive  an  equivalent.  Further,  love  your  enemies,  and  do  good,  and 
lend,  in  no  respect  despairing  ;  and  your  reward  will  be  great,  and  you 
will  be  the  sons  of  the  Most  High  God  ;  for  he  is  benignant  to  the  un- 
grateful and  iniquitous.  Be  therefore  compassionate,  even  as  your 
Father  is  compassionate. 

Besides,  judge  not,  and  you  will  not  be  judged ;  condemn  not,  and 
you  will  not  be  condemned ;  forgive,  and  you  will  be  forgiven ;  give, 
and  it  shall  be  given  to  you ;  they  shall  pour  into  yo,ur  lap  good  measure, 
compressed,  consolidated,  and  overflowing.  For  by  the  same  measure 
which  you  use,  it  shall  be  dispensed  to  you  in  return. 

Further,  he  referred  them  a  comparison  ;  Can  the  blind  guide  the 
bUnd  ?  Will  not  both  of  them  fall  into  a  pit  1  The  disciple  is  not  su- 
perior to  his  teacher  ;  but  every  well  instructed  disciple  will  resemble 
his  teacher.  And  why  dost  thou  discover  the  splinter  that  is  in  thy 
brother's  eye,  but  discernest  not  the  thorn  that  is  in  thine  own  eye  ?  Or 
how  canst  say  to  him.  Brother,  let  me  take  out  the  splinter  that  is 
in  thine  eye,  not  reflecting  that  there  is  a  thorn  in  thine  own  eye  1 
Dissembler,  first  remove  the  thorn  from  thine  own  eye,  and  then  thou 
will  plainly  perceive,  how  to  extract  the  splinter  from  the  eye  of  thy 
brother.  Moreover,  there  is  no  sound  tree  which  produces  decayed 
fruit,  nor  defective  tree  that  affords  fair  fruit ;  since  every  tree  is  known 
by  its  proper  fruit.  For  example,  men  do  not  collect  figs  from  the 
acanthus,  nor  gather  the  grape  from  the  bramble.  A  good  man  pro- 
duces that  which  is  good,  from  the  good  treasure  of  his  heart,  and  a  bad 
man  from  the  bad  treasure  of  his  heart  produces  that  which  is  bad  ;  for 
his  mouth  speaks  from  the  overflowing  of  the  heart. 

But  why  do  you  call  me,  Lord,  Lord,  and  perform  not  what  I  enjoin  1 
I  will  plainly  show  you  whom  he  resembles  who  comes  to  me,  and  lis- 
tens to  my  counsels,  and  pursues  them :  he  resembles  a  man,  who, 
erecting  a  house,  dug  deep,  and  placed  the  foundation  on  the  rock :  and 
the  inundation  came,  and  the  current  violently  beat  against  that  house, 
but  could  not  shake  it ;  because  it  was  founded  on  the  rock.  But  he 
who  hears,  and  does  not  practise,  resembles  a  man,  who,  without  a 
basis,  built  a  house  on  the  earth  ;  against  which  the  stream  powerfidly 
broke,  and  it  immediately  fell,  and  the  ruin  of  that  house  was  great. 

Now  when  Jesus  had  concluded  all  his  remarks,  in  the  audience  of 
the  people,  he  entered  Capernaum.  And  a  centurion's  servant,  who 
was  greatly  esteemed  by  him,  was  ill,  and  in  danger  of  death.  And  the 
centurion  having  heard  concerning  Jesus,  sent  to  him  Jewish  magis- 
trates, soliciting  him,  that  he  would  come  and  heal  his  servant.    And 


124  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

when  they  came  to  Jesus,  they  earnestly  entreated  him,  alleging,  He  is 
worthy  of  this  favor ;  for  he  loves  our  nation,  and  he  has  built  us  a 
synagogue.  And  Jesus  then  accompanied  them.  And  when  he  was 
not  far  from  the  house,  the  centurion  sent  friends  to  him,  with  the  mes- 
sage. Master,  trouble  not  thyself;  for  I  am  not  worthy  that  thou  shouldst 
enter  under  my  roof.  Consequently,  I  deemed  myself  unworthy  to 
approach  thee  :  but  pronounce  a  word,  and  my  servant  will  be  healed. 
For  I  am  a  man  subordinate  to  authority,  having  soldiers  under  me  ; 
and  I  say  to  one.  Go,  and  he  goes ;  and  to  another.  Come,  and  he 
comes ;  and  to  my  servant.  Do  this,  and  he  does  it.  And  Jesus,  hearing 
these  observations,  admired  him,  and  turning  about,  said  to  the  multitude 
that  was  following  him,  I  declare  to  you,  that  I  have  not  found,  even  in 
Israel,  such  signal  faith.  And  they  who  had  been  sent,  returning  to  the 
house,  found  the  servant,  who  had  been  sick,  restored  to  perfect  health. 

And  it  occurred,  on  the  subsequent  day,  that  he  went  to  a  city  called 
Nain ;  and  many  of  his  disciples  attended  him,  and  a  numerous  assem- 
blage. And  when  he  approached  the  gate  of  the  city,  behold,  a  deceased 
person  was  carried  out,  the  only  son  of  his  mother,  and  she  was  a  widow ; 
and  a  great  multitude  of  the  city  was  with  her.  And  when  the  Lord 
saw  her,  he  had  pity  upon  her,  and  said  to  her.  Weep  not.  And  he 
advanced  and  touched  the  bier ;  and  the  bearers  stood  still.  And  he 
said,  Young  man,  arise,  I  command  thee.  And  he  who  had  been  dead 
sat  up,  and  began  to  speak ;  and  Jesus  presented  him  to  his  mother. 
And  dread  seized  all ;  and  they  praised  God,  declaring,  A  distinguished 
prophet  is  risen  among  us  ;  and  God  has  kindly  regarded  his  people. 
And  this  report  of  him  pervaded  all  Judea,  and  the  whole  adjacent 
region. 

And  the  disciples  of  John  informed  him  of  all  these  things.  And  John, 
caUing  two  of  his  disciples,  sent  to  Jesus,  inquiring,  Art  thou  he  who 
comes,  or  must  we  expect  another  7  And  when  the  men  were  come  to 
him,  they  observed,  John  the  Baptist  has  dispatched  us  to  thee,  with  the 
inquiry.  Art  thou  he  who  comes,  or  must  we  expect  another  ?  Now  in 
that  very  hour,  Jesus  delivered  many  from  their  diseases,  and  scourges, 
and  evil  spirits  ;  and  kindly  imparted  sight  to  many  blind  persons. 
Then  Jesus  said  to  them,  in  reply,  Go  and  relate  to  John  what  you  have 
seen  and  heard ;  that  the  blind  receive  their  sight,  the  lame  walk,  the 
lepers  are  cleansed,  the  deaf  hear,  the  dead  are  raised,  and  the  poor  are 
evangeUzed.  And  happy  is  he,  to  whom  I  shall  not  prove  an  occasion 
of  offence. 

Now,  when  the  messengers  of  John  withdrew,  he  began  to  address 
the  assembly  respecting  John,  What  did  you  depart  to  the  wilderness  to 
behold  1  a  reed  shaken  by  the  wind  l  But  what  did  you  retire  to  see  1 
a  man  clad  in  rich  garments  1  Behold,  those  who  are  splendidly  robed, 
and  live  luxuriously,  are  in  royal  palaces.  But  what  went  you  out  to 
view  ?  a  prophet  1  Indeed,  I  declare  to  you,  and  one  transcending  a 
prophet.     This  is  the  person  of  whom  it  is  written,  Behold,  I  send  my 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  125 

messenger  to  precede  thee,  who  shall  prepare  thy  way  before  thee.  For 
I  affirm  to  you,  that  among  the  human  race,  there  is  not  a  greater  pro- 
phet than  John  the  Baptist ;  but  he  who  is  least  in  the  dominion  of  God 
is  superior  to  him.  And  all  the  people  who  heard  John,  even  the  public 
exactors,  thankfully  acknowledged  the  goodness  of  God,  by  receiving 
baptism  from  John.  But  the  pharisees  and  the  teachers  of  the  law  con- 
travened the  counsel  of  God,  in  reference  to  themselves,  in  not  being 
baptized  by  him. 

To  what  then  shall  I  compare  the  men  of  this  generation,  and  whom 
do  they  resemble  1  They  are  like  children  sitting  in  the  market-place, 
and  thus  calling  to  each  other  ;  We  have  played  to  you  upon  the  pipe, 
but  you  have  not  danced  ;  we  have  sung  mournful  anthems  to  you,  but 
you  have  not  wept.  For  John  the  Baptist  is  come  abstaining  from  bread 
and  from  wine  ;  and  you  affirm.  He  is  a  demoniac.  The  Son  of  Man 
is  come  using  both,  and  you  allege.  Behold,  a  lover  of  banquets  and 
wiae,  a  companion  of  extortioners  and  sinners.  But  wisdom  is  justified 
by  all  her  children. 

Now  one  of  the  pharisees  invited  Jesus  to  eat  with  him.  And  he  en- 
tered the  house  of  the  pharisee,  and  placed  himself  at  the  table.  And 
behold,  a  woman  of  the  city,  who  was  a  sinner,  when  she  learned  that 
he  was  eating  in  the  pharisee's  house,  brought  an  alabaster  box  of  fra- 
grant balsam,  and  as  she  stood  back  at  his  feet  weeping,  she  began  to 
water  his  feet  with  a  shower  of  tears,  and  wiped  them  with  the  tresses 
of  her  hair,  and  affectionately  kissed  his  feet,  and  anointed  them  with 
the  perfume.  But  the  pharisee,  who  had  invited  him,  perceiving  this, 
thus  communed  with  himself;  This  man,  if  he  were  a  prophet,  would 
have  known  who  and  what  description  of  woman  this  is  who  touches 
him ;  for  she  is  a  sinner.  And  Jesus,  in  reply,  said  to  him,  Simon,  I 
have  something  to  communicate  to  you.  And  he  said.  Teacher,  proceed. 
A  certain  creditor,  [said  Jesus],  had  two  debtors ;  one  owed  five  hun- 
dred denarii,  and  the  other  fifty  ;  but  as  they  had  no  resource  for  pay- 
ment, he  generously  released  both  of  them.  Declare,  therefore,  which 
of  them  win  love  him  most.  Simon  observed  in  reply.  He,  I  suppose, 
to  whom  he  relinquished  the  most.  And  Jesus  said  to  him,  you  have 
correctly  decided.  Then  turning  to  the  woman,  he  remarked  to  Simon, 
Do  you  observe  this  woman  1  I  entered  your  house,  and  you  gave  me 
no  water  for  my  feet ;  but  she  has  washed  my  feet  with  tears,  and  wiped 
them  with  the  tresses  of  her  hair.  You  imparted  to  me  no  kiss  ;  but  she, 
from  the  time  of  her  arrival,  has  not  ceased  affectionately  to  kiss  my 
feet.  You  did  not  anoint  my  head  with  oil ;  but  she  has  anointed  my 
feet  with  perfumes.  I  consequently  say  to  you.  Her  numerous  sins  are 
pardoned  ;  therefore,  she  has  loved  me  much  :  whereas,  he  to  whom 
Uttle  is  pardoned,  the  same  loves  me  Uttle.  And  he  declared  to  her. 
Your  sins  are  forgiven.  And  those,  who  were  taking  refreshment  with 
him,  began  to  say  among  themselves,  Who  is  this,  that  even  forgives  sins  1 
But  he  said  to  the  woman,  your  faith  has  saved  you  ;  depart  in  peace. 


126  APOSTOUC  PRODUCTIONS. 

And  it  afterwards  occurred,  that  Jesus  travelled  through  every  city 
and  village  [of  Galilee],  proclaiming  and  elucidating  the  joyful  intelli- 
gence of  the  kingdom  of  God  ;  and  the  twelve  attended  him,  and  certain 
women,  who  had  been  healed  of  evil  spirits  and  infirmities,  particularly 
Mary  of  Magdala,  from  whom  seven  demons  departed,  and  Joanna,  the 
wife  of  Chuza,  a  steward  of  Herod,  and  Susannah,  axid  several  others, 
who  assisted  them  from  their  possessions. 

Now  many  people  being  assembled,  and  having  come  to  him  from 
every  city,  he  spoke  by  a  parable.  The  sower  went  out  to  sow  his 
seed  :  and  as  he  sowed,  some  fell  by  the  highway  ;  and  it  was  trodden 
down,  and  the  birds  of  the  air  devoured  it.  And  some  fell  on  a  rock  ; 
and  springing  up,  it  withered,  for  want  of  moisture.  And  some  fell  in 
the  midst  of  briers  ;  and  the  briers  arose  with  it,  and  overpowered  it. 
And  other  seed  fell  on  a  fertile  soil,  and  flourished,  and  produced  fruit, 
a  hundred  fold.  Having  uttered  these  remarks,  he  exclaimed.  Let  him, 
who  has  ears  to  give  audience,  attend. 

And  his  disciples  thus  interrogated  him.  What  is  this  simile  1  And 
he  said.  You  are  permitted  to  know  the  secrets  of  the  kingdom  of 
God  ;  but  others,  in  resemblances  ;  so  that,  though  they  look,  they  do 
not  perceive,  and  though  they  hear,  they  do  not  understand. 

This,  however,  is  the  import  of  the  comparison.  The  seed  illustrates 
the  word  of  God.  Those  seeds  by  the  way  represent  such  as  hear  ;  but 
afterwards  the  enemy  approaches,  and  removes  the  word  from  their 
hearts,  that  they  might  not  believe  and  be  saved.  And  those  on  the 
rock  indicate  such,  as  listening,  receive  the  word  with  joy  ;  yet,  having 
no  root,  they  believe  only  for  a  short  time,  and  in  the  crisis  of  tempta- 
tion apostatize.  And  those  which  lodged  among  briers,  denote  such  as 
hear,  but  departing,  are  subdued  by  anxieties,  and  wealth,  and  the 
pleasures  of  life,  and  mature  no  fruit.  But  the  seed  on  the  good  ground 
resembles  those,  who,  in  a  faithful  and  sincere  heart,  having  heard  the 
word,  retain  it,  and  produce  fruit  with  perseverance. 

Now,  no  one,  having  lighted  a  lamp,  conceals  it  in  a  vase,  or  puts  it 
under  a  bed  ;  but  places  it  on  a  stand,  that  they  who  enter,  may  see  the 
light.  For  there  is  nothing  veiled,  that  will  not  be  disclosed  ;  nor  sup- 
pressed, that  will  not  be  made  known  and  published.  Beware,  there- 
fore, how  you  hear  ;  for  he  who  possesses  much,  to  him  will  be  impart- 
ed ;  and  he  who  possesses  little,  from  him  even  that  little  will  be  taken. 

His  mother  and  brothers  then  approached  him,  but  could  not  come  to 
him,  in  consequence  of  the  crowd.  And  it  was  thus  announced  to  him. 
Thy  mother  and  thy  brothers  stand  without,  desiring  to  see  thee.  And 
he  replying,  observed  to  them.  My  mother  and  my  brothers  are  those, 
who  hear  the  word  of  God,  and  obey  it. 

And  it  occurred,  on  a  certain  day,  that  he  and  his  disciples  entered  a 
vessel ;  and  he  said  to  them,  let  us  pass  to  the  opposite  shore  of  the 
lake.  And  they  proceeded.  But,  as  they  were  sailing,  he  fell  asleep  ; 
and  a  tempestuous  wind  arose  on  the  lake  ;  and  they  w«re  deluged,  and 


LUKES   HISTORY.  127 

in  imminent  danger.  And  they  came,  and  awakened  him,  saying.  Mas- 
ter, Master,  we  are  perishing.  Then  arising,  he  rebuked  the  wind  and 
the  bUlows ;  and  they  ceased,  and  a  calm  ensued.  And  he  said  to 
them,  where  is  your  reliance  1  But  they  said  to  each  other,  with  fear 
and  astonishment,  How  great  indeed,  is  this  man  !  for  he  commands 
even  the  winds  and  the  waves,  and  they  obey  him.  And  they  sailed  to 
the  country  of  the  Gadarenes,  which  is  opposite  Galilee. 

And  as  he  went  ashore,  a  certain  man  of  the  city  met  him,  who  had 
long  since  been  possessed  by  evil  spirits,  and  wore  no  raiment,  and  had 
no  habitation  but  the  tombs.  And  seeing  Jesus,  he  exclaimed,  and  fell 
prostrate  before  him,  and  said,  with  a  loud  voice.  What  connexion  have 
we.  Son  of  the  Most  High  God  1  I  entreat  thee  not  to  torment  me. 
(For  he  had  commanded  the  polluted  spirit  to  depart  from  the  man ; 
since  it  had  frequently  seized  him  ;  so  that  when  he  was  confined  with 
chains,  and  retained  in  fetters,  he  burst  the  bonds,  and  was  driven  by 
the  fiend  into  the  deserts).  Then  Jesus  thus  inquired  of  him,  What  is 
your  name  ?  And  he  replied,  Legion  ;  because  numerous  demons  had 
entered  him.  And  they  implored  him  that  he  would  not  command  them 
to  depart  into  the  abyss.  Now,  near  the  place,  there  was  a  numerous 
herd  of  swine,  feeding  on  the  mountain  ;  and  the  evil  spirits  importuned 
him,-  that  he  would  permit  them  to  enter  the  swine  ;  and  he  permitted 
them.  The  demons  then  departed  from  the  man,  and  entered  the 
swine  ;  and  the  herd  ran  violently  down  a  precipice  into  the  lake,  and 
were  drowned.  And  those,  who  were  feeding  them,  perceiving  what 
was  done,  fled,  and  announced  it  in  the  city  and  in  the  country.  And 
the  inhabitants  went  out  to  see  what  had  transpired ;  and  came  to 
Jesus,  and  found  the  man  from  whom  the  demons  had  gone,  reclining  at 
the  feet  of  Jesus,  clad,  and  composed  ;  and  they  were  in  dismay.  Then 
those  who  saw  it,  informed  them  how  the  demoniac  was  restored.  And 
all  the  people  of  the  surrounding  country  of  the  Gadarenes,  desired  him 
to  depart  from  them  ;  for  they  were  greatly  appalled.  And  having  en- 
tered the  bark,  he  returned.  Moreover,  the  man,  from  whom  the  fiends 
had  been  expelled,  besought  Jesus  that  he  might  accompany  him.  But 
Jesus  dismissed  him,  saying.  Return  to  your  house,  and  relate  how 
much  God  has  done  for  you.  And  he  passed  through  the  whole  city, 
publishing  what  signal  things  Jesus  had  performed  for  him.  And  it 
occurred,  as  Jesus  returned,  that  the  people  joyfully  received  him  ;  for 
they  were  all  in  expectation  of  him. 

And  in  the  mean  time  a  man  arrived,  whose  name  was  Jairus,  and 
who  was  a  ruler  of  the  synagogue  ;  and  falling  at  the  feet  of  Jesus,  en- 
treated him  to  go  to  his  house  :  for  he  had  an  only  daughter,  about 
twelve  years  of  age,  and  she  was  nearly  expiring. 

And  as  he  went,  the  people  crowded  him.  And  a  woman,  having  had 
a  hemorrhage  for  twelve  years,  and  expended  all  her  property  on  phy- 
sicians, but  could  not  be  healed  by  any,  followed,  and  touched  the  bor- 
der of  his  garment ;  and  immediately,  the  cause  of  her  illnesa  was 


128  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

removed.  And  Jesus  said,  who  touched  me  7  Now,  as  all  denied  it, 
Peter  and  those  who  were  with  him  replied,  Master,  the  multitude 
crowd  around,  and  press  thee,  and  dost  thou  ask.  Who  touched  me  1 
But  Jesus  said.  Some  person  has  touched  me  ;  for  I  am  aware  that 
miraculous  power  has  emanated  from  me.  And  the  woman  perceiving 
that  she  was  not  concealed,  came  trembling,  and  falling  before  him, 
declared  to  him  before  all  the  people,  for  what  cause  she  had  touched 
him,  and  how  she  was  instantly  restored.  Then  he  said  to  her.  Daugh- 
ter, do  not  fear  ;  your  faith  has  preserved  you  ;  depart  in  peace. 

WhUe  Jesus  was  yet  speaking,  one  came  from  the  house  of  the 
director  of  the  synagogue,  saying  to  him,  Your  daughter  is  dead  ;  trouble 
not  the  Teacher.  Bu^^when  Jesus  heard  it,  he  said  to  the  ruler.  Fear 
not ;  only  believe,  and  she  shall  be  recovered.  And  when  he  reached 
the  house,  he  permitted  no  one  to  enter,  except  Peter,  and  James,  and 
John,  and  the  father  and  the  mother  of  the  young  woman.  Now  all 
wept,  and  lamented  her.  But  he  said,  weep  not ;  she  is  not  dead,  but 
sleeps.  And  they  derided  him,  knowing  that  she  was  deceased.  And 
he  caused  them  all  to  retire,  and  took  her  by  the  hand,  and  called,  say- 
ing. Young  woman,  arise.  And  her  spirit  returned,  and  she  immediately 
arose  ;  and  he  commanded  that  food  should  be  given  her.  And  her 
parents  were  greatly  astonished  ;  but  he  charged  them  not  to  commu- 
nicate the  transaction  to  any  person. 

Then  Jesus,  assembling  his  twelve  disciples,  gave  them  power  and 
authority  over  all  demons,  and  to  remove  diseases.  And  he  sent  them 
to  proclaim  the  reign  of  God,  and  "to  heal  the  sick.  And  he  said  to 
them,  take  nothing  for  your  journey,  neither  staves,  nor  repository  for 
provisions,  nor  bread,  nor  money  ;  and  let  none  of  you  have  two  coats. 
And  whatever  house  you  enter,  there  remain,  and  thence  depart.  And 
whoever  shall  not  receive  you,  when  you  withdraw  from  that  city,  shake 
even  the  dust  from  your  feet,  as  a  protestation  against  them.  Thus 
having  departed,  they  travelled  through  the  vUlages,  dispensing  the  good 
message,  and  healing  in  every  place. 

Now  Herod  the  tetrarch  heard  of  all  which  Jesus  had  done  ;  and  he 
was  exceedingly  perplexed,  since  it  was  affirmed  by  some,  that  John 
had  been  raised  from  the  dead  ;  and  by  some,  that  Elijah  had  appear- 
ed ;  and  by  others,  that  one  of  the  ancient  prophets  had  arisen.  But 
Herod  declared,  I  have  beheaded  John ;  but  who  is  this,  of  whom  I 
hear  such  things  1     And  he  desired  to  see  Jesus. 

Further,  the  apostles,  having  returned,  minutely  related  what  they 
had  done.  And  taking  them,  he  retired  privately  to  a  desert  place, 
belonging  to  the  city  of  Bethsaida ;  but  the  people,  apprised  of  it,  pur- 
sued him  ;  and  having  received  them,  he  addressed  them  in  relation  to 
the  kingdom  of  God,  and  healed  those  who  required  healing. 

Now,  when  the  day  began  to  decline,  the  twelve  accosting  him,  said, 
Dismiss  the  multitude,  that  they  may  go  to  the  nearest  villages  and 
plantations,  to  lodge,  and  procure  sustenance ;  for  we  are  here  in  a 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  129 

desolate  situation.  But  he  said  to  them,  Furnish  them  yourselves  with 
food.  And  they  replied,  we  have  no  more  than  five  loaves  and  two 
fishes  ;  unless  we  should  go  and  purchase  food  for  all  this  people.  Now 
they  were  about  five  thousand  men.  Then  he  said  to  his  disciples, 
Make  them  recline  in  parties,  fifty  in  a  section.  And  they  complied, 
and  caused  them  all  to  be  arranged.  Having  therefore  taken  the  five 
loaves  and  the  two  fishes,  he  looked  to  heaven,  and  praised  God,  and 
broke  them,  and  gave  to  the  disciples,  for  distribution  to  the  multitude. 
And  they  did  eat,  and  were  all  satisfied  ;  and  there  were  taken  up,  of 
fragments  that  remained  to  them,  twelve  baskets. 

And  it  happened,  as  he  was  privately  praying,  that  his  disciples  were 
with  him  ;  and  he  thus  questioned  them.  Who  do  people  declare  that  I 
am  ?  And  they  replying,  said,  John  the  Baptist ;  but  others,  Elijah  ; 
and  others,  that  one  of  the  ancient  prophets  has  arisen.  But  he  said  to 
them.  Who  do  you  aflSrm  that  I  am  1  And  Peter  answering,  said.  The 
Messiah  of  God.  But  he  particularly  required,  and  commanded  them, 
not  to  disclose  this  to  any  one  ;  remarking,  that  the  Son  of  Man  must 
greatly  suffer,  and  be  rejected  by  the  elders,  and  chief  priests,  and 
scribes,  and  be  killed ;  and  be  restored  to  life  on  the  third  day. 

Then  he  proclaimed  to  all.  If  any  man  will  come  under  my  guidance, 
let  him  deny  himself,  and  daily  take  his  cross,  and  follow  me.  For, 
whoever  desires  to  preserve  his  life,  he  will  destroy  it ;  but  whoever 
would  lose  his  life  on  my  account,  he  will  save  it.  For  how  is  a  man 
profited,  if  he  should  gain  the  whole  world,  and  lose  himself,  or  incur 
condemnation.  For  he  who  shall  "be  ashamed  of  me,  and  of  my  in- 
structions, of  him  the  Son  of  Man  will  be  ashamed,  when  he  shall  come 
in  his  own  glory,  and  in  that  of  his  Father,  and  of  the  holy  Messengers. 
But  I  indeed,  assure  you,  that  there  are  some  standing  here,  who  will 
not  taste  death,  till  they  behold  the  empire  of  God. 

And  it  occurred,  about  eight  days  after  these  remarks,  that  he  took 
Peter  and  John,  and  James,  and  ascended  a  mountain  to  pray.  And  it 
happened,  as  he  prayed,  that  the  form  of  his  countenance  was  changed, 
and  his  raiment  became  white  and  dazzling.  And  behold,  two  men  con- 
versed with  him,  and  these  were  Moses  and  Ehjah.  They,  appearing 
in  resplendence,  announced  his  demise,  which  he  was  soon  to  accom- 
plish at  Jerusalem.  Now  Peter,  and  those  that  were  with  him,  were 
overpowered  with  sleep  ;  but  having  awakened,  they  beheld  his  glory, 
and  the  two  men  who  stood  with  him.  And  it  occurred,  that  as  they 
were  departing  from  him,  Peter  said  to  Jesus,  Master,  it  is  well  that  we 
remain  here  ;  therefore,  let  us  make  three  tents,  one  for  thee,  and  one 
for  Moses,  and  one  for  Ehjah  ;  not  conscious  what  be  uttered.  But  as 
he  was  thus  speaking,  a  cloud  approached,  and  overshadowed  them  ; 
and  as  those  men  entered  the  cloud,  the  disciples  were  dismayed  :  and 
a  voice  proceeded  from  the  cloud,  saying,  This  is  my  beloved  Son,  hear 
him.  And  when  the  voice  ceased,  Jesus  was  found  alone.  And  they 
17 


130  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

were  silent,  and  disclosed  to  no  one,  in  those  days,  any  of  the  things, 
which  they  had  seen. 

Now  it  happened,  on  the  succeeding  day,  as  they  descended  from  the 
mountain,  that  a  great  multitude  met  him.  And,  behold,  a  man  from 
the  assembly  exclaimed,  saying.  Teacher,  I  implore  thee  favorably  to 
regard  this  my  son ;  for  he  is  my  only  child.  And  behold,  a  spirit 
seizes  him,  and  he  suddenly  cries  out ;  and  it  so  convulses  him,  that  he 
foams  ;  and  after  bruising  him,  with  difficulty  departs  from  him.  And 
I  entreated  thy  disciples  to  expel  the  demon  ;  but  they  could  not.  And 
Jesus  in  return  alleged,  O  faithless  and  perverse  race  of  people,  how 
long  shall  I  attend  you,  and  endure  you  1  Bring  your  son  here.  And 
as  he  was  coming,  the  demon  prostrated  and  lacerated  him.  And  Jesus 
rebuked  the  defiled  spirit,  and  healed  the  child,  and  restored  him  to  his 
father.     And  they  were  all  surprised  at  the  majestic  power  of  God. 

But  while  every  one  was  astonished  at  all  things  which  Jesus  had 
performed,  he  said  to  his  disciples,  Attentively  receive  these  words  ;  The 
Son  of  Man  will,  indeed,  be  surrendered  to  the  hands  of  men.  They  did 
not,  however,  understand  this  declaration,  and  it  was  so  concealed  from 
them,  that  they  could  not  comprehend  it ;  and  they  feared  to  interrogate 
him  relative  to  that  event. 

A  controversy  then  arose  among  them,  which  of  them  should  be  the 
greatest.  But  Jesus,  perceiving  the  speculation  of  their  heart,  took  up 
a  little  child,  and  placed  him  near  himself,  and  said  to  them.  Whoever 
shall  receive  this  child,  in  my  name,  he  receives  me  ;  and  whoever  shall 
receive  me,  he  receives  him  who  sent  me  ;  for  he,  who  is  least  among 
you  all,  will  be  greatest. 

Then  John,  in  continuation,  remarked.  Master,  we  saw  one  expel- 
Ung  demons  in  thy  name  ;  and  we  interdicted  him,  because  he  does 
not  associate  with  us.  And  Jesus  said  to  him.  Do  not  prohibit  him  ;  for 
he  who  is  not  opposed  to  us,  is  in  our  favor. 

Now  it  occurred,  when  the  period  of  his  retirement  expired,  that  he 
deliberately  determined  to  repair  to  Jerusalem,  and  sent  messengers  be- 
fore him,  who,  in  their  progress,  entered  a  village  of  the  Samaritans,  to 
prepare  for  him.  But  they  would  not  receive  him,  because  his  face  was 
directed  towards  Jerusalem.  And  when  his  disciples,  James  and  John, 
saw  it,  they  said,  Master,  shall  we  invoke  fire  to  descend  from  heaven, 
and  consume  them,  even  as  Elijah  did  ?  But  he  turned,  reproved  them, 
and  declared,  You  are  not  apprised  of  what  description  of  spirit  you  are. 
And  they  proceeded  to  another  village. 

And  it  happened,  as  they  passed  along  the  way,  that  some  one  said  to 
him,  Master,  I  will  follow  thee,  wherever  thou  goest.  And  Jesus  said  to 
him,  The  foxes  have  caverns,  and  the  birds  of  the  air  have  places  of 
rest ;  but  the  Son  of  Man  has  no  place  to  lay  his  head. 

Then  he  said  to  another,  follow  me.  But  he  replied.  Sir,  permit  me 
first  to  go  and  bury  my  father.  And  Jesus  said  to  him.  Leave  the  dead 
to  bury  their  own  dead  ;  but  go  thou  and  pubhsh  the  reign  of  God. 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  131 

Then  another  also  said,  Sir,  I  will  follow  thee  ;  but  permit  me  first  to 
arrange  my  domestic  affairs.  But  Jesus  declared  to  him,  No  one,  that 
looks  back,  after  putting  his  hand  to  the  plough,  is  properly  disposed 
towards  the  dominion  of  God. 

Now,  after  this,  the  Lord  appointed  also  seventy  others,  and  sent 
them  before  him,  in  pairs,  to  every  city  and  place,  where  he  intended  to 
proceed.  He  accordingly  announced  to  them.  The  harvest  is  indeed 
abundant,  but  the  reapers  are  few ;  pray,  therefore,  the  Lord  of  the 
harvest,  that  he  would  powerfully  hasten  laborers  to  reap  it.  Advance  ; 
recollect,  I  send  you  out  as  lambs  among  wolves.  Do  not  carry  purse, 
or  sack,  or  shoes  ;  and  salute  no  one  by  the  way.  Now,  whatever  house 
you  enter,  first  proclaim.  Peace  be  to  this  house.  And  if  a  son  of  peace 
be  there,  your  peace  will  rest  on  it ;  if  not,  it  wUl  revert  to  yourselves. 
But  remain  in  the  same  mansion,  eating  and  drinking  what  they  furnish ; 
for  the  workman  is  worthy  of  his  compensation.  Remove  not  from 
house  to  house.  And  when  you  are  received  in  any  city,  which  you 
enter,  eat  such  provisions  as  are  placed  before  you.  And  heal  the  sick 
therein,  and  say  to  the  people,  The  empire  of  God  has  approached  you. 
But,  whatever  city  you  enter,  if  they  do  not  receive  you,  go  out  into  the 
streets  of  it,  and  say.  The  dust  of  your  city,  that  adheres  to  us,  we  even 
wipe  off  against  you.  Be  assured,  however,  of  this,  that  the  reign  of 
God  has  arrived.  But,  I  declare  to  you,  that  in  that  day,  it  will  be 
more  tolerable  for  Sodom,  than  for  that  city.  Alas  for  thee,  Chorazin  ! 
alas  for  thee  Bethsaida  !  for  if  the  miracles,  which  have  been  achieved 
in  you,  had  been  wrought  in  Tyre  and  Sidon,  they  would  long  since 
have  reformed,  sitting  in  sackcloth  and  ashes.  But,  it  will  be  more 
tolerable  for  Tyre  and  Sidon,  in  the  retribution,  than  for  you.  And 
thou,  Capernaum,  who  art  exalted  to  heaven,  wilt  be  thrust  down  to 
hades.  He  who  hears  you,  hears  me  ;  and  he  who  disdains  you,  dis- 
dains me  ;  and  he  who  rejects  me,  rejects  him  who  sent  me. 

Then  the  seventy  returned  with  joy,  saying.  Master,  the  demons  are 
even  subjected  to  us  through  thy  name.  And  he  alleged  to  them,  I  saw 
the  adversary  fall  like  lightning  from  heaven.  Observe,  I  invest  you 
with  power  to  tread  on  serpents  and  scorpions,  and  on  all  the  dominion 
of  the  enemy  ;  and  nothing  shall  in  any  respect  injure  you.  Yet  rejoice 
not  80  much  in  this,  that  the  spirits  are  subdued  to  you ;  but  rejoice 
rather,  that  your  names  are  registered  in  heaven. 

In  that  hour,  Jesus  rejoiced  exceedingly,  in  the  Holy  Spirit,  and  de- 
clared, I  fully  coincide  with  thee,  O  Father,  Lord  of  heaven  and  earth, 
because,  having  veiled  these  things  from  the  sage  and  the  learned,  thou 
hast  disclosed  them  to  infants  :  assuredly,  O  Father,  since  thou  hast 
thus  deemed  it  appropriate.  All  things  are  imparted  to  me  by  my 
Father ;  and  no  one  knows  who  the  Son  is,  except  the  Father  ;  nor  who 
the  Father  is,  except  the  Son,  and  he  to  whom  the  Son  may  be  disposed 
to  reveal  him. 


13a  APOSTOLIC   PRODUCTIONS. 

And  turning  to  the  disciples,  he  privately  declared,  Happy  are  the 
eyes  which  behold  what  you  perceive  :  for  I  assure  you,  that  many 
prophets  and  kings  were  desirous  to  have  seen  the  things  which  you 
see,  but  did  not  see  them  ;  and  to  have  heard  the  things  which  you 
hear,  but  did  not  hear  them. 

Then  a  certain  interpreter  of  the  law  arose  to  try  him,  and  said, 
Teacher,  what  must  I  do  that  I  may  inherit  eternal  hfe  1  And  Jesus 
said  to  him.  What  is  the  reply  of  the  law  1  what  do  you  there  read  ? 
And  he  observed,  in  answer.  Thou  shalt  love  the  Lord  thy  God  with  all 
thy  heart,  and  with  thy  whole  life,  and  with  all  thy  strength,  and  with 
thy  entire  understanding;  and  thy  neighbor  as  thyself.  Then  Jesus 
remarked  to  him,.  You  have  correctly  rephed.  Do  this,  and  you  shall 
live.  But  he,  wishing  to  appear  irreproachable,  said  to  Jesus,  Who  is 
my  neighbour  1  And  Jesus,  taking  up  his  question,  remarked  ;  A  cer- 
tain man  of  Jerusalem,  on  his  way  to  Jericho,  fell  among  robbers,  who, 
having  stripped  and  wounded  him,  departed,  leaving  him  half  dead. 
Now  a  certain  priest  accidentally  travelled  on  that  road,  and  beholding 
him,  passed  on  the  opposite  side.  And  in  like  manner,  a  Levite,  arriv- 
ing near  the  place,  though  he  approached  and  looked,  passed  on  the 
opposite  side.  But  a  certain  Samaritan,  as  he  was  travelling,  came 
where  he  was,  and  seeing  him,  was  moved  with  tender  compassion,  and 
went  to  him,  and  having  poured  wine  and  oil  into  his  wounds,  bound 
them  up,  and  placed  him  on  his  own  beast,  and  brought  him  to  an  inn, 
and  took  care  of  him.  And  as  he  departed,  on  the  next  morning,  taking 
out  two  denarii,  he  gave  them  to  the  host,  and  said  to  him.  Attend  par- 
ticularly to  him,  and  whatever  more  you  shall  expend,  I  will  refund  to 
you,  on  my  return.  Which,  therefore,  of  these  three  do  you  think  was 
friend  to  him  who  feU  among  the  robbers  1  And  the  teacher  of  the  law 
said.  The  one  who  manifested  pity  towards  him.  Jesus  then  said  to 
him.  Go  thou,  and  do  likewise. 

Moreover,  it  happened,  as  they  were  proceeding,  that  he  entered  a 
particular  village,  and  a  certain  woman,  by  the  name  of  Martha,  enter- 
tained him  at  her  house.  And  she  had  a  sister,  called  Mary,' who  was 
sitting  at  the  feet  of  Jesus,  and  listening  to  his  discourse.  But  Martha 
was  perplexed  about  much  preparation  ;  and  approaching,  said  to  him. 
Master,  dost  thou  not  care,  that  my  sister  has  left  me  to  serve  alone  ■? 
Command  her,  therefore,  to  assist  me.  But  Jesus  remarked  to  her,  in 
reply,  Martha,  Martha,  you  are  distracted  and  disturbed  about  many 
provisions  ;  when  but  one  kind  is  requisite.  Now,  Mary  has  preferred 
the  good  privilege,  of  which  she  shall  not  be  deprived. 

And  it  occurred,  as  Jesus  was  praying  in  a  certain  place,  that  after 
he  had  concluded,  one  of  his  disciples  said  to  him,  Master,  teach  us 
to  pray,  even  as  John  taught  his  disciples.  And  he  observed  to  them, 
When  you  supplicate,  say.  Our  Father,  who  art  in  heaven  ;  may  thy 
name  be  reverenced ;  may  thy  dominion  come  ;  may  thy  will  be  accom- 


LUKE'S    HISTORY.  133 

plished  on  earth,  even  as  in  heaven.  Daily  grant  us  our  essential  sus- 
tenance ;  and  forgive  us  our  trespasses,  for  even  we  forgive  every  one, 
who  injures  us  ;  and  leave  us  not  to  trial ;  but  preserve  us  from  evil. 

And  he  said  to  them.  Should  one  of  you  have  a  friend,  and  go  to  him 
at  midnight,  and  say  to  him.  Friend,  lend  me  three  loaves ;  for  a  friend 
of  mine  has  come  to  me  out  of  liis  way,  and  I  have  nothing  to  offer  him ; 
and  he  from  within  should  answer  and  say.  Do  not  molest  me;  the  door 
is  now  closed,  and  I  and  my  children  are  in  bed  ;  I  cannot  rise  to  give 
you:  I  assure  you,  [if  he  persevere  in  knocking],  though  he  would  not 
rise  and  supply  him,  because  he  is  his  friend,  yet,  in  consequence  of  his 
importunity,  he  will  rise  and  give  him  as  many  as  he  wants.  There- 
fore, I  say  to  you,  ask,  and  it  will  be  imparted  to  you  ;  seek,  and  you 
will  find ;  knock,  and  the  door  will  be  opened  to  you.  For  every  one 
who  asks,  obtains ;  and  he  who  seeks,  finds ;  and  to  him  who  knocks,  it 
will  be  opened.  Now  what  father  is  there  among  you,  who,  when  his 
son  solicits  bread,  would  give  him  a  stone  1  or  when  he  desires  a  fish, 
would,  as  a  substitute,  give  him  a  serpent  1  or  when  he  requests  an  egg, 
would  give  him  a  scorpion  1  If  you,  therefore,  bad  as  you  are,  can 
impart  good  things  to  your  children,  how  much  more  will  the  celestial 
Father  bestow  the  Holy  Spirit  on  those  who  ask  him. 

Besides,  he  was  expelling  a  fiend  ;  and  the  subject  of  it  was  dumb. 
And  it  occurred,  as  the  fiend  departed,  that  the  dumb  spoke ;  and  the 
people  were  astonished.  But  some  of  them  declared.  He  expels  these 
demons  through  Beelzebul,  the  prince  of  the  demons.  (And  others, 
trying  him,  desired  of  him  a  sign  from  heaven).  But  he,  knowing  their 
devices,  said  to  them.  Every  kingdom  divided  by  internal  contention,  is 
devastated ;  and  a  house  arrayed  against  a  house  must  fall.  If  the 
adversary,  then,  be  thus  distracted  by  division,  how  can  his  kingdom 
endure?  since  you  affirm,  that  I  cast  out  these  demons  through  Beelze- 
bul. But  if  I  eject  these  demons  through  Beelzebul,  by  whom  do  your 
disciples  eject  them  ?  They,  therefore,  will  condemn  you.  But  if  I 
expel  these  evil  spirits  by  the  finger  of  God,  then  indeed,  the  empire  of 
God  has  reached  you.  WhUe  the  strong  one,  completely  armed,  guards 
his  palace,  his  goods  are  in  safety:  but  when  one,  more  powerful  than 
he,  invades  and  subdues  him,  he  seizes  his  panoply,  in  which  he  con- 
fided, and  distributes  his  trophies.  He,  who  is  not  with  me,  is  against 
me ;  and  he,  who  collects  not  with  me,  disperses. 

The  impure  spirit,  when  he  has  departed  from  a  man,  stalks  through 
arid  regions,  seeking  rest ;  but,  not  obtaining  it,  he  says,  I  wiU  return 
to  my  house,  whence  I  proceeded.  And  arriving,  he  finds  it  swept  and 
adorned.  He  then  goes,  and  enlists  seven  other  spirits  more  iniquitous 
than  himself ;  and  they  entering,  reside  there;  and  the  last  situation  of 
that  man  becomes  worse  than  the  first. 

Now  it  happened,  as  he  uttered  these  remarks,  that  a  certain  woman, 
raising  her  voice  amid  the  crowd,  proclaimed  to  him,  Happy  is  thy 
mother,   and   she,   by   whom  thou   wast  cherished !    But  he  replied. 


134  APOSTOLIC    PRODUCTIONS. 

Indeed,   happy   rather   are  those,   who   hear  the   word  of  God,  and 
keep  it ! 

And  when  the  people  were  assembled  in  great  crowds,  he  began  to 
say,  This  is  an  evil  race  of  men.  They  demand  a  sign ;  but  no  sign 
shall  be  given  them,  except  the  sign  of  Jonah.  For  as  Jonah  was  a 
token  to  the  Ninevites,  thus  also,  will  the  Son  of  man  be,  to  this  gen- 
eration. A  queen  of  the  South  will  arise  in  the  place  of  judgment  with 
the  men  of  this  race,  and  condemn  them  ;  for  she  came  from  the 
extremities  of  the  earth  to  hear  the  wisdom  of  Solomon  ;  and  behold, 
one  greater  than  Solomon  is  here.  The  Ninevites  wiU  stand  up  in 
judgment  with  this  race  of  people,  and  condemn  them,  for  they  reformed 
at  the  proclamation  of  Jonah,  and  behold,  one  greater  than  Jonah  is  here. 

Moreover,  no  one,  having  lighted  a  lamp,  places  it  in  concealment, 
or  under  a  receptacle,  but  on  a  stand,  that  those  who  enter  may  see  the 
light.  The  eye  is  the  lamp  of  the  body;  when,  therefore,  your  eye  is 
clear,  your  entire  body  is  rendered  lucid  ;  but  when  it  is  diseased,  your 
body  is,  indeed,  obscured.  Beware,  therefore,  lest  the  light,  which  is 
in  you,  become  darkness.  Besides,  if  your  whole  body  be  enlightened, 
having  no  part  dark,  the  effect  will  resemble  that  of  a  lamp,  which  illu- 
mines you  by  its  lustre. 

Further,  while  he  was  speaking,  a  certain  pharisee  invited  him  to 
dine  with  him  ;  and  he  entered,  and  sat  at  the  table.  And  when  the 
pharisee  perceived  that  he  did  not  dip  his  hands  in  water  before  dinner, 
he  was  surprised.  But  the  Lord  observed  to  him,  As  for  you  pharisees, 
you  cleanse  the  external  part  of  the  cup,  and  of  the  dish  ;  while  your 
internal  part  is  fiill  of  rapacity  and  malevolence.  Thoughtless  beings  ! 
did  not  he,  who  formed  the  exterior,  create  also  the  interior  1  Only  dis- 
pense arms  from  your  possessions  ;  and  behold,  all  things  will  be  pure 
to  you. 

But  alas  for  you,  pharisees  !  because  you  pay  the  tithe  of  mint,  and 
rue,  and  every  kind  of  herb,  but  disregard  justice  and  the  love  of  God. 
You  ought  to  have  performed  these  things,  and  not  to  have  omitted  the 
others. 

Alas  for  you,  pharisees  !  for  you  love  the  most  conspicuous  seats  in 
the  synagogues,  and  salutations  in  the  public  places. 

Alas  for  you,  scribes  and  pharisees,  hypocrites  !  for  you  resemble 
concealed  tombs,  over  which  men  unconsciously  walk. 

Then  one  of  the  interpreters  of  the  law  repljdng,  said  to  him.  Teacher, 
in  these  observations,  thou  dost  even  reproachfully  implicate  us.  But 
he  declared,  Alas  for  you  also,  interpreters  of  the  law !  because  you 
impose  insupportable  burdens  on  men,  but  you  yourselves  will  not  touch 
the  burdens  with  one  of  your  fingers. 

Alas  for  you !  since  you  build  the  tombs  of  the  prophets,  and  your 
fathers  killed  them.  You  assuredly  acknowledge  and  approve  the  con- 
duct of  your  fathers  ;  for  they,  indeed,  destroyed  the  prophets,  and  you 
erect  their  sepulchres. 


LUKE'S    HISTORY.  135 

And  in  consequence  of  this,  the  wisdom  of  God  has  affirmed,  I  will 
send  to  them  prophets  and  apostles,  and  some  of  them  they  will  banish, 
and  others  they  will  lull ;  so  that  the  blood  of  all  the  prophets,  which 
has  been  shed  from  the  formation  of  the  world,  may  be  requited  to  this 
race  of  men  ;  from  the  blood  of  Abel  to  the  blood  of  Zechariah,  who 
was  slain  between  the  altar  and  the  temple ;  indeed,  I  assure  you,  it 
shall  be  requited  to  this  race  of  people. 

Alas  for  you,  interpreters  of  the  law !  for  you  have  taken  away  the 
key  of  knowledge:  you  have  not  entered  yourselves,  and  those  who 
would  have  entered,  you  have  obstructed. 

But  while  he  thus  addressed  them,  the  scribes  and  pharisees  began 
to  be  enraged,  and  endeavoured  to  incite  him  to  speak  unadvisedly  on 
other  subjects  ;  insidiously  watching  him,  and  attempting  to  elicit  some 
expression,  that  they  might  accuse  him. 

In  the  mean  time,  as  myriads  of  people  were  assembled,  so  that  they 
trampled  on  each  other,  Jesus  proceeded  to  say  to  his  disciples.  Above 
all  things,  guard  yourselves  against  the  leaven  of  the  pharisees,  which  is 
hypocrisy.  For  there  is  nothing  secreted,  that  will  not  be  unveiled ;  nor 
suppressed,  that  will  not  be  published  ;  so  that,  whatever  you  have  com- 
municated in  darkness,  that  will  be  heard  in  the  light ;  and  what  you 
have  whispered  in  closets,  that  will  be  proclaimed  on  the  house-tops. 
But  I  charge  you,  my  friends,  fear  not  those  who  kill  the  body,  and  can 
ultimately  accomplish  no  more :  but  I  will  direct  you  whom  you  should 
fear ;  fear  him,  who,  after  having  killed,  has  power  to  cast  into  gehen- 
na :  indeed,  I  say  to  you,  fear  him.  Are  not  five  sparrows  sold  for  two 
assarii  1  yet  not  one  of  them  is  forgotten  before  God.  But  even  the 
very  hairs  of  your  head  are  all  numbered.  Fear  not,  therefore ;  you 
are  more  valuable  than  many  sparrows.  I  further  state  to  you.  If  any 
one  shall  acknowledge  me  before  men,  the  Son  of  Man  will  acknow- 
ledge him  before  the  angels  of  God  :  but  he,  who  renounces  me  in  the 
presence  of  men,  will  be  renounced  in  the  presence  of  the  angels  of 
God.  And  every  one  who  shall  inveigh  against  the  Son  of  Man,  it  may 
be  forgiven  him  ;  but  as  for  him,  who  traduces  the  Holy  Spirit,  it  will 
not  be  forgiven.  Now,  when  they  arraign  you  before  the  synagogues, 
and  the  magistrates,  and  the  rulers,  do  not  solicitously  contemplate  how, 
or  what  you  must  oppose  in  defence,  or  what  you  must  allege ;  for  the 
Holy  Spirit  will  instruct  you,  in  that  hour,  what  ought  to  be  said. 

Then  one  of  the  crowd  said  to  him,  Teacher,  direct  my  brother  to 
divide  the  inheritance  with  me.  But  Jesus  replied  to  him,  Man,  who 
constituted  me  a  judge  or  an  arbiter  over  you  1  And  he  said  to  them. 
See  that  you  beware  of  aU  inordinate  desires  ;  since  a  man's  life  rests 
not  on  the  superfluities  which  he  possesses. 

And  he  gave  them  this  example :  The  lands  of  a  certain  rich  man 
produced  luxuriantly.  And  he  thus  reasoned  with  himself.  What  must 
I  do  7  for  I  have  no  place  to  deposit  my  harvests.  And  he  added,  I  will 
do  this ;   I  will  demolish  my  storehouses,  and  build  greater  ;   and  I  will 


136  APOSTOLIC    PRODUCTIONS. 

there  gather  all  my  products  and  my  goods.  And  my  life  I  will  thus 
address,  Life!  thou  hast  multiplied  acquisitions  deposited  for  many 
years;  repose  thyself,  eat,  drink,  and  rejoice !  But  God  announced  to 
him.  Thoughtless  being !  this  very  night  thy  life  shall  be  demanded  of 
thee !  who  then  will  possess  what  thou  hast  provided  t  TKus  is  he,  who 
accumulates  treasure  to  himself,  and  is  not  rich  with  respect  to  God. 
And  he  subjoined  to  his  disciples,  I  therefore  charge  you,  be  not  anx- 
iously carefiil  in  relation  to  your  life,  what  you  shall  eat ;  nor  for  the 
body,  what  you  shall  wear.  The  life  is  more  than  food,  and  the  body  than 
raiment.  Observe  the  ravens,  that  they  neither  sow  nor  reap ;  have  no 
storehouse,  nor  granary;  yet  God  feeds  them.  How  far  are  you  pre- 
ferable to  the  birds  1  And  which  of  you,  by  solicitude,  can  add  a  solitary 
moment  to  his  years  t  If  then,  you  cannot  effect  the  least  object,  why 
are  you  anxious  for  the  rest  1  Contemplate  the  lilies,  how  they  flourish  ; 
they  toil  not ;  they  spin  not ;  and  yet  I  declare  to  you,  that  even  Solo- 
mon, in  all  his  magnificence,  was  not  arrayed  like  one  of  these.  And  if 
God  so  clothe  the  vegetation,  which  is  to-day  in  the  field,  and  to-morrow 
is  thrown  into  the  furnace  ;  how  much  more  will  he  array  you,  O  ye 
distrustful  1  Be  not  therefore,  inquisitive,  what  you  shall  eat,  or  what 
you  shall  drink  ;  nor  be  in  unquiet  suspense.  For  the  nations  of  the 
world  eagerly  covet  all  these  objects  ;  whereas,  your  Father  knows  that 
you  want  them.  Seek  rather  the  kingdom  of  God ;  and  all  these  things 
shall  be  super-added  to  you.  Fear  not,  my  little  flock ;  for  it  has  pleased 
your  Father  to  give  you  the  kingdom.  Dispose  of  your  possessions,  and 
impart  in  beneficence  ;  provide  for  yourselves  purses  that  do  not  decay, 
a  perpetual  treasure  in  the  heavens,  where  no  thief  approaches,  nor  moth 
destroys.     For  where  your  treasure  is,  there  your  heart  will  also  be. 

Let  your  loins  be  girded,  and  your  lamps  burning  ;  and  yourselves 
like  men,  who  await  the  return  of  their  master  from  the  nuptial  feast ; 
that  when  he  comes  and  knocks,  they  may  immediately  open  to  him. 
Happy  are  those  servants,  whom,  when  their  master  arrives,  he  shall 
find  vigilant !  I  assure  you,  that  he  will  gird  himself,  and  place  them 
at  the  table,  and  come  forth  and  serve  them.  And  if  he  should  come 
in  the  second  watch,  or  arrive  in  the  third  watch,  and  thus  find  them, 
happy  are  those  servants  !  now  you  are  aware  of  this,  that  if  the  pro- 
prietor of  the  house  had  been  apprised,  at  what  hour  the  thief  would 
come,  he  would  have  watched,  and  not  permitted  his  mansion  to  be  in- 
vaded. Therefore,  be  ye  also  prepared  ;  for  at  such  a  period  as  you 
little  apprehend,  the  Son  of  Man  will  come. 

Peter  then  said  to  him.  Master,  dost  thou  apply  this  parable  to  us,  or 
even  to  all  1  And  the  Lord  said.  Who,  indeed,  is  that  faithfiil  and  pru- 
dent steward,  whom  his  master  shall  place  over  the  servants  of  his  fam- 
ily, to  impart  the  appropriate  allowance  of  food,  in  its  season  ?  Happy 
is  that  servant,  whom  his  master,  at  his  arrival,  shall  find  thus  employed ! 
I  aver  to  you,  in  truth,  that  he  will  appoint  him  to  superintend  his  entire 
estate.     If,  however,  that  servant  should  aflirm  in  his  heart,  My  master 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  137 

defers  his  return  ;  and  should  begin  to  beat  the  man-servants  and  the 
maidens,  and  to  feast,  and  carouse,  and  become  inebriated ;  the  master 
of  that  servant  will  come  on  a  day  when  he  does  not  expect  him,  and  at 
an  hour  of  which  he  is  not  aware,  and  having  discarded  him,  wUl  also 
assign  his  portion  with  the  unfaithful.  And  that  servant,  who  knew  the 
will  of  his  master,  and  was  not  prepared,  nor  conducted  in  conformity 
to  his  will,  will  be  severely  scourged.  But  he  who  did  not  know  it, 
though  he  committed  oifences  deserving  correction,  will  be  less  severely 
chastised.  For  much  will  be  required  from  every  one,  to  whom  much 
is  imparted  ;  and  the  more  a  man  is  entrusted  with,  the  more  will  be 
exacted  from  him. 

I  am  come  to  send  fire  to  this  land  ;  and  what  do  I  wish,  —  that  it 
were  already  kindled  1  I  have,  indeed,  a  baptism  to  be  received  ;  and 
how  am  I  constrained  ;  till  it  be  consummated  !  Do  you  imagine,  that 
I  have  arrived  to  dispense  peace  in  the  land  1  I  announce  to  you,  By 
no  means  ;  but  on  the  contrary,  division  :  for  from  this  era,  five  in  one 
family  will  be  at  variance  ;  three  against  two,  and  two  against  three. 
The  father  will  conflict  with  the  son,  and  the  son  with  the  father  ;  the 
mother  with  the  daughter,  and  the  daughter  with  the  mother ;  the 
mother-in-law  with  her  son's  wife,  and  the  daughter-in-law  with  her 
husband's  mother. 

And  he  further  announced  to  the  people.  When  you  perceive  a  cloud 
rising  from  the  west,  you  instantly  affirm,  that  a  heavy  shower  approach- 
es ;  and  it  occurs.  And  when  the  south  wind  blows,  you  proclaim,  that 
there  will  be  sultry  heat ;  and  it  happens.  Dissemblers,  you  can  scan 
the  face  of  the  earth  and  of  the  firmament !  but  how  is  it,  that  you  do 
not  comprehend  this  era  ?  And  indeed,  why  do  you  not  personally  dis- 
cern what  is  correct  1 

Besides,  as  thou  proceedest  with  thy  legal  opponent  to  the  magistrate, 
be  assiduous,  in  the  way,  to  be  amicably  discharged  from  him  ;  lest  he 
forcibly  convey  you  to  the  judge,  and  the  judge  deliver  you  to  the  oflicer, 
and  the  officer  commit  you  to  prison.  I  assure  you,  that  you  will  not 
be  released,  till  you  have  paid  the  entire  debt. 

Moreover,  some  who  were  present  at  that  period,  informed  Jesus  re- 
specting the  Galileans,  whose  blood  Pilate  had  mingled  with  that  of  their 
sacrifices.  And  Jesus,  in  reply,  said  to  them.  Do  you  presume  that  those 
Galileans  were  the  greatest  transgressors  in  all  Galilee,  because  they 
incurred  such  sufierings  ?  I  tell  you.  No  ;  but,  unless  you  reform,  you 
will  all  liliewise  perish.  Or,  do  you  imagine  that  those  eighteen,  on 
whom  the  tower  in  Siloam  fell,  and  destroyed  them,  were  more  aggra- 
vated offenders  than  all  men  who  resided  in  Jerusalem  1  I  declare  to 
you.  By  no  means  ;  but,  unless  you  reform,  you  will  all  likewise  perish. 

And  he  communicated  this  parable  ;    an  individual  had   a  fig-tree 

planted  in  his  vineyard  ;  and  he  came  seeking  fruit  on  it,  but  he  found 

none.     And  he  said  to  the  vine-dresser,  Behold,  this  is  the  third  year 

that  I  have  come  to  look  for  fruit  on  this  fig-tree,  yet  have  obtained 

18 


138  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

none  ;  cut  it  down ;  why  should  it  even  impoverish  the  ground  ?  But 
he  answering,  said  to  him,  Sir,  let  it  also  remain  this  year,  till  I  dig 
around  and  enrich  it ;  perhaps  it  may  bear  fruit ;  but  if  not,  thou  canst, 
subsequently,  cut  it  down. 

Further,  he  was  teaching  in  one  of  the  synagogues  on  the  sabbath. 
And  behold,  there  was  a  woman,  who  had  possessed  a  spirit  of  weakness 
for  eighteen  years,  and  was  so  bowed  down,  that  she  was  entirely  unable 
to  stand  erect.  And  Jesus,  beholding  her,  called,  and  said  to  her,  Wo- 
man, you  are  released  from  your  infirmity.  And  he  placed  his  hands 
on  her ;  and  she  was  instantly  rendered  upright,  and  praised  God.  But 
the  ruler  of  the  synagogue,  indignantly  excited,  because  Jesus  had  healed 
on  the  sabbath,  replied,  and  declared  to  the  people,  There  are  six  days 
in  which  labor  should  be  performed  ;  on  these,  therefore,  come  and  be 
healed,  and  not  on  the  sabbath.  The  Lord  then  answered  him,  and  said. 
Dissemblers !  does  not  every  one  of  you,  on  the  sabbath,  loose  his  ox  or 
his  ass  from  the  stall,  and  lead  him  to  a  watering-place  ?  And  was  it 
not  proper,  that  this  woman,  who  is  a  daughter  of  Abraham,  whom  the 
adversary  has  indeed  bound,  these  eighteen  years,  should  be  liberated 
from  this  bond,  on  the  sabbath-day  1  And  as  he  made  these  remarks, 
all  his  opposers  were  abashed  ;  and  the  whole  multitude  rejoiced  at  all 
the  glorious  things,  that  were  done  by  him. 

Then  he  subjoined ;  What  does  the  kingdom  of  God  resemble  1  and 
to  what  shall  I  compare  it  ?  It  is  like  a  grain  of  mustard-seed,  which  a 
man  took  and  planted  in  his  garden ;  and  it  flourished,  and  became  a 
great  tree,  so  that  the  birds  of  the  air  lodged  in  its  branches. 

And  he  further  observed.  To  what  shall  I  assimilate  the  dominion  of 
God  ■?  It  resembles  leaven,  which  a  woman  took  and  deposited  in  three 
measures  of  meal,  till  the  whole  fermented. 

And  he  passed  through  the  cities  and  villages,  instructing,  and  travel- 
ing towards  Jerusalem.  And  a  certain  person  said  to  him.  Master,  will 
but  few  be  saved  ?  and  Jesus  replied  to  them,  Earnestly  endeavor  to 
pass  through  the  narrow  gate  ;  for  I  declare  to  you,  that  many  will  seek 
to  enter,  but  will  not  be  able.  As  soon  as  the  master  of  the  family  shall 
rise  and  close  the  door,  and  you  shall  begin  to  stand  without,  and  to 
knock  at  the  door,  saying.  Master,  Master,  open  to  us  ;  and  he  shall 
answer  and  allege  to  you,  I  do  not  recognise  you,  whence  you  are;  you 
will  then  begin  to  say,  We  have  eaten  and  drank  in  thy  presence,  and 
thou  hast  taught  in  our  streets  :  but  he  will  say,  I  aver  to  you,  that  I 
know  you  not,  whence  you  are  ;  depart  from  me,  all  ye  who  practise 
iniquity.  There  will  be  weeping  and  gnashing  of  teeth,  when  you  shall 
see  Abraham,  and  Isaac,  and  Jacob,  and  all  the  prophets,  admitted  to 
the  kingdom  of  God,  but  yourselves  rejected.  And  they  will  come  from 
the  east  and  the  west,  and  from  the  north  and  the  south,  and  will  place 
themselves  at  table  in  the  kingdom  of  God.  And  recollect,  they  are  last, 
who  shall  be  first ;  and  they  are  first,  who  shall  be  last. 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  J  39 

On  that  day,  certain  pharisees  came,  and  said  to  him,  Retire,  and 
depart  hence,  for  Herod  intends  to  kill  thee.  And  he  observed  to  them, 
Go  and  inform  that  fox.  Behold  I  expel  demons,  and  perform  cures,  to^ 
day  and  to-morrow,  and  the  third  day  I  shall  be  consummated.  I  must, 
however,  proceed  to-day,  and  to-morrow,  and  the  subsequent  day ;  for 
it  could  not  be  presumed,  that  a  prophet  should  perish  out  of  Jerusalem. 
O  Jerusalem,  Jerusalem,  that  destroyest  the  prophets,  and  stonest  those 
who  are  sent  to  thee,  how  often  would  I  have  gathered  thy  children,  as 
a  bird  gathers  her  brood  under  her  wings,  but  ye  refused !  Behold, 
your  habitation  will  be  transformed  to  a  desert !  for  I  assure  you,  that 
you  will  not  see  me,  till  the  period  arrives,  when  you  shall  aimounce. 
Blessed  is  he,  who  appears  in  the  name  of  the  Lord  ! 

And  it  occurred,  on  a  sabbath,  as  Jesus  went  to  eat  bread  at  the  house 
of  one  of  the  ruling  pharisees,  that  they  were  malignantly  watching  him. 
And  behold,  there  was  a  certain  dropsical  person  in  his  presence.  And 
Jesus,  in  continuation,  addressed  the  legal  interpreters  and  pharisees, 
saying,  Is  it  lawful  to  heal  on  the  sabbath  ?  But  they  were  silent.  And 
taking  hold  of  the  man,  he  healed  and  dismissed  him  ;  and,  in  explana- 
tion with  them,  said.  Which  of  you,  if  an  ass  or  an  ox  fall  into  a  pit, 
will  not  instantly  extricate  him  on  the  sabbath-day  1  And  they  could 
not  controvert  him,  on  the  subject. 

Then  he  addressed  a  parable  to  those  who  were  invited,  when  he  ob- 
served how  they  selected  the  higher  places  at  table,  remarking  to  them. 
When  thou  art  invited  by  any  one  to  a  nuptial  banquet,  do  not  assume 
the  most  exalted  seat,  lest  another  more  respectable  than  you  should  be 
invited  by  him  ;  and  he  who  invited  you  both,  should  come  and  say  to 
you,  Give  place  to  this  person ;  and  you  should  then  proceed,  with  con- 
fusion, to  occupy  the  lowest  seat.  But  when  you  are  invited,  go  and  sit 
in  the  lowest  place  ;  and  thus,  when  he  who  invited  you  comes,  he  may 
intimate  to  you,  Friend,  take  a  superior  station  :  you  will  then  receive 
deference  in  presence  of  those  who  participate  with  you  in  the  repast. 
For  every  one,  who  exalts  himself,  will  be  abased  ;  and  he,  who  humbles 
himself,  will  be  exalted. 

He  further  suggested  to  him  who  had  invited  him.  When  you  make  a 
dinner  or  a  supper,  invite  not  your  affluent  friends,  or  your  brothers,  or 
your  relatives,  or  neighbors  ;  lest  they  also  return  the  invitation,  and  a 
reward  be  rendered  you.  But  when  you  prepare  an  entertainment,  in- 
vite the  indigent,  the  disabled,  the  lame,  the  bUnd  :  and  you  will  be  for- 
tunate, that  they  are  unable  to  requite  you  ;  since,  you  will  be  remuner- 
ated in  the  future  existence  of  the  righteous. 

Now,  one  of  the  guests,  hearing  these  observations,  said  to  him, 
Happy  is  he  who  shall  feast  in  the  dominion  of  God.  But  Jesus  replied 
to  him,  A  certain  man  made  a  splendid  repast,  and  invited  many.  And 
he  sent  his  servant,  at  the  hour  of  supper,  to  say  to  those  who  were 
invited.  Come,  for  all  things  are  now  prepared.  And  they  all  began, 
with  one  accord,  to  excuse  themselves.     The  first  said  to  him,  I  have 


140  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

purchased  a  field,  and  I  am  compelled  to  go  and  see  it ;  I  request  you 
to  have  me  excused.  And  another  alleged,  I  have  bought  five  yoke  of 
oxen,  and  I  am  going  to  try  them  ;  I  entreat  you  to  render  my  excuse. 
And  a  third  declared,  I  have  married  a  wife,  and  therefore,  I  cannot 
come.  And  that  servant  returning,  related  all  to  his  master.  Then  the 
ruler  of  the  family  was  incensed,  and  said  to  his  servant.  Proceed  in- 
stantly to  the  streets  and  lanes  of  the  city,  and  collect  here  the  poor, 
and  the  disabled,  and  the  lame,  and  the  blind.  The  servant  afterwards 
observed,  Sir,  your  command  is  executed,  and  moreover,  there  is  room. 
And  the  master  said  to  the  servant.  Proceed  to  the  roads  and  hedges, 
and  persuade  people  to  come,  that  my  house  may  be  filled  :  for  I  declare 
to  you,  that  none  of  those  men  who  were  invited,  shall  partake  of  my 
supper. 

And  a  vast  midtitude  accompanied  him  :  and  turning  to  them,  he 
affirmed.  If  any  one  comes  to  me,  and  does  not  subordinately  regard 
his  father,  and  mother,  and  wife,  and  children,  and  brothers,  and  sisters, 
and  indeed,  even  his  own  life,  he  cannot  be  my  disciple.  And  he,  who 
does  not  bear  his  cross,  and  foUow  me,  cannot  become  my  disciple. 
For  which  of  you,  if  he  intend  to  erect  a  tower,  does  not  first  sit  down 
and  estimate  the  expense,  to  ascertain  whether  he  has  sufiicient  to 
complete  it  1  lest  perhaps,  having  laid  the  foundation,  and  being  unable 
to  complete  the  work,  all  who  see  it  begin  to  deride  him,  alleging.  This 
man  began  to  build,  but  was  not  able  to  finish.  Or  what  king,  advanc- 
ing to  encounter  another  king  in  war,  does  not  first  pause  to  reflect, 
whether  he  is  able  with  ten  thousand  men,  to  oppose  him  who  marches 
against  him  with  twenty  thousand.  And  if  not,  while  the  other  is  yet 
at  a  distance,  he  dispatches  an  embassy,  and  solicits  stipulations  of 
peace.  Thus,  therefore,  if  there  is  any  one  of  you,  who  does  not  re- 
nounce all  his  possessions,  he  cannot  be  my  disciple.  Salt  is  salutary  ; 
but  if  the  salt  has  become  vapid,  how  can  it  be  restored  1  It  is  neither 
fit  for  the  land,  nor  indeed  for  composture  ;  but  is  thrown  away.  Let 
him,  who  has  ears  to  listen,  give  audience. 

Now  all  the  tax-collectors  and  the  heathen  approached  Jesus,  to  hear 
him.  And  the  pharisees  and  the  scribes  murmured,  asserting.  This  man 
is  affectionately  accessible  to  Gentiles,  and  eats  with  them. 

But  Jesus  communicated  this  parable  to  them,  saying.  What  man 
among  you,  who  has  a  hundred  sheep,  and  loses  one  of  them,  would  not 
leave  the  ninety-nine  in  the  desert,  and  pursue  the  lost  one,  till  he  should 
find  it  ?  And  having  found  it,  he  lays  it  on  his  shoulders,  rejoicing. 
And  coming  home,  he  convenes  his  friends  and  neighbors,  and  says  to 
them.  Rejoice  with  me  ;  for  I  have  found  my  sheep  which  was  lost.  I 
declare  to  you,  that  there  will  likewise  be  more  joy  in  heaven  for  one 
reformed  sinner,  than  for  ninety-nine  righteous  beings,  who  do  not 
require  reformation. 

Moreover,  what  woman  having  ten  drachmas,  if  she  lose  one  of  them, 
does  not  light  a  lamp,  and  sweep  the  house,  and  search  carefully,  till 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  141 

she  find  it  ?  And  when  she  has  found  it,  she  assembles  her  friends  and 
neighbors,  saying.  Congratulate  me,  for  I  have  found  the  drachma, 
wliich  I  had  lost.  Thus,  I  apprise  you,  that  there  is  joy  among  the 
angels  of  God,  when  any  one  sinner  reforms. 

And  he  continued  ; — A  certam  man  had  two  sons.  And  the  youngest 
of  them  said  to  his  parent,  Father,  give  me  my  part  of  the  inheritance. 
And  he  divided  his  property  between  them.  And  in  a  few  days,  the 
younger  son  collected  all,  and  travelled  to  a  distant  land,  and  there  dis- 
sipated his  estate  in  profligate  living.  Now,  when  he  had  consumed  all, 
a  great  famine  occurred  in  that  country  ;  and  he  began  to  be  in  want. 
Accordingly,  he  went  and  connected  himself  with  a  citizen  of  that 
region,  who  sent  him  to  his  possessions  to  feed  swine.  And  he  was 
desirous  to  satisfy  himself  with  the  pulse,  which  the  swine  were  eating ; 
yet  no  one  imparted  to  him.  But  having  come  to  himself,  he  said,  How 
many  hired  servants  of  my  father  have  a  superfluity  of  bread,  while  I 
am  perishing  here  with  hunger  !  I  will  arise  and  go  to  my  father,  and 
will  say  to  him,  Father,  I  have  sinned  against  God,  and  before  you  ;  I 
am  no  more  worthy  to  be  regarded  as  your  son  ;  make  me  as  one  of 
your  hirelings.  And  he  arose  and  went  to  his  father.  But,  while  he 
was  yet  at  some  distance,  his  father  saw  him,  and  was  compassionately 
affected,  and  ran,  and  fell  on  his  neck,  and  repeatedly  kissed  him. 
Then  the  son  said  to  him,  Father,  I  have  transgressed  ageiinst  Heaven, 
and  in  your  sight,  and  no  longer  deserve  to  be  regarded  as  your  son. 
But  the  father  said  to  his  servants.  Bring  out  that  chief  robe,  and  clothe 
him  ;  and  attach  a  ring  to  his  hand,  and  shoes  to  his  feet :  and  bring 
here  the  fattened  calf,  and  immolate  it ;  and  let  us  eat,  and  rejoice  ; 
since  this  my  son  was  dead,  but  is  restored  to  life  ;  he  was  even  lost, 
but  is  found.     And  they  began  to  be  joyful. 

Now  his  senior  son  was  in  the  field  ;  and  while  returning,  as  he  ap- 
proached the  house,  he  heard  a  musical  concert,  and  a  choir  of  singers. 
And  calling  one  of  the  servants,  he  inquired  the  reason  of  this.  And  he 
stated  to  him,  Your  brother  has  come  ;  and  your  father  has  kUled  the 
fattened  C£jf,  because  he  has  received  him  in  good  health.  And  he  was 
enraged,  and  refused  to  enter ;  his  father,  therefore,  came  out  to  conci- 
liate him.  But  he  alleged  to  his  father,  in  return.  Behold,  for  many 
preceding  years,  I  have  served  you,  and  have,  at  no  period,  contravened 
your  command  ;  and  yet,  you  have  never  given  me  a  kid,  that  I  might 
entertain  my  friends :  but  as  soon  as  this  son  of  yours  arrived,  who  has 
lavished  your  wealth  with  courtesans,  you  have  sacrificed  for  him  the 
fattest  calf.  Then  his  father  said  to  him,  Son,  you  are  always  with  me, 
and  all  that  I  possess  is  yours.  It  was,  indeed,  appropriate,  that  we 
should  feast,  and  rejoice ;  for  this  brother  of  yours  was  dead,  but  is 
reanimated  ;  he  was  even  ruined,  but  is  restored. 

And  Jesus  further  remarked  to  his  disciples.  There  was  a  certain  rich 
man,  who  had  a  steward  ;  and  he  was  accused  to  him,  as  having  wasted 
his  possessions.     And  having  summoned  him,  he  said  to  him,  What  is 


143  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

this  that  I  hear  of  you  1  Surrender  the  business  of  your  stewardship  ; 
for  you  shall  no  longer  supervise.  Then  the  steward  said  within  him- 
self, What  must  I  do  ?  since  my  master  divests  me  of  the  stewardship. 
I  am  incapacitated  to  labor ;  and  I  disdain  to  beg.  I  have  in  view  a 
resource,  that  when  I  am  deprived  of  the  administration,  some  may 
receive  me  into  their  houses.  And  having  called  each  of  his  master's 
debtors,  he  said  to  the  first,  How  much  are  you  indebted  to  my  master  1 
And  he  replied,  A  hundred  baths  of  oil.  And  he  said  to  him.  Take 
your  account,  and  instantly  sit  down,  and  write  one  for  fifty.  He  then 
addressed  another.  How  much  do  you  owe  1  And  he  answered,  a  hun- 
dred cors  of  wheat.  And  the  steward  says  to  him,  Take  your  account, 
and  write  one  for  eighty.  And  the  master  was  powerfully  impressed  by 
the  unprincipled  steward,  as  having  warily  managed  ;  for  the  children 
of  this  world  are  more  sagacious,  in  their  conduct,  than  the  children  of 
light.  And  I  enjoin  you,  in  [figurative]  allusion  to  the  transient  wealth, 
to  make  to  yourselves  friends,  that  when  you  are  discharged,  you  may 
be  received  to  perpetual  mansions. 

He  who  is  faithful  in  a  little,  is  also  faithfijl  in  much  ;  and  he  who  is 
unjust  in  a  httle,  is  also  unjust  in  much.  If,  therefore,  you  have  not 
been  honest  in  reference  to  the  delusive  wealth,  who  wiU  confide  to  you 
the  real  riches  1  And  if  you  have  been  unfaithful  managers  for  another, 
who  will  give  you  any  thing  to  manage  for  yourselves  ?  No  domestic 
can  serve  two  masters  ;  for  he  will  either  hate  one,  and  love  the  other  ; 
or  at  least  will  attend  one,  and  neglect  the  other.  You  cannot  serve 
God  and  an  idol. 

Now  the  pharisees,  who  were  avaricious,  heard  all  these  things  ;  and 
they  treated  him  with  the  utmost  contempt.  And  he  declared  to  them, 
you  are  they  who  pronounce  yourselves  to  be  just  before  men  ;  but  God 
knows  your  hearts  ;  for  that  which  is  applauded  among  men,  is  detest- 
able before  God. 

The  law  and  the  prophets  continued  to  instruct,  till  the  coming  of 
John  ;  since  that  period,  the  kingdom  of  God  is  proclaimed,  and  every 
occupant  enters  it  by  force.  It  is,  however,  easier  for  heaven  and  earth 
to  pass  away,  than  for  one  particular  of  the  law  to  fail. 

Every  one,  who  divorces  his  wife  and  takes  another,  is  an  adulterer  ; 
and  he,  that  marries  her  who  is  divorced  from  her  husband,  commits 
adultery. 

Moreover,  there  was  a  certain  rich  man,  who  was  robed  in  purple  and 
fine  linen,  and  lived  luxuriously  every  day.  And  there  was  a  certain 
poor  man,  named  Lazarus,  who  was  laid  at  his  gate,  afflicted  with 
ulcers ;  and  was  desirous  to  be  fed  with  the  fragments,  which  fell  from 
the  rich  man's  table  :  and  indeed,  the  dogs  came,  and  licked  his  ulcers. 
And  it  occurred,  that  the  poor  man  died,  and  was  transferred  by  angels 
to  Abraham's  bosom  :  and  the  rich  man  also  died  and  was  buried  ;  and 
in  hades,  being  in  anguish,  he  looked  up,  and  saw  Abraham  at  a  great 
distance,  and  Lazarus  in  his  bosom  ;  and  exclaiming,  he  said,  Father 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  T43 

Abraham,  compassionate  me,  and  send  Lazarus,  that  he  may  dip  the 
end  of  his  finger  in  water,  and  allay  my  tongue  ;  for  I  am  tortured  in 
this  flame  !  But  Abraham  observed,  Son,  recollect,  that  during  your 
life,  you  enjoyed  prosperity  ;  but  that  Lazarus  proportionally  endured 
adversity ;  yet  now,  he  is  in  joy,  and  you  are  in  sorrow.  And  aside 
from  all  this,  a  great  chasm  is  situated  between  us  and  you ;  so  that 
they,  who  wish  to  pass  hence  to  you,  are  unable  ;  nor  can  those,  who 
are  there,  come  to  us.  He  however  added,  Father,  I  still  entreat  you, 
that  you  would  send  him  to  my  father's  house  ;  for  I  have  five  brothers ; 
that  he  may  admonish  them,  lest  they  also  come  to  this  place  of  misery. 
Abraham  replied  to  him,  They  have  Moses  and  the  prophets  ;  let  them 
attend  to  these.  And  he  said.  Indeed,  father  Abraham,  yet  if  one  should 
go  to  them  from  the  dead,  they  would  reform.  But  Abraham  declared 
to  him,  If  they  will  not  listen  to  Moses  and  the  prophets,  they  would  not 
be  convinced,  though  one  should  rise  from  the  dead. 

Jesus  then  observed  to  his  disciples.  It  is  impossible  entirely  to  ex- 
clude enticements  to  sin ;  but  alas  for  him,  from  whom  they  proceed ! 
It  would  be  better  for  him  to  have  an  upper  millstone  fastened  to  his 
neck,  and  to  be  cast  into  the  sea,  than  to  allure  any  of  these  little  ones 
into  transgression. 

Be  circumspect  as  to  yourselves  :  if  thy  brother  injure  thee,  reprove 
him ;  and  if  he  repent,  forgive  him.  And  if  seven  times  in  a  day  he 
trespass  against  you,  and  as  frequently  return,  averring,  I  repent ;  you 
shall  forgive  him. 

And  the  apostles  said  to  the  Lord,  Increase  our  faith.  And  the  Lord 
remarked.  If  you  had  faith,  though  it  were  but  as  a  grain  of  mustard- 
seed,  you  might  say  to  this  very  sycamine-tree.  Be  extirpated,  and  plant- 
ed in  the  sea,  and  it  would  obey  you. 

Moreover,  would  any  of  you,  who  has  a  servant  ploughing,  or  feeding 
cattle,  say  to  him  on.  his  return  from  the  field,  Come  immediately,  and 
sit  down  at  the  table  ?  Indeed,  would  he  not  rather  say  to  him.  Prepare 
my  supper,  gird  yourself,  and  serve  me,  while  I  am  eating  and  drinking ; 
and  afterwards,  you  may  eat  and  drink  1  Does  he  feel  obliged  to  that 
servant,  because  he  has  done  what  was  commanded  him  1  I  apprehend 
he  does  not.  Thus  even  you,  when  you  have  performed  all  things  which 
are  required  of  you,  afiirm,  We  thy  servants  have  conferred  no  favor  ; 
for  we  have  done  only  what  we  were  bound  to  do. 

Now.  it  happened,  as  he  went  to  Jerusalem,  that  he  passed  through 
the  interior  of  Samaria  and  Galilee.  And  as  he  entered  a  certain  vil- 
lage, ten  men  that  were  lepers  met  him,  who  stood  at  a  distance  ;  and 
raising  their  voice,  they  exclaimed,  Jesus,  Master,  take  pity  on  us  !  And 
when  he  saw  them,  he  said  to  them,  Go,  present  yourselves  to  the  priests. 
And  it  occurred,  as  they  proceeded,  that  they  were  cleansed.  And  one 
of  them,  perceiving  that  he  was  healed,  returned,  loudly  praising  God ; 
and  prostrating  himself  at  the  feet  of  Jesus,  ofiered  him  thanks;  now 
this  man  was  a  Samaritan.     Then  Jesus  said  in  return,  Were  there  not 


144  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

ten  purified  1  but  where  are  the  nine  ?  None  are  found  returning  to  offer 
praise  to  God,  except  this  alien.  And  he  said  to  him,  Arise,  depart ; 
your  faith  has  restored  you. 

And  being  interrogated  by  the  pharisees,  when  the  empire  of  God 
would  commence,  he  replied  to  them  and  said,  The  reign  of  God  is  not 
introduced  with  scrupulous  observation ;  nor  shall  people  affirm.  Behold, 
it  is  here,  or  behold,  there  !  for,  remember,  that  the  dominion  of  God  is 
among  you. 

Then  he  said  to  the  disciples.  The  period  will  arrive,  when  you  shall 
wish  to  see  one  of  those  days  of  the  Son  of  Man,  but  will  not  see  it. 
And  when  they  shall  declare  to  you.  Behold,  he  is  here ;  or  behold, 
there  ;  proceed  not  to  follow  them.  For  as  the  lightning,  which  glares 
from  one  part  of  the  firmament,  flashes  to  the  other  extremity,  thus  will 
the  appearance  of  the  Son  of  Man  be,  in  his  day.  But  he  must  pre- 
viously sufier  much,  and  be  rejected  by  this  generation.  And  as  it  was 
in  the  days  of  Noah,  so  it  will  also  happen  in  the  days  of  the  Son  of 
Man.  They  did  eat,  they  drank,  they  married,  they  were  affianced  in 
marriage,  till  the  day  that  Noah  entered  the  ark,  when  the  deluge  came, 
and  destroyed  them  all.  And  likewise,  as  it  was  in  the  period  of  Lot ; 
they  did  eat,  they  drank,  they  bought,  they  sold,  they  planted,  they 
built ;  but  on  the  day  when  Lot  departed  from  Sodom,  fire  and  sulphur 
was  showered  from  heaven,  and  consumed  them  all ;  even  thus  it  will 
be,  in  the  crisis  when  the  Son  of  Man  is  revealed.  At  that  day,  if  any 
one  shall  be  on  the  house-top,  having  his  furniture  in  the  house,  let  him 
not  descend  to  remove  it ;  and  in  the  same  manner,  let  not  him  who 
shall  be  in  the  country,  return.  Remember  Lot's  wife.  He,  who  shall 
endeavor  to  save  his  life,  will  lose  it ;  and  he,  who  shall  throw  it  away, 
will  preserve  it.  I  apprise  you,  that  there  wiU  be  two  men  that  night  in 
the  same  bed  ;  one  will  be  arrested,  and  the  other  dismissed.  Two 
women  will  be  grinding  together ;  one  will  be  seized,  and  the  other  re- 
leased. And  in  return  they  said  to  him.  In  what  place,  Master  1  And 
he  observed  to  them.  Where  the  dead  carcass  is,  there,  the  eagles  wiU 
be  assembled. 

Jesus  also  taught  his  disciples  by  a  comparison,  that  they  ought 
habitually  to  pray,  and  not  to  be  disheartened  ;  alleging.  There  was  a 
judge  in  a  particular  city,  who  neither  feared  God,  nor  respected  man  ; 
and  there  was  a  widow  in  that  city  ;  and  she  came  to  him,  saying.  Vin- 
dicate me  against  my  adversary.  But  he  would  not  for  some  time  ;  ulti- 
mately, however,  he  thus  communed  with  himself.  Though  I  fear  not 
God,  nor  regard  man ;  yet,  because  this  widow  importunes  me,  I  will 
dispense  justice  to  her,  lest  she  stun  me  by  her  perpetual  application. 
And  the  Lord  said.  Hear  what  the  unjust  judge  determined  ;  and  wiU 
not  God  do  justice  for  his  chosen,  who  fervently  supplicate  him  day  and 
night,  and  he  is  compassionate  towards  them  1  I  declare  to  you,  that 
he  will  instantly  vindicate  them.  But  when  the  Son  of  Man  arrives, 
will  he  find  fidelity  in  this  land  ? 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  uri 

Then  he  also  communicated  this  example  to  some,  who  fancied  them- 
selves to  be  righteous,  and  disdained  others  :  Two  men  went  up  to  the 
temple  to  pray  ;  one  a  pharisee,  and  the  other  a  public  exactor.  The 
pharisee,  standing  by  himself,  prayed  in  this  manner,  O  God,  I  thank 
thee,  that  I  am  not  like  other  men,  rapacious,  unjust,  dissolute,  or  even 
like  this  public  exactor.  I  fast  twice  in  the  week  ;  I  pay  tithes  of  all 
that  I  acquire.  But  the  public  exactor,  standing  at  a  distance,  and  not 
daring  even  to  raise  his  eyes  to  heaven,  smote  on  his  breast,  saying,  O 
God,  be  propitious  to  me  a  sinner.  I  assure  you,  that  this  man  returned 
to  his  house  pardoned,  and  not  the  other  :  for  every  one,  who  exalts 
himself,  will  be  humbled  ;  and  he,  who  humbles  himself,  will  be  exalted. 

Now  some  presented  to  him  infants,  that  he  might  touch  them ;  and 
the  disciples  perceiving  it,  reproved  those  [who  brought  them].  But 
Jesus  called  them  to  him,  and  said,  let  the  little  children  come  to  me, 
and  not  forbid  them  ;  for  of  such,  is  the  Idngdom  of  God.  In  truth,  I 
say  to  you,  that  if  any  one  does  not  receive  the  kingdom  of  God  like  a 
little  child,  he  shall  by  no  means  enter  it. 

And  a  certain  magistrate  interrogated  him,  saying.  Excellent  Teacher, 
what  shall  I  do,  that  I  may  inherit  eternal  life  ?  And  Jesus  replied  to 
him.  Why  do  you  style  me  excellent  1  None  is  excellent,  but  the  one 
God.  You  know  the  commandments ;  Do  not  commit  adultery  ;  do  not 
kiU  ;  do  not  steal ;  do  not  falsely  testify ;  honor  your  father  and  your 
mother.  And  he  replied,  I  have  kept  all  these  from  my  childhood. 
Now  Jesus,  hearing  this,  said  to  him,  You  are  yet  deficient  in  one 
respect :  sell  all  that  you  possess,  and  distribute  to  the  poor,  and  you 
will  have  treasure  in  heaven  ;  then  come,  and  follow  me.  But  when  he 
heard  this,  he  was  extremely  aiHicted  ;  for  he  was  very  affluent. 

And  Jesus,  perceiving  that  he  was  in  great  sorrow,  remarked.  With 
what  difficulty  will  they  who  have  wealth,  enter  the  kingdom  of  God  ! 
Since,  it  is  easier  for  a  camel  to  go  through  the  eye  of  a  needle,  than  for 
a  rich  man  to  enter  the  kingdom  of  God.  And  those,  who  listened, 
said,  who  then  can  be  saved  1  But  he  affirmed.  Things  which  are  im- 
possible with  men,  are  in  the  power  of  God. 

Peter  then  declared,  Behold,  we  have  relinquished  all,  and  followed 
thee.  And  Jesus  observed  to  them,  I  assure  you,  that  there  is  no  one, 
who  has  left  house,  or  parents,  or  brothers,  or  wife,  or  children,  in  the 
cause  of  God's  kingdom,  who  will  not  receive  vastly  more  in  this  world, 
and  in  the  future  state,  everlasting  life. 

Then  Jesus,  taking  the  twelve  aside,  said  to  them.  Behold,  we  are  go- 
ing up  to  Jerusalem,  and  all  things,  which  are  written  by  the  prophets, 
relative  to  the  Son  of  Man,  must  be  accomplished.  For  he  will  be  de- 
livered to  the  Gentiles,  and  will  be  ridiculed,  and  malignantly  assailed, 
and  spitten  on  :  and  having  scourged  him,  they  will  destroy  him  ;  but  on 
the  third  day  he  will  return  to  life.  But  the  twelve  did  not  comprehend 
any  of  these  things ;  and  this  subject  was  concealed  from  them ;  and 
they  recognised  not  what  was  disclosed. 
19 


146  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

And  it  occurred,  as  he  was  approaching  Jericho,  that  a  certain  blind 
man  sat  begging  by  the  highway  ;  and  hearing  the  people  as  they  pass- 
ed, he  asked,  What  does  this  mean  1  And  they  informed  him  that  Jesus 
the  Nazarean  was  passing.  And  he  cried,  saying,  Jesus,  son  of  David, 
have  mercy  on  me  !  And  those,  who  preceded,  severely  charged  him, 
that  he  should  be  silent ;  but  he  exclaimed  more  vehemently.  Son  of 
David,  have  mercy  on  me !  And  Jesus  stopped,  and  commanded  them  to 
conduct  the  man  to  him  ;  and,  when  he  advanced,  asked  him,  saying. 
What  do  you  desire  me  to  do  for  you  1  And  he  replied,  Master,  to 
restore  my  sight.  And  Jesus  said  to  him,  Receive  your  sight ;  your 
faith  has  recovered  you.  And  he  instantly  saw,  and  accompanied  Jesus, 
praising  God :  and  all  the  people,  who  witnessed  it,  rendered  praise 
to  God. 

And  Jesus,  having  entered,  was  passing  through  Jericho.  And  be- 
hold, there  was  a  man  named  Zaccheus,  and  he  was  the  chief  of  the 
tax-gatherers,  and  he  was  opulent.  And  he  sought  to  view  the  personal 
appearance  of  Jesus ;  but  he  could  not  in  consequence  of  the  crowd,  for 
he  was  small  in  stature.  And  running  forward,  he  ascended  a  sycamore, 
that  he  might  see  him  ;  for  he  was  to  pass  in  that  direction.  Now  as 
Jesus  came  to  the  place,  he  looked  up,  and  saw  hirn,  and  said  to  him, 
Zaccheus,  come  down  immediately,  for  to-day  I  must  remain  at  your 
house.  So  he  hastened  down,  and  joyfully  received  Jesus.  And  seeing 
it,  they  all  murmured,  alleging,  He  is  gone  to  be  entertained  by  a  man 
who  is  a  transgressor.  But  Zaccheus,  presenting  himself  before  Jesus, 
said,  Behold,  Master,  the  half  of  my  possessions  I  give  to  the  poor ;  and 
if  I  have  extorted  any  thing  from  any  man,  I  will  restore  to  him  four- 
fold. Then  Jesus  said  respecting  him.  To-day,  salvation  has  assuredly 
visited  this  very  family  ;  since  he  also  is  a  descendant  of  Abraham. 
For  the  Son  of  Man  is  come  to  seek  and  to  recover  that  which  was  lost. 

Moreover,  after  they  had  heard  these  things,  he  continued,  and  com- 
municated a  parable,  because  he  was  near  Jerusalem,  and  they  thought 
that  the  reign  of  God  would  immediately  be  revealed.  He  therefore 
proceeded  ;  A  certain  person  of  illustrious  descent,  departed  to  a  distant 
country,  to  procure  for  himself  royalty,  and  then  return.  And  having 
called  ten  of  his  servants,  he  delivered  to  them  ten  minas,  and  said  to 
them,  Negotiate  tiU  I  come.  But  his  countrymen  hated  him,  and  dis- 
patched an  embassy  after  him,  declaring.  We  will  not  have  this  man  for 
our  king.  And  it  happened,  when  he  had  returned,  vested  with  royal 
power,  that  he  commanded  those  servants,  with  whom  he  had  entrusted 
the  money,  to  be  called  to  him,  that  he  might  ascertain  what  acquisition 
each  had  made.  And  the  first  approached,  saying.  Sir,  your  mina  has 
gained  ten  minas.  And  he  said  to  him,  Well-done,  good  servant ;  since 
you  have  been  faithful  in  a  very  little,  receive  the  government  of  ten 
cities.  Then  the  second  came,  saying.  Sir,  your  mina  has  acquired  five 
minas.  And  he  subjoined  to  this.  Be  thou  also  governor  of  five  cities. 
Then  another  came,  asserting.  Sir,  see  your  mina,  which  I  have  retain- 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  147 

ed,  deposited  in  a  napkin ;  for  I  feared  you,  because  you  are  a  harsh 
man;  you  exact  what  you  did  not  give,  and  reap  what  you  did  not  sow. 
But  the  master  says  to  him.  From  your  own  mouth,  malignant  servant, 
I  will  condemn  you.  Did  you  know  that  I  was  a  harsh  man,  exacting 
what  I  did  not  give,  and  reaping  what  I  did  not  sow  1  Why  then,  did 
you  not  place  my  money  in  the  bank,  that  when  I  returned,  I  might 
have  received  it,  with  interest.  And  he  said  to  his  attendants.  Take  the 
mina  from  him,  and  give  it  to  him  who  has  the  ten  minas.  (And  they 
suggested  to  him.  Sir,  he  has  ten  minas).  For  I  assure  you,  that  to 
every  one  who  has  gained,  more  will  be  imparted  ;  and  from  him  who 
has  not  gained,  even  that  which  he  has  received,  will  be  taken.  More- 
over, bring  here  those  my  enemies,  who  refused  that  I  should  reign  over 
them,  and  destroy  them  in  my  presence. 

And  having  made  these  observations,  he  preceded,  ascending  to  Jeru- 
salem. And  it  occurred,  as  he  arrived  near  Bethphage  and  Bethany,  at 
the  foot  of  the  mount  of  Olives  so  denominated,  that  he  sent  two  of  his 
disciples,  saying.  Go  to  the  opposite  village,  in  which  as  you  enter,  you 
will  find  a  colt  tied,  on  which  no  man  ever  rode  ;  loose,  and  bring  him. 
And  if  any  one  ask  you,  Why  do  you  unfasten  it  ?  you  shall  thus  say  to 
him,  Because  the  Master  wants  him.  And  they  who  were  sent,  depart- 
ed, and  found  even  as  he  had  apprised  them.  Now,  as  they  were  loos- 
ing the  colt,  the  owners  of  it  said  to  them.  Why  do  you  untie  the  colt  ? 
But  they  said,  The  Master  wants  him.  And  they  brought  it  to  Jesus  ; 
and  they  threw  their  own  clothes  over  the  colt,  and  placed  Jesus  thereon. 
And  as  he  proceeded,  the  people  spread  their  garments  in  the  road. 
And  as  they  advanced  even  near  to  the  lower  declivity  of  the  mount  of 
Olives,  the  whole  multitude  of  the  disciples  began  to  rejoice,  and  to 
praise  God  in  loud  acclamations,  for  all  the  miracles  which  they  had 
vritnessed,  saying.  Blessed  be  the  King,  who  comes  in  the  name  of  the 
Lord  ;  peace  in  heaven,  and  glory  in  the  highest  heaven.  And  some  of 
the  Pharisees,  among  the  crowd,  said  to  him.  Teacher,  reprimand  thy 
disciples.  But  he  answered  and  said  to  them,  I  declare  to  you,  that  if 
these  should  be  silent,  the  stones  would  immediately  exclaim. 

And  as  he  came  near,  surveying  the  city,  he  wept  over  it,  saying.  Oh 
that  thou  hadst  considered,  at  least  in  this  thy  day,  the  things  which  con- 
cern thy  peace  !  but  now,  they  are  veiled  from  thine  eyes.  For  the 
days  are  approaching  thee,  when  thine  enemies  will  throw  a  rampart 
around  thee,  and  environ  thee,  and  press  thee  in  on  every  side,  and 
level  thee  with  the  ground,  and  crush  thy  children  in  the  ruins  ;  and 
they  will  not  leave  thee  one  stone  upon  another ;  because  thou  didst  not 
consider  the  time  when  thou  wast  visited. 

And  having  entered  the  temple,  he  proceeded  to  drive  out  those  who 
sold  therein,  and  those  who  bought,  affirming  to  them.  It  is  written.  My 
house  is  a  sanctuary  of  prayer,  but  you  have  made  it  a  den  of  robbers. 

And  he  was  daily  instructing  in  the  temple  ;  while  the  chief  priests, 
and  the  scribes,  and  the  rulers  of  the  people  were  constantly  seeking 


148  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

his  destruction  ;  but  could  not  devise  how  to  effect  it ;  for  all  the  people 
listened  to  him  with  the  greatest  attention. 

And  it  occurred,  on  one  of  those  days,  as  Jesus  taught  the  people  in 
the  temple,  and  preached  the  gospel,  that  the  chief  priests,  and  the 
scribes,  with  the  elders,  assailed,  and  addressed  him,  saying.  Inform  us 
by  what  authority  thou  dost  these  things  1  or  who  is  he,  that  empowered 
thee.  Then  he  stated  to  them  in  reply,  I  will  also  make  one  inquiry  of 
you ;  and  answer  me  ;  Was  the  authority  of  John  to  baptize,  from 
heaven,  or  from  men  1  And  they  conferred  together,  saying.  If  we 
should  assert,  from  heaven  ;  he  will  reply.  Why  then  did  you  not  be- 
lieve him  1  But  if  we  declare,  From  men  ;  all  the  people  will  stone  us ; 
for  they  are  persuaded  that  John  was  a  prophet.  And  they  answered, 
that  they  could  not  decide  whence  it  was.  And  Jesus  said  to  them, 
neither  do  I  disclose  to  you  by  what  authority  I  do  these  things. 

He  then  proceeded  to  communicate  to  the  people  this  parable.  A 
man  planted  a  vineyard,  and  leased  it  to  husbandmen,  and  took  a  jour- 
ney, for  a  long  period,  into  a  distant  country.  And  at  the  season,  he 
sent  a  servant  to  the  husbandmen,  that  they  might  give  him  of  the  pro-- 
duce  of  the  vineyard  ;  but  the  husbandmen  beat  him,  and  sent  him  back 
destitute.  And  he  proceeded  to  send  another  servant ;  and  they  also 
beat  him,  and  infamously  treated  him,  and  forced  him  away  destitute. 
And  he  persisted  in  sending  a  third  ;  and  they  also  wounded  him,  and 
drove  him  out.  The  proprietor  of  the  vineyard  then  said.  What  must  I 
do  ?  I  will  send  my  beloved  son  ;  perhaps,  when  they  see  him,  they 
will  reverence  him.  But  the  husbandmen,  beholding  him,  thus  convers- 
ed among  themselves,  This  is  the  heir  ;  come,  let  us  kUl  him,  that  the 
inheritance  may  be  ours.  And  they  thrust  him  out  of  the  vineyard,  and 
killed  him.  What,  therefore,  will  the  proprietor  of  the  vineyard  do  to 
them  1  He  will  come  and  destroy  those  husbandmen,  and  will  give  the 
vineyard  to  others.  And  when  the  people  heard  it,  they  said,  Let  it 
not  be. 

And  Jesus  looked  on  them  and  said.  What  then  means  that  expression 
of  scripture.  The  same  stone,  which  the  builders  rejected,  is  made  the 
head  of  the  corner  ^  Every  one,  who  shall  fall  on  that  stone,  will  be 
bruised  ;  but  if  it  shall  fall  on  any  one,  it  will  crush  him  to  pieces.  And 
the  chief  priests  and  the  scribes,  in  that  very  hour,  sought  to  lay  hands 
on  him  ;  for  they  perceived  that  he  had  spoken  this  parable  concerning 
them  ;  but  they  feared  the  people. 

And  insidiously  watching  him,  they  sent  out  spies,  affecting  to  per- 
sonate conscientious  men,  that  they  might  fasten  upon  his  discourse,  to 
surrender  him  to  the  command  and  authority  of  the  procurator.  And 
these  interrogated  him,  saying.  Teacher,  we  know  that  thou  dost  cor- 
rectly speak  and  instruct,  and  dost  not  partially  respect  persons,  but 
teachest  the  way  of  God  with  integrity.  Is  it  lawful  for  us,  or  not,  to 
pay  taxes  to  Cesar  ?  But  perceiving  their  subtilty,  he  said  to  them, 
Why  do  you  try  me  ?     Show  me  a  denarius.     Whose  representation 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  149 

and  inscription  does  it  bear  1  And  they  answering,  alleged,  Cesar's. 
And  he  said  to  them.  Render,  therefore,  to  Cesar,  the  things  which  are 
Cesar's  ;  and  to  God,  the  things  which  are  God's.  And  they  could  not 
surprise  him  in  his  remarks  before  the  people  ;  and  being  astonished  at 
his  reply,  they  were  silent. 

Then  came  to  him  some  of  the  sadducees,  who  deny  that  there  is  any 
future  existence  ;  and  they  thus  questioned  him,  Teacher,  Moses  direct- 
ed us,  in  writing,  that  if  any  man's  brother  decease,  having  a  wife,  and 
he  die  without  children,  his  brother  should  marry  the  widow,  and  per- 
petuate posterity  to  his  brother.  Now  there  were  seven  brothers  ;  and 
the  first,  taking  a  wife,  died  without  children.  And  the  second  married 
the  widow,  and  he  departed  childless.  Then  the  third  married  her, 
as  did  likewise  the  rest ;  they  died,  and  left  no  children.  And  last  of 
all,  the  woman  also  died.  In  the  future  state,  therefore,  whose  wife 
of  them  will  she  be  1  for  the  seven  married  her.  And  Jesus  said  to 
them  in  reply,  The  people  of  this  world  marry,  and  are  given  in  mar- 
riage ;  but  they  who  are  deemed  worthy  to  attain  that  world,  and  the 
renewed  existence  from  the  dead,  neither  marry,  nor  are  pledged  in 
marriage  ;  nor  indeed,  can  they  die  any  more  ;  since  they  are  like  the 
angels  ;  and  are  the  children  of  God,  being  the  children  of  another  life. 
Now  that  the  dead  are  reanimated,  even  Moses  indicated  at  the  bush, 
when  he  called  the  Lord,  The  God  of  Abraham,  and  the  God  of  Isaac, 
and  the  God  of  Jacob.  He  is  not,  however,  a  God  of  the  dead,  but  of 
the  living  ;  for  they  are  all,  [though  dead  to  us],  alive  to  him.  Some  of 
the  scribes  then  said  in  return,  Teacher,  thou  hast  well  remarked.  And 
after  that,  they  did  not  venture  thus  to  question  him. 

Then  he  observed  to  them.  Why  is  it  afiirmed  that  the  Messiah  must 
be  a  son  of  David  7  Yet  David  himself  declares  in  the  book  of  Psalms, 
The  Lord  said  to  my  Lord,  sit  thou  at  my  right  hand,  till  I  make  thine 
enemies  thy  footstool.  As  David  thus  calls  him  Lord,  how  can  he  be 
David's  son  1 

He  then  said  to  his  disciples,  in  the  audience  of  all  the  people,  beware 
of  these  scribes  who  desire  to  walk  about  in  long  robes,  and  love  saluta- 
tions in  the  public  places,  and  the  principal  seats  in  the  synagogues,  and 
the  most  distinguished  positions  at  entertainments  ;  who  devour  the 
families  of  widows,  and  through  ostentation  make  long  prayers.  These 
will  receive  a  more  signal  retribution. 

Moreover,  Jesus  looking  up,  beheld  the  rich  men  casting  their  gifts 
into  the  treasury.  And  he  also  saw  a  miserably  poor  widow  contribut- 
ing two  mites.  And  he  declared,  I  assure  you,  that  this  poor  widow 
has  contributed  more  than  any  of  them  ;  for  all  these,  from  their  abun- 
dance, threw  in  towards  the  oflFerings  of  God  ;  but  she,  from  her  poverty, 
cast  in  all  her  sustenance. 

And  as  some  were  remarking  relative  to  the  temple,  how  it  was 
adorned  with  beautiful  stones  and  consecrated  things,  he  said.  As  for 
these  things  which  you  behold,  the  time  will  come,  in  which  there  will 


J50  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

not  be  left  one  stone  on  another,  that  will  not  be  thrown  down.  Then 
they  asked  him,  saying.  Teacher,  when  indeed  will  these  things  be  1 
and  what  will  be  the  sign  of  their  occurrence  1  And  he  said,  Be  cau- 
tious, lest  you  should  be  seduced ;  for  many  will  come  under  my  name, 
affirming,  I  am  the  person,  and  the  crisis  has  arrived  ;  do  not,  however, 
follow  them.  But  when  you  shall  hear  of  wars  and  insurrections,  be 
not  terrified  ;  for  these  things  must  previously  happen  ;  but  the  end  is 
not  immediate. 

He  then  said  to  them,  nation  will  rise  against  nation,  and  kingdom 
against  kingdom  ;  and  there  will  be  violent  earthquakes  in  various 
places,  and  famines,  and  pestilences  ;  and  there  will  be  terrific  appear- 
ances ;  and  great  prodigies  in  the  sky.  But  antecedently  to  these  events, 
they  will  lay  their  hands  on  you,  and  prosecute  you,  surrendering  you 
to  assemblies  and  prisons,  and  arraigning  you  before  kings  and  gov- 
ernors on  account  of  my  name.  But  it  shall  avail  to  your  vindication. 
Privately  determine,  therefore,  not  to  premeditate  on  your  defence  ;  for 
I  will  give  you  eloquence  and  wisdom,  which  none  of  your  adversaries 
will  be  able  to  controvert,  or  resist.  And  moreover,  you  will  be  betray- 
ed by  parents,  and  brothers,  and  relatives,  and  friends ;  and  some  of 
you  they  will  cause  to  be  slain.  And  you  will  be  hated  by  all,  for  the 
sake  of  my  name.  But  not  a  hair  of  your  head  wiU  perish.  By  your 
perseverance  you  will  preserve  your  lives. 

Now  when  you  shall  see  Jerusalem  surrounded  by  armies,  then  know 
that  its  desolation  approaches.  Then  let  those,  who  are  in  Judea,  fly 
to  the  mountains  ;  and  let  those,  who  are  in  the  city,  make  their  escape  ; 
and  let  not  those  enter  therein,  who  are  in  the  country.  For  these  will 
be  days  of  vengeance,  in  which  all  the  declarations  of  scripture  will  be 
fiilfiUed.  But  alas  for  those  who  are  in  gestation,  and  for  them  that 
impart  nourishment  in  those  days  !  for  there  will  be  great  distress  in 
the  land,  and  severe  displeasure  against  this  people.  And  they  will  fall 
by  the  edge  of  the  sword,  and  will  be  driven  away  captive  into  all  na- 
tions ;  and  Jerusalem  will  be  trodden  by  the  Gentiles,  till  the  periods  of 
the  Gentiles  shall  be  accomplished.  And  there  will  be  signs  in  the  sun, 
and  moon,  and  stars ;  and  on  the  earth,  nations  in  complicated  cala- 
mities ;  the  sea  and  flood  roaring ;  men  expiring  through  fear  and  fore- 
taste of  the  judgments  that  await  the  land  ;  for  the  powers  of  the  heavens 
will  be  shaken.  And  they  will  then  see  the  Son  of  Man  coming  in  a 
cloud  with  power  and  great  glory.  And  when  these  things  begin  to 
transpire,  look  upwards,  and  lift  up  your  heads  ;  for  your  deUverance 
approaches. 

And  he  communicated  a  parable  to  them  ;  Survey  the  fig-tree,  and  all 
the  trees ;  when  they  now  germinate,  you  know,  from  personal  observa- 
tion, that  summer  is  even  near.  Thus  also,  when  you  witness  the  ac- 
complishment of  these  things,  know,  that  the  dominion  of  God  is  near. 
Indeed,  I  declare  to  you,  that  this  generation  will  not  pass  away,  till  all 
be  fulfilled.     The  heaven  and  the  earth  may  vanish ;  but  my  words  shall 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  151 

never  fail.  Therefore,  cautiously  attend  to  yourselves,  lest  at  any  time 
your  hearts  be  overburdened  by  gluttony,  and  intemperance,  and  secular 
cares  ;  and  that  day  should  come  unexpectedly  upon  you.  For  it  will 
come,  as  a  snare,  on  all  those  who  occupy  the  surface  of  this  whole  land. 
Constantly  watch,  therefore,  and  pray,  that  you  may  be  regarded  worthy 
to  escape  all  these  things  which  shall  occur,  and  to  be  acquitted  before 
the  Son  of  Man. 

Thus,  every  day  he  taught  in  the  temple ;  but  at  night  he  retired,  and 
lodged  at  what  is  called  the  mount  of  Olives.  And  every  morning,  all 
the  people  early  resorted  to  him  in  the  temple,  to  hear  him. 

Now  the  feast  of  unleavened  bread,  which  was  called  the  passover, 
drew  near.  And  the  chief  priests  and  scribes  were  contriving  how  they 
might  destroy  Jesus  ;  but  they  feared  the  people.  The  adversary  then 
entered  Judas,  who  was  also  called  Iscariot,  being  of  the  number  of  the 
twelve.  And  departing,  he  consulted  with  the  chief  priests  and  com- 
manding officers,  in  what  manner  he  might  deliver  Jesus  into  their  hands. 
And  they  rejoiced,  and  offered  to  give  him  a  certain  sum  ;  and  he  ac- 
ceded, and  watched  an  opportunity  to  surrender  him  to  them,  without 
commotion. 

Moreover,  the  day  of  unleavened  bread  came,  on  which  the  passover 
was  to  be  sacrificed.  And  he  sent  Peter  and  John,  saying,  Go  and  pre- 
pare for  us  the  passover,  that  we  may  eat  it.  But  they  asked  him, 
Where  dost  thou  wish  us  to  prepare  it  1  And  he  answered  them,  Be- 
hold, as  you  are  entering  the  city,  a  man  will  meet  you,  carrying  a 
pitcher  of  water  ;  follow  him  to  the  house  where  he  enters  ;  and  say  to 
the  master  of  the  family.  The  teacher  inquires  of  you,  Where  is  the 
guest-chamber,  in  which  I  may  eat  the  passover  with  my  disciples  1 
And  he  will  show  you  a  large  upper  room  furnished  ;  there  make  pre- 
paration. And  they  went  and  found  every  thing  as  he  had  informed 
them  ;  and  they  prepared  the  passover. 

And  when  the  hour  arrived,  he  placed  himself  at  table  with  his  twelve 
apostles.  And  he  said  to  them,  I  have  most  earnestly  desired  to  eat  this 
passover  with  you,  before  I  suffer  death :  for  I  declare  to  you,  that  I  will 
never  partake  of  another,  till  it  be  accomplished  in  the  kingdom  of  God. 
And  having  received  a  cup,  he  gave  thanks,  and  said.  Take  this,  and 
dispense  it  among  you  :  for  I  assure  you,  that  I  will  not  again  drink  of 
the  product  of  the  vine,  till  the  reign  of  God  shall  commence.  And 
having  taken  a  loaf,  and  offered  thanks,  he  broke  it,  and  gave  it  to  them, 
saying.  This  is  my  body  which  is  given  for  you ;  do  this  in  commemora- 
tion of  me.  And  in  a  similar  manner,  he  imparted  the  cup  after  supper, 
saying.  This  cup  is  the  new  covenant,  poured  out  for  you  with  my  blood. 

Recollect,  however,  that  the  hand  of  him  who  betrays  me,  is  on  the 
table  with  mine.  And  the  Son  of  Man  is  indeed  departing,  as  it  was 
defined  ;  but  alas  for  that  man  by  whom  he  is  betrayed  !  And  they  be- 
gan to  inquire  among  themselves,  which  of  them  it  could  be,  that  would 
do  this. 


152  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

And  there  was  a  contention  among  them,  which  of  them  should  be 
considered  the  greatest.  But  he  observed  to  them,  The  kings  of  the  na- 
tions exercise  dominion  over  them  ;  and  they  who  oppress  them  are 
styled  benefactors.  But  with  you  it  must  be  otherwise  :  indeed,  let  him, 
who  is  the  senior  among  you,  become  as  the  younger  ;  and  let  him  who 
rules,  be  like  him  that  obeys.  For  which  is  greater,  he  who  is  attended 
at  table,  or  he  who  attends  ?  Is  it  not  he  who  is  attended  1  Yet  I  am 
among  you  as  the  servant.  You  are  they  who  have  continued  with  me 
in  my  trials.  And  I  assign  to  you  a  kingdom,  as  my  Father  has  assign- 
ed to  me  ;  that  you  may  eat  and  drink  at  my  table  in  my  kingdom,  and 
sit  on  thrones,  as  judges  of  the  twelve  tribes  of  Israel. 

Then  the  Lord  said,  Simon,  Simon,  behold,  the  adversary  has  assidu- 
ously sought  you  all,  that  he  might  sift  you  like  wheat ;  but  I  have 
prayed  for  thee,  that  thy  faith  may  not  entirely  fail ;  and  when  you  are 
restored,  estabUsh  these  your  brethren.  And  Peter  declared  to  him. 
Master,  I  am  prepared  to  accompany  thee,  even  to  prison,  and  to  death. 
But  Jesus  said,  I  aver  to  you,  Peter,  that  a  watch-trumpet  will  not  sound 
this  day,  till  you  have  thrice  denied'  that  you  know  me. 

Then  he  said  to  them,  When  I  sent  you  without  purse,  or  bag,  or 
shoes,  were  you  deficient  in  any  thing  1  And  they  rephed,  In  nothing. 
He  then  said  to  them.  Now,  however,  he  who  has  a  purse,  let  him  take 
it,  and  likewise  his  bag  ;  and  let  him  who  has  no  sword,  sell  his  mantle, 
and  purchase  one.  For  I  announce  to  you,  that  this  scripture.  He  was 
ranked  among  malefactors,  must  now  be  accomplished  in  me  :  for  the 
things  relating  to  me,  are  soon  to  be  fulfilled.  And  they  said.  Master, 
behold,  here  are  two  swords.  And  he  replied  to  them,  it  is  sufiicient. 
He  then  went  out,  and  repaired  as  he  was  accustomed,  to  the  mount  of 
Olives  ;  and  his  disciples  also  followed  him. 

Moreover,  having  arrived  at  the  place,  he  said  to  them,  pray  that  you 
may  not  yield  to  temptation.  And  he  retired  from  them  about  a  stone's 
throw,  and  kneehng  down  he  prayed,  saying.  Father,  O  that  thou 
wouldst  take  away  this  cup  from  me  ;  yet,  not  my  will,  but  thine  be 
done.  And  there  appeared  to  him  a  messenger  from  heaven,  fortifying 
him.  And  being  in  agony,  he  prayed  more  intensely ;  and  his  sweat 
resembled  great  drops  of  blood  falling  on  the  ground.  And  rising  from 
prayer,  he  came  to  the  disciples,  and  found  them  sleeping  through  sor- 
row, and  said  to  them.  Why  do  you  sleep  ?  Arise  and  pray,  lest  the 
trial  overpower  you. 

And  while  he  was  yet  speaking,  behold,  a  multitude,  and  he  who  was 
called  Judas,  one  of  the  twelve,  preceded  them,  and  approached  Jesus 
to  Idss  him.  And  Jesus  said  to  him,  Judas,  do  you  betray  the  Son  of 
Man  with  a  kiss  t  And  when  they  who  were  about  him,  perceived  what 
would  ensue,  they  said  to  him.  Master,  shall  we  strike  with  the  sword. 
And  one  of  them  struck  a  servant  of  the  high  priest,  and  cut  ofi"  his  right 
ear.  And  Jesus  said  in  return.  Desist  now  !  And  he  touched  his  ear, 
and  healed  him.     Jesus  then  observed  to  the  chief  priests,  and  officers 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  153 

of  the  temple-guard,  and  elders,  who  were  proceeding  to  assault  him. 
Do  you  advance  with  swords  and  clubs,  as  in  pursuit  of  a  robber  7 
When  I  was  with  you  every  day  in  the  temple,  you  oflEered  me  no  vio- 
lence :  but  this  is  your  hour,  and  the  power  of  darkness. 

They  then  arrested  him,  and  led  him  away,  and  brought  him  to  the 
house  of  the  high  priest.  And  Peter  followed  at  a  distance.  And  when 
they  had  kindled  a  fire  in  the  midst  of  the  hall,  and  were  seated  together, 
Peter  sat  down  among  them.  But  a  certain  maid-servant  perceived  him 
sitting  at  the  fire,  and  attentively  beholding  him,  declared.  This  man 
was  also  with  him.  He,  however,  denied  him,  saying.  Woman,  I  do  not 
know  him.  And  a  little  after,  another  saw  him  and  said,  You  are  also 
one  of  them.  But  Peter  alleged,  Man,  I  am  not.  And  subsequently, 
in  about  the  period  of  an  hour,  another  confidently  affirmed,  saying.  In 
fact,  this  person  was  likewise  with  him ;  for  he  also  is  a  Galilean.  And 
Peter  said,  Man,  I  know  nothing  of  your  assertion.  And  immediately, 
while  he  was  yet  speaking,  a  watch-trumpet  sounded.  And  the  Lord 
turned,  and  looked  upon  Peter.  And  Peter  recollected  the  declaration 
of  the  Lord,  how  he  said  to  him,  Before  a  watch-trumpet  shall  sound, 
you  will  thrice  deny  me.     And  he  went  out,  and  wept  bitterly. 

And  the  men,  who  had  Jesus  in  custody,  insulted  and  scourged  him. 
And  having  covered  his  eyes,  they  beat  him  in  the  face,  and  asked  him, 
saying.  Divine  who  it  is  that  struck  thee  1  And  much  other  abusive  lan- 
guage they  uttered  against  him. 

And  when  it  was  day,  the  elders  of  the  people,  with  the  chief  priests, 
and  scribes,  were  assembled,  who,  having  caused  him  to  be  conducted  to 
their  sanhedrin,  said  to  him.  If  thou  art  the  Messiah,  inform  us.  But 
he  said  to  them,  if  I  inform  you,  you  will  not  believe  :  and  if  I  also  in- 
terrogate, you  will  neither  respond  to  me,  nor  discharge  me.  From 
this  very  time,  the  Son  of  Man  will  sit  on  the  right  hand  of  the  power 
of  God.  And  they  all  said.  Thou  art  then  the  Son  of  God  ?  And  he 
observed  to  them,  I  am,  in  reply  to  your  inquiry.  Then  they  said,  what 
additional  testimony  do  we  require  1  since  we  ourselves  have  heard  this 
from  his  own  mouth. 

And  the  whole  multitude  of  them  arose,  and  led  Jesus  away  to  Pilate. 
And  they  began  to  accuse  him,  alleging.  We  found  this  person  seditious- 
ly inciting  this  nation,  and  forbidding  them  to  pay  tribute  to  Cesar,  as- 
serting that  he  himself  is  Messiah  the  King.  Then  Pilate  questioned 
him,  saying,  Thou  art  the  King  of  the  Jews  1  And  he  said  in  answer. 
You  correctly  aver.  Pilate  then  said  to  the  chief  priests  and  the  people, 
I  discover  no  criminality  in  this  man.  But  they  were  the  more  violent, 
declaring.  He  excites  sedition  among  the  people,  by  the  doctrine  which 
he  spreads  through  all  Judea,  from  Gahlee  where  he  began,  to  this  place. 
Now  Pilate,  hearing  of  Galilee,  inquired  if  the  man  was  a  Galilean. 
And  ascertaining  that  he  belonged  to  Herod's  jurisdiction,  he  sent  him 
to  Herod,  who  was  also  then  at  Jerusalem. 
20 


154  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

And  when  Herod  beheld  Jesus,  he  was  exceedingly  rejoiced  ;  indeed, 
he  had  for  a  long  time  been  desirous  to  see  him,  because  he  had  heard 
much  concerning  him  ;  and  he  hoped  to  witness  his  performance  of 
some  miracle.  And  he  examined  him  in  many  particulars,  but  Jesus 
made  him  no  reply.  Now  the  chief  priests  and  scribes,  who  were  pre- 
sent, eagerly  accused  him.  Then  Herod  with  his  soldiers  infamously 
treated  him,  and  having  in  derision  arrayed  him  in  a  resplendent  robe, 
remanded  him  to  Pilate.  And  on  the  same  day  Pilate  and  Herod  be- 
came mutual  friends  ;  for  they  had  previously  been  hostile  to  each  other. 

Then  Pilate,  having  summoned  the  chief  priests,  and  the  magistrates, 
and  the  people,  said  to  them.  You  have  brought  this  man  before  me*  as 
one  who  excites  the  people  to  revolt ;  yet,  having  examined  him  in  your 
presence,  I  have  not  found  him  guilty  of  any  of  those  crimes  of  which 
you  accuse  him.  Nor  indeed  has  Herod  ;  for  I  referred  you  to  him. 
Be  assured,  then,  that  he  has  done  nothing  to  deserve  death.  I  will 
therefore  chastise,  and  acquit  him.  (For  it  was  necessary  that  he  should 
release  to  them  one  prisoner  at  the  festival).  Then  they  all  exclaimed, 
with  one  accord.  Take  this  man  away,  and  release  to  us  Barabbas  : 
(who,  for  an  insurrection  made  in  the  city,  and  for  murder,  had  been 
thrown  into  prison.)  Upon  this  Pilate,  disposed  to  release  Jesus,  again 
addressed  them.  But  they  thus  vociferated,  Crucify,  crucify  him.  And 
he  said  to  them,  the  third  time.  Why,  what  evil  has  this  man  done  ?  I 
have  not  found  him  chargeable  with  any  capital  crime.  Having  there- 
fore scourged,  I  will  discharge  him.  But  they  were  urgent  with  loud 
voices,  requiring  that  he  might  be  crucified.  And  their  clamors,  and 
those  of  the  chief  priests  prevailed.  And  Pilate  adjudged,  that  it  should 
be  as  they  demanded.  And  he  released  the  one  whom  they  desired, 
who  for  sedition  and  murder  had  been  imprisoned  ;  but  he  surrendered 
Jesus  to  their  wiU. 

And  as  they  led  him  away,  they  seized  one  Simon,  a  Cyrenian,  com- 
ing from  the  country,  and  they  laid  the  cross  on  him,  that  he  might  car- 
ry it  after  Jesus.  Now  a  great  multitude  followed  him,  among  whom 
were  many  women,  who  bewailed  and  lamented  him.  But  Jesus,  turn- 
ing to  them,  said,  Daughters  of  Jerusalem,  weep  not  for  me,  but  weep 
for  yourselves,  and  for  your  children.  For,  behold,  the  days  are  com- 
ing, in  which  they  shall  declare,  Happy  are  the  sterile,  even  they  who 
never  had  offspring,  and  those  who  never  imparted  nourishment.  They 
shall  then  begin  to  say  to  the  mountains,  Fall  on  us,  and  to  the  hills, 
Cover  us.  For  if  these  things  are  done,  while  the  tree  is  green  ;  what 
will  be  done  when  it  is  dry  1  Now  two  others,  who  were  criminals,  were 
also  led  with  him,  to  be  executed. 

Moreover,  when  they  came  to  the  place  which  is  called  Calvary,  they 
there  nailed  him  to  the  cross,  and  tlie  malefactors  also,  one  at  his  right 
hand,  and  the  other  at  his  left.  Then  Jesus  said,  Father  forgive  them ; 
for  they  know  not  what  they  do.    And  they  parted  his  garments  by  lot. 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  155 

And  while  the  people  were  gazing,  even  their  rulers  joined  them  in  treat- 
ing him  with  the  utmost  contempt,  affirming,  He  save  others  !  let  him  save 
himself,  if  he  is  the  Messiah,  the  chosen  of  God.  And  the  soldiers  also 
derided  him,  coming  to  him,  and  offering  him  vinegar,  and  saying.  If 
thou  art  the  King  of  the  Jews,  save  thyself.  And  further,  there  was  an 
inscription  over  his  head,  in  Greek,  and  Roman,  and  Hebrew  letters. 
This  is  the  King  of  the  Jews. 

Now,  one  of  the  malefactors,  who  suffered  with  him,  reviled  him,  say- 
ing. If  thou  art  the  Messiah,  preserve  thyself  and  us.  But  the  other  in 
reply  reproved  him,  observing.  Do  you  not  fear  God,  when  you  ape  in 
the  same  condemnation'!  And  we,  indeed,  justly;  for  we  receive  what 
is  due  for  the  crimes  we  have  committed  ;  but  this  man  has  done  nothing 
amiss.  And  he  said  to  Jesus,  Remember  me.  Lord,  when  thou  comest 
into  thy  kingdom  !  And  Jesus  declared  to  him,  I  assure  you,  that  this 
day  you  shall  be  with  me  in  paradise. 

And  it  was  about  the  sixth  hour,  and  there  was  darkness  over  the 
whole  land,  till  the  ninth  hour.  And  the  sun  was  obscured,  and  the  veil 
of  the  temple  was  rent  in  the  midst.  And  Jesus,  exclaiming  with  a  loud 
voice,  said.  Father,  to  thy  hands  I  commit  my  soul ;  and  having  thus 
spoken,  he  expired.  Now  when  the  centurion  saw  what  was  done,  he 
praised  God,  asserting.  This  was,  assuredly,  a  righteous  man.  And  all 
the  people,  who  were  assembled  at  this  spectacle,  perceiving  what  was 
done,  returned,  beating  their  breasts.  And  all  his  acquaintance,  and 
the  women  who  had  followed  him  from  Galilee,  stood  at  a  distance,  wit- 
nessing these  things. 

And  further,  there  was  a  member  of  the  sanhedrin,  named  Joseph, 
from  Arimathea,  a  city  of  the  Jews,  a  good  and  just  man,  who  did  not 
concur  in  the  counsel  and  conduct  of  the  rest,  but  was  even  personally 
awaiting  the  reign  of  God.  This  man  went  to  Pilate,  and  solicited  the 
body  of  Jesus.  And  having  taken  it  down,  he  wrapped  it  in  fine  linen, 
and  placed  it  in  a  tomb  excavated  from  a  rock,  in  which  no  one  was 
ever  previously  laid.  And  it  was  the  day  of  preparation,  and  the  sabbath 
was  lighting  up.  And  moreover,  the  women  who  accompanied  him  from 
Gahlee,  followed,  and  viewed  the  sepulchre,  and  in  what  mode  his  body 
was  deposited.  And  they  returned,  and  provided  spices  and  balms  ;  and 
then  rested  on  the  sabbath,  according  to  the  commandment. 

But,  on  the  first  day  of  the  week,  very  early  in  the  morning,  they  went 
with  some  others  to  the  tomb,  carrying  the  aromatics,  which  they  had 
prepared.  Now  they  perceived,  that  the  stone  was  removed  from  the 
sepulchre.  And  having  entered,  they  found  not  the  body  of  the  Lord 
Jesus.  And  it  occurred,  as  they  were  in  great  anxiety  respecting  this, 
■behold,  two  men  stood  near  them,,  in  splendid  vestments.  And  whUe 
the  women  were  in  consternation,  and  inclining  their  faces  to  the  earth, 
the  men  ssdd  to  «?hem,,  IfVhy  do  you  seek  him  who  lives  among  the  dead  ? 
He  is  not  here,  but  is  risen ;  remember  how  he  addressed  you,  whe^  he 
was  yet  in  GaUlee,  saying.  The  Son  of  Man  must  be  surrendered  to  the 


156  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

hands  of  sinners,  and  be  crucified,  and  the  third  day  be  restored  to  life. 
And  they  recollected  his  words. 

And  having  returned  from  the  tomb,  they  communicated  all  these 
things  to  the  eleven,  and  to  all  the  rest.  Now  it  was  Mary  Magdalene, 
and  Joanna,  and  Mary  the  mother  of  James,  and  other  women  with 
them,  who  announced  these  things  to  the  apostles.  But  their  represen- 
tations appeared  to  them  hke  fictions,  and  they  discredited  them.  Pe- 
ter, however,  arose,  and  ran  to  the  sepulchre  ;  and  stooping  down,  saw 
nothing  there  but  the  linen  clothes.  And  he  departed,  with  an  inward 
surprise  at  the  occurrence. 

And,  behold,  two  of  bis  disciples  were  travelling,  on  that  very  day,  to  a 
village  called  Emmaus,  which  was  sixty  furlongs  from  Jerusalem.  And 
they  discoursed  together  concerning  all  these  things  which  had  happen- 
ed. And  it  occurred,  as  they  conversed  and  debated,  Jesus  himself  ap- 
proached and  accompanied  them.  But  their  eyes  were  so  restrained, 
that  they  did  not  recognise  him.  Then  he  said  to  them.  What  discus- 
sions are  these  that  occupy  you,  as  you  walk  1  and  why  are  you  deject- 
ed 1  And  one  of  them,  whose  name  was  Cleopas,  said  to  him  in  answer. 
Art  thou  the  only  stranger  in  Jerusalem,  who  is  unacquainted  with  the 
recent  events  at  that  place  1  And  Jesus  said  to  them.  What  events  1 
And  they  replied  to  him.  Those  repecting  Jesus  the  Nazarean,  a  man 
who  was  a  prophet,  powerM  in  action  and  eloquence,  before  God  and 
all  the  people  ;  and  how  the  chief  priests  and  our  rulers  surrendered  him 
to  be  condemned  to  death,  and  have  crucified  him.  But  we  hoped,  that 
he  would  be  the  person,  who  was  to  have  redeemed  Israel.  And  aside 
from  all  this,  to-day  being  the  third  day  since  these  things  happened, 
some  women  of  our  society  have  astonished  us  ;  for  having  gone  early 
to  the  sepulchre,  and  not  finding  his  body,  they  came,  stating,  that  they 
had  actually  witnessed  a  vision  of  angels,  who  afiirmed  that  he  was 
alive.  Therefore,  some  of  those  who  were  with  us,  went  to  the  sepul- 
chre, and  found  it  even  as  the  women  had  alleged  ;  but  they  did  not 
see  him. 

He  then  declared  to  them,  O  inconsiderate,  and  reluctant  of  heart  to 
believe  things,  all  of  which  have  been  predicted  by  the  prophets  !  Was 
it  not  essential  that  the  Messiah  should  thus  sufier,  and  enter  his  glory  1 
Then  commencing  with  Moses  and  proceeding  through  all  the  prophets, 
he  interpreted  to  them  all  the  passages  relative  to  himself.  And  as  they 
approached  the  village,  to  which  they  were  travelling,  he  indicated  as 
though  he  intended  to  go  fiirther.  But  they  urged  him,  saying.  Remain 
with  us  ;  for  it  is  near  evening,  and  the  day  declines.  So  he  went  in,  to 
continue  with  them.  And  it  happened,  as  he  was  seated  with  them  at 
the  table,  that  he  took  the  loaf,  and  having  blessed  God,  broke  it,  and 
distributed  to  them.  And  their  eyes  were  opened,  and  they  knew  him ; 
and  he  disappeared.  And  they  said  to  each  other,  did  not  our  hearts 
burn  within  us,  when  he  conversed  with  us  on  the  road,  and  while  he 
Unfolded  to  us  the  scriptures  ? 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  157 

And  arising  at  the  same  hour,  they  returned  to  Jerusalem,  and  found 
the  eleven,  and  the  rest  of  their  company  assembled,  who  said,  The  Lord 
is  assuredly  risen,  and  has  appeared  to  Simon.  The  two  disciples  also 
recounted  what  had  happened  on  the  road,  and  how  Jesus  was  discover- 
ed to  them  in  breaking  the  loaf. 

Now,  as  they  were  disclosing  these  things,  Jesus  stood  in  the  midst  of 
them,  and  said  to  them,  Peace  be  to  you  !  But  they  were  dismayed  and 
terrified,  suspecting  that  they  saw  a  spirit.  And  he  said  to  them.  Why 
are  you  alarmed  ?  and  why  do  suspicions  arise  in  your  hearts  1  View 
my  hands  and  my  feet ;  it  is  I  myself;  handle  me,  and  ascertain,  for  a 
spirit  has  not  flesh  and  bones,  as  you  perceive  me  to  have.  And  having 
said  this,  he  showed  them  his  hands  and  his  feet.  And  when  some  of 
them,  through  joy,  yet  disbelieved,  and  were  astonished,  he  said  to  them, 
have  you  any  food  here  1  Then  they  gave  him  part  of  a  broiled  fish,  and 
of  a  honey-comb,  which  he  received  and  did  eat  in  their  presence.  And 
he  said  to  them,  These  are  the  very  words  which  I  communicated  to  you, 
while  I  was  yet  among  you,  that  all  things  which  are  written  in  the  law 
of  Moses,  and  in  the  prophets,  particularly  in  the  psalms,  respecting  me, 
should  be  accomplished.  At  the  same  time,  he  fuUy  opened  their  minds 
to  comprehend  the  scriptures  ;  and  he  said  to  them.  Thus  it  is  written, 
and  agreeably  to  this,  it  was  necessary  that  the  Messiah  should  suffer, 
and  rise  from  the  dead  on  the  third  day ;  and  in  his  name,  reformation 
and  the  forgiveness  of  sins  must  be  proclaimed  to  all  nations,  commenc- 
ing at  Jerusalem.  And  do  you  bear  testimony  to  these  things.  And,  be- 
hold, I  send  to  you  that  which  my  Father  has  promised ;  but  remain  ye 
in  the  city,  till  you  are  invested  with  power  from  above. 

Then  he  conducted  them  as  far  as  Bethany,  and  raising  his  hands,  he 
blessed  them.  And  it  occurred,  as  he  was  blessing  them,  that  he  was 
separated  from  them,  and  transferred  to  heaven.  And  they  worshipped 
him,  and  returned  to  Jerusalem  with  great  joy  ;  and  were  constantly  in 
the  temple,  praising  and  blessing  God. 


THE    HISTORY    BY    JOHN. 

In  the  beginning  existed  the  Word,  and  the  Word  was  with  God,  and 
the  Word  was  God-  This  was  in  the  commencement  with  God.  All 
things  were  formed  by  it,  and  without  it  not  even  one  thing  was  made, 
which  has  existed.  In  it  was  Ufe,  and  the  life  was  the  Ught  of  men. 
And  the  light  shone  in  darkness,  and  the  darkness  did  not  overpower  it. 

A  man  named  John  was  sent  from  God.  This  man  appeared  as  a 
witness,  to  certify  concerning  the  light,  that  by  his  means  all  might 
believe.  He  was  not  himself  the  light,  but  came  to  testify  respecting 
the  light.  The  true  light  was  he  who,  entering  the  world,  illuminates 
every  man. 

He  was  in  the  world,  and  the  world  was  made  by  him  ;  yet  the  world 
did  not  acknowledge  him.  He  came  to  his  own  territories ;  but  his  own 
people  did  not  receive  him.  To  as  many,  however,  as  received  him, 
and  confided  in  his  name,  he  imparted  the  privilege  of  being  the  chil- 
dren of  God ;  who  proceeded  not  from  ancestry,  nor  from  the  human 
constitution,  nor  from  the  will  of  man,  but  from  God. 

And  the  Word  was  constituted  man,  and  resided  among  us,  (and  we 
contemplated  his  glory,  such  a  glory  as  became  the  only  produced  by 
the  Father),  replete  with  grace  and  truth.  (It  was  respecting  him  that 
John  testified,  when  he  exclaimed.  This  is  he  of  whonj  I  affirmed.  He 
who  succeeds  me  is  preferred  to  me  ;  for  he  was  before  me).  And  from 
his  abundance  all  of  us  have  received,  even  more  abundant  grace ;  since 
the  law  was  given  by  Moses,  but  the  grace  and  the  truth  came  through 
Jesus  Christ.  No  man  ever  saw  God ;  it  is  the  only  produced  Son,  that 
is  in  the  bosom  of  the  Father,  who  has  revealed  him. 

Now  this  is  the  testimony  of  John.  When  the  Jews  sent  priests  and 
Levites  from  Jerusalem  to  inquire  of  him.  Who  art  thou  1  he  admitted, 
and  did  not  deny ;  but  openly  acknowledged,  I  am  not  the  Messiah. 
And  they  asked  him,  Who  then  1  Art  thou  Elijah  1  And  he  declared,  I 
am  not.  Art  thou  the  Prophet  1  And  he  replied.  No.  They  therefore 
said  to  him,  Who  art  thou  ?  that  we  may  return  an  answer  to  those 
who  sent  us.  What  dost  thou  say  concerning  thyself  7  He  said,  I  am 
he  whose  voice  proclaims  in  the  wilderness,  Malie  straight  the  way  of 
the  Lord,  as  IsEiiah  the  prophet  announced.  Now  the  messengers  were 
of  the  pharisees.  And  they  interrogated  him,  and  said  to  him,  Why 
then  dost  thou  baptize,  since  thou  art  neither  the  Messiah,  nor  Elijah, 
nor  the  Prophet  1  John  answered  them,  saying,  I  baptize  with  water  ; 
but  there  dwells  one  among  you,  whom  you  know  not ; '  this  is  he,  who 
succeeds  me,  and  was  before  me,  the  string  of  whose  shoe  I  am  not 
worthy  to  unloose.  These  things  occurred  at  Bethany,  on  the  Jordan, 
where  John  was  baptizing. 


JOHN'S    HISTORY.  159 

The  next  day  John  perceives  Jesus  approaching  him,  and  declares, 
Behold  the  Lamb  of  God,  who  takes  away  the  sin  of  the  world  !  This 
is  he  of  whom  I  said,  After  me  comes  a  man  who  is  preferred  to  me ; 
for  he  was  before  me.  And  I  did  not  know  him  ;  yet  for  this  purpose, 
that  he  may  be  discovered  to  Israel,  I  am  come  baptizing  with  water. 
And  John  thus  testified,  I  saw  the  Spirit  descending  as  a  dove  from 
heaven,  and  it  remained  on  him.  And  I  did  not  know  him ;  but  he, 
who  sent  me  to  baptize  with  water,  said  to  me,  On  whom  thou  shalt  see 
the  Spirit  descending  and  remaining  on  him,  this  is  he  who  baptizes 
with  the  Holy  Spirit.  And  I  saw,  and  have  testified,  that  this  is  the 
Son  of  God. 

Moreover,  on  the  subsequent  day,  John,  being  with  two  of  his  disci- 
ples, attentively  observed  Jesus  as  he  passed,  and  said.  Behold  the 
Lamb  of  God  !  And  when  the  two  disciples  heard  him  speak,  they  fol- 
lowed Jesus.  And  Jesus  having  turned,  and  seen  them  following,  says 
to  them,  What  do  you  seek  1  They  said  to  him.  Rabbi,  (which  signifies 
teacher),  where  dost  thou  abide  1  He  replies  to  them.  Come  and  see. 
They  went  and  saw  where  he  dwelt,  Eind  continued  with  him  that  day. 
It  was  about  the  tenth  hour.  One  of  the  two  who  had  heard  the  testi- 
mony given  by  John,  and  had  followed  Jesus,  was  Andrew,  Simon 
Peter's  brother.  He  previously  met  his  own  brother  Simon,  and  in- 
formed him.  We  have  found  the  Messiah,  (a  name  equivalent  to  Christ). 
And  he  conducted  him  to  Jesus.  Then  Jesus,  steadfastly  surveying  him, 
declared.  Thou  art  Simon,  the  son  of  Jonas ;  thou  shalt  be  denominated 
Cephas,  which  denotes  the  same  as  Peter. 

On  the  following  day,  Jesus  determined  to  depart  thence  to  Galilee, 
and  meeting  Philip,  said  to  him.  Follow  me.  Now  Philip  was  from 
Bethsaida,  the  city  of  Andrew  and  Peter.  Philip  meets  Nathaniel,  and 
observes  to  him,  We  have  found  the  person  described  by  Moses  in  the 
law,  and  by  the  prophets, — Jesus,  the  son  of  Joseph,  from  Nazareth. 
And  Nathaniel  said  to  him,  Can  any  good  thing  proceed  from  Naza- 
reth ?  Philip  replies  to  him.  Come  and  see.  Jesus  saw  Nathaniel 
coming  towards  him,  and  thus  characterized  him.  Behold  a  genuine 
Israelite,  in  whom  there  is  no  disguise !  Nathaniel  says  to  him.  How 
dost  thou  know  me  ?  Jesus  replied  and  said  to  him,  Before  Philip  called 
you,  as  you  was  under  the  fig-tree,  I  saw  you.  Nathaniel,  in  return, 
then  declared  to  him.  Teacher,  thou  art  the  Son  of  God  ;  thou  art  the 
King  of  Israel.  Jesus  said  to  him  in  reply.  You  believe,  because  I 
afiirmed  to  you,  that  I  beheld  you  under  the  fig-tree :  you  shall  see 
greater  things  than  this.  And  he  further  said  to  him.  In  absolute  truth, 
I  aver  to  you,  that  from  this  period,  you  shall  see  heaven  opened,  and 
the  messengers  of  God  ascending  from  the  Son  of  Man,  and  descending 
to  him. 

And  three  days  after,  there  was  a  marriage  in  Cana  of  GaUlee ;  and 
the  mother  of  Jesus  was  there.  And  moreover,  Jesus  and  his  disciples 
also  were  invited  to  the  marriage.    And  there  being  a  deficiency  of 


160  APOSTOLIC    PRODUCTIONS. 

wine,  the  mother  of  Jesus  said  to  him,  They  have  no  wine.  Jesus  said 
to  her,  O  woman,  what  hast  thou  to  do  with  me  1  My  time  is  not  yet 
arrived.  His  mother  said  to  the  servants.  Do  whatever  he  commands 
you.  Further,  six  water-jars  of  stone  were  there  arranged,  in  conformity 
to  the  Jewish  custom  of  purification,  each  containing  two  or  three  mea- 
sures. Jesus  says  to  them.  Fill  the  jars  with  water.  And  they  entirely 
filled  them.  And  he  says  to  them.  Draw  now,  and  convey  to  the  director 
of  the  festival.  And  they  carried  some.  And  when  the  director  of  the 
feast  had  tasted  this  water,  that  had  been  made  wine,  and  did  not  know 
whence  it  came,  (though  the  servants  who  drew  the  water  knew),  he 
observed,  addressing  the  bridegroom.  Every  man  at  first  offers  good 
wine  to  his  guests  ;  and  when  their  thirst  is  allayed,  that  which  is  in- 
ferior ;  but  you  have  reserved  the  good  wine  till  now.  This  commence- 
ment of  miracles  Jesus  performed  in  Cana  of  Galilee,  and  displayed  his 
glory ;  and  his  disciples  believed  in  him. 

After  this,  he,  and  his  mother,  and  his  brothers,  and  his  disciples, 
went  down  to  Capernaum ;  but  they  did  not  remain  there  many  days. 

And  the  passover  of  the  Jews  was  near,  and  Jesus  went  up  to  Jeru- 
salem. And  he  found  the  bankers  stationed  in  the  temple,  and  people 
who  sold  oxen,  and  sheep,  and  doves.  And  having  made  a  scourge  of 
rushes,  he  drove  them  all  from  the  temple,  with  the  sheep,  and  the  cat- 
tle, and  dispersed  the  money  of  the  bankers,  and  subverted  the  tables  ; 
and  said  to  those  who  sold  doves.  Remove  these  things  from  here ;  and 
make  not  my  Father's  sanctuary  a  house  of  trafiic.  And  his  disciples 
recollected  these  words  of  scripture,  My  zeal  for  thy  house  con- 
sumes me. 

And  the  Jews  then  said  to  him  in  return,  By  what  miracle  dost  thou 
show  us  thy  title  to  do  these  things  1  Jesus  answered  and  said  to  them. 
Demolish  this  temple,  and  in  three  days  I  will  rebuild  it.  The  Jews 
then  stated,  The  erection  of  this  temple  occupied  forty-six_years,  and 
wilt  thou  erect  it  in  three  days  1  He  referred,  however,  to  his  body  as 
the  temple.  When  therefore  he  was  risen  from  the  dead,  his  disciples 
remembered  that  he  had  said  this  ;  and  they  comprehended  the  scrip- 
ture, and  the  word  which  Jesus  had  spoken. 

Now  while  he  was  in  Jerusalem,  during  the  period  of  the  passover, 
many  believed  in  his  name,  when  they  saw  the  miracles  which  he  per- 
formed. But  Jesus  did  not  trust  himself  to  them,  because  he  knew  them 
all ;  and  required  not  that  others  should  testify  respecting  man  ;  for  he 
was  aware  what  was  in  man. 

Moreover,  there  was  a  pharisee,  whose  name  was  Nicodemus,  a  sena- 
tor of  the  Jews.  He  came  to  Jesus  by  night,  and  said  to  him.  Teacher, 
we  know  that  thou  art  an  instructer  emanated  from  God  ;  for  no  one  can 
achieve  these  miracles  which  thou  performest,  unless  God  be  with  him. 
Jesus  answered  and  said  to  him.  Indeed,  I  assure  you,  that  .except  a 
man  be  reproduced,  he  cannot  realize  the  reign  of  God.  Nicodemus 
says  to  him,  How  can  a  man  be  produced  when  he  is  mature  1   Can  he 


JOHN'S    HISTORY.  161 

again  pass  into  a  state  of  embryo,  and  be  produced  1  Jesus  replied,  I 
most  assuredly  declare  to  you,  that  unless  a  man  be  produced  of  water 
and  of  the  Spirit,  he  cannot  enter  the  kingdom  of  God.  That  which  is 
produced  from  the  body,  is  natural  life,  and  that  which  is  produced 
from  the  Spirit,  is  spiritual  life.  Be  not  surprised  that  I  announced  to 
thee,  ye  must  be  reproduced.  The  wind  blows  where  it  will,  and  thou 
hearest  the  sound  of  it,  but  canst  not  ascertain  whence  it  comes,  or 
where  it  goes  ;  thus  it  is  with  every  one  who  is  produced  by  the  Spirit. 
And  Nicodemus  said  to  him  in  answer.  How  can  these  things  be  1  Jesus 
replied  and  said.  Art  thou  the  teacher  of  Israel,  and  knowest  not  these 
things  1  In  truth,  I  solemnly  allege  to  thee.  We  announce  what  we 
know,  and  testify  that  which  we  have  seen,  and  yet  ye  receive  not  our 
testimony.  If  I  have  apprised  you  of  terrestrial  things,  and  ye  do  not 
comprehend,  how  will  ye  understand,  when  I  inform  you  of  celestial 
things  1  Now  no  one  ascends  to  heaven,  but  he  who  descended  from 
heaven,  the  Son  of  Man,  whose  abode  is  heaven.  And  as  Moses  ele- 
vated the  serpent  in  the  wilderness,  so  must  the  Son  of  Man  be  ele- 
vated ;  that  whoever  relies  upon  him,  may  not  perish,  but  obtain  eter- 
nal life :  for  God  has  so  loved  the  world,  as  to  give  his  only  produced 
Son,  that  whoever  trusts  in  him  may  not  perish,  but  obtain  everlasting 
life.  For  God  has  sent  his  Son  into  the  world,  not  to  condemn  the 
world,  but  that  the  world  may  be  saved  by  him.  He  who  believes  in 
him  will  not  be  condemned  ;  but  he  who  believes  not,  is  already  con- 
demned, because  he  has  not  confided  in  the  name  of  the  only  produced 
Son  of  God.  Now  this  is  the  ground  of  condemnation,  that  light  has 
entered  the  world,  and  men  have  preferred  the  darkness  to  the  light, 
because  their  deeds  were  evil.  For  every  one  who  does  evil,  hates  the 
light,  and  shuns  it,  lest  his  deeds  should  be  detected.  But  he  who  main- 
tains integrity,  comes  to  the  light,  that  it  may  be  manifested  that  his 
actions  are  agreeable  to  God. 

After  this,  Jesus  and  his  disciples  proceeded  to  the  country  of  Judea ; 
and  he  continued  there  with  them  baptizing.  And  John  also  was  bap- 
tizing at  Enon,  near  Salem,  as  much  water  was  there  ;  and  many  per- 
sons came  and  were  baptized.  For  John  was  not  yet  thrown  into 
prison. 

A  dispute  then  occurred,  between  some  of  the  disciples  of  John  and 
a  certain  Jew,  about  purification.  And  they  went  to  John,  and  said  to 
him.  Teacher,  he  who  was  with  thee  near  the  Jordan,  of  whom  thou 
gavest  so  great  a  character,  he  also  baptizes,  and  the  people  resort  to 
him.  John  replied  and  said,  A  man  can  have  no  power,  but  what  he 
derives  from  heaven.  You  are  personally  witnesses  for  me,  that  I  alleg- 
ed, I  am  not  the  Messiah  ;  but  am  sent  before  him.  He  who  possesses 
the  bride  is  the  bridegroom  ;  but  the  friend  of  the  bridegroom,  who 
assists  him,  greatly  rejoices  to  hear  the  bridegroom's  voice  :  this  my  joy 
is  therefore  consummated.  He  must  increase,  while  I  diminish.  He, 
who  comes  from  above,  is  superior  to  all.     He  who  is  from  the  earth  is 

21 


162  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

earthly,  and  speaks  as  being  from  the  earth.  He  who  proceeds  from 
heaven  transcends  all.  And  he  testifies  to  that  which  he  has  seen  and 
heard ;  jet  his  testimony  is  not  received.  He,  who  has  received  his 
testimony,  has  confirmed,  as  it  were,  by  his  seal,  that  God  is  true.  For 
he  whom  God  has  commissioned,  relates  the  words  of  God  ;  for  to  him 
God  imparts  not  the  Spirit  by  limitation.  The  Father  loves  the  Son, 
and  has  entrusted  all  things  in  his  hand.  He,  who  believes  on  the  Son, 
has  eternal  life ;  whereas,  he  who  disobeys  the  Son,  will  not  see  life ; 
but  the  displeasure  of  God  continues  towards  him. 

As  soon  as  Jesus  knew,  that  the  pharisees  were  informed,  that  he  had 
made  more  disciples,  and  baptized  more  disciples  than  John,  (though  it 
was  not  Jesus  himself,  who  was  accustomed  to  baptize,  but  his  disciples), 
he  left  Judea,  and  departed  again  to  Galilee. 

And  it  was  necessary  for  him  to  pass  through  Samaria.  He  therefore 
came  to  a  Samaritan  city  called  Sychar,  near  the  heritage,  which  Jacob 
gave  to  his  son  Joseph.  Now  Jacob's  well  was  there.  And  Jesus,  be- 
ing wearied  with  the  journey,  accordingly  sat  down  by  the  well,  it  being 
about  the  sixth  hour.  A  woman  of  Samaria  came  to  draw  water.  Jesus 
says  to  her.  Permit  me  to  drink.  (For  his  disciples  were  gone  to  the 
city  to  buy  food).  The  Samaritan  woman  then  observes  to  him.  How 
dost  thou,  being  a  Jew,  request  drink  of  me,  who  am  a  Samaritan  1  (for 
the  Jews  have  no  friendly  intercourse  with  the  Samaritans).  Jesus  re- 
marked to  her  in  reply.  If  you  had  known  the  bounty  of  God,  Etnd  who 
it  is  that  says  to  you.  Permit  me  to  drink,  you  would  certainly  have  re- 
quested him,  and  he  would  have  given  you  living  water.  The  woman 
says  to  him.  Sir,  thou  hast  no  bucket,  and  the  well  is  deep  ;  whence 
hast  thou  then  this  living  water  ?  Art  thou  greater  than  our  father 
Jacob  who  gave  us  this  well,  and  drank  of  it  himself,  with  his  children, 
and  his  cattle  ?  Jesus  answered  and  said  to  her,  Whoever  drinks  of 
this  water,  he  will  thirst  again  ;  but  he,  who  drinks  of  the  water  that  I 
shall  give  him,  will  never  thirst  more  ;  but  the  water,  that  I  shall  give 
him,  will  become  vidthin  him  a  fountain,  flowing  out  to  everlasting  life. 
The  woman  says  to  him,  Sir,  give  me  this  water,  that  I  may  never  be 
thirsty,  nor  come  here  to  draw.  Jesus  says  to  her,  Go,  call  your  hus- 
band, and  return.  The  woman  afllirmed  in  answer,  I  have  no  husband. 
Jesus  declares  to  her,  you  have  correctly  asserted,  I  have  no  husband. 
For  you  have  had  five  husbands  ;  and  he  whom  you  now  claim,  is  not 
your  husband  ;  in  this  you  have  spoken  the  truth.  The  woman  observes 
to  him.  Sir,  I  perceive  that  thou  art  a  prophet.  Our  fathers  worshipped 
on  this  mountain ;  but  do  ye  say  that  in  Jerusalem  is  the  place  where 
men  ought  to  worship  1  Jesus  says  to  her.  Woman,  believe  me,  the 
hour  is  coming,  when  ye  will  neither  worship  the  Father  on  this  moun- 
tain, nor  at  Jerusalem.  Ye  are  not  aware  what  you  worship  ;  we  know 
what  we  worship  :  for  salvation  is  from  the  Jews.  But  the  hour  ap- 
proaches, and  is  now  present,  when  the  real  worshippers  shall  adore  the 
Father  in  spirit  and  in  truth  ;  for  the  Father  seeks  such  to  adore  him. 


JOHN'S  HISTORY.  163 

God  is  a  Spirit ;  and  they  who  worship  him,  ought  to  worship  in  spirit 
and  in  truth.  The  woman  says  to  him,  I  know  that  the  Messiah,  (that 
is,  the  Christ),  is  coming  :  and  when  he  is  come,  he  will  teach  us  all 
things.     Jesus  says  to  her,  I  who  address  you  am  he. 

And  at  this  time  his  disciples  came,  and  were  surprised  that  he  con- 
versed with  the  woman  ;  yet  none  said,  what  dost  thou  seek  1  or,  why 
dost  thou  converse  with  her  1  The  woman  then  left  her  pitcher,  and 
having  returned  to  the  city,  said  to  the  people,  Come,  see  a  man  who 
has  told  me  all  that  ever  I  did  ;  is  this  the  Messiah  ?  They  then  de- 
parted from  the  city,  and  were  coming  to  him. 

And  in  the  mean  time,  his  disciples  entreated  him,  saying.  Master, 
eat.  But  he  said  to  them,  I  have  food  to  eat,  of  which  you  are  not  ap- 
prised. His  disciples,  therefore,  said  to  each  other.  Has  any  one  brought 
him  food  to  eat.  Jesus  says  to  them.  My  food  is  to  do  the  will  of  him 
who  sent  me,  and  to  finish  his  work.  Do  you  not  say,  that  there  are 
yet  four  months  to  precede  harvest.  Behold,  I  say  to  you,  Lift  up  your 
eyes,  and  survey  the  fields  ;  for  they  are  suflSciently  white  for  harvest. 
The  reaper  receives  compensation,  and  gathers  fruit  to  eternal  life  ;  that 
he  who  sows,  and  he  who  reaps,  may  unitedly  rejoice.  For  in  this  is 
that  proverb  verified,  One  is  the  sower,  and  another  is  the  reaper.  I 
sent  you  away,  that  you  might  reap  that  on  which  you  bestowed  no  la- 
bor :  others  toiled,  and  you  have  participated  in  the  harvest. 

Now  many  of  the  Samaritans  from  that  city  believed  in  him,  on  the 
testimony  of  the  woman,  who  declared.  He  told  me  all  that  ever  I 
did.  When  therefore  the  Samaritans  came  to  him,  they  implored  him 
to  continue  with  them  ;  and  he  remained  there  two  days.  And  many 
more  believed,  on  account  of  his  own  discourse  ;  and  said  to  the  woman. 
We  now  believe,  not  in  consequence  of  your  declaration  ;  for  we  our- 
selves have  heard  him,  and  know  that  this  is  really  the  Messiah,  the 
Saviour  of  the  world. 

Moreover,  after  those  two  days  he  departed  thence,  and  went  into 
Galilee,  [but  not  to  Nazareth]  ;  for  Jesus  himself  had  declared,  that  a 
prophet  is  not  regarded  in  his  own  country.  When  therefore  he  had 
arrived  in  Galilee,  he  was  well  received  by  the  GaUleans,  who  had  seen 
all  that  he  did  at  Jerusalem  during  the  festival ;  for  they  Ukewise  attend- 
ed the  festival. 

Then  Jesus  returned  to  Cana  of  Galilee,  where  he  had  changed  the 
water  into  wine.  And  there  was  a  certain  oflicer  of  the  court,  whose 
son  was  sick  at  Capernaum  ;  who,  having  heard  that  Jesus  had  come 
from  Judea  to  Galilee,  went  to  him,  and  entreated  him  that  he  would  go 
down  and  heal  his  son  ;  for  he  was  at  the  point  of  death.  Jesus  then 
observed  to  him.  Unless  ye  witness  signs  and  prodigies,  ye  will  not  by 
any  means  believe.  The  officer  says  to  him.  Sir,  come  down  before  my 
child  expires.  Jesus  says  to  him.  Retire,  your  son  is  recovered.  And 
the  man  confided  in  the  declaration  which  Jesus  had  made  to  him,  and 
withdrew.     Now  as  he  was  returning,  his  servants  met  him,  and  thus 


-164  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

informed  him,  Your  son  is  well.  He  then  inquired  of  them  the  hour 
when  he  was  restored.  And  they  said  to  him,  Yesterday,  at  the  seventh 
hour,  the  fever  left  him.  The  father  therefore  knew  that  this  was  the 
very  time,  when  Jesus  said  to  him.  Your  son  is  recovered  ;  and  he  and 
all  his  family  believed.  This  second  miracle  Jesus  performed,  after 
returning  from  Judea  to  Galilee. 

After  this,  there  was  a  Jewish  festival ;  and  Jesus  went  up  to  Jeru- 
salem. Now  there  is  at  Jerusalem,  near  the  sheep-gate,  a  bath,  which 
is  called,  in  the  Hebrew  language,  Bethesda,  having  five  covered  walks. 
In  these  were  placed  a  great  number  of  sick  persons  ;  blind,  lame, 
withered ;  awaiting  the  commotion  of  the  water.  For  at  a  certain 
period,  a  messenger  descended  into  the  bath,  and  agitated  the  water  : 
the  first,  therefore,  who  entered  after  the  agitation  of  the  water,  was 
healed  of  whatever  disease  he  had. 

Now  a  man  was  there,  who  had  been  infirm  for  thirty-eight  years. 
Jesus  seeing  him  extended,  and  knowing  that  he  had  thus  remained  for 
a  long  time,  says  to  him.  Do  you  desire  to  be  healed  1  The  disabled 
man  replied  to  him.  Sir,  I  have  no  man,  when  the  water  is  moved,  to 
put  me  into  the  bath  ;  but  while  I  am  coming,  another  descends  before 
me.  Jesus  says  to  him,  Arise,  take  up  your  couch,  and  walk.  And 
the  man  was  immediately  restored,  and  took  up  his  couch,  and  walked. 

Now  that  day  was  the  sabbath.  The  Jews,  therefore,  said  to  him 
who  was  healed,  This  is  the  sabbath  ;  it  is  not  lawful  for  you  to  carry 
the  couch.  He  answered  them.  The  person  who  restored  me,  even  he 
said  to  me,  Take  up  your  couch,  and  walk.  They  then  asked  him,  Who 
is  the  man  that  directed  you  to  take  up  your  couch  and  walk  ?  But  he 
that  had  been  healed,  did  not  know  who  it  was  ;  for  Jesus  had  with- 
drawn himself,  there  being  a  crowd  in  the  place. 

Jesus  afterwards  met  him  in  the  temple,  and  said  to  him.  Behold,  you 
are  recovered  ;  sin  no  more,  lest  something  worse  befall  you.  The  man 
departed,  and  informed  the  Jews  that  it  was  Jesus,  who  had  restored  him 
to  health.  And  the  Jews  persecuted  Jesus  on  this  account,  and  en- 
deavored to  destroy  him,  because  he  used  to  do  these  things  on  the 
sabbath. 

But  Jesus  remarked  to  them,  as  my  Father  works  till  now,  I  also 
work.  For  this  reason  the  Jews  sought  the  more  to  kill  him,  because 
he  had  not  only  violated  the  sabbath,  but  also  alleged  that  God  was  his 
own  Father,  making  himself  equal  with  God.  Jesus  then  replied  and 
said  to  them.  In  truth,  I  assure  you,  The  Son  can  do  nothing  of  himself, 
except  what  he  sees  the  Father  doing  :  but  those  things  which  he  per- 
forms, even  these  likewise  does  the  Son  perform.  For  the  Father  loves 
the  Son,  and  shows  him  all  that  he  himself  does :  indeed,  he  will  exhibit 
to  him  greater  operations  than  these,  even  such  as  will  astonish  you. 
For  as  the  Father  raises  the  dead,  and  reanimates  them  ;  even  thus  the 
Son  reanimates  whom  he  pleases.  For  the  Father  judges  no  one,  but 
has  committed  all  judgment  to  the  Son  ;  that  all  might  honour  the  Son, 


JOHN'S   HISTORY.  165 

even  as  they  honor  the  Father.  He,  who  reverences  not  the  Son,  does 
not  reverence  the  Father  who  sent  him.  In  absolute  certainty,  I  an- 
nounce to  you,  He  who  hears  my  doctrine,  and  believes  him  who  sent 
me,  has  everlasting  life,  and  shall  not  incur  condemnation,  having  pass- 
ed from  death  to  life.  I  most  solemnly  aver  to  you,  that  the  period 
arrives,  and  is  now  present,  when  the  dead  will  hear  the  voice  of  the 
Son  of  God  ;  and  they  who  listen,  will  Uve.  For,  as  the  Father  has  hfe 
in  himself,  so  he  has  also  endowed  the  Son,  that  he  should  have  life  in 
himself;  and  he  has  given  him  authority  also  to  execute  judgment,  be- 
cause he  is  a  Son  of  Man.  Be  not  astonished  at  this  ;  for  the  time  is 
coming,  when  all,  who  are  in  the  graves,  will  hear  his  voice  ;  and  will 
come  forth  ;  they  who  have  done  good,  to  the  renewed  existence  of  life ; 
but  they  who  have  done  evil,  to  the  future  state  of  judgment.  I  cannot 
of  myself  do  any  thing  ;  as  I  hear,  I  judge  ;  and  my  judgment  is  just ; 
because  I  do  not  seek  my  own  purpose,  but  the  purpose  of  the  Father, 
who  sent  me. 

If  I  testify  relative  to  myself,  my  testimony  is  not  regarded.  There 
is  another,  who  testifies  respecting  me  ;  and  I  know  that  the  testimony, 
which  he  gives  concerning  me,  is  conclusive.  You  sent  to  John,  and 
he  testified  to  the  truth.  But  I  have  no  necessity  for  human  testimony ; 
I  only  urge  this  for  your  salvation.  He  was  the  hghted  and  resplendent 
lamp ;  and  you  were  disposed,  for  a  period,  greatly  to  rejoice  in  his 
light. 

I  have,  moreover,  a  testimony  greater  than  that  of  John ;  for  the 
works  which  the  Father  has  assigned  me  to  accompUsh,  even  these 
works  which  I  perform,  testify  for  me,  that  the  Father  has  sent  me. 
Indeed,  the  Father,  who  sent  me,  has  testified  concerning  me ;  (though 
you  have  not,  at  any  time,  either  heard  his  voice,  or  seen  his  form)  ; 
but  you  have  forgotten  his  declaration,  since  you  do  not  beUeve  him, 
whom  he  has  commissioned. 

You  assiduously  search  the  scriptures,  because  you  think  to  attain,  by 
their  means,  eternal  life  ;  now  these  also  bear  testimony  respecting  me  ; 
and  yet,  you  will  not  come  to  me,  that  you  may  obtain  life.  I  desire 
not  honor  from  men.  But  I  know  you,  that  you  are  strangers  to  the 
love  of  God.  I  have  come  in  the  name  of  my  Father,  but  you  do  not 
receive  me ;  if  another  should  come  in  liis  own  name,  you  would  receive 
him.  How  can  you  believe,  while  you  are  receiving  applause  from  each 
other,  regardless  of  that  praise,  which  proceeds  only  from  God  1  Do  not 
suppose,  that  I  [only]  am  he,  who  wiU  accuse  you  to  the  Father.  Mo- 
ses, in  whom  you  trust,  is  your  accuser.  For  if  you  had  believed  Moses, 
you  would  have  believed  me  ;  because  he  wrote  concerning  me.  But  if 
you  do  not  confide  in  his  writings,  how  will  you  confide  in  my  words  ? 

At  a  subsequent  period,  Jesus  passed  over  the  sea  of  Galilee,  or  of 
Tiberias.  And  many  people  followed  him,  because  they  had  seen  his 
miracles,  which  he  performed  on  those,  who  were  diseased.     And  Jesus 


166  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

ascended  a  mountain,  and  there  sat  down  with  his  disciples.  Now  the 
Jewish  festival  of  the  passover  was  near. 

Jesus  then  lifted  up  his  eyes,  and  perceiving  that  a  great  multitude  was 
approaching  him,  he  says  to  Phihp,  Where  may  we  purchase  bread,  to 
feed  these  people  1  (He  said  this,  however,  to  try  him,  for  he  knew  himself 
what  he  was  to  do).  Philip  repUed  to  him.  Bread,  to  the  value  of  two 
hundred  denarii,  is  not  sufficient  for  them,  even  to  affi)rd  every  one  a 
little.  One  of  his  disciples,  Andrew,  the  brother  of  Simon  Peter,  says 
to  him,  there  is  a  lad  here,  who  has  five  barley  loaves,  and  two  small 
fishes  ;  but  what  are  these  among  so  many  1  Jesus,  however,  said, 
Cause  the  men  to  be  seated.  (Now  there  was  much  grass  in  the  place). 
The  men  accordingly  sat  down,  about  five  thousand  in  number.  Then 
Jesus  took  the  loaves,  and  having  ofiiered  thanks,  he  distributed  to  the 
disciples,  and  the  disciples  to  those  who  had  reclined  ;  and  he  gave  them 
likewise  of  the  fishes  as  much  as  they  wished.  Now,  when  they  were 
satisfied,  he  says  to  his  disciples.  Gather  the  fragments  which  remain,  that 
nothing  be  lost.  They,  therefore,  collected  them,  and  with  the  frag- 
ments, which  the  people  who  were  fed  had  left,  of  the  five  barley  loaves, 
they  filled  twelve  baskets.  When  those  men,  therefore,  had  seen  the 
miracle,  which  Jesus  had  wrought,  they  declared.  This  is  certainly  the 
Prophet,  who  was  to  come  into  the  world.  Then  Jesus,  knowing  that 
they  intended  to  come  and  seize  him,  that  they  might  constitute  him  a 
king,  again  withdrew,  entirely  alone,  to  a  mountain. 

And  when  evening  arrived,  his  disciples  went  down  to  the  sea,  and 
having  entered  a  vessel,  they  passed  along  the  coast  towards  Caper- 
naum. And  it  was  now  dark,  and  Jesus  had  not  yet  come  to  them. 
And  the  sea  arose,  in  consequence  of  a  tempestuous  wind.  So  when 
they  had  driven  about  twenty-five  or  thirty  furlongs,  they  perceived  Jesus 
walking  on  the  sea,  and  approaching  the  boat,  and  they  were  afraid. 
But  he  says  to  them.  It  is  I ;  be  not  afraid.  They  then  received  him 
joyfully  into  the  bark  ;  and  the  bark  was  immediately  at  the  place,  to 
which  they  were  going. 

On  the  subsequent  day,  the  people  who  were  by  the  side  of  the  lake, 
as  they  saw  that  there  was  no  other  vessel  there,  except  that,  in  which 
his  disciples  embarked,  and  that  Jesus  did  not  enter  the  vessel  with  his 
disciples,  but  that  his  disciples  departed  alone ;  (though  indeed,  other 
vessels  came  from  Tiberias  to  the  vicinity  of  the  place  where  they  had 
eaten  bread,  after  the  Lord  had  given  thanks) ;  and  fiirther,  when  the 
people  perceived  that  Jesus  was  not  there,  nor  his  disciples,  they  enter- 
ed their  boats,  and  came  to  Capernaum,  searching  for  Jesus. 

And  finding  him  across  the  lake,  they  said  to  him.  Teacher,  when 
didst  thou  arrive  here  1  Jesus  answered  them  and  said.  Most  confident- 
ly, I  declare  to  you,  that  you  do  not  seek  me,  because  you  witnessed 
miracles,  but  because  you  participated  of  the  loaves,  and  were  satisfied. 
Labor  not  to  procure  the  food  which  perishes,  but  that  food  which  en- 


JOHN'S   HISTORY.  167 

dures  through  eternal  life,  which  the  Son  of  Man  will  give  you  :  for  to 
him,  the  Father,  that  is,  God,  has  given  his  attestation.  They  accord- 
ingly asked  him.  What  are  the  works  which  God  requires  us  to  do  1 
Jesus  replied  and  said  to  them,  This  is  the  work,  which  God  requires, 
that  you  believe  in  him,  whom  he  has  commissioned.  They  then  said 
to  him.  What  miracle,  therefore,  dost  thou  exhibit,  that  seeing  it,  we 
may  believe  thee  1  what  dost  thou  perform  1  Our  fathers  did  eat  manna 
in  the  wilderness ;  as  it  is  written.  He  gave  them  bread  of  heaven  to 
eat.  Jesus  then  said  to  them.  In  truth,  I  assure  you,  that  Moses  did  not 
give  you  the  bread  from  heaven  ;  but  my  Father  gives  you  the  true  bread 
from  heaven :  for  that  is  the  bread  of  God,  which  descends  from  heaven, 
and  imparts  life  to  the  world.  They  therefore  said  to  him.  Master,  per- 
petually give  us  this  bread.  And  Jesus  remarked  to  them,  I  am  the 
bread  of  life.  He,  who  comes  to  me,  will  never  hunger  ;  and  he,  who 
believes  in  me,  will  never  thirst. 

But  as  I  reminded  you,  though  you  have  seen  me,  yet  you  do  not  be- 
lieve. Whatever  the  Father  gives  me,  that  will  come  to  me  ;  and  him, 
who  comes  to  me,  I  will  not  reject :  because  I  descended  from  heaven 
not  to  do  my  own  will,  but  the  will  of  him,  who  sent  me.  And  this  is 
the  purpose  of  him,  who  sent  me,  that  I  should  lose  nothing  of  what  he 
has  given  me,  but  should  reanimate  the  whole  at  the  last  day.  And  this 
is  the  design  of  him,  who  sent  me,  that  every  one,  who  recognises  the 
Son,  and  confides  in  him,  should  have  everlasting  life  ;  and  that  I  should 
reanimate  him  at  the  last  day. 

Then  the  Jews,  who  were  about  him,  murmured,  because  he  said,  I 
am  the  bread  which  descended  from  heaven.  And  they  observed,  Is 
not  this  Jesus,  the  son  of  Joseph,  whose  father  and  mother  we  know  ? 
How  then  does  he  allege,  I  came  down  from  heaven  1  Jesus  replied 
and  said  to  them,  Do  not  murmur  among  yourselves :  no  one  can 
come  to  me,  unless  the  Father,  who  has  sent  me,  draw  him  ;  and  I  will 
restore  him  to  life  at  the  last  day.  It  is  written  in  the  prophets.  They 
will  all  be  instructed  by  God.  Every  one,  who  has  heard,  and  learned 
from  the  Father,  comes  to  me.  Not  that  any  one  has  seen  the  Father, 
except  he  who  is  from  God.  He,  truly,  has  seen  the  Father.  Indeed,  I 
solemnly  announce  to  you,  that  he,  who  believes  in  me,  has  eternal  life. 
I  am  the  bread  of  that  life.  Your  fathers  did  eat  the  manna  in  the 
desert,  and  died.  This  is  the  bread,  which  descends  from  heaven,  that 
any  one  may  eat  of  it,  and  not  die.  I,  who  descended  from  heaven,  am 
the  living  bread.  If  any  one  partake  of  this  bread,  he  will  live  forever  ; 
and  the  bread  that  I  wiU  give  is  this  body  of  mine,  which  I  will  impart 
for  the  life  of  the  world. 

The  Jews,  therefore,  contended  with  each  other,  saying.  How  can 
this  man  give  us  his  .body  to  eat  1  Jesus  then  observed  to  them,  I  state 
to  you,  in  absolute  certainty.  Unless  you  eat  the  body  of  the  Son  of  Man, 
and  drink  his  blood,  you  have  no  life  in  you.  He,  that  eats  my  body 
and  drinks  my  blood,  possesses  eternal  life,  and  I  will  restore  him  to  life 


168  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

at  the  last  day :  for  my  body  denotes  the  true  food,  and  my  blood  de- 
notes the  true  drink.  He,  who  eats  my  body  and  drinks  my  blood, 
abides  in  me,  and  I  abide  in  him.  As  the  living  Father  has  sent  me, 
and  I  live  through  the  Father,  so  he,  vifho  participates  of  me,  even  he 
shall  live  through  me.  This  is  the  bread  vchich  descended  from  heaven. 
It  is  not  like  the  manna,  vi^hich  your  fathers  did  eat,  for  they  died  :  he, 
who  eats  this  bread,  shall  eternally  live.  He  communicated  these  things, 
as  he  was  teaching  in  the  synagogue,  at  Capernaum. 

Many,  therefore,  of  his  disciples,  having  listened,  declared.  This  is  a 
difficult  doctrine  ;  who  can  comprehend  it  ?  Jesus,  however,  secretly 
conscious  that  his  disciples  murmured  at  it,  said  to  them.  Do  you  revolt 
at  this  1  but  what  if  you  should  see  the  Son  of  Man  ascending  to  his 
former  place  ?  It  is  the  spirit  that  gives  life  ;  the  body  is  unavailing : 
the  words,  which  I  have  spoken  to  you,  are  spirit,  and  life.  But  there 
are  some  of  you  who  do  not  believe.  (For  Jesus  knew  from  the  begin- 
ning, who  they  were  that  did  not  believe,  and  who  he  was  that  would 
betray  him).  And  he  added,  I,  therefore,  apprised  you,  that  no  man 
can  come  to  me,  unless  he  is  permitted  by  my  Father. 

From  this  period,  many  of  his  disciples  withdrew,  and  accompanied 
him  no  longer.  Jesus,  therefore,  said  to  the  twelve.  Do  you  also  desire 
to  go  away  1  Simon  Peter  then  answered  him.  Master,  to  whom  should 
we  go  1  Thou  hast  the  words  of  eternal  life  :  and  we  believe,  and  have 
ascertained,  that  thou  art  The  Consecrated  of  God.  Jesus  still  address- 
ed them.  Have  I  not  constituted  you  the  twelve,  and  yet  one  of  you  is  a 
traitor.  Now  he  referred  to  Judas  Iscariot,  son  of  Simon  ;  for  it  was 
he,  though  one  of  the  twelve,  who  was  about  to  betray  him. 

And  after  this,  Jesus  travelled  about  in  Galilee  ;  for  he  would  not 
travel  in  Judea,  because  the  Jews  sought  to  lull  him. 

Now  the  Jewish  feast  of  tabernacles  was  near.  His  brothers,  there- 
fore, said  to  him,  remove  hence,  and  repair  to  Judea,  that  thy  disciples 
may  also  see  the  works  which  thou  performest.  For  no  one  does  any 
thing  in  obscurity,  while  he  himself  wishes  to  be  in  celebrity.  If  thou 
dost  these  things,  display  thyself  to  the  world.  (For  not  even  his  broth- 
ers believed  in  him).  Jesus  then  says  to  them.  My  time  is  not  yet  ar- 
rived ;  but  your  time  is  always  at  disposal.  The  world  cannot  hate 
you  ;  but  it  hates  me,  because  I  testify  in  relation  to  it,  that  its  works 
are  evil.  Go  ye  up  to  this  festival.  I  am  not  at  present  going  to  it ; 
because  it  is  not  yet  my  time.  Having  made  these  observations  to  them, 
he  remained  in  Galilee. 

But  when  his  brothers  were  gone,  then  he  also  went  up  to  the  feast, 
not  publicly,  but  rather,  in  a  private  manner.  Moreover,  the  Jews  in- 
quired for  him  at  the  festival,  and  said,  Where  is  he  1  And  there  was 
a  great  conflict  among  the  people  respecting  him.  -  Some  indeed  affirm- 
ed. Assuredly,  he  is  a  good  man  ;  others  declared,  No  ;  for  he  seduces 
the  populace.  However,  no  one  spoke  with  freedom  concerning  him, 
through  fear  of  the  Jews. 


JOHN'S  HISTORY.  ]69 

And  now,  about  the  midst  of  the  period  of  the  festival,  Jesus  went  to 
the  temple,  and  taught.  And  the  Jews  were  astonished,  saying.  How 
does  this  person  possess  learning,  having  never  been  instructed.  Jesus 
answered  them  and  said,  the  doctrine  is  not  mine,  but  his,  who  sent  me. 
If  any  one  be  determined  to  perform  his  will,  he  shall  know  relative  to 
the  doctrine,  whether  it  be  from  God,  or  whether  it  proceed  from 
myself.  He,  who  teaches  what  proceeds  from  himself,  seeks  to  pro- 
mote his  own  glory ;  but  he,  who  seeks  to  promote  the  glory  of  him 
who  sent  him,  deserves  credit,  and  is  a  stranger  to  deceit.  Has  not 
Moses  given  you  the  law  ?  but  not  one  of  you  obeys  the  law.  Why  do 
you  desire  to  kill  me  1  The  people  answered  and  said,  thou  art  a  de- 
moniac :  who  desires  to  kill  thee  1  Jesus  remarked  to  them  in  reply,  I 
have  performed  one  work,  and  you  are  all,  therefore,  astonished. 
Moses  instituted  circumcision  among  you,  (not  that  it  is  from  Moses, 
but  from  the  patriarchs)  ;  and  you  circumcise  a  child  on  the  sabbath. 
If,  on  the  sabbath,  a  child  receive  circumcision,  to  prevent  a  violation  of 
the  law  of  Moses,  are  you  incensed  against  me,  because  I  have  entirely 
restored  a  man  on  the  sabbath  ?  Judge  not  according  to  appearance, 
but  dispense  righteous  judgment. 

Some  of  the  inhabitants  of  Jerusalem  then  said.  Is  not  this  he,  whom 
they  wish  to  destroy  ?  But,  behold,  he  speaks  boldly,  and  they  say 
nothing  to  him.  Do  the  rulers  indeed  acknowledge,  that  this  is  the 
Messiah  1  However,  we  know  from  whence  this  man  is  ;  but  when  the 
Messiah  shall  come,  no  one  will  know  whence  he  proceeds.  Jesus  then 
exclaimed  in  the  temple,  as  he  taught,  saying.  Do  you  even  know  me, 
and  know  whence  I  am  1  Indeed,  I  came  not  of  myself;  but  he,  who 
sent  me,  is  worthy  of  belief,  whom  you  know  not.  I  know  him  ;  be- 
cause I  came  from  him,  and  he  has  commissioned  me.  They  then 
sought  to  apprehend  him  ;  but  no  one  laid  hands  on  him,  because  his 
hour  was  not  yet  come.  Many  of  the  multitude,  however,  believed  in 
him,  and  said.  When  the  Messiah  shall  come,  will  he  perform  greater 
miracles  than  this  person  has  performed  1 

The  pharisees  heard,  that  the  people  thus  debated  respecting  him  ; 
and  the  pharisees  and  the  chief  priests  dispatched  officers  to  arrest  him. 
Upon  this,  Jesus  observed.  But  little  longer  shall  I  remain  with  you,  and 
then  I  shall  go  to  him,  who  sent  me.  You  will  seek  me,  but  will  not 
find  me  ;  and  where  I  shall  be,  there  you  cannot  come.  The  Jews  then 
said  among  themselves.  Where  will  he  go,  that  we  shall  not  find  him  1 
Will  he  go  to  the  dispersed  among  the  Greeks,  and  instruct  the  Gre- 
cians 1  What  declaration  is  this  which  he  made,  You  will  seek  me,  but 
will  not  find  me  ;  and  where  I  shall  be,  there  you  cannot  come  1 

And  on  the  last,  the  greatest  day  of  the  festival,  Jesus  stood  and  thus 
proclaimed.  If  any  man  thirst,  let  him  come  to  me,  and  drink.  He,  who 
believes  in  me,  as  the  Scripture  has  alleged,  shall  be  a  fountain,  from 
which  rivers  of  living  water  will  flow.  (He  affirmed  this,  however, 
relative  to  the  Spirit,  which  they,  who  believe  in  him,  were  to  receive  ; 

32 


170  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

for  the  Spirit  was  not  yet  imparted,  because  Jesus  was  not  yet  glorified). 
Many  of  the  people,  therefore,  when  they  heard  this  observation,  declar- 
ed. This  is  assuredly  the  Prophet.  Others  said.  This  is  the  Messiah. 
But  some  said.  Shall  the  Messiah  then  proceed  from  Galilee  ?  Has  not 
the  Scripture  announced,  that  the  Messiah  is  derived  from  the  posterity 
of  David,  and  from  Bethlehem,  the  village  where  David  was  born  ? 
There  was  thus  a  dissension  among  the  people  concerning  him.  And 
some  of  them  wished  to  seize  him  ;  but  no  one  laid  hands  on  him. 

The  officers  then  returned  to  the  chief  priests  and  pharisees,  who 
asked  them,  Why  did  you  not  bring  him  1  The  officers  replied.  No 
man  ever  spoke  like  this  man.  The  pharisees  then  answered  them. 
Are  you  also  deceived  ?  Have  any  of  the  rulers  or  of  the  pharisees 
believed  in  him  1  But  this  populace,  who  do  not  know  the  law,  are 
detestable.  Nicodemus,  one  of  their  number,  (he,  who  came  to  Jesus 
by  night),  said  to  them,  Does  our  law  permit  us  to  condemn  any  man 
without  previously  hearing  him,  and  ascertaining  his  conduct  1  They 
answered  and  said  to  him.  Are  you  also  a  Galilean  1  Investigate,  and 
you  will  find,  that  no  prophet  is  to  arise  from  Galilee. 

Moreover,  Jesus  again  resumed  his  discourse  to  them  ;  I  am  the  light 
of  the  world  ;  he  who  follows  me  will  not  walk  in  darkness,  but  will 
possess  the  light  of  life.  Upon  this  the  pharisees  said  to  him.  Thou  tes- 
tifiest  respecting  thyself ;  thy  testimony  is  not  to  be  regarded.  Jesus 
remarked  to  them  in  reply.  Though  I  testify  respecting  myself,  yet  my 
testimony  ought  to  be  regarded,  because  I  know  whence  I  came,  and 
where  I  shall  go  ;  but  you  neither  know  whence  I  come,  nor  where  I 
am  going.  You  judge  from  human  appearance  ;  I  judge  no  one.  And 
yet,  if  I  judge,  my  sentence  is  correct ;  for  I  am  not  single,  but  concur 
with  the  Father,  who  sent  me.  It  is  even  a  maxim  in  your  law,  that 
the  testimony  of  two  men  is  valid.  I  am  a  witness  concerning  myself; 
and  the  Father,  who  sent  me,  testifies  concerning  me.  They  then  said 
to  him.  Where  is  thy  Father  1  Jesus  replied.  You  neither  know  me, 
nor  my  Father  :  if  you  knew  me,  you  would  also  know  my  Father. 
Jesus  uttered  these  words  in  the  treasury,  as  he  was  instructing  in  the 
temple  ;  but  no  one  arrested  him  ;  for  his  hour  had  not  yet  arrived. 

Then  Jesus  again  said  to  them,  I  am  going  away,  and  you  will  seek 
me,  but  will  die  in  your  sins  ;  where  I  go,  you  cannot  come.  The  Jews 
then  said,  Will  he  destroy  himself  1  for  he  declares.  Where  I  go,  you 
cannot  come.  And  he  alleged  to  them.  You  are  from  below  ;  I  am 
from  above.  You  are  of  tliis  world  ;  I  am  not  of  this  world.  I  there- 
fore affirmed  to  you,  that  you  will  die  in  your  sins  ;  for,  if  you  believe 
not  that  I  am  from  above,  you  will  perish  in  your  transgressions.  They 
then  said  to  him,  Who  art  thou  1  And  Jesus  observed.  Precisely  what  I 
have  already  communicated  to  you.  I  have  numerous  particulars  to 
disclose,  and  to  condemn,  in  relation  to  you :  but  he  who  sent  me  is 
worthy  of  belief;  and  I  announce  to  the  world  those  things  which  I 
have  received  from  him.    They  did  not  comprehend,  that  he  revealed  to 


JOHN'S  HISTORY.  171 

them  the  Father.  Jesus  then  reminded  them,  When  you  shall  have 
lifted  up  the  Son  of  Man,  you  will  then  know  that  I  am  from  above,  and 
that  I  do  nothing  of  myself;  but  represent  these  things,  as  my  Father 
has  instructed  me.  And  he,  who  sent  me,  is  with  me.  The  Father  has 
not  left  me  alone  ;  because  I  always  perform  what  is  acceptable  to  him. 
As  he  was  making  these  observations,  many  believed  in  him.  Jesus 
then  remarked  to  those  Jews,  who  believed  him.  If  you  continue  in  this 
doctrine  of  mine,  you  are  assuredly,  my  disciples  ;  and  you  will  know 
the  truth,  and  the  truth  will  emancipate  you. 

Some  replied  to  him.  We  are  Abraham's  posterity,  and  have  never 
been  enslaved  to  any  man.  How  dost  thou  affirm.  You  shall  be  eman- 
cipated ?  Jesus  answered  them.  In  truth,  I  assure  you,  that  every  one 
who  commits  sin,  is  a  slave  to  sin.  Now  the  servant  does  not  con- 
tinually abide  in  the  family  ;  but  the  Son  perpetually  remains  there. 
If  therefore,  the  Son  shall  liberate  you,  you  will  indeed  be  free.  I  know 
that  you  are  Abraham's  posterity ;  but  you  endeavor  to  destroy  me, 
because  this  my  doctrine  exists  not  in  you.  I  pronounce  that  which  I 
have  witnessed  with  my  Father  ;  but  you  perform  that  which  you  have 
learnt  from  your  father.  They  answered  and  said  to  him,  Abraham  is 
our  father.  Jesus  says  to  them.  If  you  were  the  children  of  Abraham, 
you  would  do  the  works  of  Abraham.  But  now  you  are  seeking,  what 
Abraham  would  not  have  done,  to  kill  me  ;  a  man  who  has  spoken  to 
you  the  truth,  which  I  have  heard  from  God.  You  accomplish  the 
objects  of  your  father.  They  then  said  to  him.  We  are  not  of  con- 
taminated descent.  We  have  one  Father,  even  God.  Jesus  stated  to 
them.  If  God  were  your  Father,  you  would  love  me  ;  since  I  proceeded, 
and  have  come  from  God  ;  for  indeed,  I  have  not  arrived  of  myself,  but 
he  has  sent  me.  Why  do  you  not  comprehend  my  mode  of  illustration. 
It  is  because  you  cannot  endure  my  doctrine.  You  are  from  your  father 
the  calumniator,  and  the  violent  passions  of  your  father  you  will  indulge. 
He  was  a  murderer  from  the  beginning  ;  and  continued  not  in  the  truth, 
because  there  is  no  veracity  in  him.  When  he  utters  a  falsehood,  it 
proceeds  from  his  own  disposition ;  for  he  is  false,  and  the  father  of 
falsehood.  Now  I  speak  the  truth,  but  you  do  not  believe  me.  Which 
of  you  can  convict  me  of  sin  ?  And  if  I  speak  the  truth,  why  do  you 
not  believe  me  1  He  who  is  from  God,  regards  the  words  of  God. 
You  disregard  them,  because  you  are  not  from  God. 

The  Jews  answered,  and  said  to  him.  Have  we  not  reason  to  affirm, 
that  thou  art  a  Samaritan,  and  hast  a  demon  ?  Jesus  replied,  I  have 
not  a  demon  ;  but  I  honor  my  Father,  and  you  dishonor  me.  I  seek 
not,  however,  to  promote  my  own  glory  ;  another  seeks  it,  who  judges. 
Indeed,  I  aver  to  you,  If  any  one  keep  my  word,  he  wUl  never  see 
death.  The  Je^  then  said  to  him.  Now  we  are  certain  that  thou  art  a 
demoniac  :  Abraham  died,  and  the  prophets  ;  yet  thou  sayest.  If  any 
one  keep  my  word,  he  wiU  never  taste  death.  Art  thou  greater  than 
our  father  Abraham,  who  is  dead  ?     The  prophets  are  also  deceased  ; 


173  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

whom  dost  thou  think  thyself  to  be  1  Jesus  replied,  If  I  commend 
myself,  my  commendation  is  nothing  :  it  is  my  Father  who  commends 
me  ;  of  whom  you  assert,  He  is  our  God.  Yet  you  do  not  know  him  ; 
but  I  know  him  :  and  if  I  should  affirm,  that  I  know  him  not,  I  should 
speak  falsely  like  you  :  but  I  know  him,  and  keep  his  word.  Your 
father  Abraham  earnestly  desired  to  see  my  day  ;  and  he  saw  it,  and 
rejoiced.  The  Jews  then  said  to  him.  Thou  art  not  yet  fifty  years  old, 
and  hast  thou  seen  Abraham  1  Jesus  observed  to  them,  In  truth,  I 
assure  you,  that  before  Abraham  was  born,  I  existed.  They  then  took 
up  stones  to  throw  at  him  ;  but  Jesus  concealed  himself,  and  departed 
from  the  temple. 

And  as  he  was  passing  along,  he  saw  a  man  who  had  been  blind  from 
his  birth.  And  his  disciples  asked  him,  saying,  Master,  who  sinned, 
this  man,  or  his  parents,  that  he  was  born  blind  1  Jesus  answered,  It 
is  neither  for  his  own  sin,  nor  that  of  his  parents  ;  but  that  the  opera- 
tions of  God  might  be  displayed  in  him.  I  must  perform  the  work  of 
him  who  sent  me,  while  it  is  day  ;  night  approaches,  when  no  one  can 
work.  While  I  am  in  the  world,  I  am  the  light  of  the  world.  Having 
made  these  remarks,  he  spat  on  the  ground,  and  made  clay  with  the 
moisture,  and  anointed  the  eyes  of  the  blind  man  with  the  clay,  and 
said  to  him.  Go,  wash  your  eyes  at  the  bath  of  Siloam,  (which  signifies, 
Sent).     He  accordingly  went  and  washed  them,  and  returned  seeing. 

Now  the  neighbors,  and  they  who  had  previously  seen  him,  when  he 
was  a  beggar,  said,  Is  not  this  he  who  sat,  and  solicited  alms  ?  Some 
affirmed,  This  is  he  ;  others  alleged.  He  resembles  him  ;  but  he  declared, 
I  am  the  man.  They  then  said  to  him,  How  were  your  eyes  opened  1 
He  replied  and  said,  A  man  called  Jesus,  made  clay,  and  applied  it  to 
my  eyes,  and  said  to  me.  Go  to  the  bath  of  Siloam  and  wash  your  eyes. 
I  therefore  went,  and  washed  them,  and  received  sight.  They  then 
said  to  him.  Where  is  he  1     He  answered,  I  do  not  know. 

They  brought  him,  who  had  formerly  been  blind,  to  the  pharisees. 
Now  it  was  on  the  sabbath,  when  Jesus  made  the  clay,  and  opened  his 
eyes.  Moreover,  the  pharisees  also  renewed  the  inquiry,  how  he  had 
received  his  sight.  And  he  observed  to  them.  He  put  clay  on  my  eyes, 
and  I  washed  them,  and  now  see.  Some  of  the  pharisees  then  remark- 
ed, This  man  is  not  from  God,  because  he  does  not  keep  the  sabbath. 
Others  suggested.  How  can  a  man,  who  is  a  sinner,  achieve  such  mira- 
cles 1  And  there  was  a  dissension  among  them.  They  again  addressed 
the  man  who  had  been  blind.  What  do  you  say  concerning  him,  since 
he  has  opened  your  eyes  1     His  answer  was.  He  is  a  prophet. 

The  Jews,  however,  did  not  believe  respecting  him,  that  he  had  been 
blind  and  was  restored  to  sight,  till  they  had  called  the  parents  of  him 
who  had  received  his  sight.  And  they  thus  interrogatoji  them.  Do  you 
say  that  this  is  your  son,  and  that  he  was  born  blind  ?  How  then  does 
he  now  see  1  His  parents  rephed  to  them,  and  said.  We  know  that 
this  is  our  son,  and  that  he  was  born  blind ;  but  by  what  means  he  now 


JOHNS    HISTORY.  173 

sees  we  are  ignorant,  or  who  has  opened  his  eyes  we  know  not.  He  is 
of  mature  age,  ask  him  ;  he  will  answer  for  himself.  His  parents  thus 
spoke,  because  they  were  afraid  of  the  Jews  ;  for  the  Jews  had  already 
determined,  that  if  any  one  should  acknowledge  him  to  be  the  Messiah, 
he  should  be  expelled  from  the  synagogue.  His  parents  therefore  said. 
He  is  of  mature  years,  question  him. 

They  therefore  called  a  second  time  for  the  man  who  had  been  bUnd, 
and  said  to  him,  Give  praise  to  God  ;  we  know  that  this  man  is  a  sin- 
ner. He  then  answered  and  said.  Whether  he  is  a  sinner  I  am  not 
aware  :  of  one  thing  I  am  conscious,  that  I  was  blind,  but  now  see.  And 
they  again  said  to  him.  What  did  he  do  for  you  1  How  did  he  open 
your  eyes  1  He  replied  to  them,  I  have  already  informed  you ;  and 
did  you  not  hear  1  Why  do  you  wish  to  hear  it  repeated  ?  WiU  you 
also  become  his  disciples  1  They  reviled  him  and  alleged.  You  are  his 
disciple ;  but  we  are  the  disciples  of  Moses.  We  know  that  God  spoke 
to  Moses  ;  but  as  for  this  person,  we  know  not  whence  he  is.  The  man 
stated  to  them  in  return.  This  is  indeed  surprising,  that  you  know 
not  whence  he  is,  though  he  has  given  me  sight.  Now  we  know  that 
God  does  not  hear  sinners  ;  but  if  any  man  worships  God,  and  performs 
his  will,  that  man  he  hears.  Never  was  it  heard,  from  the  earliest  age, 
that  any  man  imparted  sight  to  one  who  was  born  blind.  If  this  man 
were  not  from  God,  he  could  do  nothing.  And  they  declared  to  him  in 
reply,  You  was  entirely  born  in  sins,  and  do  you  teach  us  1  And  they 
expelled  him. 

Jesus  heard  that  they  had  expelled  him ;  and  meeting  him,  he  said  to 
him.  Do  you  believe  in  the  Son  of  God  1  And  he  observed  in  answer. 
Who  is  he,  Sir,  that  I  may  believe  in  him  1  And  Jesus  reminded  him, 
You  have  even  seen  him,  and  it  is  he  who  converses  with  you.  And  he 
said,  Master,  I  believe ;  and  threw  himself  prostrate  before  him.  And 
Jesus  declared,  For  judgment  I  came  into  this  world,  that  they  who  do 
not  see,  might  be  restored  to  sight ;  and  that  those  who  see,  may  become 
blind.  And  some  of  the  pharisees,  who  were  with  him,  heard  these 
things,  and  said  to  him.  Are  we  also  bUnd  ?  Jesus  remarked  to  them. 
If  you  were  blind,  you  would  not  have  sin ;  but  now  you  affirm.  We 
assuredly  see ;  therefore  your  sin  remains. 

In  truth,  I  assure  you,  that  whoever  enters  not  the  sheepfold  by  the 
door,  but  invades  it  at  some  other  place,  he  is  a  thief  and  a  robber. 
The  shepherd  always  enters  through  the  door.  The  door-keeper  opens 
to  him  ;  and  the  sheep  hear  his  voice ;  and  he  calls  his  own  sheep  by 
name,  and  leads  them  out.  And  when  he  puts  forth  his  sheep,  he  walks 
before  them,  and  they  foUow  him,  for  they  know  his  voice.  They  will 
not,  however,  follow  a  stranger,  but  will  fly  from  him,  because  they 
know  not  the  voice  of  strangers.  Jesus  communicated  to  them  this 
comparison,  but  they  did  not  understand  what  he  said  to  them.  Then 
Jesus  again  addressed  them.  Indeed,  I  aver  to  you,  that  I  am  the  door 
of  the  fold.     All  who  have  entered  in  another  manner  are  thieves  and 


174  APOSTOLIC    PRODUCTIONS. 

robbers  ;  but  the  sheep  did  not  obey  them.  I  am  the  door ;  every  one 
who  enters  by  me,  shall  be  safe ;  and  shall  go  in  and  out,  and  find  pas- 
ture. The  thief  comes  only  to  steal,  and  to  kill,  and  to  devour.  I  am 
come  that  they  may  have  life,  and  more  than  life. 

I  am  the  good  shepherd.  The  good  shepherd  surrenders  his  life  for 
the  sheep.  But  the  hireling,  who  is  neither  the  shepherd,  nor  the  owner 
of  the  sheep,  perceives  the  wolf  approaching,  and  he  abandons  the 
sheep,  and  flies  ;  and  the  wolf  tears  some,  and  disperses  the  flock. 
Now  the  hireling  flies,  because  he  is  a  hireling,  and  is  regardless  of  the 
sheep.  I  am  the  good  shepherd,  and  know  my  own,  and  am  known  by 
them  ;  (even  as  the  Father  knows  me,  and  I  know  the  Father) ;  and 
I  resign  my  Ufe  for  the  sheep.  I  have  also  other  sheep,  which  are 
not  of  this  fold.  I  must  likewise  bring  them,  and  they  will  hear  my 
voice  ;  and  there  shall  be  one  flock,  one  shepherd.  For  this  the  Father 
loves  me,  because  I  give  up  my  life,  to  be  afterwards  resumed.  No  one 
divests  me  of  it ;  but  I  personally  resign  it.  I  have  authority  to  surren- 
der it,  and  I  have  authority  to  resume  it.  I  have  received  this  commis- 
sion from  my  Father. 

Then  there  was  another  division  among  the  Jews,  in  consequence  of 
these  observations.  And  many  of  them  said.  He  has  a  demon,  and  is 
insane,  why  do  you  listen  to  him  ?  Others  alleged.  These  are  not  the 
words  of  a  demoniac.     Can  a  demon  give  sight  to  the  blind. 

Now  it  was  the  festival  of  renovation  at  Jerusalem,  and  the  weather 
was  stormy.  And  Jesus  ■fras  walking  about  in  the  temple,  in  Solomon's 
portico.  The  Jews  then  surrounded  him,  and  said  to  him,  How  long 
wilt  thou  aflaiict  us  with  suspense  ?  If  thou  art  the  Messiah,  plainly  dis- 
close to  us.  Jesus  answered  them,  I  have  informed  you,  yet  you  do  not 
believe  me ;  the  works  which  I  do  in  my  Father's  name,  testify  con- 
cerning me.  But  you  do  not  believe,  because  you  are  not  of  my  flock. 
My  sheep,  as  I  told  you,  hear  my  voice,  and  I  recognise  them,  and  they 
follow  me.  And  I  impart  to  them  eternal  life,  and  they  shall  never  be 
destroyed,  nor  shall  any  one  wrest  them  from  my  hand.  My  Father, 
who  gave  them  to  me,  is  superior  to  all ;  and  no  one  is  able  to  wrest 
them  from  my  Father's  hand.     I  and  the  Father  are  one. 

Then  the  Jews  again  took  up  stones  to  throw  at  him.  Jesus  said  to 
them,  I  have  manifested  to  you  many  good  works  from  my  Father  ;  for 
which  of  those  works  do  you  stone  me  1  The  Jews  replying,  declared 
to  him,  "We  do  not  stone  thee  for  a  good  work ;  but  for  impious  lan- 
guage ;  namely,  because  that  thou,  being  a  man,  representest  thyself  to 
be  God.  Jesus  replied  to  them.  Is  it  not  written  in  your  law,  I  said,  ye 
are  gods.  If  he  styled  gods,  those  judges  to  whom  the  divine  adjudica- 
tion was  committed,  and,  if  the  language  of  scripture  is  unexceptionable, 
do  you  pronounce  respecting  him,  whom  the  Father  has  consecrated  as 
his  apostle  to  the  world.  Thou  speakest  impiously,  because  I  alleged 
that  I  am  his  Son  1  If  I  do  not  perform  the  works  of  my  Father,  be- 
lieve me  not.     But  if  I  do,  though  you  do  not  trust  in  me,  accredit  the 


JOHN'S    HISTORY.  175 

works  ;  that  you  may  know  and  believe,  that  the  Father  is  in  me,  and  I 
am  in  him. 

Therefore,  they  again  endeavored  to  arrest  him  ;  but  he  escaped 
from  their  hands,  and  again  retired  towards  the  Jordan,  to  the  place 
where  John  originally  baptized ;  and  there  he  resided.  And  many 
resorted  to  him,  who  declared,  John  indeed  performed  no  miracle  ;  but 
all  that  John  said  concerning  this  man,  is  true.  And  many  there 
believed  in  him. 

Moreover,  a  certain  man  was  sick,  named  Lazarus,  of  Bethany,  the 
village  of  Mary  and  her  sister  Martha.  (It  was  that  Mary,  who  had 
anointed  the  Lord  with  perftimes,  and  wiped  his  feet  with  her  hair, 
whose  brother  Lazarus  was  sick).  The  sisters,  therefore,  sent  to  him, 
announcing.  Master,  behold  he  whom  thou  lovest  is  sick.  And  Jesus 
hearing  it,  observed,  This  sickness  will  prove  fatal,  only  to  conduce  to 
the  glory  of  God,  that  the  Son  of  God  may  be  glorified  by  it.  Now  Jesus 
loved  Martha,  and  her  sister,  and  Lazarus.  But  after  being  informed  that 
he  was  sick,  Jesus  still  continued  two  days  in  the  place  where  he  was. 

However,  he  subsequently  said  to  the  disciples,  let  us  again  repair  to 
Judea.  The  disciples  said  to  him,  Teacher,  the  Jews  recently  sought 
to  stone  thee;  and  dost  thou  return  there?  Jesus  replied.  Are  there 
not  twelve  hours  in  the  day  ?  If  any  man  walks  in  the  day,  he  does  not 
stumble,  because  he  sees  the  light  of  this  world.  But  if  any  man  walks 
in  the  night,  he  stumbles,  because  there  is  no  light.  He  made  these 
remarks  ;  and  after  this,  he  declared  to  them,  Lazarus,  the  friend  of 
ours,  is  fallen  asleep ;  but  I  am  going,  that  I  may  awaken  him.  His 
disciples  then  alBrmed,  Master,  if  he  sleep,  he  will  recover. 

Moreover,  Jesus  adverted  to  his  death ;  but  they  thought  that  he  alluded 
to  the  natural  rest  in  sleep.  But  Jesus  then  explicitly  stated  to  them, 
Lazarus  is  dead.  And  I  rejoice,  in  reference  to  you,  that  I  was  not 
there,  that  you  may  believe ;  but  let  us  go  to  him.  Thomas,  who  is 
called  Didymus,  then  said  to  his  fellow-disciples,  let  us  also  go,  that  we 
may  die  with  him. 

When  Jesus  came,  he  found  that  Lazarus  had  already  lain  in  the 
tomb  four  days.  (Now  Bethany  was  near  Jerusalem,  within  about  fif- 
teen furlongs) ;  and  many  of  the  Jews  came  to  Martha  and  Mary,  to  con- 
sole them  relative  to  their  brother.  Martha,  therefore,  when  she  heard 
that  Jesus  was  coming,  went  to  meet  him ;  but  Mary  remained  in  the 
house.  Martha  then  said  to  Jesus,  Master,  if  thou  hadst  been  here,  my 
brother  would  not  have  died.  But  I  know,  even  now,  that  God  will 
grant  to  thee,  whatever  thou  shalt  request  of  him.  Jesus  declares  to 
her.  Your  brother  will  be  restored  to  life.  Martha  replied  to  him,  I  am 
assured  that  he  will  be  restored  to  life,  in  the  renewed  existence,  at  the 
final  day.  Jesus  observed  to  her,  I  am  the  renewed  existence,  and  the 
life.  He  who  believes  in  me,  even  though  he  die,  shall  live ;  and  no 
living  person,  who  believes  in  me,  will  ultimately  die.    Do  you  believe 


176  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

this  1  She  says  to  him,  Yes,  Master,  I  believe  that  thou  art  the  Mes- 
siah, the  Son  of  God,  he  who  comes  into  the  world.  And  after  she  had 
spoken  these  words,  she  departed,  and  privately  called  her  sister  Mary, 
saying.  The  Teacher  is  come,  and  calls  for  you.  As  soon  as  Mary 
heard  this,  she  instantly  arose,  and  went  to  him.  Now  Jesus  had  not 
yet  reached  the  village,  but  was  in  the  place  where  Martha  met  him. 
The  Jews  then,  who  were  with  Mary  in  the  house,  to  comfort  her,  per- 
ceiving that  she  suddenly  arose  and  withdrew,  followed  her,  saying, 
She  is  going  to  the  tomb  to  weep  there.  But,  as  soon  as  Mary  came 
where  Jesus  was,  and  saw  him,  she  fell  at  his  feet,  declaring  to 
him.  Master,  if  thou  hadst  been  here,  my  brother  would  not  have 
died.  Jesus,  therefore,  when  he  saw  her  weeping,  and  the  Jews  weep- 
ing who  accompanied  her,  deeply  mourned  and  was  afflicted ;  and 
said.  Where  have  you  laid  him  ?  They  answered  him.  Master,  come 
and  see.  Jesus  wept.  The  Jews  then  observed.  Behold,  how  he  loved 
him  !  But  some  of  them  suggested.  Could  not  he,  who  opened  the 
eyes  of  the  blind,  have  even  prevented  this  man's  death  1  Jesus,  there- 
fore, again  severely  lamenting,  approached  the  sepulchre.  It  was  a 
cave,  and  a  stone  was  placed  on  it.  Jesus  said,  Remove  the  stone. 
Martha,  the  sister  of  the  deceased,  repUed  to  him.  Sir,  it  is  already 
offensive ;  for  this  is  the  fourth  day.  Jesus  said  to  her.  Did  I  not  de- 
clare to  you,  that  if  you  would  believe,  you  should  witness  the  glory  of 
God  ?  They  then  removed  the  stone.  Ajid  Jesus  lifted  up  his  eyes,  and 
said.  Father,  I  thank  thee  that  thou  hast  heard  me ;  and  I  know  that 
thou  always  hearest  me ;  but  I  speak  on  account  of  the  people  who  sur- 
round me,  that  they  may  believe,  that  thou  hast  sent  me.  And  having 
pronounced  these  words,  he  exclaimed  with  an  audible  voice,  Lazarus, 
come  forth  !  He  who  was  dead  came  forth,  swathed  with  bands ;  and 
his  face  was  wrapped  in  a  handkerchief.  Jesus  says  to  them.  Unbind 
him,  and  give  him  liberty.  Many,  therefore,  of  the  Jews,  who  visited 
Mary,  and  beheld  what  Jesus  performed,  believed  in  him.  But  some 
of  them  went  to  the  pharisees,  and  informed  them  what  Jesus  had 
accomplished. 

The  chief  priests  and  the  pharisees  then  convened  the  sanhedrin,  and 
said.  What  are  we  doing  1  this  man  certainly  performs  many  miracles. 
If  we  thus  tolerate  him,  all  will  believe  in  him  ;  and  the  Romans  will 
come  and  subvert  even  this  our  place  and  nation.  And  one  of  them, 
named  Caiaphas,  who  was  high  priest  that  year,  said  to  them,  You  are 
utterly  at  a  loss,  and  do  not  reflect,  that  it  is  better  for  us,  that  one  man 
should  die  for  the  people,  than  that  the  whole  nation  should  be  ruined. 
And  he  did  not  communicate  this,  of  his  own  suggestion  ;  but  being  high 
priest  that  year,  he  predicted,  that  Jesus  would  die  for  that  nation  ;  and 
not  exclusively  for  that  nation,  but  that  he  should  also  assemble,  in  one 
body,  the  widely  dispersed  children  of  God.  From  that  day,  therefore, 
they  concerted,  how  they  might  destroy  him.     For  this  reason,  Jesus 


JOHN'S  HISTORY,  ir? 

no  longer  appeared  publicly  among  the  Jews  ;  but  retired  to  the  region 
near  the  wilderness,  to  a  city  called  Ephraim,  and  there  continued  with 
his  disciples. 

Now  the  Jewish  passover  was  approaching.  And  many  went  up  to 
Jerusalem  from  the  country,  before  the  passover,  to  purify  themselves. 
They  then  sought  Jesus,  and  thus  conferred  together,  while  standing  in 
the  temple.  What  do  you  think,  will  he  not  come  to  the  festival  ?  More- 
over, the  chief  priests  and  the  pharisees  had  issued  a  positive  injunction, 
that  if  any  one  knew  where  he  was,  he  should  disclose  it,  that  they 
might  apprehend  him. 

Moreover,  six  days  before  the  passover,  Jesus  went  to  Bethany,  where 
Lazarus  was,  who  had  deceased,  and  whom  he  had  raised  from  the 
dead.  They  accordingly  made  a  supper  for  him  there  ;  and  Martha 
served  :  but  Lazarus  was  one  of  those,  who  were  at  table  with  him. 
Then  Mary,  taking  a  pound  of  exceedingly  valuable,  unadulterated 
balsam  of  nard,  anointed  the  feet  of  Jesus,  and  wiped  his  feet  with  the 
tresses  of  her  hair  ;  and  the  house  was  pervaded  by  the  fragrance  of  the 
aromatic.  But,  one  of  his  disciples,  Judas  Iseariot,  son  of  Simon,  who 
was  about  to  betray  him,  said.  Why  was  not  this  ointment  sold  for  three 
hundred  denarii,  and  the  money  given  to  the  poor  ?  He  said  this, 
however,  not  because  he  regarded  the  poor,  but  because  he  was  a  thief, 
and  kept  the  purse,  and  carried  what  was  therein  deposited.  Jesus  then 
observed,  Let  her  alone,  she  has  reserved  this,  to  embalm  me,  against 
the  day  of  my  interment.  For  you  will  constantly  have  the  poor  among 
you ;  but  me  you  will  not  always  have. 

Now  a  great  number  of  the  Jews,  knew  that  he  was  there  ;-  and  they 
came,  not  only  on  account  of  Jesus,  but  also  that  they  might  see  Laza- 
rus, whom  he  had  raised  from  the  dead.  The  chief  priests,  therefore, 
determined  likewise  to  destroy  Lazarus  ;  since,  in  consequence  of  him, 
many  of  the  Jews  abandoned  them,  and  confided  in  Jesus. 

On  the  next  day,  many  of  the  people,  who  had  come  to  the  festival, 
having  heard  that  Jesus  was  approaching  Jerusalem,  took  branches  of 
palm-trees,  and  proceeded  to  meet  him ;  and  exclaimed,  Hosanna ! 
blessed  be  the  King  of  Israel,  who  comes  in  the  name  of  the  Lord  ! 
And  Jesus,  having  obtained  a  young  ass,  rode  thereon  ;  agreeably  to 
what  is  written.  Fear  not,  daughter  of  Zion,  behold,  your  King  arrives, 
sitting  on  the  colt  of  an  ass.  Now  his  disciples  did  not  originally  com- 
prehend these  things ;  but  when  Jesus  was  glorified,  they  then  recol- 
lected that  these  particulars  were  written  in  relation  to  him,  and  that 
they  had  done  these  things  to  him.  Now  the  multitude,  who  were  with 
him,  attested,  that  he  summoned  Lazarus  from  the  tomb,  and  raised 
him  from  the  dead.  And  for  this  reason  the  people  met  him,  because 
they  heard  that  he  had  performed  this  miracle.  The  pharisees  then 
said  to  each  other,  do  you  not  perceive  that  you  gain  no  advantage  1 
behold,  the  world  is  gone  after  him  ! 
23 


178  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

And  among  those,  who  went  up  to  worship  at  the  festival,  there  were 
some  Greeks.  These  applied  to  Philip  of  Bethsaida  in  Galilee,  and 
thus  addressed  him.  Sir,  we  desire  to  see  Jesus.  Philip  proceeds  and 
informs  Andrew  ;  and  then,  Andrew  and  Philip  inform  Jesus. 

Further,  Jesus  thus  replied  to  them,  The  hour  has  arrived,  when  the 
Son  of  Man  must  be  glorified.  In  absolute  truth,  I  announce  to  you, 
that  when  a  grain  of  wheat  is  thrown  into  the  ground,  unless  it  die,  it 
remains  there  a  solitary  grain  ;  but  if  it  die,  it  becomes  very  productive. 
He  who  loves  his  life,  will  lose  it ;  but  he  who  hates  his  life  in  this 
world,  will  preserve  it  eternally  in  the  next.  If  any  one  would  serve 
me,  let  him  follow  me  ;  and  where  I  am,  there  also  let  my  servant  be. 
And  if  any  one  serve  me,  my  Father  will  reward  him. 

My  soul  is  now  afflicted  ;  but  why  should  I  say.  Father,  preserve  me 
from  this  hour  1  since,  I  came,  with  an  express  purpose,  to  this  very 
hour.  O  Father,  glorify  thy  name.  A  voice  then  proceeded  from 
heaven,  I  have  even  glorified,  and  will  again  glorify  it.  Now,  when 
the  people  who  were  there  heard  it,  some  afiirmed,  that  it  thundered  ; 
others  alleged,  An  angel  spoke  to  him.  Jesus  replied  and  said.  This 
voice  came  not  for  my  sake,  but  for  yours.  Now  will  this  world  pass 
sentence.  Now  will  the  prince  of  this  world  be  expelled.  And  after  I 
have  been  lifted  up  from  the  ground,  I  will  draw  all  men  to  myself. 
He  said  this,  implying  by  what  death  he  should  depart.  The  people 
answered  him.  We  have  learnt  from  the  law,  that  the  Messiah  will  live 
forever.  "Why  dost  thou  assert  then,  that  the  Son  of  Man  must  be  lifted 
up  1  Who  is  this  1  The  Son  of  Man  !  Jesus  then  declared  to  them, 
But  little  longer  will  the  light  be  with  you.  Walk  while  you  have  the 
light,  that  darkness  may  not  overtake  you  :  for  he,  who  walks  in  dark- 
ness, knows  not  where  he  goes.  '  Trust  in  the  light,  while  you  enjoy  it, 
that  you  may  become  sons  of  light.  Jesus  made  these  remarks,  and, 
withdrawing,  concealed  himself  from  them. 

But,  though  he  had  performed  so  many  miracles  in  their  presence, 
yet  they  did  not  believe  in  him  :  thus  the  word  of  Isaiah  the  prophet 
was  fiilfiUed,  which  he  uttered,  Lord,  who  has  believed  our  report  ?  and 
to  whom  is  the  arm  of  the  Lord  discovered  1  And  concerning  their 
own  reluctance  to  believe,  Isaiah  in  another  passage  afiirmed.  He  has 
left  their  eyes  to  be  blinded,  and  their  understanding  to  be  blunted  ;  so 
that  they  see  not  with  their  eyes,  nor  comprehend  with  their  under- 
standing, and  retrace,  that  I  might  reclaim  them.  Isaiah  said  these 
things,  when  he  saw  his  glory,  and  spoke  concerning  him.  Yet,  there 
were  many  even  of  the  magistrates,  who  believed  in  him  ;  but,  for  fear 
of  the  pharisees,  did  not  avow  it,  lest  they  should  be  removed  from  the 
synagogue  :  for  they  preferred  the  applause  of  men  to  the  approbation 
of  God. 

Then  Jesus  exclaimed  and  said.  He  who  believes  in  me,  does  not 
trust  in  me  only,  but  in  him  who  sent  me.     And  he  who  sees  me,  per- 


JOHN'S  HISTORY.  179 

ceives  him  who  sent  me.  I  have  come  as  a  light  into  the  world,  that 
no  one,  who  confides  in  me,  should  remain  in  darkness.  And  if  any 
one  listens  to  these  my  words,  and  does  not  regard  them ;  is  it  not  I, 
who  judge  him  ;  for  I  came,  not  to  judge  the  world,  but  to  save  the 
world.  He,  who  despises  me,  and  rejects  my  instructions,  has  what 
condemns  him.  The  doctrine,  which  I  have  taught,  will  judge  him  at 
the  last  day.  For  I  have  said  nothing  from  myself;  but  the  Father, 
who  sent  me,  he  has  given  me  a  commission,  what  I  should  command, 
and  what  I  should  teach.  And  I  know  that  his  commission  is  eternal 
life.  Whatever  I  announce,  therefore,  I  communicate  as  the  Father 
has  enjoined  me. 

Moreover,  Jesus  having  known  before  the  festival  of  the  passover, 
that  the  hour  of  his  departure  from  this  world  to  the  Father  had  arrived  ; 
and,  having  loved  his  own  who  were  in  the  world,  he  loved  them  to  the 
last.  And  while  supper  was  preparing,  (the  enemy  having  already  put 
it  into  the  heart  of  Judas  Iscariot,  the  son  of  Simon,  to  betray  him) ; 
Jesus,  though  he  was  aware,  that  the  Father  had  committed  all  things 
to  his  hands,  and  that  he  proceeded  from  God,  and  was  returning  to 
God ;  arose  from  the  table,  and  laid  aside  his  mantle,  and  taking  a 
towel,  girded  himself.  He  then  poured  water  into  a  basin,  and  began 
to  wash  the  feet  of  the  disciples,  and  to  wipe  them  with  the  towel  by 
which  he  was  girded. 

When  he  came  to  Simon  Peter,  Simon  said  to  him,  Master,  wouldst 
thou  wash  my  feet  ?  Jesus  observed  to  him  in  reply,  At  present  you  do 
not  comprehend  what  I  am  doing  ;  but  you  will  know  hereafter.  Peter 
declared  to  him.  Thou  must  never  wash  my  feet.  Jesus  answered  him. 
Unless  I  wash  you,  you  can  have  no  part  with  me.  Simon  Peter  said 
to  him.  Master,  not  only  my  feet,  but  also  the  hands  and  the  head. 
Jesus  remarked  to  him.  He  who  has  bathed,  requires  only  to  wash  his 
feet,  and  he  is  entirely  clean  ;  and  you  are  purified,  but  not  all  of  you  : 
for  he  knew  who  would  betray  him  ;  he  therefore  alleged,  You  are  not 
all  pure. 

When,  however,  he  had  washed  their  feet,  and  resumed  his  vestment, 
and  was  again  seated,  he  said  to  them,  Consider  what  I  have  done  to 
you  7  You  entitle  me  the  Teacher  and  the  Master ;  and  you  speak  cor- 
rectly ;  for  so  I  am.  If  I,  therefore,  the  Master  and  the  Teacher,  have 
washed  your  feet ;  you  ought  hkewise  to  wash  each  other's  feet.  For  I 
have  given  you  an  example,  that  you  may  also  imitate  what  I  have  done 
to  you.  In  truth,  I  assure  you,  that  a  servant  is  not  superior  to  his  mas- 
ter ;  nor  an  apostle  greater  than  he,  who  sent  him.  Happy  are  you, 
who  know  these  things,  provided  you  practise  them. 

I  do  not  speak  of  you  all.  I  know  whom  I  have  selected;  but  thus 
the  scripture  is  fulfilled.  He  who  eats  at  my  table,  has  raised  his  heel 
against  me.  I  now  apprise  you,  previous  to  its  occurrence,  that  when 
it  happens,  you  may  believe  that  I  am  the  person.     Indeed,  I  aver  to 


180  APOSTOLIC   PKODUCTIONS. 

you,  that  he,  who  entertams  any  of  my  messengers,  entertains  me  ;  and 
he,  who  receives  me,  receives  him,  who  sent  me. 

When  Jesus  had  thus  spoken,  he  was  troubled  in  spirit,  and  thus  ear- 
nestly affirmed,  In  truth,  I  assure  you,  that  one  of  you  will  treacherously 
surrender  me.  The  disciples  then  surveyed  each  other,  in  suspense  of 
whom  he  spoke.  Now  one  of  his  disciples,  whom  Jesus  loved,  was  re- 
clining on  the  bosom  of  Jesus.  Simon  Peter,  therefore,  intimated  to 
him,  that  he  should  inquire,  who  it  might  be,  to  whom  he  alluded.  He 
then,  resting  on  the  breast  of  Jesus,  said  to  him,  Master,  who  is  it  1  Jesus 
replied.  It  is  he,  to  whom  I  shall  give  this  food,  when  I  have  dipped  it. 
And  having  dipped  the  food,  he  gave  it  to  Judas  Iscariot,  son  of  Simon. 
And  after  receiving  the  food,  the  adversary  entered  him.  Jesus  then 
observed  to  him,  What  you  perform,  execute  immediately.  Now  no  one 
at  the  table  knew  for  what  purpose  he  said  this  to  him.  But  some 
thought,  because  Judas  kept  the  purse,  that  Jesus  had  said  to  him.  Pur- 
chase what  we  require  for  the  festival ;  or,  that  he  should  impart  some- 
thing to  the  poor.  He,  therefore,  having  received  the  food,  instantly 
withdrew  :  and  it  was  night. 

When  he  had  departed,  Jesus  declared.  The  Son  of  Man  has  already 
been  glorified,  and  God  is  glorified  by  him.  Because  God  is  glorified 
by  him,  God  will  also  glorify  him  with  himself,  and  that,  without  delay. 
Beloved  children,  but  little  longer  shall  I  be  with  you.  You  will  seek 
me  ;  and  as  I  alleged  to  the  Jews,  Where  I  am  going,  there  you  cannot 
come ;  thus,  I  now  affirm  to  you,  I  communicate  to  you  a  new  com- 
mandment, that  you  love  one  another ;  even  as  I  have  loved  you,  that 
you  also  love  one  another.  By  this  all  men  shall  know  that  you  are  my 
disciples,  if  you  have  this  love  for  each  other. 

Simon  Peter  said  to  him,  Master,  where  dost  thou  go  ?  Jesus  replied 
to  him,  Thou  canst  not  now  follow  me,  where  I  am  going ;  but  thou  shalt 
afterwards  follow  me.  Peter  observed  to  him,  Master,  why  am  I  unable 
to  follow  thee  1  I  will  lay  down  my  life  for  thee.  Jesus  answered  him. 
Wilt  thou  lay  down  thy  hfe  for  me  ?  I  declare  to  thee,  in  absolute 
certainty,  that  a  watch-trumpet  will  not  sound,  till  thou  hast  thrice  re- 
nounced me. 

Let  not  your  heart  be  perplexed  ;  trust  in  God ;  confide  also  in  me. 
There  are  numerous  apartments  in  my  Father's  temple  ;  if  not,  I  would 
have  informed  you.  I  am  departing  to  prepare  a  place  for  you.  And 
when  I  shall  have  gone  and  furnished  a  place  for  you,  I  wUl  return,  and 
receive  you  to  myself;  that  where  I  am,  you  may  also  be.  And  you  are 
conscious  where  I  am  going  ;  and  you  know  the  way.  Thomas  said  to 
him.  Master,  where  thou  goest  we  are  not  aware  ;  and  how  can  we  as- 
certain the  way  1  Jesus  remarked  to  him,  I  am  the  way,  and  the  truth, 
and  the  life ;  no  one  comes  to  the  Father,  but  through  me.  If  you  had 
known  me,  you  would  also  have  known  my  Father ;  and  from  this  time 
you  know  him,  and  have  seen  him. 


JOHN'S  HISTORY.  Ibl 

Philip  observed  to  liim,  Master,  show  us  the  Father,  and  we  shall  be 
satisfied.  Jesus  replied  to  him,  Have  I  been,  for  so  long  a  period,  with 
you,  and  have  you  not  known  me,  Philip  ?  He,  who  has  seen  me,  has 
seen  the  Father :  and  why  do  you  say,  Show  us  the  Father  1  Do  you 
not  believe  that  I  am  in  the  Father,  and  the  Father  in  me  1  The  words 
which  I  announce  to  you,  proceed  not  from  myself:  as  to  the  works,  it 
is  the  Father,  remaining  in  me,  who  performs  them.  Believe  me,  that  I 
am  in  the  Father,  and  that  the  Father  is  in  me  ;  but  if  not,  believe  me  in 
consequence  of  those  works.  With  the  most  entire  assurance,  I  apprise 
you,  that  he,  who  confides  in  me,  the  same  shall  even  do  the  works 
which  I  perform  ;  and  he  shall  achieve  greater  operations  than  these, 
because  I  repair  to  my  Father,  and  will  perform  any  thing  you  shall  ask 
in  my  name.  That  the  Father  may  be  glorified  through  the  Son,  what- 
ever you  shall  request  in  my  name,  I  will  accomplish  it. 

If  you  love  me,  keep  my  commandments.  And  I  will  implore  the 
Father,  and  he  will  give  you  another  Admonisher,  that  he  may  per- 
petually remain  with  you ;  even  the  Spirit  of  Truth  ;  whom  the  world 
cannot  receive,  because  it  does  not  see  him,  nor  know  him  ;  but  you  shall 
know  him  :  for  he  will  abide  with  you,  and  be  in  you.  I  will  not  leave 
you  orphans  ;  I  will  return  to  you.  Yet  a  little  time,  and  the  world 
shall  behold  me  no  more ;  but  you  shall  see  me  :  because  I  shall  live, 
you  also  shall  live.  -On  that  day,  you  shall  know  that  I  am  in  my 
Father,  and  you  are  in  me,  and  I  am  in  you.  He  who  has  my  com- 
mandments, and  keeps  them,  he  it  is,  who  loves  me  ;  and  he,  who  loves 
me,  will  be  loved  by  my  Father ;  and  I  will  love  him,  and  will  reveal 
myself  to  him.  Judas,  (not  Iscariot),  said  to  him,  Master,  how  can  it 
occur,  that  thou  wilt  discover  thyself  to  us,  and  not  to  the  world  1  Jesus 
answered  and  said  to  him.  If  any  one  love  me,  he  will  regard  my  doc- 
trine, and  my  Father  will  love  him,  and  we  will  come  to  him,  and  dwell 
with  him.  He  who  does  not  love  me,  disregards  my  injunctions  ;  yet 
the  instruction,  which  you  hear,  is  not  mine,  but  the  Father's,  who 
sent  me. 

I  have  spoken  these  things  to  you,  while  remaining  with  you.  But 
the  Admonisher,  the  Holy  Spirit,  whom  the  Father  will  send  in  my 
name,  he  will  teach  you  all  things,  and  remind  you  of  all,  that  I  have 
told  you.  Peace  I  leave  to  you  ;  I  impart  my  peace  to  you  ;  I  do  not 
give  to  you,  as  the  world  gives.  Let  not  your  heart  be  afilicted,  nor  let 
it  recoil.  You  have  heard,  that  I  declared  to  you ;  I  depart,  and  will 
return  to  you.  If  you  loved  me,  you  would  rejoice,  because  I  alleged,  I 
go  to  the  Father ;  for  the  Father  is  superior  to  me.  And  I  have  now 
informed  you  before  it  occurs,  that,  when  it  happens,  you  may  believe. 
I  shall  not  hereafter  converse  much  with  you ;  for  the  prince  of  the 
world  is  coming,  though  he  will  find  nothing  in  me.  This  must,  how- 
ever, transpire,  that  the  world  may  know,  that  I  love  the  Father ;  and 
that  I  perform,  even  as  the  Father  has  commanded  me.  Arise,  let  us 
retire  from  this  place. 


182  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

I  am  the  true  vine  ;  and  my  Father  is  the  vine-dresser.  Every  branch 
in  me  which  bears  no  fruit,  he  removes  ;  and  every  one,  virhich  produces 
fruit,  he  prunes,  that  it  may  produce  more  fruit.  You  are  already 
pruned,  through  that  instruction,  which  I  have  communicated  to  you. 
Continue  in  me,  and  I  will  remain  in  you.  As  the  branch  cannot  inde- 
pendently bear  fruit,  unless  it  adhere  to  the  vine ;  so  neither  can  you, 
unless  you  adhere  to  me.  I  am  the  vine  ;  you  are  the  branches.  He, 
who  remains  in  me,  and  in  whom  I  abide,  produces  much  fruit :  for, 
separated  from  me,  you  can  do  nothing.  If  any  one  does  not  adhere  to 
me,  he  is  cast  forth  like  a  branch,  which  is  withered ;  and  such  are  col- 
lected, and  thrown  into  a  fire  to  be  burned.  If  you  continue  in  me,  and 
my  words  remain  in  you,  you  may  request  what  you  please,  and  it  shall 
be  granted  you. 

By  this  is  my  Father  honored,  when  you  produce  abundant  fruit ; 
thus  you  will  be  my  disciples.  As  the  Father  has  loved  me,  so  I  have 
loved  you  :  cbntinue  in  my  love.  If  you  keep  my  commandments,  you 
shall  abide  in  my  love  ;  even  as  I  have  kept  my  Father's  command- 
ments, and  abide  in  his  love.  I  have  given  you  these  admonitions,  that 
I  may  continue  to  have  joy  in  you,  and  that  your  joy  may  be  complete. 
This  is  my  injunction,  That  you  love  each  other,  even  as  I  have  loved  you. 
No  one  has  greater  love  than  this,  to  lay  down  his  life  for  his  friends. 
You  are  my  friends,  if  you  do  whatever  I  direct  you.  I  do  not  any 
longer  call  you  servants ;  for  the  servant  is  not  aware  what  his  master 
will  do ;  but  I  have  styled  you  friends  :  since  all  things,  which  I  have 
learnt  from  my  Father,  I  have  related  to  you.  You  have  not  chosen 
me,  but  I  have  selected  you,  and  appointed  you,  that  you  should  pro- 
ceed, and  produce  fruit,  which  will  prove  permanent ;  that  the  Father 
may  give  you  whatever  you  shall  ask  in  my  name. 

I  enjoin  this  upon  you,  that  you  love  one  another.  If  the  world  hate 
you,  consider,  that  it  hated  me  before  it  hated  you.  If  you  were  of  the 
world,  the  world  would  love  its  own.  However,  because  you  are  not  of 
the  world,  but  I  have  chosen  you  from  the  world,  therefore  the  world 
hates  you.  Recollect  the  declaration  which  I  made  to  you.  The  servant 
is  not  superior  to  his  Master.  If  they  have  regarded  my  instruction, 
they  will  also  regard  yours  ;  if  they  have  persecuted  me,  they  will  also 
persecute  you.  But,  all  this  treatment  they  will  inflict  upon  you,  in 
consequence  of  my  name,  because  they  know  not  him  who  sent  me.  If 
I  had  not  come  and  spoken  to  them,  they  would  not  have  had  so  much 
sin  ;  but  now,  they  have  no  excuse  for  their  sin.  He  who  despises  me, 
even  contemns  my  Father.  If  I  had  not  done  among  them  such  works, 
as  no  other  person  has  performed,  they  would  not  have  had  so  much 
sin ;  but  now  they  have  seen  them,  and  yet,  hated  both  me  and  my 
Father.  Even  thus,  the  passage  is  verified,  which  is  written  in  their 
law,  They  have  unreasonably  detested  me.  But  when  the  Admonisher 
is  come,  whom  I  will  send  to  you  from  the  Father,  even  the  Spirit  of 
Truth  who  proceeds  from  the  Father,  he  will  testify  relative  to  me. 


JOHN'S  HISTORY.  183 

And  you  will  also  bear  testimony,  because  you  have  been  with  me  from 
the  beginning. 

I  communicate  these  things  to  you,  that  you  may  not  be  seduced. 
They  will  drive  you  from  the  synagogue  ;  indeed,  the  time  approaches, 
when  any  one,  who  destroys  you,  will  think  that  he  oifers  service  to 
God.  And  they  will  thus  conduct  towards  you,  because  they  know  nei- 
ther the  Father,  nor  me.  I  warn  you  of  these  things,  that  when  the  time 
shall  arrive,  you  may  remember  that  I  mentioned  them  to  you.  I  did 
not  indeed  announce  them  to  you  at  the  commencement,  because  I  was 
personally  with  you.  And  now,  that  I  am  going  to  him  who  sent  me, 
not  even  one  of  you  asks  me,  Where  dost  thou  go  1  But  because  I  have 
disclosed  these  things  to  you,  sorrow  has  pervaded  your  heart. 

However,  I  represent  to  you  the  truth  ;  it  is  advantageous  for  you 
that  I  depart ;  for  if  I  do  not  depart,  the  Admonisher  will  not  come  to 
you  ;  but  if  I  go  away,  I  will  send  him  to  you.  And  when  he  is  come, 
he  will  convince  the  world  concerning  sin,  and  respecting  righteousness, 
and  in  relation  to  judgment :  concerning  sin  indeed,  because  they  do 
not  believe  in  me  ;  and  respecting  righteousness,  because  I  go  to  my 
Father,  and  you  see  me  no  longer ;  and  in  relation  to  judgment,  because 
the  prince  of  this  world  is  judged. 

I  have  still  many  things  to  say  to  you,  but  you  cannot  now  sustain 
them.  Yet,  when  he  comes,  even  the  Spirit  of  Truth,  he  will  lead  you 
into  all  the  truth :  for  his  words  will  not  proceed  from  himself ;  but  he 
will  declare  what  he  shall  have  heard ;  and  he  will  proclaim  to  you 
future  things.  He  wiU  glorify  me  ;  for  he  will  receive  from  me,  and 
announce  it  to  you.  All  things  which  the  Father  possesses  are  mine  ;  I 
have  therefore  said,  that  he  receives  from  me,  and  will  announce  it  to 
you. 

Moreover,  in  a  little  time,  you  shall  not  see  me  ;  and  afterwards  in  a 
short  period,  you  shall  see  me  ;  because  I  go  to  the  Father.  Some  of 
his  disciples  then  observed  to  each  other.  What  is  this  which  he  says  to 
us.  In  a  little  time,  you  shall  not  see  me  ;  and  afterwards  in  a  short 
period,  you  shall  see  me  ;  because  I  go  to  the  Father  1  They  said 
therefore.  What  is  this  little  time  of  which  he  speaks  1  we  do  not  com- 
prehend his  remark.  Jesus,  perceiving  that  they  were  desirous  to  ask 
him,  said  to  them.  Do  you  inquire  of  each  other  in  respect  to  what  I 
said.  In  a  little  time,  you  shall  not  see  me  ;  and  afterwards  in  a  short 
period,  you  shall  see  me  1  Indeed,  I  solemnly  assert  to  you,  that  you 
will  weep  and  lament,  but  the  world  will  rejoice  ;  and  you  will  b.e  sor- 
rowful, but  your  sorrow  shall  be  changed  to  joy.  When  a  woman  is  in 
parturition,  she  has  distress,  because  her  crisis  has  arrived  ;  but  after  it 
has  passed,  she  forgets  the  affliction,  through  joy  that  a  human  being 
has  entered  the  world.  And  thus,  you  are  at  present  really  in  grief; 
but  I  will  again  visit  you,  and  your  hearts  shall  rejoice,  and  no  one  shall 
divest  you  of  your  joy.  And  at  that  day,  you  will  make  no  inquiry  of 
me.     I  inform  you,  as  an  undeniable  truth,  that  whatever  you  shall  ask 


184  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

the  Father  in  my  name,  he  will  give  you.  You  have,  antecedently,  re- 
quested nothing  in  my  name  ;  ask,  and  you  shall  receive,  that  your  joy 
may  be  consummated. 

I  have  suggested  these  things  to  you  in  figurative  language  ;  but  the 
time  approaches,  when  I  will  no  longer  address  you  in  comparisons,  but 
will  clearly  explain  to  you  what  relates  to  the  Father.  On  that  day, 
you  will  ask  in  my  name  ;  and  I  do  not  apprise  you,  that  I  will  suppli- 
cate the  Father  concerning  you  :  for  the  Father  himself  loves  you, 
because  you  love  me,  and  believe  that  I  emanated  from  God.  I  pro- 
ceeded from  the  Father,  and  have  entered  the  world  :  moreover,  I  leave 
the  world,  and  return  to  the  Father.  His  disciples  said  to  him,  Now 
indeed,  thou  speakest  plainly,  and  without  a  figure.  We  are  now  assur- 
ed, that  thou  knowest  all  things,  and  dost  not  require  that  any  one 
should  interrogate  thee  :  on  this  account  we  believe  that  thou  didst  pro- 
ceed from  God.  Jesus  replied  to  them.  Do  you  now  believe  1  Attend, 
the  hout  approaches,  or  rather,  is  already  arrived,  when  you  will  dis- 
perse, every  one  to  his  own  home,  and  wiU  leave  me  alone  ;  and  yet,  I 
am  not  alone,  because  the  Father  is  with  me.  I  have  spoken  these 
things  to  you,  that  in  me  you  may  have  peace.  In  the  world  you  will 
have  adversity  ;  but  do  not  despair  ;  I  have  vanquished  the  world. 

And  Jesus,  having  concluded  this  discourse,  raised  his  eyes  to  heaven, 
and  said.  Father  the  hour  is  come  ;  glorify  thy  Son,  that  thy  Son  may 
also  glorify  thee  ;  that  being  endowed  by  thee  with  authority  over  the 
whole  human  race,  he  may  impart  eternal  life  to  all  whom  thou  hast 
given  him.  And  this  is  the  eternal  life,  that  they  may  know  thee,  the 
only  true  God,  and  Jesus,  the  Messiah,  whom  thou  hast  commissioned. 
I  have  glorified  thee  on  the  earth ;  I  have  finished  the  work,  which  thou 
gavest  me  to  perform.  And  now.  Father,  do  thou  glorify  me  in  thine 
own  presence,  with  that  glory  which  I  enjoyed  with  thee,  before  the 
world  existed. 

I  have  made  known  thy  name  to  the  men  whom  thou  hast  given  me 
from  the  world :  they  were  thine,  and  thou  gavest  them  to  me  ;  and 
they  ha;ve  kept  thy  word.  Whatever  thou  hast  given  me,  they  already 
know  to  have  originated  from  thee  ;  and  that  thou  hast  imparted  to  me 
the  instruction,  which  I  have  imparted  to  them ;  and  they  have  thus 
received  it,  and  have  assuredly  ascertained,  that  I  came  forth  from  thee ; 
and  they  have  believed,  that  thou  hast  commissioned  me.  I  intercede 
for  them.  I  do  not  [now]  supplicate  for  the  world,  but  for  those  whom 
thou  hast  given  me,  because  they  are  thine.  And  all  things,  that  are 
mine,  are  thine  ;  and  all  things  that  are  thine,  are  mine  ;  and  I  am  glo- 
rified by  them.  And  I  remain  no  longer  in  the  world,  but  these  continue 
in  the  world,  and  I  am  coming  to  thee.  Holy  Father,  preserve  them, 
through  thy  name  which  thou  hast  given  me,  that  they  may  be  one,  even 
as  we  are.  While  I  was  with  them  in  the  world,  I  sustained  them  in 
thy  name  ;  those  whom  thou  hast  given  me,  I  have  preserved  ;  and  none 
of  them  has  perished,  except  the  son  of  mischief,  as  the  scripture  pre- 


JOHN'S  HISTORY.  185 

dieted.  But  now,  that  I  am  coming  to  thee,  I  announce  these  things  in 
the  world,  that  their  joy  in  me  may  be  consummated.  I  have  dispensed 
to  them  thy  instruction  ;  but  the  world  hates  them,  because  they  are  not 
of  the  world,  even  as  I  am  not  of  the  world.  I  do  not  implore  thee  to 
remove  them  from  the  world,  but  to  preserve  them  from  evil.  They  are 
not  of  the  world,  even  as  I  am  not  of  the  world.  Consecrate  them  by 
thy  truth ;  thy  word  is  the  truth.  Even  as  thou  hast  made  me  thy  apos- 
tle to  the  world,  so  I  have  also  made  them  my  apostles  to  the  world. 
And  I  sacredly  devote  myself  in  their  behalf,  that  they  may  also  be 
consecrated  by  the  truth. 

I  do  not,  however,  exclusively  pray  for  these,  but  likewise  for  those 
who  shall  confide  in  me  through  their  instruction  ;  that  all  may  be  one ; 
that  as  thou  Father  art  in  me,  and  I  in  thee,  they  may  also  be  one  in 
us,  that  the  world  may  believe  that  thou  hast  sent  me ;  and  that  thou 
didst  impart  to  me  the  glory,  which  I  have  imparted  to  them  ;  that  they 
may  be  one,  even  as  we  are  one  ;  I  in  them,  and  thou  in  me,  that  their 
union  may  be  perfected  ;  and  that  the  world  may  know  that  thou  hast 
sent  me,  and  that  thou  lovest  them,  even  as  thou  lovest  me.  Father,  I 
desire  that  where  I  shall  be,  those  whom  thou  hast  given  me,  may  also 
be  with  me ;  that  they  may  behold  my  glory,  which  thou  gavest  me, 
because  thou  didst  love  me  before  the  formation  of  the  world.  Right- 
eous Father,  though  the  world  does  not  acknowledge  thee,  yet  I  ac- 
knowledge thee  ;  and  these  have  recognised,  that  I  have  thy  commis- 
sion. And  I  have  declared  thy  name  to  them,  and  will  announce  it ; 
that  I  being  in  them,  they  may  participate  in  the  affection,  with  which 
thou  lovest  me. 

Jesus,  having  spoken  these  words,  passed  with  his  disciples  over  the 
brook  of  Kedron,  where  there  was  a  garden,  which  he  and  his  disciples 
entered.  And  moreover,  Judas,  who  delivered  him  up,  knew  the  place ; 
for  Jesus  frequently  resorted  there  with  his  disciples.  Then  Judas, 
having  obtained  the  cohort  and  officers  from  the  chief  priests  and  phar- 
isees,  proceeded  there  with  torches,  and  lamps,  and  arms.  But  Jesus, 
knowing  all  things  that  would  befall  him,  advanced,  and  said  to  them. 
Whom  do  you  seek  ?  They  replied  to  him,  Jesus  the  Nazarean.  Jesus 
says  to  them,  I  am  he.  Now  Judas,  who  surrendered  him,  stood  also 
with  them.  He  had  no  sooner  alleged  to  them,  I  am  he,  than  they  went 
back,  and  fell  to  the  ground.  He  then  questioned  them  again.  For 
whom  do  you  search  1  And  they  said,  Jesus  the  Nazarean.  Jesus 
answered,  I  have  informed  you  that  I  am  the  person.  If,  therefore,  you 
seek  me,  let  these  depart.  Thus  the  declaration  which  he  uttered  was 
accomplished,  I  have  lost  none  of  those,  whom  thou  hast  given  me. 
Then  Simon  Peter,  having  a  sword,  drew  it,  and  struck  the  high  priest's 
servant,  whose  name  was  Malchus,  and  cut  of  his  right  ear.  Jesus  then 
said  to  Peter,  return  the  sword  to  the  scabbard.  Shall  I  not  drink  the 
very  cup,  which  the  Father  has  given  me  7 

24 


186  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

Then  the  cohort,  with  the  tribune,  and  the  Jewish  officers,  seized 
Jesus,  and  bound  him  ;  and  they  originally  conducted  him  to  Annas  ; 
for  he  was  father-in-law  to  Caiaphas,  who  was  the  high  priest  that  year. 
(Annas  had  sent  him  bound  to  Caiaphas  the  high  priest).  Now  it  was 
Caiaphas,  who  had  counselled  the  Jews,  that  it  was  appropriate,  that 
one  man  should  die  for  the  people. 

Moreover,  Simon  Peter  and  another  disciple  followed  Jesus ;  and 
that  disciple,  being  known  to  the  high  priest,  entered  his  court-yard  with 
Jesus.  But  Peter  stood  without,  at  the  door.  Therefore,  the  other  dis- 
ciple who  was  known  to  the  high  priest,  went  out  and  spoke  to  the  por- 
tress, and  brought  in  Peter.  The  maid  who  kept  the  door,  then  says  to 
Peter,  Are  not  you  also  one  of  tliis  man's  disciples  1  He  affirms,  I  am 
not.  Now  the  servants  and  the  officers,  having  made  a  fire  of  coals, 
stood  there,  and  were  warming  themselves  ;  for  it  was  cold.  And  Peter 
stood  with  them,  and  warmed  himself. 

The  high  priest  then  examined  Jesus  relative  to  his  disciples,  and  in 
reference  to  his  doctrine.  Jesus  answered  him,  I  openly  communicated 
to  the  world  ;  I  frequently  instructed  in  the  synagogue,  and  in  the  tem- 
ple, where  all  the  Jews  resort ;  and  I  have  uttered  nothing  in  secret. 
Why  do  you  question  me  ?  Inquire  of  those  who  heard  me,  what  I 
have  taught  them.  They,  indeed,  know  what  I  announced.  And  when 
Jesus  had  said  this,  one  of  the  officers  who  attended,  gave  him  a  blow, 
saying.  Dost  thou  thus  reply  to  the  high  priest  ?  Jesus  answered  him, 
If  I  have  spoken  amiss,  show  in  what  respect  it  is  amiss  ;  but  if  well, 
why  do  you  strike  me  1 

And  as  Simon  Peter  was  standing  and  warming  himself,  they  said  to 
him.  Are  not  you  also  one  of  his  disciples  ?  He  denied  it,  and  declared, 
I  am  not.  One  of  the  servants  of  the  high  priest,  being  a  relative  of 
him,  whose  ear  Peter  had  cut  off,  said.  Did  I  not  see  you  in  the  garden 
with  him  1  Then  Peter  agEun  denied  it ;  and  immediately  a  watch- 
trumpet  sounded. 

They  then  led  Jesus  from  the  house  of  Caiaphas  to  the  procurator's 
palace;  it  was  now  morning;  but  the  Jews  did  not  enter  the  pretorium, 
lest  they  should  be  contaminated,  and  prevented  from  eating  the  pass- 
over.  Pilate,  therefore,  went  out  to  them  and  said.  What  accusation  do 
you  bring  against  this  man  1  They  remarked  to  him  in  reply.  If  he 
were  not  a  criminal,  we  would  not  have  delivered  him  to  you.  Pilate 
then  observed  to  them,  Take  him  yourselves,  and  judge  him  in  conform- 
ity to  your  law.'  But  the  Jews  alleged  to  him.  We  are  not  legally 
authorized  to  execute  any  man  :  and  thus  was  accompUshed  the  declar- 
ation, which  Jesus  had  made,  intimating  by  what  death  he  should  suffer. 

Then  Pilate  returned  to  the  hall  of  audience,  and  summoned  Jesus ; 
and  said  to  him,  Thou  art  the  king  of  the  Jews  1  Jesus  replied  to  him. 
Do  you  personally  say  this  ?  or  have  others  suggested  it  to  you  concern- 
ing me  ?    Pilate  answered,  Am  I  a  Jew  7     Thine  own  nation,  even  the 


JOHN'S  HISTORY.  187 

chief  priests  have  surrendered  thee  to  me.  What  hast  thou  done  1 
Jesus  replied,  My  dominion  is  not  of  this  world.  If  my  dominion  were 
of  this  world,  my  adherents  would  have  contended,  that  I  might  not  be 
delivered  to  the  Jews ;  but  indeed,  my  dominion  is  not  here.  Pilate 
accordingly  said  to  him,  Thou  art  then  a  king  ?  Jesus  answered,  I  am 
a  king,  as  you  intimate.  For  this  purpose  I  was  born ;  and  I  have  en- 
tered the  world  for  this  object,  that  I  might  give  testimony  to  the  truth. 
Every  one  who  is  of  the  truth,  hears  my  voice.  Pilate  says  to  him, 
What  is  truth  1  And  having  said  this,  he  again  went  out  to  the  Jews, 
and  declared  to  them,  I  find  no  criminality  in  him.  But,  since  it  is  cus- 
tomary with  you,  that  I  should  release  some  one  to  you  at  the  passover, 
do  you  wish  me  to  release  to  you  the  king  of  the  Jews  ?  Then  they  all 
thus  exclaimed,  Not  this  man,  but  Barabbas.  Now  Barabbas  was  a 
robber. 

Moreover,  Pilate  then  took  Jesus,  and  caused  liim  to  be  scourged. 
And  the  soldiers  wreathed  a  crown  of  acanthus,  and  placed  it  on  his 
head ;  and  having  invested  him  with  a  purple  robe,  they  proclaimed. 
Hail,  King  of  the  Jews  !  and  they  struck  him  with  their  hands.  Pilate, 
therefore,  went  out  again,  and  remarked  to  them.  Behold,  I  conduct 
him  to  you,  that  you  may  know,  that  I  discover  no  criminahty  in  him. 
Jesus  then  came  forth,  wearing  the  acanthine  crown,  and  the  purple 
vestment ;  and  Pilate  says  to  them.  Survey  the  man  !  But  when  the 
chief  priests  and  the  oflGicers  saw  him,  they  thus  exclaimed.  Crucify, 
crucify  him.  Pilate  said  to  them.  Take  him,  yourselves,  and  crucify 
him  ;  as  for  me,  I  perceive  nothing  criminal  in  him.  The  Jews  replied 
to  him.  We  have  a  law,  and  by  our  law,  he  ought  to  die,  because  he 
assumed  the  title  of  Son  of  God. 

When  Pilate,  therefore,  heard  this  expression,  he  was  more  intimidat- 
ed ;  and  he  again  returned  to  the  pretorium,  and  said  to  Jesus,  Whence 
art  thou  1  But  Jesus  gave  him  no  answer.  Pilate  then  says  to  him, 
Wilt  thou  not  speak  to  me  ?  Art  thou  not  apprised,  that  I  have  power 
to  crucify  thee,  and  have  authority  to  discharge  thee  ?  Jesus  replied, 
You  could  not  exercise  the  least  control  over  me,  unless  it  were  permit- 
ted you  from  above ;  consequently,  he  who  delivered  me  to  you,  is  the 
more  iniquitous.  From  this  time,  Pilate  earnestly  endeavored  to  release 
him ;  but  the  Jews  thus  exclaimed.  If  you  liberate  this  man,  you  are  not 
a  friend  of  Cesar.  Every  one,  who  represents  himself  as  a  king,  opposes 
Cesar. 

Pilate,  therefore,  having  heard  these  remarks,  ordered  Jesus  to  be 
brought  forth,  and  sat  down  on  the  tribunal,  in  a  place  which  is  called, 
in  Greek,  Lithostroton,  the  Pavement,  but  in  Hebrew,  Gabbatha,  the 
Elevation.  (Now  it  was  the  preparation  of  the  paschal  sabbath,  and 
about  the  third  hour).  And  he  announced  to  the  Jews,  Behold  your 
king !  3ut  they  vociferated.  Destroy,  destroy,  crucify  lum.  Pilate  says 
to  him,  Shall  I  crucify  your  King  1     The  chief  priests  answered.  We 


188  AFOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

have  no  king  but  Cesar.  Accordingly,  Pilate  then  delivered  him  to 
them,  that  he  might  be  crucified. 

And  thej  took  Jesus,  and  led  him  away.  And  he  proceeded,  sup- 
porting his  cross,  to  what  was  called  a  place  of  skulls,  which  is  termed  in 
Hebrew,  Golgotha  ;  where  they  crucified  him,  and  two  others  with  him, 
one  on  each  side,  and  Jesus  in  the  centre.  And  moreover,  Pilate  wrote 
a  title,  and  placed  it  on  the  cross.  Now  the  words  were,  Jesus  the 
Nazarean,  the  King  of  the  Jews.  And  many  of  the  Jews  read  this  in- 
scription ;  (because  the  place  where  Jesus  was  crucified,  was  near  the 
city) ;  and  it  was  written  in  Hebrew,  Greek,  and  Latin.  The  chief 
priests  of  the  Jews  then  said  to  Pilate,  Do  not  write,  The  King  of  the 
Jews  ;  but  that  he  alleged,  I  am  King  of  the  Jews.  Pilate  replied,  I 
will  not  alter  what  I  have  written. 

Then  the  soldiers,  when  they  had  fastened  Jesus  to  the  cross,  took  his 
mantle,  and  made  four  divisions,  one  to  each  soldier  :  they  likewise 
took  the  cassock  :  now  this  robe  was  woven,  without  seam,  through 
the  entire  length.  They  accordingly  proposed  to  each  other.  Let  us 
not  tear  it,  but  determine  by  lot  whose  it  shall  be.  The  scripture  was 
thus  verified,  which  declares,  They  shared  my  mantle  among  them, 
and  cast  lots  for  my  vesture.  The  soldiers,  indeed,  proceeded  in  this 
manner. 

Now  there  stood  near  the  cross  of  Jesus,  his  mother,  and  his  mother's 
sister,  Mary  the  wife  of  Cleopas,  and  Mary  Magdalene.  Then  Jesus, 
perceiving  his  mother,  and  the  disciple  whom  he  loved,  standing  near, 
says  to  his  mother.  Woman,  behold  your  son !  He  then  says  to  the 
disciple.  Behold  your  mother  !  And  from  that  hour,  that  disciple  took 
her  to  his  own  home. 

After  this,  Jesus,  knowing  that  all  was  now  accomphshed,  in  the  fiil- 
filment  of  scripture,  afiirms,  I  thirst.  Now  a  vessel  full  of  sour  vnne 
was  there  placed ;  and  they  filled  a  sponge  with  the  sour  wine,  and  at- 
taching it  to  a  stalk  of  hyssop,  raised  it  to  his  mouth.  When  Jesus, 
therefore,  had  received  the  vinegar,  he  said.  It  is  finished ;  and  reclining 
his  head,  he  yielded  up  the  spirit. 

Then  the  Jews,  because  it  was  the  preparation,  and  lest  the  bodies 
should  remain  upon  the  cross  on  the  sabbath,  (for  that  sabbath  was  a 
great  day),  entreated  Pilate,  that  their  bones  might  be  broken,  and  that 
they  might  be  removed.  The  soldiers  therefore  came,  and  broke  the 
legs  of  the  first,  and  of  the  other,  that  had  been  crucified  with  him  :  but 
coming  to  Jesus,  they  did  not  break  his  legs,  as  they  saw  that  he  was 
already  dead.  One  of  the  soldiers,  however,  pierced  his  side  with  a 
spear,  and  blood  and  water  instantly  issued.  And  he  who  saw,  has  tes- 
tified, and  his  testimony  is  true  ;  indeed,  he  knows  that  he  asserts  the 
truth ;  that  you  may  believe.  For  these  things  occurred,  so  that  the 
scripture  was  fulfilled,  None  of  his  bones  will  .be  broken.  And  again, 
another  scripture  says,  They  will  look  on  him  whom  they  have  pierced. 


JOHNS  HISTORY.  189 

And  subsequently,  Joseph  the  Arimathean,  (being  a  disciple  of  Jesus, 
though  a  concealed  one,  through  fear  of  the  Jews),  earnestly  requested 
Pilate,  that  he  might  remove  the  body  of  Jesus  ;  and  Pilate  permitted 
him.  He  therefore  proceeded,  and  received  the  body  of  Jesus.  And 
Nicodemus,  vrho  had  formerly  repaired  to  Jesus  by  night,  also  arrived, 
and  brought  a  composition  of  myrrh  and  aloes,  weighing  about  a  hun- 
dred pounds.  They  then  took  the  body  of  Jesus,  and  swathed  it  in  linen 
bands  with  the  aromatics,  in  conformity  to  the  Jewish  mode  of  inter- 
ment. Moreover,  there  was  a  garden  near  the  place  where  he  was  cru- 
cified, and  in  the  garden  a  new  sepulchre,  in  which  no  one  had  ever  yet 
been  entombed.  There  they  accordingly  deposited  Jesus,  in  conse- 
quence of  the  Jewish  preparation  ;  since  the  sepulchre  was  near. 

And  on  the  first  day  of  the  week,  early  in  the  morning,  while  it  was  yet 
dark,  Mary  Magdalene  went  to  the  sepulchre,  and  saw  that  the  stone 
had  been  removed  from  the  entrance.  She  therefore  hastens,  and  pro- 
ceeds to  Simon  Peter,  and  to  that  other  disciple  whom  Jesus  loved,  and 
says  to  them.  They  have  taken  the  Master  from  the  sepulchre,  and  we 
know  not  where  they  have  laid  him.  Peter  then  departed,  and  the 
other  disciple  ;  and  they  repaired  to  the  sepulchre.  And  they  both  ran 
together  ;  but  the  other  disciple  outran  Peter,  and  arrived  first  at  the 
sepulchre.  And  stooping  down,  he  saw  the  linen  shrouds  remaining ; 
however,  he  did  not  enter.  Simon  Peter  then  came,  following  him,  and 
went  into  the  tomb,  and  calmly  surveyed  the  linen  bands  placed  there, 
and  the  handkerchief  which  had  been  wrapped  about  his  head,  not  lying 
with  the  linen  bands,  but  folded  up  in  a  separate  place.  Then  the 
other  disciple  also  entered,  who  first  reached  the  sepulchre  ;  and  he 
saw,  and  accredited  the  report.  For  hitherto,  they  did  not  comprehend 
the  scripture,  that  he  must  rise  from  the  dead.  The  disciples  then 
returned  to  their  friends. 

But  Mary  stood  without,  near  the  sepulchre,  weeping ;  and  as  she 
wept,  she  stooped  down  to  look  into  the  sepulchre,  and  saw  two  angels 
in  white,  seated,  one  at  the  head,  and  the  other  at  the  feet,  where  the 
body  of  Jesus  had  been  laid.  And  they  said  to  her.  Woman,  why  do 
you  weep  1  She  says  to  them.  Because  they  have  taken  away  my  Mas- 
ter, and  I  know  not  where  they  have  laid  him.  Having  said  this,  she 
turned  about,  and  saw  Jesus  standing ;  but  did  not  know  that  it  was 
Jesus.  Jesus  said  to  her.  Woman,  why  do  you  weep  ?  Whom  do  you 
seek  1  She,  supposing  that  it  was  the  gardener,  said  to  him.  Sir,  if  you 
have  carried  him  away,  tell  me  where  you  have  placed  him,  and  I  will 
remove  him.  Jesus  says  to  her,  Mary  !  She  turned,  and  says  to  him  in 
Hebrew,  Rabboni!  which  implies,  Teacher.  Jesus  observes  to  her. 
Embrace  me  not ;  for  I  do  not  yet  ascend  to  my  Father  ;  but  go  to  my 
brethren,  and  say  to  them,  I  shall  ascend  to  my  Father,  and  your  Father ; 
and  to  my  God,  and  your  God.  Mary  Magdalene  came  and  announced 
to  the  disciples,  that  she  had  seen  the  Lord,  and  that  he  had  thus  spoken 
to  her. 


190  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

Now  in  the  evening  of  that  day,  being  the  first  day  of  the  week,  (the 
doors  where  the  disciples  were  convened  having  been  closed,  through 
fear  of  the  Jews),  Jesus  came  and  stood  in  the  midst,  and  says  to  them, 
Peace  attend  you.  And  having  said  this,  he  showed  them  his  hands  and 
his  side.  The  disciples,  therefore,  rejoiced,  when  they  saw  that  it  was 
their  Lord.  Jesus  then  repeated  to  them.  Peace  attend  you.  As  my 
Father  has  sent  me,  so  also  I  send  you.  And  after  these  words,  he 
breathed  on  them,  and  says  to  them.  Receive  the  Holy  Spirit.  If  you 
remit  the  sins  of  any,  they  are  remitted  to  them ;  if  you  retain  them, 
they  are  retained. 

But  Thomas,  that  is,  Didymus,  one  of  the  twelve,  was  not  with  them 
when  Jesus  came.  The  other  disciples,  therefore,  informed  him.  We 
have  seen  our  Master.  But  he  declared  to  them,  Unless  I  see  in  his 
hands  the  mark  of  the  nails,  and  put  my  finger  on  the  mark  of  the  nails, 
and  put  my  hand  on  his  side,  I  will  not  believe.  And  within  eight 
days,  his  disciples  were  again  convened,  and  Thomas  with  them ;  and 
Jesus  came,  the  doors  having  been  shut,  and  stood  in  the  midst,  and 
said.  Peace  be  to  you.  He  then  says  to  Thomas,  reach  here  your 
finger,  and  examine  my  hands  ;  and  extend  your  hand,  and  place  it  on 
my  side  ;  and  be  not  incredulous,  but  believe.  Thomas  answered  and 
said  to  him.  My  Lord,  and  my  God.  Jesus  says  to  him.  Because  you 
see  me,  you  believe ;  happy  they  who,  though  having  never  seen,  yet 
shall  believe. 

And  Jesus  also  performed  numerous  other  miracles,  in  the  presence 
of  his  disciples,  which  are  not  related  in  this  book.  But  these  are  re- 
corded, that  you  may  believe  that  Jesus  is  the  Messiah,  the  Son  of  God  ; 
and  that,  through  this  faith,  you  may  have  life  in  his  name. 

Afterwards,  Jesus  again  presented  himself  to  the  disciples,  at  the 
lake  of  Tiberias  ;  and  in  this  manner  he  appeared.  Simon  Peter,  and 
Thomas,  that  is,  Didymus,  and  Nathaniel  of  Cana  in  Galilee,  and  the 
sons  of  Zebedee,  and  two  other  disciples  of  Jesus,  were  in  company. 
Simon  Peter  says  to  them,  I  am  going  to  fish.  They  say  to  him.  We 
will  indeed  accompany  you.  They  departed,  and  immediately  entered 
a  bark ;  but  on  that  night  they  caught  nothing.  Now  in  the  morning, 
Jesus  stood  on  the  shore.  The  disciples,  however,  were  not  aware  that 
it  was  Jesus.  Jesus  then  says  to  them,  Dear  children,  have  you  any 
food  ?  They  replied  to  him,  No.  And  he  said  to  them,  throw  the  net 
on  the  right  side  of  the  vessel,  and  you  will  find  some.  They  did  so, 
but  were  now  unable  to  draw  it,  in  consequence  of  the  multitude  of 
fishes.  Then  that  disciple  whom  Jesus  loved,  says  to  Peter,  It  is  our 
Master.  Peter,  therefore,  hearing  that  it  was  their  Master,  girded  on 
his  outward  garment,  (which  he  had  laid  aside),  and  threw  himself  into 
the  sea.  But  the  other  disciples  came  with  the  boat,  drawing  the  net 
of  fishes  ;  for  they  were  not  far  from  the  land,  only  about  two  hundred 
cubits.  As  soon  then  as  they  came  ashore,  they  saw  a  fire  of  coals  pre- 
pared, and  fish  laid  on  it ;  and  bread.     Jesus  says  to  them,  Bring  some 


JOHN'S  HISTORY.  191 

of  the  fish  which  you  have  now  taken.  Simon  Peter  went  back,  and 
drew  the  net  to  land,  fiill  of  large  fishes,  a  hundred  and  fifty-three ;  and 
though  there  were  so  many,  yet  the  net  was  not  broken. 

Jesus  said  to  them.  Come  and  eat.  In  the  mean  time,  none  of  the 
disciples  presumed  to  ask  him.  Who  art  thou  ?  conscious  that  it  was  the 
Lord.  Jesus  comes,  and  takes  bread,  and  gives  to  them,  and  likewise 
fish.  This  is  the  third  time  that  Jesus  appeared  to  his  disciples,  after 
he  had  risen  from  the  dead. 

When,  therefore,  they  had  taken  their  repast,  Jesus  said  to  Simon 
Peter,  Simon,  son  of  Jonas,  do  you,  more  than  these,  affectionately  love 
me  1  He  answered  him,  Yes,  Lord,  thou  knowest  that  I  love  thee. 
Jesus  rejoins  to  him.  Feed  my  lambs.  He  then  addressed  him  the 
second  time,  Simon,  son  of  Jonas,  do  you  aiFectionately  love  me  1  He 
replies  to  him.  Indeed,  Lord,  thou  knowest  that  I  love  thee.  Jesus  said 
to  him.  Tend  my  sheep.  He  says  to  him  the  third  time,  Simon,  son  of 
Jonas,  do  you  love  me  1  Peter  was  grieved  that  he  said  to  him  the 
third  time.  Do  you  love  me  1  And  he  observed  to  him.  Lord,  thou 
knowest  all  things  ;  thou  knowest  that  I  love  thee.  Jesus  says  to  him. 
Feed  my  sheep.  Most  assuredly,  I  remind  you,  When  you  was  young, 
you  girded  yourself,  and  walked  where  you  desired  ;  but  when  you  shall 
become  old,  you  must  extend  your  hands,  and  another  will  gird  you, 
and  convey  you  where  you  do  not  desire.  He  suggested  this,  intimating 
by  what  death  Peter  would  praise  God.  And  having  thus  spoken,  he 
says  to  him.  Follow  me. 

And  Peter,  having  turned  about,  saw  the  disciple  following,  whom 
Jesus  loved ;  the  same  who  leaned  on  his  breast  at  supper,  and  said, 
Lord,  which  is  he  who  betrays  thee  1  Peter  perceiving  him,  says  to 
Jesus,  And  what,  Lord,  will  become  of  this  man  ?  Jesus  says  to  him. 
If  I  wish  him  to  remain  tUl  I  return,  what  is  that  to  you,  follow  thou 
me.  The  report  therefore  circulated  among  the  brethren,  that  this 
disciple  would  not  die  :  yet  Jesus  did  not  say  to  him,  that  he  would  not 
die  ;  but,  If  I  wish  him  to  remain  till  I  return,  what  is  that  to  you. 

It  is  this  disciple  who  attests  these  things,  and  wrote  this  account ;  and 
we  know  that  his  testimony  deserves  credit.  And  there  are  also  many 
other  things  that  Jesus  performed,  which,  were  they  universally  record- 
ed, I  fancy,  that  the  world  itself  could  not  even  contain  the  volumes  that 
would  be  written. 


HISTORY    BY  LUKE, 


APOSTOLIC  AND  ECCLESIASTICAL  TRANSACTIONS. 


Now  I  composed  the  former  history,  O  Theophilus,  relative  to  all 
things  which  Jesus  proceeded  both  to  teach  and  to  accomplish,  even 
to  the  day  in  which  he  was  taken  up,  after  having  given,  by  the  Holy 
Spirit,  injunctions  to  the  apostles,  whom  he  had  chosen :  to  whom  he 
also  presented  himself  alive,  after  his  suffering,  by  numerous,  unques- 
tionable testimonies  ;  being  seen  by  them  for  forty  days,  and  commu- 
nicating the  things,  which  had  reference  to  the  kingdom  of  God.  And 
having  convened  them,  he  charged  them  not  to  depart  from  Jerusalem, 
but  to  wait  for  the  ftilfilment  of  that  promise  of  the  Father,  which  you 
heard  from  me,  when  I  alleged,  John,  indeed,  baptized  with  water  ;  but 
in  a  short  period,  you  will  be  baptized  with  the  Holy  Spirit. 

When,  therefore,  they  were  assembled,  they  thus  interrogated  him. 
Lord,  Wilt  thou  at  this  time  restore  the  Kingdom  to  Israel  ?  And  he 
remarked  to  them.  You  are  not  permitted  to  ascertain  the  years  or 
seasons,  which  the  Father  has  reserved  at  his  own  disposal.  But  you 
will  receive  power  from  the  Holy  Spirit  pervading  you  ;  and  you  wUl 
be  witnesses  to  me,  both  in  Jerusalem,  and  in  all  Judea  and  Samaria, 
and  even  to  the  most  distant  part  of  the  earth.  And  having  said  these 
things,  as  they  were  beholding,  he  was  lifted  up  ;  and  a  cloud  received 
him  from  their  sight. 

And  while  they  intensely  looked  towards  heaven,  as  he  ascended, 
behold,  two  men  in  white  apparel,  stood  near  them,  and  said,  Men  of 
Galilee,  why  do  you  stand  looking  to  heaven  ?  This  Jesus  who  is  taken 
up  from  you  to  heaven,  will  return,  in  the  same  manner,  as  you  have 
seen  him  advancing  to  heaven. 

They  then  returned  to  Jerusalem  from  what  is  called  the  mount  of 
Olives,  which  is  near  Jerusalem,  being  a  sabbath-day's  journey.  And 
when  they  arrived,  they  repaired  to  an  upper  room,  where  both  Peter 
and  James,  and  John  and  Andrew,  Philip  and  Thomas,  Bartholomew 
and  Matthew,  James  the  son  of  Alpheus,  and  Simon  Zelotes,  and  Judas 
the  brother  of  James,  resided.     These  all  unanimously  persevered  in 


APOSTOLIC  TRANSACTIONS.  103 

prayer,  with  tlie  women,  and  with  Mary  the  mother  of  JesufS,  and  with 
his  brothers. 

And  in  these  days,  Peter,  standing  in  the  midst  of  the  brethren,  (now 
the  number  of  persons  assembled  was  about  a  hundred  and  twenty), 
observed.  Brethren,  it  was  necessary  that  this  scripture  should  be  fulfill- 
ed, which  the  Holy  Spirit  antecedently  announced,  by  the  mouth  of 
David,  in  regard  to  Judas,  who  was  guide  to  those  who  forcibly  arrested 
Jesus.  For  he  was  associated  with  us,  and  had  attained  the  ofiice  of 
this  ministry.  (Moreover,  this  man,  indeed,  caused  a  field  to  be  pur- 
chased with  the  recompense  of  his  iniquity  ;  and  falling  prostrate,  a 
violent,  internal  spasm  ensued,  and  all  his  viscera  were  emitted.  And 
this  was  known  to  all  who  dwelt  at  Jerusalem,  so  that  the  same  field  is 
denominated  in  their  own  language,  Aceldama,  that  is.  The  field  of 
blood).  For  it  is  written  in  the  book  of  Psalms,  Let  his  mansion  be 
desolate,  and  let  no  one  occupy  it :  and  let  another  take  his  superintend- 
ency.  It  is  necessary  therefore,  that  from  the  men  who  attended  us, 
during  all  the  period  in  which  the  Lord  Jesus  was  connected  with  us, 
from  the  time  when  he  was  baptized  by  John,  even  to  the  day  when  he 
was  taken  up  from  us,  one  of  these  should  be  constituted  a  witness  with 
us  of  his  resurrection.  So  they  designated  two,  Joseph,  called  Barsa- 
bas,  whose  surname  was  Justus  ;  and  also  Matthias.  And  they  prayed, 
saying.  Wilt  thou.  Lord,  who  searchest  the  hearts  of  all,  manifest  which 
of  these  two  thou  hast  selected  ;  that  he  may  receive  the  allotment  of 
this  ministry  and  apostleship,  to  repair  to  his  appropriate  station,  from 
which  Judas  is  fallen  by  his  transgression.  And  they  gave  in  their  lots ; 
and  the  lot  fell  upon  Matthias  ;  and  he  was  numbered  with  the  eleven 
apostles. 

And  when  the  day  of  Pentecost  arrived,  the  apostles  were  with  one 
accord  in  the  same  place.  And  a  sound  suddenly  came  from  heaven, 
like  a  rapid,  violent  wind,  and  it  pervaded  the  whole  house  where  they 
were  seated.  And  divided  tongues  appeared  to  them,  like  fire,  and  one 
rested  on  each  of  them.  And  they  were  all  replete  with  the  Holy  Spirit, 
and  began  to  speak  in  other  languages,  as  the  Spirit  gave  them  utter- 
ance. Now  pious  men  were  sojourning  at  Jerusalem,  who  were  Jews, 
from  every  nation  under  heaven.  And  when  this  report  was  circulated, 
the  multitude  assembled,  and  were  perplexed,  because  every  one  heard 
them  speaking  in  his  own  language.  And  they  were  all  confounded 
with  astonishment,  saying  to  each  other,  Behold,  are  not  all  these,  who 
speak,  Galileans  ?  And  how  do  we  every  one  hear  in  his  own  native 
language  1  We  Parthians,  and  Medes,  and  Elamites,  and  those  who 
sojourn  in  Mesopotamia,  and  in  Judea  and  Cappadocia,  in  Pontus  and 
Asia,  in  Phrygia  and  PamphyUa,  in  Egypt  and  in  the  parts  of  Africa 
adjacent  to  Cyrene,  and  the  strangers  from  Rome  both  Jews  and  pro- 
selytes, Cretans  and  Arabians;  we  all  hear  them  proclaiming,  in  our 
own  languages,  the  wonderful  works  of  God.     And  they  were  all  aston- 

25 


194  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

ished  and  perplexed,  saying  one  to  another.  What  can  this  mean  ?  But 
others  declared  in  derision,  They  are  filled  with  sweet  wine. 

But  Peter,  standing  with  the  eleven,  raised  his  voice,  and  addressed 
them.  Men  of  Judea,  and  all  who  reside  at  Jerusalem,  let  this  be  known 
to  you,  and  listen  to  my  words  ;  since  these  men  are  not  inebriated,  as 
you  suppose  ;  considering  that  it  is  only  the  third  hour  of  the  day  :  but 
this  is  what  was  proclaimed  by  the  prophet  Joel ;  And  it  shall  occur  in 
the  last  days,  says  God,  I  will  pour  out  of  my  Spirit  upon  all  the  human 
race  ;  and  your  sons  and  your  daughters  will  prophesy,  and  your  young 
men  will  witness  visions,  and  your  old  men  will  have  dreams  :  and  in- 
deed, in  those  days,  I  will  pour  out  some  of  my  Spirit  on  my  men-ser- 
vants, and  on  my  maid-servants,  and  they  will  become  prophets  ;  and  I 
will  display  prodigies  in  heaven  above,  and  signs  on  the  earth  beneath  ; 
blood,  and  fire,  and  a  cloud  of  smoke.  The  sun  will  be  turned  into 
darkness,  and  the  moon  into  blood,  before  that  great  and  illustrious  day 
of  the  Lord  shall  arrive.  And  it  shall  happen,  that  every  one  who  in- 
vocates  the  name  of  the  Lord,  will  be  preserved.  Men  of  Israel,  hear 
these  words  :  Jesus  the  Nazarean,  a  man  from  God,  celebrated  among 
you  by  miracles,  and  wonders,  and  signs,  which  God  wrought  by  him  in 
the  midst  of  you,  as  you  yourselves  even  know  ;  him,  being  surrendered, 
in  the  definitive  counsel  and  previous  recognition  of  God,  you  have 
seized,  and  by  the  hands  of  the  lawless,  have  fastened  to  the  cross  and 
slain  ;  whom  God  has  reanimated,  having  dissolved  the  chains  of  death; 
because  it  was  impossible  that  he  should  be  held  by  it.  For  David  al- 
leges concerning  him,  I  have  regarded  the  Lord  as  always  before  me  ; 
indeed,  he  is  at  my  right  hand,  that  I  might  not  be  moved  ;  my  heart 
therefore  rejoiced,  and  my  soul  exulted  ;  and  moreover,  my  body  also 
will  repose  in  hope,  that  thou  wilt  not  leave  my  soul  in  hades  ;  nor  per- 
mit thy  Consecrated  One  to  realize  decay.  Thou  hast  caused  me  to 
know  the  ways  of  life  ;  thou  wilt  replenish  me  with  the  joy  of  thy  coun- 
tenance. Brethren,  I  may  speak  to  you,  with  freedom,  respecting  the 
patriarch  David,  that  he  both  died  and  was  buried,  and  his  sepulchre  is 
among  us  to  this  day.  Being  therefore  a  prophet,  and  knowing  that 
God  had  promised  him  with  an  oath,  to  establish  his  posterity  on  his 
throne  ;  and  foreseeing  this,  he  spoke  of  the  resurrection  of  Christ,  that 
he  was  not  left  in  hades,  nor  did  his  body  experience  dissolution.  God 
has  raised  up  this  Jesus,  of  which  we  all  are  witnesses.  Being  therefore 
exalted  to  the  right  hand  of  God,  and  having  received  the  promise  of 
the  Holy  Spirit  from  the  Father,  he  has  poured  out  this,  which  you  see 
and  hear.  For  David  is  not  ascended  to  heaven  :  but  he  himself  de- 
clares, The  Lord  said  to  my  Lord,  Sit  thou  at  my  right  hand,  till  I  make 
thine  enemies  thy  footstool.  Therefore,  let  all  the  house  of  Israel  as- 
suredly know,  that  God  has  constituted  this  Jesus,  whom  you  crucified, 
both  Lord  and  Messiah. 

And  hearing  this,  they  were  pierced  to  the  heart,  and  said  to  Peter 
and  to  the  rest  of  the  apostles,  Men  and  brethren,  what  shall  we  do  ? 


APOSTOLIC  TRANSACTIONS.  195 

And  Peter  said  to  them,  Reform,  and  let  each  of  you  be  baptized  in  the 
name  of  Jesus  Christ,  with  reference  to  the  remission  of  sins  ;  and  you 
will  receive  the  gift  of  the  Holy  Spirit.  For  the  promise  is  to  you,  and 
to  your  children,  and  to  all  who  are  far  distant,  as  many  as  the  Lord 
our  God  shall  invite.  And  with  many  other  words  he  testified  and  ex- 
horted, saying,  Be  preserved  from  this  perverse  generation.  Then  they, 
who  joyfully  received  his  instruction,  were  baptized  :  and  on  that  day, 
there  was  an  accession  to  the  disciples  of  about  three  thousand  persons. 

Now  they  steadfastly  continued  in  the  doctrine  of  the  apostles,  and 
in  Christian  intercourse,  and  in  breaking  of  bread,  and  in  prayers.  And 
fear  assailed  every  soul  ;  and  numerous  miracles  and  signs  were  per- 
formed by  the  apostles.  And  all  the  believers  were  in  unity,  and  held 
all  things  collectively ;  and  sold  their  goods  and  estates,  and  distributed 
them  to  all,  according  to  the  necessity  of  each. 

And  daily  remaining  with  one  consent  in  the  temple,  and  breaking 
bread  at  home,  they  partook  of  food  with  joyfulness  and  ingenuousness 
of  heart ;  praising  God,  and  having  favor  with  all  the  people.  And  the 
Lord  daily  added  Christian  converts  to  the  church. 

Moreover,  at  that  time,  Peter  and  John  went  up  to  the  temple  at  the 
hour  of  prayer,  being  the  ninth  hour.  And  a  certain  man,  who  heid  been 
lame  from  his  birth,  was  carried  ;  whom  they  daily  placed  at  the  gate 
of  the  temple  which  is  called  Beautiful,  to  request  alms  from  those  that 
entered  the  temple  ;  who,  as  he  saw  Peter  and  John  going  towards  the 
temple,  solicited  alms.  And  Peter,  with  John,  earnestly  surveying  him, 
said,  Look  on  us.  And  he  attended  to  them,  expecting  to  receive  some- 
thing from  them.  Peter  then  said,  I  have  no  silver  and  gold  ;  but  I 
give  you  what  I  have  :  in  the  name  of  Jesus  Christ  of  Nazareth,  arise 
and  walk.  And  taking  the  man  by  the  right  hand,  he  raised  him  up  ; 
and  immediately,  his  feet  and  ankle-bones  were  strengthened ;  and  leap- 
ing up,  he  stood  erect,  and  walked  about,  and  entered  with  them  into 
the  temple,  walking  about,  and  leaping,  and  praising  God.  And  all  the 
people  saw  him  thus  walking,  and  praising  God  ;  and  they  recollected 
that  it  was  he,  who  used  to  sit  for  charity,  at  the  beautiful  gate  of  the 
temple  :  and  they  were  filled  with  astonishment  and  ecstasy,  at  that 
which  had  occurred  to  him.  Now  as  he  held  Peter  and  John,  all  the 
people  ran  together  to  them,  in  the  portico  which  is  called  Solomon's, 
greatly  astonished. 

And  when  Peter  saw  this,  he  said  to  the  people,  Men  of  Israel,  why 
are  you  surprised  at  this  1  or  why  do  you  attentively  fasten  your  eyes 
on  us,  as  though  by  our  own  power  or  piety,  we  had  caused  this  man  to 
walk  1  The  God  of  Abraham,  and  of  Isaac,  and  of  Jacob,  the  God  of 
our  fathers,  has  glorified  his  son  Jesus  ;  whom  you  delivered  up,  and 
renounced  in  the  presence  of  Pilate,  when  he  determined  to  release  him. 
But  you  renounced  the  Holy  and  Righteous  One,  and  desired  a  murder- 
er to  be  granted  to  you  ;  and  killed  the  Prince  of  Life,  whom  God  has 
raised  from  the  dead ;  of  which  we  are  witnesses.     And  through  faith 


196  APOSTOLIC   PRODUCTIONS. 

in  his  name  he  has  strengthened  this  man,  whom  you  see  and  know  : 
indeed,  the  name  of  Christ,  and  the  faith  which  is  towards  him,  have 
imparted  to  the  man  this  perfect  soundness  before  you  all.  And  now, 
brethren,  I  know  that  you,  as  well  as  your  rulers,  did  it  through  ignor- 
ance. But  God  has  thus  fulfilled  those  things,  which  he  predicted  by 
the  mouth  of  all  his  prophets,  that  the  Messiah  should  suffer.  Retrace, 
therefore,  and  be  reclaimed,  that  your  sins  may  be  obliterated,  and  that 
periods  of  refreshment  may  arrive  from  the  presence  of  the  Lord  ;  and 
that  he  may  send  to  you  Jesus  Christ,  who  was  before  designated ; 
whom,  indeed,  heaven  must  receive,  till  the  eras  of  the  accomplishment 
of  all  things,  respecting  which  God  has  spoken  by  the  mouth  of  his  holy 
prophets,  from  the  beginning  of  time.  Moses  truly  announced  to  the 
fathers.  The  Lord  your  God  wiU  raise  up  to  you  from  your  brethren  a 
prophet  resembling  me  ;  you  shail  hear  him  in  all  things  which  he  shall 
communicate  to  you.  And  it  shall  happen,  that  every  soul,  who  will 
not  listen  to  that  prophet,  shall  be  destroyed  from  among  the  people. 
And  indeed,  all  the  prophets,  from  Samuel  and  those  who  succeeded, 
as  many  as  have  spoken,  have  announced  these  days.  You  are  the 
sons  of  the  prophets,  and  of  the  covenant  which  God  established  with  our 
fathers,  declaring  to  Abraham,  And  in  thy  posterity  all  the  families  of 
the  earth  will  be  blessed.  God,  having  raised  up  his  Son,  has  first  sent 
him  to  you,  to  bless  every  one  of  you,  who  shall  turn  from  his  iniquities. 

Now  while  Peter  and  John  were  speaking  to  the  people,  the  priests, 
and  the  ofiicer  of  the  temple-guard,  and  the  sadducees,  came  suddenly 
upon  them  ;  being  entirely  wearied  that  they  taught  the  people,  and  an- 
nounced through  Jesus,  the  resurrection  from  the  dead.  And  they  laid 
hands  on  them,  and  committed  them  to  prison  tUl  the  next  day  ;  for  it 
was  now  evening.  Yet,  many  of  those,  who  had  heard  the  discourse, 
believed  ;  and  the  number  of  the  men  was  about  five  thousand. 

And  it  occurred,  on  the  next  day,  that  their  rulers,  and  elders,  and 
scribes,  assembled  at  Jerusalem  ;  and  Annas  the  high  priest,  and  Caia- 
phas,  and  John,  and  Alexander,  and  as  many  as  were  of  the  race  of  the 
high  priests.  And  having  placed  the  two  apostles  in  the  midst,  they  in- 
quired, By  what  power,  or  in  what  name,  have  you  done  this  ■? 

Then  Peter,  pervaded  by  the  Holy  Spirit,  said  to  them,  Rulers  of  the 
people,  and  senators  of  Israel,  If  we  are  this  day  examined  concerning 
the  benefit  bestowed  on  the  infirm  man,  by  what  means  he  is  healed  ; 
be  it  known  to  you  all,  and  to  all  the  people  of  Israel,  that  in  the  name 
of  Jesus  Christ  of  Nazareth,  whom  you  crucified,  whom  God  has  raised 
from  the  dead,  by  him  indeed,  this  man  stands  here  before  you  restored. 
This  is  the  stone  which  was  spurned  by  you  builders,  but  which  is  be- 
come the  head  stone  of  the  corner.  And  there  is  no  salvation  in  any 
other  ;  nor  is  there  any  other  name  under  heaven,  given  among  men,  in 
which  we  can  be  saved. 

Now  when  they  witnessed  the  intrepidity  of  Peter  and  John,  and  per- 
ceived that  they  were  unlearned  and  obscure  men,  they  were  astonished ; 


APOSTOLIC  TRANSACTIONS.  197 

and  they  recognised  them,  that  they  had  been  with  Jesus.  And  behold- 
ing the  man,  who  had  been  healed,  standing  with  them,  they  had  nothing 
to  controvert.  But  having  ordered  the  apostles  to  withdraw  from  the 
sanhedrin,  they  thus  conferred  among  themselves,  What  shall  we  do 
with  these  men  1  for  that  indeed,  a  signal  miracle  has  been  wrought  by 
them,  is  manifest  to  all  the  inhabitants  of  Jerusalem  ;  and  we  cannot 
deny  it.  Yet,  that  it  may  not  any  further  spread  among  the  people,  let 
us  threaten  them  severely,  that  they  speak  no  more  to  any  man  in  this 
name.  And  having  summoned  them,  they  charged  them  that  they  should 
not  speak  any  more,  or  teach  in  the  name  of  Jesus.  But  Peter  and 
John,  answering  them,  said,  Judge,  whether  it  be  righteous  in  the  sight 
of  God,  to  obey  you,  rather  than  God  ;  for  we  cannot  forbear  to  proclaim 
the  things,  which  we  have  seen  and  heard.  And  having  again  threatened 
the  apostles,  they  discharged  them,  finding  nothing  for  which  they  might 
punish  them,  in  consequence  of  the  people  ;  since  all  praised  God  for 
what  had  been  done  :  for  the  man  was  more  than  forty  years  old,  on 
whom  this  miracle  of  healing  had  been  performed. 

Then  the  apostles,  being  thus  released,  went  away  to  their  own 
friends,  and  related  all  that  the  chief  priests  and  the  elders  had  said  to 
them.  And  the  company,  having  heard  it,  lifted  up  their  voice  to  God 
with  one  consent,  and  said,  Thou,  God,  art  the  sovereign  Lord,  who 
hast  created  heaven,  and  earth,  and  the  sea,  and  all  that  is  in  them ; 
who,  by  the  mouth  of  thy  servant  David,  hast  said.  Why  did  the  heathen 
rage,  and  the  people  imagine  vanities  1  The  kings  of  the  earth  arrayed 
themselves,  and  the  rulers  combined  against  the  Lord,  and  against  his 
Anointed.  For  in  truth,  against  thy  holy  child  Jesus,  whom  thou  hast 
anointed,  (to  do  whatever  thy  hand  and  thy  counsel  permitted  before  to  be 
done),  both  Herod  and  Pontius  Pilate,  with  the  Gentiles,  and  the  peo- 
ple of  Israel,  were  gathered  together  in  this  very  city.  And  now.  Lord, 
consider  their  threatenings,  and  grant  to  thy  servants,  that  they  may 
announce  thy  word  with  all  freedom,  while  thou  art  extending  thy  hand 
to  heal ;  .and  accomplishing  signs  and  wonders  through  the  name  of  thy 
holy  servant  Jesus. 

And  when  they  had  prayed,  the  place  was  shaken  where  they  were 
assembled ;  and  they  were  all  filled  with  the  Holy  Spirit,  and  with 
fearlessness,  they  dispensed  the  word  of  God. 

And  the  multitude  of  those  who  believed,  were  of  one  heart,  and  of 
one  soul ;  and  no  one  alleged,  that  any  of  the  things  which  he  possessed 
was  his  own  ;  but  they  had  all  things  in  common.  And  with  great 
power  the  apostles  offered  testimony  to  the  resurrection  of  the  Lord 
Jesus  ;  and  a  divine  gracefiilness  characterized  them  all.  Nor  was 
there  any  one  indigent  person  among  them  :  for  as  many  as  were  pos- 
sessors of  lands,  or  houses,  were  constantly  selling  them,  and  bringing 
the  value  of  what  was  sold,  and  laying  it  at  the  feet  of  the  apostles  ;  so 
that  a  distribution  was  made  to  every  one,  according  to  his  necessity. 


198  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

Now  Joses,  who  by  the  apostles  was  surnamed  Barnabas,  (which 
means  a  son  of  consolation),  a  Levite,  and  a  native  of  Cyprus,  having 
land,  sold  it ;  and  brought  the  money,  and  laid  it  at  the  feet  of  the 
apostles. 

But,  a  certain  man  named  Ananias,  with  Sapphira  his  wife,  sold  an 
estate,  and  secreted  part  of  the  price,  his  wife  also  being  conscious  of  it, 
and  bringing  a  certain  part,  he  laid  it  down  at  the  feet  of  the  apostles. 
Then  Peter  said,  Ananias,  why  has  the  adversary  instigated  your  heart 
to  deceive  the  Holy  Spirit,  and  to  conceal  part  of  the  price  of  the 
land  1  While  it  remained,  was  it  not  your  own  1  and  when  it  was  sold, 
was  it  not  in  your  own  power  ?  Why  have  you  admitted  this  thing  into 
your  heart  ?  You  have  not  been  so  false  to  men,  as  to  God.  And 
Ananias,  hearing  these  words,  fell  down  and  expired  :  and  great  fear 
came  on  all  those  who  heard  these  things.  Then  the  younger  disciples 
arose,  bound  him  up,  and  carrying  him  out,  buried  him. 

And  after  an  interval  of  about  three  hours,  his  wife  also  came  in,  not 
knowing  what  had  occurred.  And  Peter  said  to  her.  Inform  me  whe- 
ther you  sold  the  land  for  so  much.  And  she  replied.  Yes,  for  so  much. 
Peter  then  said  to  her.  Why  is  it  that  you  have  conspired  together  to 
try  the  Spirit  of  the  Lord  1  Behold,  the  feet  of  those  who  have  been 
burying  your  husband  are  at  the  door,  and  they  will  carry  you  out. 
And  immediately,  she  fell  down  at  his  feet,  and  expired  :  and  the  young 
men  coming  in,  found  her  dead,  and  having  carried  her  out,  buried  her 
by  her  husband.  And  great  fear  came  on  all  the  church,  and  on  all 
who  heard  these  things. 

Moreover,  of  the  rest,  no  one  presumed  to  unite  himself  to  them  ;  but 
the  people  applauded  them  :  and  multitudes  both  of  men  and  women, 
believing,  were  the  more  willingly  added  to  the  Lord.  And  they  were 
all  with  one  accord  in  Solomon's  portico.  And  by  the  hands  of  the 
apostles,  many  signs  and  wonders  were  accomplished  among  the  peo- 
ple ;  so  that  they  brought  out  the  sick  along  the  streets,  and  placed  them 
on  beds  and  couches,  that  at  least  the  shadow  of  Peter  passing  by,  might 
overspread  some  of  them.  And  a  multitude  also  convened  at  Jerusalem 
from  the  neighboring  cities,  bringing  sick  persons,  and  those  who  were 
annoyed  by  impure  spirits  ;  all  of  whom  were  healed. 

Then  the  high-priest  arose,  and  all  those  who  were  with  him,  com- 
prising the  sect  of  the  sadducees,  and  being  filled  with  intemperate  zeal, 
laid  their  hands  on  the  apostles,  and  put  them  in  the  common  prison. 
But  an  angel  of  the  Lord,  in  the  night,  opened  the  doors  of  the  prison, 
and  bringing  4hem  out,  said.  Go,  and  presenting  yourselves  in  the  tem- 
ple, proclaim  to  the  people  all  this  doctrine  of  [eternal]  life.  And  hear- 
ing this,  they  went  into  the  temple  early  in  the  morning,  and  taught. 

But  when  the  high-priest  and  his  associates  had  come,  and  called  to- 
gether the  sanhedrin,  even  the  whole  senate  of  the  children  of  Israel, 
they  sent  to  the  prison  for  the  apostles  to  be  brought.     So  the  officers 


APOSTOLIC    TRANSACTIONS.  199 

came,  but  did  not  find  them  in  the  prison :  and  returning,  they  thus 
reported  ;  We  indeed  found  the  prison  closed  in  all  safety,  and  the 
guards  stationed  before  the  doors,  but  having  opened  it,  we  found  no 
one  within.  Now  when  the  high-priest,  and  the  commander  of  the 
temple-guard,  and  the  chief  priests,  heard  these  declarations,  they  were 
perplexed  concerning  them,  as  to  the  consequences.  But  one  came  and 
informed  them.  Behold,  the  men  whom  you  committed  to  prison,  are 
standing  in  the  temple,  and  teaching  the  people.  The  commander  then 
went  with  the  officers,  and  brought  them,  not  by  violence;  for  they 
feared  the  people,  lest  they  should  have  been  stoned.  And  having  con- 
ducted them,  they  placed  them  before  the  council.  And  the  high-priest 
thus  questioned  them,  Did  we  not  repeatedly  command  you  not  to  teach 
in  this  name  ?  and  behold,  you  have  filled  Jerusalem  with  your  doctrine, 
and  wish  to  bring  this  man's  blood  upon  us. 

But  Peter  and  the  other  apostles  answered  and  said.  It  is  necessary 
to  obey  God,  rather  than  men.  The  God  of  our  fathers  has  raised  up 
Jesus,  whom  you  destroyed,  having  suspended  him  on  a  cross.  Him 
has  God  exalted  at  his  right  hand,  to  be  a  Prince  and  a  Saviour,  to  im- 
part reformation  to  Israel,  and  remission  of  sins.  And  we  are  his  wit- 
nesses of  these  transactions,  and  so  is  also  the  Holy  Spirit,  whom  God 
has  imparted  to  those  who  submit  to  him. 

Now,  when  they  heard  this,  they  were  greatly  enraged,  and  deter- 
mined to  kill  them.  But  a  certain  pharisee  in  the  sanhedrin,  whose 
name  was  Gamaliel,  a  teacher  of  the  law,  in  great  estimation  among  all 
the  people,  arose,  and  commanded  that  the  apostles  should  be  taken  out 
for  a  short  time ;  and  he  observed  to  the  council.  Men  of  Israel,  take 
care  as  to  what  you  intend  to  do  against  these  men.  For  some  time 
since,  Theudas  arose,  affecting  to  be  a  great  personage,  to  whom  a 
number  of  men,  about  four  hundred,  adhered :  but  he  was  slain ;  and 
all  who  listened  to  him,  were  dispersed,  and  annihilated.  After  him, 
Judas  of  Galilee  arose,  in  the  period  of  the  enrolment,  and  lured  to  him- 
self a  great  multitude  :  he  also  perished ;  and  all  who  were  attached  to 
him,  were  dispersed.  And  now  I  advise  you.  Retire  from  these  men, 
and  tolerate  them ;  for  if  this  counsel  or  this  work  be  of  men,  it  will  be 
overthrown  ;  but  if  it  be  of  God,  you  cannot  overthrow  it.  [And  be- 
ware], lest  by  any  means,  you  should  be  found  even  to  contend  against 
God.  And  with  him  they  coincided  :  and  when  they  had  summoned  the 
apostles  and  scourged  them,  they  enjoined  that  they  should  not  speak  in 
the  name  of  Jesus,  and  discharged  them. 

But  they  departed  rejoicing,  from  the  presence  of  the  sanhedrin,  be- 
cause they  were  deemed  worthy  to  be  dishonored  on  account  of  the 
name.  And  every  day,  in  the  temple  and  at  home,  they  ceased  not  to 
teach  and  to  proclaim  that  Jesus  is  the  Messiah. 

Now,  in  those  days,  the  number  of  the  disciples  being  multiplied,  a 
complaint  against  the  Hebrews  originated  among  the  Grecian  Jews, 
because  their  widows  were  neglected  in  the  daily  distribution  of  alms. 


200  APOSTOLIC    PRODUCTIONS. 

The  twelve  then  called  all  the  disciples  together,  and  said,  It  is  not  pro- 
per, that  we  should  leave  the  word  of  God,  and  attend  upon  the  tables. 
Therefore,,  brethren,  select  from  your  number  seven  men,  of  good  repu- 
tation, full  of  the  Holy  Spirit  and  of  wisdom,  whom  we  may  institute  to 
this  office.  We,  however,  will  constantly  devote  ourselves  to  prayer, 
and  to  the  ministry  of  the  word. 

And  this  proposition  pleased  the  whole  multitude ;  and  they  selected 
Stephen,  a  man  full  of  faith  and  of  the  Holy  Spirit ;  and  Philip,  and 
Procerus,  and  Nicanor,  and  Timon,  and  Parmenas,  and  Nicolas,  a  pro- 
selyte of  Antioch ;  whom  they  placed  before  the  apostles  ;  who,  after 
they  had  prayed,  put  their  hands  on  them.  And  the  word  of  God 
advanced  ;  and  the  number  of  disciples  in  Jerusalem  was  greatly  aug- 
mented ;  and  a  great  assemblage  of  the  [Jewish]  priests  became  obe- 
dient to  the  faith. 

Now  Stephen,  being  replete  with  grace  and  power,  performed  mira- 
cles and  great  signs  among  the  people.  And  there  arose  some  of  the 
synagogue,  which  is  called  that  of  the  Libertines,  and  some  of  the  Cy- 
renians  and  Alexandrians,  and  of  those  from  Cilicia  and  Asia,  disputing 
with  Stephen.  But  they  were  not  able  to  resist  the  wisdom  and  the 
spirit  with  which  he  spoke.  Then  they  suborned  men  to  say.  We  have 
heard  him  use  reproachful  language  against  Moses,  and  against  God. 
And  they  excited  the  people,  and  the  elders,  and  the  scribes ;  and  beset- 
ing,  seized  him,  and  dragged  him  to  the  council ;  and  introduced  false 
witnesses,  who  alleged.  This  man  incessantly  utters  expressions  against 
the  holy  place  and  the  law :  For  we  have  heard  him  declare,  that  this 
Jesus  of  Nazareth  will  destroy  this  place,  and  will  change  the  customs 
which  Moses  delivered  to  us.  And  all,  who  were  seated  in  the  sanhe- 
drin,  beheld  his  countenance,  hke  the  countenance  of  an  angel. 

The  high-priest  then  said.  Are  these  things  indeed  true  1  And  Ste- 
phen remarked  ;  Brethren,  and  fathers  hearken.  The  God  of  glory 
appeared  to  our  father  Abraham,  while  he  was  in  Mesopotamia,  before 
he  resided  in  Haran,  and  said  to  him,  Depart  from  your  country,  and 
from  your  relatives,  and  come  to  a  land,  which  I  will  show  you.  Then 
departing  from  the  land  of  the  Chaldeans,  he  dwelt  in  Haran :  and 
thence,  when  his  father  was  dead,  God  removed  him  to  this  very  land, 
in  which  you  now  dwell.  But  he  gave  him  no  inheritance  in  it,  not  even 
the  dimension  of  his  foot :  yet,  he  promised  to  give  it  to  him  for  a  pos- 
session, even  to  his  offspring  after  him,  though  he  had  no  child.  And 
God  spoke  to  him  thus,  that  his  posterity  should  sojourn  in  a  foreign 
land  ;  and  that  they  should  be  brought  into  servitude,  and  afflicted,  four 
hundred  years  :  but  the  nation  to  which  they  will  be  enslaved,  I  will 
judge,  said  God ;  and  subsequently,  they  shall  come  forth,  and  worship 
me  in  this  place. 

(And  God  gave  him  a  covenant  of  circumcision :  and  accordingly, 
Abraham  had  Isaac,  and  circumcis.ed  him  the  eighth  day ;  and  Isaac 
had  Jacob  ;  and  Jacob  had  the  twelve  patriarchs.     And  the  patriarchs, 


APOSTOLIC  TRANSACTIONS.  SOI 

incited  by  an  envious  malignity,  sold  Joseph  into  Egypt :  but  God  was 
with  him,  and  delivered  him  from  all  his  afflictions,  and  gave  him  elo- 
quence and  wisdom  in  the  sight  of  Pharaoh  king  of  Egypt ;  who  consti- 
tuted him  ruler  over  Egypt,  and  over  all  liis  household.  Now  a  famine 
came  upon  all  the  land  of  Egypt  and  Canaan,  and  great  distress ;  so 
that  our  fathers  could  find  no  sustenance.  But  Jacob,  hearing  that 
there  was  corn  in  Egypt,  first  sent  our  fathers.  And  at  the  second  time, 
Joseph  was  made  known  to  his  brethren  ;  and  the  family  of  Joseph  was 
disclosed  to  Pharaoh.  And  Joseph  sent  and  invited  his  father  Jacob  to 
him,  and  all  his  relatives,  being  seventy-five  persons.  So  Jacob  and  our 
fathers  went  down  to  Egypt,  and  died  there  ;  and  were  carried  to  She- 
chem,  and  deposited  in  the  sepulchre  which  Jacob  purchased  for  a  sum 
of  money  from  the  sons  of  Hamor,  the  father  of  Shechem). 

Now,  when  the  time  of  the  promise  approached,  wliich  God  had  solemn- 
ly made  to  Abraham,  the  people  flourished  and  multiplied  in  Egypt ;  till 
at  last  another  king  arose,  who  did  not  acknowledge  Joseph.  He  form- 
ed crafty  designs  against  our  relatives,  and  afflicted  our  fathers,  by 
causing  their  infants  to  be  exposed,  that  their  race  might  perish.  At 
which  period  Moses  was  born,  and  was  divinely  beautifiil ;  who  was 
nourished  in  his  father's  house  three  months.  And  being  exposed,  the 
daughter  of  Pharaoh  took  him  up,  and  cherished  him  as  her  own  son. 
Thus  Moses  was  educated  in  all  the  wisdom  of  the  Egyptians  ;  and  he 
was  powerful  in  eloquence  and  in  action.  Now,  at  the  age  of  forty 
years,  he  determined  to  visit  his  brethren,  the  children  of  Israel.  And 
while  witnessing  an  injury  done  to  one  of  them,  he  defended  him,  and 
striking  the  Egyptian,  he  avenged  him  who  was  oppressed.  Moreover, 
he  presumed  that  his  brethren  comprehended,  that  by  his  hand,  God 
purposed  to  grant  them  deliverance  :  but  they  did  not  perceive  it.  Ac- 
cordingly, on  the  next  day,  he  presented  himself  to  some  of  them,  as 
they  were  contending,  and  was  disposed  to  reconcile  them,  saying.  Men, 
you  are  brothers ;  why  do  you  injure  each  other  1  But  he  who  injured 
his  neighbor,  thrust  him  away,  affirming.  Who  made  you  a  ruler  and  a 
judge  over  us  1  Do  you  mean  to  kill  me,  as  you  killed  the  Egyptian, 
yesterday  ?  And  Moses  fled  at  this  report,  and  became  a  sojourner  in 
the  land  of  Midian,  where  he  had  two  sons.  And  at  the  expiration  of 
forty  years,  thpre  appeared  to  him  in  the  desert  of  Mount  Sinai,  an 
angel  of  the  Lord  in  a  flame  of  fire  in  a  bush.  And  when  he  saw  it  he 
admired  the  spectacle :  and  as  he  approached  attentively  to  contemplate 
it,  a  voice  of  the  Lord  came  to  him,  I  am  the  God  of  your  fathers,  the 
God  of  Abraham,  and  the  God  of  Isaac,  and  the  God  of  Jacob.  Moses 
trembled,  and  durst  not  consider  it.  The  Lord  then  proclaimed  to  him. 
Take  the  shoes  from  your  feet ;  for  the  place  on  which  you  stand  is  holy 
ground.  I  have  assuredly  witnessed  the  calamity  of  my  people  who  are 
in  Egypt,  and  I  have  heard  their  groaning,  and  have  descended  to 
emancipate  them.  And  now  come,  I  will  send  you  to  Egypt.  This 
Moses,  whom  they  renounced,  saying,  Who  made  you  a  ruler  and  a 
26 


202  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

judge  ?  the  same  God  commissioned  to  be  a  ruler  and  a  deliverer,  by 
the  hand  of  the  angel,  who  appeared  to  him  in  the  bush.  This  man  led 
forth  the  people,  and  performed  wonders  and  signs  in  the  land  of  Egypt, 
and  in  the  Red  Sea,  and  in  the  wilderness,  forty  years. 

This  is  that  Moses,  who  declared  ta  the  sons  of  Israel,  The  Lord  God 
will  raise  up  a  prophet  to  you  from  your  brethren,  resembling  me  :  you 
shall  hear  him.  This  is  he  who  was  amid  the  church  in  the  desert,  with 
the  angel  who  spoke  to  him  on  Mount  Sinai,  and  with  our  fathers  ;  who 
received  the  words  of  life  to  impart  to  us  ;  to  whom  our  fathers  would 
not  be  obedient ;  but  thrust  him  from  them,  and  in  their  hearts  returned 
to  Egypt ;  saying  to  Aaron,  make  us  gods,  who  may  march  before  us  ; 
for  with  respect  to  this  Moses,  who  conducted  us  from  the  land  of  Egypt, 
we  know  not  what  is  become  of  him.  And  they  constructed  a  calf  in 
those  days,  and  offered  sacrifice  to  the  idol,  and  rejoiced  in  the  works  of 
their  own  hands.  But  God  turned,  and  gave  them  up  to  worship  the 
host  of  heaven  ;  as  it  is  written  in  the  book  of  the  prophets,  O  house  of 
Israel>  have  you  offered  victims  and  sacrifices  to  me,  these  forty  years  in 
the  wilderness  ?  But  you  have  taken  up  the  tabernacle  of  Moloch,  and 
the  star  of  your  god  Rephan ;  images,  which  you  made  to  worship 
them  :  so  I  will  transport  you  beyond  Babylon. 

Our  fathers  had  the  tabernacle  of  the  testimony  in  the  wilderness,  as 
God  had  appointed,  when  he  directed  Moses,  to  make  it  according  to 
the  model  which  he  had  seen  -  which  our  fathers  received,  and  transmit- 
ted with  Joshua  into  the  dominions  of  the  heathen,  whom  God  drove  out 
from  the  face  of  our  fathers  to  the  days  of  David  ;  who  found  favor  be- 
fore God,  and  desired  to  provide  a  tabernacle  for  the  God  of  Jacob. 
But  Solomon  erected  to  him  a  sanctuary.  However,  the  Most  High 
dwells  not  in  temples  made  with  hands  :  as  the  prophet  announces. 
Heaven  is  my  throne,  and  earth  is  my  footstool ;  what  house  will  you 
build  for  me,  says  the  Lord  1  or  what  is  the  place  of  my  rest  1  Has  not 
my  hand  created  all  these  things  ? 

Oh  perversely  obstinate,  and  uncircumcised  in  heart  and  ears !  you 
always  resist  the  Holy  Spirit ;  as  your  fathers  did,  so  you  do.  Which 
of  the  prophets  did  not  your  fathers  persecute  1  indeed,  they  destroyed 
those  who  predicted  the  coming  of  that  Righteous  One,  of  whom  you 
have  now  been  betrayers  and  murderers  1  Ye,  who  have  received  the 
law  through  an  array  of  angels,  but  have  not  regarded  it ! 
•  Now,  while  hearing  these  things,  they  were  exceedingly  enraged  in 
their  hearts,  and  gnashed  their  teeth  upon  him.  But  he,  being  fnU  of 
the  Holy  Spirit,  earnestly  looked  towards  heaven,  and  saw  the  glory  of 
God,  and  Jesus  standing  at  the  right  hand  of  God ;  and  he  declared, 
Behold,  I  see  the  heavens  opened,  and  the  Son  of  Man  standing  on  the 
right  hand  of  God.  And  loudly  vociferating,  they  stopped  their  ears, 
and  rushed  upon  him  with  one  accord,  and  drove  him  from  the  city 
to  stone  him  :  and  the  witnesses  laid  down  their  garments  at  the  feet  of 
a  young  man  named  Saul.    And  they  stoned  Stephen,  invocating  and 


APOSTOLIC  TRANSACTIONS.  203 

saying,  Lord  Jesus,  receive  my  Spirit.  And  kneeling  down,  he  cried 
with  a  loud  voice,  Lord,  lay  not  this  sin  to  their  charge.  And  having 
said  this,  he  expired.     Now  Saul  was  a  joyful  accomplice  in  his  death. 

And  at  that  period,  there  was  a  great  persecution  against  the  church 
which  was  at  Jerusalem  ;  and  the  disciples  were  all  dispersed  through 
the  regions  of  Judea  and  Samaria,  except  the  apostles.  Now  religious 
men  carried  Stephen  to  his  interment,  and  made  great  lamentation  for 
him.  But  Saul  ravaged  the  church,  entering  houses,  and  violently 
arresting  men  and  women,  whom  he  committed  to  prison. 

They,  however,  who  were  dispersed,  went  about  preaching  the  doc- 
trine of  the  gospel.  Now  Philip,  descending  to  the  city  of  Samaria, 
proclaimed  to  them  the  Messiah.  And  the  people  with  one  mind  attend- 
ed to  the  instructions  of  Philip,  as  they  heard  his  doctrine,  and  saw  the 
miracles  which  he  performed.  For,  polluted  spirits,  crying  with  a  loud 
voice,  departed  from  many  who  had  them  ;  and  many  who  were  paralytic 
and  lame,  were  healed.     And  there  was  great  joy  in  that  city. 

Now,  there  was  a  certain  man  named  Simon,  who  had  previously,  in 
that  city,  displayed  magic,  and  astonished  the  people  of  Samaria,  pre- 
tending that  he  was  some  extraordinary  person  ;  whom  they  all  regard- 
ed, from  the  least  to  the  greatest,  alleging.  This  man  is  the  great  power 
of  God.  And  they  paid  deference  to  him,  because  that  he  had,  for  a 
long  time,  astonished  them  by  his  magic.  But,  when  they  accredited 
Philip,  preaching  the  things  relative  to  the  kingdom  of  God,  and  the 
name  of  Jesus  Christ,  they  were  baptized,  both  men  and  women.  And 
Simon  himself  also  believed ;  and  being  baptized,  he  remained  with 
Philip,  beholding  with  astonishment  the  great  and  powerful  miracles, 
which  were  performed. 

Now  when  the  apostles,  who  were  at  Jerusalem,  heard  that  Samaria 
had  received  the  word  of  God,  they  sent  to  the  Samaritans  Peter  and 
John,  who  went  down  and  prayed  for  them,  that  they  might  receive  the 
Holy  Spirit :  for  he  was  not  yet  fallen  on  any  of  them ;  but  they  had 
only  been  baptized  in  the  name  of  the  Lord  Jesus.  The  apostles  then 
laid  their  hands  on  them,  and  they  received  the  Holy  Spirit. 

When  Simon,  therefore,  saw  that  the  Holy  Spirit  was  imparted  by 
the  imposition  of  the  apostles'  hands,  he  oflfered  them  money,  saying. 
Give  me  also  this  power,  that  on  whom  I  place  my  hands,  he  may  re- 
ceive the  Holy  Spirit.  But  Peter  said  to  him,  Let  your  money  perish 
with  you,  since  you  have  supposed  that  the  gift  of  God  might  be  pur- 
chased with  money.  You  have  no  part  or  allotment  in  this  subject ;  for 
you  have  not  integrity  of  heart,  in  the  sight  of  God.  Reform,  therefore, 
from  this  your  depravity,  and  entreat  God,  if  indeed,  the  purpose  of 
your  heart  may  be  forgiven  you.  For  I  perceive  that  you  are  in  the 
gall  of  bitterness,  and  in  the  bond  of  iniquity.  And  Simon  said  in  re- 
ply. Make  your  supplications  to  the  Lord  in  my  behalf,  that  none  of 
these  things  which  you  have  suggested,  may  befall  me. 


204  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

When,  therefore,  they  had  testified,  and  preached  the  word  of  the 
Lord,  they  returned  to  Jerusalem,  and  published  the  Gospel  in  numerous 
villages  of  the  Samaritans. 

Now  an  angel  of  the  Lord  addressed  Philip,  saying.  Arise,  and  go 
towards  the  south,  by  the  way  that  leads  down  from  Jerusalem  to  Gaza, 
which  is  through  the  desert.  And  having  arisen,  he  departed  :  when 
behold,  an  Ethiopian  oflScer,  a  prefect  of  Candace  the  queen  of  the 
Ethiopians,  who  superintended  all  her  treasure,  and  who  had  come  to 
worship  at  Jerusalem,  was  returning ;  and  seated  in  his  chariot,  perused 
the  prophet  Isaiah.  And  the  Spirit  said  to  Philip,  approach,  and  unite 
yourself  to  this  chariot.  And  Plulip,  hastily  advancing,  heard  him 
reading  the  prophet  Isaiah,  and  observed.  Do  you  understand  what  you 
are  reading  1  And  he  answered.  How  can  I,  unless  some  one  should 
guide  me.  And  he  requested  Philip,  that  he  would  come  up  and  sit 
with  him.  Now  the  section  of  Scripture,  which  he  was  perusing  was 
this.  He  was  brought  as  a  sheep  to  the  slaughter ;  and  like  a  lamb  silent 
before  its  shearer,  thus  he'opened  not  his  mouth.  In  his  humiliation  his 
condemnation  was  extorted ;  and  who  will  testify  to  his  conduct  1  for 
his  life  is  taken  from  the  earth.  Then  the  officer  addressed  Philip  and 
said,  I  beseech  you,  of  whom  does  the  prophet  pronounce  this,  of  him- 
self, or  some  other  person  7  Philip  then  opened  his  mouth,  and  began 
from  this  Scripture,  to  preach  to  him  Jesus.  Now,  as  they  proceeded 
along  the  road,  they  came  to  some  water  :  and  the  officer  said.  Behold, 
here  is  water  ;  what  prevents  me  from  being  baptized  ?  Upon  which,  he 
ordered  the  chariot  to  stop  ;  and  they  both  descended  to  the  water,  even 
Philip  and  the  officer ;  and  Philip  baptized  him.  And  when  they  as- 
cended from  the  water,  the  Spirit  of  the  Lord  took  away  Philip,  and  the 
officer  saw  him  no  more,  but  pursued  his  journey  rejoicing.  Philip, 
however,  was  found  at  Azotus  ;  and  passing  through,  he  preached  the 
gospel  in  all  the  cities,  till  he  came  to  Cesarea. 

Now  Saul,  still  breathing  out  menaces  and  slaughter  against  the  dis- 
ciples of  the  Lord,  proceeded  to  the  high  priest,  and  soUcited  from  him 
letters  to  the  synagogues  at  Damascus,  that  if  he  should  find  any  of 
this  religion,  whether  men  or  women,  he  might  bring  them  bound  to 
Jerusalem.  And  as  he  pursued  his  journey,  and  approached  Damascus, 
a  light  from  heaven  suddenly  shone  around  him  ;  and  he  fell  to  the 
ground,  and  heard  a  voice  saying  to  him,  Saul,  Saul,  why  dost  thou 
persecute  me  1  And  he  said,  who  art  thou.  Sir  f  And  the  Lord  said,  I 
am  Jesus  whom  thou  persecutest.  Arise,  and  go  to  the  city ;  and  it 
shall  be  told  you  what  you  must  do.  And  the  men  who  travelled 
with  him  were  speechless,  hearing  indeed  the  sound,  but  seeing  no 
one.  And  Saul  arose  from  the  earth ;  and  though  his  eyes  were 
open,  he  saw  nothing ;  but  they  led  him  by  the  hand,  and  brought  him 
to  Damascus.  And  he  was  three  days  without  sight,  and  did  neither 
eat  nor  drink. 


APOSTOLIC    TRANSACTIONS.  S05 

Moreover,  there  was  a  certain  disciple  at  Damascus,  named  Ananias  ; 
and  the  Lord  said  to  him  in  a  vision,  Ananias  !  And  he  replied  to  him. 
Behold,  I  am  here,  Lord  !  And  the  Lord  observed  to  him,  Arise,  and 
go  to  the  street  which  is  called  Straight,  and  inquire  in  the  house  of 
Judas,  for  a  man  of  Tarsus,  whose  name  is  Saul ;  for  behold,  while  he 
was  praying,  he  saw  in  a  vision,  a  man  named  Ananias,  entering,  and 
laying  his  hand  upon  him,  that  he  might  recover  his  sight.  And  Ana- 
nias replied,  Lord,  1  have  heard  from  many  concerning  this  man,  how 
much  evil  he  has  done  to  thy  saints  at  Jerusalem  ;  and  here,  he  has 
authority  from  the  chief  priests  to  bind  all  who  invoke  thy  name.  The 
Lord,  however,  said  to  him.  Depart,  for  he  is  to  me  a  select  instrument, 
to  bear  my  name  before  nations,  and  kings,  and  sons  of  Israel ;  for  I 
will  show  him  how  much  he  must  sulFer  in  consequence  of  my  name. 
So  Ananias  departed,  and  entered  the  house,  and  placing  his  hands  on 
him,  he  said.  Brother  Saul,  the  Lord,  even  Jesus,  who  appeared  to  you 
on  the  way  as  you  came,  has  sent  me  that  you  might  recover  your  sight, 
and  be  filled  with  the  Holy  Spirit.  And  immediately  something  like 
scales  fell  from  his  eyes ;  and  he  received  sight,  and  arose,  and  was 
baptized.     And  having  received  food,  he  was  strengthened. 

And  he  was  for  several  days  with  the  disciples  at  Damascus.  And 
without  delay,  he  preached  Jesus  in  the  synagogues,  that  he  is  the  Son 
of  God.  But  all  who  heard  him  were  astonished,  and  said.  Is  not  this 
he  who  in  Jerusalem  spread  desolation  among  those  who  called  on  this 
name,  and  came  here  for  that  purpose,  that  he  might  convey  them 
bound,  to  the  chief  priests  1  But  Saul  was  the  more  strengthened,  and 
he  confounded  the  Jews  who  resided  at  Damascus,  evincing,  that  This 
is  the  Messiah. 

Now  when  many  days  had  elapsed,  the  Jews  conspired  to  kill  him  ; 
and  they  watched  the  gates  day  and  night  for  this  purpose.  But  their 
confederacy  was  made  known  to  Saul.  Then  the  disciples  talting  him 
at  night,  let  him  down  by  the  wall  in  a  basket. 

And  when  he  arrived  at  Jerusalem,  he  endeavored  to  associate  with 
the  disciples  ;  but  they  all  feared  him,  not  beheving  that  he  was  a  dis- 
ciple. Then  Barnabas  taking  Mm,  conducted  him  to  the  apostles,  and 
related  to  them  how  he  had  seen  the  Lord  in  the  way,  who  had  spoken 
to  him,  and  how  he  had  pubUcly  preached  at  Damascus,  in  the  name  of 
Jesus.  And  he  mingled  in  all  their  intercourse  at  Jerusalem  ;  and  pro- 
claimed with  confidence  in  the  name  of  the  Lord  Jesus  :  and  he  con- 
versed and  contended  with  the  Hellenistic  Jews  ;  they  however,  at- 
tempted to  destroy  him.  But  the  brethren  being  apprised  of  it,  con- 
ducted him  to  Cesarea,  and  sent  him  away  to  Tarsus. 

The  church  then  enjoyed  prosperity,  through  all  Judea,  and  Gahlee, 
and  Samaria ;  and  being  improved,  and  walking  in  the  fear  of  the  Lord, 
and  in  the  admonition  of  the  Holy  Spirit,  was  multipUed. 

Now  it  occurred,  that  Peter,  as  he  was  passing  through  all  the 
churches,  came  also  to  the  saints  who  dwelt  at  Lydda.    And  he  there 


206  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

found  a  certain  man  whose  name  was  Eneas,  who  had  a  palsy,  and  had 
kept  his  bed  eight  years.  And  Peter  said  to  him,  Eneas,  Jesus  the 
Messiah,  restores  you :  arise,  and  make  your  bed.  And  he  instantly 
arose.  And  all  who  inhabited  Lydda  and  Saron  beheld  him,  and  turn- 
ed to  the  Lord. 

Moreover,  there  was  at  Joppa,  a  certain  female  disciple,  named  Tab- 
itha,  otherwise  called  Dorcas :  this  woman  abounded  in  good  works, 
and  in  charities,  which  she  performed.  And  it  happened,  at  this  time, 
that  she  was  sick  and  died.  And  having  washed,  they  placed  her  in  an 
upper  chamber.  Now,  as  Lydda  was  near  Joppa,  the  disciples  hearing 
that  Peter  was  there,  sent  two  men  to  him,  entreating  that  he  would  not 
defer  to  come  to  them.  And  Peter  arose  and  accompanied  them.  And 
having  arrived,  they  conducted  him  to  the  upper  room ;  and  all  the  wid- 
ows stood  by  him  weeping,  and  showing  the  various  vestments  which 
Dorcas  made,  while  she  was  with  them.  Then  Peter,  sending  them  all 
out,  kneeled  down  and  prayed  ;  and  having  turned  towards  the  body, 
he  said,  Tabitha,  arise  !  And  she  opened  her  eyes  ;  and  perceiving 
Peter,  she  sat  up.  Then  he  gave  her  his  hand,  and  raised  her ;  and 
having  called  the  saints  and  widows,  he  presented  her  alive.  Now  this 
was  known  through  all  Joppa  ;  and  many  believed  in  the  Lord.  And  it 
occurred,  that  he  remained  several  days  at  Joppa,  with  one  Simon,  a 
tanner. 

Further,  there  was  a  certain  man  in  Cesarea,  named  Cornelius,  a 
centurion  of  that  which  is  called  the  Italian  cohort ;  a  man  of  piety, 
and  one  who  feared  God,  with  all  his  fsimily,  imparting  also  abundant 
alms  to  the  people,  and  habitually  praying  to  God.  He  clearly  saw  in 
a  vision,  about  the  ninth  hour  of  the  day,  an  angel  of  God  coming  in  to 
him,  and  thus  addressing  him,  Cornelius  !  And  having  fixed  his  eyes 
on  him,  he  was  afraid,  and  said.  What  is  it.  Sir  !  And  he  said  to  him, 
Your  prayers  and  your  alms  have  ascended  as  a  memorial  before  God. 
Now,  therefore,  send  men  to  Joppa,  and  conduct  here  one  Simon,  whose 
surname  is  Peter  :  he  lodges  with  one  Simon  a  tanner,  whose  house  is 
by  the  sea.  And  when  the  angel  who  addressed  Cornelius  had  depart- 
ed, he  called  two  of  his  domestics,  and  a  religious  soldier  of  those  who 
attended  him  ;  and  having  communicated  to  them  all  these  things,  he 
sent  them  to  Joppa. 

And  on  the  next  day,  as  they  prosecuted  their  journey,  and  approached 
the  city,  Peter  ascended  the  house  to  pray,  about  the  sixth  hour.  And 
he  became  very  hungry,  and  would  have  refreshed  himself;  but  while 
they  prepared,  he  fell  into  an  ecstasy,  and  saw  heaven  opened,  and  a 
certain  receptacle  descending  in  the  form  of  a  great  sheet  gathered  at 
the  four  corners,  and  let  down  to  the  earth :  in  which  were  all  descrip- 
tions of  wild  and  domestic  quadrupeds  of  the  earth,  and  reptiles,  and 
birds  of  the  air.  And  a  voice  came  to  him.  Rise,  Peter,  kill  and  eat. 
But  Peter  said.  By  no  means.  Lord  ;  for  I  have  never  eaten  any  thing 
which  is  ordinary  or  impure.     And  the  voice  said  to  him  again  the  sec- 


APOSTOLIC  TRANSACTIONS.  207 

ond  time,  That,  which  God  has  purified,  esteem  not  thou  impure.  And 
this  was  done  three  times ;  and  the  sheet  was  again  conveyed  to  heaven. 

And  while  Peter  was  personally  in  suspense,  what  this  vision  which 
he  had  witnessed  might  import,  behold,  the  men  who  were  sent  from 
Cornelius,  having  inquired  for  the  house  of  Simon,  stood  at  the  gate  ; 
and  CEiUing,  they  asked.  If  Simon,  whose  surname  was  Peter,  lodged 
there  1  And  as  Peter  was  reflecting  on  the  vision,  the  Spirit  said  to  him. 
Behold,  three  men  are  inquiring  for  you.  Arise,  therefore,  and  go  down, 
and  depart  with  them,  without  any  hesitation  ;  for  I  have  sent  them. 

Peter  then  went  down  to  the  men,  and  said.  Behold,  I  am  the  person 
of  whom  you  are  in  search  ;  what  is  the  cause  for  which  you  are  come  1 
And  they  observed,  Cornelius,  the  centurion,  a  righteous  man,  and  a 
proselyte,  and  of  good  reputation  among  all  the  Jewish  people,  has 
been  admonished  by  a  holy  angel,  to  send  for  you  to  his  house,  and  to 
receive  your  instructions.  Having  therefore  invited  them  in,  he  enter- 
tained them. 

And  on  the  next  day  he  arose,  and  departed  with  them  ;  and  some  of 
the  brethren  from  Joppa  accompanied  him.  And  on  the  following  day 
they  entered  Cesarea.  And  Cornehus  was  expecting  them,  having  as- 
sembled his  relatives  and  intimate  friends. 

Now,  as  Peter  was  entering,  Cornelius  met  him,  and  falling  at  his 
feet,  worshipped  him.  But  Peter  raised  him  up,  saying.  Arise,  for 
I  myself  am  but  a  man.  And  conversing  with  him,  he  went  in,  and 
found  many  who  were  collected.  And  he  said  to  them,  You  know,  that 
it  is  unlawful  for  a  Jew,  to  unite  or  approach  to  one  of  another  nation : 
God,  has,  however,  directed  me  that  I  am  to  call  no  man  ordinary  or 
impure.  Therefore,  when  I  was  sent  for,  I  came  without  debate ;  I  ask 
therefore,  on  what  account  you  have  sent  for  me  ?  And  Cornehus  said. 
Four  days  ago  I  was  fasting  till  this  hour  ;  and  at  the  ninth  hour,  I  was 
praying  in  my  house,  and  behold,  a  man  stood  before  me  in  shining 
raiment,  and  declared,  Cornehus,  your  prayer  is  heard,  and  your  alms 
are  remembered  before  God.  Send  therefore  to  Joppa,  and  call  hither 
Simon,  whose  surname  is  Peter  ;  he  lodges  in  the  house  of  one  Simon 
a  tanner,  near  the  sea  ;  who,  when  he  is  come,  wUl  speak  to  you.  So  I 
sent  to  you  immediately  ;  and  it  is  well  that  you  are  come.  Now, 
therefore,  we  all  are  present  before  God,  to  hear  all  things  which  God 
has  commanded  you. 

Then  Peter,  resuming  his  discourse,  alleged,  I  perceive  in  truth,  that 
God  is  no  respecter  of  persons,  but  in  every  nation,  he  who  fears  him, 
and  works  righteousness,  is  acceptable  to  him.  As  to  that  doctrine, 
which  he  sent  to  the  sons  of  Israel,  proclaiming  the  joyful  inteUigence 
of  peace,  through  Jesus  Christ,  who  is  Lord  of  all,  you  are  apprised 
of  the  message,  which  was  circulated  through  all  Judea,  having  com- 
menced from  Galilee,  after  the  baptism,  which  John  preached  ;  relative 
to  Jesus  of  Nazareth,  how  God  anointed  him  with  the  Holy  Spirit,  and 
with  great  power ;  who  went  about  doing  good,  and  healing  all  who 


208  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

were  tyrannically  oppressed  by  the  enemy ;  for  God  was  with  him.  And 
we  are  witnesses  of  all  things  which  he  accomplished,  both  in  the  region 
of  the  Jews,  and  in  Jerusalem ;  whom  they  destroyed,  having  suspended 
him  to  a  cross.  God  raised  this  very  person,  on  the  third  day,  and 
openly  manifested  him,  not  to  all  the  people,  but  to  witnesses  previously 
chosen  by  God,  even  to  us,  who  did  eat  and  drink  with  him,  after  he 
rose  from  the  dead.  And  he  has  enjoined  us  to  proclaim  to  the  people, 
and  to  testify,  that  it  is  he  whom  God  has  appointed  as  the  judge  of  the 
living  and  the  dead.  All  the  prophets  bear  testimony  to  liim,  that  every 
one  who  trusts  in  him,  shall  receive,  through  his  name,  the  pardon  of 
sins. 

While  Peter  was  continuing  his  remarks,  the  Holy  Spirit  fell  on  all 
those  who  were  listening  to  the  word.  And  those  of  the  circumcision 
who  believed,  as  many  as  attended  Peter,  were  astonished,  that  the  gift 
of  the  Holy  Spirit  was  even  poured  out  upon  the  Gentiles  :  since  they 
heard  them  speaking  in  different  languages,  and  praising  God.  Peter 
then  remarked.  Can  any  one  prohibit  water,  that  these,  who,  as  well  as 
we,  have  received  the  Holy  Spirit,  should  not  be  baptized  1  And  he 
commanded  them  to  be  baptized  in  the  name  of  the  Lord.  And  they 
requested  him  to  remain  with  them  for  some  time. 

Now  the  apostles  and  the  brethren,  who  were  in  Judea,  heard  that 
the  Gentiles  had  also  received  the  word  of  God.  And  when  Peter  went 
up  to  Jerusalem,  they  who  were  of  the  circumcision  contended  with 
him,  affirming.  You  associated  with  men  uncircumcised,  and  did  eat 
with  them. 

But  Peter  related  the  transaction  from  the  beginning,  and  thus  regu- 
larly explained  it ;  I  was  praying  in  the  city  «f  Joppa  ;  and  during  a 
trance  I  saw  a  vision,  a  certain  receptacle  in  the  form  of  a  great  sheet 
descending  from  heaven,  let  down  by  the  four  angles,  and  it  nearly  ap- 
proached me  :  and  attentively  surveying  it,  I  observed  and  saw  quadru- 
peds of  the  earth,  and  wild  beasts,  and  reptiles,  and  fowls  of  the  air. 
And  I  heard  a  voice  saying  to  me,  Arise,  Peter ;  kill  and  eat.  But  I 
said,  By  no  means.  Lord  ;  for  nothing  ordinary  or  impure  has  ever  en- 
tered my  mouth.  And  the  voice  again  responded  to  me  from  heaven, 
That,  which  God  has  purified,  esteem  not  thou  impure.  And  this  was 
done  three  times  ;  and  all  the  things  were  again  transported  to  heaven. 
And  behold,  three  men,  sent  to  me  from  Cesarea,  had  arrived  at  the 
house  where  I  was.  And  the  Spirit  commanded  me  to  go  with  them 
without  any  hesitation.  Moreover,  these  six  brethren  accompanied  me, 
and  we  entered  the  man's  house  ;  who  informed  us,  that  he  had  seen  an 
angel  in  his  house,  who  had  said  to  him.  Send  to  Joppa,  and  bring 
Simon,  whose  surname  is  Peter  ;  who  shall  disclose  to  you  doctrines, 
by  which  you  and  all  your  family  may  be  saved.  And  as  I  began  to 
speak,  the  Holy  Spirit  fell  on  them,  even  as  on  us  at  the  beginning. 
Then  I  recollected  the  word  of  the  Lord,  how  he  said,  John  indeed 
baptized  with  water ;  but  you  will  be  baptized  with  the  Holy  Spiiut. 


APOSTOLIC  TRANSACTIONS.  y09 

Since  then,  God  imparted  to  them  the  same  gift,  which  he  did  even  to 
us,  who  had  believed  in  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ ;  what  was  I,  that  I 
should  be  able  to  obstruct  God  1 

And  when  they  heard  these  things,  they  were  satisfied,  and  praised 
God,  saying,  Then  God  has  also  imparted  to  the  Gentiles  a  life-giving 
reformation. 

Now,  therefore,  they  who  were  dispersed  by  the  persecution,  which 
originated  relative  to  Stephen,  travelled  as  far  as  Phenicia,  and  Cyprus, 
and  Antioch,  declaring  the  word,  exclusively,  to  the  Jews.  But  some 
of  them  were  Cyprians  and  Cyreneans,  who,  having  entered  Antioch, 
addressed  the  Greeks,  proclaiming  the  gospel  of  the  Lord  Jesus.  And 
the  hand  of  the  Lord  was  with  them ;  and  a  great  number  believed,  and 
turned  to  the  Lord. 

When  the  report  of  these  things  had  come  to  the  knowledge  of  the 
church  which  was  at  Jerusalem,  they  sent  forth  Barnabas  to  go  as  far 
as  Antioch  ;  who,  when  he  arrived  there  and  saw  the  gracious  dispen- 
sation of  God,  rejoiced,  and  exhorted  all  of  them  to  adhere  resolutely 
to  the  Lord.  For  he  was  a  good  man,  and  full  of  the  Holy  Spirit,  and 
of  faith.  And  numerous  persons  were  added  to  the  Lord.  Barnabas 
then  departed  to  Tarsus,  to  seek  Saul  ;  and  having  found  him,  he 
brought  him  to  Antioch.  And  it  occurred,  that  during  an  entire  year 
they  assembled  in  the  church,  and  taught  many  people  ;  and  that  the 
disciples,  by  divine  direction,  were  originally  denominated  Christians  at 
Antioch. 

Besides,  in  those  days,  prophets  came  from  Jerusalem  to  Antioch. 
And  one  of  them,  whose  name  was  Agabus,  stood  up,  and  signified  by 
the  Spirit,  that  a  great  famine  would  soon  pervade  the  whole  empire  ; 
which  happened  in  the  reign  of  Claudius.  Then  every  one  of  the  dis- 
ciples, according  to  his  ability,  determined  to  send  rehef  to  their  breth- 
ren who  dwelt  in  Judea  :  and  they  did  this  ;  transmitting  it  to  the  pres- 
byters, by  the  hands  of  Barnabas  and  Saul. 

Moreover,  about  that  time,  Herod  the  king  laid  hands  on  some  of  the 
church,  to  afflict  them.  And  he  destroyed  James,  the  brother  of  John, 
with  the  sword.  And  perceiving  that  this  was  acceptable  to  the  Jews, 
he  proceeded  also  to  arrest  Peter.  Now  it  was  in  the  days  of  unleaven- 
ed bread.  Accordingly,  he  apprehended  Peter,  and  put  him  in  prison, 
having  committed  him  to  the  custody  of  sixteen  soldiers  ;  and  being  de- 
termined, after  the  passover,  to  surrender  him  to  the  people.  In  the 
mean  time  therefore,  Peter  was  kept  in  prison  :  but  earnest  and  con- 
tinued prayer  was  made  to  God  on  his  account,  by  the  church. 

Now,  when  Herod  was  ready  to  have  brought  him  out,  even  that  very 
night,  Peter  was  sleeping  between  two  soldiers,  bound  with  two  chains ; 
and  the  sentinels  before  the  door,  were  guarding  the  prison.  And  be- 
hold, an  angel  of  the  Lord  presented  himself,  and  a  light  shone  in  the 
building ;  and  striking  Peter  on  the  side,  he  awoke  him,  saying,  Arise 
instantly.  And  his  chains  fell  from  his  hands.  Then  the  angel  said  to 
27 


210  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

him,  Gird  yourself,  and  tie  on  your  sandals ;  and  he  did  so.  And  he 
says  to  him,  throw  your  mantle  around  you,  and  follow  me.  And  going 
out,  he  followed  him  :  and  knew  not  that  what  had  been  done  by  the 
angel  was  a  real  fact ;  but  supposed  that  he  beheld  a  vision.  And  hay- 
ing passed  the  first  and  second  guard  ;  they  came  to  the  iron  gate  that 
leads  to  the  city,  which  voluntarily  opened  to  them :  and  proceeding, 
they  passed  through  one  street ;  and  immediately,  the  angel  departed 
from  him. 

Upon  this,  Peter  became  self-possessed,  and  declared,  I  am  now  as- 
suredly conscious,  that  the  Lord  has  sent  his  angel,  and  has  delivered 
me  from  the  hand  of  Herod,  and  from  all  the  ultimate  intention  of  the 
Jewish  people.  And  on  reflection,  he  repaired  to  the  house  of  Mary, 
the  mother  of  John,  who  was  surnamed  Mark  ;  where  many  were  as- 
sembled, and  were  praying.  And  as  Peter  knocked  at  the  entrance  of 
the  outward  gate,  a  maid,  whose  name  was  Rose,  went  to  inquire  who 
was  there.  Now,  recognising  Peter's  voice,  and  being  transported  with 
joy,  she  did  not  open  the  gate  ;  but  running,  she  informed  them  that 
Peter  was  standing  at  the  gate.  And  they  said  to  her,  you  are  distract- 
ed. But  she  confidently  affirmed  that  it  was  true.  They  then  alleged, 
that  it  was  his  angel.  But  Peter  continued  knocking  ;  and  when  they 
had  opened  the  door,  they  saw  him,  and  were  astonished.  But  he 
waved  his  hand  for  them  to  be  silent ;  and  related  to  them  how  the  Lord 
had  conducted  him  from  the  prison  :  and  he  said,  communicate  these 
things  to  James,  and  to  the  brethren.  And  departing,  he  went  to 
another  place. 

And  when  it  was  day,  no  small  commotion  existed  among  the  soldiers, 
relative  to  what  had  become  of  Peter.  And  Herod  having  searched 
for  him,  and  not  finding  him,  examined  the  keepers,  and  commanded 
that  they  should  be  led  away  to  execution.  And  Peter  passed  from 
Judea  to  Cesarea,  and  there  resided. 

Moreover,  Herod  was  greatly  exasperated  against  the  Tyrians  and 
Sidonians  :  but  they  unanimously  came  before  him  ;  and  having  attached 
to  their  interest  Blastus  the  king's  chamberlain,  they  importuned  for 
peace,  because  their  country  was  nourished  by  that  of  the  king.  And  on 
a  public  day,  Herod,  arrayed  in  regal  robes,  and  seated  on  the  throne, 
made  an  oration  to  them.  And  the  people  shouted.  It  is  the  voice  of  a 
God,  and  not  of  a  man.  And  immediately  an  angel  of  the  Lord  smote 
him,  because  he  did  not  render  the  praise  to  God  :  and  being  devoured 
by  vermin,  he  expired. 

Now  the  word  of  God  flourished  and  advanced.  And  Barnabas  and 
Saul,  having  accomplished  their  distribution,  returned  from  Jerusalem, 
bringing  with  them  John,  whose  surname  was  Mark. 

Moreover,  in  the  assembly  of  believers,  which  was  at  Antioch,  there 
were  certain  prophets  and  teachers  ;  particularly  Barnabas,  and  Simeon, 
who  was  called  The  Black  ;  and  Lucius,  the  Cyrenean  ;  and  Manaen, 
who  was  educated  with  Herod  the  tetrarch ;  and  Saul.     Now,  while 


APOSTOLIC  TRANSACTIONS.  211 

they  were  ministering  to  the  Lord,  and  fasting,  the  Holy  Spirit  declared, 
Consecrate  to  me  Barnabas  and  Saul,  for  the  work  to  which  I  have  des- 
ignated them.  And  having  fasted  and  prayed,  and  laid  their  hands  on 
them,  they  dismissed  them.  They  therefore,  being  sent  out  by  the 
Holy  Spirit,  departed  to  Seleucia,  and  thence  they  sailed  to  Cyprus. 
And  having  reached  Salamis,  they  dispensed  the  word  of  God  in  the 
synagogues  of  the  Jews  ;  and  they  also  had  John  as  their  attendant. 

And  having  traversed  the  whole  island  of  Cyprus  as  far  as  Paphos, 
they  met  a  certain  Jew,  a  magician  and  false  prophet,  denominated  the 
son  of  Joshua  ;  who  attended  the  pro-consul,  Sergius  Paulus,  an  intelli- 
gent man :  the  latter  having  called  for  Barnabas  and  Saul,  earnestly 
requested  to  hear  the  word  of  God.  But  the  magician  otherwise  called 
Elymas,  opposed  them,  and  endeavored  to  avert  the  pro-consul  from  the 
faith.  Then  Saul,  who  is  named  Paul  also,  replete  with  the  Holy  Spirit, 
and  intently  looking  at  him,  affirmed,  O  full  of  all  deceit,  and  of  all  im- 
posture !  son  of  the  adversary,  enemy  of  all  integrity,  will  you  not  cease 
to  pervert  the  right  ways  of  the  Lord  1  And  behold,  the  hand  of  the 
Lord  is  now  upon  you,  and  you  will  be  blind,  and  not  see  the  sun  for  a 
time.  And  immediately,  a  thick  mist  and  a  darkness  enveloped  him  ; 
and  walking  about,  he  sought  some  one  to  lead  him  by  the  hand.  Then 
the  pro-consul,  perceiving  what  was  done,  believed ;  being  powerfully 
impressed  with  the  doctrine  of  the  Lord. 

Now,  sailing  from  Paphos,  Paul  and  his  associates  proceeded  to  Perga 
in  Pamphylia.  But  John  having  withdrawn  from  them,  returned  to 
Jerusalem.  Proceeding,  however,  from  Perga,  they  came  to  Antioch 
in  Pisidia,  and  entered  the  synagogue  on  the  sabbath,  and  sat  down. 
And  after  the  reading  of  the  law  and  the  prophets,  the  rulers  of  the 
synagogue  sent  to  them,  saying.  Brethren,  if  you  have  any  subject  of 
admonition  for  the  people,  impart  it. 

Then  Paul  standing  up,  and  waving  his  hand,  observed,  Israelites, 
and  you  who  fear  God,  attend.  The  God  of  this  people  chose  our 
fathers,  and  exalted  the  people  during  their  temporary  residence  in  the 
land  of  Egypt,  and  conducted  them  from  it  with  a  powerful  arm.  And 
for  a  period  of  about  forty  years,  he  nourished  them  in  the  wilderness. 
And  having  cast  out  seven  nations  in  the  land  of  Canaan,  he  distributed 
their  country  to  them  for  an  inheritance.  And  after  these  transactions, 
which  occupied  about  four  hundred  and  fifty  years,  he  gave  them  judges 
to  the  time  of  Samuel  the  prophet.  And  from  that  era  they  solicited  a 
king :  and  God  appointed  to  them  Saul  the  son  of  Kish,  a  man  from 
the  tribe  of  Benjamin,  for  the  term  of  forty  years.  And  having  remov- 
ed him,  he  raised  up  to  them  David  for  a  king ;  to  whom  he  also  gave  a 
favorable  testimony,  and  announced,  I  have  found  David,  the  son  of 
Jesse,  a  man  in  accordance  with  my  own  heart,  who  will  perform  all 
my  will.  From  this  man's  posterity,  according  to  the  promise,  God 
has  brought  to  Israel  Jesus,  the  Saviour  ;  John  having  previously  preach- 
ed, as  a  preliminary  to  his  advent,  the  baptism  of  reformation  to  all  the 


213  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

people  of  Israel.  And  while  John  was  accomplishing  his  ministry,  he 
said,  Whom  do  you  think  me  to  be  ?  I  am  not  the  Messiah.  But,  be- 
hold, one  succeeds  me,  the  shoes  of  whose  feet  I  am  not  worthy  to 
unloose.  Brethren,  sons  of  the  family  of  Abraham,  and  those  among 
you  who  are  proselytes,  to  you  the  doctrine  of  this  salvation  is  sent. 
For  the  inhabitants  of  Jerusalem,  and  their  rulers,  neither  knowing  him, 
nor  the  declarations  of  the  prophets,  which  are  read  on  every  sabbath, 
have  fulfilled  them  in  condemning  him.  And  though  they  found  no 
cause  why  he  should  be  sentenced  to  death,  yet  they  requested  Pilate 
that  he  might  be  executed.  And  when  they  had  accomplished  all  things 
which  were  written  concerning  him,  they  permitted  him  to  be  taken 
down  from  the  cross,  and  placed  in  a  tomb.  But  God  raised  him  from 
the  dead.  And  he  appeared  for  several  days  to  those  who  came  up  with 
him  from  Galilee  to  Jerusalem  ;  who  are  his  witnesses  to  the  people. 
And  we  proclaim  to  you  the  joyful  intelligence,  that  the  promise  which 
was  made  to  the  fathers,  God  has  accomplished  to  us  their  children,  in 
reanimating  Jesus  ;  as  it  is  also  written  in  the  first  Psalm,  Thou  art  my 
Son  ;  I  have  this  day  produced  thee.  And  because  he  has  reanimated 
him  from  the  dead,  no  more  to  return  to  the  grave,  he  has  thus  declared, 
I  will  impart  to  you  the  unfailing  mercies  of  David.  Therefore,  he 
also  afiirms  in  another  place.  Thou  wilt  not  permit  thy  Sanctified  to  see 
decay.  For  David  indeed,  having  subserved  his  own  contemporaries, 
according  to  the  counsel  of  God,  fell  asleep,  and  was  laid  with  his 
fathers,  and  saw  decay  :  but  he  whom  God  raised,  saw  no  decay.  Be  it 
therefore  known  to  you,  brethren,  that  through  him  is  proclaimed  to 
you  the  forgiveness  of  sins.  And  by  him,  every  one  who  believes,  is 
pardoned  from  all  things,  from  which  you  could  not  be  pardoned  by  the 
law  of  Moses.  Beware,  therefore,  lest  that  befall  you,  which  is  spoken 
by  the  prophets,  Behold,  ye  transgressors,  and  wonder,  and  disappear  ; 
for  I  perform  a  work  in  your  days,  which  you  wUl  not  believe,  though 
it  be  evidently  declared  to  you. 

And  as  they  were  departing,  on  the  dismission  of  the  assembly,  some 
of  them  entreated,  that  these  words  might  be  spoken  to  them  in  the 
course  of  the  week.  And  many  of  the  Jews  and  religious  proselytes 
followed  Paul  and  Barnabas  ;  who,  speaking  to  them,  persuaded  them 
to  continue  in  the  gracious  dispensation  of  God. 

Further,  on  the  subsequent  sabbath,  almost  the  whole  city  assembled 
to  hear  the  word  of  God.  But  the  Jews,  beholding  the  crowds,  were 
filled  with  intemperate  zeal,  and  opposed  those  things  which  were 
spoken  by  Paul,  contradicting,  and  reviling.  Then  Paul  and  Barnabas, 
with  great  freedom  of  speech,  alleged,  It  was  indispensable  that  the 
word  of  God  should  be  originally  addressed  to  you  ;  but  since  you  repel 
it,  and  adjudge  yourselves  undeserving  of  eternal  life,  behold,  we  turn 
to  the  Gentiles  :  for  the  Lord  has  thus  directed  us,  saying,  I  have 
placed  thee  as  a  light  of  the  Gentiles,  that  thou  shouldst  become  salva- 
tion to  the  extremity  of  the  earth.     And  the  Gentiles,  being  reminded 


APOSTOLIC  TRANSACTIONS.  213 

of  this,  rejoiced,  and  extolled  the  word  of  the  Lord.  And  as  many  as 
were  favorably  inclined,  in  reference  to  eternal  Ufe,  believed.  And  the 
word  of  the  Lord  was  published  through  all  that  region.  But  the  Jews 
excited  some  devout  women  of  considerable  rank,  and  the  magistrates 
of  the  city,  and  raised  a  persecution  against  Paul  and  Barnabas,  and 
expelled  them  from  their  country.  And  they  shook  off  the  dust  of  their 
feet  against  them,  and  went  to  Iconium.  And  the  disciples  were  per- 
vaded with  joy,  and  with  the  Holy  Spirit. 

And  it  occurred  at  Iconium,  that  they  entered,  at  the  same  time,  the 
synagogue  of  the  Jews,  and  spoke  in  such  a  manner,  that  a  great  multi- 
tude both  of  the  Jews  and  of  the  Greeks,  believed.  But  the  incredulous 
Jews  excited  the  minds  of  the  heathen,  and  exasperated  them  against 
the  brethren.  For  a  considerable  time,  therefore,  they  continued,  fear- 
lessly speaking  in  the  cause  of  the  Lord,  who  testified  to  the  word  of  his 
grace,  granting  signs  and  wonders  to  be  performed  by  their  hands. 
But  the  multitude  of  the  city  was  divided ;  and  some  were  with  the 
Jews,  and  others  with  the  apostles.  And  as  a  lawless  plan  was  project- 
ed, both  by  the  Gentiles  and  by  the  Jews,  with  their  rulers,  igno- 
miniously  to  disgrace  them,  and  to  stone  them,  they  were  apprised  of  it, 
and  fled  to  Lystra  and  Derbe,  cities  of  Lycaonia,  and  to  the  adjacent 
country  ;  and  there  they  proclaimed  the  gospel. 

And  there  was  a  certain  man  at  Lystra,  disabled  in  his  feet,  who  had 
been  so  lame  from  his  birth,  that  he  had  never  walked.  He  heard  Paul 
as  he  was  speaking;  who,  having  attentively  beheld  him,  and  perceiving 
that  he  had  faith  to  be  healed,  proclaimed  with  a  loud  voice,  Stand  erect 
on  your  feet.     And  he  leaped  up,  and  walked  about. 

Now,  when  the  people  witnessed  what  Paul  had  effected,  they  elevat- 
ed their  voices,  exclaiming,  in  the  Lycaonian  language.  The  gods,  re- 
sembling men,  have  descended  to  us  !  And  they  indeed  styled  Barna- 
bas, Jupiter,  and  Paul,  Mercury,  because  he  was  the  principal  orator. 
Then  the  priest  of  Jupiter,  whose  statue  was  before  the  city,  brought 
oxen  and  garlands  to  the  gates,  and  would,  with  the  multitude,  have 
offered  sacrifice  to  them.  But  the  apostles,  Barnabas  and  Paul,  having 
heard  of  it,  rent  their  garments,  and  rushed  among  the  people,  exclaim- 
ing, and  saying,  Citizens,  why  will  you  do  these  things  1  We  are  also 
men,  similarly  constituted  with  yourselves,  and  are  declaring  to  you  a 
joyfiil  message,  that  you  may  turn  from  these  lifeless  idols  to  the  living 
God,  who  made  the  heaven,  and  the  earth,  and  all  things  which  are  in 
them  ;  who,  in  preceding  periods  permitted  aU  the  Gentiles  to  walk  in 
their  own  ways :  though  he  did  not  leave  himself  without  testimony, 
doing  good,  and  giving  you  showers  of  rain  from  heaven,  and  fruitfiil 
seasons ;  and  filling  our  hearts  with  food  and  joy.  Even  with  these 
remarks,  they  with  difiiculty  restrained  the  people  from  sacrificing  to 
them. 

Then  certain  Jews  came  there  from  Antioch  and  Iconium,  who  insti- 
gated the  multitude  ;  and  having  stoned  Paul,  they  dragged  him  from 


214  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

the  city,  supposing  him  to  be  dead.  However,  as  his  disciples  were 
standing  about  him,  he  arose  and  entered  the  city  :  and  on  the  next  day 
he  departed  with  Barnabas  to  Derbe. 

And  having  preached  the  gospel  in  that  city,  and  made  a  considerable 
number  of  disciples,  they  returned  to  Lystra,  and  Iconium,  and  Antioch, 
fortifying  the  minds  of  the  disciples,  and  exhorting  them  to  remain  in 
the  faith ;  and  alleging,  that  through  multiplied  adversities,  we  must 
enter  the  kingdom  of  God.  And  when  they  had  appointed  presbyters 
over  them  in  every  church,  and  had  prayed  and  fasted,  they  commend- 
ed them  to  the  Lord,  in  whom  they  had  believed.  And  having  pass- 
ed through  Pisidia,  they  came  to  Pamphylia.  And  when  they  had 
proclaimed  the  word  in  Perga,  they  came  down  to  Attalia.  And  from 
that  place  they  sailed  to  Antioch  ;  from  which  they  had  been  recom- 
mended to  the  favor  of  God,  for  that  work  which  they  had  accom- 
plished. 

Now,  having  arrived  there,  and  assembled  the  church,  they  related 
what  God  had  done  through  them  ;  and  that  he  had  opened  the  door  of 
faith  to  the  Gentiles.  And  they  resided  a  considerable  time  with  the 
disciples. 

Moreover,  some  who  came  down  from  Judea  thus  taught  the  brethren, 
Unless  you  are  circumcised,  in  conformity  to  the  institute  of  Moses,  you 
cannot  be  saved.  There  being  consequently  a  contention,  and  no  incon- 
siderable debate  with  them,  on  the  part  of  Barnabas  and  Paul,  it  was 
determined  that  Paul  and  Barnabas,  with  some  others  of  their  number, 
should  go  up  to  the  apostles  and  presbyters  at  Jerusalem  relative  to  this 
question.  And  therefore  having  been  advanced  on  their  journey  by  the 
church,  they  passed  through  Phenicia  and  Samaria,  announcing  the 
reformation  of  the  Gentiles  ;  and  they  imparted  great  joy  to  all  the 
brethren.  And  having  arrived  at  Jerusalem,  they  were  received  with 
approbation  by  the  church,  and  by  the  apostles  and  presbyters  ;  and 
they  related  all  things  which  God  had  performed  through  them.  But, 
[as  they  alleged],  there  had  risen  up  some  of  the  sect  of  the  pharisees, 
who  were  Christian  converts,  and  declared,  that  it  was  requisite  to  cir- 
cumcise the  Gentiles,  and  to  enjoin,  that  they  should  keep  the  law  of 
Moses. 

Accordingly,  the  apostles  and  presbyters  convened  to  attend  to  this' 
subject :  and,  after  much  discussion,  Peter  stood,  and  said  to  them. 
Brethren,  you  know  that  at  a  former  period,  God,  among  us,  chose  that 
the  Gentiles  by  my  mouth  should  hear  the  word  of  the  Gospel,  and 
should  believe.  And  God,  who  searches  the  hearts,  approved  of  them, 
imparting  to  them  the  Holy  Spirit,  even  as  to  us  ;  and  instituted  no  dis- 
tinction between  us  and  them,  having  purified  their  hearts  by  faith. 
Now  therefore,  why  do  you  try  God,  by  imposing  on  the  neck  of  the 
disciples  a  yoke,  which  neither  our  fathers  nor  we  could  sustain  ?  But 
we  trust  that  we  are  saved,  by  the  grace  of  the  Lord  Jesus,  in  the  same 
manner  as  they. 


APOSTOLIC  TRANSACTIONS.  215 

Then  the  whole  multitude  kept  silence,  and  listened  to  Barnabas  and 
Paul,  while  they  related  what  wonderful  miracles  God  had  effected 
among  the  Gentiles  through  them. 

Now  after  they  had  concluded,  James,  in  continuation,  observed. 
Brethren,  give  audience  to  me  :  Simon  has  proclaimed  how  God  first 
regarded  the  Gentiles,  to  take  from  them  a  people  for  his  name.  And 
the  words  of  the  prophets  harmonize  with  this  ;  as  it  is  written.  After 
this,  I  will  return,  and  will  again  erect  the  tabernacle  of  David,  which 
is  dilapidated  ;  and  I  will  rebuild  its  ruins,  and  will  re-establish  it :  that 
the  residue  of  men  may  diligently  seek  the  Lord,  and  all  the  Gentiles, 
by  whom  my  name  is  invoked  among  them,  says  the  Lord,  who  does  all 
these  things  ;  which  were  known  from  the  beginning.  Therefore,  it  is 
my  adjudication,  that  we  do  not  disquiet  those,  who,  from  among  the 
Gentiles,  turn  to  God  ;  but  write  to  them,  that  they  abstain  from  the 
polluted  offerings  to  idols,  and  from  incontinence,  and  from  that  which 
is  strangled,  and  from  blood.  For  Moses,  from  ancient  generations, 
has,  in  every  city,  those  who  proclaim  him ;  being  read  in  the  syna- 
gogues on  every  sabbath. 

It  then  appeared  appropriate  to  the  apostles  and  the  presbyters  and 
the  whole  church,  to  send  selected  men  of  their  own  association,  to  An- 
tioch,  with  Paul  and  Barnabas  ;  namely,  Judas  surnamed  Barsabas, 
and  Silas,  distinguished  individuals  among  the  brethren  :  transmitting, 
through  them,  this  communication :  The  apostles,  and  the  presbyters, 
and  the  brethren,  send  friendly  salutation  to  the  brethren  who  are  of  the 
Gentiles  in  Antioch,  and  Syria,  and  Cilicia.  Whereas,  we  have  heard, 
that  some  who  proceeded  from  us,  have  disturbed  you  with  precepts, 
unsettling  your  minds,  commanding  you  to  be  circumcised,  and  keep 
the  law ;  to  whom  we  gave  no  such  authority ;  we  have  thought  proper, 
being  unanimously  assembled,  to  send  to  you  chosen  men,  with  our 
beloved  Barnabas  and  Paul,  men,  who  have  hazarded  their  lives,  for  the 
name  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ.  We  have  therefore  sent  Judas  and 
Silas,  who  will  also  verbally  communicate  to  you  the  same  things.  For 
it  was  deemed  expedient  by  the  Holy  Spirit,  and  by  us,  not  to  impose 
on  you  any  greater  burden  thtin  these  necessary  things  ;  that  you  abstain 
from  things  immolated  to  idols,  and  from  blood,  and  from  any  thing 
strangled,  and  from  sensuality :  from  which,  you  will  do  well,  entirely 
to  restrain  yourselves.     Farewell. 

Now,  as  soon  as  they  were  dismissed,  they  proceeded  to  Antioch ; 
and  having  assembled  all  the  brethren,  they  delivered  the  letter,  which, 
when  the  Gentile  converts  had  read,  they  rejoiced  for  the  comfortable 
intelligence.  And  Judas  and  Silas,  being,  personally  also,  teachers,  in 
a  long  discourse,  exhorted  and  strengthened  the  brethren.  And  having 
remained  for  some  time,  they  were  suffered  to  depart  in  peace  from  the 
brethren  to  those  who  sent  them.  But  Paul  and  Barnabas  continued  at 
Antioch,  teaching  and  proclaiming,  even  vrith  many  others,  the  word  of 
the  Lord. 


216  APOSTOLIC    PRODUCTIONS. 

Further,  after  several  days,  Paul  said  to  Barnabas,  Let  us  return  and 
visit  the  brethren  in  every  city,  where  we  have  preached  the  word  of  the 
Lord,  and  ascertain  their  situation.  And  Barnabas  determined  to  take 
with  them  also  John,  who  was  surnamed  Mark.  But  Paul  deemed  it 
improper  to  take  with  them  the  person,  who  had  deserted  them  in  Pam- 
phylia,  and  did  not  accompany  them  to  the  work.  And  an  excitement 
consequently  ensued,  so  that  they  separated  from  each  other  :  and  Bar- 
nabas, taking  with  him  Mark,  sailed  to  Cyprus. 

But  Paul  preferred  Silas,  and  departed,  being  commended  by  the 
brethren  to  the  favor  of  God.  And  he  passed  through  Syria  and 
Cilicia,  establishing  the  churches. 

And  he  came  to  Derbe  and  Lystra.  And  behold,  a  certain  disciple 
was  there,  named  Timothy,  (the  son  of  a  woman  who  was  a  Jewess, 
and  a  Christian  convert,  but  of  a  Grecian  father),  who  was  honorably 
characterized  by  the  brethren  at  Lystra  and  Iconium.  Paul  wished  this 
man  to  attend  him  ;  and  took  and  circumcised  him,  on  account  of  the 
Jews  who  were  in  those  parts  ;  for  they  all  knew,  that  his  father  was  a 
Greek.  And  as  they  passed  through  the  cities,  they  delivered  to  their 
custody  the  adjudications,  which  were  made  by  the  apostles  and  presby- 
ters, who  were  at  Jerusalem.  The  churches,  therefore,  were  established 
in  the  faith,  and  daily  increased  in  number. 

Now  they  went  through  Phrygia  and  the  country  of  Galatia,  and 
being  forbidden  by  the  Holy  Spirit  to  dispense  the  word  in  Asia  ;  when 
they  came  to  Mysia,  they  attempted  to  go  to  Bythinia ;  but  the  spirit  of 
Jesus  did  not  permit  them.  And  passing  Mysia,  they  went  down  to 
Troas.  And  a  vision  appeared  to  Paul  in  the  night.  A  certain  Mace- 
donian stood,  entreating  him,  and  Saying,  Come  over  to  Macedonia, 
and  assist  us.  And  when  he  had  witnessed  the  vision,  we  immediately 
endeavored  to  depart  for  Macedonia,  assuredly  inferring,  that  the  Lord 
had  summoned  us  to  preach  the  gospel  to  them. 

And  sailing  from  Troas,  we  proceeded  in  a  direct  course  to  Samothra- 
cia,  and  the  next  day  to  Neapolis  ;  and-  from  thence  to  Philippi,  which 
is  the  metropolis  of  that  section  of  Macedonia,  and  a  colony.  And  we 
remained  several  days  in  that  city.  And  on  the  sabbath,  we  withdrew 
from  the  city  to  a  river,  where  it  was  said,  prayer  was  usually  made; 
and  sitting  down,  we  spoke  to  the  women  who  were  assembled.  And  a 
certain  woman,  named  Lydia,  a  vender  of  purple,  of  the  city  of  Thya- 
tira,  and  a  Jewish  proselyte,  heard  us  ;  and  the  Lord  opened  her  heart, 
so  that  she  attended  to  what  was  spoken  by  Paul.  And  when  she  was 
baptized,  with  her  family,  she  thus  entreated  us.  If  you  have  judged  me 
to  be  faithfol  to  the  Lord,  enter  my  house,  and  continue  there.  And 
she  compelled  us. 

And  it  happened,  as  we  were  repairing  to  the  place  of  prayer,  that  a 
certain  maid-servant,  having  a  spirit  of  Python,  met  us,  who  broughi^ 
her  masters  much  gain  by  divination.  Having  followed  Paul  and  us, 
she  exclaimed,  saying,   These  men  are  the  servants  of  the  Most  High 


APOSTOLIC    TRANSACTIONS.  217 

God,  who  announce  to  us  the  way  of  salvation.  And  she  did  this  for 
several  days.  But  Paul,  being  aflSicted,  turned  and  said  to  the  spirit,  I 
command  you  in  the  name  of  Jesus  Christ  to  depart  from  her  :  and  it 
departed  at  that  very  time. 

But  when  her  masters  saw  that  this  hope  of  their  gain  was  gone,  they 
seized  Paul  and  Silas,  and  dragged  them  to  the  magistrates,  at  the 
market-place ;  and  having  brought  them  to  the  commanders  of  the 
army,  they  alleged.  These  men  being  Jews,  disturb  our  city,  and  incul- 
cate religious  requisitions,  which  it  is  not  legal  for  us,  as  we  are  Ro- 
mans, to  receive,  or  to  obey.  And  the  populace  rose  together  against 
them  ;  and  the  officers,  tearing  off  their  garments,  commanded  that 
they  should  be  beaten  with  rods.  And  having  severely  scourged  the 
apostles,  they  cast  them  into  prison,  and  charged  the  gaoler  safely  to 
keep  them  :  who,  having  received  such  an  injunction,  thrust  them  into 
the  inner  prison,  and  secured  their  feet  in  the  stocks. 

Now,  at  midnight,  Paul  and  Silas  prayed,  and  sang  praises  to  God : 
and  the  prisoners  heard  them.  And  there  was  suddenly  a  great  earth- 
quake, so  that  the  foundations  of  the  prison  were  shaken  ;  and  immedi- 
ately, all  the  doors  were  opened,  and  the  chains  of  all  the  prisoners  fell 
off.  Then  the  gaoler,  awakened  from  sleep,  and  perceiving  the  doors 
of  the  prison  opened,  drew  a  sword,  and  intended  to  kill  himself,  sup- 
posing that  the  prisoners  had  escaped.  But  Paul  cried  with  a  loud 
voice,  saying.  Do  yourself  no  injury ;  for  we  are  all  here.  Then  the 
gaoler,  having  called  for  lights,  rushed  in,  greatly  agitated,  and  fell  pros- 
trate before  Paul  and  Silas.  And  conducting  them  out,  he  said.  Friends, 
what  must  I  do,  that  I  may  be  saved  1  And  they  said.  Believe  in  the 
Lord  Jesus  Christ,  and  you  will  be  saved,  and  your  family.  And  they 
declared  to  him  the  word  of  the  Lord,  and  to  all  that  were  in  his  house. 
And  taking  them  at  that  hour  of  the  night,  he  bathed  their  stripes ;  and 
he  and  all  his  were  immediately  baptized.  And  introducing  the  apos- 
tles into  his  house,  he  placed  food  before  them,  and  he  and  all  his 
household  were  transported  with  joy,  on  believing  in  God. 

And  when  it  was  day,  the  magistrates  sent  the  oflGicers,  saying.  Dis- 
charge those  men.  The  gaoler  then  informed  Paul  of  this  order,  The 
magistrates  have  sent,  to  discharge  you  ;  now  therefore  depart,  and 
pursue  your  journey  in  peace.  But  Paul  observed  to  them.  They  have, 
without  adjudication,  publicly  scourged  us,  who  are  Roman  citizens, 
and  have  thrown  us  into  prison ;  and  do  they  now  privately  thrust  us 
away  1  no,  indeed  ;  let  them  rather  come  personally,  and  liberate  us. 
And  the  oflScers  reported  these  declarations  to  the  magistrates ;  and 
they  were  alarmed,  when  they  heard  that  the  apostles  were  Roman  citi- 
zens. So  they  came  and  consoled  them,  and  conducting  them  out, 
requested  that  they  would  depart  from  the  city.  Upon  this,  having 
withdrawn  from  the  prison,  they  entered  the  house  of  Lydia  ;  and  when 
they  had  seen  the  brethren,  they  exhorted  them,  and  departed. 

28 


218  APOSTOLIC    PRODUCTIONS. 

After  Paul  and  Silas  had  travelled  through  AmphipoUs  and  Apollonia, 
they  arrived  at  Thessalonica,  where  was  the  synagogue  of  the  Jews. 
And  Paul,  as  he  was  accustomed,  entered  among  them,  and  on  three 
sahbaths,  discoursed  to  them  from  the  scriptures,  elucidating  them,  and 
proving  by  references,  that  the  Messiah  must  necessarily  have  suffered, 
and  been  restored  from  the  dead  ;  and  that  this  Jesus,  whom,  said  he, 
I  announce  to  you,  is  the  Messiah.  And  some  of  them  were  convinced, 
and  adhered  to  Paul  and  Silas  ;  and  also  a  considerable  number  of  the 
devout  Greeks,  and  not  a  few  of  the  principal  women. 

But  the  Jews  attached  to  themselves  certain  iniquitous  men  of  the 
forensic  class,  and  having  assembled  the  populace,  excited  a  commotion 
in  the  city,  and  assailing  the  house  of  one  Jason,  sought  for  Paul  and 
Silas,  that  they  might  bring  them  out  to  the  people.  But  not  finding 
them,  they  dragged  Jason  and  some  of  the  brethren  to  the  rulers  of  the 
city,  vociferating,  These  men  who  have  subverted  the  world,  have  even 
arrived  here ;  whom  Jason  has  privately  entertained :  and  they  all 
oppose  the  institutes  of  Cesar,  alleging  that  there  is  another  king,  one 
Jesus.  And  the  people  and  the  magistrates  of  the  city  were  greatly 
disturbed,  when  they  heard  these  things  :  and  having  taken  security 
from  Jason  and  the  others,  they  discharged  them. 

But  the  brethren  immediately  sent  away  Paul  and  Silas  by  night  to 
Berea  ;  who  having  reached  there,  entered  the  synagogue  of  the  Jews. 
These,  however,  were  more  ingenuonsly  disposed  than  those  at  Thessa- 
lonica, for  they  received  the  word  with  all  alacrity  of  mind,  daily  exam- 
ining the  scriptures,  whether  these  things  were  true.  Many  of  them 
therefore  believed;  and  also  of  the  Grecian  women  of  rank,  and  of 
men,  not  a  few.  Moreover,  as  some  of  the  Jews  of  Thessalonica  under- 
stood, that  the  word  of  God  was  preached  by  Paul  at  Berea,  they  also 
came  there,  exciting  the  people.  And  then  the  brethren  immediately 
sent  away  Paul,  to  go  apparently  towards  the  sea  ;  but  Silas  and  Timo- 
thy still  remained  there.  And  those  who  conducted  Paul,  brought  him 
to  Athens ;  and  having  received  an  injunction  to  Silas  and  Timothy, 
that  they  would  expeditiously  come  to  him,  they  departed. 

Now,  while  Paul  was  awaiting  their  arrival  at  Athens,  his  mind  was 
powerfully  incited  within  him,  when  he  surveyed  the  city  full  of  idols. 
Moreover,  he  was  constantly  reasoning  with  the  Jews,  and  with  the 
Gentile  proselytes  in  the  synagogue,  and  daily  in  the  market-place  -with. 
such  as  presented  themselves.  But  some  of  the  Epicurean  and  Stoical 
philosophers  encountered  him.  And  some  observed,  What  will  this 
declaimer  say?  and  others.  He  appears  to  be  a  herald  of  foreign 
deities ;  because  he  pubhshed  to  them  the  joyful  intelligence  of  Jesus, 
and  the  future  life.  And  they  took  him,  and  conducted  him  to  the  court 
of  Areopagus,  saying,  We  cannot  comprehend  this  new  doctrine,  of  which 
you  speak.  For  you  bring  certain  strange  things  to  our  ears  :  we  wish, 
therefore,  to  know  what  these  things  can  mean.     (Now  all  the  Atheni- 


APOSTOLIC  TRANSACTIONS.  219 

ans,  and  the  resident  foreigners,  gave  themselves  to  nothing  else,  but 
either  to  tell  or  to  hear  some  news). 

Paul  then  stood  in  the  centre  of  the  court  of  Areopagus,  and  remark- 
ed ;  Men  of  Athens,  I  perceive  that  you  are  greatly  devoted  to  the  wor- 
ship of  invisible  powers.  For  as  I  passed  by,  and  beheld  the  objects  of 
your  devotion,  I  found  an  altar  with  this  inscription.  To  an  unknown 
God.  Him  therefore,  whom  you  ignorantly  worship,  I  proclaim  to  you. 
The  God,  who  created  the  world,  and  all  things  that  are  in  it,  he,  being 
Lord  of  heaven  and  earth,  dwells  not  in  temples  made  with  hands ;  nor 
is  he  served  by  the  hands  of  men,  as  if  he  wanted  any  thing  ;  since  he 
himself  imparts  to  all,  Ufe,  and  breath,  and  all  things  :  and  he  has  made 
from  one  race,  every  community  of  men,  to  dwell  on  the  entire  surface 
of  the  earth  ;  and  has  designated  their  appointed  periods,  and  the  hm- 
its  of  their  residence  ;  that  they  might  seek  God,  as  even,  by  groping  in 
darkness,  they  would  find  him  ;  since  he  is  not  far  from  every  one  of 
us  :  for  through  him  we  live,  and  move,  and  exist ;  as  some  of  the  poets 
among  you  have  also  declared.  For  we  are  indeed  his  offspring.  There- 
fore, being  the  offspring  of  God,  we  should  never  imagine  that  the  Dei- 
ty resembles  gold,  or  silver,  or  stone,  the  result  of  human  design  and 
operation.  God,  however,  overlooked  the  periods  of  such  ignorance ; 
but  he  now  commands  all  men,  in  every  place,  to  reform  :  because  he 
has  established  a  day,  in  wliich  he  will  judge  the  world  in  righteousness, 
by  a  man,  whom  he  has  appointed ;  giving  proof  of  this  to  all,  in  hav- 
ing raised  him  from  the  dead. 

Now,  when  they  heard  of  the  future  existence  of  the  dead,  some  de- 
rided ;  and  others  alleged,  we  will  hear  you  again  on  this  subject.  And 
thus,  Paul  departed  from  the  midst  of  them.  However,  some  men  ad- 
hered to  him,  and  believed ;  among  whom  were  Dionysius  the  Areopa- 
gite,  and  a  woman  whose  name  was  Damaris,  and  others  besides  them. 

And  Paul,  at  a  subsequent  period,  departing  from  Athens,  proceeded 
to  Corinth  ;  and  finding  there  a  certain  Jew,  named  Aquila,  a  native  of 
Pontus,  recently  arrived  from  Italy,  with  Priscilla  his  wife  ;  (because 
Claudius  had  commanded  all  the  Jews  to  depart  from  Rome),  he  went 
to  them.  And  as  he  was  of  the  same  trade,  he  remained  with  them, 
and  labored :  for  by  their  occupation,  they  were  tent-makers.  And  he 
discoursed  in  the  synagogue  on  every  sabbath,  and  endeavored  to  per- 
suade Jews  and  Greeks.  But  when  Silas  and  Timothy  came  from 
Macedonia,  Paul  ardently  co-operated  with  them  in  the  word,  and  tes- 
tified to  the  Jews,  that  Jesus  was  the  Messiah.  And  as  they  were  ar- 
rayed in  hostility,  and  were  reviUng,  he  shook  his  raiment,  and  said  to 
them,  Let  your  blood  rest  on  your  own  head  ;  I  am  innocent :  from  this 
time  I  wUl  go  to  the  Gentiles.  And  passing  thence,  he  entered  the 
house  of  a  certain  man  named  Justus,  a  Jewish  proselyte,  whose  house 
was  very  near  the  synagogue.  Now  Crispus,  the  ruler  of  the  syn- 
agogue, believed  in  the  Lord  with  all  his  family ;  and  many  of  the  Co- 
rinthians hearing,  believed,  and  were  baptized.     The  Lord  then  said  to 


220  APOSTOLIC   PRODUCTIONS. 

Paul  by  a  vision  in  the  night,  Fear  not,  but  speak,  and  be  not  silent : 
for  I  am  with  you,  and  no  man  shall  assail  you  to  your  injury ;  for  I 
have  numerous  people  in  this  city.  And  he  remained  there  a  year  and 
six  months,  teaching  the  word  of  God  among  them. 

But,  while  Gallio  was  pro-consul  of  Achaia,  the  Jews  unitedly  assail- 
ed Paul,  and  brought  him  before  the  tribunal ;  alleging.  This  individual 
persuades  men  to  worship  God  contrary  to  the  law.  And  when  Paul 
was  preparing  to  speali,  Galho  said  to  the  Jews,  If  it  were  an  act  of 
injustice,  or  destructive  mischief,  O  ye  Jews,  it  would  be  but  reasonable, 
that  I  should  patiently  hear  you  ;  but  if  it  be  a  question  concerning 
doctrine,  and  names,  and  the  law  which  is  among  you,  attend  to  it  your- 
selves ;  for  I  will  not  adjudicate  on  such  subjects.  And  he  authorita- 
tively dismissed  them  from  the  tribunal.  Then  all  the  Jews  seized  Sos- 
thenes,  the  chief  ruler  of  the  synagogue,  and  beat  him  before  the  tri- 
bunal :  but  Gallio  did  not  interfere  in  any  of  these  transactions. 

And  Paul  still  remained  there  for  a  considerable  time  ;  and  then  tak- 
ing leave  of  the  brethren,  he  sailed  from  thence  to  Syria,  in  company 
with  Priscilla  and  Aquila ;  having  shorn  his  head  at  Cenchrea ;  for  he 
had  made  a  vow.  And  he  arrived  at  Ephesus,  and  there  he  left  them : 
but  he  himself  entered  the  synagogue,  and  discoursed  to  the  Jews.  And 
though  they  requested  him  to  remain  with  them  for  a  longer  time,  he 
did  not  comply  ;  but  bid  them  adieu,  saying.  It  is  necessary  for  me,  by 
all  means,  to  celebrate  the  approaching  festival  at  Jerusalem  ;  but  I 
will  return  to  you,  by  permission  of  God.  And  he  sailed  from  Ephesus. 
And  landing  at  Cesarea,  he  ascended,  and  having  saluted  the  church,  he 
descended  to  Antioch.  And  when  he  had  passed  some  time  there,  he 
departed,  and  traversed  all  the  country  of  Galatia  and  Phrygia,  in 
order  ;  establishing  all  the  disciples. 

Besides,  a  certain  Jew,  whose  name  was  Apollos,  a  native  of  Alexan- 
dria, a  literary  man,  and  powerful  in  the  scriptures,  came  to  Ephesus. 
This  person  was  initiated  in  the  doctrine  of  the  Lord ;  and  being  ex- 
ceedingly zealous,  he  spoke  and  taught  accurately,  the  things  of  the 
Lord,  though  he  knew  only  the  baptism  of  John.  And  he  began  to 
speak  with  freedom  in  the  synagogue  :  but  after  Aquila  and  Priscilla 
had  heard  him,  they  took  him  to  their  house,  and  more  perfectly  ex- 
plained to  him  the  doctrine  of  God.  And  as  he  intended  to  pass  into 
Achaia,  the  brethren  wrote,  exhorting  the  disciples  kindly  to  receive 
him  :  and  having  arrived,  he  greatly  assisted  those  believers,  by  his 
gift :  for  he  most  strenuously  confiited  the  Jews,  in  public,  proving  by 
the  scriptures,  thatJesus  is  the  Messiah. 

And  it  occurred,  that,  while  Apollos  was  at  Corinth,  Paul,  having 
passed  through  the  upper  parts  of  the  country,  came  to  Ephesus  ;  and 
finding  certain  disciples,  he  said  to  them.  Have  you  received  the  Holy 
Spirit,  since  you  believed  1  And  they  repUed  to  him,  No  ;  we  have  not 
even  heard  whether  the  Holy  Spirit  is  yet  imparted.  And  he  said  to 
them,  With  what  then  were  you  baptized  1    And  they  answered,  We 


APOSTOLIC  TRANSACTIONS.  221 

received  John's  baptism.  Paul  then  observed,  John  administered  the 
baptism  of  reformation,  declaring  to  the  people,  that  they  should  believe 
in  him  who  would  succeed  him,  that  is,  in  Jesus.  And  having  heard 
this,  they  were  baptized  in  the  name  of  the  Lord  Jesus.  And  as  Paul 
placed  his  hands  on  them,  the  Holy  Spirit  came  upon  them  ;  and  they 
spoke  in  different  languages,  and  taught.  And  the  entire  number  of  the 
men  was  twelve. 

Now  Paul  entered  the  synagogue,  and  spoke  freely  ;  discoursing  for 
a  period  of  three  months,  and  endeavoring  to  persuade  them  of  the 
things  which  relate  to  the  kingdom  of  God.  But  when  many  were 
hardened,  and  disbelieved,  and  spoke  contemptuously  of  that  religion 
before  the  multitude,  he  departed  from  them,  and  withdrew  the  disci- 
ples, daily  discussing  in  the  school  of  one  Tyrannus.  And  this  was 
done  for  two  years ;  so  that  all  those  who  inhabited  Asia,  both  Jews 
and  Gentiles,  heard  the  word  of  the  Lord.  And  God  performed  extra- 
ordinary miracles  by  the  hands  of  Paul :  so  that  sashes  or  girdles  were 
conveyed  from  his  person,  to  those  who  were  sick ;  and  the  diseases 
left  them,  and  the  evil  spirits  departed. 

Then  some  of  the  vagrant  Jews,  who  practised  exorcisms,  undertook 
to  invocate  the  name  of  the  Lord  Jesus  in  favor  of  those  who  had  evil 
spirits,  saying.  We  adjure  you  by  Jesus,  whom  Paul  preaches.  Now  the 
seven  sons  of  Skeva,  a  chief  priest  of  the  Jews,  were  among  those  who 
did  this.  Then  the  evil  spirit  said  in  reply,  I  acknowledge  Jesus  ;  and 
am  acquainted  with  Paul :  but  who  are  you  1  And  the  man,  in  whom 
the  evil  spirit  was,  rushed  on  them,  and  gaining  the  superiority  over 
them,  subdued  them,  so  that  they  fled  from  that  house,  unclad  and 
wounded.  Now,  this  was  known  to  all  the  Jews  and  Greeks  dwelling 
at  Ephesus  ;  and  fear  fell  on  them  all,  and  the  name  of  the  Lord  Jesus 
was  extolled.  And  many  of  those  who  believed,  came,  confessing  and 
renouncing  their  practices.  And  many  of  those  who  had  practised 
magical  arts,  collected  the  Ephesian  characters,  and  burned  them  be- 
fore all :  and  they  computed  the  value  of  them,  and  ascertained  it  to  be 
fifty  thousand  pieces  of  silver.  The  word  of  the  Lord  thus  powerftdly 
advanced  and  prevailed. 

Moreover,  after  these  things  were  accomplished,  Paul  resolved  in 
mind,  having  passed  through  Macedonia  and  Achaia,  to  go  to  Jerusa- 
lem, observing.  After  I  have  been  there,  I  must  also  visit  Rome.  And 
having  sent  two  of  his  ministers,  Timothy  and  Erastus,  to  Macedonia  ; 
he  himself  remained  for  a  time  in  Asia. 

Further,  at  that  period,  there  was  a  great  excitement  relative  to  this 
religion.  For  a  certain  man,  whose  name  was  Demetrius,  a  silversmith, 
making  silver  models  of  Diana's  temple,  produced  no  inconsiderable 
gain  to  the  artists  ;  whom  he  assembled,  with  the  workmen,  in  similar 
fabrics,  and  said.  Men,  you  are  apprised,  that  from  this  manufacture,  we 
derive  our  subsistence.  And  you  see  and  hear,  that  this  Paul  has  per- 
suaded, and  turned  aside  numerous  people,  not  only  of  Ephesus,  but 


222  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

almost  of  all  Asia,  declaring,  that  those  are  not  deities,  who  are  made 
with  hands  :  and  there  is  danger,  not  only  that  this  occupation  of  ours 
should  be  depreciated ;  but  also  that  the  temple  of  the  great  goddess 
Diana  should  be  despised,  and  her  grandeur  destroyed,  whom  all  Asia, 
and  the  whole  world  reverence. 

And  having  heard  this,  they  were  full  of  rage,  and  thus  exclaim- 
ed. Great  is  Diana  of  the  Ephesians  !  And  the  whole  city  was  filled 
with  confusion ;  and  they  concurrently  rushed  to  the  theatre,  drag- 
ging thither  Caius  and  Aristarchus,  both  of  Macedonia,  the  fellow-trav- 
ellers of  Paul.  Then  Paul  was  disposed  to  enter  among  the  people, 
but  the  disciples  restrained  him.  And  some  of  the  governors  of  Asia, 
who  were  his  friends,  sent  to  him,  advising  him  not  to  hazard  himself 
at  the  theatre.  Now  some  of  the  populace  were  clamorously  uttering 
one  thing,  and  some  another  :  for  the  assembly  was  confused  ;  and  the 
greater  part  did  not  know  for  what  purpose  they  were  convened.  And 
the  multitude  encouraged  Alexander,  the  Jews  also  urging  him  forward. 
Then  Alexander,  having  waved  the  hand,  would  have  made  a  defence 
to  the  people.  But  being  apprised  that  he  was  a  Jew,  all  with  one 
voice,  for  about  two  hours,  vociferated.  Great  is  Diana  of  the  Ephesians. 
Now,  the  principal  ofiicer  of  the  city,  having  repressed  the  people,  de- 
clared. Men  of  Ephesus,  where  then  is  the  man,  who  does  not  know, 
that  the  city  of  the  Ephesians  is  devoted  to  the  great  Diana,  and  to  the 
image  which  fell  down  from  Jupiter  1  Since  therefore,  these  things 
cannot  be  denied,  you  ought  to  be  quiet,  and  to  do  nothing  rashly.  For 
you  have  brought  here  these  men,  who  are  neither  plunderers  of  sacred 
places,  nor  revilers  of  your  goddess.  If  therefore  Demetrius,  and  the 
artificers  who  are  with  him,  have  a  charge  against  any  one,  courts  are 
held,  and  there  are  pro-consuls ;  let  them  legally  contend  with  each 
other :  but  if  you  institute  any  inquiry  relative  to  other  subjects,  it  shall 
be  determined  in  the  appropriate  assembly.  For  we  are  even  in  danger 
of  being  publicly  accused  for  this  day's  sedition  ;  as  we  can  assign  no 
reason  to  justify  this  tumultuous  concourse.  And  having  said  this,  he 
dismissed  the  assemblage. 

Now,  after  the  disturbance  ceased,  Paul,  having  called  the  disciples 
to  him,  and  embraced  them,  departed  to  go  to  Macedonia.  And  pass- 
ing through  those  parts,  and  extensively  exhorting  them,  he  proceeded 
to  Greece.  And  having  remained  three  months,  an  insidious  plot  being 
laid  for  him  by  the  Jews,  as  he  was  about  to  sail  to  Syria,  he  determin- 
ed to  return  through  Macedonia.  Now  Sopater  a  Berean,  and  son  of 
Pyrrhus,  accompanied  him  as  far  as  to  Asia ;  but  Aristarchus  and  Se- 
cundus  of  the  Thessalonians ;  and  Caius  ofDerbe,  and  Timothy;  and 
Tychicus  and  Trophimus  of  the  Asiatics,  preceded,  and  awaited  us  at 
Troas.  And  we  sailed  out  from  Philippi,  after  the  days  of  unleavened 
bread,  and  came  to  them  at  Troas  in  five  days  ;  where  we  continued 
seven  days. 


APOSTOLIC  TRANSACTIONS.  223 

And  on  the  first  day  of  the  week,  when  we  convened  to  break  bread, 
Paul,  intending  to  depart  on  the  next  day,  discoursed  to  them,  and  pro- 
tracted his  discussion  to  midnight :  for  there  were  numerous  lamps  in 
the  upper  room  where  we  were  assembled.  Now  a  certain  young  man, 
named  Eutychus,  sitting  in  an  open  window,  sunk  into  a  profound 
sleep  ;  and  as  Paul  still  continued  his  discourse,  he  was  so  overpowered 
with  sleep,  that  he  fell  from  the  third  story,  and  was  taken  up  dead. 
Then  Paul  descended,  and  extending  himself  by  him,  embraced  him, 
and  said,  be  not  disturbed  ;  for  his  life  is  in  Iiim.  And  having  ascended, 
and  broken  bread,  and  eaten,  and  familiarly  conversed  for  a  long  time, 
even  to  the  dawn  of  day,  he  then  departed.  And  they  brought  away 
the  youth  alive,  and  were  in  no  small  degree  consoled. 

But,  having  preceded  to  the  ship,  we  sailed  to  Assos,  where  we  were 
again  to  receive  Paul,  for  he  had  thus  arranged,  personally  preferring  to 
proceed  by  land.  And  when  he  met  us  at  Assos,  we  received  him,  and 
came  to  Mitylene.  And  sailing  thence,  we  arrived  on  the  next  day 
opposite  to  Chios  ;  and  on  the  next  day  we  touched  at  Samos  ;  and  hav- 
ing remained  at  Trogylhum,  on  the  succeeding  day  we  reached  Miletus. 
For  Paul  had  determined  to  sail  by  Ephesus,  that  he  might  not  lose 
time  in  that  part  of  Asia  ;  since  he  was  hastening,  if  it  were  possible 
for  him,  to  be  at  Jerusalem  on  the  day  of  Pentecost. 

Now,  from  Miletus,  Paul  sent  to  Ephesus,  and  called  to  him  the  pres- 
byters of  the  church.  And  when  they  were  with  him,  he  stated  to 
them,  You  know,  from  the  first  day  on  which  I  entered  Asia,  how  I 
have  demeaned,  in  reference  to  you,  during  the  whole  period,  serving 
the  Lord  with  all  humiUty  of  mind,  and  with  tears  and  trials,  which 
befell  me  through  the  treacheries  of  the  Jews  :  and  that  I  have  sup- 
pressed nothing  that  was  advantageous  ;  neglecting  not  to  proclaim  to 
you,  and  to  instruct  you  publicly,  and  at  your  houses  ;  solemnly  an- 
nouncing, both  to  Jews  and  to  Greeks,  reformation  towards  God,  and 
faith  towards  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ.  And  now,  behold,  I  feel  myself 
forced  in  my  mind  to  go  to  Jerusalem,  not  knowing  the  tilings  which 
wiU  there  befall  me  ;  except  that  the  Holy  Spirit  testifies  in  every  city, 
alleging,  that  bonds  and  afiUctions  await  me.  But  I  make  no  consid- 
eration of  any  such  thing  ;  nor  do  I  regard  my  life  as  valuable  to  my- 
self, if  I  may  but  complete  my  course  with  joy,  even  the  ministry  which 
I  have  received  from  the  Lord  Jesus,  earnestly  to  declare  the  joyful 
message  of  the  favor  of  God.  And  behold,  moreover,  I  am  aware,  that 
none  of  you,  among  whom  I  have  been  associated,  proclaiming  the 
kingdom  of  God,  will  see  my  face  any  more.  Therefore,  I  solemnly 
assure  you  this  day,  that  I  am  clear  from  the  blood  of  all ;  for  I  have 
not  refrained  to  declare  to  you  the  entire  counsel  of  God.  Attend 
therefore  to  yourselves,  and  to  the  whole  flock,  over  which  the  Holy 
Spirit  has  constituted  you  inspectors,  to  nourish  the  church  of  the  Lord, 
which  he  has  purchased  with  his  own  blood.  For  I  am  conscious  of 
this,  that  after  my  departure,  mischievous  wolves  will  enter  among  you, 


224  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

having  no  mercy  on  the  flock.  Indeed,  from  among  yourselves  men 
will  arise,  uttering  perverse  things,  to  decoy  disciples  after  them. 
Watch  therefore,  remembering  that  for  three  years,  by  night  and  by 
day,  I  did  not  cease  to  admonish  every  one  with  tears.  And  now, 
brethren,  I  commend  you  to  God,  and  to  the  word  of  his  grace,  which 
is  able  to  build  you  up,  and  to  give  you  an  inheritance  among  all  those 
who  are  purified.  I  have  coveted  no  man's  silver,  or  gold,  or  attire. 
You  personally  know  that  these  hands  have  been  subservient  to  my 
necessities,  and  to  those  who  were  with  me.  I  have  shown  you  in  all 
particulars,  that  by  thus  laboring,  you  ought  to  assist  the  weak,  and  to 
recollect  the  words  of  the  Lord  Jesus,  that  he  alleged.  It  is  more  happy 
to  give  than  to  receive. 

And  having  thus  spoken,  he  kneeled,  and  prayed  with  them  all.  And 
they  all  wept  much  ;  and  fell  on  Paul's  neck,  and  tenderly  kissed  him  ; 
principally  afilicted  at  the  declaration  which  he  made.  That  they  would 
behold  his  face  no  more.     And  they  attended  him  to  the  ship. 

Now  it  occurred,  after  we  had  departed  from  them,  and  had  sailed, 
that  we  proceeded  in  a  direct  course  to  Coos  ;  and  on  the  following  day 
to  Rhodes,  and  thence  to  Patara  :  and  having  found  a  ship  passing  over 
to  Phenicia,  we  embarked,  and  sailed.  And  arriving  in  view  of  Cyprus, 
and  leaving  it  on  the  left  hand,  we  sailed  to  Syria,  and  landed  at  Tyre  ; 
for  there  the  vessel  was  to  leave  the  freight.  And  we  continued  there 
seven  days,  finding  disciples,  who  told  Paul  through  the  Spirit,  not  to 
ascend  to  Jerusalem.  And  it  happened,  when  we  had  passed  those 
days,  that  we  departed,  and  prosecuted  our  journey  ;  and  they  all 
accompanied  us  beyond  the  city,  with  their  wives  and  children  :  and 
kneeling  on  the  sea-shore,  we  prayed.  And  when  we  had  taken  affec- 
tionate leave  of  one  another,  we  entered  the  ship,  and  they  returned  to 
their  abodes.  And  we  came  from  Tyre  to  Ptolemais,  having  completed 
our  voyage  ;  and  embracing  the  brethren,  we  remained  with  them  one 
day :  and  on  the  next  day  we  departed,  and  arrived  at  Cesarea ;  and 
we  entered  the  house  of  PhiUp  the  Evangelist,  who  was  one  of  the 
seven,  and  resided  with  him.  Now  he  had  four  virgin  daughters  who 
instructed. 

And  as  we  continued  there  many  days,  a  certain  prophet  whose  name 
was  Agabus,  arrived  from  Judea.  And  when  he  came  to  us,  he  took 
Paul's  girdle,  and  having  bound  his  own  hands  and  feet,  he  declared, 
Thus  says  the  Holy  Spirit,  The  Jews  at  Jerusalem  will  thus  bind  the 
man  who  owns  this  girdle,  and  will  surrender  him  to  the  hands  of  the 
Gentiles.  And  when  we  heard  these  things,  both  we,  and  those  of  that 
place,  entreated  Paul  not  to  go  up  to  Jerusalem.  But  Paul  replied, 
What  is  your  object,  in  weeping,  and  afflicting  my  heart  I  for  I  am 
ready  not  only  to  be  bound,  but  also  to  die,  at  JerussJem,  for  the  name 
of  the  Lord  Jesus.  And  as  he  would  not  be  influenced,  we  desisted, 
saying,  Let  the  will  of  the  Lord  be  done. 


APOSTOLIC  TRANSACTIONS.  225 

Further,  after  these  days,  we,  being  prepared  for  the  journey,  went 
up  to  Jerusalem.  And  some  of  the  disciples  from  Cesarea  also  accom- 
panied us,  and  introduced  us  to  one  Mnason,  a  Cyprian,  an  old  disciple, 
with  whom  we  were  to  lodge. 

And  when  we  had  arrived  at  Jerusalem,  the  brethren  received  us  with 
pleasure.  And  on  the  next  day  Paul  repaired  with  us  to  James  ;  and 
all  the  presbyters  were  present.  And  having  saluted  them,  he  minutely 
related  what  God  had  accomplished  among  the  Gentiles  through  his 
ministry.  Now,  when  they  heard  it,  they  praised  God,  and  remarked 
to  Paul,  You  perceive,  brother,  how  many  myriads  of  believing  Jews 
there  are,  all  zealous  for  the  law.  Moreover,  they  have  been  informed 
respecting  you,  that  you  instruct  all  the  Jews,  who  are  among  the  Gen- 
tile nations,  to  apostatize  from  Moses,  alleging,  that  they  ought  not  to 
circumcise  their  children,  nor  to  pursue  the  customs.  What  therefore 
should  be  done  1  A  multitude  will  undoubtedly  assemble  ;  for  they  will 
hear  that  you  have  come.  Do  therefore  this,  which  we  propose  to  you. 
AVe  have  four  men,  who  have  a  vow  on  them  ;  take  them,  and  purify 
yourself  with  them,  at  a  mutual  expense,  that  they  may  shave  their 
heads  ;  and  that  all  may  know  there  is  nothing  in  what  they  have  been 
told  respecting  you  ;  but  that  you  yourself  also  demean  regularly,  keep- 
ing the  law.  In  reference,  however,  to  the  Gentiles  who  are  believers, 
we  have  written  and  determined  that  they  shall  observe  no  such  thing ; 
but  that  they  shall  only  keep  themselves  from  what  is  offered  to  idols,  and 
from  blood,  and  from  that  which  is  strangled,  and  from  incontinence. 

Then  Paul  took  the  men,  and  on  the  next  day  being  purified  with 
them,  entered  the  temple,  announcing  the  completion  of  the  days  of 
purification,  till  an  ofiering  should  be  made  for  every  one  of  them. 

Moreover,  as  the  seven  days  were  about  to  be  terminated,  the  Jews 
who  were  from  Asia,  beholding  him  in  the  temple,  excited  the  whole 
populace,  and  laid  hands  on  him,  exclaiming.  Men  of  Israel,  assist ! 
This  is  the  man  who  every  where  teaches  all  men  contrary  to  the  people, 
and  the  law,  and  to  this  place :  and  fiirther,  has  even  brought  Greeks 
into  the  temple  ;  and  has  contaminated  this  sacred  place.  (For  they 
had  previously  seen  with  him  in  the  city  Trophimus  the  Ephesian,  whom 
they  imagined  that  Paul  had  brought  into  the  temple).  And  the  whole 
city  was  disturbed,  and  there  was  a  sudden  assemblage  of  the  people  ; 
and  having  seized  Paul,  they  dragged  him  from  the  temple  ;  and  the 
gates  were  instantly  closed.  And  as  they  were  endeavoring  to  lull  him, 
intelligence  reached  the  tribune  of  the  cohort,  that  all  Jerusalem  was  in 
confusion  ;  who  immediately  detached  soldiers  and  centurions,  and 
rushed  down  upon  them  :  and  when  they  saw  the  tribune  and  the  sol- 
diers, they  desisted  from  beating  Paul.  The  tribune  then  approached, 
and  seized  him,  and  ordered  him  to  be  bound  with  two  chains  ;  and 
inquired  who  he  was,  and  what  he  had  done.  But  as  some  among  the 
multitude  vociferated  one  thing,  and  some  another  :  and  as  he  could 
not  ascertain  the  truth,  in  consequence  of  the  tumult,  he  commanded 

29 


226  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS.^ 

that  Paul  should  be  conveyed  to  the  castle.  But  when  he  came  to  the 
steps,  it  occurred,  that  he  was  borne  away  by  the  soldiers,  on  account 
of  the  violence  of  the  crowd.  For  the  multitude  of  the  people  pursued, 
exclaiming.  Destroy  him  !  And  while  they  were  conducting  him  into 
the  castle,  he  said  to  the  tribune.  May  I  be  permitted  to  address  you  ? 
And  he  replied,  Do  you  understand  Greek  1  Are  you  not  that  Egyp- 
tian, who,  at  a  former  period,  excited  a  sedition,  and  led  four  thousand 
assassins  to  the  wilderness  ?  But  Paul  said,  I  am  indeed  a  Jew  of 
Tarsus,  in  Cilicia  ;  a  freeman  of  no  contemptible  city  :  and,  I  entreat 
you,  permit  me  to  speak  to  the  people.  And  having  obtained  permis- 
sion, Paul,  standing  on  the  steps,  waved  the  hand  to  the  people.  And 
when  perfect  silence  prevailed,  he  thus  spoke  to  them  in  the  Hebrew 
language.  .  .  . 

Brethren,  and  fathers,  hear  now  my  vindication  before  you.  (And 
when  they  perceived  that  he  addressed  them  in  the  Hebrew  language, 
they  were  the  more  silent ;  and  he  remarked,  I  am  assuredly  a  Jew, 
born  at  Tarsus,  in  Cilicia,  but  educated  in  this  city ;  being  instructed  at 
the  feet  of  Gamaliel,  according  to  the  exactness  of  the  patriarchal  law  ; 
and  being  zealous  for  God,  as  you  all  are  this  day.  And  I  persecuted 
the  followers  of  this  religion  even  to  death,  binding  both  men  and 
women,  and  committing  them  to  prisons  ;  as,  moreover,  the  high  priest 
is  my  witness,  and  the  whole  body  of  the  elders  ;  from  whom  having 
also  received  letters  to  the  brethren,  I  proceeded  to  Damascus,  that  I 
might  bring  those  who  were  there,  also,  bound  to  Jerusalem  to  be  pun- 
ished. And  it  occurred,  as  I  pursued  my  journey,  and  approached 
Damascus,  about  noon,  that  a  great  light  from  heaven  suddenly  shone 
around  me.  And  I  fell  to  the  ground,  and  heard  a  voice  saying  to  me, 
Saul,  Saul,  why  do  you  persecute  me  1  And  I  replied.  Who  art  thou. 
Sir  1  And  he  said  to  me,  I  am  Jesus  the  Nazarean,  whom  you  perse- 
cute. Now  those  who  were  with  me  saw  indeed  the  light,  and  were 
terrified  ;  but  they  understood  not  the  voice  of  him  who  spoke  to  me. 
And  I  said,  What  must  I  do.  Lord  ?  And  the  Lord  said  to  me,  Arise, 
and  go  to  Damascus  ;  and  you  will  there  be  informed  of  all  things  that 
are  appointed  for  you  to  do.  And  as  I  could  not  see  from  the  intense 
splendor  of  that  light,  I  was  led  by  the  hands  of  my  companions  to 
Damascus.  Now  one  Ananias,  a  devout  man  according  to  the  law,  who 
possessed  an  honorable  reputation  among  all  the  Jews  who  resided  there, 
came  to  me,  and  standing  near,  said  to  me.  Brother  Saul,  receive  your 
sight.  And  at  that  very  time,  I  looked  up  to  him.  And  he  declared, 
The  God  of  our  fathers  has  previously  designated  you  to  know  his  will, 
and  to  see  that  Righteous  Personage,  and  to  hear  a  voice  from  his 
mouth  ;  for  you  will  be  his  witness  to  all  men,  of  what  you  have  seen 
and  heard.  And  now  why  do  you  delay  1  Arise,  and  be  baptized,  and 
wash  away  your  sins,  invoking  his  name. 

And  it  happened,  when  I  returned  to  Jerusalem,  and  while  I  was 
praying  in  the  temple,  that  I  was  in  an  ecstasy ;  and  I  beheld  Jesus, 


APOSTOLIC  TRANSACTIONS.  227 

announcing  to  me,  Hasten,  instantly  depart  from  Jerusalem  ;  for  they 
will  not  receive  your  testimony  respecting  me.  And  I  observed,  Lord, 
they  are  aware,  that  I  imprisoned,  and  scourged  in  the  synagogues, 
those  who  confided  in  thee.  And  when  the  blood  of  Stephen,  thy  mar- 
tyr, was  shed,  I  also  stood  by,  and  cheerfully  consented  to  his  death, 
keeping  the  vestments  of  those  who  destroyed  him.  But  he  said  to  me. 
Depart ;  for  I  will  send  you  far  distant  to  the  Gentiles.  .  .  . 

Now  they  attended  to  him,  till  he  uttered  this  expression  ;  and  they 
then  raised  their  voice,  saying.  Destroy  such  a  man  from  the  earth  ;  for 
it  is  not  proper  that  he  should  exist.  And  as  they  were  exclaiming, 
and  were  rending  their  garments,  and  throwing  dust  into  the  air,  the 
tribune  commanded  that  he  should  be  taken  into  the  castle,  and  exam- 
ined by  scourging  ;  that  he  might  ascertain  for  what  reason  they  thus 
exclaimed  against  him. 

And  as  they  were  binding  him  with  cords,  Paul  said  to  the  centurion 
who  was  present.  Is  it  lawful  for  you  to  scourge  a  man  who  is  a  Roman 
citizen,  and  uncondemned  1  Now,  when  the  centurion  was  thus  apprised 
he  went  and  informed  the  tribune,  saying.  What  are  you  about  to  do  1 
for  this  man  is  a  Roman  citizen.  The  tribune  then  came,  and  said  to 
him.  Inform  me,  are  you  a  Roman  citizen  ?  And  he  said.  Yes.  Then 
the  tribune  answered,  I  attEiined  this  freedom  at  a  great  expense.  And 
Paul  rejoined.  But  I  was  even  born  free.  Upon  this,  those  who  were 
going  to  examine  him,  immediately  left  him  :  and  moreover,  the  tribune 
was  alarmed,  that  he  had  bound  Paul,  when  he  ascertained  that  he  was 
a  Roman  citizen. 

And  on  the  next  day,  desiring  certainly  to  know  of  what  he  was  ac- 
cused by  the  Jews,  he  loosed  him,  and  enjoined  the  chief  priests  and  all 
the  council  to  assemble  ;  and  having  brought  Paul  down,  he  placed  him 
before  them. 

Then  Paul,  attentively  surveying  the  sanhedrin,  declared.  Brethren, 
I  have  always  lived  with  a  good  conscience,  before  God.  But  An- 
anias the  high  priest  commanded  those  who  stood  near  him,  to  smite 
him  on  the  mouth.  Paul  then  said  to  him,  God  will  smite  you,  whitened 
wall :  for  do  you  sit  to  judge  me  in  conformity  to  the  law,  and  yet  com- 
mand, that  I  should  be  smitten,  in  violation  of  the  law  ?  And  those  who 
were  standing  by,  said.  Do  you  revile  the  high  priest  of  God  1  Paul 
then  alleged,  I  was  not  aware,  brethren,  that  he  is  the  high  priest ;  for 
it  is  written.  Thou  shalt  not  speak  evil  of  the  ruler  of  thy  people. 

Paul,  however,  perceiving  one  part  to  be  sadducees,  and  the  other 
Pharisees,  exclaimed  in  the  council.  Brethren,  I  am  a  Pharisee,  a  son 
of  a  Pharisee  :  concerning  the  hope  of  the  resurrection  of  the  dead,  I 
am  arraigned.  And  as  he  announced  this,  a  contention  ensued  between 
the  Pharisees  and  the  sadducees  ;  and  the  multitude  was  divided.  For 
the  sadducees  actually  assert,  that  there  is  no  resurrection,  nor  angel, 
nor  spirit ;  but  the  pharisees  admit  both.  And  there  was  a  great  clamor  : 
and  the  scribes  on  the  part  of  the  pharisees  rose  up,  and  violently  strove, 


328  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

affirming,  We  find  nothing  amiss  in  this  man ;  and  if  a  spirit  or  an 
angel  have  spoken  to  him,  let  us  not  contend  against  God.  And  as 
there  was  a  great  dissension,  the  tribune  fearing  lest  Paul  would  be  torn 
in  pieces  by  them,  ordered  the  soldiers  to  go  down,  and  forcibly  take 
him  from  the  midst  of  them,  and  bring  him  into  the  castle. 

Now,  on  the  following  night,  the  Lord  stood  by  him,  and  said.  Take 
courage  ;  for  as  you  have  particularly  testified  concerning  me  at  Jeru- 
salem, so  you  must  also  bear  testimony  at  Rome. 

And  when  it  was  day,  some  of  the  Jews  lawlessly  combined,  and  bound 
themselves  by  an  oath,  declaring,  that  they  would  neither  eat  nor  drink, 
till  they  had  killed  Paul.  Indeed,  there  were  more  than  forty,  who  had 
engaged  in  this  conspiracy.  And  they  came  to  the  chief  priests  and  the 
elders,  and  said.  We  have  bound  ourselves  by  a  solemn  anathema,  not 
to  taste  any  thing,  till  we  have  slain  Paul.  Now  therefore,  do  you,  with 
the  council,  intimate  to  the  tribune,  that  he  bring  him  down  to  you  to- 
morrow, as  if  you  would  more  accurately  determine  respecting  him  ; 
and  we,  before  he  approaches  you,  will  be  prepared  to  destroy  him. 

But  the  son  of  Paul's  sister,  hearing  of  the  treachery,  came  up,  and 
entering  the  castle,  informed  Paul.  Then  Paul,  calling  one  of  the  cen- 
turions to  him,  said.  Conduct  this  young  man  to  the  tribune  ;  for  he  has 
something  to  tell  him.  He  therefore  took  and  led  him  to  the  tribune, 
and  said,  Paul  the  prisoner  calling  me  to  him,  desired  that  I  would  bring 
this  young  man  to  you,  who  has  something  to  tell  you.  And  the  tribune, 
taking  him  by  the  hand,  and  leading  him  to  a  retired  place,  asked  him. 
What  is  it,  that  you  have  to  tell  me  ?  And  he  said.  The  Jews  have  re- 
solved to  request  you,  to  bring  down  Paul  to-morrow  to  the  sanhedrin, 
as  though  they  would  institute  a  more  particular  inquiry  concerning 
him.  But  do  not  confide  in  them  ;  for  more  than  forty  of  them  are  in- 
sidiously watching  him,  who  have  subjected  themselves  to  an  oath  of 
imprecation,  that  they  will  neither  eat  nor  drink  till  they  have  destroyed 
him :  and  they  are  now  ready,  expecting  an  assurance  from  you. 
Moreover,  the  tribune  then  dismissed  the  young  man,  with  the  injunc- 
tion. Inform  no  one  what  you  have  told  me. 

And  having  summoned  to  him  two  select  centurions,  he  directed. 
Detach  two  hundred  infantry  to  advance  to  Cesarea,  and  seventy  horse- 
men, and  two  hundred  spearmen,  at  the  third  hour  of  the  night ;  and 
furnish  animals  on  which  to  place  Paul,  that  they  may  convey  him  safely 
to  Felix  the  governor.  And  he  wrote  a  letter  comprised  in  this  form  ; 
Claudius  Lysias  to  the  most  excellent  governor  Felix,  with  salutation. 
As  this  man  was  seized  by  the  Jews,  and  was  about  to  be  destroyed  by 
them,  I  encountered  them  with  an  armed  force,  and  rescued  him,  having 
understood  that  he  was  a  Roman  citizen.  And  wishing  to  know  the  crime 
of  which  they  accused  him,  I  brought  him  down  to  their  sanhedrin.  And 
I  found  that  he  was  accused  only  upon  some  questions  of  their  law ;  but 
that  nothing  was  alleged  against  him  deserving  death  or  imprisonment. 
But  when  it  was  disclosed  to  me,  that  an  ambuscade  was  projected 


APOSTOLIC  TRANSACTIONS.  229 

against  him  by  the  Jews,  I  immediately  sent  to  you,  having  also  com- 
manded the  accusers  to  lay  before  you  the  allegations  against  him. 
Farewell. 

The  soldiers,  therefore,  as  they  were  ordered,  took  Paul,  and  convey- 
ed him  by  night  to  Antipatris.  And  on  the  next  day,  they  returned  to 
the  castle,  having  left  the  horsemen  to  proceed  with  him  ;  who,  after 
their  arrival  at  Cesarea,  delivered  the  letter  to  the  governor,  and  pre- 
sented Paul  before  him.  Now,  when  he  had  read  it,  he  inquired  of 
what  province  Paul  was.  And  having  been  informed  that  he  was  from 
Cilicia,  he  observed,  I  will  fully  hear  you,  when  your  accusers  also  have 
arrived.     And  he  commanded  him  to  be  kept  in  Herod's  pretorium. 

Now,  after  five  days,  Ananias  the  high  priest  descended  with  the  el- 
ders, and  a  certain  orator  named  Tertullus ;  who  appeared  before  the 
governor  against  Paul.  And  when  he  was  summoned,  Tertullus  began 
thus  to  accuse  him  ;  Whereas,  we  enjoy  great  peace  through  your 
agency,  and  illustrious  benefactions  are  rendered  to  this  nation  by  your 
wise  policy,  we  recognise  it  ever,  and  in  all  places,  most  excellent  Felix, 
with  entire  gratitude.,  That  I  may  not,  however,  continue  to  detain 
you,  I  implore  you,  in  your  igenuousness,  briefly  to  hear  us.  For  we 
have  found  this  man  a  perfect  pestilence,  and  an  instigator  of  commo- 
tions agaiiist  the  Jews  through  the  world,  and  a  chieftain  of  the  sect  of 
the  Nazareans  ;  who  has  attempted  even  to  profane  the  temple  ;  whom 
we  arrested,  and  would  have  judged  conformably  to  our  law  ;  but  Lysias 
the  tribune,  besetting  us  with  an  armed  force,  wrested  him  from  our 
hands,  having  commanded  his  accusers  to  repair  to  you ;  by  which 
means  you  may  yourself,  on  examination,  take  cognizance  relative  to 
all  those  particulars,  of  which  we  accuse  him.  And  the  Jews  also, 
jointly  opposing  him,  supported  these  declarations. 

Moreover,  as  the  governor  made  a  signal  to  him  to  speak,  Paul 
replied  ;  Apprised,  that  you  have  been  for  several  years  a  ruler  to  this 
nation,  I  offer  my  defence  with  the  greater  alacrity ;  for  you  can  ascer- 
tain, that  only  twelve  days  have  transpired,  since  I  arrived  to  worship 
at  Jerusalem :  and  they  neither  found  me  disputing  with  any  man  in 
the  temple,  nor  exciting  an  insurrection  among  the  multitude,  either  in 
the  synagogues,  or  against  the  city ;  nor  can  they  substantiate  the  accu- 
sations, which  they  now  prefer  against  me.  But  this  I  confess  to  you, 
that  according  to  the  mode  which  they  style  a  sect,  I  thus  worship  the 
patriarchal  God,  believing  all  things  which  are  written  in  the  law  and 
in  the  prophets  ;  having  hope  in  reference  to  God,  of  what  they  them- 
selves even  expect,  that  there  will  be  a  fixture  existence,  both  of  the 
righteous  and  unrighteous.  And  in  this  I  exercise  myself,  ever  to  have 
an  inoffensive  conscience  towards  God  and  men.  Now,  after  several 
years,  I  came  to  bring  alms  to  my  nation,  and  offerings.  And  at 
that  time,  some  Asiatic  Jews  found  me  purified  in  the  temple,  but  not 
with  a  multitude,  nor  with  tumult ;   who  ought  to  have  presented  them- 


230  APOSTOLIC    PRODUCTIONS. 

selves  before  you,  and  accused  me,  if  they  had  any  thing  against  me. 
Or,  let  these  individuals  allege,  what  crime  they  found  in  me,  while  I  was 
arraigned  before  the  sanhedrin,  unless  it  be  for  this  single  declaration, 
which  I  announced  standing  among  them.  In  relation  to  the  resurrection 
of  the  dead,  I  am  judged  by  you  this  day. 

And  Felix,  having  heard  these  things,  deferred  them,  remarking. 
When  I  shall  have  attained  more  accurate  information  concerning  this 
religion  ;  and  when  Lysias  the  tribune  shall  come  down,  I  will  fiilly 
investigate  your  case.  And  he  commanded  the  centurion  to  keep  Paul, 
and  to  give  him  liberty,  and  that  he  should  forbid  none  of  his  friends  to 
relieve,  or  visit  him. 

And  after  some  days,  Felix  coming  with  Drusilla  his  wife,  who  was  a 
Jewess,  sent  for  Paul,  and  heard  him  relative  to  the  faith  in  Christ. 
And  as  he  discoursed  concerning  justice,  self-government,  and  the  future 
retribution,  Felix,  being  terrified,  answered.  Depart  for  the  present, 
and  I  will  embrace  an  opportunity,  and  send  for  you.  He  also  hoped, 
at  the  same  time,  that  money  would  have  been  given  him  by  Paul,  that 
he  might  liberate  him  ;  and  therefore,  he  more  frequently  sent  for  him, 
and  conversed  with  him. 

But,  at  the  expiration  of  two  years,  Fortius  Festus  succeeded  Felix 
in  his  government ;  and  Felix,  wishing  to  ingratiate  himself  with  the 
Jews,  left  Paul  a  prisoner. 

Accordingly,  Festus  arrived  in  the  province,  and  after  three  days  went 
up  from  Cesarea  to  Jerusalem.  Then  the  high-priest,  and  the  princi- 
pal men  among  the  Jews,  appeared  before  him  against  Paul,  and  were 
entreating  him  to  favor  them  by  remanding  Paul  to  Jerusalem  ;  intend- 
ing treacherously  to  destroy  him  on  the  road.  But  Festus  replied.  That 
Paul  should  be  retained  at  Cesarea,  and  that  he  would  soon  personally 
repair  to  that  place.  And  he  added,  Let  such  of  you,  therefore,  as  can 
give  the  best  information,  go  down  with  me,  and  accuse  this  man,  if 
there  be  any  thing  amiss  in  him. 

And  having  remained  among  them  not  more  than  eight  or  ten  days, 
he  went  down  to  Cesarea  ;  and  the  next  day,  seated  on  the  tribunal,  he 
commanded  Paul  to  be  brought.  And  when  he  appeared,  the  Jews  who 
descended  from  Jerusalem  stood  around,  and  brought  numerous  and 
heavy  charges  against  Paul,  which  they  were  unable  to  prove ;  while  he 
vindicated  himself,  alleging.  Neither  against  the  law  of  the  Jews,  nor 
against  the  temple,  nor  against  Cesar,  have  I,  in  any  respect,  offended. 
But  Festus,  desiring  to  please  the  Jews,  answered  Paul,  and  said,  Do 
you  wish  to  go  up  to  Jerusalem,  and  there  be  tried  for  these  things 
before  me  t  Paul  then  declared,  I  am  standing  at  the  tribunal  of  Cesar, 
where  I  ought  to  be  judged.  I  have  done  no  wrong  to  the  Jews,  as  you 
are  also  completely  aware.  For  assuredly,  if  I  have  offended,  and  com- 
mitted any  act  deserving  death,  I  refuse  not  to  die  :  but  if  the  accusa- 
tions, which  these  make  against  me,  be  groundless,  no  man  shall  gra,tu^ 


APOSTOLIC    TRANSACTIONS.  231 

itously  surrender  me  to  them.  I  appeal  to  Cesar.  Then  Festus,  having 
conferred  with  the  council,  replied,  You  have  appealed  to  Cesar ;  to 
Cesar  you  shall  go. 

And  after  some  days,  king  Agrippa  and  Bernice  came  to  Cesarea  to 
pay  their  respects  to  Festus.  And  when  they  had  remained  there  many 
days,  Festus  explained  Paul's  case  to  the  king,  remarking.  There  is  a 
certain  man  left  a  prisoner  by  Felix  ;  respecting  whom,  when  I  was  at 
Jerusalem,  the  chief  priests  and  the  elders  of  the  Jews  made  a  repre- 
sentation, soliciting  sentence  of  death  against  him  :  to  whom  I  answer- 
ed, that  it  is  not  the  usage  of  the  Romans  thus  to  doom  any  man,  till 
he  who  is  accused  have  the  accusers  face  to  face,  and  enjoy  the  privi- 
lege of  defence,  relative  to  the  accusation.  When,  therefore,  they 
arrived  here,  without  making  any  delay,  I  occupied  the  tribunal  the  day 
after,  and  commanded  the  man  to  be  brought :  against  whom,  when  the 
ac(kisers  appeared,  they  made  no  allegation  of  such  things  as  I  expected  ; 
but  had  some  inquisitions  against  him  concerning  their  own  religion, 
and  in  relation  to  one  Jesus,  who  had  died,  but  whom  Paul  affirmed  to 
be  alive.  And  as  I  hesitated  about  the  inquisition  respecting  him,  I 
inquired  of  him,  whether  he  wished  to  go  to  Jerusalem,  and  there  to  be 
judged  on  these  subjects.  But  when  Paul  had  appealed  to  be  reserved 
to  the  adjudication  of  the  emperor,  I  commanded  him  to  be  kept,  till  I 
could  send  him  to  Cesar.  Then  Agrippa  said  to  Festus,  I  myself  also  de- 
sire to  hear  this  man.     And  he  replied.  To-morrow,  you  shall  hear  him. 

On  the  next  day,  therefore,  when  Agrippa  and  Bernice  arrived,  in 
great  splendor,  and  entered  the  hall  of  audience,  with  the  tribunes,  and 
distinguished  men  of  the  city ;  at  the  command  of  Festus,  Paul  was 
brought.  And  Festus  said.  King  Agrippa,  and  all  men  who  are  here 
present  with  us,  you  perceive  this  man,  respecting  whom  the  whole  mul- 
titude of  the  Jews  have  urged  me,  exclaiming,  that  he  ought  not  to  live 
any  longer.  But  when  I  discerned,  that  he  had  perpetrated  nothing 
which  deserved  death,  and  moreover,  he  himself  having  appealed  to  the 
emperor,  I  determined  to  send  him :  respecting  whom  I  have  nothing 
definite  to  communicate  to  the  sovereign.  I  have  therefore  brought  him 
before  you,  and  especially  before  yourself,  king  Agrippa,  that  on  exam- 
ination, I  may  have  something  to  write.  For  it  appears  to  me  unrea- 
sonable to  send  a  prisoner,  and  not  to  state  also  the  offences  alleged 
against  him. 

Agrippa  accordingly  suggested  to  Paul,  you  are  permitted  to  speak 
for  yourself.  Paul  then  extended  the  hand,  and  made  Ids  defence.  I 
deem  myself  fortunate,  king  Agrippa,  that  I  can  this  day  vindicate  my- 
self before  you,  relative  to  all  things  of  which  I  am  accused  by  the 
Jews :  particularly,  as  you  are  conversant  with  all  the  usages  and 
inquiries,  which  prevail  among  the  Jews.  I  therefore  implore  you, 
patiently  to  hear  me. 

From  my  youth,  indeed,  all  the  Jews  know  my  former  life,  which  was 
passed,  from  the  commencement,  among  my  own  nation  at  Jerusalem  ; 


232  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

and  these  were  originally  acquainted  with  me,  who,  if  they  would,  might 
testify,  that  in  accordance  with  the  most  rigid  sect  of  our  religion,  I 
lived  a  pharisee.  And  now  I  stand  in  judgment,  for  the  hope  of  that 
promise  made  by  God  to  our  fathers ;  to  which,  our  twelve  tribes,  per- 
petually worshipping  night  and  day,  expect  to  attain  ;  concerning  which 
expectation,  king  Agrippa,  I  am  accused  by  the  Jews.  What !  is  it 
regarded  by  you  as  incredible,  that  God  should  raise  the  dead  ? 

I  certainly  thought  with  myself,  that  I  ought  to  do  many  things  con- 
trary to  the  name  of  Jesus  the  Nazarean ;  which  I  even  did  in  Jeru- 
salem ;  and  having  received  authority  from  the  chief  priests,  I  shut  up 
many  of  the  saints  in  prisons,, and  when  they  were  destroyed,  I  gave  my 
suffrage  against  them  :  and  frequently  punishing  them  in  all  the  syna- 
gogues, I  compelled  them  to  speak  impiously;  and  being  excessively 
furious  towards  them,  I  persecuted  them  even  to  foreign  cities. 

And  at  that  period,  as  I  was  proceeding  to  Damascus,  with  authority 
and  commission  from  the  chief  priests,  at  mid-day,  O  king,  I  saw  in  the 
way  a  light  from  heaven,  surpassing  the  effulgence  of  the  sun,  gleaming 
around  me,  and  those  who  travelled  with  me.  And  when  we  were  all 
prostrated  to  the  earth,  I  heard  a  voice  speaking  to  me,  and  saying,  in 
the  Hebrew  language,  Saul,  Saul,  why  do  you  persecute  me  1  It  is  pre- 
sumptuous in  you,  to  kick  against  the  goads.  And  I  said.  Who  art  thou. 
Sir  1  and  he  declared,  I  am  Jesus,  whom  you  persecute.  Therefore 
arise,  and  stand  on  your  feet ;  since  I  have  appeared  to  you  for  this  pur- 
pose, to  appoint  you  a  minister  and  a  witness  both  of  the  things  which 
you  have  seen,  and  of  those  in  which  I  will  appear  to  you  ;  deUvering 
you  from  the  Jewish  people,  and  from  the  Gentiles,  to  whom  I  now  send 
you,  to  open  their  eyes,  to  bring  them,  by  the  faith  that  is  in  me,  from 
darkness  to  light,  and  from  the  power  of  the  adversary  to  God ;  that 
they  may  receive  forgiveness  of  sins,  and  an  inheritance  among  those 
who  are  purified. 

Accordingly,  king  Agrippa,  I  was  not  faithless  to  the  celestial  vision ; 
but  proclaimed  first  to  those  in  Damascus,  and  at  Jerusalem,  and  through 
all  the  country  of  Judea,  and  then  to  the  Gentiles,  that  they  should  re- 
form and  turn  to  God,  performing  deeds  worthy  of  amendment.  For 
these  causes  the  Jews  seized  me  in  the  temple,  and  attempted  with  vio- 
lent hands  to  kill  me.  Having,  however,  obtained  assistance  from  God, 
I  remain  to  this  day,  testifying  both  to  small  and  great,'  announcing 
nothing  but  what  both  the  prophets  and  Moses  afiirmed  as  about  to 
transpire  ;  that  the  Messiah  having  suffered,  and  being  the  first  who  rose 
from  the  dead,  should  communicate  light  to  the  people  [of  the  Jews], 
and  to  the  Gentiles.  .  .  . 

Now,  as  he  thus  made  his  defence,  Festus  declared  with  a  loud  voiae, 
Paul,  you  are  insane !  Multiplied  research  drives  you  to  distraction. 
And  he  replied,  I  am  not  distracted,  most  excellent  Felix,  but  pronounce 
the  words  of  truth  and  sanity.  For  the  king  is  versed  in  these  subjects ; 
I  therefore  address  him  with  confidence :   since  I  am  assured,  that  none 


APOSTOLIC   TRANSACTIONS.  933 

of  these  things  are  concealed  from  him  ;  for  this  was  not  transacted  in  a 
corner.  King  Agrippa,  do  you  believe  the  prophets  7  I  know  that  you 
believe  them !  Agrippa  then  alleged  to  Paul,  You  almost  persuade  me 
to  become  a  Christian.  And  Paul  averred,  I  would  to  God,  that  not 
only  yourself,  but  likewise  all  who  hear  me  this  day,  were  almost,  and 
even  entirely,  such  as  I  am,  except  these  chains  ! 

And  while  he  was  thus  speaking,  the  king  arose,  and  the  governor, 
and  those  who  sat  with  them  ;  and  when  they  had  retired,  they  convers- 
ed with  each  other,  saying,  This  man  has  committed  nothing  deserving 
death  or  imprisonment.  Then  Agrippa  said  to  Festus,  This  man  might 
have  been  discharged,  if  he  had  not  appealed  to  Cesar. 

Moreover,  when  it  was  decided  that  we  should  sail  to  Italy,  they  de- 
livered Paul  and  some  other  prisoners  to  a  centurion  of  the  Augustan 
cohort,  whose  name  was  JuUus.  And  embarking  in  an  Adramittian  ship, 
we  put  to  sea,  intending  to  sail  by  the  coasts  of  Asia ;  Aristarchus,  a 
Macedonian  of  Thessalonica,  attending  us.  And  the  next  day  we  reach- 
ed Sidon.  And  Julius  treated  Paul  with  much  kindness,  and  permitted 
him  to  go  to  his  friends,  and  to  receive  their  assiduous  attentions.  And 
bearing  away  thence,  we  sailed  under  Cyprus,  in  consequence  of  ad- 
verse winds.  And  having  passed  across  the  sea  of  Cilicia  and  Pam- 
phylia,  we  touched  at  Myra,  a  city  of  Lycia. 

And  there  the  centurion,  finding  an  Alexandrian  ship  bound  to  Italy, 
put  us  aboard.  Now,  having  slowly  moved  for  several  days,  and  hard- 
ly making  Cnidus,  the  wind  opposing  us,  we  sailed  under  Crete,  by  Sal- 
mone ;  and  having  passed  it  with  difficulty,  we  came  to  a  certain  place, 
called  Fair  Havens,  near  which  was  a  city  named  Lasea.  And  as  much 
time  had  been  spent,  and  navigation  was  already  hazardous,  because 
even  the  Jewish  fast  had  now  terminated,  Paul  cautioned  them,  with 
this  remtirk,  Men,  I  perceive  that  this  voyage  will  result  in  injury,  and 
great  calamity,  not  only  in  reference  to  the  ship  and  freight,  but  also  to 
our  persons.  However,  the  centurion  paid  more  regard  to  the  pilot, 
and  the  master  of  the  vessel,  than  to  the  declarations  of  Paul. 
Now,  this  harbor  being  unfit  to  winter  in,  the  most  of  them  advised  to 
bear  away  thence  also,  that  if  practicable,  they  might  reach  Phoenix,  to 
winter  there  ;  a  haven  of  Crete,  looking  towards  the  southwest  and 
northwest.  Accordingly,  upon  the  springing  up  of  a  gentle  south  wind, 
supposing  that  they  might  attain  their  object,  they  weighed  anchor,  and 
closely  laid  their  course  by  Crete.  But,  not  long  after,  a  tempestuous 
wind,  called  Euroclydon,  beat  against  the  ship.  And  as  she  was  forced 
away,  and  unable  to  bear  up  against  the  wind,  we  surrendered,  and 
were  driven.  Now,  as  we  ran  under  a  little  island,  called  Claude,  we 
were  scarcely  able  to  become  masters  of  the  boat ;  but  at  last  they  took 
her,  and  employed  all  in  assisting  to  undergird  the  vessel ;  and,  being 
afraid  of  falling  among  shoals,  furled  sail,  and  then  were  borne  away. 
And  as  we  were  violently  tossed  by  the  storm,  we  began  the  next  day  to 
throw  overboard  ;  and  on  the  third  day,  cast  out  with  our  own  hands, 
30 


234  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

the  lading  of  the  vessel.  Then,  as  neither  sun  nor  stars  had  appeared 
for  several  days,  and  no  small  tempest  pressed  on  us,  all  remaining  ex- 
pectation that  we  should  be  preserved,  vras  taken  away. 

But,  after  long  abstinence,  Paul,  standing  in  the  midst  of  them,  de- 
clared, Men,  you  should  have  attended  to  me,  and  not  have  loosed  from 
Crete,  and  incurred  this  harm  and  damage.  Now,  however,  I  exhort 
you  to  take  courage ;  for  there  will  be  no  loss  of  life  among  you,  but  of 
the  ship  only.  For  an  angel  of  that  God,  to  whom  I  belong,  and  whom 
I  worship,  appeared  to  me  this  very  night,  and  said,  Fear  not  Paul ; 
you  will  be  arraigned  before  Cesar  :  and  behold,  God  has  graciously 
granted  you  the  lives  of  all  those  who  sail  with  you.  Therefore,  take 
courage.  Men  ;  for  I  trust  in  God,  that  it  will  so  happen,  as  it  has  been 
disclosed  to  me.     Moreover,  we  must  be  cast  on  a  certain  island. 

And  when  the  fourteenth  night  arrived,  as  we  were  driven  up  and 
down  in  the  Adriatic,  about  midnight,  the  seamen  began  to  suspect,  that 
they  were  drawing  near  to  some  land  ;  and  upon  sounding,  found  twen- 
ty fathoms ;  and  sounding  again  soon  after,  found  fifteen  fathoms. 
Fearing,  therefore,  lest  we  should  fall  upon  rocks,  they  cast  four  anch- 
ors astern,  and  were  wishing  for  the  day.  Now  as  the  sailors  were 
attempting  to  fly  from  the  ship,  and  had  lowered  the  boat  to  the  sea, 
with  a  pretext,  that  they  were  about  to  throw  out  anchors  from  the  bow ; 
Paul  said  to  the  centurion  and  to  the  soldiers.  Unless  these  mariners 
remain  in  the  ship,  you  cannot  be  preserved.  The  soldiers  then  cut 
off  the  ropes  of  the  boat,  and  let  her  drift  away.  Moreover,  when  the 
day  was  about  to  dawn,  Paul  urged  them  all  to  partake  of  food,  saying. 
It  is  the  fourteenth  day  of  the  storm,  that  you  are  remaining  in  suspense 
without  food.  Therefore,  I  advise  you  to  take  some  nourishment,  for 
this  concerns  your  safety ;  and  not  a  hair  will  fall  from  the  head  of  any 
of  you.  And  having  thus  spoken,  he  took  bread,  and  gave  thanks  to 
God  in  the  presence  of  all ;  and  having  broken  it,  he  began  to  eat. 
Then  they  were  all  encouraged  ;  and  they  also  received  food.  More- 
over, the  entire  number  of  us  in  the  ship,  was  two  hundred  and  seventy- 
six  persons.  And  being  satisfied  with  food,  they  lightened  the  ship,  and 
threw  the  grain  into  the  sea.  And  when  day  arrived,  they  did  not  know 
the  land  ;  but  they  perceived  a  certain  bay  with  a  receding  shore,  into 
which  they  concluded,  if  possible,  to  thrust  the  ship.  And  having  tak- 
en up  the  anchors,  they  committed  it  to  the  sea ;  and  having,  at  the 
same  time,  loosed  the  bands  of  the  rudders,  and  hoisted  the  staysail  to 
the  wind,  they  made  towards  the  beach.  But,  falling  on  a  place  where 
two  currents  met,  they  ran  the  vessel  aground ;  and  the  bow  sticking 
fast,  remained  immovable,  while  the  stern  was  falling  in  pieces  with 
the  violence  of  the  waves. 

Now,  it  was  the  advice  of  the  soldiers  to  destroy  the  prisoners,  lest 
any  one  should  swim  out,  and  escape.  But  the  centurion,  wishing  to 
preserve  Paul,  restrained  them  from  their  purpose  ;  and  commanded 
that  those  who  could  swim  should  first  plunge  in,  and  get  to  shore ;  and 


APOSTOLIC  TRANSACTIONS.  235 

that  the  rest  should  do  it,  some  on  planks,  and  some  on  appurtenances 
of  the  ship  :  and  it  thus  occurred,  that  they  all  safely  reached  the  land. 

And  after  they  had  thus  escaped,  they  ascertained  that  the  island  was 
called  Melita.  And  the  Barbarians  displayed  towards  us  no  ordinary 
philanthropy  ;  for  having  kindled  a  fire,  they  conducted  us  all  to  it,  in 
consequence  of  the  existing  rain,  and  also,  of  the  cold. 

And  as  Paul  was  collecting  a  bundle  of  sticks,  and  placing  them  on 
the  fire,  a  viper  proceeded  from  the  heat,  and  fastened  on  his  hand. 
Now,  when  the  Barbarians  saw  the  serpent  suspended  from  his  hand, 
they  said  to  each  other,  this  man  is  unquestionably  a  murderer,  whom, 
though  he  has  escaped  the  sea,  yet  vengeance  does  not  permit  to  live. 
Then  indeed,  he  shook  off  the  creature  into  the  fire,  and  suffered  no 
injury.  However,  they  expected  that  he  would  swell,  or  instantly  fall 
down  dead  ;  but  having  waited  a  long  time,  and  perceiving  that  he 
sustained  no  injury,  they  altered  their  opinion,  and  alleged  that  he  was 
a  God. 

And  in  the  vicinity  of  that  place,  was  the  estate  of  the  governor  of 
the  island,  whose  name  was  Publius  ;  who  received  us,  and  benevolently 
entertained  us  for  three  days.  Now  it  happened,  that  the  father  of  Pub- 
lius was  confined  with  a  fever,  and  a  hemorrhage ;  into  whose  house 
Paul  entered,  and  having  prayed,  put  his  hands  on  him,  and  healed  him. 
This,  therefore,  having  been  done,  even  the  rest  in  the  island,  who  had 
diseases,  came,  and  were  restored.  They  indeed,  bestowed  on  us  many 
presents  ;  and  when  we  departed,  they  put  on  board  such  thmgs  as  were 
requisite. 

Now,  after  three  months,  we  went  to  sea  in  an  Alexandrian  ship, 
which  had  wintered  at  the  island,  whose  figure-heads  were  the  Sons  of 
Jupiter.  So  we  landed  at  Syracuse,  and  remained  three  days  :  whence, 
coasting  round,  we  came  to  Rhegium  ;  and,  a  day  after,  a  south  wind 
sprang  up,  and  on  the  second  day  we  reached  Puteoli ;  where  we  found 
some  brethren,  and  were  solicited  to  continue  with  them  seven  days  : 
and  then  we  proceeded  towards  Rome  :  Whence  the  brethren,  ap- 
prised of  our  circumstances,  came  out  to  meet  us,  some,  as  far  as  Appii 
Forum,  and  others,  to  the  Three  Taverns  :  at  the  sight  of  whom  Paul 
thanked  God,  and  took  courage. 

And  when  we  came  to  Rome,  the  centurion  delivered  the  prisoners  to 
the  commander  of  the  emperor's  guards  ;  but  Paul  was  permitted  to 
reside  by  himself,  with  a  soldier,  who  guarded  him. 

Further,  it  occurred,  after  three  days,  that  Paul  called  together  the 
principal  men  among  the  Jews.  And  when  they  were  convened,  he 
said  to  them.  Brethren,  though  I  have  done  nothing  against  our  people, 
or  our  paternal  customs,  yet  I  was  delivered  a  prisoner  from  Jerusalem 
into  the  hands  of  the  Romans  ;  who,  having  examined  me,  were  dis- 
posed to  liberate  me,  since  it  was  found,  that  I  had  not  committed  any 
oiFence  that  deserved  death.  But  when  the  Jews  opposed  this,  I  was 
compelled  to  appeal  to  Cesar ;  not  as  having  any  thing  of  which  to  ac- 


236  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

cuse  my  own  nation.  For  this  reason,  therefore,  I  have  desired  to  see, 
and  converse  with  you  ;  since,  on  account  of  the  hope  of  Israel,  I  am 
bound  with  this  chain.  Then  they  said  to  him,  we  have  neither  receiv- 
ed letters  from  Judea  respecting  you,  nor  has  any  one  of  the  brethren 
that  arrived,  proclaimed  or  intimated  any  thing  to  your  injury.  But  we 
wish  to  learn  from  you  what  you  think,  for  indeed,  as  to  this  sect,  we 
know  that  it  is  every  where  reproached. 

Accordingly,  on  a  day  which  they  had  mutually  appointed,  many 
came  to  him  at  his  lodgings ;  to  whom  he  elucidated  and  testified  the 
kingdom  of  God,  endeavoring  to  persuade  them,  from  the  dawn  of  day 
till  evening,  of  the  things  that  relate  to  Jesus,  both  from  the  law  of 
Moses,  and  from  the  prophets.  And  some  were  convinced  by  his  words 
but  others  had  no  confidence.  Thus,  disagreeing  among  themselves, 
they  departed,  after  Paul  had  made  one  remark.  Justly  did  the  Holy 
Spirit  thus  announce  to  our  fathers  by  the  prophet  Isaiah,  Go  to  this 
people,  and  declare,  What  you  plainly  hear,  you  will  not  comprehend  ; 
and  what  you  clearly  see,  you  will  negligently  overlook :  for  the  heart 
of  this  -people  is  become  gross,  and  they  hear  heavily  with  their  ears, 
and  they  have  closed  their  eyes  ;  so  as  not  to  see  with  their  eyes,  nor 
hear  with  their  ears,  and  understand  with  their  heart,  and  retrace  their 
steps,  that  I  may  restore  them.  Be  it  therefore  known  to  you,  that  this 
salvation  of  God  is  sent  to  the  Gentiles,  and  that  they  will  attend  to  it. 
And  when  he  had  pronounced  these  words,  the  Jews  departed,  having 
much  discussion  among  themselves. 

Now  Paul  continued  two  whole  years  in  a  mansion  rented  by  him- 
self, and  received  all  who  came  to  him,  proclaiming  the  dominion  of 
God,  and  teaching  those  things  which  relate  to  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ, 
with  entire  freedom  of  speech,  and  without  interruption. 


THE  LETTER  OF  PAUL  TO  THE  ROMANS. 

Paul,  a  servant  of  Jesus  Christ,  constituted  an  apostle,  signally  as- 
signed to  announce  the  gospel  of  God,  (which  he  had  previously  pro- 
claimed by  his  prophets  in  the  sacred  scriptures),  relative  to  his  Son, 
(who  was  derived  from  the  posterity  of  David,  with  respect  to  his  natu- 
ral descent ;  but  incontestably  exhibited  as  the  Son  of  God,  with  energy, 
in  reference  to  the  Spirit  of  holiness,  by  his  resurrection  from  the  dead) ; 
Jesus  Christ  our  Lord,  through  whom  we  have  received  divine  favor 
and  apostolic  authority,  to  promote  obedience  to  the  faith  among  all 
nations,  on  account  of  his  name  ;  among  whom  are  you  also,  the  invited 
of  Jesus  Christ ;  to  all  who  are  at  Rome,  beloved  of  God,  called  and 
consecrated  ;  grace  be  to  you,  and  prosperity  from  God  our  Father,  and 
the  Lord  Jesus  Christ. 

Now,  in  the  first  place,  I  thank  my  God,  as  a  Christian,  in  behalf  of 
all  of  you,  because  your  faith  is  universally  celebrated.  For  God  is  my 
witness,  whom  I  serve  with  my  whole  heart,  in  dispensing  the  gospel  of 
his  Son,  how  incessantly  I  speak  concerning  you  ;  always  supplicating 
in  my  prayers,  that  I  may  visit  you  ;  if  by  any  means,  through  the  per- 
mission of  God,  I  may,  ultimately,  have  a  favorable  interview.  For  I 
ardently  wish  to  see  you,  that  I  may  impart  to  you  some  spiritual  gift, 
for  your  establishment ;  and  further,  that  I  may  be  consoled  among 
you,  by  our  reciprocal  faith.  However,  brethren,  I  desire  to  inform 
you,  that  I  have  frequently  intended  to  visit  you,  (but  have,  to  this 
period,  been  prevented),  that  I  might  also  have  some  fruit  among  you, 
even  as  among  the  other  nations.  My  duty  extends  both  to  the  Greeks 
and  the  Barbarians,  to  the  enlightened  as  well  as  the  unenlightened. 
Therefore,  to  the  extent  of  my  ability,  I  am  also  cordially  prepared  to 
announce  the  joyful  intelligence  even  to  you  who  are  at  Rome.  Indeed, 
I  am  not  ashamed  of  the  gospel ;  because  it  has  a  power  that  is  divine 
and  saving  to  every  believer ;  first  to  the  Jew,  and  then  to  the  Greek. 
For  therein,  God's  plan  of  pardoning  by  faith  those  who  believe,  is  re- 
vealed ;  according  to  which  the  scripture  declares.  The  pardoned  shall 
live  by  faith. 

Moreover,  the  displeasure  of  God  is  disclosed  from  heaven,  against  all 
impiety,  and  injustice  of  men,  who,  having  access  to  the  truth,  live  in 
sin.  Besides,  the  knowledge  of  God  is  manifest  among  them ;  since 
God  has  communicated  it  to  them.  For,  from  the  creation  of  the  world, 
his  invisible  attributes,  attentively  considered,  even  his  eternal  power 
and  divine  agency,  are  clearly  perceived  in  the  things  that  are  made  ; 
so  that  they  are  inexcusable.  Further,  when  they  knew  God,  they  did 
not  praise  him  as  God,  nor  were  gratefiil ;  but  they  became  delusive  in 
their  reasonings,  and  their  inconsiderate  heart  was  darkened.     Pretend- 


238  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

ing  to  be  wise,  they  became  foolish ;  and  substituted,  for  the  glory  of 
the  imperishable  God,  an  image  representing  perishable  man,  and  birds, 
and  quadrupeds,  and  reptiles.  And  therefore,  God  surrendered  them, 
through  the  desires  of  their  own  hearts,  after  impurity,  voluntarily  to 
dishonor  their  persons  among  each  other  ;  to  those,  I  refer,  who  had 
changed  the  true  God  for  a  false  one,  and  had  worshipped  and  served 
the  creature  rather  than  the  Creator,  who  is  eternally  praised.     Amen  ! 

In  consequence  of  this,  God  even  left  them  to  the  most  infamous  pas- 
sions ;  for  even  their  women,  reversing  the  appropriate  association,  de- 
scended to  unnatural  profligacy ;  and  in  like  manner,  the  men  also, 
leaving  the  natural  intercourse,  became  mutually  licentious,  and  familiar 
in  that  which  is  debased  ;  and  they  received  among  themselves  the  just 
retribution  of  their  misconduct. 

As  then,  they  did  not  search  to  retain  God  in  their  knowledge,  God 
abandoned  them,  according  to  their  regardless  mind,  to  do  things  most 
reprehensible ;  even  those,  who  were  filled  with  all  injustice,  inconti- 
nence, oppression,  avarice,  malignity  ;  who  were  full  of  envy,  murder, 
contention,  deception,  vicious  habits ;  who  were  secret  detractors,  open 
slanderers,  contemners  of  God,  violent,  proud,  arrogant,  projectors  of 
mischief,  disobedient  to  parents,  reckless,  perfidious,  without  natural 
afiection,  implacable,  devoid  of  compassion  ;  who,  apprised  of  God's 
rule  of  judgment,  that  they  who  commit  such  things,  are  punished  with 
death,  not  only  practise  them,  but  even  bestow  commendation  on  those 
that  perpetrate  them. 

You  are,  therefore,  without  apology,  O  man,  whoever  you  are  that 
judge  ;  for  in  what  you  censure  another,  you  condemn  yourself ;  be- 
cause you  who  pass  judgment,  are  chargeable  with  the  same  things.  We 
know,  however,  that  the  sentence  of  God  is  right,  against  those  who 
commit  such  things.  And  do  you  even  imagine,  O  man,  the  reprover 
of  those  who  practise  such  things,  while  you  are  personally  guilty  of  the 
same,  that  you  will  escape  the  divine  determination  ?  or  do  you  mis- 
apprehend his  abundant  kindness,  and  forbearance,  and  patience  ;  not 
reflecting  that  the  kindness  of  God  invites  you  to  reformation  1  In 
compliance  then,  with  your  perverseness  and  impenitence  of  heart,  you 
treasure  to  yourself  punishment,  in  the  day  of  vengeance,  and  manifes- 
tation of  the  righteous  decision  of  God,  who  will  render  to  every  one 
according  to  his  works  ;  (to  those  indeed,  who  by  perseverance  in  good 
conduct,  seek  for  glory,  and  honor,  and  immortality, — eternal  life  ;  but 
to  those  who  are  refractory,  and  disobedient  to  the  truth,  while  they  are 
obedient  to  iniquity,  —  displeasure  and  anger,  afiliction  and  distress  ; 
even  upon  every  individual  who  does  evil,  first  to  the  Jew,  and  then  to 
the  Greek ;  but  glory,  and  honor,  and  peace,  to  every  one  who  does 
good,  first  to  the  Jew,  and  then  to  the  Greek  :  since  there  is  no  par- 
tiality with  God. 

Moreover,  as  many  as  have  sinned  without  revelation,  will  also  perish 
without  being  judged  by  revelation ;  and  as  many  as  have  sinned  under 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  ROMANS.  239 

revelation,  will  be  tried  by  it ;  for  it  is  not  they  that  have  the  law  who 
will  be  acquitted  by  God,  but  those  who  obey  it  will  be  acquitted.  If 
the  Gentiles,  therefore,  who  have  no  revelation,  perform,  in  a  state  of 
nature,  the  requisitions  of  revelation,  these  persons,  though  they  are 
without  revelation,  have  a  rule  within  themselves.  They  plainly  show 
that  the  duty,  which  revelation  demands,  is  engraven  on  their  hearts  ; 
their  conscience  bearing  concurrent  testimony,  and  their  mutual  reason- 
ings alternately  appearing  in  accusation,  or  in  defence  :  [I  say,  every 
one  will  thus  be  requited],  at  the  period  when,  in  conformity  to  the  gos- 
pel which  I  proclaim,  God  will  judge  the  internal  dispositions  of  men, 
through  Jesus  Christ. 

If  now,  you  are  styled  a  Jew,  and  repose  in  the  law,  and  exult  in 
God,  and  know  his  will,  and  comprehend  the  discriminations,  being  in- 
structed from  the  scriptures ;  and  are  confident  that  you  are  personally 
a  guide  to  the  blind,  a  light  to  those  who  are  in  darkness,  an  instructer 
of  the  ignorant,  a  teacher  of  babes  ;  having  a  delineation  of  the  true 
knowledge  comprised  in  the  scriptures  ; — you,  then,  who  teach  another, 
do  you  not  instruct  yourself?  you  who  announce,  that  a  man  should  not 
steal,  do  you  steal  ?  you  who  prohibit  adultery,  do  you  commit  the  of- 
fence ?  you  who  abhor  idols,  do  you  perpetrate  sacrilege  1  you  who 
glory  in  the  law,  do  you,  through  infringement  of  the  law,  dishonor 
God  1  (Indeed,  the  name  of  God  is  by  your  means  reviled  among  the 
Gentiles,  as  the  scripture  testifies). 

Now  circumcision  assuredly  avails  thee,  if  thou  dost  obey  the  law  ; 
but  if  you  are  a  violator  of  the  law,  your  circumcision  has  become  un- 
circumcision.  If  therefore,  the  uncircumcision  submit  to  the  righteous 
institutes  of  the  law,  will  not  his  uncircumcision 'be  regarded  as  circum- 
cision 1  In  truth,  the  uncircumcision,  who,  in  a  state  of  nature,  obeys 
the  law,  condemns  thee,  who  art  circumcised  and  hast  a  revelation, 
when  thou  transgressest  the  law.  Certainly,  he  is  not  a  Jew,  who  is 
externally  one  ;  nor  is  circumcision  merely  external  :  but  he  is  a  Jew 
who  is  one  internally :  and  circumcision  relates  to  the  heart ;  it  is 
spiritual,  not  literal ;  not  that  which  is  praised  by  men,  but  approved 
by  God. 

What  then  is  the  pre-eminence  of  the  Jew,  or  what  the  benefit  of  the 
circumcision  ?  Important,  in  various  respects  ;  but  principally,  indeed, 
because  the  Jews  were  entrusted  with  the  oracles  of  God.  Moreover, 
what  if  some  have  not  believed  them  ?  Will  not  their  unbelief  invali- 
date the  fidelity  of  God  7  By  no  means.  Rather,  let  God  be  deemed 
faithfijl,  though  every  one  of  them  should  prove  faithless  :  even  as  the 
scripture  declares.  That  thou  mightst  be  vindicated  when  thou  speakest, 
and  prevail  when  thou  passest  sentence.  But  if  our  want  of  integrity 
enhance  the  integrity  of  God,  what  shall  we  say  ?  Is  not  God  unequi- 
table, if  he  inflict  punishment  1  (I  use  the  language  of  others).  Far 
from  it.  Otherwise,  how  will  God  judge  the  world  1  But,  if  the  faith- 
fulness of  God,  in  my  unfaithfulness,  has  been  enhanced  to  his  own 


340  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

praise,  why  am  I  also  still  summoned  to  judgment  as  a  sinner  1  And 
why  not  affirm,  (as  we  are  traduced,  and  as  some  who  justly  deserve 
judgment,  allege  that  we  maintain),  Let  us  absolutely  do  evil,  that  good 
may  come  ? 

What  then  1  have  we  then  any  precedence  1  No,  indeed ;  for  we 
have  amply  evinced,  both  as  to  Jews  and  Gentiles,  that  all  of  them  are 
sinners  :  as  the  scripture  asserts,  There  is  none  righteous,  not  even  one  ; 
there  is  none  that  understands  ;  there  is  none  that  seeks  God.  They 
have  all  deviated  ;  they  are  jointly  become  useless  ;  there  is  none  that 
does  good,  not  so  much  as  one.  Their  throat  is  an  open  sepulchre  ; 
they  have  practised  deceit  with  their  tongues  ;  the  venom  of  asps  is 
under  their  lips  ;  their  mouth  is  filled  with  cursing  and  bitterness ;  their 
feet  are  swift  to  shed  blood  ;  ruin  and  wretchedness  attend  their  steps  ; 
and  they  have  not  known  the  way  of  happiness  :  there  is  no  reverence 
for  God  before  their  eyes  ! 

Now  we  know,  that  what  revelation  announces,  it  declares  to  those 
who  are  under  revelation ;  so  that  every  mouth  is  silenced,  and  the 
whole  world  becomes  amenable  to  God.  Therefore,  by  obedience  to 
the  law,  no  human  being  will  be  accepted  before  him  ;  for  by  the  law 
we  come  to  the  knowledge  that  we  are  sinners. 

But  now,  God's  mode  of  acceptance  without  legal  obedience,  is  re- 
vealed, being  attested  by  the  law  and  the  prophets  ;  even  God's  plan  of 
remission  by  faith  in  Jesus  Christ,  published  to  all,  and  conferred  on 
all,  who  believe  ;  for  there  is  no  distinction,  since  all  have  sinned,  and 
deprived  themselves  of  that  approbation  which  God  bestows.  All  must 
then  be  forgiven,  freely  by  his  grace,  through  the  redemption  which 
Jesus  Christ  has  wrought,  whom  God  has  publicly  constituted  as  the 
means  of  conciliation,  (by  faith  in  his  blood),  to  exhibit  the  righteousness 
he  requires,  for  the  forgiveness,  through  the  divine  lenity,  of  sins  formerly 
committed ;  and  to  display  the  righteousness  required  by  him,  at  this 
present  time  ;  so  that  he  might  exercise  his  clemency,  and  pardon  him, 
who  beUeves  in  Jesus. 

Where  then  is  boasting  ?  It  is  excluded.  By  what  law i  That  which 
demands  perfect  obedience  1  No,  but  by  the  law  which  requires  faith ; 
for  we  have  come  to  the  conclusion,  that  man  is  pardoned  through  faith, 
and  not  by  legal  obedience.  Does  God  bestow  favor  on  the  Jews  only, 
and  not  likewise  on  the  Gentiles  1  Assuredly,  on  the  Gentiles  also : 
since  it  is  the  same  God,  who  will  acquit  through  faith  those  who  are 
circumcised,  and  through  faith  those  who  are  uncircumcised.  Do  we 
then  annul  the  scripture  by  the  doctrine  of  forgiveness  through  faith  1 
Not  at  all :  but,  we  establish  the  law. 

What  advantage  then  has  Abraham  our  natural  ancestor  1  [Great]. 
Certainly,  if  Abraham  were  pardoned  by  works,  he  had  a  ground  of 
exultation.  But  it  is  not  so  in  the  view  of  God.  For  what  says  the 
scripture  ?  Abraham  believed  in  God,  and  it  was  ascribed  to  him  for 
pardon.     Now  to  him  who  performs  what  the  law  requires,  the  reward 


PAUL'S    LETTER    TO    THE    ROMANS.  241 

is  not  regarded  as  a  favor,  but  as  an  obligation ;  yet,  to  him  who  does 
not  perform  it,  but  confides  in  him  that  forgives  the  sinner,  his  faith  is 
estimated  for  his  acquittal. 

In  the  very  same  manner  David  describes  the  felicity  of  th«  man,  to 
whom  God  attributes  forgiveness  without  the  works  which  the  law 
requires.  Happy,  says  he,  are  they  whose  transgressions  are  forgiven, 
and  whose  sins  are  covered.  Happy  is  the  man  to  whom  the  Lord  does 
not  ascribe  iniquity. 

Is  this  happiness  then,  applicable  only  to  the  circumcised,  or  also  to 
the  uncircumcised  ?  since  we  affirm  that  faith  was  considered  to  Abra- 
ham in  reference  to  his  acceptance. 

How  was  it  thus  considered  ?  when  he  was  in  circumcision,  or  in 
uncircumcision  ?  Not  after,  but  before  circumcision  ;  for  he  received 
the  symbol  of  circumcision,  as  a  proof  of  the  forgiveness  through  faith, 
which  he  obtained  in  an  uncircumcised  condition ;  so  that  he  might 
become  the  father  of  all  those  who  believe,  though  in  a  state  of  uncir- 
cumcision, and  that  pardon  might  also  be  extended  to  them ;  and  more- 
over, that  he  might  be  the  father  of  those  who  are  circumcised,  (I  do  not 
speak  of  mere  external  circumcision,  but  of  those),  who  walk  in  the 
footsteps  of  our  father  Abraham,  who  believed  while  in  an  uncircumcised 
state. 

Now  the  promise  was  not  made,  on  account  of  legal  obedience,  to 
Abraham  and  to  his  offspring,  that  he  should  possess  the  land,  but  in 
consequence  of  acceptance  through  faith.  For  if  those  only  who  obey 
the  law,  are  proprietors,  faith  is  rendered  useless,  and  the  promise  abro- 
gated ;  because  the  law  inflicts  punishment ;  for  where  no  law  exists, 
there  is  no  transgression.  Therefore,  the  promise  was  made  through 
faith,  gratuitously,  that  it  might  be  sure  to  all  the  posterity ;  not  to  those 
only  who  obey  the  law,  [not  to  the  Jews  only],  but  also  to  those  who 
imitate  the  faith  of  Abraham,  who  is  the  father  of  us  ail,  (answering 
to  the  scripture,  I  have  truly  constituted  thee  a  father  of  numerous 
nations);  in  the  presence  of  that  God,  in  whom  he  believed,  who  gives 
life  to  the  dead,  and  who  speaks  of  those  things,  which  do  not  exist,  as 
if  they  actually  existed. 

Abraham,  apparently  devoid  of  hope,  confidently  trusted,  that  he 
should  be  the  father  of  many  nations,  agreeably  to  the  assurance.  Thus 
shall  be  thy  posterity.  Further,  being  strong  in  the  faith,  he  did  not 
advert  to  his  own  body  already  imbecile,  (as  he  was  about  a  hundred 
years  old),  nor  to  the  sterility  of  Sarah ;  nor  did  he  at  all  discredit  the 
promise  of  God  through  distrust,  but  was  fortified  by  faith,  presenting 
praise  to  God ;  indeed,  he  was  fully  convinced,  that  what  he  had  pro- 
mised, he  was  able  certainly  to  perform.  And  his  feith  was  therefore 
ascribed  to  him  for  pardon. 

This  was  not  however  recorded,  that  with  regard  exclusively  to  him- 
self, faith  was  thus  ascribed  to  him  ;   but  in  relation  to  us,  to  whom  it 

31 


242  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS, 

will  also  be  ascribed,  if  we  confide  in  him  that  raised  our  Lord  Jesus 
from  the  dead ;  who  was  surrendered  on  account  of  our  offences,  and 
was  raised  to  life  for  our  forgiveness. 

Being  therefore  pardoned  by  faith,  we  have  peace  with  God,  through 
our  Lord  Jesus  Christ ;  and  by  trusting  in  him,  have  been  introduced  to 
the  state  of  favor  in  which  we  stand,  and  exult  in  the  prospect  of  that 
happiness  which  God  bestows. 

And  not  only  so,  but  we  also  triumph  in  afflictions  ;  knowing  that 
affliction,  produces  patience ;  and  patience,  approval ;  and  approval, 
hope;  and  hope  will  not  disappoint  us,  because  the  love  of  God  is 
diffused  in  our  hearts  by  the  Holy  Spirit,  which  is  imparted  to  us.  For 
when  we  were  yet  weak,  Christ,  at  an  appropriate  period,  died  for  the 
iniquitous.  Now  scarcely  would  any  one  die  for  a  strictly  just  man ; 
though,  for  an  eminently  beneficent  man,  some  one,  perhaps,  might 
venture  to  die.  But  God  has  displayed  his  love  towards  us,  in  that, 
while  we  were  in  a  state  of  sin,  Christ  died  for  us.  How  much  more 
then,  being  pardoned  by  his  blood,  shall  we  be  saved  through  him  from 
punishment.  For  if,  when  we  were  in  a  state  of  enmity,  we  were  recon- 
ciled to  God  by  the  death  of  his  Son,  how  much  more,  after  that  we  are 
reconciled,  shall  we  be  saved  by  his  life  1 

And  not  only  [do  we  rejoice  in  afflictions],  but  we  also  glory  in  God, 
through  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  by  whom  we  have  now  been  reconciled. 

Moreover,  as  by  one  man  sin  entered  the  world,  and  death  by  sin ; 
and  as  death  came  upon  all  men,  since  all  have  sinned :  [so  by  the  obe- 
dience of  one,  all  may  be  pardoned].  For  till  the  Mosaic  law  was 
given,  sin  was  in  the  world  ;  (though  sin  is  not  ascribed,  where  there  is 
no  law).  Indeed,  death  reigned  from  Adam  to  Moses,  even  over  those 
who  had  not  sinned  after  the  manner  in  which  Adam  transgressed;  who 
possess  a  resemblance  to  him  that  was  to  come.  Still,  this  is  not  such, 
as  that  the  offence  of  the  one  can  be  compared  with  the  beneficence  of 
the  other  ;  for  if  through  the  offence  of  one,  many  were  subject  to  death, 
how  much  more  shall  the  grace  of  God,  and  the  gift,  through  the  favor 
of  one  man,  Jesus  Christ,  abound  to  the  many.  I  say,  again,  that  the 
one  who  sinned,  cannot,  in  respect  to  the  offence,  be  compared  with  him 
who  exercised  his  beneficence ;  for  the  sentence  of  condemnation  had 
respect  to  one  offence ;  but  beneficence  procured  pardon  for  many 
offences.  For  if,  by  the  transgression  of  one  man,  death  reigned  through 
one  offence,  much  more  will  those,  who  receive  abundant  grace  and 
gratuitous  forgiveness,  reign  in  life  through  the  one,  even  Jesus  Christ. 

To  proceed  then  ;  as  by  the  offence  of  one,  all  men  incurred  condem- 
nation ;  so  by  the  righteousness  of  one,  all  men  attained  to  a  life-giving 
remission.  For  if  by  the  disobedience  of  one  man,  many  became  sin- 
ners, so  by  the  obedience  of  one,  many  will  become  righteous. 

Now  the  Mosaic  law  interposed,  so  that  offences  abounded  ;  however, 
where  sin  abounded,  grace  superabounded  ;    so  that  as  sin  reigned  by 


PAUL'S    LKTTER    TO    THE    ROMANS.  843 

death,  in  like  manner,  grace,  through  Jesus  Christ  our  Lord,  must  reign 
by  pardon,  to  eternal  life. 

What,  therefore,  shall  we  infer  7  Shall  we  continue  in  sin,  that  divine 
favor  may  abound  1  Let  it  not  be;  for  how  shall  we,  who  are  dead  to 
sin,  live  any  longer  in  it  1  Do  you  not  know,  that  whoever  of  us  have 
been  baptized  into  Jesus  Christ,  have  been  baptized  into  his  death? 
Therefore,  we  have  been  buried  with  him  through  baptism  into  his 
death  ;  so  that,  as  Chi-ist  was  raised  from  the  dead  by  the  power  of  the 
Father,  in  like  manner  we  also  must  lead  a  new  life.  For  if  we  have 
been  intimately  united  in  the  likeness  of  his  death,  we  ought  also  to  be, 
in  that  of  his  restoration  to  life.  We  cannot  but  acknowledge,  that  our 
old  man  is  crucified  with  him,  that  this  sinful  body  may  be  deprived  of 
its  power  :  so  that  we  may  no  longer  be  enslaved  to  sin.  For  he  who  is 
dead  [to  sin],  is  emancipated  from  sin.  Now,  if  we  have  died  with 
Christ,  we  believe  that  we  shall  also  live  with  him  :  For  we  know  that 
Christ,  being  risen  from  the  dead,  dies  no  more ;  death  has  no  further 
power  over  him;  because,  so  far  as  respects  his  death,  he  died  for  sin 
once  for  all ;  but  so  far  as  respects  his  life,  he  lives  to  God.  Thus  also, 
you  should  regard  yourselves  dead  indeed  to  sin,  but  alive  to  God,  with 
Jesus  Christ  our  Lord. 

Let  not  sin  reign,  then,  in  your  mortal  body,  so  as  to  obey  its  inor- 
dinate desires ;  nor  proffer  your  members  to  sin,  as  instruments  of 
iniquity ;  but  present  yourselves  to  God,  as  alive  from  the  dead,  and 
devote  your  members  to  God,  as  instruments  of  righteousness.  For  sin 
must  not  rule  over  you,  though  you  are  not  under  the  law,  but  under 
grace. 

I  ask  again ;  Shall  we  then  sin,  because  we  are  not  under  the  law, 
but  under  grace  ?  By  no  means.  Do  you  not  know,  that  to  whom  you 
give  up  yourselves  as  obedient  servants,  the  servants  of  him  you  are 
whom  you  obey ;  whether  you  are  the  servants  of  sin  to  your  own 
destruction,  or  the  servants  of  righteousness  to  your  preservation  1  But 
praise  be  to  God,  that  though  you  were  once  the  servants  of  sin,  yet  you 
have  heartily  conformed  to  the  outUne  of  doctrine  in  which  you  have 
been  instructed.  Having  been  freed  also  from  sin,  you  have  become 
the  servants  of  righteousness.  I  speak  in  the  common  language  of  men, 
on  account  of  your  weakness :  and  I  add,  that  as  you  formerly  devoted 
your  members  to  impurity  and  iniquity,  as  their  servants  for  committing 
iruquity ;  so  you  must  now  devote  your  members  to  righteousness  as  its 
servants,  to  perform  that  which  is  holy.  For  when  you  were  the  ser- 
vants of  sin,  you  were  not  obedient  to  righteousness.  What  fruit  then, 
did  you  derive  from  those  things  of  which  you  are  now  ashamed  ? 
Surely,  the  result  of  those  things  is  death.  But  now,  having  been  Ube- 
rated  from  sin,  you  have  become  servants  to  God,  —  you  have  your  fruit 
in  respect  to  holiness,  which,  in  the  end,  will  indeed  result  in  eternal  life. 
For,  the  retribution  of  sin  is  death  ;  but  the  free  gift  of  God  is  eternal 
life,  through  Jesus  Christ  our  Lord. 


244  APOSTOLIC    PRODUCTIONS. 

Do  you  not  know,  brethren,  (for  I  speak  to  those  who  have  the  know- 
ledge of  the  law),  that  the  law  controls  a  man  only  so  long  as  he  lives. 
For  example,  the  married  woman  is  bound  by  the  law  to  her  husband 
while  he  is  alive ;  but  if  the  husband  die,  she  is  released  from  her  con- 
jugal obligations.  It  follows  then,  that  if  she  be  married  to  another 
man,  while  her  husband  is  living,  she  must  be  regarded  as  an  adulteress  : 
but  if  her  husband  be  dead,  she  is  liberated  from  her  obligation  to 
him ;  so  that  she  will  not  be  an  adulteress  by  marrying  another  hus- 
band. 

In  like  manner,  you,  my  brethren,  having  become  dead  to  the  law 
through  the  death  of  Christ,  are  united  to  another,  that  is,  to  him  who 
was  raised  from  the  dead,  in  order  that  we  may  produce  fruits  to  the 
praise  of  God.  For,  when  we  were  in  the  animal  state,  our  sinful  pas- 
sions, which  were  defined  by  the  law,  powerfiilly  operated,  in  our  phy- 
sical constitutions,  to  produce  fruits  terminating  in  death.  But  now, 
since  we  have  died  [to  sin],  we  have  become  free  from  the  law  by  which 
we  were  bound ;  so  that  we  must  perform  our  services  to  God,  in  a 
new,  spiritual  manner,  and  not  in  the  old,  literal  one. 

What  then  shall  we  afiirm  ?  that  the  law  produces  sin  ?  By  no 
means.  Yet,  I  should  not  have  been  acquainted  with  sin,  except 
through  the  law :  for  I  should  not  have  even  known  violent  passion  to 
be  sinful,  if  the  law  had  not  announced,  Thou  shalt  not  cherish  it. 
Then  sin,  taking  opportunity  under  this  commandment,  effectually 
wrought  in  me  every  irregular  desire  :  because,  aside  from  the  law,  sin 
was  powerless.  For  once,  when  without  a  knowledge  of  the  law,  I  was 
alive ;  but,  when  I  was  apprised  of  the  commandment,  sin  became  pow- 
erful, and  I  died.  Thus,  the  same  commandment,  which  was  given  to 
acquire  life,  was  found  by  me  to  end  in  death.  For  sin,  taking  advan- 
tage on  account  of  the  commandment,  deceived  me,  and  through  it 
brought  me  into  condemnation.  Still,  the  law  is  assuredly  holy ;  and 
the  commandment  holy,  and  just,  and  good. 

Was  then  that  which  was  good  rendered  fatal  to  me  1  Not  at  all : 
but  sin,  that  its  true  nature  might  appear,  through  that  which  in  itself 
was  good,  destroyed  me  ;  so  that  by  the  commandment,  the  exceeding 
malignity  of  sin  became  apparent.  Moreover,  we  know  that  the  law  is 
spiritual,  but  I  am  sensual,  a  slave  to  sin.  For  I  effectually  perform 
that  which  I  do  not  approve  ;  and  practise  not  what  I  prefer.  Indeed, 
even  the  very  things  which  I  hate,  I  commit.  If,  however,  I  do  that 
which  I  disapprove,  I  concede  that  the  law  is  good.  Yet  now,  it  is  no 
longer  I  who  practise  this,  but  sin  which  dwells  in  me.  I  know  truly 
that  in  me,  that  is,  in  my  animal  nature,  no  good  resides.  To  will  that 
which  is  excellent  is  certainly  easy  for  me,  but  to  achieve  it  I  find  difii- 
cult.  For  I  do  not  perform  the  good  which  I  desire  ;  but  I  pursue  the 
evil  which  I  disapprove.  If  now,  I  do  that  which  I  disapprove,  it  is  no 
longer  I  who  accomphsh  it,  but  sin  that  dwells  in  me.  I  discover  then 
this  tendency,  that  when  I  am  inclined  to  do  good,  evil  is  presented  to 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  ROMANS.  245 

me.  For,  as  to  the  conscience,  I  entirely  concur  with  the  law  of  God  ; 
but  I  perceive  another  propensity  in  my  system,  violently  contending 
against  my  intellectual  principle,  and  reducing  me  as  a  captive  to  the 
agency  of  sin,  which  is  in  my  constitution.  Wretched  man  that  I  am  ! 
Who  shall  preserve  me  from  the  deadly  influence  of  this  body  T  1  thank 
God,  who  preserves  me,  through  Jesus  Christ  our  Lord.  It  follows 
then,  that  my  internal  man  yields  subjection  to  the  law  of  God ;  but  my 
external  man,  to  the  dominion  of  sin. 

But  now,  there  is  no  condemnation  to  those  who  are  in  Christ  Jesus  ; 
since,  the  law  of  spiritual  life  through  Jesus  Christ,  has  emancipated  us 
from  the  authority  of  sin  and  of  death.  For  what  the  law  could  not 
accomplish,  (since  our  animal  desires  rendered  it  inefiicacious),  God, 
sending  his  own  Son  in  the  likeness  of  that  flesh  whereby  we  had  sinned, 
accomplished ;  and  on  account  of  sin,  he  destroyed  the  power  of  sin  in 
our  flesh  ;  so  that  the  obedience,  which  the  law  requires,  might  be  ren- 
dered by  us,  who  walk  not  according  to  the  desires  of  the  flesh,  but  of 
the  Spirit.  Now,  those  who  live  in  compliance  with  the  flesh,  relish  the 
things  of  the  flesh  ;  but  those  who  live  in  conformity  to  the  Spirit,  the 
things  of  the  Spirit.  For  the  desires  of  the  flesh  lead  to  death  ;  but  the 
desires  of  the  Spirit  to  life  and  happiness  :  because  the  desires  of  the 
flesh  are  at  enmity  with  God  ;  and  are  not  subjected  to  his  law,  nor  in- 
deed can  they  be.  Therefore,  they  who  live  in  a  sensual  state,  cannot 
please  God.  However,  you  live  not  in  a  sensual,  but  in  a  spiritual 
state,  because  the  Spirit  of  God  dwells  in  you.  But  if  any  one  possess 
not  the  Spirit  of  Christ,  he  is  none  of  his.  Now,  if  Christ  dwell  in  you, 
the  body  is  indeed  dead  as  to  sin  ;  but  the  Spirit  is  alive  as  to  righte- 
ousness. But  if  the  Spirit  of  him,  who  raised  Jesus  from  the  dead, 
dwell  in  you,  he,  who  raised  Christ  from  the  dead,  will  also  impart  life 
to  your  bodies,  which  are  dead,  [on  account  of  sin],  by  his  Spirit  which 
dwells  in  you. 

Therefore,  brethren,  we  are  no  longer  constrained  by  our  sensual 
part,  to  live  according  to  the  flesh  :  for  if  you  live  according  to  the  flesh, 
you  must  die  ;  but  if,  through  the  spiritual  part,  you  put  to  death  your 
sensual  inclinations  to  do  evil,  you  shall  live.  Now,  as  many  of  us,  as 
are  conducted  by  the  Spirit  of  God,  are  the  sons  of  God.  For  you  have 
not  received  a  servile  spirit,  that  you  should  again  be  in  fear  ;  but  you 
have  received  the  Spirit  of  a  filial  relation,  by  which  we  address  God 
with  the  title  of  Father  !  The  same  Spirit  gives  concurrent  evidence  to 
our  minds,  that  we  are  children  of  God.  But  if  children,  then  we  are 
heirs  ;  indeed,  inheritors  of  God,  and  joint  inheritors  with  Christ ;  pro- 
vided, we  so  endure  suffering  with  him,  that  we  may  be  advanced  to 
glory  with  him. 

Moreover,  I  regard  the  sufferings  of  our  present  state,  as  unworthy 
of  comparison  with  the  happiness,  which  is  hereafter  to  be  revealed  to 
us.  All  mankind  appear,  indeed,  to  be  anxiously  anticipating  a  dis- 
closure of  [the  glory]  that  awaits  the  children  of  God.     (For  men  were 


246  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

subject,  not  of  their  own  choice,  to  a  frail,  dying  state,  but  by  him  to 
whom  all  things  are  subjected  ;  yet  still,  with  the  hope,  that  they  who 
are  thus  made  subject,  may  be  liberated  from  the  bondage  of  their  pre- 
sent condition,  so  as  to  obtain  the  happy  freedom  of  the  children  of 
God).  We  know  truly,  that  all  men  have  groaned  under  sorrow  till 
the  present  time  ;  and  not  only  so,  but  even  we  ourselves,  who  enjoy 
the  invaluable  gifts  of  the  Spirit,  we  too  groan  within  ourselves,  waiting 
for  the  fruit  of  our  filial  relation,  that  is,  redemption  from  our  bodily 
state.  It  is  by  this  hope  then,  that  we  are  now  sustained  ;  since  a  hope, 
which  is  realized,  is  no  longer  hope  ;  for  what  a  man  enjoys,  how  does 
he  any  longer  hope  for  it  ?  But  if  we  hope  for  that  which  we  do  not 
yet  possess,  we  wait  for  it  with  patience. 

In  like  manner,  also,  the  Spiiit  supports  us  against  our  infirmities  ; 
for  when  we  are  in  doubt  as  to  what  we  should  pray  for,  this  Spirit 
strongly  intercedes  for  us  with  aspirations,  that  cannot  be  expressed. 
But  he,  who  explores  the  hearts,  knows  what  is  the  desire  of  this  Spirit, 
when  it  thus  intercedes  with  God,  in  behalf  of  the  saints. 

We  are  also  conscious,  that  all  things  co-operate  for  the  good  of  those 
who  love  God,  who  are  invited  according  to  his  benevolent  purpose. 
For  those,  whom  he  formerly  acknowledged,  he  also  before  designed  to 
be  conformed  to  the  representation  of  his  Son,  that  he  might  be  the 
first-born  among  many  brethren  ;  and  those,  whom  he  previously  in- 
tended, he  has  also  invited  ;  and  those,  whom  he  has  invited,  he  has 
also  pardoned  ;  and  those,  whom  he  has  pardoned,  he  has  also  advanced 
to  glory. 

What  shall  we  say,  then,  concerning  these  things  ?  Since  God  is  for 
us,  who  can  be  against  us  7  He  who  did  not  spare  his  own  Son,  but 
freely  gave  him  up  for  all  of  us,  why  will  he  not,  with  the  gift  of  him, 
even  liberally  bestow  upon  us  all  things  1  Who  will  allege  any  thing 
against  those  whom  God  has  chosen  ?  It  is  God  who  pardons  ;  who 
will  condemn  1  It  is  Christ  who  died  [for  us]  ;  I  should  rather  say, 
rose  from  the  dead  :  it  is  he  who  sits  at  the  right  hand  of  God ;  it  is  he 
who  intercedes  also  for  us  1  Who  will  withdraw  us  from  the  love  of 
Christ  ■?  Will  affliction,  or  difficulty,  or  oppression,  or  famine,  or  nak- 
edness, or  danger,  or  destruction  ?  (The  scripture  applies  ;  For  thy 
sake  we  are  continually  exposed  to  death  ;  we  are  regarded  as  sheep 
for  the  slaughter).  Indeed,  over  all  these  things  we  more  than  conquer, 
through  him  who  has  loved  us.  For,  I  am  persuaded,  that  neither  death 
nor  life,  neither  angels  nor  principalities,  neither  things  present  nor 
future,  nor  powers,  neither  height  nor  depth,  nor  any  other  created 
object,  will  be  able  to  separate  us  from  the  love  of  God,  which  is  be- 
stowed on  us,  through  Christ  Jesus  our  Lord. 

Christ  is  my  witness,  that  I  speak  the  truth  ;  the  Holy  Spirit  is  my 
witness,  and  also  my  own  conscience,  that  I  do  not  utter  falsehood, 
when  I  say,  that  I  have  great  sorrow  and  incessant  anguish  of  heart, 
(since  I  also  wished  myself  separated  from  Christ),  for  my  brethren. 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  ROMANS.  847 

my  relatives  according  to  the  flesh  ;  who  are  IsraeUtes  ;  to  whom  be- 
longs the  title  of  sons,  and  the  divine  glory,  and  the  covenants,  and  the 
rites  of  service,  and  the  promises,  and  the  giving  of  the  law  ;  whose  are 
the  patriarchs  ;  and  from  whom,  Christ  [proceeded]  in  reference  to  the 
flesh,  who  is  over  all,  God  perpetually  praised.     Amen. 

Now  it  is  impossible,  that  the  promise  of  God  [respecting  the  poster- 
ity of  Abraham]  should  be  rendered  void.  For  not  all,  who  are  lineal 
descendants  of  Israel,  are  true  Israelites ;  neither  are  all  the  posterity 
of  Abraham  children  of  the  promise  ;  for  it  is  written,  From  Isaac  shall 
thy  posterity  descend  ;  that  is,  not  the  children,  by  natural  descent,  are 
the  ofispring  of  God  :  but  the  children  of  the  promise  are  regarded  as 
the  descendants.  For  this  was  the  tenor  of  the  promise.  At  such  a  time 
I  will  return,  and  Sarah  shall  have  a  son. 

And  not  only  the  case  of  Sarah,  but  that  of  Rebecca  also,  proves  the 
same  thing,  who  had  children  by  one,  and  the  same  person,  namely,  our 
father  Isaac.  For  before  the  children  were  born,  and  when  they  had 
done  neither  good  nor  evil,  that  the  purpose  of  God  might  be  accom- 
plished, and  this  gratuitously,  not  as  a  claim,  but  by  his  choice,  it  was 
announced  to  her,  that  the  superior  shall  be  subject  to  the  inferior  ; 
which  accords  with  another  passage,  I  have  preferred  Jacob  to  Esau. 

What  shall  we  say  then  1  not,  that  there  is  injustice  with  God  !  Far 
from  it.  Moreover,  he  declares  to  Moses,  On  whom  I  please  I  will 
bestow  mercy ;  and  to  whom  I  am  disposed  I  will  show  compassion. 
Consequently,  preference  depends  not  on  the  will,  or  eager  desires  of 
men,  but  on  the  mercy  of  God.  Further,  the  scripture  says  to  Pharaoh, 
For  this  particular  cause  I  have  preserved  you,  that  I  may  display  my 
power  by  you,  and  that  my  name  may  be  promulgated  through  all  the 
earth.  It  follows  then,  that  he  does  show  mercy  on  whom  he  inclines  ; 
and  whom  he  pleases  he  leaves  to  be  hardened. 

You  will,  however,  say  to  me,  Why  does  he  still  find  fault  1  For 
who  has  resisted  his  will  1  Rather,  let  me  ask.  Who  are  you,  O  man, 
that  conflict  with  God  1  Shall  the  thing  made,  say  to  the  maker,  why 
hast  thou  thus  formed  me  1  Has  not  the  potter  power  over  the  clay,  to 
make,  from  the  same  mass,  one  vessel  for  an  extraordinary  use,  and 
another  for  an  ordinary  one  ?  And  if  God,  designing  to  exhibit  his  in- 
dignation against  sin,  and  to  make  known  his  great  power,  has  yet  en- 
dured with  much  forbearance  the  vessels  of  displeasure  tending  to  de- 
struction ;  and  if  he  makes  known  his  abundant  glory  which  he  bestows 
on  the  vessels  of  mercy,  who  were  previously  prepared  for  glory ;  [who 
can  reply  against  him.] 

Such  he  has  chosen  us  to  be,  who  belong  not  only  to  the  Jews,  but 
also  to  the  Gentiles.  Even  as  it  is  said  in  Hosea,  I  will  call  those  my 
people,  who  were  not  my  people  ;  and  her  beloved,  who  was  not  be- 
loved :  and  it  shall  occcur,  that  in  the  place  where  it  was  declared  to 
them.  You  are  not  my  people,  there,  they  shall  be  denominated  sons  of 
the  Uving  God. 


248  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

Isaiah  also  exclaims  respecting  Israel,  If  the  number  of  the  children 
of  Israel  were  as  the  sand  of  the  sea,  a  residue  only  shall  be  preserved. 
For  he  will  speedily  accomplish  the  object,  with  integrity ;  indeed,  the 
Lord  will  make  a  brief  work  in  the  land.  And,  as  Isaiah  has  previously 
said.  Unless  the  Lord  of  Hosts  had  Jeft  us  a  lineage,  we  should  have  be- 
come like  Sodom,  and  been  assimilated  to  Gomorrah. 

What  shall  we  then  infer  1  it  is  this,  —  That  the  Gentiles,  who  sought 
not  after  that  pardon  which  is  through  faith,  have  obtained  that  pardon 
which  is  through  faith  :  but  that  Israel,  who  sought  pardon  by  the  law, 
have  not  attained  to  it.  Why  1  because  they  sought  it  not  through  faith, 
but  by  the  works  of  the  law  :  for  they  have  struck  against  that  stone  of 
offence,  according  to  the  words  of  scripture  ;  Behold,  I  lay  in  Zion  a 
stone  of  stumbling,  and  a  rock  of  offence  ;  and  yet,  none  of  those  who 
confide  in  him,  shall  be  confounded. 

Assuredly,  Brethren,  the  disinterested  desire  of  my  heart,  and  my 
supplication  before  God,  are  in  behalf  of  them,  that  they  may  be  saved. 
For  I  testify  to  them,  that  they  have  a  zeal  for  religion,  though  not  an 
enhghtened  one  :  since,  they  are  ignorant  of  God's  plan  of  forgiveness, 
and  are  endeavoring  to  establish  their  own ;  and  thus,  have  not  submitted 
to  the  plan  of  forgiveness  instituted  by  God  ;  though  Christ  answered 
the  end  of  the  law,  for  remission  to  every  beUever. 

Moses  thus  dehneates  the  acceptance,  which  is  by  the  law,  That  the 
man  who  performs  these  things,  shall  live  by  them.  But  the  language 
of  acceptance  through  faith  is  this.  Say  not  in  thy  heart,  who  will  ascend 
to  heaven  1  that  is,  to  bring  down  Christ ;  nor,  who  will  descend  to  the 
world  beneath  ?  that  is,  to  bring  up  Christ  from  the  dead.  But  what 
does  it  aflSrm  7  The  duty  is  near  thee,  (even  in  thy  mouth,  and  in  thy 
heart),  the  very  obligation  of  faith,  which  we  announce  ;  namely,  that 
if  with  thy  mouth  thou  wilt  profess  Jesus  as  the  Lord,  and  in  thy  heart 
believe  that  God  has  raised  him  from  the  dead,  thou  shalt  be  saved : 
since,  with  the  heart  faith  exists  to  acceptance,  and  with  the  mouth  pro- 
fession is  made  to  salvation.  Thus  the  scripture  asserts.  None  who  trust 
in  him  will  be  disappointed. 

I  may  add,  that  there  is  no  distinction  between  the  Jew  and  the  Greek ; 
for  all  have  the  same  Lord  abounding  in  mercy  towards  all  who  call  upon 
him.     For,  whoever  invokes  the  name  of  the  Lord,  he  will  be  saved. 

But,  how  can  they  call  on  him,  in  whom  they  have  not  believed  1  and 
how  can  they  believe  in  him,  of  whom  they  have  not  heard  ?  and  how 
can  they  hear,  unless  some  one  proclaim  the  pleasant  message  ?  and 
how  can  men  proclaim  it,  unless  they  are  sent  1 

Such  are  thus  described ;  How  beautiful  are  the  feet  of  the  heralds  of 
peace,  who  proclaim  the  joyful  intelligence  of  good  things  !  But  I  re- 
ply, All  the  hearers  of  the  message  have  not  obeyed  ;  for  Isaiah  says. 
Lord,  who  has  believed  our  proclamation  1 

You  admit  then,  that  report  is  requisite  to  belief?  and  that  report 
must  be  made  by  a  proclamation  of  the  word  of  God  ?     But  granting 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  ROMANS.  249 

this,  I  answer.  Has  not  report  been  made  1  Yes,  indeed.  Their  voice 
has  gone  out  to  all  the  earth,  and  their  words  to  the  bounds  of  the  habit- 
able world. 

I  say  still  further,  does  not  Israel  know  this  [abundant  mercy  of  God]  1 
First,  Moses  declares,  I  will  incite  your  jealousy  by  those  who  are  a 
despised  people  ;  and  by  a  nation  void  of  understanding  I  will  exaspe- 
rate you.  But  Isaiah  exhibits  great  confidence,  and  affirms,  I  was  found 
by  those,  who  did  not  seek  me  ;  I  was  discovered  by  those,  who  did  not 
inquire  for  me.  Whereas,  he  remarks,  respecting  Israel,  I  have  all  the 
day  extended  my  hands  to  a  faithless  and  rebellious  people. 

I  ask  then,  has  God  rejected  his  own  people  ?  By  no  means.  For  I 
myself  am  an  Israelite  ;  of  the  race  of  Abraham,  of  the  tribe  of  Benja- 
min. God  has  not  discarded  his  people,  whom  he  so  long  acknowledg- 
ed. Do  you  not  know  what  the  scripture  declares,  in  the  history  of 
Elijah  1  how  he  thus  pleads  with  God  against  Israel,  Lord,  they  have 
destroyed  thy  prophets,  and  demolished  thy  altars  ;  and  I  am  left  soli- 
tary, and  they  seek  my  life.  But  what  does  the  divine  answer  disclose 
to  him  1  I  have  reserved  to  myself  seven  thousand  men,  who  have  not 
bent  a  knee  to  Baal.  And  likewise,  even  at  the  present  period,  a  part 
is  left,  according  to  a  favorable  designation.  But  if  by  favour,  then  not 
from  works  ;  else,  this  were  no  longer  a  favour. 

What  follows  then  ?  That  Israel  have  not  obtained  that  which  they 
earnestly  desired.  The  chosen,  however,  have  obtained  it,  but  the  rest 
are  blinded.  It  is  thus  written,  God  has  left  to  them  a  spirit  of  deep 
slumber,  — eyes,  so  that  they  do  not  see,  and  ears,  so  that  they  do  not 
hear,  even  to  this  very  day.  And  David  has  said.  Their  table  will  be- 
come a  snare  and  a  trap,  and  an  offence,  and  a  recompense  to  them. 
Their  eyes  will  be  darkened,  so  as  not  to  see  ;  and  their  backs  will  be 
perpetually  bowed  down. 

I  ask  then,  have  they  stumbled  to  their  ruin  ?  certainly  not.  But, 
salvation  to  the  Gentiles  has  attended  their  defection,  to  excite  them  to 
emulation.  Now,  if  their  fall  has  reference  to  the  great  advantage  of 
the  world,  and  their  decay,  to  the  great  accession  of  the  Gentiles  ;  how 
much  more,  their  fullness  7  Further,  I  address  this  to  you  the  Gentiles  ; 
(for  as  I  am  truly  an  apostle  of  the  Gentiles,  I  respect  my  office)  ;  so 
that,  if  possible,  I  may  awaken  my  countrymen  to  emulation,  and  may 
save  some  of  them. 

If,  now,  the  rejection  of  them  be  the  reconciliation  of  the  world,  what 
will  the  restoration  of  them  be,  but  life  from  the  dead  1  If  the  first- 
fruits,  moreover,  were  consecrated,  so  will  the  mass  be  ;  and  if  the  root 
was  consecrated,  so  will  be  the  branches. 

If,  also,  some  of  the  branches  were  broken  ofi^,  and  you,  being  a  wild 
olive,  were  grafted  into  their  place,  and  rendered  a  joint  partaker  of 
the  root  and  richness  of  the  olive,  make  not  your  boast  against  the 
branches ;  for,  though  you  should  boast,  you  do  not  sustain  the  root, 

32 


250  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

but  the  root  sustains  you.  Will  you  then  declare,  The  branches  were 
broken  olF,  that  I  might  be  grafted  in  1  Admitted  ;  —  yet,  in  conse- 
quence of  unbelief,  they  were  broken  off;  and  you  stand  by  faith  ;  be 
not  elated  then,  but  cautious.  For  if  God  did  not  spare  the  natural 
branches,  neither  will  he,  perhaps,  spare  you. 

Behold,  then,  the  kindness  and  the  severity  of  God ;  in  respect  to 
those,  indeed,  who  have  fallen,  severity  ;  but  with  regard  to  you,  kind- 
ness, if  you  persevere  under  his  benignity  :  otherwise,  you  will  also  be 
discarded.  And  they,  moreover,  unless  they  persist  in  their  unbelief, 
shall  be  grafted  in  ;  since  God  is  able  again  to  graft  thein  in.  For,  if 
you  were  cut  off  from  the  olive,  which  is  naturally  wild,  and  have  been 
grafted  into  a  good  olive,  contrary  to  your  nature  ;  how  much  more 
shall  they,  the  natural  branches,  be  grafted  into  their  own  olive  1 

Moreover,  I  wish  you,  brethren,  to  understand  this  secret  (lest  you 
should  indulge  in  self-conceit),  namely,  that  blindness  has  fallen  upon  a 
part  of  Israel,  till  the  multitude  of  the  Gentiles  shall  accede.  For  then, 
all  Israel  will  be  saved  ;  even  as  it  is  written,  A  deliverer  will  proceed 
from  Zion,  and  wUl  avert  iniquity  from  Jacob.  And  this  is  my  covenant 
with  them,  when  I  shall  remove  their  sins.  As  to  the  gospel  then,  they 
are  alienated  in  reference  to  you  ;  but  as  to  the  divine  choice,  they  are 
beloved,  in  consideration  of  the  fathers  :  because,  the  free  gifts  and  the 
invitation  of  God  are  not  to  be  revoked. 

For  as  you  were  formerly  unbelievers  in  respect  to  divine  things,  yet 
have  now  attained  mercy  during  their  unbelief;  so  also  they  are  at  pre- 
sent unbelievers,  and  in  connexion  with  the  mercy  manifested  to  you, 
even  they  will  obtain  mercy.  For  God  has  collectively  included  all  of 
them  in  unbelief,  that  he  might  compassionate  all. 

0  profound  and  abundant  wisdom  and  knowledge  of  God  !  How  un- 
searchable are  his  proceedings,  and  his  ways  not  to  be  explored  !  For 
who  has  known  the  mind  of  the  Lord  1  or  who  has  given  him  counsel  ? 
or,  who  has  first  imparted  to  him,  so  as  to  receive  only  an  equivalent  in 
return  1  For  of  him,  and  by  him,  and  for  him,  are  all  things  ;  to  him 
be  glory  forever.     Amen  ! 

1  entreat  you,  therefore,  brethren,  by  the  tender  compassions  of  God, 
that  you  offer  yourselves  a  living  sacrifice,  unblemished,  delightful  to 
God,  which  is  your  rational  service.  And  be  not  conformed  to  this 
world  ;  but  be  transformed  by  the  renovation  of  your  minds,  that  you 
may  studiously  follow  that  which  is  good,  and  acceptable,  and  perfect, 
according  to  the  will  of  God. 

Moreover,  by  virtue  of  the  office  assigned  me,  I  charge  every  one 
among  you,  not  to  estimate  himself  more  highly  than  he  ought ;  but  to 
think  humbly,  according  to  the  degree  of  faith,  which  God  has  dispens- 
ed to  each.  For,  as  we  have  many  members  in  one  body,  but  all  the 
members  have  not  the  same  agency  ;  so  we,  being  many,  are  one  body 
in  Christ,  and  individually,  members  of  the  others. 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  ROMANS.  251 

Having,  then,  free  gifts,  different  according  to  the  favors  imparted  to 
us,  if  interpretation,  let  it  be  according  to  the  proportion  of  faith;  or 
spiritual  service,  let  us  attend  to  our  ministration  ;  or  him  who  teaches, 
to  instruction  ;  or  him  who  exhorts,  to  admonition.  Let  him  who 
bestows,  do  it  with  disinterestedness  ;  him  who  presides,  with  assiduity ; 
him  who  performs  offices  of  mercy  with  alacrity.  Let  benevolence  be 
sincere.     Abhor  that  which  is  evil ;  adhere  to  that  which  is  good. 

With  fraternal  kindness  be  tenderly  affectionate  to  each  other ;  as 
to  honor,  prefer  one  another.  Be  not  negligent  in  duty  ;  be  fervent  in 
spirit ;  serve  the  Lord  ;  rejoice  in  hope  ;  be  patient  in  affliction  ;  perse- 
vere in  prayer  ;  contribute  to  the  necessities  of  Christians  ;  be  devoted  to 
hospitality.  Bless  those  who  persecute  you  ;  bless,  and  curse  not.  Re- 
joice with  those  who  rejoice,  and  weep  with  those  who  weep.  Be  united 
among  yourselves.  Regard  not  exalted  objects,  but  accommodate  your- 
selves to  those  that  are  lowly.     Be  not  wise  in  your  own  opinion. 

Render  to  no  one  evil  for  evil.  Diligently  pursue  what  is  laudable  in 
the  sight  of  all  men.  If  it  be  possible,  to  the  extent  of  your  power, 
have  peace  with  all  men.  Beloved,  never  avenge  yourselves,  but  rather 
give  place  to  displeasure  ;  since  it  is  written,  Retribution  belongs  to  me  ; 
I  will  make  it,  says  the  Lord.  If  therefore,  thine  enemy  hunger,  feed 
him  ;  if  he  thirst,  give  him  drink  ;  for  in  so  doing,  you  will  heap  coals 
of  fire  on  his  head.  Be  not  overcome  by  evil ;  but  overcome  evU  with 
good. 

Let  every  individual  be  subject  to  the  superior  authorities  ;  for,  there 
is  no  authority  except  by  divine  permission  ;  and  those  which  exist,  are 
instituted  under  God.  So  he  that  resists  the  magistracy,  opposes  the 
institution  of  God  ;  and  those  who  resist,  will  receive  punishment  for 
themselves.  For  rulers  are  not  a  terror  to  good  works,  but  to  evil  ones  ; 
and  wilt  thou  not  stand  in  awe  of  the  magistracy  ?  Do  good,  and  you 
will  have  praise  for  it ;  since  [the  magistrate]  is  a  servant  of  God  for  your 
benefit.  But  if  you  do  evil,  fear  ;  for  he  bears  the  sword  not  in  vain  ; 
since  he  is  a  servant  of  God,  inflicting  punishment  upon  him  that  does 
evil.  Therefore,  we  ought  to  yield  subjection,  not  because  of  punish- 
ment, but  also  from  regard  to  conscience. 

Moreover,  in  consequence  of  this,  you  should  also  pay  taxes ;  for  they 
are  servants  of  God,  continually  attending  to  this  very  object.  Render, 
therefore,  to  all  their  dues  ;  taxes,  to  whom  taxes  are  due ;  tribute  to 
whom  tribute  ;  reverence,  to  whom  reverence  ;  respect,  to  whom  respect. 
Owe  nothing  to  any  person,  but  mutual  love  ;  for  he  who  loves  another 
fulfils  the  law.  For,  the  precepts.  Thou  shalt  not  commit  adultery,  thou 
shalt  do  no  murder,  thou  shalt  not  steal,  thou  shalt  not  covet,  and  every 
other  command,  are  briefly  comprehended  in  this  injunction,  namely, 
Thou  shalt  love  thy  neighbor  as  thyself.  Love  works  no  evil  to  our 
neighbor  ;  love,  then,  is  the  accomplishment  of  the  law. 

And  particularly,  [be  thus  induced],  contemplating  the  time,  that  the 
hour  is  already  come  when  we  should  awake  from  sleep  ;  for  our  salva- 


252  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS, 

tion  is  at  present  nearer,  than  when  we  first  believed.  The  night  is  far 
advanced,  the  day  approaches  ;  let  us  therefore  direst  ourselves  of  the 
works  of  darkness,  and  be  invested  with  the  armor  of  light.  Let  us 
walk  in  a  becoming  manner  as  by  day ;  not  in  revellings  and  inebriated 
festivals,  not  in  unchaste  and  immodest  gratifications,  not  in  contention 
and  zealous  altercation.  But  put  ye  on  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  and 
make  no  provision  for  the  flesh,  in  reference  to  its  excessive  desires. 

Receive  with  kindness  him  that  is  weak  in  faith,  not  so  as  to  increase 
his  scrupulous  surmisings.  One,  indeed,  believes  that  he  may  eat  every 
thing  ;  but  he  who  is  weak,  eats  herbs.  Let  not  him  who  eats,  despise 
him  who  eats  not ;  nor  him  who  eats  not,  judge  him  who  eats ;  for  God 
has  accepted  him.  Who  are  you,  that  judge  the  servant  of  another  1  to 
his  own  master  he  stands  or  falls.  Indeed,  he  will  be  sustained ;  for 
God  is  able  to  sustain  him. 

One  man  considers  one  day  as  superior  to  another :  while  another 
esteems  every  day  alike.  Let  each  one  be  fully  convinced  in  his  own 
mind.  He  who  regards  the  day,  regards  it  in  reference  to  the  Lord  ; 
and  he  who  regards  not  the  day,  in  reference  to  the  Lord  he  does  not 
regard  it.  He  that  eats,  eats  in  reference  to  the  Lord,  for  he  gives 
thanks  to  God ;  and  he  that  eats  not,  in  reference  to  the  Lord  he  does 
not  eat,  nor  give  thanks  to  God.  For  no  one  of  us  lives  to  himself;  and 
no  one  of  us  dies  to  himself;  since,  if  we  live,  we  live  to  the  Lord  ;  and 
if  we  die,  we  die  to  the  Lord  :  so  that  whether  we  live,  or  die,  we  are 
the  Lord's.  For  Christ  both  died  and  revived  for  this  very  purpose,  that 
he  might  have  dominion  over  the  dead  and  the  living. 

But,  why  do  you  judge  your  brother  ?  or  why  do  you  despise  your 
brother  ?  since  we  must  all  appear  before  the  tribunal  of  Christ.  For 
it  is  written.  As  I  live,  says  the  Lord,  every  knee  shall  bend  to  me,  and 
every  tongue  shall  confess  to  God.  Every  one  of  us,  therefore,  must 
render  an  account  of  himself  to  God. 

Let  us,  then,  no  longer  judge  one  another  ;  but  rather,  thus  deter- 
mine, that  no  one  place  an  obstacle,  or  an  occasion  of  ofiience  before  a 
brother.  I  know,  and  have  been  convinced  by  the  Lord  Jesus,  that 
nothing  is  in  itself  impure  ;  but  if  any  man  deem  any  thing  to  be  im- 
pure, to  him  it  is  so.  But  if,  on  account  of  food,  your  brother  be  dis- 
quieted, you  cease  to  walk  according  to  love.  Do  not,  by  your  food, 
destroy  him  for  whom  Christ  died.  Let  not  your  good  be  reproached  ; 
for,  the  influence  of  God  does  not  concern  meat  and  drink,  but  its 
fruits  are  righteousness,  and  peace,  and  holy,  spiritual  joy. 

Now,  he  who  serves  Christ,  as  to  these  things,  is  acceptable  to  God, 
and  approved  by  men.  Consequently,  let  us  pursue  those  things  which 
promote  peace,  and  those,  which  tend  to  mutual  improvement.  Do  not, 
for  any  kind  of  food,  destroy  the  work  of  God.  All  kinds  are  indeed 
pure ;  but  it  is  evil  in  that  man,  who  eats  so  as  to  cause  offence.  Be- 
nevolence demands,  that  you  should  never  eat  food,  nor  drink  wine,  nor 
do  any  thing  else,  by  which  your  brother  may  stumble,  or  be  allured  to 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  ROMANS.  S53 

sin,  or  become  unhappy.  You  have  conscious  rectitude  :  maintain  it 
"with  respect  to  yourself,  in  the  presence  of  God.  Happy  is  he  who 
does  not  condemn  himself,  in  that  which  he  permits.  But  he  who 
wants  integrity  of  purpose,  is  condemned  if  he  eats,  because  he  is  not 
confident  that  it  is  right ;  for  whatever  proceeds  not  from  such  con- 
fidence, is  sinfiil. 

Now  to  him  who  is  able  to  establish  you,  according  to  the  good  news 
which  I  proclaim,  and  the  annunciation  of  Jesus  Christ,  agreeably  to 
the  revelation  of  the  secret,  concealed  in  ancient  times,  but  now  man- 
ifested, and  by  means  of  the  prophetic  scriptures,  in  conformity  to  the 
commandment  of  the  eternal  God,  communicated  to  all  the  Gentiles, 
for  the  promotion  of  obedience  to  the  faith ; — to  the  only  wise  God, 
through  Jesus  Christ,  to  whom  be  glory  forever.    Amen  ! 

Moreover,  we  who  are  strong,  ought  to  bear  the  infirmities  of  the 
weak,  and  not  to  please  ourselves.  Let  each  one  of  us  please  his  neigh- 
bor, in  respect  to  that  which  is  favorable  to  improvement.  For  Christ 
did  not  seek  his  own  pleasure  ;  but  according  to  that  which  is  written. 
The  censures  of  those  who  reproached  thee  have  fallen  upon  me.  [So 
it  was  with  him].  Now  whatever  things  were  written  in  ancient  times, 
were  written  for  our  instruction ;  that,  through  patience  and  the  ad- 
monition of  the  scriptures,  we  might  obtain  hope. 

Now,  may  the  God  who  gives  patience  and  admonition,  give  you 
mutual  unity  of  sentiment,  according  to  Christ  Jesus  ;  that  with  one 
mind,  and  with  one  voice,  you  may  praise  God,  even  the  Father  of  our 
Lord  Jesus  Christ ! 

Therefore,  deal  kindly  with  each  other,  even  as  Christ  has  dealt  kind- 
ly with  us  to  the  praise  of  God. 

Further,  I  affirm,  that  Jesus  Christ  became  a  minister  of  the  circum- 
cision, on  account  of  the  truth  of  God,  in  order  to  confirm  the  promises 
made  to  the  fathers ;  also  that  the  Gentiles  shall  praise  God  for  his 
mercy ;  even  as  it  is  written.  Therefore  will  I  celebrate  thy  praise 
among  the  Gentiles,  and  to  thy  name  will  I  sing.  And  it  is  further  an- 
nounced. Rejoice,  ye  Gentiles,  with  his  people ;  and  again.  Praise  the 
Lord,  all  ye  Gentiles ;  and  repeat  liis  praise,  all  ye  people.  And  more- 
over, Isaiah  declares,  There  shall  be  a  root  of  Jesse,  and  one  shall  arise 
to  be  a  guide  of  the  Gentiles  ;  upon  him  shall  the  GentUes  place  their 
hopes. 

Now  may  the  God  of  hope  fill  you  with  all  joy  and  peace  in  beUeving  ; 
that  you  may  abound  in  hope  through  the  influence  of  the  Holy  Spirit. 

Moreover,  I  myself  am  well  persuaded  concerning  you,  my  brethren, 
that  you  are  fiill  of  kindness,  abounding  in  all  knowledge,  and  able  to 
admonish  one  another.  I  have  also  written  to  you  the  more  boldly, 
brethren,  when  reminding  you  concerning  some  things,  because  of  the 
grace  which  God  has  imparted  to  me,  that  I  should  be  a  servant  of  Jesus 
Christ  to  the  Gentiles,  dispensing  as  a  priest  the  gospel  of  God,  that 
the  oblation  of  the  Gentiles  might  be  acceptable,  being  purified  by  the 


254  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

Holy  Spirit.  I  have,  then,  a  subject  of  exultation  in  Christ  Jesus,  rel- 
ative to  the  things  of  God ;  for  I  will  not  presume  to  misrepresent  what 
Christ  has  effected  by  me,  to  bring  the  Gentiles  to  obedience,  by  word 
and  by  deed,  through  the  energy  of  signs  and  wonders,  by  the  power 
of  the  Holy  Spirit.  So  that  from  Jerusalem  and  around  it,  to  Illyri- 
cum,  I  have  fully  proclaimed  the  gospel  of  Christ ;  and  so  also,  that  I 
was  strongly  desirous  to  preach  the  gospel,  not  where  Christ  was  nam- 
ed, lest  I  should  build  on  another  man's  foundation,  but  in  accordance 
with  what  is  written.  They  shall  see,  to  whom  no  declaration  was  made 
respecting  him ;  and  they  who  have  not  heard,  shall  understand. 

On  this  account,  I  have  been  greatly  hindered  from  coming  to  you. 
But  now,  having  nothing  more  to  accomplish  in  these  regions,  and  hav- 
ing had  a  great  desire  for  many  years  to  visit  you  ;  whenever  I  may  go 
to  Spain,  I  hope,  as  I  pass  on,  to  see  you,  and  to  be  sent  by  you  on  my 
way  there,  having  first,  in  some  degree,  enjoyed  your  society.  But  at 
present  I  am  going  to  Jerusalem,  to  supply  the  wants  of  the  Christians. 
For  it  has  pleased  those  of  Macedonia  and  Achaia,  to  make  some  con- 
tribution for  the  poor  among  the  Christians  who  are  at  Jerusalem.  [I 
say]  it  has  pleased  them  ;  for  indeed,  they  are  their  debtors ;  because  if 
the  Gentiles  have  shared  in  their  spiritual  things,  they  ought  surely  to 
assist  them  in  temporal  things.  Now  when  this  duty  shall  have  been 
performed,  and  this  fruit  secured  to  them,  1  shall  pass  through  the  midst 
of  you  into  Spain.  And  I  know  that  when  I  come  to  you,  I  shall  come 
with  abundant  blessings  of  the  gospel  of  Christ. 

Further,  I  beseech  you,  brethren,  by  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  and  by  the 
love  of  the  Spirit,  that  you  strive  jointly  for  me  in  your  prayers  to  God 
in  my  behalf,  that  I  may  be  delivered  from  the  unbelievers  in  Judea ;  and 
that  my  service  for  Jerusalem  may  h^  acceptable  to  the  Christians ;  also, 
that  I  may  come  to  you  with  joy,  (if  God  permit). and  may  be  refreshed 
among  you.     Now  may  the  God  of  peace  be  with  you  all.     Amen  ! 

Moreover,  I  recommend  to  you  Phebe  our  sister,  who  is  a  servant  of 
the  church  at  Cenchrea  ;  that  you  may  receive  her  as  being  in  the  Lord, 
in  a  manner  worthy  of  Christians,  and  give  her  assistance  in  any  thing 
where  she  may  need  it  of  you  ;  for  she  has  been  a  patroness  of  many, 
and  particularly  of  me. 

Salute  Priscilla  and  Aquila,  my  co-operators  in  Christ  Jesus  ;  (who 
exposed  themselves  to  great  danger  in  my  behalf;  to  whom  not  only  I 
myself  am  grateful,  but  even  all  the  churches  of  the  Gentiles ;)  and 
salute  the  assembly  of  believers  at  their  house.  Salute  Epenetus,  my 
beloved  friend,  who  is  the  first-fruit  of  Asia  in  Christ.  Salute  Mary, 
who  labored  much  for  us.  Salute  Andronicus  and  Junias  my  relatives, 
and  fellow-prisoners,  who  are  highly  esteemed  among  the  apostles,  and 
who  acknowledged  Christ  before  me.  Salute  Amplias,  my  beloved  friend 
in  the  Lord.  Salute  TJrbanus,  our  fellow-laborer  in  Christ,  and  Sta- 
chys,  my  beloved  friend.  Salute  Apelles,  the  approved  in  Christ.  Sal- 
ute the  family  of  Aristobulus.     Salute  Herodian,  my  relative.     Salute 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  ROMANS.  255 

those  of  the  family  of  Narcissus,  who  are  in  the  Lord.  Salute  Tryph- 
ena  and  Tryphosa,  who  labor  in  the  Lord.  Salute  Percis  the  beloved, 
who  labored  much  in  the  Lord.  Salute  Rufiis,  the  chosen  in  the  Lord, 
and  his  mother  and  mine.  Salute  Asyncritus,  Phlegon,  Hermas,  Pa- 
trobas,  Hermes,  and  the  brethren  with  them.  Salute  Philologus  and 
Julias,  Nereus  and  his  sister,  and  Olympas,  and  all  the  Christians  with 
them.  Salute  each  other  with  a  sacred  kiss.  All  the  churches  of  Christ 
salute  you. 

Moreover,  I  beseech  you,  brethren,  to  beware  of  those  who  cause  di- 
visions and  pernicious  examples,  contrary  to  the  doctrine  which  you 
have  learned ;  and  avoid  them.  For  such  serve  not  our  Lord  Jesus 
Christ,  but  their  own  appetite  ;  and  by  fair  expressions  and  flattering 
addresses,  beguile  the  minds  of  the  simple.  For  your  obedience  is 
known  to  all.  I  rejoice  therefore  on  your  account :  but  I  wish  you  to 
be  wise  with  respect  to  that  which  is  good,  and  simple  in  reference  to 
evil.  Now  the  God  of  peace  will  soon  bruise  the  adversary  under  your 
feet.     The  grace  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  be  with  you.    Amen  ! 

Timothy,  my  co-operator,  and  Lucius,  and  Jason,  and  Sosipater,  my 
relatives,  salute  you.  (I  Tertius,  the  amanuensis  of  this  letter,  salute 
you  in  the  Lord).  Caius  salutes  you,  who  is  my  host,  and  that  of  the 
whole  church.  Erastus,  the  treasurer  of  the  city,  salutes  you  ;  and 
Quartus,  a  brother,  salutes  you.  The  favor  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  be 
with  you  all.    Amen  ! 


THE   FIRST  LETTER   OF   PAUL   TO   THE 
CORINTHIANS. 

Paul,  constituted  an  apostle  of  Jesus  Christ,  by  the  will  of  God,  and 
Sosthenes  the  brother,  to  the  church  of  God,  which  is  at  Corinth,  to 
those  who  have  been  purified  in  Christ  Jesus,  invited  to  be  Christians, 
with  all  that  in  every  place  invoke  the  name  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ, 
even  their  and  our  Lord ;  grace  be  to  you,  and  peace,  from  God  our 
Father,  and  from  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ. 

I  give  thanks  to  my  God  always  concerning  you,  for  the  favor  of  God 
which  is  imparted  to  you,  through  Jesus  Christ  ;  that  in  every  thing  you 
are  enriched  by  him  in  all  doctrine,  and  all  knowledge  :  even  as  the  tes- 
timony of  Christ  was  confirmed  among  you :  so  that  you  are  subordin- 
ate in  no  gift :  awaiting  the  appearance  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  who 
will  also  establish  you  irreproachable  to  the  end,  even  in  the  day  of  our 
Lord  Jesus  Christ.  God  is  faithfiil,  by  whom  you  were  summoned  to  a 
participation  of  his  Son  Jesus  Christ  our  Lord. 

Moreover,  I  solicit  you,  brethren,  through  the  name  of  our  Lord 
Jesus   Christ,  that  you  all  speak  the  same  thing,  and  that  there  be  no 
divisions  among  you ;  but  that  you  be  perfectly  united  in  the  same  mind, 
and  in  the  same  sentiment.     For  it  has  been  declared  to  me  concerning 
you,  my  brethren,  by  those  who  are  of  the  family  of  Chloe,  that  there 
are  contentions  among  you.     And  I  mention  this,  —  that  each  one  of  you 
afiirms,  I,  indeed,  am  for  Paul ;  and  I,  for  ApoUos  ;  and  I,  for  Peter ; 
and  I,  for  Christ.     Is   Christ  divided  ?  was  Paul  crucified  for  you  1  or 
were  you  baptized  into  the  name  of  Paul  ?     I  give  thanks  to  God,  that 
I  baptized  none  of  you,  except  Crispus  and  Caius  ;  so  that  no  one  can 
assert,  that  I  have  baptized  into  my  own  name.     However,  I  also  bap- 
tized the  family  of  Stephanas  :  besides,  I  am  not  aware,  that  I  baptized 
any  other.     For  Christ  sent  me  not  so  much  to  baptize,  as  to  preach  the 
gospel ;  not  in  the  wisdom  of  doctrine,  lest  the  cross  of  Christ  should 
be  rendered  inefiectual.     For  the  instruction  of  the  cross  is  to  those  who 
perish,  foolishness ;  but  to  those  of  us  who  are  saved,  it  is  the  power  of 
God.     For  it  is  written,  I  will  destroy  the  sagacity  of  the  wise,  and  will 
subvert  the  knowledge  of  the  learned.     Where  is  the  wise  1  where  is 
the  learned  ?     where  is  the  subtile  disputer  of  this  world  1  has  not  God 
declared  their  wisdom  to  be  foolishness  1     For  since,  in  the  wisdom  re- 
specting God,  the  world  by  its  wisdom  knew  not  God,  it  pleased  God, 
by  the  folly  of  preaching,  to  save  those  who  believe.     For  the  Jews  re- 
quire signs,  and  the  Greeks  search  for  wisdom :  but  we  proclaim  Christ 
crucified ;  to  the  Jews,  indeed,  an  offence,  and  to  the  Gentiles  foolish- 
ness ;  but  to  those  who  are  invited,  both  Jews  and  Greeks,  Christ,  the 


PAUL'S  FIRST  LETTER  TO  THE  CORINTHIANS.  257 

power  of  God,  and  the  wisdom  of  God.  ■  Because,  the  [supposed]  folly 
of  God  is  wiser  than  men ;  and  the  [supposed]  weakness  of  God  is 
stronger  than  men. 

Behold,  therefore,  your  invitation,  brethren,  that  not  many  wise  men 
according  to  the  flesh,  not  many  powerful,  not  many  illustrious,  invite 
you  :  but  God  has  selected  the  foolish  of  the  world,  that  he  may  shame 
the  wise ;  and  God  has  chosen  the  feeble  of  the  world,  that  he  may 
shame  the  powerful ;  and  the  degraded  of  the  world,  and  those  who 
are  despised,  has  God  designated,  and  those  who  are  dead,  that  he  may 
bring!  to  nothing  those  who  are  alive  ;  so  that  no  individual  can  gloi'y 
before  God.  And  by  him  are  you  in  Christ  Jesus,  who  is  become  to  us 
wisdom  from  God,  and  pardon,  and  purification,  and  redemption  :  so 
that,  as  it  is  written.  Let  him  who  exults,  exult  in  the  Lord. 

Now  I,  brethren,  when  I  arrived  among  you,  came  not  with  loftiness 
of  speech,  or  of  wisdom,  declaring  to  you  the  testimony  of  God.  For 
I  determined  to  proclaim  nothing  among  you,  but  Jesus  Christ,  even 
that  crucified  person.  And  I  was  with  you  in  weakness,  and  in  fear, 
and  in  much  trembling.  And  my  doctrine,  and  my  preaching,  were  not 
with  persuasive  words  of  human  wisdom,  but  in  manifestation  of  the 
Spirit,  and  of  power  :  that  your  faith  might  not  rest  in  the  wisdom  of 
men,  but  in  the  power  of  God. 

However,  we  announce  wisdom  among  those  who  are  perfect ;  yet, 
not  the  wisdom  of  this  world,  nor  of  the  rulers  of  this  world,  who  are 
reduced  to  nothing  :  but  we  proclaim  the  wisdom  of  God  in  a  new 
doctrine,  the  concealed  wisdom,  which  God  previously  designed,  prior 
to  the  ages,  for  our  glory;  which  none  of  the  rulers  of  this  world  knew; 
for  had  they  known  it,  they  would  not  have  crucified  the  Lord  of  Glory. 
For,  we  announce,  as  it  is  written,  Things  which  eye  has  not  seen,  nor 
ear  heard,  nor  the  heart  of  man  comprehended,  God  has  prepared  for 
those  who  love  him.  But  God  has  revealed  them  to  us  by  his  Spirit ; 
for  the  Spirit  explores  all  things,  even  the  depths  of  God.  For  who 
knows  the  things  of  a  man,  except  the  spirit  of  a  man  that  is  in  him  1 
Thus  also,  no  one  knows  the  things  of  God,  but  the  Spirit  of  God.  Now 
we  have  not  received  the  spirit  of  the  world,  but  the  Spirit  which  is  from 
God ;  that  we  may  know  the  things  which  are  freely  given  to  us  by  God : 
which  we  also  communicate,  not  in  words  taught  by  human  wisdom, 
but  in  those  dictated  by  the  Holy  Spirit ;  explaining  spiritual  things  to 
spiritual  persons.  Now,  the  animal  man  does  not  receive  the  things  of 
the  Spirit  of  God  :  for  they  are  foolishness  to  him  ;  nor  can  he  know 
them,  because  they  are  spiritually  examined.  But  the  spiritual  man 
examines,  indeed,  all  things  ;  yet  he  is  examined  by  no  one.  For  who 
has  known  the  mind  of  the  Lord,  that  he  should  tea«h  it  1  But  we 
have  the  mind  of  Christ. 

Moreover,  brethren,  I  could  not  speak  to  you  as  to  spiritual,  but  as  to 
sensual  persons,  as  to  babes  in  Christ.     I  fed  you  with  milk,  not  with 
meat :  for  you  were  not  then  able,  nor  indeed,  are  you  even  now  able 
33 


258  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

to  receive  it ;  since  you  are  still  sensual :  for  whereas,  envy,  strife,  and 
dissensions,  exist  among  you,  are  you  not  sensual,  and  do  you  not  con- 
duct in  a  sensual  manner  1  For  when  one  says,  I  indeed,  am  for  Paul, 
and  another,  I  am  for  ApoUos,  are  you  not  sensual  1 

Who  then  is  Paul,  and  who  is  ApoUos  1  Ministers,  by  whose  means 
you  believed,  even  as  the  Lord  has  imparted  to  each  1  I  planted,  Apol- 
los  watered  ;  but  God  produces  the  growth  :  so  that  neither  is  he  who 
plants  any  thing,  nor  he  who  waters  ;  but  God  who  causes  the  product. 
However,  he  that  plants,  and  he  that  waters,  are  one  ;  and  each  will 
receive  his  proper  reward,  according  to  his  respective  labor.  There- 
fore, we  are  co-operators  with  God  :  you  are  God's  field,  God's  edifice. 
According  to  the  grace  of  God,  which  was  given  to  me,  as  a  skilful 
architect,  I  have  laid  the  foundation,  and  another  builds  on  it.  But  let 
every  one  take  care  how  he  superstructs  :  for  no  one  can  lay  any  other 
foundation,  except  what  is  laid,  which  is  Jesus  Christ.  Now,  if  any 
one  erect  on  this  basis  —  gold,  silver,  and  valuable  stones  ;  or  wood, 
grass,  and  stubble  ;  the  work  of  each  will  be  exhibited  :  for  the  crisis 
will  proclaim  it,  because  it  wUl  be  disclosed  by  fire  ;  and  thus,  the  fire 
will  prove  every  one's  work,  of  what  description  it  is.  If  the  super- 
structure of  any  one  remain,  he  will  receive  a  reward.  If  any  one's 
work  be  burned,  he  will  sustain  a  loss  :  yet,  he  will  personally  be  pre- 
served ;  but  even,  as  through  fire.  Do  you  not  know,  that  you  are  the 
temple  of  God,  and  that  the  Spirit  of  God  dwells  among  you  ?  If  any 
one  destroy  the  temple  of  God,  God  will  destroy  him :  for  the  temple 
of  God  is  consecrated  ;  and  you  are  this  temple.  Let  no  one  deceive 
himself.  If  any  one  among  you  affect  to  be  wise  in  this  age,  let  him 
become  simple,  that  he  may  be  wise.  For,  the  wisdom  of  this  world  is 
folly  with  God  :  as  the  scripture  declares.  He  detects  the  wise  in  their 
own  fallacy.  And  further.  The  Lord  knows  the  reasonings  of  the  wise, 
that  they  are  vain.  Let  no  one  therefore  boast  in  men  :  since,  all  things 
are  yours  ;  whether  Paul,  or  Apollos,  or  Peter,  whether  the  world,  or 
life,  or  death,  or  present,  or  future  objects  ;  all  are  yours  :  and  you  are 
of  Christ ;  and  Christ  is  of  God.  Accordingly,  let  a  man  regard  us,  as 
servants  only  of  Christ,  and  dispensers  of  the  secret  purposes  of  God. 
And  moreover,  it  is  required  in  stewards,  that  every  one  be  found  faith- 
ful. Therefore,  with  me  it  is  the  most  subordinate  consideration,  that 
I  should  be  condemned  by  you,  or  by  human  inquisition  ;  because,  I  do 
not  even  condemn  myself;  for  I  am  not  personally  conscious  of  guilt ; 
however,  I  am  not  by  this  exculpated  ;  but  he  that  condemns  me  is  the 
Lord.  Consequently,  pass  no  premature  judgment,  till  the  Lord  come, 
who  will  actually  bring  to  light  the  hidden  things  of  darkness,  and  un- 
veil the  intentions  of  the  hearts  ;  and  then,  every  one  will  have  praise 
from  God. 

Now,  these  things,  brethren,  I  have  figuratively  appropriated  to  myself 
and  Apollos,  on  your  account ;  that  by  us  you  may  learn,  not  to  esti- 
mate any  teacher  above  what  is  written  ;  that  no  person  may  be  inflated 


PAUL'S  FIRST  LETTER  TO  THE  CORINTHIANS.  259 

in  behalf  of  one  against  another.  Besides,  who  makes  thee  distinguish- 
ed 1  For  what  hast  thou,  which  thou  didst  not  receive  1  and  further,  if 
thou  hast  received  it,  why  dost  thou  boast,  as  not  receiving  it  ?  You 
are  already  satiated,  you  are  already  enriched,  you  have  reigned  with- 
out us  :  and  I  wish,  indeed,  you  had  reigned  properly,  that  we  might 
also  reign  with  you.  For  I  think  that  God  has  exhibited  us,  the  apos- 
tles, ultimately,  as  devoted  to  death  ;  that  we  are  made  a  spectacle  to 
the  world,  even  to  angels,  and  to  men.  We  are  simple  in  behalf  of 
Christ,  but  you  are  wise  in  Christ ;  we  are  feeble,  but  you  are  powerful ; 
you  are  honorable,  but  we  ai-e  disgraced.  Even  to  this  present  hour, 
we  both  hunger  and  thirst,  and  are  naked,  and  are  beaten,  and  have  no 
definite  abode  ;  and  labor,  working  with  our  own  hands.  When  reviled, 
we  bless  ;  when  persecuted,  we  endure  it ;  when  calumniated,  we  expos- 
tulate :  we  are  represented  as  the  vilest  of  the  world,  as  the  refuse  of  all 
things,  to  this  day. 

I  do  not  write  these  things  to  shame  you  ;  but,  as  my  beloved  chil- 
dren, I  instruct  you.  For  though,  you  have  myriads  of  conductors  in 
Christ,  yet,  you  have  not  many  fathers  ;  since,  I  produced  you  in  Christ 
Jesus,  through  the  gospel.  I  therefore  exhort  you,  that  you  become 
imitators  of  me.  For  this  reason,  I  have  sent  to  you  Timothy,  who  is 
my  dear  and  faithful  son  in  the  Lord,  who  will  remind  you  of  my  ways, 
which  are  in  Christ,  even  as  I  universally  teach  in  every  church.  How- 
ever, some  are  inflated,  as  if  I  would  not  come  to  you.  But  I  will 
quickly  come  to  you,  if  the  Lord  permit ;  and  I  will  know,  not  the 
speech  of  those  who  are  inflated,  but  the  power.  For  the  dominion  of 
God  is  not  in  word,  but  in  power.  What  do  you  wish  ?  that  I  should 
come  to  you  in  chastisement  1  or  in  love,  and  in  the  spirit  of  meekness? 

Impurity  is  certainly  heard  of  among  you,  and  such  impurity  as  is 
not  even  among  the  pagans,  that  one  should  have  his  father's  wife. 
And  are  you  elated  !  but  should  you  not  rather  have  lamented  1  so  that 
he  who  has  committed  this  ofience,  might  be  removed  from  the  midst  of 
you.  Therefore,  I  indeed,  as  absent  in  body,  but  present  in  spirit,  have 
already  judged,  as  if  present,  him  who  has  thus  conducted  ;  that  you, 
being  assembled  in  the  name  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  and  of  my 
Spirit,  shall,  with  the  powei^af  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  deliver  such  an 
one  to  the  adversary,  for  the  destruction  of  the  flesh,  that  the  Spirit  may 
be  saved  in  the  day  of  the  Lord  Jesus. 

Your  exultation  is  improper.  Do  you  not  know,  that  a  Uttle  leaven 
ferments  the  whole  mass  t  Remove  entirely  the  old  leaven,  that  you 
may  become  a  new  mass,  when  you  are  unleavened :  for  even  our  pass- 
over,  Christ,  was  slain  for  us.  Let  us  then  keep  the  festival,  not  with 
the  old  leaven,  nor  with  the  leaven  of  malignity  and  mischief;  but  with 
the  unleavened  qualities  of  sincerity  and  truth. 

I  have  written  to  you  in  this  letter,  not  to  associate  with  incontinent 
persons :  however,  not  universally  with  the  incontinent  of  this  world,  or 
with  the  avaricious,  or  rapacious,  or  idolatrous  ;   since  then,  you  must 


260  APOSTOLIC    PRODUCTIONS. 

absolutely  depart  from  the  world.  But  now,  I  write  to  you,  not  to  associate 
with  any  one,  who  is  called  a  brother,  if  he  be  an  impure,  or  a  covetous 
person,  or  an  idolater,  or  a  reviler,  or  a  drunkard,  or  an  oppressor  ; 
indeed,  not  even  to  eat  with  such  an  one.  Does  it  belong  to  me  to  judge 
those  that  are  without  1  By  no  means.  Should  not  you  sentence  those 
that  are  within  1  But  on  those  who  are  without,  God  will  pass  sen- 
tence.    Therefore,  put  away  the  evil  person  from  the  midst  of  you. 

Does  any  one  of  you  presume,  having  a  controversy  with  another,  to 
be  judged  by  the  pagans,  and  not  by  the  Christians  ?  Are  you  not 
aware,  that  the  Christians  judge  the  world  1  and  if  the  world  is  judged 
by  you,  are  you  unworthy  of  the  least  judicial  stations  1  Do  you  not 
know,  that  we  judge  angels  1  why  not  then,  things  which  relate  to  this 
life  1  When,  therefore,  you  have,  indeed,  secular  seats  of  adjudication, 
do  you  place  those  to  determine,  who  are  unauthorized  by  the  church  1 
I  speak  to  your  disgrace.  Is  it  thus,  that  there  is  not  one  enlightened 
man  among  you  ?  not  even  one,  who  can  decide  the  cause  of  his  breth- 
ren ?  but  brother  litigates  with  brother,  and  that,  before  unbelievers  ! 
Certainly,  however,  it  is  an  entire  defect  among  you,  that  you  go  to  law 
with  each  other.  Why  do  you  not  rather  endure  injury  ?  why  would 
you  not  rather  be  defrauded  ?  But  you  injure  and  defraud,  even  your 
brethren.  What,  do  you  not  know,  that  the  injurious  will  not  inherit 
the  kingdom  of  God  ?  Be  not  deceived  ;  neither  fornicators,  nor  idola- 
ters, nor  adulterers,  nor  impure  abusers  of  themselves  and  of  others, 
nor  thieves,  nor  misers,  nor  drunkards,  nor  revilers,  nor  extortioners, 
will  inherit  the  kingdom  of  God.  And  such  were  some  of  you  :  but  you 
are  washed,  but  you  are  purified,  but  you  are  pardoned,  in  the  name  of 
the  Lord  Jesus,  and  by  the  Spirit  of  our  God. 

All  things  are  lawful  for  me,  but  all  are  not  proper  ;  all  things  are 
lawful  for  me,  but  I  will  not  be  brought  under  the  dominion  of  any. 
Aliments  are  for  the  appetite,  and  the  appetite  is  for  aliments ;  yet  God 
will  destroy  both  it  and  them.  Now  the  body  was  not  made  for  sensu- 
ality, but  for  the  Lord  ;  and  the  Lord  for  the  body.  And  as  God  raised 
up  the  Lord,  so  he  will  raise  up  us  by  his  own  power.  Are  you  not 
conscious,  that  your  bodies  are  the  members  of  Christ  ?  Shall  I  then 
take  the  members  of  Christ,  and  make  them  the  members  of  a  courte- 
san 1  By  no  means.  What,  do  you  not  know,  that  he,  who  is  allied  to 
a  courtesan,  is  one  body  ?  (for  the  scriptures  declare,  They  two  shall  be 
on'e  person).  But  he,  who  is  united  to  the  Lord,  is  one  spirit.  Avoid 
incontinence.  Most  sins,  which  a  man  commits,  are  extraneous  to  the 
body ;  but  he  who  commits  impurity,  sins  against  his  own  body.  What, 
are  you  not  apprised,  that  your  body  is  the  temple  of  the  Holy  Spirit, 
who  is  in  you,  whom  you  receive  from  God?  Besides,  you  are  not  your 
own.  For  you  are  purchased  with  a  price :  therefore,  with  your  body, 
praise  God. 

Now,  concerning  those  things  of  which  you  have  written  to  me,  —  It 
is  inexpedient  for  a  man  to  marry.  —  However,  in  consequence  of  impu- 


PAUL'S    FIRST    LETTER    TO    THE    CORINTHIANS.  2G1 

rities,  let  every  man  have  his  exclusive  wife,  and  let  every  woman  have 
her  exclusive  husband.  Let  the  husband  fulfil  to  the  wife  the  conjugal 
obligation  ;  and  in  like  manner  also,  the  wife  to  the  husband.  The  wife 
has  not  control  over  her  own  person,  but  the  husband ;  and  even  the 
husband,  likewise  has  not  control  over  his  own  person,  but  the  wife. 
Retire  not  from  each  other  ;  unless  perhaps,  by  mutual  consent  for  a 
time,  that  you  may  devote  yourselves  to  prayer,  and  may  re-unite  ;  lest 
the  adversary  seduce  you  through  your  incontinence.  But  I  communi- 
cate this  as  advice,  and  not  as  an  injunction,  that  I  wish  all  men  were 
even  as  myself.  However,  every  one  has  his  appropriate  gift  from  God ; 
one,  indeed,  of  this  description,  and  another  of  that.  Now  I  say  to  the 
widowers  and  to  the  widows.  It  is  good  for  them  if  they  continue  even 
as  I  do.  But  if  they  cannot  forbear,  let  them  marry ;  for  it  is  better  to 
marry,  than  to  be  discontented.  And  those  who  have  married  I  com- 
mand, yet  not  I,  but  the  Lord,  that  a  wife  must  not  separate  from  her 
husband  :  but  even  if  she  be  separated,  let  her  remain  unmarried,  or 
become  reconciled  to  her  husband ;  and  that  a  husband  must  not  discard 
his  wife.  But  the  rest  I  command,  not  the  Lord,  If  any  brother  have  a 
wife  who  is  an  unbeliever,  and  she  consent  to  live  with  him,  let  liim  not 
dismiss  her.  And  if  any  woman  have  a  husband  who  is  an  unbeliever, 
and  he  choose  to  dwell  with  her,  let  her  not  abandon  him.  For  the 
unbelieving  husband  is  consecrated  to  the  believing  wife,  and  the  unbe- 
lieving wife  is  consecrated  to  the  husband  :  otherwise,  your  children 
would  indeed  be  unhallowed,  whereas,  they  are  assuredly  sacred.  But 
if  the  unbelieving  person  will  depart,  let  such  depart.  The  brother  or 
the  sister  is  not  enslaved  in  such  cases ;  since,  God  has  called  us  to 
peace.  For  how  do  you  know,  O  wife,  but  you  will  save  your  husband  ? 
or  how  do  you  know,  O  husband,  but  you  will  save  your  wife  1  How- 
ever, according  as  the  Lord  has  distributed  to  every  one,  according  as 
God  has  called  every  one,  so  let  such  conduct ;  and  thus  I  enjoin  in  all 
the  churches.  Has  any  circumcised  one  been  called  1  let  him  not  be 
uncircumcised.  Has  any  one  been  called  in  uncircumcision  1  let  him 
not  be  circumcised.  Circumcision  is  nothing,  and  uncircumcision  is 
nothing ;  but  [the  whole  consists  in]  obedience  to  the  commandments  of 
God.  Let  each  one  remain  in  that  state,  in  which  he  was  called. 
Were  you  invited,  being  a  slave  1  do  not  regard  it :  yet,  if  you  can 
indeed  be  made  free,  prefer  it.  For  he  that  is  called  by  the  Lord,  being 
a  slave,  is  the  emancipated  of  the  Lord ;  and  he  also  who  is  called, 
being  a  free-man,  is  the  servant  of  Christ.  You  were  bought  with  a 
price ;  do  not  become  slaves  of  men.  Brethren,  let  every  man  remain 
with  God,  in  that  situation,  in  wliich  he  was  called. 

Moreover,  concerning  single  persons,  I  have  no  commandment  of  the 
Lord  :  but  I  give  my  judgment,  as  having  obtained  mercy  from  the 
Lord,  that  I  might  be  faithful.  I  apprehend  this,  therefore,  to  be  ex- 
pedient in  the  present  exigency,  that  it  is  desirable  for  a  man  to  continue 
as  he  is.     Are  you  bound  to  a  wife  ?  seek  not  to  be  loosed.     Are  you 


2G2  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

loosed  from  a  wife  ?  seek  not  another  wife.  But  even,  if  you  marry, 
you  have  not  sinned  ;  and  if  a  virgin  marry,  she  has  not  sinned.  Yet, 
such  will  have  affliction  in  the  flesh  ;  but  I  spare  you.  However,  this  I 
say,  brethren,  the  time  being  short,  it  remains  that  even  those  who  have 
wives,  be  as  if  they  had  none  ;  and  those  who  weep,  as  not  weeping  ; 
and  those  who  rejoice,  as  not  rejoicing ;  and  those  who  purchase,  as  not 
possessing ;  and  those  who  use  this  world,  as  disusing  it ;  for  the  scene 
of  this  world  is  successively  changing.  Besides,  I  wish  that  you  may 
not  be  anxious.  The  unmarried  man  anxiously  cares  for  the  things  of 
the  Lord,  how  he  shall  please  the  Lord  ;  but  he  who  has  married, 
anxiously  cares  for  the  things  of  the  world,  how  he  shall  please  his  wife. 
The  wife  and  the  virgin  are  divided  in  the  same  manner.  The  unmar- 
ried woman  anxiously  cares  for  the  things,  of  the  Lord,  that  she  may  be 
holy  both  in  body  and  in  spirit ;  whereas  she  who  hag  married,  anxiously 
cares  for  the  things  of  the  world,  how  she  may  please  her  husband. 
Now  this  I  announce  for  your  own  advantage  ;  not  that  I  may  enslave 
you  ;  but  for  decency,  and  a  proper  attendance  on  the  Lord,  without 
distraction.  However,  if  any  man  think  that  he  conducts  improperly 
in  remaining  single,  and  has  passed  the  bloom  of  life,  and  it  thus  be- 
comes requisite,  let  him  follow  his  inclination,  he  sins  not ;  let  him 
marry.  But  he  who  stands  firm  in  his  heart,  having  no  necessity,  but 
has  power  over  his  own  will,  and  has  thus  determined  in  his  heart,  to 
maintain  his  celibacy,  conducts  correctly.  So  that,  even  he  who  marries 
does  well ;  but  he  who  marries  not,  does  better. 

A  wife  is  bound  as  long  as  her  husband  lives  ;  but  if  her  husband  be 
dead,  she  is  at  liberty  to  be  married  to  whom  she  pleases  ;  only,  as  a 
Christian.  But  she  is  happier,  if  she  continue  as  she  is,  according  to 
my  judgment ;  and  I  am  also  confident,  that  I  have  the  Spirit  of  God. 

Further,  respecting  things  offered  to  idols,  we  know,  (for  we  all  have 
knowledge  :  knowledge  inflates,  but  love  edifies.  For  if  any  one  thinks 
that  he  knows  any  thing,  he  has  yet  known  nothing  as  he  ought  to 
know  it.  But  if  any  one  loves  God,  the  same  is  acknowledged  by  him. 
Therefore,  concerning  the  eating  of  things  sacrificed  to  idols,  we  know), 
that  an  idol  is  nothing  in  the  world,  and  that  there  is  no  other  God  but 
one.  For  certainly,  though  there  are  such  as  are  called  gods,  whether 
in  heaven  or  on  earth,  (even  as  there  are  numerous  gods,  and  numerous 
lords),  yet  to  us  there  is  but  one  God  the  Father,  from  whom  are  all 
things,  and  we  to  him ;  and  one  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  by  whom  are  all 
things,  and  we  through  him.  However,  all  have  not  this  knowledge  : 
but  some,  with  a  consciousness  of  the  idol,  to  this  period  eat  food  as  a 
thing  offered  to  an  idol ;  and  their  conscience,  being  weak,  is  polluted. 

But  food  does  not  recommend  us  to  God  :  for  neither  do  we  abound, 
if  we  eat ;  nor  are  we  deficient,  if  we  eat  not.  But  beware,  lest  by  any 
means  this  right,  which  you  claim,  become  a  pernicious  example  to  the 
weak.  For  if  any  one  behold  you,  who  have  knowledge,  placed  at  table 
in  an  idol's  temple,  will  not  the  conscience  of  him  that  is  weak,  be  encour- 


HAUL'S  FIRST  LETTER  TO  THE  CORINTHIANS.  263 

aged  to  eat  things  offered  to  idols  1  And  shall  the  weak  brother,  for 
whom  Christ  died,  perish  through  your  knowledge  ?  But  when  you 
thus  transgress  against  the  brethren,  and  wound  their  scrupulous  con- 
science, you  sin  against  Christ.  Therefore,  if  food  ensnare  my  brother, 
I  will  never  eat  flesh,  lest  I  should  cause  my  brother  to  sin. 

Am  I  not  free  ?  am  I  not  an  apostle  1  have  I  not  seen  Jesus  Christ 
our  Lord  1  are  you  not  my  work  in  the  Lord  ?  If  I  am  not  an  apostle 
to  others,  yet  doubtless,  I  am  to  you  :  for  you  are  the  seal  of  my  apos- 
tleship  in  the  Lord.  My  defence,  to  those  who  condemn  me,  is  this  ; 
Have  we  not  a  right  to  eat  and  to  drink  ■?  Have  we  not  a  right  to  take 
about  with  us  a  Christian  wife,  as  well  as  the  other  apostles,  and  the 
brethren  of  the  Lord,  and  Peter  1  Or  have  I  only,  and  Barnabas,  no 
right  to  forbear  labor  "!  Who  ever  serves  in  war  at  his  own  expense  ? 
who  plants  a  vineyard,  and  does  not  eat  of  its  fruit  1  or  wht)  feeds  a 
flock,  and  does  not  partake  of  the  milk  of  the  flock  1  Do  I  assert  these 
things  only  on  human  authority  ?  or  does  not  the  law,  also,  declare  the 
same.  For  it  is  written  in  the  law  of  Moses,  Thou  shalt  not  muzzle  the 
mouth  of  the  ox,  while  treading  out  the  grain.  Does  God  take  care  for 
the  oxen  alone  ?  Or  does  he,  in  its  foil  purpose,  declare  it  on  our 
account  ?  Undoubtedly,  it  was  written  on  our  account ;  for  he  who 
ploughs,  and  he  who  thrashes,  ought  to  do  so  in  the  hope  of  sharing  the 
grain.  If  we  have  sown  in  you  spiritual  things,  is  it  a  great  acquisition, 
if  we  reap  your  secular  things  1  If  others  partake  of  this  right  over 
you,  ought  not  we  rather  1  However,  we  have  not  availed  ourselves  of 
this  right ;  but  we  endure  all  things,  lest  we  should  occasion  any  im- 
pediment to  the  gospel  of  Christ.  Do  you  not  know,  that  those  who 
are  employed  in  sacred  oflices,  subsist  from  the  temple  1  And  that 
those  who  attend  at  the  altar,  are  partakers  with  the  altar.  Thus 
also,  the  Lord  has  appointed  to  those  who  preach  the  gospel,  that  they 
should  live  by  the  gospel.  But  I  have  used  none  of  these  things  ;  nor 
have  I  thus  written,  that  it  should  be  so  done  to  me ;  since  it  were  better 
for  me  to  die,  than  that  any  one  should  invalidate  my  triumph.  For 
when  I  preach  the  gospel,  I  have  no  cause  of  exultation ;  because 
necessity  is  laid  on  me  ;  and  indeed,  alas  for  me,  if  I  preach  not  the 
gospel !  Further,  if  I  do  this  voluntarily,  I  have  a  reward ;  but  if  re- 
luctantly, a  dispensation  is  still  consigned  to  me.  What  then  is  my 
reward  1  That  when  I  preach  the  gospel  of  Christ,  I  may  make  the 
Christian  ministry  without  charge,  so  as  not  to  avail  myself  of  my  right 
in  the  gospel. 

Therefore,  though  I  am  free  with  respect  to  all  men,  yet  I  have  en- 
slaved myself  to  all,  that  I  might  gain  the  more.  Thus,  to  the  Jews  I 
became  as  a  Jew,  that  I  might  gain  the  Jews ;  to  those  who  were  under 
the  law,  as  under  the  law,  (not  being  myself  under  the  law,)  that  I  might 
gain  those  who  are  under  the  law  ;  to  those  who  are  without  the  law, 
as  without  the  law,  (yet  not  being  without  the  law  to  God,  but  under  the 
law  to  Christ),  that  I  might  gain  those  who  are  without  the  law.     To 


964  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

the  weak  I  became  as  weak,  that  I  might  gain  the  weak.  I  became  all 
things  to  all  men,  that  I  might  save  all.  Now,  I  do  this  with  a  view  to 
the  reward,  that  I  may  participate  in  it  with  you. 

Are  you  not  apprised,  that  all  of  those  who  run  in  a  race,  are  indeed 
engaged,  but  one  only  receives  the  prize  1  Thus  run,  that  you  may  at- 
tain. And  every  one  who  severely  contends,  is  self-governed  in  all  re- 
spects. Now  they  indeed  do  it,  that  they  may  obtain  a  perishable,  but 
we,  an  imperishable  crown.  I  therefore  so  run,  as  under  inspection  ;  I 
so  contend,  not  as  striking  the  air  :  but  I  repress  my  body,  and  subdue 
it ;  lest  by  any  means,  having  been  a  herald  to  others,  I  myself  should 
be  rejected. 

Moreover,  brethren,  I  wish  you  to  know,  that  all  our  fathers  were 
under  the  cloud,  and  all  passed  through  the  sea  ;  and  were  all  baptized 
into  Moses,  in  the  cloud,  and  in  the  sea  ;  and  all  shared  the  same  spir- 
itual food ;  and  all  used  the  same  spiritual  drink ;  (for  they  drank  from 
that  spiritual  rock  which  attended  them  ;  and  that  rock  was  the  Mes- 
siah). Yet,  with  most  of  them  God  was  displeased  ;  for  they  were  de- 
stroyed in  the  desert. 

Now,  all  these  things  occurred  as  admonitions  to  us  ;  that  we  should 
not  cherish  sinful  desires,  even  as  they  did.  Nor  let  us  become  idol- 
aters, as  some  of  them  were ;  as  it  is  written,  The  people  sat  down 
to  eat  and  to  drink,  and  rose  up  to  dance.  Nor  let  us  practise  impurity, 
as  some  of  them  committed  it,  and  fell  in  one  day  twenty-three  thou- 
sand. Nor  let  us  grievously  tempt  Christ,  as  even  some  of  them  tempt- 
ed him,  and  perished  by  serpents.  Nor  let  us  murmur,  as  even  some 
of  them  murmured,  and  perished  by  the  destroyer.  But  these  things 
happened  to  them  as  examples  ;  and  they  are  written  for  our  admoni- 
tion, on  whom  the  ends  of  the  ages  are  come.  Therefore,  let  him  who 
trusts  that  he  stands,  beware  lest  he  fall.  No  temptation  has  assail- 
ed you,  except  such  as  belongs  to  humanity.  God,  however,  is  faith- 
ful, who  will  not  permit  you  to  be  tempted  above  your  ability  ;  but 
with  the  trial,  will  also  effect  a  deliverance,  that  you  may  be  able  to 
bear  it. 

Therefore,  my  dearly  beloved,  fly  from  idolatry.  I  speak  as  to  wise 
men ;  judge  what  I  say.  The  cup  of  blessing,  for  which  we  give  thanks, 
is  it  not  a  participation  of  the  blood  of  Christ  7  The  loaf  which  we 
break,  is  it  not  a  participation  of  the  body  of  Christ  ?  Because  there 
is  one  loaf,  we,  who  are  many,  are  one  body  ;  for  we  all  partake  of  the 
one  loaf.  Behold  Israel  according  to  the  flesh :  are  not  those  who  eat 
the  sacrifices,  partakers  with  the  altar  ?  What  then  do  I  affirm  1  that 
an  idol  is  any  thing  ?  or  that  what  is  offered  to  idols  is  any  thing  ?  No ; 
but  that  what  the  pagans  offer,  they  offer  to  demons,  and  not  to  God» 
Now,  I  would  not  that  you  should  become  partakers  with  demons.  You 
cannot  drink  the  cup  of  the  Lord,  and  the  cup  of  demons  :  you  cannot 
partake  of  the  Lord's  table,  and  the  table  of  demons.  Do  we  provoke 
the  Lord  to  jealousy  1  are  we  more  powerful  than  he  l 


PAUL'S  FIKST  LETTER  TO  THE   CORINTHIANS.  865 

All  things  are  lawful,  but  all  are  not  expedient ;  all  things  are  law- 
ful for  me,  but  all  do  not  improve.  Let  no  one  seek  his  own  good  only, 
but  that  of  another  also.  Whatever  is  sold  in  the  shambles,  eat,  mak- 
ing no  inquiry  on  account  of  conscience.  For,  the  earth  is  the  Lord's, 
and  all  that  is  in  it.  And  if  any  of  those  who  disbelieve,  invite  you, 
and  you  are  disposed  to  go  ;  eat  whatever  is  placed  before  you,  asking 
no  question,  through  conscience.  But  if  any  one  say  to  you.  This  is  a 
thing  sacrificed  to  an  idol,  do  not  eat,  as  well  from  regard  to  him  who 
informed  you,  as  to  conscience.  However,  I  do  not  intend  your  own 
conscience,  but  that  of  the  other.  Yet,  why  is  my  liberty  determined 
by  the  conscience  of  another  1  Besides,  if  I  partake,  with  thanksgiv- 
ing, why  am  I  reproached  on  account  of  that  for  which  I  give  thanks  t 
Therefore,  whether  you  eat,  or  whether  you  drink,  or  whatever  you  do, 
do  all  to  the  praise  of  God.  Give  no  cause  of  offence,  either  to  the 
Jews,  or  to  the  Greeks,  or  to  the  church  of  God  :  even  as  I  also  please 
all  men  in  all  things  ;  not  seeking  my  own  interest  only,  but  that  of  the 
many,  that  they  may  be  saved.  Be  imitators  of  me,  even  as  I  also  am 
of  Christ. 

Now  I  commend  you,  brethren,  because  you  remember  me  in  all 
things,  and  obey  the  directions,  even  as  I  committed  them  to  you.  But 
I  wish  you  to  know,  that  the  head  of  every  man  is  Christ ;  and  that  the 
head  of  the  woman  is  the  man  ;  and  that  the  head  of  Christ  is  God. 
Every  man,  praying  or  instructing,  having  his  head  covered,  dishonors 
his  head.  And  every  woman  who  prays  or  instructs,  with  her  head  un- 
covered, dishonors  her  head :  for  it  is  precisely  the  same  with  being 
shorn.  Therefore,  if  a  woman  be  unveiled,  she  might  as  well  be  shorn : 
but  since  it  is  disgraceful,  that  a  woman  should  be  shorn,  or  shaven,  let 
her  be  veiled.  Now  a  man,  indeed,  ought  not  to  cover  his  head,  since 
he  is  the  representation  and  glory  of  God :  but  the  woman  is  the  glory 
of  the  man.  Besides,  the  man  does  not  proceed  from  the  woman  ;  but 
the  woman  from  the  man  :  and  moreover,  the  man  was  not  created  for 
the  woman  ;  but  the  woman  for  the  man.  (On  this  account,  the  woman 
is  subject  to  authority,  and  should  be  veiled,  in  consequence  of  the  mes- 
sengers.) Yet,  the  man  is  not  independent  of  the  woman,  nor  the  wo- 
man independent  of  the  man,  in  the  Lord.  Further,  as  the  woman  is 
from  the  man,  so  also,  is  the  man  by  the  woman ;  but  all  things  are 
from  God.  Judge  among  yourselves,  is  it  becoming,  that  a  woman 
should  pray  to  God,  unveiled  1  Does  not  even  nature  herself  teach  you, 
that  if  a  man  indeed  has  long  hair,  it  is  a  disgrace  to  liim  1  But,  if  a 
woman  has  long  hair,  it  is  a  praise  to  her  ;  for  her  hair  was  given  her, 
instead  of  a  veil.  However,  if  any  one  resolves  to  be  contentious,  we 
have  no  such  custom,  nor  the  churches  of  Christ. 

Moreover,  I  do  not  praise  you  when  I  declare  this  ;  that  you  assemble, 
not  for  the  better,  but  for  the  worse.  For  indeed,  in  the  first  place,  when 
you  convene  in  the  church,  I  hear  that  there  are  divisions  among  you  ; 

34 


266  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

and  I  partly  believe  it :  since,  there  must  even  be  factions  among  you  ; 
that  those  who  are  approved,  may  be  manifested  among  you.  When 
therefore,  you  convene  in  one  place,  it  is  not  to  eat  the  Lord's  supper. 
For  every  one  who  eats,  previously  takes  his  own  supper,  and  one,  in- 
deed, is  hungry,  and  another  is  satisfied.  What,  have  you  not  houses 
in  which  to  eat  and  to  drink  1  or  do  you  pervert  the  church  of  God,  and 
disparage  those  who  are  poor  1  What  shall  I  say  to  you  1  shall  I  praise 
you  for  this  1     I  do  not  praise  you. 

For  I  received  from  the  Lord,  what  I  also  communicated  to  you,  that 
the  Lord  Jesus,  on  the  night  in  which  he  was  surrendered,  took  bread  ; 
and  having  given  thanks,  he  broke  it,  and  said.  Take,  eat ;  this  is  my 
body,  which  is  broken  for  you  ;  do  this  in  commemoration  of  me.  In 
a  similar  manner,  he  took  the  cup  also,  when  he  had  supped,  saying. 
This  cup  is  the  new  covenant  in  my  blood ;  do  this,  as  often  as  you 
drink  it,  in  commemoration  of  me.  Therefore,  as  frequently  as  you 
eat  this  bread,  and  drink  this  cup,  you  symbolize  the  Lord's  death,  till 
he  come.  Thus  then,  whoever  shall  eat  the  bread,  and  drink  the  cup  of 
the  Lord,  unworthily,  profanes  the  body  and  blood  of  the  Lord.  But 
let  a  man  scrutinize  himself,  and  then,  let  him  eat  of  that  bread,  and 
drink  of  that  cup.  For  he  who  eats  and  drinks,-  in  an  unworthy  man- 
ner, eats  and  drinks  correction  to  himself,  not  distinguishing  the  Lord's 
body.  For  this  cause,  many  among  you  are  sick  and  infirm,  and  a  con- 
siderable number  have  died.  But,  if  we  would  search  ourselves,  we 
should  not  be  disapproved.  However,  when  we  are  tried  by  the  Lord, 
we  are  corrected,  that  we  may  not  be  condemned  with  the  world. 
Therefore,  my  brethren,  when  you  assemble  to  eat,  cordially  receive 
each  other.  If  any  one  hunger,  let  him  eat  at  home ;  that  you  may  not 
assemble  to  be  chastened.  Now  what  remains,  I  wUl  regulate  when  I 
arrive. 

Moreover,  concerning  spiritual  persons,  brethren,  I  would  not  have 
you  ignorant.  You  know  that  you  were  pagans,  hurried  away  after 
dumb  idols,  even  as  you  happened  to  be  led.  I  therefore  apprise  you, 
that  no  one,  speaking  by  the  Spirit  of  God,  pronounces  Jesus  execrated ; 
and  that  no  one  can  affirm,  that  Jesus  is  the  Lord,  except  by  the  Holy 
Spirit. 

'  Now,  there  are  diversities  of  gracious  endowments,  but  the  same 
Spirit.  And  there  are  diversities  of  ministrations,  but  the  same  Lord. 
And  there  are  diversities  of  operations,  but  the  same  God  who  works 
all  things  among  all.  But  the  manifestation  of  the  Spirit  is  imparted  to 
every  one  for  the  general  benefit.  Further,  to  one,  indeed,  through  the 
Spirit,  is  given  the  doctrine  of  wisdom  ;  and  to  another,  the  doctrine  of 
knowledge,  according  to  the  same  Spirit ;  and  to  another,  faith  by  the 
same  Spirit ;  and  to  another,  the  gifts  of  healing  by  the  same  Spirit ; 
and  to  another,  miraculous  powers  ;  and  to  another,  prophecy  ;  and  to 
another,  the  discrimination  of  spirits  ;  and  to  another,  various  foreign 


PAUL'S  FIRST  LETTER  TO  THE  CORINTHIANS.  267 

languages ;  and  to  another,  the  interpretation  of  foreign  languages. 
Yet,  this  one  and  the  same  Spirit  effects  all  these  things,  dividing  to 
every  man  respectively,  as  he  pleases. 

Besides,  as  the  body  is  one,  and  has  many  members,  though  all  the 
members  of  that  one  body,  numerous  as  they  are,  constitute  one  body ; 
so  also  is  Christ.  For,  indeed,  in  one  Spirit  we  all  of  us  have  been 
baptized  into  one  body,  whether  Jews  or  Greeks,  whether  slaves  or  free* 
men  ;  and  all  have  been  made  to  drink  of  one  Spirit.  Since,  therefore, 
the  body  is  not  one  member,  but  many,  if  the  foot  should  say,  because  I 
am  not  the  hand,  I  do  not  belong  to  the  body ;  yet,  does  it  not  belong  to 
the  body  1  and  if  the  ear  should  say,  because  I  am  not  the  eye,  I  do  not 
belong  to  the  body ;  yet,  does  it  not  belong  to  the  body  1  If  the  whole 
body  were  an  eye,  where  would  be  the  hearing  1  if  the  whole  were 
hearing,  where  would  be  the  smelling  ?  But  now,  God  has  arranged 
every  one  of  the  members  in  the  body,  as  it  has  pleased  him.  Further, 
if  all  were  one  member,  where  would  be  the  body  1  But  as  it  is,  there 
are  indeed  many  members,  yet  only  one  body.  The  eye  cannot  say  to 
the  hand,  I  have  no  need  of  thee :  nor  again,  the  head  to  the  feet,  I 
have  no  necessity  for  you.  In  truth,  those  members  of  the  body,  which 
appear  to  be  the  more  feeble,  are  much  more  necessary :  and  those 
which  we  think  to  be  the  less  honorable  parts  of  the  body,  we  invest 
■with  more  abundant  honor  ;  and  consequently  our  ungraceful  parts  have 
more  abundant  gracefulness.  But,  our  graceful  parts  have  no  necessity. 
However,  God  has  jointly  tempered  the  body,  having  imparted  more 
abundant  honor  to  the  destitute  portion ;  that  there  may  be  no  division 
in  the  body,  but  that  the  members  may  have  the  very  same  sedulous 
care  for  each  other.  And  thus,  if  one  member  suffer,  all  the  members 
jointly  suffer  ;  or  if  one  member  be  honored,  all  the  members  jointly 
rejoice.  Moreover,  you  are  the  body  of  Christ,  and  members  in  part. 
Therefore,  these  indeed  God  has  placed  in  the  church ;  first,  apostles ; 
secondly,  prophets  ;  thirdly,  teachers  ;  subsequently,  miracles ;  then, 
gifts  of  healing ;  assistants  ;  directors  ;  diversities  of  foreign  languages. 
Are  all  apostles  ?  are  all  prophets  1  are  all  teachers  ?  have  all  miracu- 
lous powers  ?  do  all  possess  the  gifls  of  healing  1  do  all  speak  in  differ- 
ent languages  ?    do  all  interpret  7 

Now  you  zealously  desire  the  best  gifts  ;  and  yet,  I  show  you  by  far 
the  more  excellent  way. 

Though  I  could  speak  in  the  languages  of  men  and  of  angels,  but 
have  not  love,  I  become  like  sounding  brass,  or  a  noisy  cymbal.  And  if 
I  have  the  gift  of  prophecy,  and  comprehend  all  secrets  and  all  know- 
ledge ;  and  if  I  have  all  faith,  so  as  to  remove  mountains,  but  have  not 
love,  I  am  nothing.  And  if  I  distribute  all  my  goods  to  feed  the  poor, 
and  if  I  surrender  my  body  to  be  burned,  but  have  not  love,  it  profits 
me  nothing.  Love  greatly  forbears,  and  is  kind  ;  love  does  not  envy ; 
love  is  not  inconstant,  is  not  inflated,  does  not  conduct  indecorously,  is 
not  selfish,  is  not  exasperated,  devises  no  evil ;  does  not  rejoice  in  false- 


268  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

hood,  but  unitedly  rejoices  in  the  truth  ;  is  always  contented,  invariably 
confiding,  ever  full  of  hope,  and  at  all  times  patient.  This  love  never 
fails  :  but,  if  there  be  prophecies,  they  will  be  annulled  ;  or  if,  foreign 
languages,  they  will  cease;  or  if,  knowledge,  it  will  be  superseded. 
Besides,  we  know  only  in  part,  and  we  prophecy  in  part :  but  when  that 
which  is  perfect  conies,  then,  that  which  is  imperfect,  will  be  removed. 
When  I  was  a  child,  I  talked  like  a  child,  I  had  the  disposition  of  a 
child,  I  reasoned  as  a  child  :  but  when  I  became  a  man,  I  discarded 
childish  traits.  For,  We  now  look  into  an  uncertain  mirror ;  but  then, 
face  will  answer  to  face :  now  I  know  imperfectly ;  but  then,  I  shall 
amply  know,  even  as  I  also  am  completely  known.  Thus,  therefore, 
these  three  remain,  —  faith,  hope,  love;  —  but  the  greatest  of  these  is 
love.     Assiduously  follow  love. 

Moreover,  earnestly  desire  spiritual  gifts ;  but  particularly,  that  you 
may  instruct.  For  he  who  speaks  in  an  unknown  language,  does  not 
speak  to  men,  but  to  God  ;  since  no  one  understands  him  ;  however,  by 
the  Spirit  he  announces  secrets.  But  he  who  teaches,  addresses  men  for 
improvement,  and  exhortation,  and  admonition.  He  who  speaks  in  a 
strange  language,  improves  himself;  but  he  who  teaches,  improves  the 
church.  I  wish,  indeed,  that  you  all  spoke  in  foreign  languages,  but 
rather,  that  you  instructed  :  for  he  who  instructs,  is  greater  than  he  who 
speaks  in  various  languages ;  unless  some  one  interpret,  that  the  church 
may  receive  improvement.  And  now,  brethren,  if  I  should  come  to  you 
speaking  in  different  languages,  what  shall  I  profit  you,  except  I  shall 
speak  to  you  intelligibly,  by  revelation,  or  with  knowledge,  or  with 
instruction,  or  in  doctrine  1  In  like  manner,  if  inanimate  objects,  which 
impart  sound,  whether  pipe  or  harp,  do  not  distinguish  in  the  notes, 
how  shall  it  be  known  what  is  piped  or  harped  1  Further,  if  the  trum- 
pet give  an  unknown  sound,  who  will  prepare  for  battle  7  Even  thus, 
unless  you  pronounce  with  the  tongue  words  well  comprehended,  how 
shall  that  which  is  spoken  be  known  ?  Indeed,  you  would  talk  to  the 
wind.  There  are,  for  example,  a  certain  number  of  languages  in  the 
world,  and  not  one  of  them  is  unmeaning.  Yet,  if  I  know  not  the  im- 
port of  the  language,  I  shall  be  a  foreigner  to  him  who  speaks,  and  he 
who  speaks  will  be  a  foreigner  to  me.  Therefore,  since  you  are  ardent- 
ly desirous  of  spiritual  gifts,  you  also  seek  them,  that  you  may  abound 
for  the  improvement  of  the  church.  On  this  account,  let  him  who 
speaks  in  an  unknown  language,  so  pray,  that  some  one  may  interpret. 
For  if  I  pray  in  an  unknown  language,  my  spirit  prays,  but  my  meaning 
is  unprofitable.  What  then  is  the  conclusion  ?  I  will  pray  with  the 
spirit,  but  I  will  also  pray  with  perspicuity  :  I  will  sing  with  the  spirit, 
but  I  will  also  sing  with  perspicuity.  Otherwise,  should  you  give  thanks 
with  the  spirit,  how  will  the  unlearned  hearer  respond  to  your  offering 
of  gratitude,  since  he  knows  not  what  you  express  ?  For  you,  indeed, 
appropriately  give  thanks,  but  the  other  is  not  improved.  I  praise  God, 
speaking  in  different  languages,  more  than  all  of  you  :  but  in  a  church, 


PAUL'S  FIRST  LETTER  TO  THE  CORINTHIANS.  269 

I  would  rather  pronounce  five  sentences  with  clearness,  that  I  might 
also  instruct  others,  than  a  myriad  of  sentences  in  a  foreign  language. 

Brethren,  be  not  as  little  children  in  understanding  ;  however,  be  as 
infants  in  iniquity  ;  but  in  understanding,  be  mature.  It  is  written  in 
the  law.  Assuredly,  in  other  languages,  and  with  other  hps,  I  will  speak 
to  this  people  ;  but  then,  they  will  not  even  hear  me,  says  the  Lord. 
Therefore,  different  languages  constitute  a  sign,  not  to  those  who  con- 
fide, but  to  the  faithless  ;  whereas,  instruction  is  not  a  sign  to  the  dis- 
believing, but  those  who  believe.  If  then,  the  whole  church  be  conven- 
ed in  one  place,  and  all  speak  in  foreign  languages,  and  the  illiterate,  or 
unbelieving  enter,  will  they  not  assert,  that  you  are  insane  7  But  if  all 
teach,  and  an  unbeliever,  or  an  uninstructed  person  enter,  he  is  reprov- 
ed by  all,  he  is  searched  by  all ;  the  secrets  of  his  heart  are  displayed ; 
and  he  will  consequently  prostrate  himself,  and  worship  God,  proclaim- 
ing, that  God  is  actually  among  you. 

What  then  is  to  be  done,  brethren  ?  When  you  assemble,  each  of 
you  has  a  psalm,  has  a  discourse,  has  a  strange  language,  has  a  revela- 
tion, has  an  interpretation.  Let  all  things  be  done  for  improvement. 
And  if  any  one  speak  in  an  unknown  language,  let  it  be  by  two,  or  at 
most  three  sentences,  and  separately ;  and  let  one  interpret.  But  if 
there  be  no  interpreter,  let  him  be  silent  in  the  church  ;  yet,  let  him 
speak  to  himself,  and  to  God.  Now,  let  two  or  three  teachers  speak, 
and  let  the  others  investigate.  But  if  any  thing  be  revealed  to  another 
that  sits  by,  let  the  first  have  ceased  to  speak.  For  you  can  all  teach 
one  by  one,  that  all  may  learn,  and  all  may  be  admonished.  For  the 
spiritual  gifts  of  the  teachers  are  subjected  to  the  teachers.  Besides, 
God  is  not  the  author  of  disturbance,  but  of  peace. 

As  in  all  the  assemblies  of  the  saints,  let  your  women  keep  silence  in 
the  churches  :  for  they  are  not  permitted  to  speak  ;  but  [are  command- 
ed] to  obey,  as  the  law  also  declares.  And  if  they  desire  to  learn  any 
thing,  let  them  interrogate  their  husbands  at  home  ;  since  it  is  indecor- 
ous, that  women  should  speak  in  the  congregation.  What !  did  the 
word  of  God  proceed  from  you  ?  or  has  it  only  extended  to  you  ? 

If  any  one  pretends  to  be  an  instructer,  or  a  spiritual  person,  let  him 
acknowledge,  that  what  I  write  to  you  are  the  commandments  of  the 
Lord  ;  but  let  him  be  unknown  as  such,  who  does  not  acknowledge  this. 
Therefore,  brethren,  zealously  desire  to  instruct ;  and  forbid  not  to 
speak  in  foreign  languages.  But  let  all  things  be  done  decently,  and  in 
order. 

Now  I  make  known  to  you,  brethren,  the  gospel  which  I  preached  to 
you,  which  you  likewise  received,  and  in  which  you  stand  ;  by  which 
you  are  also  saved,  if  you  retain  that  doctrine  which  I  proclaimed  to 
you  ;  unless  indeed,  you  have  inconsiderately  believed.  For  I  commu- 
nicated to  you,  among  the  principal  things,  what  I  also  received  first, 
that  Christ  died  for  our  sins  according  to  the  scriptures  ;  and  that  he 
was  buried,  and  that  he  was  raised  to  life  on  the  third  day,  in  confor- 


270  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

mity  to  the  scriptures  ;  and  that  he  was  seen  by  Peter,  and  then  by  the 
twelve.  Afterwards,  he  was  seen  by  more  than  five  hundred  brethren 
at  once  ;  of  whom  the  greater  part  remain  to  this  time,  but  some  have 
deceased.  Subsequently,  he  was  seen  by  James  ;  and  then,  by  all  the 
apostles.  And  ultimately,  he  was  also  seen  by  me,  as  by  one  unseason- 
ably produced.  For  I  am  the  least  of  the  apostles,  who  am  not  worthy 
to  be  called  an  apostle,  because  I  persecuted  the  church  of  God.  But 
by  the  favor  of  God  I  am  what  I  am  ;  and  his  favor  which  was  imparted 
to  me,  was  not  in  vain  ;  for  I  have  labored  more  abundantly  than  all  of 
them  ;  yet  not  I,  but  the  favor  of  God  which  is  with  me.  Therefore, 
whether  I  or  they  preach,  we  thus  preach,  and  you  have  thus  believed. 

Since  then,  the  resurrection  of  Christ  from  the  dead,  is  thus  proclaim- 
ed, how  can  some  among  you  assert,  that  there  is  no  future  state  of  the 
dead.  For,  if  there  is  no  future  existence  of  the  dead,  Christ  has  not 
been  raised  :  and  if  Christ  has  not  been  raised,  our  preaching  is  ab- 
solutely false,  and  your  faith  is  also  false.  Moreover,  we  are  even  false 
witnesses  concerning  God  ;  because  we  have  testified  in  relation  to  God, 
that  he  raised  Christ ;  whom  he  raised  not,  if,  in  fact,  the  dead  are  not 
raised.  And  if  the  dead  are  not  raised,  Christ  has  not  been  raised. 
Further,  if  Christ  has  not  been  raised,  your  belief  is  useless  ;  you  are 
still  in  your  sins.  Certainly  also,  those  who  are  fallen  asleep  for  Christ, 
are  lost :  and  we,  if  our  hope  in  Christ,  must  be  limited  to  this  life,  are 
of  all  men  the  most  miserable. 

But  indeed,  Christ  is  raised  from  the  dead,  the  first-fruit  of  those  who 
have  fallen  asleep.  For,  since  through  a  man  came  death,  through  a 
man  comes  also  the  future  life  of  the  dead.  Therefore,  as  by  Adam  all 
die,  even  so  by  Christ  all  will  be  made  alive.  But  every  one  in  his 
appropriate  class ;  Christ  the  first-fruit ;  afterwards,  those  who  are 
Christ's  at  his  coming.  (The  end  will  then  arrive,  when  Christ  wiU 
surrender  the  kingdom  to  God,  even  the  Father ;  after  God  will  have 
abolished  all  dominion,  and  all  authority,  and  power  :  since  Christ  will 
reign,  till  God  has  put  all  the  enemies  under  his  feet.  The  last  enemy, 
even  death,  will  be  destroyed  :  for  God  has  put  all  things  under  his  feet. 
But  it  is  evident,  when  the  scripture  declares.  All  things  are  subjected, 
that  it  is  with  the  exception  of  God,  who  has  subjected  all  things  to 
Christ.  Now,  even  the  Son  himself,  when  all  things  shall  be  subdued 
to  him,  will  also  submit  to  God,  who  subjected  all  things  to  him,  that 
God  may  universally  rule.) 

Otherwise,  what  advantage  will  they  derive,  who  receive  a  deadly 
baptism,  if  the  dead  are  not  raised  at  all  1  Why  indeed  are  they  thus 
fatally  baptized  1  And  why  are  we  exposed  to  danger  every  hour  1 
Shall  I  deprecate  our  triumphant  confidence,  which  I  share  in  Christ 
Jesus  our  Lord,  and  through  which  I  daily  die  7  If,  to  speak  according 
to  the  practice  of  men,  I  have  fought  with  wild  beasts  at  Ephesus,  what 
does  it  avail  me  1  If  the  dead  rise  not,  let  us  eat  and  drink ;  for  to- 
morrow we  die.     Be  not  deceived :   vicious  intercourse  contaminates 


PAUL'S  FIRST  LETTER  TO  THE  CORINTHIANS.  271 

good  morals.     Awake,  as  you  ought  to  do,  and  sin  not ;  for  some  of 
you  are  ignorant  of  God  ;  I  allege  this  to  your  disgrace. 

But,  some  one  will  say.  How  can  the  dead  be  raised  1  and  with  what 
kind  of  body  do  they  come  1  Inconsiderate  man,  that  which  you  sow 
is  not  brought  to  life,  unless  it  die  !  And  as  to  what  you  sow,  the  body, 
which  it  will  assume,  is  not  sown,  but  a  single  grain  ;  perhaps  of  wheat, 
or  of  some  of  the  other  kinds.  But  God  gives  it  a  body,  as  it  has  pleas- 
ed him,  and  to  each  of  the  seeds  its  peculiar  body.  All  flesh  is  not  the 
same  flesh  :  but  the  flesh  of  men,  and  of  beasts,  of  birds,  and  of  fishes, 
actually  differ  from  each  other.  There  are  also  celestial  bodies,  and 
terrestrial  bodies  :  but  the  glory  of  the  celestial,  and  that  of  the  terres- 
trial, are  indeed  different.  There  is  one  splendor  of  the  sun,  and  ano- 
ther splendor  of  the  moon,  and  another  splendor  of  the  stars  ;  moreover, 
star  transcends  star  in  effulgence.  Therefore,  even  the  future  existence 
of  the  dead  is  probable.  The  body  is  buried  in  decay,  it  is  raised  un- 
decaying  ;  it  is  buried  in  humiliation,  it  is  raised  in  glory  ;  it  is  buried 
in  weakness,  it  is  raised  in  power ;  it  is  buried  a  physical  body,  it  is 
raised  a  spiritual  body.  There  is  an  animal  body,  and  there  is  a  spirit- 
ual body.  And  thus  it  is  written,  The  first  man,  Adam,  became  a  living 
body ;  but  the  last  Adam  is  a  reanimating  spirit.  The  spiritual,  how- 
ever, was  not  first,  but  the  natural ;  and  then  the  spiritual.  The  first 
man,  from  the  earth,  was  terrestrial ;  the  second  man,  from  heaven,  is 
celestial.  As  is  the  earthly,  such  wiU  they  also  be,  that  are  earthly  ; 
and  as  is  the  heavenly,  such  will  they  also  be,  that  are  heavenly.  And 
as  we  have  sustained  the  representation  of  the  earthly  body,  we  shall 
also  sustain  the  representation  of  the  heavenly  one. 

Besides,  this  I  declare,  brethren,  that  flesh  and  blood  cannot  inherit 
the  kingdom  of  God;  nor  can  decay  become,  by  inheritance,  undecay- 
ing.  Behold,  I  announce  to  you  a  secret ;  all  of  us  will  not  indeed 
die,  but  all  of  us  will  be  changed,  in  a  moment,  in  the  glance  of  an  eye, 
at  the  last  trumpet ;  for  it  will  sound,  and  then  the  dead  wiU  be  raised 
imperishable,  and  we  sheJl  be  changed.  For  this  perishable  must  be 
rendered  imperishable,  and  this  mortal  be  clothed  with  immortality. 
Now  when  this  perishable  shall  have  become  imperishable,  and  this 
mortal  shall  have  been  invested  with  immortality,  then  the  declaration  of 
scripture  will  be  accomplished.  Death  is  overwhelmed  forever.  Where 
is  thy  sting,  O  death  !  where,  thy  victory,  O  hades  !  For  the  sting  of 
death  is  sin  ;  and  the  dominion  of  sin  is  the  law.  Now,  thanks  be  to 
God,  who  gives  us  the  victory,  through  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ. 

Therefore,  my  beloved  brethren,  be  steadfast,  unmoved,  always  abound- 
ing in  the  work  of  the  Lord ;  knowing  that  your  labor  in  the  Lord  is 
not  vain. 

Moreover,  concerning  the  contribution  for  the  Christians,  as  I  have 
directed  the  churches  of  Galatia,  even  thus  do  you  proceed.  On  the 
first  day  of  every  week,  let  each  of  you  lay  something  aside,  depositing 
as  he  has  been  prospered,  that  when  I  come,  there  may  be  then  no  col- 


272  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

lections.  And  when  I  arrive,  those  whom  you  shall  approve,  I  will  send, 
with  letters,  to  convey  your  liberality  to  Jerusalem.  Or,  if  it  be  proper 
that  even  I  should  go,  they  shall  accompany  me.  Further,  I  will  come 
to  you,  when  I  have  passed  through  Macedonia ;  (for  I  am  to  pass 
through  it)  ;  and  perhaps,  I  shall  remain,  indeed,  and  winter  with  you, 
that  you  may  conduct  me  on  the  way  where  I  shall  go.  For  I  wish  to 
see  you  at  this  time,  not  merely  in  passing;  but  I  hope  to  remain  with 
you  for  some  time,  if  the  Lord  permit.  However,  I  shall  continue  at 
Ephesus  till  Pentecost.  For  a  great  door  of  employment  is  opened  to 
me ;  yet,  there  are  many  opposers. 

Now,  if  Timothy  has  arrived,  see  that  he  abide  among  you  without 
fear ;  for  he  performs  even  as  I  do,  the  work  of  the  Lord.  Let  no  one, 
therefore,  despise  him ;  but  conduct  him  on  his  journey  in  peace,  that 
he  may  come  to  me  :  for  I  expect  him  with  the  brethren.  And  in  rela- 
tion to  our  brother  Apollos,  I  earnestly  requested  him,  that  he  would 
repair  to  you  with  the  brethren :  but  he  was  by  no  means  disposed  to  go 
now  ;  yet,  he  will  go,  when  he  shall  have  a  convenient  opportunity. 

Be  vigilant,  stand  firmly  in  the  faith,  acquit  yourselves  like  men,  be 
energetic.     Let  all  things  be  done  by  you  in  love. 

Now  1  entreat  you,  brethren,  as  you  know  that  the  family  of  Stepha- 
nas is  the  first-fruit  of  Achaia,  and  that  they  have  devoted  themselves  to 
the  service  of  the  saints,  that  you  also  kindly  demean  yourselves  towards 
them,  and  to  every  one  who  co-operates  and  labors.  I  rejoice  at  the 
coming  of  Stephanas,  and  Fortunatus,  and  Achaicus ;  for  that  which 
was  wanted  on  your  part  they  have  supplied,  and  have  refreshed  my 
spirit  and  yours  :  therefore,  acknowledge  those  that  are  such. 

The  churches  of  Asia  salute  you.  Aquila  and  Priscilla  afiectionately 
salute  you  in  the  Lord,  with  the  Christian  congregation  in  their  house. 
All  the  brethren  salute  you.  Salute  each  other  with  a  holy  kiss.  This 
is  the  salutation  of  Paul,  with  my  own  hand.  If  any  one  love  not  the 
Lord  Jesus  Christ,  he  shall  be  separated ;  our  Lord  comes.  May  the 
grace  of  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ  be  with  you  !  My  love  be  with  you  all 
in  Christ  Jesus ! 


THE  SECOND  LETTER  OF  PAUL  TO  THE 
CORINTHIANS. 

Paul,  an  apostle  of  Jesus  Christ,  by  the  will  of  God,  and  Timothy 
the  brother,  to  the  church  of  God  which  is  at  Corinth,  with  all  the 
Christians  who  are  in  all  Achaia  ;  grace  be  to  you,  and  peace,  from 
God  our  Father,  and  from  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ ! 

Praised  be  the  God  and  Father  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  the  father 
of  tender  mercies,  and  the  God  of  all  consolation  ;  who  comforts  us  in 
all  our  aflSiction,  that  we  may  be  able  to  comfort  those  who  are  in  any 
affliction,  by  the  consolation  with  which  we  ourselves  are  comforted  of 
God.  For  as  the  sufferings  of  Christ  abound  with  respect  to  us,  so  also 
our  consolation  abounds  through  Christ.  For,  if  we  are  afflicted,  it  is 
for  your  encouragement  and  salvation ;  and  if  we  are  comforted,  it  is 
likewise  for  your  encouragement,  which  exerted  itself  by  enduring  the 
same  sufferings,  which  we  also  endure.  And  our  hope  concerning  you 
is  steadfast ;  aware,  that  as  you  are  partakers  of  these  sufferings,  so 
you  will  also  be  of  this  encouragement.  Therefore,  we  wish  you  to 
know,  brethren,  respecting  our  affliction  which  befell  us  in  Asia ;  that 
we  were  exceedingly  pressed  above  our  strength,  so  that  we  despaired 
even  of  life.  However,  we  received  the  sentence  of  death  in  ourselves, 
that  we  might  not  trust  in  ourselves,  but  in  God,  who  raises  the  dead ; 
who  rescued  us  from  so  great  a  death,  and  does  rescue  us  ;  in  whom  we 
trust  that  he  will  even  yet  rescue  us ;  you  also  co-operating  in  prayer 
for  us,  that  the  benefit  imparted  to  us  through  many  persons,  may  be 
gratefully  acknowledged  by  many,  on  our  account. 

For  our  triumph  is  this,  the  testimony  of  our  conscience,  that  with 
integrity  and  sincerity  towards  God,  not  with  secular  wisdom,  but  by 
the  favor  of  God,  we  have  conducted  ourselves  in  the  world,  and  more 
particularly  among  you.  For  we  write  no  other  things  to  you,  than 
what  you  read,  and  also  acknowledge ;  and  I  hope  that  even  to  the  end 
you  will  acknowledge  ;  considering,  indeed,  you  have  acknowledged  us 
in  part,  that  we  are  your  triumph,  as  you  will  likewise  be  ours,  in  the 
day  of  the  Lord  Jesus. 

And  in  this  persuasion,  I  previously  wished  to  come  to  you,  that  you 
might  have  a  second  privilege  ;  and  to  pass  on  from  you  into  Macedo- 
nia, and  to  return  to  you  from  that  country,  and  to  be  sent  forward  by 
you  into  Judea.  When  therefore,  I  intended  this,  did  I  really  show  any 
inconstancy?  or  are  my  purposes  according  to  a  vicious  disposition, 
that  my  declarations  should  be  deemed  faithless  1  Indeed,  as  certainly 
as  God  is  faithful,  our  doctrine  among  you  was  not  with  duplicity :  since 
Jesus  Christ,  the  Son  of  God,  who  was  proclaimed  to  you  by  us,  even 
35 


274  APOSTOLIC   PRODUCTIONS. 

by  me,  and  Sylvanus,  and  Timothy,  was  not  a  contradiction ;  but  in 
him  all  was  consistent.  For  all  the  promises  of  God,  announced  through 
us,  were  confirmed  in  him,  and  verified  in  him,  to  the  glory  of  God. 
Now  he  who  establishes  us  with  you  in  Christ,  and  has  consecrated  us, 
is  God ;  who  has  also  sealed  us,  and  given  us  the  pledge  of  the  Spirit 
in  our  hearts. 

Moreover,  I  invoke  God  as  a  witness  to  my  soul,  that  to  spare  you,  I 
have  not  hitherto  proceeded  to  Corinth.  (Not  because  we  domineer 
over  you  through  the  faith,  but  we  are  mutual  promoters  of  your  joy  ; 
for  by  the  faith  you  stand). 

Besides,  I  determined  this  with  myself,  that  I  would  not  come  again 
to  you  in  sorrow.  For  if  I  should  grieve  you,  who  indeed  could  make 
me  rejoice,  but  he  that  is  grieved  by  me.  And  I  have  thus  written  to 
you  on  this  subject,  lest  when  I  came,  I  should  have  sorrow  for  those, 
on  whose  account  I  ought  to  rejoice  ;  having  confidence  in  you  all,  that 
my  joy  is  the  joy  of  you  all.  For,  from  much  affliction  and  extreme 
anguish  of  heart,  I  wrote  to  you,  with  many  tears  ;  not  that  you  might 
be  grieved,  but  that  you  might  know  the  very  abundant  love  which  I 
have  for  you. 

Now,  if  any  individual  has  caused  grief,  yet  some  of  you  have  not 
grieved  me  ;  that  I  may  not  accuse  you  all.  Sufficient  to  such  a  person 
is  that  reprehension,  which  was  inflicted  by  the  majority.  So  that,  on 
the  contrary,  you  ought  more  willingly  to  forgive  and  to  comfort  him  ; 
lest  such  an  one  should  be  overwhelmed  by  excessive  sorrow.  I  there- 
fore entreat  you  publicly  to  confirm  your  love  towards  him.  Further, 
I  have  written  for  this  purpose,  that  I  might  completely  prove  you, 
whether  you  are  obedient  in  all  things.  Now,  to  whom  you  forgive  any 
thing,  I  also  forgive.  And  even,  if  I  have  forgiven  any  thing  to  any  one, 
on  your  behalf  I  forgave  it,  in  the  person  of  Christ ;  that  we  may  not 
be  deceived  by  the  adversary ;  for  we  are  not  ignorant  of  his  devices. 

Moreover,  when  I  came  to  Troas  in  order  to  preach  the  gospel  of 
Christ,  and  a  door  was  opened  to  me  by  the  Lord,  I  had  no  rest  in  my 
mind,  because  I  did  not  find  Titus  my  brother :  therefore,  I  bid  them 
farewell,  and  departed  to  Macedonia. 

Now  thanks  be  rendered  to  God,  who  at  all  times  causes  us  to  triumph 
with  Christ,  and  who  diffuses  by  us,  the  fragrance  of  the  knowledge  of 
him,  in  every  place.  For  we  are  through  God  a  sweet  odor  of  Christ, 
among  those  that  are  saved,  and  among  those  that  are  lost.  To  these 
indeed,  we  are  the  destructive  odor  of  death ;  but  to  the  others,  the 
restorative  odor  of  life  :  and  for  these  things  who  is  qualified  1  How- 
ever, we  are  not  like  many  who  contaminate  the  word  of  God  :  but 
really  from  sincerity,  and  in  truth  from  God,  in  the  presence  of  God, 
we  speak  concerning  Christ. 

Must  we  again  proceed  to  recommend  ourselves  1  or  do  we  require, 
like  some  others,  recommendatory  letters  to  you,  or  recommendations 
from  you  1     You  are  our  letter,  written  on  our  hearts,  known  and  read 


PAUL'S  SECOND  LETTER  TO  THE  CORINTHIANS.  275 

by  all  men :  since  you  are  plainly  declared  to  be  the  letter  of  Christ 
communicated  by  us ;  not  written  with  ink,  but  by  the  Spirit  of  the 
living  God ;  not  on  tables  of  stone,  but  on  the  fleshly  tables  of  the  heart. 

Moreover,  through  Christ,  we  have  such  confidence  towards  God. 
Not  that  we  are  qualified  by  ourselves,  to  investigate  any  thing  as  from 
ourselves  ;  but  our  qualification  is  from  God  ;  who  has  even  rendered 
us  appropriate  dispensers  of  a  new  covenant ;  not  of  the  letter,  but  of 
the  spirit.  Now  the  letter  kills,  but  the  spirit  gives  life.  Besides,  if 
the  dispensation  of  death,  engraven  in  letters  on  stones,  was  illustrious, 
so  that  the  children  of  Israel  could  not  steadfastly  behold  the  face  of 
Moses,  through  the  splendor  of  his  countenance  ;  which  dispensation 
was  to  be  abolished  ;  how  much  more  shall  the  dispensation  of  the 
Spirit  be  illustrious  1  And,  if  the  ministry  of  condemnation  be  honor, 
how  much  more  does  the  ministry  of  pardon  surpass  in  honor.  And 
therefore,  that  which  was  glorified,  was  not  highly  distinguished  in  this 
respect ;  by  reason  of  the  glory  which  exceeds  it.  Further,  if  the  one 
is  annulled  by  glory,  how  much  more  must  the  other  remain  in  glory. 

Having  therefore  such  a  persuasion,  we  use  great  freedom  of  address ; 
and  are  not  like  Moses,  who  put  a  veil  over  his  face,  that  the  children 
of  Israel  might  not  directly  look  to  the  end  of  that  which  was  to  be 
abolished.  Now  their  minds  were  blinded  ;  for  to  this  day  the  same 
veil  remains  in  the  reading  of  the  old  covenant ;  it  not  being  discovered, 
that  it  is  removed  through  Christ.  Moreover,  when  Moses  is  read,  the 
veil  is  over  their  heart,  even  to  this  period.  Yet,  when  their  heart  shall 
turn  to  the  Lord,  the  veil  will  be  taken  away.  Indeed,  the  Lord  is  the 
Spirit ;  and  where  the  Spirit  of  the  Lord  is,  there,  is  freedom.  For  we 
all,  with  an  unveiled  face,  reflecting,  as  a  mirror,  the  glory  of  the  Lord, 
are  transformed  into  the  same  representation,  from  glory  to  glory,  as 
from  the  Lord  of  the  Spirit. 

Therefore,  having  this  ministry,  even  as  we  have  received  mercy,  we 
do  not  falter.  We  have  also  banished  the  secret,  disgraceful  practices, 
not  walking  in  subtUty,  or  perverting  the  word  of  God  ;  but,  by  the  ex- 
hibition of  the  truth,  recommending  ourselves  to  every  man's  conscience, 
in  the  sight  of  God.  If  therefore,  even  our  gospel  be  veiled,  it  is  veiled 
to  those  who  ruin  themselves  ;  by  whom  the  god  of  this  world  has  blind- 
ed the  minds  of  the  unbelievers,  so  that  tlie  lustre  of  the  glorious  gospel 
of  Christ,  who  is  the  representation  of  God,  does  not  enlighten  them. 
Now  we  proclaim  not  ourselves,  but  Christ  Jesus  as  Lord ;  and  ourselves 
as  your  servants,  on  account  of  Jesus.  For  God,  who  commanded  the 
light  to  shine  from  darkness,  has  shone  into  our  hearts,  to  impart  to  you 
the  radiance  of  his  glorious  knowledge,  in  the  face  of  Jesus  Christ. 

But  we  possess  this  treasure  in  earthen  vessels,  that  the  excellence  of 
the  power  might  be  ascribed  to  God,  and  not  to  us.  We  are  greatly 
pressed,  but  not  with  insuperable  difiiculty  ;  confounded,  but  not  with 
entire  suspense  ;  pursued,  but  not  outstripped ;  thrown  down,  but  not 
destroyed  ;  always  carrying  about  in  the  body,  the  dying  of  Jesus,  that 


876  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

the  life  of  Jesus  may  also  be  manifested  in  our  body.  For  we,  who  are 
alive,  are  continually  exposed  to  death  in  the  cause  of  Jesus  ;  that  the 
life  of  Jesus  may  also  be  displayed  in  our  mortal  nature. 

Thus  then,  death  operates  strongly  in  us,  but  life  in  you.  Yet,  having 
the  same  spirit  of  fsdth,  according  to  what  is  written,  I  believed,  and 
therefore  I  have  spoken  ;  we  also  believe,  and  therefore  speak ;  knowing 
that  he  who  raised  the  Lord  Jesus,  will  raise  us  also  through  Jesus,  who 
will  present  us  jointly  with  you.  For  all  our  sufferings  are  on  your  ac- 
count, that  the  accumulated  benefit  might  overflow,  by  the  thanksgiving 
of  many,  to  the  glory  of  God. 

For  which  reason,  we  faint  not ;  but,  even  though  our  external  man 
is  wasted,  yet,  the  internal  man  is  renewed  day  by  day.  Besides,  this 
momentary  lightness  of  our  affliction  is  working  for  us  a  vastly  exceed- 
ing, everlasting  weight  of  glory ;  while  we  aim  not  at  the  things  which 
are  visible,  but  at  those  which  are  invisible  ;  for  the  things  which  are 
visible  are  temporal ;  but  those  which  are  invisible  are  eternal.  Since 
we  know,  that  when  this  tent  of  our  earthly  residence  is  destroyed,  we 
have  a  structure  from  God,  an  edifice  not  made  by  hands,  eternal  in  the 
heavens.  But  yet,  in  this  tent  we  groan,  ardently  desiring  permanently 
to  occupy  our  heavenly  habitation.  And  surely,  if  we  occupy  it,  we 
shall  not  be  found  destitute.  As  I  intimated,  we  that  are  in  the  tent 
groan,  being  burdened  ;  not  because  we  wish  to  be  dispossessed,  but  to 
be  put  into  perpetual  possession,  that  what  is  mortal  may  be  absorbed  in 
life.  Now  he,  who  has  powerfully  incited  us  to  this  very  wish,  is  God  ; 
who  has  also  given  us  the  pledge  of  the  Spirit.  Consequently,  we  are 
always  courageous,  because  aware,  that  while  we  sojourn  in  the  body, 
we  are  exiled  from  the  Lord  ;  (for  we  walk  by  faith,  not  by  sight) ;  we 
are  indeed  undaunted,  and  are  complacently  disposed  rather  to  be  absent 
from  the  body,  and  to  be  present  with  the  Lord.  And  therefore,  we  are 
exceedingly  ambitious,  that,  whether  present  or  absent,  we  may  be 
highly  acceptable  to  him.  For  we  must  all  appear  before  the  tribunal 
of  Christ  ;  that  every  one  may  receive  according  to  what  he  has  done 
in  the  body,  whether  it  be  good  or  evil. 

Realizing  therefore  the  fear  of  the  Lord,  we  persuade  men  ;  and  we 
are  manifested  to  God ;  and  I  trust  that  we  are  also  manifested  even  to 
your  consciences.  However,  we  do  not  again  recommend  ourselves  to 
you,  but  only  give  you  occasion  of  triumph  concerning  us  ;  that  you  may 
have  a  reply  to  those  who  triumph  on  account  of  appearance,  and  not 
of  heart.  For  even  if  we  are  transported  beyond  ourselves,  it  regards 
God  ;  and  if  we  are  of  a  sound  mind,  it  regards  you.  Since  the  love  of 
Christ  bears  us  away  with  itself;  while  we  thus  determine,  that  if  one 
died  for  all,  all  were  assuredly  dead ;  and  that  he  died  for  all,  that 
those  who  live  should  no  longer  live  to  themselves,  but  to  him  who  died 
and  rose  for  them.  Accordingly,  from  this  time,  we  estimate  no  man  in 
consequence  of  his  descent ;  and  even,  if  we  have  regarded  Christ  in 
reference  to  that,  yet  now,  we  no  longer  thus  regard  him.     For,  if  any 


PAUL'S  SECOND  LETTER  TO  THE  CORINTmANS.     277 

one  be  in  Christ,  there  is  a  new  creation  ;  the  old  things  have  passed 
away  ;  behold,  all  things  have  become  new  !  But  all  these  are  from 
God,  who  has  reconciled  us  to  himself  through  Jesus  Christ,  and  has 
imparted  to  us  the  office  of  the  reconciliation  ;  namely,  that  God  is  by 
Christ  conciliating  the  world  to  himself,  not  attributing  to  them  their 
offences  ;  and  has  committed  to  us  the  doctrine  of  this  reconciliation. 
We  are  therefore  embassadors  for  Christ,  and  as  if  God  were  entreat- 
ing you  by  us,  we  beseech  you,  in  the  place  of  Christ,  to  be  reconciled 
to  God.  For  he  has  constituted  him,  who  knew  no  sin,  a  sin-offering 
for  us  ;  that  we  might  become  the  forgiveness  of  God,  through  him. 

We  therefore,  co-operating  also  [with  God],  entreat,  that  you  receive 
not  the  grace  of  God  in  vain  ;  (For  he  declares,  I  have  heard  thee  in 
an  acceptable  time,  and  I  have  assisted  thee  in  the  day  of  salvation  : 
behold,  now  is  the  well  accepted  time  ;  behold,  now  is  the  day  of  salva- 
tion), giving  no  cause  of  offence  to  any  one,  that  our  ministry  may  not 
be  reproved  :  but  in  every  particular,  let  us  establish  ourselves  as  minis- 
ters of  God  ;  in  much  patience,- in  oppressions,  in  necessities,  in  diffi- 
culties, in  scourges,  in  imprisonments,  in  commotions,  in  wanderings,  in 
•watchings,  in  fastings  ;  by  integrity,  by  knowledge,  by  forbearance,  by 
benignity,  by  a  pious  spirit,  by  undissembled  love,  by  the  doctrine  of 
truth,  by  the  energy  of  God,  with  the  armor  of  righteousness  on  the 
right  hand  and  the  left  ;  through  honor  and  disgrace,  through  maledic- 
tion and  praise  :  as  deceivers,  but  true  ;  as  unknown,  but  well  known  ; 
as  dying,  but,  behold,  we  live  ;  as  chastened,  but  not  destroyed  ;  as  af- 
flicted, yet  always  rejoicing  ;  as  poor,  yet  enriching  many  ;  as  having 
nothing,  and  still,  possessing  all  things. 

Our  mouth  is  opened  to  you,  O  Corinthians,  our  heart  is  enlarged. 
You  are  not  restricted  in  us  ;  but  you  are  limited  in  your  own  tender 
affections.  Now  as  a  reciprocation  for  mine,  (I  speak  as  to  my  chil- 
dren), be  ye  also  enlarged. 

Become  not  discordantly  associated  with  unbelievers  :  for  what  par- 
ticipation has  righteousness  with  iniquity  1  and  what  intercourse  has 
light  with  darkness  1  and  what  union  has  Christ  with  Belial  1  or  what 
portion  has  a  believer  with  an  unbeliever  1  and  what  connexion  has  the 
temple  of  God  with  that  of  idols  ?  for  you  are  the  temple  of  the  living 
God  ;  as  God  has  affirmed,  I  will  certainly  dwell  among  them,  and 
walk  among  them  ;  and  I  will  be  their  God,  and  they  shaJl  be  to  me  a 
people.  Therefore,  depart  from  the  midst  of  them,  and  be  separated, 
says  the  Lord,  and  touch  no  impure  person  ;  and  I  will  receive  you, 
and  will  be  to  you  a  Father,  and  you  shall  be  to  me  sons  and  daughters, 
says  the  Omnipotent  God.  Having  therefore  these  promises,  beloved, 
let  us  purify  ourselves  from  all  pollution  of  body  and  spirit,  perfecting 
holiness  in  the  fear  of  God. 

Receive  us  ;  we  have  injured  no  one,  we  have  contaminated  no  one, 
we  have  deceived  no  one.  I  do  not  suggest  this  to  condemn  you  ;  for  I 
have  previously  declared,  that  you  are  in  our  hearts,  to  die  together, 


278  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

and  to  live  together.  Great  is  my  freedom  of  speech  to  you  ;  great  is 
my  triumph  concerning  you  :  I  am  filled  with  consolation  ;  I  abound 
with  inexpressible  joy,  in  all  our  affliction. 

For  indeed,  when  we  came  to  Macedonia,  our  flesh  had  no  rest,  but  we 
were  distressed  on  every  side :  without  were  oppositions,  within  were  fears. 
Yet,  God  who  consoles  the  disconsolate,  comforted  us  by  the  arrival  of 
Titus  ;  and  not  only  by  his  arrival,  but  also  by  the  consolation  with 
which  he  was  comforted  by  you,  having  related  to  us  your  earnest  de- 
sire, your  lamentation,  your  zeal  for  me  ;  so  that  I  greatly  rejoiced. 
Therefore,  though  I  afflicted  you  in  that  letter,  I  do  not  repent,  even  if 
I  deprecated  it :  (for  I  perceive  that  the  same  letter  has  duly  grieved 
you,  though  only  for  a  short  time).  Now  I  rejoice,  not  that  you  were 
grieved,  but  that  you  were  grieved  to  reformation  :  for  you  were  grieved 
with  regard  to  God,  that  you  might,  in  no  degree,  receive  correction 
from  us.  For  sorrow,  which  regards  God,  produces  amendment  to  sal- 
vation, not  to  be  regretted  ;  whereas,  the  sorrow  of  the  world  produces 
death.  Consider  now,  this  very  fact,  that  you  grieved  from  respect  to 
God,  what  assiduity  it  produced  in  you ;  indeed,  what  exculpation  ; 
indeed,  what  displeasure  ;  indeed,  what  fear  ;  indeed,  what  ardent  de- 
sire ;  indeed,  what  zeal ;  indeed,  what  chastisement !  By  every  cir- 
cumstance, you  have  now  proved  yourselves  to  be  unexceptionable  in 
this  affair.  Indeed,  though  I  wrote  to  you  severely,  it  was  not  on  his 
account  who  had  done,  or  his,  who  had  received  the  injury  ;  but  that 
our  diligent  care  respecting  you  might  be  manifested  to  you,  in  the 
sight  of  God. 

For  this  reason,  we  are  comforted  on  account  of  your  consolation  ; 
and  we  rejoiced  more  exceedingly  in  consequence  of  the  joy  of  Titus, 
because  his  spirit  was  refreshed  by  you  all.  Therefore,  if  I  have  in  any 
respect  exulted  to  him  concerning  you,  I  was  not  ashamed :  but  as  we 
have  spoken  all  things  respecting  you  in  truth,  even  thus  our  exultation, 
which  was  before  Titus,  has  been  justified.  And  his  tender  afiection  is 
more  abundant  towards  you,  while  he  recollects  the  obedience  of  you 
all,  and  how  you  received  him  with  fear  and  trembling.  I  rejoice,  that 
in  every  respect  I  can  confide  in  you. 

Now,  brethren,  we  apprise  you  of  the  highly  munificent  gift  bestowed 
by  the  churches  of  Macedonia,  that  under  a  great  trial  of  affliction,  the 
abundance  of  their  joy,  notwithstanding  their  deep  poverty,  has  over- 
flowed in  the  riches  of  their  liberality.  For  I  testify,  that  according  to 
their  ability,  indeed,  beyond  their  ability,  they  were  personally  dis- 
posed ;  urging  us  with  much  importunity,  that  we  would  accept  the  gift, 
and  the  office  of  dispensing  it  to  the  Christians :  and  not  as  we  feared ; 
but  they  first  gave  themselves  to  the  Lord,  and  then  to  us,  by  the  will 
of  God.  This  moved  us  to  desire  Titus,  that  as  he  had  previously  com- 
menced, he  would  likewise  complete  this  charitable  contribution  among 
you.  Now,  as  you  abound  in  every  grace,  in,  faith,  and  language,  and 
knowledge,  and  all  diligence,  and  in  your  love  to  us ;   I  wish  that  you 


PAUL'S  SECOND  LETTER  TO  THE  CORINTHIANS.  279 

may  also  abound  in  this  virtue  of  charity.  I  do  not  announce  this  as  an 
injunction,  but  on  account  of  the  assiduity  of  others,  and  as  proving  the 
sincerity  of  your  love.  For  you  know  the  beneficence  of  our  Lord 
Jesus  Christ,  that  being  rich,  he  became  poor  in  your  behalf,  that  you, 
through  his  poverty,  might  be  enriched.  And  I  give  my  opinion  on  the 
subject,  that  this  is  profitable  for  you,  who  began  a  year  since,  not  only  to 
act,  but  even  with  alacrity.  At  present,  therefore,  complete  the  under- 
taking ;  that  according  to  the  promptness  to  determine,  there  may  also 
be  the  accomplishment,  in  proportion  to  what  you  possess.  For  if  there 
be  first  a  voluntary  mind,  according  to  what  any  one  has,  it  is  well 
accepted,  not  according  to  what  he  has  not.  However,  I  do  not  intend 
that  others  should  be  relieved,  and  you  burdened  ;  but,  with  a  view  to 
equality,  that  your  aiBuence  at  this  time  may  administer  to  their  neces- 
sity, and  that  their  abundance  in  future  may  supply  your  want ;  so  as  to 
produce  a  reciprocity :  as  it  is  written.  He  who  had  collected  the  most, 
had  no  surplus ;   and  he  who  had  gathered  the  least,  had  no  deficiency. 

Now  thanks  be  rendered  to  God,  who  has  put  the  same  diligent  care 
respecting  you  into  the  heart  of  Titus.  For  indeed,  he  complied  with 
my  exhortation ;  but  being  very  earnest,  he  repaired  to  you  of  his  own 
accord.  And  we  have  sent  with  him  that  brother,  whose  praise  by  the 
gospel  pervades  all  the  churches ;  (and  not  only  so,  but  be  was  also  par- 
ticularly appointed  by  the  churches  to  accompany  us  with  this  charita- 
ble contribution,  which  is  dispensed  by  us  to  the  glory  of  the  Lord  him- 
self, and  as  indicating  our  ready  disposition) ;  taking  this  precaution, 
that  no  person  should  blame  us  in  this  abundance  which  is  administered 
by  us  ;  and  premeditating  what  is  proper,  not  only  before  the  Lord,  but 
also  before  men.  And  we  have  sent  with  them  our  brother,  (whom  we 
have  often  found  diligent  in  many  affairs,  but  now  much  more  assiduous), 
on  account  of  the  great  confidence  reposed  in  you.  If  any  inquire  con- 
cerning Titus,  he  is  my  partner  and  feUow-laborer  with  respect  to  you ; 
or  concerning  our  brethren,  they  are  the  messengers  of  the  churches, 
and  the  glory  of  Christ.  Exhibit  therefore  to  them,  before  the  churches, 
the  testimony  of  your  afiiection,  and  of  our  exultation  respecting  you. 

But,  indeed,  in  reference  to  your  relief  of  the  Christians,  it  is  super- 
fluous that  I  should  write  to  you :  since  I  know  your  readiness,  for  which 
I  praised  you  to  the  Macedonians,  asserting,  that  Achaia  was  prepared 
a  year  ago ;  and  your  zeal  has  excited  very  many.  Yet,  I  have  sent 
the  brethren,  lest  our  triumph  concerning  you  in  this  particular,  that,  as 
I  alleged,  you  were  prepared,  should  be  rendered  false :  lest,  perhaps, 
if  the  Macedonians  come  with  me,  and  find  you  unprepared,  we  should 
be  ashamed,  (not  to  say  you  also),  of  this  vain  confidence.  I  have 
therefore  deemed  it  necessary  to  desire  the  brethren,  that  they  would 
previously  repair  to  you,  and  first  consummate  your  bounty,  which  was 
formerly  announced,  that  it  might  be  ready  as  an  act  of  liberality,  and 
not  of  extortion. 


280  APOSTOLIC    PRODUCTIONS. 

However,  as  to  this,  he  who  sows  sparingly,  will  also  reap  sparingly ; 
and  he  who  sows  bountifully,  will  also  reap  bountifully.  Let  every  one 
give,  even  as  he  intends  in  his  heart ;  not  with  regret,  or  by  compulsion ; 
for  God  loves  a  cheerful  giver.  And  God  is  able  to  make  all  goodness 
abound  towards  you,  that  constantly  having  all  sufficiency  in  every 
thing,  you  may  abound  to  every  good  work  ;  (as  it  is  written.  He  has 
dispersed,  he  has  imparted  to  the  poor  ;  his  beneficence  perpetually 
endures.  Now,  may  he,  who  dispenses  seed  to  the  sower,  and  furnishes 
bread  for  your  food,  even  multiply  your  sowing,  and  increase  the  pro- 
ductions of  your  beneficence);  being  enriched  in  every  thing  to  all  liber- 
ality, which  causes  through  us  thanksgiving  to  God.  For  the  perform- 
ance of  this  public  service  not  only  supplies  amply  the  necessities  of  the 
saints,  but  also  abounds  in  the  thanksgivings  of  many  to  God ;  (who,  by 
the  Experience  of  this  ministration,  praise  God  for  that  subjection  to  the 
gospel  of  Christ,  which  you  profess,  and  for  your  generous  contribution 
to  them,  and  to  all) ;  and  in  their  prayer  for  you,  ardently  loving  you, 
in  consequence  of  the  transcendent  goodness  of  God  bestowed  upon 
you.     Indeed,  God  be  praised,  for  his  inexpressible  munificence. 

Now  I  the  same  Paul,  who,  when  present,  indeed,  am  humble  among 
you,  but  when  absent,  am  bold  towards  you,  entreat  you  by  the  mild- 
ness and  clemency  of  Christ.  And  I  request,  that  I  may  not  be  confi- 
dent, when  present,  with  that  assurance,  on  which  I  think  to  presume 
against  certain  persons,  who  regard  us  as  walking  according  to  the  flesh. 
For,  though  we  walk  in  the  flesh,  we  do  not  contend  in  conformity  to 
the  flesh  ;  since  the  weapons  of  our  warfare  are  not  secular,  but  power- 
ful through  God  to  the  demolition  of  strong  holds  ;  subverting  reason- 
ings, and  every  haughty  object  that  exalts  itself  against  the  knowledge 
of  God,  and  subjecting  as  a  captive  every  thought  to  the  obedience  of 
Christ ;  and  being  in  preparation  to  punish  all  disobedience,  when  your 
obedience  is  complete. 

Do  you  survey  things  according  to  appearance  1  If  any  one  trust 
in  himself  that  he  is  Christ's,  let  him  further,  individually  consider  this, 
that  as  he  is  of  Christ,  so  are  we  also  of  Christ.  And  therefore,  if  I 
should  triumph,  in  a  greater  degree,  concerning  our  authority,  which 
the  lord  has  given  us  for  re-building  you,  and  not  for  your  destruction, 
I  should  not  be  ashamed  :  but  I  forbear,  that  I  may  not  seem  as  if  I 
would  terrify  you  with  letters  :  since,  his  letters,  it  is  affirmed,  are  really 
important  and  powerful ;  but  his  personal  manner  is  feeble,  and  his  dis- 
course, worthless.  Let  such  an  one  thus  reflect,  that  such  as  we  are  in 
profession  by  letters,  when  absent,  the  same  will  we  also  be  in  practice, 
when  present.  For  we  do  not  presume  to  class,  or  to  compare  ourselves 
with  some  who  recommend  themselves  :  however,  they  estimating  them- 
selves by  their  own  measure,  and  comparing  themselves  with  each  oth- 
er, are  not  wise.  Further,  we  will  not  boast  respecting  things  beyond 
our  limits  ;  but  concerning  the  extent  of  the  province  which  God  has 


PAUL'S  SECOND  LETTER  TO  THE  CORINTHIANS.  281 

assigned  to  us,  that  we  should  attain  even  to  you.  For  we  do  not  extend 
our  bounds  too  far,  as  though  you  were  not  included  ;  but  we  proceeded 
even  as  far  as  to  you,  in  the  gospel  of  Christ ;  not  exulting  in  things 
beyond  our  precincts,  in  the  labor  of  others ;  but  having  hope,  when 
your  faith  is  increased,  that  we  shall  be  greatly  enlarged  among  you,  in 
reference  to  our  boundary  ;  so  that  we  may  proclaim  the  gospel  in  the 
parts  beyond  you,  and  not  boast  in  another  man's  department,  concern- 
ing things  already  prepared  for  us.  Rather,  let  him  who  triumphs,  tri- 
umph in  the  Lord.  Since,  he  who  commends  himself  is  not  approved, 
but  he,  whom  the  Lord  commends. 

I  wish  you  would  endure  me  a  little  in  my  inconsideration  ;  indeed, 
even  tolerate  me.  For  I  cautiously  superintend  you,  with  a  pious  earn- 
estness ;  because  I  have  affianced  you  as  a  chaste  virgin  to  one  husband, 
that  I  may  present  you  to  Christ.  But  I  am  afraid,  lest  by  some  means, 
as  the  serpent  deluded  Eve  through  his  subtilty,  your  minds  should  be 
seduced  from  integrity  towards  Christ.  If  now,  indeed,  he  who  is  come, 
proclaims  another  Jesus,  whom  we  have  not  preached  ;  or  if  you  receive 
a  different  spirit,  which  you  have  not  received  from  me  ;  or  a  different 
gospel,  which  you  have  not  embraced ;  you  might  well  bear  with  him. 
Yet  I  conclude,  that  I  am,  in  no  degree,  inferior  to  the  most  distinguish- 
ed apostles.  And  if,  I  am  even  untaught  in  language,  I  am  not  so  in 
knowledge  ;  but  on  every  occasion  we  have  by  all  things  been  manifest- 
ed among  you.  Have  I  committed  an  offence  in  humbling  myself,  that 
you  might  be  exalted  ;  because  I  have  gratuitously  preached  to  you  the 
gospel  of  God  1  I  deprived  other  churches,  taking  wages  from  them 
that  I  might  dispense  to  you.  For  being  present  with  you,  and  in  want, 
I  distressed  no  one ;  but  the  brethren,  who  came  from  Macedonia,  ful- 
ly supplied  my  deficiency  :  and  in  all  respects  I  have  kept,  and  vrill  keep 
myself  from  being  chargeable  to  you.  As  the  truth  of  Christ  is  in  me, 
surely  this  same  exultation  shall  not  be  arrested,  relative  to  me,  in  the 
regions  of  Achaia.  For  what  reason  1  because  I  do  not  love  you  1 
God  knows  [otherwise].  But  what  I  do,  that  1  will  do ;  that  I  may  cut 
off  opportunity  from  those  who  desire  opportunity  ;  that  in  what  they 
boast,  they  may  be  found  even  as  we.  For  such  are  false  apostles,  de- 
ceitful workmen,  transforming  themselves  into  apostles  of  Christ.  And 
it  is  not  surprising ;  for  the  adversary  himself  is  transformed  into  an 
angel  of  light.  It  is  therefore  no  great  wonder,  if  his  ministers  also 
transform  themselves  as  ministers  of  righteousness ;  whose  end  will  be 
according  to  their  works. 

I  say  further.  Let  no  one  think  me  inconsiderate ;  but  if  otherwise, 
at  least  bear  with  me  as  inconsiderate,  that  I  may  also  glory  a  little. 
What  I  affirm,  I  do  not  affirm  according  to  the  Lord,  but  as  through 
inconsideration,  in  this  triumphant  confidence.  Since  many  exult  ac- 
cording to  the  flesh,  I  will  also  exult.  For  being  wise  yourselves,  you 
readily  bear  with  the  unwise.  Thus  you  bear  it,  if  one  enslave  you,  if 
he  devour  you,  if  he  plunder  you,  if  he  raise  himself  against  you,  if  he 
36 


282  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

strike  you  on  the  face.  Shall  I  reply  to  the  alleged  dishonor,  as  though 
we  had  been  weak  1  Assuredly,  in' whatever  any  one  may  be  confident, 
(I  announce  it  inconsiderately),  I  am  also  confident.  Are  they  He- 
brews 1  so  am  I.  Are  they  Israelites  1  so  am  I.  Are  they  the  offspring 
of  Abraham  1  so  am  I.  Are  they  ministers  of  Christ  1  (I  speak  as 
one  thoughtless),  I  am  more  ;  more  productive  in  labors,  far  exceeding 
in  scourges,  more  abundant  in  imprisonments,  frequently  in  deaths. 
Five  times  I  received  from  the  Jews  thirty-nine  stripes.  I  was  thrice 
beaten  with  rods  ;  once  I  was  stoned  ;  thrice  I  was  ship-wrecked ;  I 
have  remained  a  day  and  a  night  in  the  deep.  I  have  often  been  in 
journeys  ;  in  hazards  from  rivers  ;  in  hazards  from  robbers  ;  in  haz- 
ards from  my  own  countrymen  ;  in  hazards  from  the  pagans  ;  in  dan- 
gers of  the  city  ;  in  dangers  of  the  desert ;  in  dangers  at  sea,  in  dan- 
gers among  false  brethren ;  in  severe  labor  and  toil ;  in  numerous 
watchings  ;  in  hunger  and  thirst ;  in  frequent  fastings  ;  in  cold  and 
nakedness.  Aside  from  such  external  adversities,  there  is  the  pressure 
which  continually  assails  me,  the  zealous  care  of  all  the  churches. 
Who  is  feeble,  and  I  am  not  feeble  ?  Who  declines,  and  I  am  not 
ai'dent  ?  If  I  must  necessarily  triumph,  I  will  triumph  in  the  particulars 
of  my  sufferings.  The  God  and  Father  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  who 
is  eternally  praised,  knows  that  I  am  not  false. 

In  Damascus,  the  governor,  under  Aretas  the  king,  guarded  the  city 
of  the  Damascenes,  being  resolved  to  arrest  me  :  but  through  a  window, 
I  was  let  down  by  the  wall,  in  a  basket,  and  escaped  his  hands. 

It  is  not  proper  then  for  me  to  boast ;  yet  I  will  refer  to  visions  and 
revelations  of  the  Lord.  I  knew  a  disciple  of  Christ,  (whether  in  the 
body  I  know  not ;  or  out  of  the  body  I  am  unconscious  ;  God  knows) ; 
the  same,  above  fourteen  years  since,  was  carried  up  even  to  the  third 
heaven.  Besides,  I  knew  such  a  man,  (whether  in  the  body,  or  out  of 
the  body,  I  am  not  aware  ;  God  knows) ;  that  he  was  translated  to 
paradise,  and  heard  ineffable  words,  which  it  is  impossible  for  man  to 
pronounce.  Respecting  such  a  person  I  will  exult ;  but  on  my  own 
account  I  will  not  exult,  except  in  my  adversities.  If,  however,  I  de- 
sired to  boast,  I  should  not  be  fooUsh  ;  since  I  will  assert  the  truth  :  but 
I  forbear,  lest  any  one  should  estimate  me  above  what  he  perceives  me 
to  be,  or  what  he  hears  from  me.  For,  that  I  should  not  be  too  much 
elevated  by  the  transcendency  of  the  revelations,  a  thorn  in  the  flesh  was 
inflicted  upon  me,  an  embassador  of  the  adversary  to  buffet  me,  that,  as 
I  repeat,  I  might  not  be  excessively  exalted.  Concerning  this,  I  thrice 
implored  the  Lord,  that  it  might  depart  from  me.  But  he  said  to  me. 
My  grace  is  sufiicient  for  thee  ;  besides,  my  strength  is  perfected  in 
weakness.  Most  joyfully,  therefore,  I  will  rather  glory  in  my  trials, 
that  the  power  of  Christ  may  overshadow  me.  Consequently,  I  feel  a 
complacency  in  infirmities,  in  injuries,  in  necessities,  in  persecutions,  in 
difiiculties,  for  the  sake  of  Christ ;  since  when  I  am  feeble,  then  I  am 
powerful. 


PAUL'S  SECOND  LETTER  TO  THE  CORINTHIANS.  283 

Have  I  become  thoughtless  in  exultation  1  you  have  impelled  me  to 
it ;  for  I  ought  to  have  been  recommended  by  you  :  because,  though  I 
am  nothing,  I  have,  in  no  respect,  failed  to  equal  the  most  excellent  of 
the  apostles.  The  proofs  of  an  apostle  were,  indeed,  fully  produced 
among  you  with  all  patience,  by  signs,  and  wonders,  and  miracles.  For 
in  what  were  you  inferior  to  the  other  churches,  except  in  this,  that  I 
myself  did  not  burden  you  ?  Forgive  me  this  trespass.  Behold,  a  third 
time  I  am  ready  to  come  to  you  ;  yet,  I  will  not  burden  you  ;  since  I 
seek  not  your  property,  but  yourselves.  For  it  is  not  appropriate,  that 
the  children  should  treasure  for  the  parents,  but  the  parents  for  the 
children.  Indeed,  I  will  very  cheerfully  exhaust  and  be  exhausted  for 
your  souls ;  even  though,  the  more  abundantly  I  love  you,  the  less  I  am 
loved. 

Be  it  so  then,  I  did  not  burden  you  ;  yet,  it  is  alleged,  that  being 
subtile,  I  seized  you  by  artifice.  Did  I  overreach  you  by  any  of  those 
whom  I  sent  to  you  ?  I  desired  Titus  to  go  to  you,  and  I  sent  with  him 
a  brother.  Did  Titus  in  any  manner  overreach  you  1  Did  we  not  walk 
in  the  same  spirit,  and  in  the  same  steps  1 

[By  seViding  Titus]  agsiin,  do  you  think  that  we  apologize  to  you  1 
In  the  presence  of  God  we  speak  through  Christ,  that  all  these  things, 
beloved,  are  done  for  your  improvement.  Yet  I  fear,  lest  perhaps,  when 
I  come,  I  may  not  find  you  such  as  I  could  wish ;  and  that  I  may  be 
found  by  you  such  as  you  would  not  desire  :  I  mean,  lest  perhaps,  con- 
tentions, rivalries,  passions,  provocations,  slanders,  secret  detractions, 
inflations,  disturbances,  exist  among  you  ;  and  lest,  when  I  come  again, 
my  God  may  humble  me  among  you,  and  I  should  mourn  over  many 
who  have  formerly  sinned,  and  have  not  reformed  from  the  impurity, 
and  foi'nication,  and  licentiousness,  which  they  have  committed. 

I  am  coming  to  you  this  third  time  :  by  the  mouth  of  two  witnesses, 
or  three,  Every  fact  shall  be  established.  I  have  before  informed  you, 
and  now  as  present  in  spirit  the  second  time,  but  absent  in  body,  I  thus 
previously  apprise  you,  and  all  who  have  before  sinned,  and  all  the 
others.  Assuredly,  when  I  come  again,  I  will  not  spare  you  ;  since  you 
demand  a  proof  of  Christ's  speaking  in  me,  who,  in  reference  to  you  is 
not  weak,  but  is  powerful  among  you.  For  though,  he  was  crucified 
through  weakness,  yet,  he  lives  by  the  energy  of  God  :  and  though,  we 
are  also  feeble  with  him,  yet,  we  shall  live  with  him,  by  the  power  of  God 
among  you.  Examine  yourselves,  whether  you  are  in  the  faith ;  prove 
yourselves.  Do  you  not  know  yourselves,  that  Jesus  Christ  is  among 
you,  unless  perhaps  you  are  unapproved  1  But  I  trust  that  you  will 
know  that  we  are  not  without  approval.  Still,  I  supplicate  God,  that 
you  may  do  no  evil ;  not  wishing  that  we  may  appear  approved,  but 
that  you  may  do  what  is  good,  though  we  should  indeed  be  disapproved ; 
since  we  cannot  do  any  thing  against  the  truth,  but  we  can  for  the  truth. 
Therefore,  we  rejoice  when  we  are  weak,  and  you  are  strong  ;  and  for 
this  we  also  pray,  even  your  restoration.     For  this  reason,  being  absent, 


284  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

I  write  these  things,  that  when  present,  I  may  not  act  severely,  accord- 
ing to  the  power  which  the  Lord  has  imparted  to  me,  for  improvement, 
and  not  for  destruction. 

Finally,  brethren,  rejoice,  be  restored,  be  admonished,  be  united,  cul- 
tivate peace,  and  the  God  of  love  and  peace  will  be  with  you.  Salute 
each  other  with  a  pious  kiss.  All  the  Christians  salute  you.  The  favor 
of  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  and  the  love  of  God,  and  the  participation  of 
the  Holy  Spirit,  be  with  you  all ! 


THE  LETTER  OF  PAUL  TO  THE  GALATIANS. 

Paul,  an  apostle,  not  sent  by  men,  nor  appointed  by  man,  but  by 
Jesus  Christ,  and  God  the  Father,  who  raised  him  from  the  dead  ;  and 
all  the  brethren  who  are  with  me,  to  the  churches  of  Galatia ;  grace  be 
to  you,  and  peace,  from  God  the  Father,  and  from  our  Lord  Jesus 
Christ,  who  gave  himself  for  our  sins,  that  he  might  deliver  us  from  this 
present  evil  age,  according  to  the  will  of  our  God  and  Father ;  to  whom 
be  glory  for  ever  and  ever.     Amen  ! 

I  am  astonished,  that  you  are  so  soon  removed  from  him,  who  invited 
you  into  the  favor  of  Christ,  to  a  different  gospel ;  which  is  not  another ; 
yet,  there  are  some  who  afflict  you,  and  wish  to  subvert  the  gospel  of 
Christ.  But  even,  if  we,  or  an  angel  from  heaven,  should  preach  to 
you  in  opposition  to  what  we  have  preached,  let  him  be  separated.  As 
we  have  already  declared,  so  I  now  declare  a  second  time  ;  If  any  one 
proclaim  any  gospel  to  you,  contrary  to  what  you  have  received,  let 
him  be  separated.  And  besides,  do  I  seek  the  favor  of  men,  rather 
than  that  of  God  ?  Or  do  I  strive  to  please  men  ?  If  indeed,  I  still 
pleased  men,  I  should  not  be  a  servant  of  Christ. 

Moreover,  I  declare  to  you,  brethren,  concerning  the  gospel  which 
was  preached  by  me,  that  it  is  not  according  to  men  ;  for  I  did  not  re- 
ceive it  from  man,  but  I  was  taught  it,  exclusively,  through  the  revela- 
tion of  Jesus  Christ.  You  have  certainly  heard  of  my  previous  conduct 
in  the  Jewish  religion,  that  I  immeasurably  persecuted  the  church  of 
God,  and  ravaged  it ;  and  I  advanced  in  the  Jewish  religion,  beyond 
many  contemporaries  in  my  own  nation,  being  more  highly  devoted  to 
the  traditions  of  my  fathers.  But  when  it  pleased  God,  who  preserved 
me  at  my  birth,  and  called  me  by  his  grace,  to  reveal  his  Son  to  me, 
that  I  might  proclaim  him  to  the  Gentiles  ;  I  did  not  suddenly  consult 
flesh  and  blood  ;  nor  did  I  ascend  to  Jerusalem,  to  those  who  were 
apostles  before  me  ;  but  I  departed  into  Arabia,  and  returned  to  Damas- 
cus. Then,  after  three  years,  I  went  up  to  Jerusalem  to  become  ac- 
quainted with  Peter ;  and  I  abode  with  him  fifteen  days.  However,  I 
did  not  see  any  other  of  the  apostles,  except  James,  the  brother  of  the 
Lord.  Now,  concerning  the  things  which  I  write  to  you,  behold,  as  in 
the  presence  of  God,  that  I  do  not  falsely  speak.  Subsequently,  I  went 
into  the  regions  of  Syria  and  of  Cilicia ;  and  I  was  personally  unknown 
to  the  churches  of  Christ  which  were  in  Judea  :  except  only,  they  had 
heard.  That  he,  who  was  once  persecuting  us,  is  now  proclaiming  the 
faith,  which  he  formerly  subverted.  And  they  praised  God  on  my  ac- 
count. 

Then,  within  fourteen  years,  I  again  ascended  to  Jerusalem  with 
Barnabas,  and  also  took  with  me  Titus.     And  I  went  up  by  revelation, 


286  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

and  communicated  to  them  that  good  news  which  I  proclaim  to  the 
Gentiles  ;  but  privately  to  the  most  eminent,  lest  perhaps,  I  may  run,  or 
might  have  run,  in  vain.  However,  not  even  Titus  who  was  with  me, 
though  a  Greek,  was  compelled  to  be  circumcised,  and  though  indeed, 
false  brethren  were  artfully  introduced,  who  secretly  entered  to  spy  out 
our  freedom  which  we  possess  by  Christ  Jesus,  that  they  might  reduce 
us  to  bondage  ;  to  whom  we  did  not  yield  by  submission  for  a  single 
hour  ;  that  the  truth  of  the  gospel  might  remain  with  you.  Besides, 
from  those  who  were  of  acknowledged  reputation  I  received  nothing : 
whatever  they  were  formerly,  is  of  no  consequence  to  me :  God  does 
not  partially  accept  the  persons  of  men.  For  to  me,  they  who  were 
thus  highly  distinguished,  communicated  nothing.  But,  on  the  contrary, 
perceiving  that  I  was  entrusted  with  the  gospel  of  the  uncircumcision,  as 
Peter  was  with  that  of  the  circumcision  ;  (for  he  who  wrought  power- 
fully in  Peter  with  a  view  to  the  apostleship  of  the  circumcision,  also 
wrought  powerfully  in  me  with  respect  to  the  Gentiles) ;  and  knowing 
the  grace  which  was  bestowed  on  me,  James,  and  Peter,  and  John,  who 
were  thought  to  be  pillars,  gave  the  right  hands  of  fellowship  to  me  and 
Barnabas,  that  we  should  proceed  to  the  Gentiles,  and  they,  to  the  cir- 
cumcision :  only  urging,  that  we  would  remember  the  poor ;  which  very 
thing  I  was  even  ardently  hastening  to  perform. 

Further,  when  Peter  arrived  at  Antioch,  I  opposed  him  personally, 
because  he  was  culpable.  For  before  certain  persons  came  from  James, 
he  used  to  eat  with  the  Gentiles ;  but  when  they  came,  he  withdrew  and 
separated  himself,  fearing  those  of  the  circumcision.  And  the  other 
Jews  also  dissembled  with  him  ;  so  that  even  Barnabas  was  carried 
away  with  them,  by  their  dissimulation.  But  when  I  saw  that  they  djld 
not  conduct  with  integrity,  according  to  the  truth  of  the  gospel,  I  said 
to  Peter  in  the  presence  of  all.  If,  being  a  Jew,  you  live  according  to 
the  manner  of  the  Gentiles,  and  not  according  to  that  of  the  Jews,  how 
is  it  that  you  compel  the  Gentiles  to  live  like  the  Jews  ?  We  who  are 
Jews  by  natural  birth,  and  not  sinful  Gentiles,  being  convinced  that  a 
man  is  not  pardoned  by  the  works  of  the  law>  but  through  faith  in  Jesus 
Christ ;  even  we  have  believed  in  Jesus  Christ,  that  we  might  be  accept- 
ed by  faith  in  Christ,  and  not  by  the  works  of  the  law  ;  since,  by  the 
works  of  the  law  no  person  will  be  forgiven.  But  if,  endeavoring  to  be 
acquitted  by  Christ,  we  ourselves  should  also  be  found  sinners,  will 
Christ,  therefore,  be  the  minister  of  sin  "!  By  no  means.  For,  if  I  re- 
build those  things  which  I  have  destroyed,  I  constitute  myself  a  trans- 
gressor. Besides,  through  the  law,  I  have  died  by  the  law,  so  that  I 
must  live  through  God.  I  am  jointly  crucified  with  Christ :  still,  I  live  ; 
yet  no  longer  I,  but  Christ  lives  in  me  :  for  the  life  which  I  now  pass  in 
the  body,  I  pass  by  faith  in  the  Son  of  God,  who  loved  me,  and  surren- 
dered himself  for  me.  I  do  not  invalidate  the  grace  of  God :  for  if 
forgiveness  is  through  the  law,  then  Christ  has  certainly  died  in 
vain. 


THE  LETTER  OF  PAUL  TO  THE  GALATIANS.       287 

O  infatuated  Galatians !  who  has  fascinated  you,  before  whose  eyes 
Jesus  Christ  has  been  previously  represented,  as  crucified  for  you  1  I 
wish  to  learn  from  you  this  only ;  Did  you  receive  the  Spirit  on  account 
of  the  works  of  the  law,  or  on  account  of  the  obedience  of  faith  1  Are 
you  so  unreasonable,  that  having  commenced  in  the  Spirit,  you  now 
think  to  be  consummated  by  the  flesh  ■!  Have  you  endured  so  many 
things  in  vain  1  since  indeed,  it  may  be  in  vain.  He  then,  who  supplied 
to  you  the  Spirit,  and  performed  miracles  among  you,  did  he  these,  in 
consequence  of  the  works  of  the  law,  or  in  consequence  of  the  obedi- 
ence of  faith  1  Considering  that  Abraham  confided  in  God,  and  it  was 
conceded  to  him  in  reference  to  his  acceptance,  know  certainly,  that 
they  who  are  of  faith,  the  same  are  the  sons  of  Abraham.  For  the 
scripture,  anticipating  that  God  would  pardon  the  nations  by  faith,  thus 
previously  proclaimed  joyful  intelligence  to  Abraham  ;  Assuredly,  in 
thee  all  nations  will  be  blessed.  Therefore,  those  who  are  of  faith,  are 
blessed  with  confiding  Abraham. 

But,  as  many  as  insist  on  the  works  of  the  law,  are  under  an  execra- 
tion ;  for  it  is  written,  Execrated  is  every  one  who  continues  not  in  all 
the  things  which  are  contained  in  the  book  of  the  law,  to  perform  them. 
Besides,  that  by  the  law  no  one  is  vindicated  in  the  sight  of  God,  is  evi- 
dent ;  for.  The  acquitted  shall  live  by  faith.  Also,  the  law  is  not  of 
faith.  But,  He  who  performs  these  things,  shall  live  by  them.  Christ 
has  redeemed  us  from  the  malediction  of  the  law,  having  become  a 
malediction  for  us  :  since  it  is  written,  Execrated  is  every  one  who  is 
hanged  on  a  tree  :  that  the  blessing  of  Abraham  might  be  conferred  on 
the  Gentiles  through  Christ  Jesus  ;  and  that  we  might  receive  the  pro- 
mise of  the  Spirit  through  faith. 

Brethren,  I  speak  in  conformity  to  human  usage.  No  one  annuls  or 
alters  a  human  covenant,  after  it  has  been  ratified.  Now,  the  promises 
were  announced  to  Abraham,  and  to  his  descendant.  The  scripture  does 
not  declare.  And  to  descendants,  as  implying  many,  but  as  implying  one 
person.  And  to  thy  descendant,  who  is  Christ.  And  this  I  declare,  that 
the  covenant  which  was  antecedently  confirmed  by  God  with  respect  to 
Christ,  the  law,  which  was  four  hundred  and  thirty  years  after,  does  not 
rescind,  so  as  to  invalidate  the  promise.  Besides,  if  the  inheritance 
be  by  the  law,  it  is  no  more  by  promise :  but  God  freely  bestowed  it 
on  Abraham  by  promise. 

To  what  purpose  then  was  the  law!  It  was  established  in  conse- 
quence of  transgressions,  till  the  Descendant  should  come  to  whom  the 
promise  was  made  ;  and  it  was  ministered  by  messengers  in  the  hand  of 
a  mediator.  Now  the  mediator  is  not  of  one  ;  but  God  is  one.  Is  the 
law  then  contrary  to  the  promises  of  God  1  Not  at  all.  For,  if  a  law 
had  been  given,  which  was  able  to  make  alive,  then  assuredly,  the  plan 
of  pardon  would  have  been  by  the  law.  But  the  scripture  has  collec- 
tively included  all  under  sin,  that  the  promise  by  faith  of  Jesus  Christ 
might  be  imparted  to  those  who  believe.     Therefore,  before  faith  came. 


888  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

we  were  kept  under  the  law,  collectively  reserved  to  the  faith  which  was 
afterwards  to  be  revealed :  so  that  the  law  has  been  our  conductor  to 
Christ,  that  we  might  be  forgiven  by  faith.  But,  faith  having  come,  we 
are  no  longer  under  a  conductor.  For,  you  are  all  the  sons  of  God, 
through  the  faith  published  by  Christ  Jesus.  Besides,  as  many  of  you 
as  have  been  baptized  into  Christ,  have  put  on  Christ.  In  him  there  is 
neither  Jew  nor  Gentile,  there  is  neither  slave  nor  free-man,  there  is 
neither  male  nor  female ;  for  you  are  all  one  in  Christ  Jesus.  And  if 
you  belong  to  Christ,  surely  you  are  the  offspring  of  Abraham,  and 
inheritors  according  to  the  promise. 

Now  I  affirm,  that  as  long  as  the  heir  is  a  child,  he  does  not  differ 
from  a  servant,  though  he  is  master  of  all ;  but  is  under  guardians  and 
superintendents,  till  the  time  appointed  by  the  father.  Thus  we  also, 
when  we  were  children,  were  in  subjection  under  the  elements  of  the 
world.  But,  when  the  fulness  of  the  time  arrived,  God  sent  forth  his 
Son,  produced  of  a  woman,  born  under  the  law,  to  redeem  those  who 
were  under  the  law,  that  we  might  receive  the  adoption  of  sons.  And 
because  you  are  sons,  God  has  sent  forth  the  spirit  of  his  Son  into  our 
hearts,  exclaiming,  Father,  Father  !  So  that  you  are  no  longer  a  ser- 
vant, but  a  son  ;  and  if  a  son,  then  an  heir  of  God  through  Christ. 

Then,  however,  when  you  knew  not  God,  you  were  in  bondage  under 
those  who  in  reality  are  no  gods.  But  now,  having  acknowledged  God, 
or  rather,  being  acknowledged  by  Him,  why  do  you  renewedly  return 
to  the  feeble  and  poor  elements,  to  which,  as  at  first,  you  now  incline 
to  be  subjected.  You  particularly  regard  days,  and  moons,  and  sea- 
sons, and  years.  I  am  alarmed  respecting  you,  lest  perhaps,  I  have 
labored  in  vain  among  you. 

Brethren,  I  solicit  you.  Remain  as  I  am  ;  for  I  also  continue  as  you 
are.  You  have  not  injured  me  in  any  particular.  You  are  aware,  in- 
deed, that  in  physical  infirmity,  I  originally  preached  the  gospel  to  you. 
Yet,  my  trial,  which  was  in  my  person,  you  did  not  despise  nor  did  you 
reject  me  ;  but  received  me  as  an  angel  of  God,  indeed,  as  Christ  Jesus. 
What  then  was  your  feUcitation  1  for  I  testify  to  you,  that  if  possible, 
you  would  have  torn  out  your  own  eyes,  and  have  given  them  to  me  : 
and  now,  I  am  represented  as  your  enemy,  for  disclosing  to  you  the 
truth ! 

Some  engage  your  affection,  but  not  honorably  ;  indeed,  they  would 
exclude  us,  that  you  might  love  them.  But  it  is  honorable  to  be  ever 
devoted  in  that  which  is  good,  and  not  merely  when  I  am  present  with 
you.  My  dear  children,  whom  I  am  bearing  again,  till  Christ  be  form- 
ed in  you,  I  could  sincerely  wish  to  be  present  with  you  now,  and  to 
change  my  voice  ;  for  I  hesitate  concerning  you. 

Inform  me,  you  who  desire  to  be  under  the  law,  why  do  you  not  un- 
derstand the  book  of  the  law  1  For  it  is  written,  that  Abraham  had  two 
sons,  one  by  the  enslaved  woman,  and  another  by  the  free  woman. 
However,  that  from  the  enslaved  woman  was  indeed  naturally  produc- 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE   GALATIANS.  289 

ed  ;  but  that  from  the  free  woman  was  born  through  the  promise. 
These  things  are  figuratively  announced  ;  since  these  women  represent 
two  covenants  ;  one  indeed  from  mount  Sinai,  perpetuating  to  servi- 
tude, which  is  Hagar  :  for  this  Sinai  is  a  mountain  in  Arabia,  and  indi- 
cates the  existing  Jerusalem,  for  she  is  even  in  slavery  with  her  chil- 
dren. But  the  celestial  Jerusalem  is  free,  and  this  is  our  mother.  For 
it  is  written.  Rejoice,  thou  sterile,  that  dost  not  produce  ;  burst  forth 
and  exult,  thou  that  dost  not  labor,  for  many  more  are  the  children  of 
the  deserted,  than  of  her  who  has  the  husband.  We  therefore,  brethren, 
like  Isaac,  are  children  by  promise.  But,  even  as  at  that  time,  he  who 
was  born  according  to  the  flesh,  persecuted  him  who  was  born  accord- 
ing to  the  Spirit,  so  also  it  is  now.  Yet,  what  does  the  scripture  de- 
clare ■?  Expel  the  enslaved  woman  with  her  son  ;  since  the  son  of  the 
enslaved  woman  shall  not  inherit  with  the  son  of  the  free. 

Thus  then,  brethren,  we  are  not  children  of  the  enslaved,  but  of  the 
free  woman.  Stand  firmly,  therefore,  in  the  freedom  with  which  Christ 
has  emancipated  us,  and  be  not  again  subjected  to  the  dominion  of 
servitude. 

Remember,  I  Paul  declare  to  you,  that  if  you  rely  on  circumcision, 
Christ  will  become  to  you  unavailing.  And  I  testify,  moreover,  to 
every  circumcised  person,  that  he  is  bound  to  perform  the  whole  law. 
All  of  you,  who  strive  to  be  pardoned  by  the  law,  are  withdrawn  from 
Christ ;  you  are  deprived  of  the  privilege.  But  we  through  the  Spirit, 
await  the  expected  forgiveness  by  faith.  Since,  in  Christ  Jesus  neither 
circumcision  avails  any  thing,  nor  uncircumcision  ;  but  faith  which 
powerfully  operates  by  love.  Once  you  ran  well ;  who  impeded  you, 
that  you  might  not  obey  the  truth  1  This  persuasion  proceeds  not  from 
him  who  invited  you.  A  little  leaven  ferments  the  whole  mass.  I  am 
persuaded  respecting  you  by  the  Lord,  that  you  will  retain  the  same 
sentiments  :  but  he  that  troubles  you,  whoever  he  may  be,  will  bear  the 
punishment.  And  as  to  myself,  brethren,  if  I  still  preach  circumcision, 
why  am  I  still  persecuted  ?  In  that  case,  the  offence  of  the  cross  would 
be  abolished.  I  could  wish,  that  they  who  subvert  you,  were  even 
separated. 

Now  brethren,  you  have  been  invited  to  freedom  :  only  use  not  that 
freedom  for  an  occasion  to  inordinate  desire  ;  but  through  love  assidu- 
ously serve  each  other.  Since,  the  entire  law  is  fulfilled  by  one  pre- 
cept, even  by  this  ;  Thou  shalt  love  thy  neighbor  as  thyself.  But  if 
you  lacerate  and  devour  each  other,  beware,  that  you  be  not  destroyed 
by  each  other. 

I  command  then ;  Walk  by  the  Spirit,  and  you  will  not  fulfil  the 
desire  of  the  flesh.  For  the  flesh  strives  against  the  Spirit,  and  the 
Spirit  against  the  flesh  ;  and  these  are  opposed  to  each  other  ;  so  that 
you  do  not  perform  the  things  that  you  would  wish.  But  if  you  are  led 
by  the  Spirit,  you  are  not  under  the  law.  Now  the  works  of  the  flesh 
are  manifest,  which  are  these  ;  fornication,  impurity,  sensuality,  idol- 

37 


290  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

atry,  magic,  aversions^  contentions,  rivalries,  resentments,  disputations, 
divisions,  factions,  envyings,  murders,  inebrieties,  revelings,  and  things 
similar  to  these  ;  concerning  which  I  premonish  you,  even  as  I  have 
also  previously  asserted,  that  they  who  practise  such  things,  will  not 
inherit  the  kingdom  of  God.  But  the  fruit  of  the  Spirit  is  love,  joy, 
peace,  forbearance,  gentleness,  goodness,  fidelity,  benignity,  self-gov- 
ernment :  against  such  things  there  is  no  law.  Besides,  those  who  are 
Christ's,  have  crucified  the  flesh,  with  the  passions  and  desires.  Since 
we  live  by  the  Spirit,  let  us  also  walk  by  the  Spirit. 

Let  us  not  be  vain-glorious,  provoking  each  other,  envying  each  other. 
Brethren,  if  a  man  be  surprised  into  any  fault,  ye  who  are  spiritual, 
restore  such  an  one  in  the  spirit  of  meekness  ;  looking  to  yourself,  lest 
you  also  should  be  tempted.  Bear  each  other's  burdens,  and  thus  fulfill 
the  law  of  Christ.  For  if  any  one  thinks  himself  to  be  something,  being 
nothing,  he  deceives  himself.  But  let  every  one  try  his  own  work  ;  and 
then  he  will  have  triumph  in  himself  alone,  and  not  in  another.  For 
every  one  will  bear  his  own  burden. 

Now  let  him  that  is  taught  in  the  word,  contribute  of  all  good  things 
to  him  that  teaches.  Be  not  deceived ;  God  is  not  derided  ;  for  what- 
ever a  man  sows,  that  he  will  also  reap.  So  that  he  who  sows  into  his 
own  flesh,  will  from  the  flesh  reap  destruction ;  but  he  who  sows  into 
his  spirit,  will  from  the  spirit  reap  eternal  life.  Therefore,  let  us  not 
be  weary  in  good  conduct ;  since  at  the  proper  period  we  shall  reap,  if 
we  do  not  faint.  In  conclusion,  as  we  have  opportunity,  let  us  do  good 
to  all,  but  particularly  to  those  who  belong  to  the  family  of  faith. 

You  perceive  how  extensive  a  letter  I  have  written  to  you  with  my 
own  hand.  As  many  as  desire  to  make  a  plausible  display  in  the  flesh, 
such  would  compel  you  to  be  circumcised,  only  that  they  may  not  be 
persecuted  on  account  of  the  cross  of  Christ.  For,  not  even  do  the 
circumcised  themselves  keep  the  law  ;  yet,  they  wish  you  to  be  circum- 
cised, that  they  may  triumph  in  your  flesh.  But  far  be  it  that  I  should 
triumph,  except  in  the  cross  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  by  which  the 
world  is  crucified  to  me,  and  I  to  the  world.  For  in  Christ  Jesus  neither 
does  circumcision  avail  any  thing,  nor  uncircumcision  ;  but,  a  new  crea- 
tion. Now  as  many  as  shall  walk  by  this  rule,  peace  and  mercy  be  to 
them,  even  to  the  Israel  of  God. 

In  future,  let  no  one  assail  me  ;  for  I  bear  in  mj  body  the  marks  of 
the  Lord  Jesus.  Brethren,  may  the  grace  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  be 
with  your  spirit.     Amen  ! 


THE  LETTER  OF  PAUL  TO  THE  EPHESIANS. 

Paul,  an  apostle  of  Jesus  Christ,  by  appointment  of  God,  to  the 
saints  who  are  at  Ephesus,  and  to  the  faithful  in  Christ  Jesus  ;  grace  be 
to  you,  and  peace,  from  God  our  Father,  and  from  the  Lord  Jesus 
Christ. 

Praised  be  the  God  and  Father  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  who  has 
endued  us  with  every  spiritual  blessing  in  the  heavenly  dispensation 
through  Christ ;  even  as  he  has  chosen  us  in  him,  before  the  formation 
of  the  world,  that  we  might  be  holy  and  blameless  in  his  presence  ; 
having  in  love  previously  designated  us  as  his  adopted  sons  through 
Jesus  Christ,  according  to  the  good  pleasure  of  his  will,  to  the  praise 
of  his  distinguished  beneficence,  with  which  he  has  graciously  favored 
us  through  that  Beloved  Son  ;  by  whom  we  have  redemption  through 
his  blood,  the  forgiveness  of  sins,  according  to  his  abundant  kindness, 
which  he  has  made  to  overflow  towards  us  in  all  wisdom  and  under- 
standing ;  having  made  known  to  us  the  secret  of  his  will,  in  accord- 
ance with  his  good  design,  which  he  previously  formed  in  himself,  for  a 
dispensation  at  the  accomplishment  of  the  time,  to  re-unite  under  one 
head,  even  in  Christ,  all  things  that  are  in  heaven,  and  on  the  earth  ;  — 
in  him,  through  whom  we  also  have  obtained  an  inheritance,  previously 
defined  according  to  the  purpose  of  him  who  performs  all  things  agree- 
ably to  the  counsel  of  his  own  will ;  that  we  who  first  trusted  in  Christ, 
might  be  to  the  praise  of  his  glory  ;  in  whom  you  likewise  confided, 
having  heard  the  doctrine  of  truth,  even  the  gospel  of  your  salvation ; 
in  whom  also,  having  believed,  you  were  sealed  with  that  Holy  Spirit  of 
promise,  who  is  the  pledge  of  our  inheritance,  for  the  deliverance  of 
those  whom  he  has  purchased  for  himself,  to  the  praise  of  his  glory. 

On  this  account,  I  also,  having  heard  of  your  faith  in  the  Lord  Jesus, 
and  love  to  all  the  saints,  cease  not  to  offer  thanks  for  you,  particularly 
referring  to  you  in  my  prayers,  that  the  God  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ, 
the  Father  of  glory,  would  give  you  a  spirit  of  wisdom  and  revelation 
in  the  acknowledgment  of  him  ;  cause  the  eyes  of  your  heart  to  be  en- 
lightened ;  that  you  may  know  what  is  the  hope  of  his  invitation,  and 
what  is  the  glorious  abundance  of  his  proffered  inheritance  among  the 
saints ;  and  what  is  the  transcendent  greatness  of  his  power  towards  us 
who  believe,  according  to  the  operation  of  his  powerful  energy,  which 
he  exerted  in  Christ,  when  he  raised  him  from  the  dead,  and  seated  him 
at  his  own  right  hand  in  the  celestial  regions ;  far  above  all  empire,  and 
authority,  and  power,  and  dominion,  and  every  name  that  is  given,  not 
only  in  this,  but  also  in  the  future  world  ;  and  has  subjected  all  things 
under  his  feet,  and  constituted  him  head  over  all  things  to  the  church, 
which  is  his  body,  the  plenitude  of  him  who  accomplishes  all  things : 


392  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

and  has  reanimated  you,  who  were  dead  in  transgressions  and  sins,  in 
which  you  formerly  walked  according  to  the  practice  of  this  world, 
according  to  the  prince  of  the  power  of  the  air,  the  spirit  that  now 
operates  powerfully  in  the  sons  of  disobedience :  among  whom  we  all 
likewise  once  lived,  in  the  propensities  of  our  flesh,  fulfilling  the  dictates 
of  the  flesh  and  of  the  passions  ;  and  were  by  nature  children  of  displea- 
sure, even  as  others.  But  God,  being  rich  in  mercy,  through  his  great 
love  with  which  he  affectionately  regarded  us,  even  when  we  were  dead 
in  transgressions,  has  reanimated  us  together  through  Christ,  (by  grace 
you  are  saved),  and  has  raised  us  together,  and  has  made  us  sit  together 
in  heavenly  places,  through  Christ  Jesus  ;  that  in  the  future  ages  he 
might  exhibit  the  abundant  blessings  of  his  grace,  in  his  kindness  towards 
us  through  Christ  Jesus.  For  by  this  grace  you  are  saved,  through  faith  ; 
and  this  proceeds,  not  from  yourselves,  it  is  the  gift  of  God :  not  from 
works,  lest  any  one  should  glory.  Since  we  are  his  workmanship,  cre- 
ated in  Christ  Jesus  to  good  works,  for  which  God  before  prepared  us, 
that  we  might  walk  in  them. 

Therefore,  recollect,  that  you  were  once  Gentiles  in  the  flesh,  who 
were  called  the  uncircumcision,  by  that  which  is  termed  the  circumcision 
in  the  flesh  performed  by  hands ;  that  you  were  at  that  time  without 
Christ,  being  aliens  from  the  citizenship  of  Israel,  and  strangers  to  the 
covenants  of  promise,  having  no  hope,  and  without  God  in  the  world. 
But  now,  in  Christ  Jesus,  you,  who  were  formerly  far  ofi",  are  brought 
near  by  the  blood  of  Christ.  For  he  is  our  peace,  who  has  made  both 
one,  and  has  thrown  down  the  middle  wall  of  separation  between  us  ; 
having  abolished  in  his  flesh  the  enmity,  even  the  law  of  commandments 
concerning  ordinances  ;  that  he  might  form  in  himself,  from  the  two,  one 
new  man,  thus  producing  peace  ;  and  that  he  might  reconcile  both  to 
God  in  one  body  by  the  cross,  having  destroyed  by  it  the  enmity ;  and 
he  came  and  proclaimed  peace  to  you  that  were  far  off,  and  to  those  that 
were  near.  For  through  him  we  both  have  access  by  one  Spirit  to  the 
Fatheri 

Now  therefore,  you  are  no  longer  strangers  and  foreigners,  but  fellow- 
citizens  of  the  saints,  and  of  the  family  of  God,  built  on  the  foundation 
of  the  apostles  and  prophets,  Jesus  Christ  himself  being  the  chief  corner- 
stone ;  on  which  the  entire  edifice,  harmoniously  connected,  advances 
to  a  holy  temple  in  the  Lord  :  on  which  you  are  also  erected  together, 
for  a  habitation  of  God  through  the  Spirit. 

In  consequence  of  this,  I  Paul  am  the  prisoner,  on  account  of  Jesus 
Christ,  for  preaching  to  you  the  Gentiles ;  (since  indeed,  you  have  heard 
the  dispensation  of  the  grace  of  God  imparted  to  me  in  your  behalf; 
that  by  revelation  was  made  known  to  me  the  secret ;  as  I  have  briefly 
written  before  ;  by  which,  when  you  read,  you  may  perceive  my  knowl- 
edge in  the  new  doctrine  of  Christ ;  which  in  other  ages  was  not  made 
known  to  the  sons  of  men,  as  it  is  now  revealed  by  the  Spirit  to  his  holy 
apostles  and  prophets ;  that  the  Gentiles  should  be  joint-heirs,  and  a 


PAUL'S   LETTER  TO  THE  EPHESIANS.  293 

mutual  body,  and  reciprocal  partakers  of  his  promise  in  Christ  through 
the  gospel ;  of  which  I  was  made  a  minister,  according  to  the  gift  of  the 
grace  of  God,  which  was  communicated  to  me  by  the  energy  of  his 
power  :  to  me,  who  am  by  far  the  least  of  all  saints,  this  grace  was  im- 
parted, that  I  should  preach  among  the  Gentiles  the  unsearchable  bless- 
ings of  Christ ;  and  cause  all  men  clearly  to  see  what  is  the  secret  dis- 
pensation, which  from  the  commencement  of  ages  was  concealed  in 
God,  who  created  all  things  ;  that  the  multiplied  wisdom  of  God  might 
now  be  made  known  by  the  church,  to  the  principalities  and  powers  in 
heavenly  places  ;  according  to  a  perpetual  purpose  which  he  formed  in 
Christ  Jesus  our  Lord  ;  by  whom  we  have  this  freedom  of  speech,  and 
this  access  with  confidence  through  faith  in  him).  Therefore,  I  entreat 
that  I  may  not  faint  in  these  my  afflictions  for  you,  which  are  your 
glory.  For  this  reason,  I  bend  my  knees  before  the  Father  of  our  Lord 
Jesus  Christ,  from  whom  the  whole  family  in  heaven  and  on  earth  is 
named,  that  he  would  grant  you,  according  to  his  abundant  glory,  to  be 
powerfully  strengthened  by  his  Spirit  in  the  internal  man  ;  that  Christ 
may  dwell  in  your  hearts  through  faith  ;  so  that  being  rooted  and 
grounded  in  love,  you  may  be  completely  enabled  with  all  saints,  amply 
to  comprehend  what  is  the  breadth,  and  length,  and  depth,  and  height 
of  this  doctrine  ;  and  to  recognise  the  love  of  Christ,  which  surpasses 
knowledge,  that  you  may  be  replenished  with  all  the  fullness  of  God. 

Now  to  him  who  is  able  to  do  superabundantly  above  all  that  we  can 
solicit  or  imagine,  according  to  the  power  which  strongly  operates  in  us ; 
to  him  be  glory  in  the  church  by  Christ  Jesus,  through  all  the  successions 
of  an  endless  duration.     Amen  ! 

I,  thei'efore,  the  prisoner  in  the  cause  of  the  Lord,  beseech  you,  that  you 
walk  in  a  manner  worthy  of  the  profession  by  which  you  are  called  ; 
with  all  humUity  of  mind  and  meekness  ;  with  forbearance  sustain  one 
another  in  love  ;  intensely  laboring  to  preserve  the  unity  of  the  Spirit  in 
the  bond  of  peace.  There  is  one  body  and  one  Spirit,  even  as  you  are 
also  invited  in  one  hope  of  your  profession ;  one  Lord,  one  faith,  one 
baptism  ;  one  God  and  Father  of  all,  who  is  over  all,  and  pervading  all, 
and  in  you  all. 

Moreover,  the  gifts  of  Christ  have  been  kindly  bestowed  on  each  one 
of  us,  in  due  proportion.  (Thus  the  scripture  announces,  When  he 
ascended  on  high,  he  led  a  multitude  of  captives,  and  imparted  free 
gifts  to  men.  Now,  this  expression.  He  ascended,  what  does  it  imply, 
but  that  he  even  descended  to  the  lower  region  of  the  earth  ?  He 
who  descended  is  the  same  as  he  who  ascended  far  above  all  the 
heavens,  to  accomplish  all  things).  And  he  gave  to  some  to  be  apostles  ; 
and  some  to  be  public  teachers,  some  to  be  evangelists,  and  some  to  be 
pastors  and  private  teachers  ;  in  order  that  he  might  perfect  the  holy, 
accomplish  the  work  of  the  ministry,  form  the  body  of  Christ ;  till  we  all 
arrive  to  the  unity  of  the  faith,  and  of  the  knowledge  of  the  Son  of  God, 
to  the  state  of  perfect  men,  to  the  proportion  of  the  entire  maturity  of 


294  APOSTOLIC  PEODUCTIONS. 

Christ ;  that  we  may  no  longer  be  children,  fluctuating,  and  veered  by 
every  wind  of  doctrine,  through  the  fraudulent  artifice  of  men,  and  by 
the  subtilty  of  systematic  deception :  but  vindicating  the  truth  in  love, 
may  attain  in  all  things  to  him  who  is  the  head,  even  Christ :  from 
whom  the  whole  body  appropriately  united,  and  closely  cemented,  by 
the  supply  of  every  joint,  according  to  the  energy  proportionable  to 
every  part,  advances  the  body,  to  the  improvement  of  itself  in  love. 

I  allege  this  therefore,  and  inculcate  in  the  Lord,  that  you  no  longer 
walk  as  the  rest  of  the  Gentiles  walk,  in  the  folly  of  their  mind,  having 
the  understanding  dai-kened,  being  alienated  from  the  life  of  God  by 
the  ignorance  which  is  in  them,  through  the  insensibility  of  their  heart : 
who,  being  devoid  of  a  sense  of  shame,  have  surrendered  themselves  to 
licentiousness,  to  the  perpetration  of  all  impurity  with  excess.  However, 
you  have  not  thus  learned  Christ ;  since  indeed,  you  have  heard  him, 
and  have  been  instructed  by  him,  even  as  the  truth  is  in  Jesus  ;  to  put 
off'  in  reference  to  the  former  conduct,  the  old  man  who  is  depraved,  in 
compliance  with  the  deceitful  desires  ;  and  to  be  renewed  in  the  spirit 
of  your  mind  ;  and  to  put  on  the  new  man,  who,  in  conformity  4;o 
God,  is  created  in  righteousness  and  true  holiness. 

Therefore,  discarding  falsehood,  let  every  one  speak  truth  to  his 
neighbor  ;  for  we  are  members  of  each  other. 

Should  you  be  angry,  do  not  sin  :  let  not  the  sun  go  down  upon  your 
wrath  :  nor  give  the  slanderer  any  advantage  over  you. 

Let  him  that  stole,  steal  no  more,  but  let  him  rather  labor,  acquiring 
by  his  hands  what  is  useful,  that  he  may  be  able  to  bestow  on  him  that 
wants. 

Let  no  depraved  discourse  proceed  from  your  mouth,  but  any  thing 
which  is  conducive  to  the  purpose  of  improvement,  that  it  may  dispense 
grace  to  the  hearers.  And  do  not  afflict  that  Holy  Spirit  of  God,  by 
whom  you  have  been  sealed  to  the  day  of  redemption.  Let  all  bitter- 
ness, and  anger,  and  wrath,  and  clamor,  and  injurious  language  be  ban- 
ished from  you,  with  all  malignity  :  and  be  kind  to  each  other,  tenderly 
compassionate,  freely  forgiving  each  other,  even  as  God,  through  Christ, 
has  freely  forgiven  you.  Be  therefore  imitators  of  God  as  beloved  chil- 
dren ;  and  walk  in  love,  even  as  Christ  loved  us,  and  gave  himself  for 
us,  an  offering  and  a  sacrifice  to  God,  of  a  delicious  fragrance. 

Moreover,  let  not  fornication,  or  any  impurity,  or  excessive  indul- 
gence, be  even  named  among  you,  (as  becomes  Christians) ;  or  indecen- 
cy, or  unchaste  scurrility,  or  double  entendres,  which  are  improper  : 
but  rather,  instructive  discourse.  For  you  know  this,  that  no  fornica- 
tor, or  impure  person,  or  immoderately  passionate  man,  who  is  an  idol- 
ater, has  any  inheritance  in  the  kingdom  of  Christ  and  of  God.  Let 
no  man  delude  you  by  illusive  doctrines  ;  for  on  this  account  the  great 
displeasure  of  God  befalls  the  sons  of  disobedience.  Be  not  therefore 
partakers  with  them.  For  you  were  formerly  darkness  ;  but  now  you 
are  light  in  the  Lord  :  walk  as  children  of  light ;  (since  the  fruit  of  the 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  EPHESIANS.  295 

light  is  in  all  goodness,  and  righteousness,  and  truth);  investigating 
what  is  acceptable  to  the  Lord.  And  do  not  participate  in  the  fruitless 
works  of  darkness  but  rather,  even  reprove  them.  For  it  is  truly  in- 
decorous to  speak  of  those  things  which  are  committed  by  them  in  se- 
cret. But  all  things  that  are  reproved  are  manifested  by  the  light :  for 
whatever  manifests  is  light.  Therefore  it  declares,  awake  thou  that 
sleepest,  and  rise  from  the  dead,  and  Christ  will  give  thee  light. 

See  therefore  that  you  walk  correctly,  not  as  unwise,  but  as  wise  : 
retrieving  the  time,  because  the  days  are  evil.  Therefore,  be  not  in- 
considerate, but  understand  what  is  the  will  of  the  Lord.  And  be  not 
inebriated  with  wine,  in  which  is  profligacy ;  but  be  replenished  with 
the  Spirit ;  communing  with  yourselves  in  psalms,  and  hymns,  and  spir- 
itual odes  ;  singing  and  chanting  in  your  heart  to  the  Lord  ;  ever  giv- 
ing thanks  for  all  things,  to  God  even  the  Father,  in  the  name  of  our 
Lord  Jesus  Christ ;  submitting  yourselves  to  each  other  in  the  fear  of 
Christ. 

Wives  submit  yourselves  to  your  own  husbands,  as  to  the  Lord. 
Since,  the  husband  is  the  head  of  the  wife,  as  Christ  also  is  the  head  of 
the  church  ;  (and  he  is  the  Saviour  of  the  body) :  however,  as  the 
church  is  subject  to  Christ,  so  let  the  wives  be  to  their  own  husbands  in 
every  thing. 

Husbands,  love  your  wives,  as  Christ  also  loved  the  church,  and  gave 
himself  for  it ;  that  he  might  consecrate  it,  having  purified  it  by  the  ab- 
lution of  water,  through  the  word ;  that  he  might  present  to  himself  a 
glorious  church,  having  no  blemish  or  defect,  or  any  such  thing ;  but 
that  it  might  be  holy  and  uncontaminated.  Even  thus,  husbands  ought 
to  love  their  wives,  regarding  them  as  their  own  bodies.  He  who  loves 
his  wife,  loves  himself.  Now  no  man  ever  yet  hated  his  own  person  ; 
but  fosters  and  cherishes  it,  even  as  Christ  nourishes  the  church  ;  since 
we  are  members  of  his  body ;  we  are  of  his  flesh,  and  of  his  bones. 
Agreeably  to  this,  a  man  shall  leave  his  father  and  mother,  and  be  unit- 
ed to  his  wife,  and  they  two  shall  be  one  person.  This  is  an  important 
emblem,  I  mean,  as  it  relates  to  Christ,  and  to  the  church.  Moreover, 
let  every  one  of  you  so  love  his  wife  even  as  himself,  and  let  the  wife 
take  care  that  she  respect  her  husband. 

Children,  obey  your  parents  in  the  Lord,  for  this  is  right.  Honor  thy 
father  and  thy  mother,  (which  is  the  first  commandment  with  a  prom- 
ise), that  it  may  be  well  with  thee,  and  that  thou  mayst  live  long  on  the 
earth. 

And  fathers,  provoke  not  your  children  to  anger,  but  educate  them  in 
the  discipline  and  instruction  of  the  Lord. 

Servants,  obey  your  masters  according  to  the  flesh,  with  fear  and 
trembling,  in  the  honesty  of  your  heart,  as  you  obey  Christ ;  not  with 
eye-service  as  pleasing  men  ;  but  as  the  servants  of  Christ,  performing 
the  will  of  God  from  the  heart :  doing  service  with  cheerfulness,  as  to 
the  Lord,  and  not  to  men  :  knowing,  that  if  any  man  have  done  good. 


296  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

he  will  receive  as  much  for  it  from  the  Lord,  whether  he  be  enslaved 
or  free. 

And  masters^  do  the  same  to  them,  forbearing  menaces  ;  knowing 
that  you  yourselves  also  have  a  master  in  heaven,  and  that  there  is  no 
respect  of  persons  with  him. 

Finally,  my  brethren,  be  strengtheijed  in  the  Lord,  and  in  the  domin- 
ion of  his  power.  Put  on  tlie  panoply  of  God,  that  you  may  be  able 
to.  vithstand  the  machinations  of  the  enemy.  For  our  conflict  is  not 
with  blood  and  flesh,  but  with  principalities,  with  powers,  with  the  rul- 
ers of  this  darkness,  with  the  spirits  of  iniquity  in  high  stations.  There- 
fore, take  up  the  complete  armor  of  God,  that  you  may  be  able  to  resist 
in  the  evil  day,  and  to  stand,  having  conquered  all.  Stand,  therefore, 
haying  your  loins  girded  about  with  truth,  and  putting  on  the  breast- 
plate of  righteousness  ;  having  your  feet  shod  with  the  preparation  of 
thjB  good  news  of  peace  ;  besides  all,  having  ta,ken  up  the  shield  of 
faith,  by  which  you  will  be  able  to  extinguish  all  the  fiery  darts  of  the 
evU  one  ;  take  also  the  helmet  of  salvation ;  and  the  sword  of  the  Spir- 
it, which  is  the  word  of  God  :  imploring,  at  every  season,  with  all  prayer 
and  supplication  in  the  Spirit,  and  watching  thereto  with  all  persever- 
ance, and  sohcitation  for  all  the  saints ;  and  particularly  for  me,  that 
utterance  may  be  given  to  me,  in  opening  my  mouth  with  freedom,  to 
make  known  the  secret  of  the  gospel,  for  which  I  am  an  embassador  in 
chains ;  that  I  may  speak  freely  therein,  as  I  ought  to  speak. 

And  further,,  that  you  may  know  the  things  which  relate  to  me,  and 
how  I  am  employed,  Tychicus,  a  beloved  brother,  and  faithful  minister 
in  the  Lord,  will  fully  inform  you  ;  whom  I  have  sent  to  you  for  this 
very  purpose,  that  you  might  know  our  afl^airs,  and  that  he  might  com- 
fort your  hearts. 

Peace  be  to  the  brethren,  and  love  with  faith,  from  God  the  Father, 
and  froni;  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ ! 

Grace  be  with  all  those  who  love  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  in  integrity. 
Api^n! 


THE   LETTER  OF  PAUL  TO  THE   PHILIPPIANS. 

Paul  and  Timothy,  servants  of  Jesus  Christ,  to  all  the  holy  in  Christ 
Jesus,  who  are  at  Phihppi,  with  the  supervisors,  and  servants  of  the 
church  ;  grace  be  to  you,  and  peace,  from  God  our  Father,  and  from 
the  Lord  Jesus  Christ. 

I  offer  thanks  to  my  God  on  every  recurrence  to  you,  always,  in  every 
prayer  of  mine,  for  you  all,  making  supplication  with  joy,  for  your  par- 
ticipation in  the  gospel,  from  the  first  day  till  now ;  being  persuaded  of 
this  very  thing,  that  he  who  has  commenced  a  good  work  in  you,  will 
advance  it  till  the  day  of  Jesus  Christ :  as  it  is  just  in  me  to  be  thus 
affected  towards  you  all,  because  you  retain  me  in  your  hearts,  all  of 
you  being  partakers  of  the  blessing  with  me,  as  well  in  my  imprison- 
ment, as  in  the  defence  and  confirmation  of  the  gospel.  For  God  is  my 
witness,  how  very  affectionately  I  love  you  all,  in  the  tender  sympathies 
of  Jesus  Christ.  And  this  I  pray,  that  your  love  may  enlarge  still  more 
and  more  in  all  knowledge,  and  in  all  perception,  so  that  you  may  dis- 
criminate things  which  differ  ;  and  that  you  may  be  sincere  and  inoffen- 
sive, till  the  day  of  Christ ;  being  replenished  with  the  fruit  of  righteous- 
ness, which  is  through  Jesus  Christ,  to  the  glory  and  praise  of  God. 

Besides,  I  wish  you  to  understand,  brethren,  that  my  circumstances 
have  eventuated  rather  to  the  promotion  of  the  gospel ;  so  that  my  im- 
prisonment in  the  cause  of  Christ  is  well  known  to  the  whole  palace,  and 
to  all  others  ;  and  that  many  of  the  brethren,  more  confidently  trusting 
in  the  Lord  from  my  imprisonment,  have  been  much  more  emboldened 
fearlessly  to  proclaim  the  word. 

Indeed,  some  preach  Christ,  even  through  envy  and  contention ;  but 
some,  moreover,  through  benevolence.  The  former,  in  fact,  preach 
Christ  from  contention,  not  ingenuously,  intending  to  add  affliction  to 
my  imprisonment :  but  the  latter,  from  love,  aware  that  I  am  appointed 
for  the  defence  of  the  gospel.  What  then  1  though,  in  any  mode,  whe- 
ther in  pretence  or  in  truth,  Christ  be  proclaimed,  yet,  in  this  I  rejoice, 
and  assuredly,  will  rejoice.  For  I  know  that  this  will  conduce  to  my 
salvation  through  your  prayer,  and  the  supply  of  the  spirit  of  Jesus 
Christ ;  according  to  my  earnest  expectation  and  hope,  that  I  shall  in  no 
degree  be  disheartened  ;  but  that  with  all  liberty  of  speech,  as  ever,  so 
now  also,  Christ  will  be  magnified  in  my  body,  whether  by  life  or  death. 
Since,  as  it  respects  me,  to  live  is  Christ,  and  to  die  is  gain.  But  if 
permitted  to  continue  in  the  flesh,  this  is  the  result  of  my  labor ;  yet  I 
know  not  which  I  should  prefer  ;  but  I  am  in  an  uncertainty  between 
the  two,  having  the  wish  to  depart,  and  to  be  with  Christ,  which  is 
vastly  better  :  however,  to  remain  in  the  flesh  is  more  requisite  on  your 
account.     And  being  confident  of  this,  I  am  conscious  that  I  shall  abide, 

38 


298  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

and  shall  still  remain  with  you  all,  for  your  advancement  and  joy  in  the 
faith ;  that  your  triumph  in  Christ  Jesus  may  abound  through  me,  by 
my  presence  with  you  again. 

Only  conduct  worthily  of  the  gospel  of  Christ,  that  whether  I  come 
and  see  you,  or  be  absent,  I  may  learn  concerning  you  that  you  stand 
firmly  in  one  spirit,  with  one  mind  striving  together  for  the  faith  of  the 
gospel ;  and  in  no  respect  terrified  by  the  opposers  ;  which  is  to  them 
an  evident  indication  of  destruction,  but  to  you  of  salvation,  and  that 
from  God.  For  to  you  it  is  graciously  given,  with  regard  to  Christ,  not 
only  to  believe  in  him,  but  also  to  suffer  for  him  ;  having  the  same  con- 
flict which  you  saw  in  me,  and  now  hear  to  be  in  me. 

If,  therefore,  there  be  any  support  in  Christ,  if  any  consolation  from 
love,  if  any  participation  of  the  Spirit,  if  any  refined  sympathies  and 
compassions ;  consummate  my  joy,  in  that  you  cherish  the  same,  having 
the  same  love,  united  in  soul,  of  one  mind :  doing  nothing  through  strife 
or  vain-glory;  but  in  humility  of  mind  esteeming  others  as  more  excellent 
than  yourselves.  Let  not  every  one  exclusively  regard  his  own  interests, 
but  each  individual,  also,  the  interests  of  others.  Moreover,  let  this 
mind  be  in  you,  which  was  also  in  Christ  Jesus ;  who,  being  in  the 
similitude  of  God,  did  not  violently  strive  to  resemble  God ;  but  divested 
himself,  assuming  the  likeness  of  a  servant,  having  been  formed  in 
resemblance  of  men  ;  and  being  found  in  constitution  as  a  man,  humbled 
himself,  and  became  obedient  to  death,  even  the  death  of  the  cross. 
And,  therefore,  God  has  most  highly  exalted  him,  and  freely  given  him 
a  name  which  is  superior  to  every  appellation ;  that  in  the  name  of 
Jesus  every  knee  should  bend,  of  celestial,  terrestrial,  and  subterranean 
beings  ;  and  that  every  tongue  should  acknowledge,  that  Jesus  Christ  is 
Lord,  to  the  glory  of  God  the  Father. 

Therefore,  my  beloved,  as  you  have  always  obeyed,  not  only  as  in  my 
presence,  but  now  much  more  in  my  absence,  work  out  your  own  salva- 
tion with  fear  and  trembling,  since  it  is  God,  who  works  in  you  both  to 
will  and  to  perform,  through  his  gratuitous  benevolence.  Do  all  things 
without  complaints  and  altercations ;  that  you  may  be  blameless  and 
inoffensive,  children  of  God,  irreprehensible  in  the  midst  of  an  evasive 
and  perverse  generation ;  among  whom  shine  as  lights  in  the  world ; 
presenting  the  word  of  life  ;  to  my  triumph  in  the  day  of  Christ,  that  I 
have  not  inefiiciently  run,  nor  labored  in  vain.  Indeed,  if  I  am  even 
poured  out  on  the  sacrifice  and  public  offering  of  your  faith,  I  rejoice 
and  felicitate  you  all ;  and  in  the  same  manner  do  you  also  rejoice  and 
congratulate  me. 

However,  I  hope  in  the  Lord  Jesus,  instantly  to  send  Timothy  to 
you,  that  I  may  also  be  encouraged,  when  I  ascertain  your  situation  : 
since  I  have  no  other  of  congenial  disposition,  who  wiU  disinterestedly 
attend  to  your  afiairs.  (For  all  seek  their  own,  not  the  things  of  Jesus 
Christ.)  But  you  know  his  practice,  that  as  a  son  with  a  father,  he 
served  with  me  in  the  gospeL    I  hope  therefore,  to  send  him  imme- 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  PHILIPPIANS.  299 

diately,  as  soon  as  I  shall  learn  the  result  in  respect  to  myself.  But  I 
trust  in  the  Lord  that  I  shall  presently  visit  you  in  person. 

Yet  I  thought  it  necessary  to  send  to  you  Epaphroditus,  my  brother, 
and  companion  in  labor,  and  fellow-soldier,  but  your  messenger,  and 
the  dispenser  to  my  necessities.  For  he  was  exceedingly  attached  to 
you  all,  and  was  greatly  dejected,  because  you  had  heard  that  he  was 
sick.  And  indeed,  he  was  sick,  and  near  death  :  but  God  compas- 
sionated him,  and  not  only  him,  but  also  me,  lest  I  should  have  in- 
creased sorrow.  I  have  therefore  sent  liim  with  more  dispatch,  that 
when  you  see  him  again,  you  may  rejoice,  and  that  I  might  be  the  less 
afflicted.  Receive  him  therefore  in  the  Lord  with  all  joy ;  and  hold 
such  in  high  estimation  :  because  in  consequence  of  the  work  of  Christ, 
he  was  even  near  death,  having  hazarded  his  life,  that  he  might  supply 
the  deficiency  of  your  service  to  me. 

Moreover,  my  brethren,  rejoice  in  the  Lord.  To  write  the  same 
things  to  you,  is  not  indeed  unpleasant  to  me,  and  is  safe  for  you. 

Beware  of  dogs,  beware  of  evil-doers,  beware  of  the  excision.  For 
we  are  the  circumcision,  who  worship  God  in  the  spirit,  and  glory  in 
Christ  Jesus,  and  trust  not  in  the  flesh  :  though  I  might  have  confidence 
even  in  the  flesh.  If  any  other  man  appears  to  have  confidence  in  the 
flesh,  I  have  more  ;  circumcised  the  eighth  day,  from  the  race  of  Israel, 
from  the  tribe  of  Benjamin,  a  Hebrew  of  Hebrews  ;  concerning  the  law 
a  Pharisee ;  with  respect  to  zeal,  persecuting  the  church  ;  as  to  the 
righteousness  which  is  by  the  law,  irreproachable.  But  I  regarded 
those  things  which  were  gain  to  me,  as  loss  for  Christ.  Yes  doubtless, 
and  I  estimate  all  things  to  be  loss,  in  reference  to  the  most  excellent 
knowledge  of  Christ  Jesus  my  Lord  ;  for  whom  I  have  endured  the  pri- 
vation of  all  things,  and  regard  them  as  dross,  that  I  may  gain  Christ, 
and  be  found  in  him,  not  having  my  own  plan  of  forgiveness,  which  is 
from  the  law,  but  that  which  is  through  faith  in  Christ,  the  plan  of  for- 
giveness which  is  from  God,  in  consequence  of  faith  :  that  I  might 
know  him,  and  the  power  of  his  resurrection,  and  the  participation  of 
his  sufierings,  being  made  conformable  to  his  death  ;  if  by  any  means 
I  might  arrive  at  that  future  existence  of  the  dead.  Not  as  if  I  had  al- 
ready attained,  or  were  already  consummated :  but  I  pursue  it,  if,  in- 
deed, I  may  but  reach  that  for  which  I  am  even  retained  by  Christ. 
Brethren,  I  do  not  consider  myself  to  have  attained  ;  but  one  thing  [I  can 
affirm],  even  forgetting  the  things  which  are  behind,  and  reaching  forth 
to  those  which  are  before,  I  press  along  the  line,  for  the  prize  of  the 
heavenly  calling  of  God  in  Christ  Jesus.  Let  as  many  of  us,  therefore, 
as  would  be  perfect,  think  thus  ;  and  if  in  any  thing  you  think  other- 
wise, God  will  reveal  even  this  to  you.  However,  let  us  walk  accord- 
ing to  that  which  we  have  already  attained. 

Brethren,  be  jointly  imitators  of  me,  and  observe  those  who  thus 
walk,  as  you  have  us  for  an  example.     (For  many  walk,  of  whom  I 


300  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

have  frequently  informed  you,  and  now  apprise  you,  even  weeping, 
that  they  are  the  enemies  of  the  cross  of  Christ ;  whose  end  is  destruc- 
tion, whose  God  is  their  appetite,  and  whose  glory  is  in  their  shame  ; 
who  are  engrossed  by  earthly  things).  For  our  citizenship  is  in  heaven : 
from  which  we  also  expect  a  Saviour,  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ ;  who  will 
transform  our  abject  body,  that  it  may  resemble  his  exalted  body,  ac- 
cording to  the  energy  by  which  he  is  able  even  to  subject  all  things  to 
himself. 

Therefore,  my  dear  and  most  amiable  brethren,  ray  joy  and  crown, 
thus  stand  firmly  in  the  Lord,  my  beloved. 

I  entreat  Euodia,  and  I  entreat  Syntyche,  to  be  of  the  same  mind  in 
the  Lord  ;  indeed,  I  solicit  you,  true  companion,  to  aid  those  women 
who  have  labored  with  me  in  the  gospel,  with  Clement  also,  and  with 
my  other  co-operators,  whose  names  are  in  the  book  of  life. 

Rejoice  always  in  the  Lord ;  again  I  say,  rejoice.  Let  your  self- 
control  be  known  to  all  men.  The  Lord  is  near.  Be  not  anxious  in 
any  particular  ;  but  in  every  thing  let  your  petitions  be  made  known  to 
God,  by  prayer  and  supplication,  with  thanksgiving.  And  the  peace  of 
God  which  exceeds  all  comprehension,  will  guard  your  hearts  and  your 
minds,  in  Christ  Jesus. 

Finally,  brethren,  all  those  things  which  are  true,  those  which  are 
becoming,  those  which  are  equitable,  those  that  are  pure,  those  that  are 
kind,  those  that  are  reputable  ;  if  there  be  any  virtue,  and  if  any 
praise,  contemplate  these  subjects.  And  perform  the  things  which  you 
have  learned,  and  received,  and  heard,  and  seen  in  me  ;  and  the  God 
of  peace  will  be  with  you. 

Further,  I  rejoiced  greatly  in  the  Lord,  that  now  your  care  of  me 
has  ultimately  revived  ;  in  which  you  were  indeed  previously  attentive, 
but  wanted  opportunity.  Not  that  I  speak  in  relation  to  want :  for  I 
have  learned  in  whatever  circumstances  I  am,  to  be  contented.  I  know 
both  how  to  be  abased,  and  I  know  how  to  be  abundant :  in  every  place, 
and  in  all  conditions,  I  am  well  instructed  both  to  be  amply  nourished, 
and  to  endure  hunger,  both  to  abound  and  to  be  destitute.  I  can  do  all 
things  through  him  who  strengthens  me. 

However,  you  have  done  well,  jointly  dispensing  relief  in  my  afflic- 
tion. Moreover,  Philippians,  you  also  know,  that  in  the  commence- 
ment of  my  preaching  the  gospel,  as  I  was  departing  from  Macedonia, 
no  church  had  intercourse  with  me  in  the  affair  of  giving  and  receiving, 
except  you  alone  :  and  that  in  Thessalonica  you  sent  once,  and  a  sec- 
ond time  also,  relief  to  my  necessity.  Not  because  I  yet  desire  a 
gift ;  but  I  further  desire  that  fruit  may  abound  to  your  account.  For 
I  have  all  that  I  wish,  indeed,  an  abundance.  I  am  fuUy  satisfied, 
having  received  from  Epaphroditus  your  presents, — a  fragrant  odor, 
an  acceptable  sacrifice,  well-pleasing  to  God.  And  my  God  will  sup- 
ply all  your  necessity,  according  to  his  illustrious  blessings,  through 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  PHILIPPIANS.  301 

Christ  Jesus.  Now  to  our  God  and  Father,  be  glory  for  ever  and  ever. 
Amen ! 

Salute  every  saint  in  Christ  Jesus.  The  brethren  who  are  with  me 
salute  you.  All  the  Christians  salute  you,  but  principally,  those  of  Ce- 
sar's household. 

The  favor  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  be  with  you  all.    Amen  ! 


THE  LETTER  OF  PAUL  TO  THE  COLOSSIANS. 

Paul,  an  apostle  of  Jesus  Christ  by  the  will  of  God,  and  Timothy 
our  brother,  to  the  holy  and  faithful  brethren  in  Christ,  among  the  Col- 
ossians,  grace  be  to  you,  and  peace,  from  God  our  Father,  and  the  Lord 
Jesus  Christ. 

We  give  thanks  to  the  God  and  Father  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ, 
(always  praying  for  you,  having  heard  of  your  faith  in  Christ  Jesus, 
and  love  to  all  the  saints),  on  account  of  the  hope  which  is  treasured 
for  you  in  heaven,  of  which  you  have  before  heard  in  the  true  word  of 
the  gospel ;  which  has  appeared  to  you,  as  also  in  all  the  world ;  and 
produces  fruit,  and  increases,  even  as  in  you,  since  the  day  you  heard 
it,  and  knew  the  favor  of  God  in  truth  ;  as  you  also  learned  from  Epa- 
phras,  our  beloved  fellow-servant,  who  is  in  your  behalf  a  faithful  min- 
ister of  Christ ;  who  has  also  declared  to  us  your  love  in  the  Spirit. 

For  this  reason,  we  also,  from  the  day  we  heard  it,  have  not  ceased 
to  pray  for  you,  and  to  implore  that  you  may  be  filled  with  the  knowl- 
edge of  his  will,  in  all  spiritual  wisdom  and  understanding ;  that  you 
may  walk  deservedly  of  the  Lord,  so  as  to  please  him  in  all  things,  be- 
ing fruitful  in  every  good  work,  and  increasing  in  the  knowledge  of 
God  ;  strengthened  with  all  might,  according  to  his  glorious  power,  to 
all  patience,  and  endurance,  with  joy  ;  giving  thanks  to  the  Father,  who 
has  qualified  us  for  a  part  in  the  inheritance  of  the  saints  in  light ;  who 
has  rescued  us  from  the  dominion  of  darkness,  and  has  transferred  us 
to  the  kingdom  of  his  beloved  Son:  in  whom  we  have  deliverance, — 
the  pardon  of  sins  ;  who  is  a  representation  of  the  invisible  God,  the 
first-produced  of  the  entire  creation :  for  by  him  all  things  were  cre- 
ated, which  are  in  heaven,  and  which  are  on  earth,  visible  and  invisible, 
whether  thrones,  or  dominions,  or  principalities,  or  powers  ;  all  things 
were  created  through  him  and  for  him ;  and  he  precedes  all  things,  and 
in  him  aU  things  subsist.  And  he  is  the  head  of  his  body,  the  church : 
who  is  the  beginning,  the  originally  produced  from  the  dead ;  that  he 
might  be  rendered  first  in  all  things.  For  in  him  it  has  pleased  the 
Father  that  all  fullness  should  dwell ;  and  by  him  to  reconcile  all  things 
to  himself,  having  made  peace  through  the  blood  of  his  cross  ;  by  him, 
indeed,  whether  things  on  earth,  or  things  in  heaven.  And  you,  who 
were  formerly  aliens  and  enemies  in  mind  by  iniquitous  works,  he  has 
even  now  reconciled,  in  the  body  of  his  flesh  through  death,  to  present 
you  holy  and  blameless,  and  unexceptionable,  in  his  sight ;  if  you  con- 
tinue established  and  inflexible  in  the  faith,  and  unseduced  from  the 
hope  of  the  gospel,  which  you  have  heard,  and  which  has  been  pro- 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  COLOSSIANS.  303 

claimed  to  the  whole  human  race  ;  of  which  I  Paul  was  constituted  a 
minister. 

Now  rejoice  in  my  sufferings  for  you,  and  on  my  part  receive  what 
may  still  remain  of  my  afflictions  in  the  body,  on  account  of  Christ,  in 
the  place  of  his  body,  which  is  the  church  ;  of  which  I  was  appointed  a 
minister,  according  to  the  dispensation  of  God  which  was  given  me  in 
reference  to  you,  fully  to  proclaim  the  word  of  God  ;  even  the  secret, 
which  has  been  concealed  from  ages  and  from  generations,  but  is  now 
disclosed  to  his  saints  ;  to  whom  God  wished  to  disclose  what  is  the  rich 
glory  of  this  secret  among  the  Gentiles  ;  which  is  this,  Christ  is  in  you, 
the  hope  of  glory ;  whom  we  preach,  admonishing  every  man,  and  in- 
structing every  man  in  all  wisdom ;  that  we  may  present  every  man 
perfect  in  Christ :  for  which  I  also  labor  and  ardently  contend,  accord- 
ing to  his  energy,  which  powerfully  operates  in  me. 

For  I  would  that  you  knew  what  earnest  conflict  I  have  for  you,  and 
for  those  at  Laodicea,  and  for  as  many  as  have  not  seen  my  face  in  per- 
son ;  that  their  hearts  may  be  comforted,  being  closely  united  in  love, 
and  the  richest  and  most  assured  understanding,  to  the  acknowledge- 
ment of  the  secret  truths  of  God  ;  in  which  are  conceeded  all  the  trea- 
sures of  wisdom  and  knowledge.  And  I  assert  this,  lest  any  one  should 
deceive  you  by  persuasive  words.  For  though  I  am  absent  in  the  flesh, 
yet  I  am  with  you  in  the  spirit,  rejoicing,  and  witnessing  your  order, 
and  the  stability  of  your  faith  in  Christ.  As  you  have  therefore  received 
Christ  Jesus  the  Lord,  so  walk  in  him  ;  rooted  and  erected  in  him,  and 
established  in  the  faith,  as  you  have  been  taught,  abounding  in  it  with 
grateful  praise. 

Beware,  lest  any  man  despoil  you  through  a  vain  and  delusive  philo- 
sophy, according  to  the  tradition  of  men,  according  to  the  elements  of 
the  world,  but  not  in  conformity  to  Christ.  For  in  him  personally  dwells 
all  the  plenitude  of  the  Deity :  and  you  are  replenished  through  him, 
who  is  the  head  of  all  principality  and  power :  in  whom  you  are  also 
circumcised,  in  a  mode  not  performed  by  hands,  in  discarding  the  body 
of  the  flesh  by  the  circumcision  of  Christ ;  having  been  buried  with  him 
in  baptism,  in  which  you  were  also  raised  with  him  through  faith  in  the 
energy  of  God,  who  raised  him  from  the  dead.  And  you,  who  were 
dead  in  your  sins,  and  in  the  uncircumcision  of  your  flesh,  God  has  re- 
animated together  with  Christ,  having  freely  pardoned  all  your  offences ; 
having  obliterated  with  respect  to  us,  the  hand-writing  of  ordinances 
which  was  adverse  to  us,  and  has  removed  it,  nailing  it  to  his  cross  ;  and 
having  despoiled  principalities  and  powers,  he  has  made  a  public  exhibi- 
tion of  them,  and  triumphed  over  them  by  the  cross. 

Therefore,  let  not  any  condemn  you  in  food,  or  in  drink,  or  respect- 
ing a  festival,  or  new-moon,  or  the  sabbaths  ;  which  are  a  shadow  of 
future  things  ;  but  the  body  is  of  Christ.  Let  no  one  deprive  you  of 
the  prize,  who  delights  in  affected  humility,  and  veneration  of  angels, 
intruding  into  those  things  which  he  has  not  seen,  vainly  inflated  by  his 


304  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

sensual  mind.  And  not  adhering  to  the  Head,  from  whom  the  whole 
body,  supplied  and  connected  by  joints  and  sinews,  advances  with  the 
increase  of  God. 

If  you  are  dead  with  Christ  from  the  elements  of  the  world,  why,  as 
though  living  in  the  world,  are  you  subject  to  external  rites,  according 
to  the  injunctions  and  theories  of  men  1  [such  as  these],  (Do  not  touch 
things,  nor  taste,  nor  handle  ;  all  of  which  are  consumed  in  the  use  of 
them) ;  which  have  indeed  a  pretence  of  wisdom  in  capricious  worship, 
and  humiliation,  and  in  severity  to  the  body,  but  only  for  a  dishonorable, 
worldly  satisfaction. 

Since  therefore  you  are  risen  with  Christ,  seek  those  things  which  are 
above,  where  Christ  sits  at  the  right  hand  of  God.  Attend  to  things 
above,  and  not  to  things  on  the  earth.  For  you  are  dead,  and  your  life 
is  concealed  with  Christ  in  God.  When  Christ,  our  life,  shall  be  mani- 
fested, then  you  will  also  be  manifested  with  him  in  glory. 

Subdue  therefore  your  members  that  are  on  the  earth ;  incontinence, 
impurity,  unnatural  propensities,  evil  passions,  and  inordinate  desire, 
which  is  idolatry :  in  consequence  of  which,  the  severe  displeasure  of 
God  awaits  the  sons  of  disobedience  :  with  whom  you  also  walked  for- 
merly, when  you  lived  among  them.  But  now,  do  you  also  discard  all 
these  ;  rage,  resentment,  malice,  evil-speaking,  polluted  conversation, 
from  your  mouth.  Be  not  false  to  each  other,  having  put  off  the  old 
man  with  his  deeds  ;  and  having  put  on  the  new  man,  that  is  renewed 
in  knowledge,  according  to  the  likeness  of  him  who  created  him  :  where 
there  is  neither  Gentile  nor  Jew,  circumcision  nor  uncircumcision  ; 
barbarian  nor  Scythian,  slave  nor  free-man :  but  Christ  is  all,  and  in 
all. 

Put  on  therefore,  as  the  chosen  of  God,  holy  and  beloved,  tender 
mercy,  kindness,  humility  of  mind,  meekness,  patient  endurance  ;  for- 
bearing each  other,  and  freely  forgiving  each  other,  if  any  one  have  a 
cause  of  complaint  against  another  ;  even  as  Christ  has  freely  forgiven 
you,  so  also  do  ye.  And  in  addition  to  all  these,  put  on  love,  which  is 
the  bond  of  perfection.  And  let  the  peace  of  Christ  preside  in  your 
hearts,  to  which  you  have-also  been  called  in  one  body  ;  and  be  thankful. 

Let  the  doctrine  of  Christ  dwell  richly  among  you ;  teaching  and  ad- 
monishing each  other  in  all  wisdom  ;  singing,  with  grace  in  your  hearts 
to  God,  in  anthems,  and  sacred  melodies,  and  spiritual  odes.  And 
whatever  you  do  in  word,  or  in  deed,  do  all  in  the  name  of  the  Lord 
Jesus,  giving  thanks  to  God,  even  the  Father,  through  him. 

Wives,  be  subordinate  to  your  husbands,  as  is  the  duty  of  Christians. 
Husbands,  love  your  wives,  and  be  not  embittered  against  them. 

Children,  obey  your  parents  in  all  things  ;  for  this  is  highly  accept- 
able in  the  Lord.  Fathers,  do  not  exasperate  your  children,  lest  they  be 
discouraged. 

Servants,  obey  in  all  things  your  masters  according  to  the  flesh  ;  not 
with  eye-service  as  pleasing  men  ;  but  in  sincerity  of  heart,  fearing  God: 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  COLOSSIANS.  305 

and  in  whatever  you  engage,  pursue  it  heartily  as  to  the  Lord,  and  not 
to  men ;  knowing  that  you  will  receive  the  recompense  of  an  inherit- 
ance ;  for  you  serve  Christ  the  Lord.  But  he,  who  is  unjust,  will  be 
punished  for  the  injustice  which  he  has  committed  ;  and  there  is  no  re- 
spect of  persons.  Masters,  render  to  your  servants  justice  and  equity  ; 
knowing  that  you  also  have  a  master  in  the  heavens. 

Persevere  in  prayer,  being  vigilant  in  it  with  thanksgiving  ;  and  at 
the  same  time  supplicating  for  us,  that  God  would  open  to  us  a  door  of 
utterance,  to  announce  the  new  doctrine  of  Christ,  for  which  I  am  even 
in  chains  ;  that  as  I  ought  to  speak,  I  may  make  it  manifest.  Walk  in 
wisdom  towards  those  who  are  without,  redeeming  the  time.  Let  your 
discourse  be  always  with  grace,  seasoned  with  salt,  that  you  may  know 
how  you  ought  to  answer  every  man. 

All  things  respecting  me  Tychicus  will  communicate  to  you,  who  is  a 
beloved  brother,  and  faithful  minister,  and  fellow-servant  in  the  Lord  ; 
whom  I  have  sent  to  you  for  this  very  purpose,  that  you  may  know  our 
affairs,  and  may  comfort  your  hearts  ;  with  Onesimus  a  faithful  and 
beloved  brother,  who  is  one  of  you.  They  will  inform  you  of  the  entire 
state  of  things  here. 

Aristarchus,  my  fellow-prisoner  salutes  you,  and  Mark,  son  of  the 
sister  of  Barnabas,  concerning  whom  you  received  instructions,  (if  he 
comes  to  you  receive  him) ;  and  Joshua,  called  Justus,  who  are  of  the 
circumcision.  These  are  my  only  fellow-laborers  in  the  kingdom  of 
God,  who  have  been  a  comfort  to  me.  Epaphras,  who  is  one  of  you,  a 
servant  of  Christ,  salutes  you,  always  fervently  striving  for  you  in  his 
prayers,  that  you  may  stand  perfect  and  fully  persuaded  in  all  the  will 
of  God.  For  I  testify  in  his  behalf,  that  he  has  a  great  concern  for  you, 
and  for  those  in  Laodicea,  and  those  in  Hierapolis.  Luke,  the  beloved 
physician,  and  Demas,  salute  you.  Salute  the  brethren  who  are  at 
Laodicea ;  and  Nymphas,  and  the  religious  assembly  that  is  in  his  house. 
And  when  this  letter  is  read  to  you,  cause  that  it  be  also  read  in  the 
church  of  the  Laodiceans  ;  and  that  you  hkewise  read  the  letter  from 
Laodicea.  And  say  to  Archippns,  Attend  to  the  ministry  which  you 
have  received  in  the  Lord,  that  you  fully  discharge  it. 

The  salutation  of  Paul,  with  my  own  hand.  Remember  my  impris- 
onment.    Grace  be  with  you  ! 


39 


THE   FIRST   LETTER   OF   PAUL   TO   THE 
THESSALONIANS. 

Paul,  and  Silvanus,  and  Timothy,  to  the  church  of  the  Thessalonians 
in  God  the  Father,  and  in  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ ;  grace  and  peace  to 
you,  from  God  our  Father,  and  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ. 

We  offer  continual  praise  to  God  for  you  all,  particularizing  you  in 
our  prayers ;  incessantly  recollecting  your  active  faith,  and  laborious 
love,  and  patient  hope,  through  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  in  the  sight  of 
God,  even  our  Father  ;  knowing,  brethren,  beloved  of  God,  your  favora- 
ble designation  ;  that  our  gospel  came  not  to  you  in  word  only,  but  also 
in  power,  and  in  the  Holy  Spirit,  and  in  the  most  ample  persuasion  ; 
even  as  you  are  conscious  what  description  of  persons  we  were  among 
you  on  your  account.  And  you  became  imitators  of  us,  and  of  the  Lord, 
having  received  the  word  in  much  affliction,  with  joy  of  the  Holy  Spirit ; 
so  that  you  were  examples  to  all  the  believers  in  Macedonia,  and  in 
Achaia.  For  from  you  the  word  of  the  Lord  resounded  not  only  in  Mace- 
donia and  Achaia ;  but  also  in  every  place  your  faith  towards  God  was 
proclaimed,  so  that  it  became  unnecessary  for  us  to  relate  any  thing.  For 
they  themselves  declare  concerning  us  what  a  kind  of  introduction  we 
had  to  you,  and  how  you  turned  to  Deity  from  idols,  to  serve  the  living 
and  true  God  ;  and  to  await  his  Son  from  heaven,  whom  he  raised  from 
the  dead,  even  Jesus,  who  rescues  us  from  the  impending  vengeance. 

For,  you  personally  know,  brethren,  that  our  entrance  among  you 
was  not  in  vain.  But  when  we  had  previously  suffered,  and  had  been 
injuriously  treated,  as  you  are  aware,  at  Philippi,  we  boldly  preached  to 
you,  through  the  assistance  of  our  God,  the  gospel  of  God,  amid  so 
great  a  contention.  For  our  exhortation  was  not  from  error,  nor  from 
impurity,  nor  in  deception ;  but  as  God  regarded  us  worthy  to  be 
entrusted  with  the  gospel,  so  we  speak  ;  not  as  pleasing  men,  but  God, 
who  tries  our  hearts.  For  neither  did  we  at  any  time  use  flattering 
words,  as  you  know,  nor  a  pretext  of  covetousness  ;  (God  is  witness)  ; 
nor  did  we  seek  glory  from  men,  neither  from  you,  nor  from  others  ; 
though  we  might  have  had  influence  as  the  apostles  of  Christ.  But  we 
were  gentle  among  you,  as  a  nursing-mother  cherishes  her  own  children. 
Being  thus  tenderly  afiectionate  towards  you,  we  delighted  to  impart  to 
you  not  only  the  gospel  of  God,  but  also  our  own  lives,  because  you 
were  endeared  to  us.  For  you  remember,  brethren,  our  labor  and  toil ; 
that  working  night  and  day,  so  as  not  to  burden  any  of  you,  we  preach- 
ed to  you  the  gospel  of  God.  You  are  witnesses,  and  God  also,  how 
piously,  and  justly,  and  innocently,  we  conducted  ourselves  among  you 
that  believe :  as  you  know  how  we  encouraged  and  comforted  every  one 


PAUL'S  FIRST  LETTER  TO  THE  THESSALONIAS.  307 

of  you,  as  a  father  does  his  children,  and  charged  you  to  walk  worthily 
of  God,  who  has  invited  you  to  his  kingdom  and  glory. 

In  consequence  of  this,  we  also  incessantly  praise  God,  that  when 
you  received  the  word  of  God  which  you  heard  from  us,  you  embraced 
it  not  as  the  word  of  men,  but,  (as  it  is  in  truth),  the  word  of  God,  which 
also  efficiently  works  in  you  who  believe.  For  you,  brethren,  became 
imitators  of  the  churches  of  God  in  Judea,  which  are  in  Christ  Jesus  ; 
since  you  also  suffered  the  same  things  from  your  own  countrymen,  even 
as  they  did  from  the  Jews  ;  who  both  killed  the  Lord  Jesus  and  the  pro- 
phets, and  have  persecuted  us  ;  and  they  do  not  please  God,  and  are 
adverse  to  all  men  ;  not  suffering  us  to  declare  salvation  to  the  Gentiles  ; 
thus  constantly  filling  up  the  measure  of  their  sins  :  but  vengeance  has 
befallen  them  to  the  greatest  extremity. 

Now  we,  brethren,  bereaved  of  you  for  a  short  period,  in  person,  not 
in  heart,  have  more  abundantly  endeavored  with  great  earnestness  to 
see  your  face.  We  would  therefore  have  come  to  you,  (even  I  Paul), 
once  and  a  second  time  ;  but  the  adversary  hindered  us.  For  what  will 
be  our  hope,  or  joy,  or  crown  of  triumph  ?  Will  not  even  you,  in  the 
presence  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  at  his  appearance  1  You  are  indeed 
our  glory  and  joy. 

Therefore,  being  no  longer  able  to  endure  the  uncertainty,  we  acqui- 
esced in  being  left  alone  at  Athens  ;  and  sent  Timothy  our  brother,  and 
a  co-operator  with  God  in  the  gospel  of  Christ,  to  support  you,  and  to 
comfort  you  concerning  your  faith  ;  that  no  one  might  be  shaken  by 
these  afflictions  ;  since  you  yourselves  know  that  we  are  exposed  to 
these.  For  truly,  when  we  were  with  you,  we  previously  informed  you 
that  we  should  suffer  affliction  ;  even  as  it  occurred,  and  as  you  are 
aware  on  this  account  also,  when  I  could  no  longer  bear  the  anxiety,  I 
sent  to  ascertain  your  faith,  lest  by  any  means  the  tempter  had  seduced 
you,  and  our  labor  proved  in  vain. 

But  now,  Timothy  having  returned  to  us  from  you,  and  brought  to  us 
the  grateful  news  of  your  faith  and  love,  and  that  you  always  have  a 
favorable  remembrance  of  us,  ardently  wishing  to  see  us,  as  we  also  do 
to  see  you  ;  for  this  reason,  brethren,  we  were  consoled  respecting  you 
in  all  our  affliction  and  distress,  even  by  your  faith:  so  that  now  we  live, 
provided  you  stand  firmly  in  the  Lord.  For  what  gratitude  can  we  re- 
turn to  God  relative  to  you,  for  all  the  joy  with  which  we  rejoice  in  your 
behalf  before  our  God  ;  night  and  day  most  abundantly  entreating  to 
see  your  face,  and  to  make  up  the  deficiencies  of  your  faith  1 

Now  may  God  himself  even  our  Father,  and  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ, 
direct  our  way  to  you  ;  and  may  the  Lord  cause  you  to  abound  and 
overflow  in  love  to  each  other,  and  to  all,  even  as  we  do  towards  you  ; 
so  that  your  hearts  may  be  established  blameless  in  holiness  before  our 
God  and  Father,  at  the  coming  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  with  all  his 
saints. 


308  APOSTOLIC   PRODUCTIONS. 

Moreover,  brethren,  we  therefore  beseech  and  exhort  you  by  the  Lord 
Jesus  Christ,  as  you  have  learned  from  us  how  you  ought  to  walk,  and 
to  please  God,  that  you  would  abound  more  and  more.  For  you  know 
what  commandments  we  gave  you  by  commission  from  the  Lord  Jesus. 
Since  this  is  the  will  of  God,  even  your  purification,  that  you  should 
abstain  from  incontinence  ;  that  every  one  of  you  should  know  how  to 
retain  his  person  in  purity  and  honor ;  not  in  the  excess  of  passion, 
even  as  the  Gentiles  who  know  not  God  ;  that  no  one  should  circumvent 
or  defraud  his  brother  in  any  particular,  because  the  Lord  is  the  avenger 
of  all  such,  as  we  have  9.IS0  apprised  you  before,  and  testified.  For 
God  has  not  summoned  us  to  impurity,  but  to  holiness.  He  therefore 
who  despises  this  precept,  rejects  not  man,  but  God,  who  has  even  im- 
parted to  us  his  Holy  Spirit  for  our  benefit. 

Now,  concerning  fraternal  love,  you  do  not  require  that  I  should  write 
to  you,  for  you  yourselves  are  divinely  instructed  to  love  each  other  : 
and  indeed,  you  do  practise  this  towards  all  the  brethren,  that  are  in  all 
Macedonia.  But  we  exhort  you,  brethren,  that  you  increasingly  abound ; 
and  that  you  earnestly  endeavor  to  live  quietly,  and  to  perform  your  own 
business,  and  to  work  with  your  own  hands,  as  we  commanded  you  ;  that 
thus  you  may  walk  becomingly  towards  those  who  are  without,  and  that 
you  may  want  nothing. 

Further,  we  wish  you  to  be  informed,  brethren,  concerning  those  who 
are  deceased  ;  that  you  may  not  lament,  even  as  others,  who  have  no 
hope.  For  since  we  believe  that  Jesus  died  and  arose,  thus  also,  God 
will  bring  with  him,  through  Jesus,  those  also  that  are  dead.  For  this 
we  declare  to  you  on  the  word  of  the  Lord,  that  those  of  us  who  shall 
be  left  alive  at  the  coming  of  the  Lord,  will  not  precede  those  who  are 
dead.  For  the  Lord  himself  will  descend  from  heaven  with  a  command, 
with  the  voice  of  an  archangel,  and  with  the  trumpet  of  God  ;  and  the 
dead  in  Christ  will  rise  first :  subsequently,  we  who  are  left  alive,  will 
together  with  them  be  caught  up  into  the  clouds,  to  meet  the  Lord  in 
the  air  ;  and  thus  shall  we  always  be  with  the  Lord.  Therefore,  com- 
fort each  other  with  these  words. 

Besides,  in  relation  to  the  times  and  the  seasons,  brethren,  you  have 
no  occasion  that  I  should  write  to  you,  for  you  are  individually  assured, 
that  the  day  of  the  Lord  is  coming  as  a  thief  in  the  night.  When  men 
shall  say.  Peace  and  safety  ;  then  sudden  destruction  will  come  upon 
them,  like  anguish  upon  her  who  is  in  parturition,  and  they  cannot 
escape. 

But  brethren,  you  are  not  in  darkness,  that  the  day  should  surprise 
you  like  a  thief.  You  are  all  sons  of  light,  and  sons  of  the  day ;  we 
are  not  of  the  night,  nor  of  darkness.  Therefore,  let  us  not  sleep  even 
as  others  ;  but  let  us  be  vigilant  and  temperate.  For  those  that  sleep, 
sleep  by  night ;  and  those  that  are  inebriated,  are  inebriated  by  night. 
But  let  us,  who  are  of  the  day  be  self-governed,  putting  on  the  breast- 


PAUL'S  FIRST  LETTER  TO  THE  THESSALONIANS.  309 

plate  of  faith  and  love,  and  for  a  helmet  the  hope  of  salvation.  For 
God  has  not  designated  us  to  severe  displeasure,  but  to  the  attainment  of 
salvation  through  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ ;  who  died  for  us,  that,  whether 
we  live  or  die,  we  may  live  together  with  him.  Therefore,  console  each 
other,  and  instruct  one  another,  as  indeed  you  do. 

Now  we  entreat  you,  brethren,  to  acknowledge  those  who  labor  among 
you,  and  superintend  you  in  the  Lord,  and  admonish  you,  and  to  regard 
them  with  pre-eminent  love,  in  consequence  of  their  office  :  remaining 
at  peace  among  yourselves. 

Moreover,  we  exhort  you,  brethren,  admonish  the  disorderly,  comfort 
the  faint-hearted,  sustain  the  feeble,  be  forbearing  towards  all.  See 
that  none  render  evil  for  evil  to  any  ;  but  ever  follow  that  which  is  good 
both  among  yourselves,  and  towards  all. 

Ever  rejoice.  Pray  incessantly.  In  every  condition  give  thanks  : 
since  this  is  the  will  of  God,  in  Christ  Jesus,  respecting  you. 

Extinguish  not  the  Spirit.  Despise  not  instructions.  Investigate  all 
things  ;  firmly  retain  that  which  is  good.     Avoid  all  appearance  of  evil. 

And  may  the  God  of  peace  himself  sanctify  you  entirely  ;  may  your 
whole  constitution,  —  the  spirit,  and  the  life,  and  the  body,  —  be  pre- 
served blameless  to  the  appearance  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ !  He  who 
calls  you  is  faithful ;  and  he  will  perform  it. 

Brethren  pray  for  us.  Salute  all  the  brethren  with  a  pious  kiss.  I 
adjure  you  by  the  Lord,  that  this  letter  be  read  to  all  the  holy  brethren. 
The  favor  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  be  with  you  ! 


THE  SECOND  LETTER  OF  PAUL  TO  THE 
THESSALONIANS. 

Paul,  and  Silvanus,  and  Timothy,  to  the  church  of  the  Thessalonians 
in  God  our  Father,  and  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ ;  grace  to  you,  and  peace, 
from  God  our  Father,  and  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ. 

We  ought  to  thank  God  always  with  respect  to  you,  brethren,  as  it  is 
proper,  because  your  faith  advances  exceedingly,  and  the  love  of  every 
one  of  you  towards  each  other  abounds  ;  so  that  we  ourselves  glory  in 
you  among  the  churches  of  God,  for  your  patience  and  faith  in  all  your 
persecutions  and  afflictions  which  you  endure  ;  as  an  evident  indication 
of  the  righteous  judgment  of  God,  that  you  may  be  rendered  worthy  of 
the  kingdom  of  God,  for  which  you  even  suffer  :  since,  it  is  a  just  thing 
with  God,  to  recompense  affliction  to  those  who  afflict  you  ;  but  to  you 
who  are  afflicted,  rest  with  us,  when  the  Lord  Jesus  shall  be  manifested 
from  heaven,  with  his  powerful  angels,  in  a  flame  of  fire,  inflicting  ven- 
geance on  those  who  do  not  acknowledge  God,  and  obey  not  the  gospel 
of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ.  Those  will  sufier  a  sentence  of  perpetual 
destruction  from  the  face  of  the  Lord,  and  from  the  glory  of  his  pow- 
er ;  in  that  day  when  he  will  come  to  be  glorified  in  his  saints,  and  to 
be  admired  among  all  those,  who  have  believed  ;  (since  our  testimony 
was  accredited  among  you).  For  this  purpose  indeed  we  always  pray 
for  you,  that  our  God  would  render  you  worthy  of  this  call,  and  accom- 
plish with  power  every  kind  intention  of  beneficence,  and  work  of  faith ; 
that  the  name  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  may  be  glorified  in  you,  and  you 
in  him,  according  to  the  grace  of  our  God,  and  of  our  Lord  Jesus 
Christ. 

Further,  we  entreat  you  brethren,  respecting  the  appearance  of  our 
Lord  Jesus  Christ,  and  our  assembling  to  him,  that  you  be  not  suddenly 
shaken  in  mind,  nor  troubled  either  by  any  declaration  of  the  spirit,  or 
by  any  expression,  or  by  any  letter  as  from  us,  as  if  the  day  of  the 
Lord  were  instantly  approaching.  Let  no  one  deceive  you  by  any 
means ;  for  [it  will  not  arrive],  till  there  come  first  an  apostacy,  and 
the  man  of  sin,  the  son  of  destruction  be  displayed,  who  opposes,  and 
exalts  himself  above  every  one  that  is  entitled  God,  or  is  an  object 
of  adoration ;  so  that  he  sits  in  the  temple  of  God,  representing  him- 
self to  be  God.  Do  you  not  remember,  that,  when  I  was  yet  with  you, 
I  communicated  to  you  these  things  ?  And  now,  you  know  what  pre- 
vents him  from  being  displayed  in  his  own  time.  For  the  secret  of 
iniquity  already  operates  ;  only  when  that,  which  to  this  time  restrains, 
shall  be  removed  ;  then  indeed,  the  lawless  one  will  be  disclosed,  whom 


PAUL'S  SECOND  LETTER  TO  THE  THESSALONIANS.  311 

the  Lord  will  consume  by  the  breath  of  his  mouth,  and  will  destroy  by 
the  radiance  of  his  advent :  even  him,  whose  appearance  is  according 
to  the  active  exertion  of  the  adversary,  with  all  imposture  of  miracles, 
and  of  signs,  and  wonders,  and  with  every  iniquitous  deception  among 
those  who  are  destroyed ;  because  they  received  not  the  love  of  the 
truth,  that  they  might  be  preserved.  And  for  this  cause  God  will  leave 
them  to  the  powerful  operation  of  error,  so  that  they  will  believe  the 
falsehood  ;  and  thus,  they  all  may  be  condemned,  who  believed  not  the 
truth,  and  took  pleasure  in  iniquity. 

However,  we  ought  always  to  give  thanks  to  God  for  you,  brethren, 
beloved  of  the  Lord,  that  God  from  the  commencement  chose  you  to 
salvation  through  purification  of  the  Spirit,  and  belief  of  the  truth  ;  for 
which  purpose,  he  has  called  you  by  the  gospel  which  we  preach,  to  the 
attainment  of  the  glory  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ.  Thus  therefore, 
brethren,  stand  firmly,  and  retain  the  instructions  which  you  have  re- 
ceived, either  by  word,  or  our  letter.  Now  may  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ 
himself,  and  God,  even  our  Father,  who  has  loved  us,  and  has  given  us 
perpetual  consolation  and  good  hope  through  favor,  comfort  your  hearts, 
and  establish  you  in  every  good  doctrine  and  duty  ! 

Moreover,  brethren,  pray  for  us,  that  the  word  of  the  Lord  may  rap- 
idly advance,  and  be  highly  distinguished,  even  as  it  is  among  you ;  and 
that  we  may  be  delivered  from  ungovernable  and  vicious  men ;  for  all 
have  not  fidelity  :  but  the  Lord  is  faithful ;  who  will  establish  you,  and 
keep  you  from  the  evil  one.  And  we  confide  in  the  Lord  concerning 
you,  that  you  both  perform,  and  will  perform,  the  things  which  we  com- 
mand you.  And  may  the  Lord  direct  your  hearts  to  the  love  of  God, 
and  to  the  patience  of  Christ ! 

Now  we  charge  you,  brethren,  in  the  name  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ, 
to  withdraw  yourselves  from  every  brother  who  walks  irregularly,  and 
not  agreeably  to  the  instruction  which  they  received  from  us.  For  you 
personally  know  how  you  ought  to  imitate  us  ;  since  we  did  not  conduct 
disorderly  among  you  ;  nor  did  we  eat  any  man's  bread  for  nothing ; 
but  with  labor  and  toil,  we  worked  night  and  day,  that  we  might  not 
burden  any  of  you ;  not  because  we  have  no  right ;  but  to  render  our- 
selves an  example  to  you,  that  you  might  imitate  us.  For,  even  when 
we  were  with  you,  this  we  commanded  you,  that  if  any  one  will  not 
work,  neither  let  him  eat.  Yet,  we  hear  that  some  among  you  walk 
disorderly,  doing  nothing,  but  are  ofiiciously  employed.  Now  those  who 
are  such  we  command,  and  exhort  by  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  that  they 
labor  with  quietness,  and  eat  their  own  bread.  And  as  for  you,  breth- 
ren, faint  not  in  doing  good.  And  if  any  one  obey  not  our  word  by 
this  letter,  note  that  person,  and  do  not  associate  with  him,  that  he  may 
be  ashamed.  Yet,  consider  him  not  as  an  enemy,  but  admonish  him  as 
a  brother. 


312  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

Now  may  the  Lord  of  Peace  himself  give  you  peace  always,  in  every 
respect !    The  Lord  be  with  you  all ! 

This  is  the  salutation  of  Paul  with  my  own  hand,  which  is  a  token  in 
every  letter  :  Thus  I  write.  May  the  grace  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ 
be  with  you  all.     Amen  ! 


THE   FIRST   LETTER   OF   PAUL   TO   TIMOTHY. 

Paul,  an  apostle  of  Jesus  Christ,  by  the  institution  of  God,  our  Pre- 
server, and  Christ  Jesus  our  hope ;  to  Timothy,  my  real  son  in  the 
faith  ;  grace,  mercy,  and  peace,  from  God  our  Father,  and  Christ  Jesus 
our  Lord. 

As  I  entreated  you  to  continue  at  Ephesus,  when  I  went  to  Macedo- 
nia, that  you  might  charge  some  not  to  inculcate  other  doctrine,  nor 
give  attention  to  fables  and  endless  genealogies,  which  cherish  disputa- 
tions, rather  than  the  dispensation  of  God  which  is  by  faith  :  — 

(Now  the  design  of  the  injunction  is  love,  from  a  pure  heart,  and  a 
good  conscience,  and  undissembled  faith  ;  from  all  which  some  having 
erred,  have  turned  aside  to  frivolous  discussion  ;  desiring  to  be  teachers 
of  the  law,  yet  not  understanding  what  they  say,  nor  respecting  what 
they  confidently  affirm.  However,  we  know  that  the  law  is  excellent, 
if  a  man  use  it  legitimately ;  assured  of  this,  that  a  law  is  not  enacted 
in  reference  to  a  righteous  man,  but  for  the  lawless  and  refractory,  for 
the  irreligious  and  for  sinners,  for  the  impious  and  profane,  for  violent 
assaulters  of  fathers,  and  violent  assaulters  of  mothers,  for  assassins,  for 
the  incontinent,  for  men  of  unnatural  passions,  for  kidnappers,  for  liars, 
for  perjured  persons,  and  if  there  be  any  other  thing  that  is  opposed  to 
salutary  doctrine  ;  according  to  the  glorious  gospel  of  the  blessed  God, 
with  which  I  have  been  entrusted.  And  I  thank  Christ  Jesus  my  Lord, 
who  has  endued  me,  that  he  regarded  me  faithful,  placing  me  in  the 
ministry  ;  who  was  previously  a  defamer,  a  persecutor,  and  an  oppressor. 
But  I  obtained  mercy,  because  I  acted  ignorantly  through  unbelief. 
And  the  grace  of  our  Lord  has  superabounded,  with  that  faith  and  love 
which  are  in  Christ  Jesus.  This  is  a  true  doctrine,  and  worthy  of  uni- 
versal reception,  that  Christ  Jesus  came  into  the  world  to  save  sinners; 
of  whom  I  am  the  first.  However,  for  this  cause  I  obtained  mercy,  that 
in  me,  as  the  first,  Jesus  Christ  might  exhibit  all  forbearance,  for  an 
exemplification  to  those  who  should  afterwards  believe  in  him  to  ever- 
lasting life.  Now  to  the  King  eternal,  imperishable,  invisible,  to  God 
alone,  be  honor  and  glory  for  ever  and  ever.     Amen)  ! 

I  commit  this  charge  to  you,  son  Timothy,  in  conformity  to  preceding 
instructions  relative  to  you,  that  by  them  you  may  achieve  a  good  war- 
fare ;  retaining  faith  and  a  good  conscience  ;  which  some  having  thrust 
away,  have  made  shipwreck  with  respect  to  faith :  of  whom  are  Hyme- 
neus  and  Alexander,  whom  I  have  delivered  to  the  adversary,  that  they 
may  be  taught  not  to  speak  impiously. 

I  exhort,  therefore,  first  of  all,  that  supplications,  prayers,  interces- 
sions, and  grateful  praises,  be  offered  in  behalf  of  all  men  ;  for  kings, 
and  for  all  who  are  in  high  station ;  that  we  may  pass  a  quiet  and 
40 


314  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

peaceful  life,  in  all  piety  and  integrity.  Since,  this  is  good  and  accep- 
table in  the  sight  of  God  our  Saviour,  who  requires  that  all  men  should 
be  saved,  and  come  to  the  acknowledgment  of  the  truth.  For  there  is 
one  God,  and  one  Mediator  also  between  God  and  men,  the  man  Christ 
Jesus  ;  who  gave  himself  a  ransom  for  all,  a  doctrine  to  be  attested  at 
proper  periods ;  of  which  I  was  appointed  a  herald  and  an  apostle,  (I 
speak  the  truth,  and  am  not  false)  ;  an  instructer  of  the  Gentiles  in  faith 
and  truth. 

I  command,  therefore,  that  men  pray  in  every  place,  lifting  up  holy 
hands  without  anger  and  doubtful  perplexity :  in  like  manner,  that 
women  also  adorn  themselves  in  decorous  attire,  with  modesty  and 
moderation  ;  not  with  plaited  hair,  or  gold,  or  pearls,  or  extravagant 
dress  ;  but  (which  becomes  women  professing  the  worship  of  God),  with 
good  works.  Let  a  woman  learn  in  quietness  with  all  submission.  For 
I  do  not  permit  a  woman  to  teach,  or  to  usurp  authority  over  a  man,  but 
she  must  be  quiet :  since  Adam  was  formed  first,  and  then  Eve.  And 
Adam  was  not  [first]  deceived  ;  but  the  woman,  having  been  deceived, 
was  in  the  transgression.  Yet,  she  shall  be  saved  by  means  of  parturi- 
tion :  provided  they  live  in  faith,  and  love,  and  holiness,  with  sobriety 
of  mind. 

This  is  a  correct  remark,  that,  if  any  man  ardently  wishes  a  spiritual 
superintendency,  he  earnestly  desires  an  honorable  employment.  Such 
a  superintendent,  then,  must  be  blameless,  married  to  one  wife  only, 
vigilant,  prudent,  decorous,  devoted  to  hospitality,  quahfied  to  instruct, 
not  inordinately  attached  to  wine,  no  violent  assaulter ;  but  mild,  not 
contentious,  not  avaricious  ;  one  who  properly  presides  over  his  own 
family,  having  his  children  in  subjection  with  aU  seriousness ;  (for  if  any 
one  knows  not  how  to  govern  his  own  family,  how  can  he  take  care  of 
the  church  of  God)  ?  Not  a  new  convert,  lest  being  inflated  with  vanity, 
he  incur  the  censure  of  the  slanderer.  Moreover,  it  is  also  necessary, 
that  he  should  have  a  good  testimony  from  those  who  are  without,  lest 
he  fall  into  reproach,  and  the  snare  of  the  calumniator. 

In  a  similar  manner,  let  the  spiritual  servants  be  serious,  not  deceit- 
fiil,  not  addicted  to  much  wine,  not  sordidly  attached  to  gain,  retaining 
the  disclosure  of  the  faith  with  a  pure  conscience.  And  let  even  these 
be  first  proved,  then  let  them  perform  their  official  duties,  being  irre- 
proachable. Let  the  women  likewise  be  serious,  not  calumniators, 
watchful,  faithful  in  all  things.  Let  the  servants  of  the  church  be  re- 
spectively married  to  one  wife  only,  rightly  ruling  their  children  and 
their  own  families.  For  those  who  have  properly  discharged  the  ofloice 
of  a  spiritual  servant,  acquire  to  themselves  an  honorable  grade,  and 
great  freedom  of  speech  in  the  faith  which  is  in  Christ  Jesus. 

Hoping  soon  to  visit  you ;  but  should  I  delay,  I  now  write  these 
things  to  you,  that  you  may  know  how  you  ought  to  conduct  yourself  in 
the  house  of  God,  which  is  the  assembly  of  the  living  God. 


PAUL'S  FIRST  LETTER  TO  TIMOTHY.  815 

The  new  doctrine  of  piety,  which  is  the  pillar  and  basis  of  the  truth, 
is  incontestably  great.  God  was  displayed  in  humanity,  vindicated  by 
the  Spirit,  viewed  by  celestial  messengers,  proclaimed  to  the  Gentiles, 
accredited  in  the  world,  exalted  to  glory. 

Further,  the  Spirit  expressly  declares,  that,  in  latter  periods,  some 
will  apostatize  from  the  faith,  giving  attention  to  spirits  of  deceit,  and 
to  doctrines  of  fiends  ;  through  the  hypocrisy  of  those  who  utter  false- 
hoods ;  whose  own  conscience  is  cauterized  ;  who  interdict  marriage, 
and  command  to  abstain  from  certain  descriptions  of  food,  which  God 
has  created  to  be  participated  with  grateful  praise,  by  those  who  believe 
and  know  the  truth.  For  every  creature  of  God  is  good,  and  nothing  is 
to  be  rejected,  [provided  it  be]  received  with  thanksgiving  ;  since  it  is 
consecrated  through  the  command  of  God,  and  by  prayer. 

If  you  remind  the  brethren  of  these  things,  you  will  be  a  good  minister 
of  Jesus  Christ,  nourished  in  the  words  of  the  faith,  and  of  the  good 
doctrine  which  you  have  thoroughly  understood.  Moreover,  reject  pro- 
fane and  anile  stories  ;  and  exercise  yourself  to  piety.  For  corporeal 
exertion  is  of  minor  advantage ;  but  piety  is  advantageous  in  all  re- 
spects, having  a  promise  of  the  present,  and  of  the  future  life.  This  is  a 
faithful  declaration,  and  deserving  of  all  acceptance.  For  on  this  ac- 
count we  both  labor  and  endure  reproach,  because  we  trust  in  the  living 
God,  who  is  a  Preserver  of  all  men,  particularly  of  those  who  believe. 
These  things  enjoin  and  teach. 

Let  no  man  despise  thy  youth  ;  but  be  an  example  to  the  believers 
in  doctrine,  in  conduct,  in  love,  in  fidelity,  in  purity.  Till  I  arrive, 
attend  to  reading,  to  exhortation,  to  instruction.  Neglect  not  the  en- 
dowment that  is  in  you,  which  was  imparted  to  you  through  prediction, 
with  the  imposition  of  the  hands  of  the  seniority.  Revolve  these  things  ; 
be  occupied  in  them  ;  that  your  usefulness  may  be  apparent  in  all 
things.  Attend  to  yourself,  and  to  your  doctrine ;  have  stability  in 
these  respects  ;  for,  in  doing  this,  you  will  both  save  yourself,  and  those 
that  hear  you. 

Do  not  harshly  reprove  an  aged  man,  but  exhort  him  as  a  father  ; 
and  the  younger  men  as  brethren  ;  the  aged  women  as  mothers  ;  the 
younger  as  sisters  with  all  purity. 

Support  widows  who  are  truly  destitute.  But  if  any  widow  has  chil- 
dren, or  grand-children,  let  them  learn,  in  the  first  place,  to  treat  their 
own  family  with  kindness  ;  and  to  render  reciprocal  benefits  to  their 
progenitors  ;  for  this  is  good  and  acceptable  in  the  sight  of  God.  Now 
she  who  is  truly  a  widow,  and  left  entirely  alone,  hopes  in  God,  and 
continues  in  supplications  and  prayers  night  and  day  :  but  she  who  lives 
luxuriously,  is  dead  while  she  lives.  And  these  things  inculcate,  that 
they  may  be  blameless.  But  if  any  one  does  not  provide  for  his  own 
relatives,  and  especially  for  those  of  his  own  family,  he  has  renounced 
the  faith,  and  is  worse  than  an  unbeliever. 


316  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

Let  not  a  widow  be  registered  under  sixty  years  of  age,  having  been 
the  wife  of  one  husband,  well  reputed  for  beneficent  deeds  ;  if  she  has 
educated  children,  if  she  has  lodged  strangers,  if  she  has  washed  the 
feet  of  the  Christians,  if  she  has  relieved  the  afflicted,  if  she  has  dili- 
gently followed  every  good  work.  But  reject  younger  widows  ;  for 
when  they  become  impatient  of  Christian  self-direction,  they  wish  to 
marry  ;  incurring  guilt,  because  they  have  discarded  their  first  fidelity. 
And  at  the  same  time  they  learn  also  to  be  idle,  going  about  from  house 
to  house  ;  and  not  only  idle,  but  also  frivolous  and  officious,  commu- 
nicating what  is  indecorous.  I  advise  therefore,  that  the  younger 
widows  marry,  bring  up  children,  superintend  the  family,  give  no  occa- 
sion of  malediction  to  the  adversary.  For  some  have  already  turned 
aside  after  the  adversary.  If  any  believer  of  either  sex  has  widows,  let 
such  support  them,  and  let  not  the  church  be  burdened,  that  it  may  sus- 
tain those  who  are  really  widows. 

Let  the  presbyters  who  preside  well,  be  regarded  worthy  of  double 
reward;  particularly,  those  who  labor  in  preaching,  and  instruction. 
For  the  scripture  says.  Thou  shalt  not  muzzle  the  ox  that  is  treading 
out  the  grain  :  and.  The  workman  is  deserving  of  his  compensation. 

Do  not  receive  an  accusation  against  a  presbyter,  except  on  the  tes- 
timony of  two  or  three  witnesses.  Those  who  sin  reprove  before  all, 
that  even  others  may  fear.  I  charge  you  in  the  presence  of  God,  and 
of  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  and  of  the  chosen  angels,  that  you  attend  to 
these  things  without  prejudice,  doing  nothing  by  partiality. 

Impose  hands  hastily  on  no  one  ;  and  partake  not  in  the  sins  of  others. 
Keep  yourself  pure.  (Drink  not  water  only  any  longer,  but  use  a  little 
wine  in  reference  to  the  stomach,  and  your  numerous  infirmities). 

The  sins  of  some  men  are  previously  manifest,  preceding  to  judg- 
ment ;  but  they  succeed  others.  And  in  a  similar  manner,  the  good 
works  of  some  are  antecedently  manifest ;  and  those,  which  are  other- 
wise, cannot  be  concealed. 

Let  as  many  servants  as  are  under  dominion,  regard  their  own  mas- 
ters as  deserving  of  all  honor,  that  the  name  of  God,  and  his  doctrine 
may  not  be  impiously  traduced.  And  let  not  those,  who  have  believing 
masters,  despise  them,  because  they  are  brothers  ;  but  let  them  serve 
the  more  willingly,  because  those,  who  jointly  partake  of  the  benefit, 
are  believing  and  beloved.     These  things  teach  and  exhort. 

If  any  man  teach  otherwise,  and  accede  not  to  the  salutary  precepts  of 
our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  and  to  the  doctrine  which  is  according  to  piety, 
he  is  inflated,  knowing  nothing,  but  is  distracted  respecting  questions 
and  verbal  discussions,  from  which  proceed  envy,  contention,  abusive 
language,  evil  suspicions,  perverse  disputations  of  men  of  depraved 
minds,  and  destitute  of  the  truth,  supposing  that  piety  is  gain.  From 
such  withdraw  yourself. 

But  piety  with  a  competency  is  great  gain.  For  we  brought  nothing 
into  this  world,  and  it  is  evident  that  we  cannot  carry  any  thing  out. 


PAUL'S  FIRST  LETTER  TO  TIMOTHY.  317 

Having  therefore  food  and  covering,  let  us  consider  these  as  sufficient. 
But  they  who  determine  to  be  rich,  fall  into  temptation  and  a  snare,  and 
into  many  inconsiderate  and  injurious  desires,  which  plunge  men  into 
ruin  and  destruction.  For  the  love  of  money  is  the  root  of  all  these 
evils  ;  which  while  some  excessively  desired,  they  have  entirely  deviated 
from  the  faith,  and  have  pierced  themselves  all  around  with  numerous 
sorrows. 

But  thou,  O  man  of  God,  escape  these  things  ;  and  pursue  integrity, 
piety,  fidelity,  love,  patience,  mildness.  Maintain  the  good  contest  of 
faith  ;  grasp  eternal  life,  to  which  you  have  been  called,  and  have  made 
a  good  profession  before  many  witnesses.  I  charge  you  in  the  presence 
of  God,  who  animates  all  things,  and  of  Jesus  Christ,  who  before  Pon- 
tius Pilate  witnessed  a  good  profession,  that  you  keep  this  command- 
ment, uncontaminated  and  irreprehensible,  till  the  appearance  of  our 
Lord  Jesus  Christ ;  which  in  the  proper  period,  he  wUl  manifest,  who  is 
the  blessed  and  only  Potentate,  the  King  of  kings,  and  Lord  of  lords  ; 
who  alone  has  immortality,  inhabiting  inaccessible  light ;  whom  no  man 
has  seen,  or  can  see  ;  to  whom  be  honor  and  everlasting  dominion. 
Amen  ! 

Charge  the  rich  in  this  world  not  to  be  high-minded,  nor  to  confide  in 
the  uncertainty  of  riches,  but  in  the  living  God,  who  liberally  imparts  to 
us  all  tilings  for  our  enjoyment ;  to  do  good,  to  be  rich  in  good  works, 
ready  to  distribute,  willing  to  bestow  ;  treasuring  for  themselves  a  good 
foundation  against  the  future,  that  they  may  seize  eternal  life. 

O  Timothy,  keep  that  which  is  committed  to  your  trust,  avoiding 
profane  emptiness  of  speech,  and  oppositions  of  knowledge  falsely  so 
denominated  ;  which  some,  having  professed,  have  erred  concerning  the 
faith.     Grace  be  with  you  ! 


THE    SECOND   LETTER   OF   PAUL   TO   TIMOTHY. 

Paul,  an  apostle  of  Jesus  Christ,  bj  the  will  of  God,  agreeably  to  the 
promise  of  life  in  Christ  Jesus,  to  Timothy  my  beloved  son  ;  grace, 
mercy,  and  peace,  from  God  the  Father,  and  from  Christ  Jesus  our 
Lord! 

I  offer  thanks  to  God,  whom  I  religiously  serve,  after  the  example  of 
my  ancestors,  with  a  pure  conscience,  that  I  have  an  unceasing  remem- 
brance of  you  in  my  prayers  night  and  day  ;  ardently  desiring  to  see 
you,  (being  mindful  of  your  tears),  that  I  may  be  filled  with  joy  ;  and 
retaining  in  recollection  the  unfeigned  faith  that  is  in  you,  which  first 
dwelt  in  your  grand-mother  Lois,  and  your  mother  Eunice  ;  and  I  am 
persuaded  that  it  remains  also  in  you. 

For  this  reason,  I  remind  you  to  incite  the  free  gift  of  God,  which  is 
in  you  by  the  imposition  of  my  hands.  For  God  has  not  given  us  a 
spirit  of  cowardice,  but  of  courage,  and  of  love,  and  of  a  sound  mind. 

Be  not  therefore  ashamed  of  the  testimony  of  our  Lord,  nor  of  me 
his  prisoner ;  but  participate  in  the  afflictions  of  the  gospel,  according 
to  the  power  of  God  ;  who  has  saved  us,  and  called  us  with  a  holy  invi- 
tation, not  according  to  our  works,  but  in  conformity  to  his  own  purpose, 
and  the  grace  which  was  bestowed  on  us  in  Christ  Jesus,  before  the  re- 
mote dispensations  ;  but  which  is  now  manifested  by  the  appearance  of 
our  Saviour  Jesus  Christ,  who  has  destroyed  death,  and  spread  abroad 
the  light  of  everlasting  life  by  the  gospel :  in  reference  to  which  I  was 
appointed  a  herald,  and  an  apostle,  and  a  teacher  of  the  Gentiles.  For 
which  cause  I  also  suffer  these  chains  :  but  I  am  not  disheartened  ;  for 
I  know  in  whom  I  have  confided,  and  I  am  convinced  that  he  is  able  to 
keep  that  which  I  have  deposited  with  him,  against  that  day. 

Retain  the  summary  of  sound  precepts,  which  you  have  heard  from 
me,  with  the  faith  and  love  which  are  in  Christ  Jesus.  That  honorable 
office,  which  was  entrusted  to  you,  keep,  by  the  assistance  of  the  Holy 
Spirit  which  dwells  in  us. 

You  know  this,  that  all  those  of  Asia  have  turned  from  me  ;  of  whom 
are  Phygellus  and  Hermogenes.  May  the  Lord  impart  mercy  to  the 
family  of  Onesiphorus  !  for  he  has  often  refreshed  me,  and  has  not  been 
ashamed  of  my  chain  ;  but  when  he  was  in  Rome,  he  searched  for  me 
very  diligently,  and  found  me.  The  Lord  grant  to  him  that  he  may 
obtain  mercy  from  the  Lord  in  that  day  !  And  in  respect  to  his  many 
services  in  Ephesus,  you  are  very  well  aware. 

Consequently,  my  son,  be  strong  in  the  favor  which  is  by  Jesus  Christ. 
And  the  things  which  you  have  heard  from  me  in  the  presence  of  many 
witnesses,  these  commit  to  faithful  men,  who  will  be  able  also  to  instruct 
others.     Therefore,  endure  difficulties  as  a  good  soldier  of  Jesus  Christ. 


PAUL'S  SECOND  LETTER  TO  TIMOTHY.  319 

No  man,  engaged  in  war,  is  involved  in  the  affairs  of  this  life  ;  that 
he  may  please  him,  under  whom  he  is  enlisted.  And  if  any  one  contend 
[in  the  public  games,]  he  is  not  crowned,  unless  he  contend  legally.  The 
husbandman  must  first  labor,  and  then  partake  of  the  fruits.  Consider 
what  I  say  ;  and  the  Lord  will  give  you  understanding  in  all  things. 

Remember  Jesus  Christ  of  the  lineage  of  David,  who  was  raised  from 
the  dead  according  to  the  gospel  which  I  preach  ;  for  which  I  suffer 
hardships  even  to  bonds,  as  a  malefactor  ;  but  the  word  of  God  has  not 
been  bound.  Therefore  I  endure  all  things  on  account  of  the  chosen, 
that  they  may  also  obtain  the  salvation  which  is  through  Christ  Jesus, 
with  eternal  glory.  This  is  a  true  doctrine  ;  for  if  we  have  died  with 
him,  we  shall  also  live  with  him  ;  if  we  endure,  we  shall  also  reign  with 
him  ;  if  we  renounce  him,  he  will  also  renounce  us  ;  though  we  are 
faithless,  he  remains  faithful  ;  he  cannot  deny  himself. 

Remind  them  of  these  things,  charging  them  before  the  Lord,  not 
to  engage  in  verbal  contentions,  which  are  of  no  utility,  but  conduce  to 
the  subversion  of  the  hearers.  Sedulously  endeavor  to  present  yourself 
before  God  as  approved,  as  a  workman  who  has  no  cause  to  be  ashamed, 
rightly  dividing  the  word  of  truth.  But  avoid  profane  and  empty  decla- 
mations ;  since  they  that  use  them  will  advance  to  more  impiety  ;  and 
their  discourse  will  eat  lilce  a  gangrene  :  of  which  number  are  Hymene- 
us  and  Philetus  ;  who  have  deviated  with  respect  to  the  truth,  asserting 
that  the  resurrection  is  already  past ;  and  subvert  the  faith  of  some. 

However,  the  firm  foundation  of  God  stands,  having  this  inscription  ; 
The  Lord  approves  those  who  are  his  ;  and.  Let  every  one,  who  pro- 
fesses the  name  of  the  Lord,  depart  from  iniquity.  But  in  a  great  house 
there  are  not  only  vessels  of  gold  and  silver,  but  also  of  wood  and  earth ; 
some  indeed  for  honorable,  but  others  for  dishonorable  uses.  If  there- 
fore any  one  entirely  purify  himself  from  such  things,  he  will  be  a  vessel 
to  honor,  consecrated,  and  serviceable  to  the  master,  and  prepared  for 
every  good  use. 

Moreover,  fly  from  youthful  desires,  and  assiduously  follow  righteous- 
ness, fidelity,  love,  peace,  in  connexion  with  those  who  invoke  the  Lord 
from  a  pure  heart.  Avoid  also  foolish  and  unlearned  inquiries,  con- 
scious that  they  produce  contentions  ;  and  a  servant  of  the  Lord  must 
not  contend ;  but  must  be  gentle  to  all,  qualified  to  teach,  and  to  en- 
dure evil ;  with  mildness  instructing  opposers ;  since  God  may  turn 
their  mind  to  an  acknowledgment  of  the  truth  ;  and  that  being  rescued 
alive  from  the  snare  of  the  enemy,  they  may  be  preserved  to  perform 
the  divine  wUl. 

Further,  know  this,  that  in  the  last  days,  difficult  periods  wiU  arrive. 
For  men  will  be  selfish,  avaricious,  arrogant,  ostentatious,  impious,  dis- 
obedient to  parents,  ungrateful,  unholy,  without  natural  affection,  per- 
fidious, calumniators,  licentious,  fierce,  despisers  of  those  who  are  good, 
treacherous,  rash,  frivolously  aspiring,  lovers  of  pleasure  rather  than 


320  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

lovers  of  God ;  having  a  form  of  holiness,  but  discarding  its  power  : 
from  such  also  turn  away.  For  of  this  description  are  those  who  in- 
sinuate themselves  into  families,  and  deceive  inconsiderate  women, 
burdened  with  sins,  decoyed  by  various  desires,  ever  learning,  and  never 
able  to  come  to  the  acknowledgment  of  the  truth.  Now,  as  Jannes  and 
Jambres  resisted  Moses,  so  do  these  also  oppose  the  truth  ;  persons  of 
depraved  minds,  not  enduring  the  trial  of  the  faith.  But  they  will  not 
proceed  fer  ;  for  their  folly  will  appear  plainly  to  all,  as  that  of  the 
others  also  did. 

Moreover,  you  have  accurately  traced  my  doctrine,  conduct,  inten- 
tion, fidelity,  forbearance,  love,  patience,  persecutions,  sufferings  ;  what 
befell  me  at  Antioch,  at  Iconium,  at  Lystra  ;  what  persecutions  I  endur- 
ed ;  but  from  all  the  Lord  delivered  me.  And  indeed,  eJl  who  deter- 
mine to  live  religiously  in  Christ  Jesus,  will  suffer  persecution. 

But  iniquitous  men  and  impostors  will  become  worse  and  worse, 
deceiving,  and  being  deceived.  However,  remain  in  the  things  which 
you  have  learned,  and  have  been  convinced  of  by  proof,  knowing  from 
whom  you  have  learned  them  ;  and  that  from  a  child  you  have  known 
the  holy  scriptures,  which  are  able  to  make  you  wise  to  salvation,  through 
faith  which  is  in  Christ  Jesus.  Every  divinely  inspired  composition  is 
useful  for  doctrine,  for  reproof,  for  instruction  in  righteousness,  that  the 
man  of  God  may  be  complete,  entirely  qualified  for  every  good  work. 

I  charge  you,  in  presence  of  God,  and  of  Jesus  Christ,  who  will 
judge  the  living  and  the  dead,  at  his  appearance,  and  in  his  kingdom  ; 
preach  the  word  ;  be  watchful  over  them  ;  confute,  reprove,  admonish 
in  season,  out  of  season,  with  the  utmost  patience  of  instruction.  For 
the  time  will  come  when  they  will  not  endure  sound  instruction  ;  but 
will  accumulate  teachers  to  themselves,  according  to  their  own  eager 
desires,  having  an  insatiable  curiosity  ;  and  they  will  indeed  withhold 
their  attention  from  the  truth,  and  will  be  turned  to  fables.  But  be 
self-directed  on  all  occasions,  endure  adversity,  perform  the  work  of  an 
evangelist,  consummate  your  ministry. 

For  I  am  already  offered,  and  the  time  of  my  departure  is  near.  I 
have  achieved  the  good  conflict,  I  have  completed  the  course,  I  have 
retained  the  fidelity.  It  remains  that  a  crown  of  mercy  is  deposited 
for  me,  which  the  Lord,  the  merciful  Judge  will  impart  to  me  in  that 
day,  and  not  only  to  me,  but  also  to  all  those  who  have  loved  his  ap- 
pearance. 

Endeavor  to  come  to  me  immediately  :  for  Demas  has  forsaken  me, 
from  his  love  for  the  present  world,  and  has  departed  to  Thessalonica  ; 
Crescens,  to  Galatia ;  Titus,  to  Dalmatia.  Luke  alone  is  with  me. 
Take  Mark,  and  bring  him  with  you  ;  for  he  is  useful  to  me  as  a  minis- 
ter. Now  Tychicus  I  have  sent  to  Ephesus.  When  you  come,  bring 
the  mantle  which  I  leffc  at  Troas  with  Carpus  ;  and  the  manuscripts, 
but  particularly  the  parchments. 


PAUL'S  SECOND  LETTER  TO  TIMOTHY.         321 

Alexander  the  coppersmith  has  done  me  much  disservice  ;  the  Lord 
will  reward  him  according  to  his  works.  Of  whom  also  beware  ;  for 
he  has  greatly  opposed  our  instruction. 

At  my  first  vindication  none  appeared  with  me,  but  all  deserted  me  ; 
may  it  not  be  laid  to  their  charge  !  However,  the  Lord  stood  by  me, 
and  fortified  me  ;  that  by  me  the  preaching  of  his  gospel  might  be 
amply  sustained,  and  that  all  the  Gentiles  might  hear.  And  I  was  res- 
cued from  the  mouth  of  the  lion.  And  the  Lord  will  rescue  me  from 
every  evil  work,  and  will  preserve  me  to  his  heavenly  kingdom  :  to  him 
be  glory  for  ever  and  ever.     Amen  ! 

Salute  Priscilla  and  Aquila,  and  the  family  of  Onesiphorus.  Erastus 
remained  at  Corinth  ;  and  I  have  left  Trophimus  sick  at  Miletus.  En- 
deavor to  come  before  winter. 

Eubulus,  and  Pudens,  and  Linus,  and  Claudia,  and  all  the  brethren, 
salute  you.  The  Lord  Jesus  Christ  be  with  your  Spirit  !  Grace  be 
with  you  ! 


41 


THE   LETTER   OF   PAUL   TO   TITUS. 

Paul,  a  servant  of  God,  and  an  apostle  of  Jesus  Christ,  agreeably  to 
the  faith  of  the  chosen  of  God,  and  the  acknowledgment  of  the  truth, 
which  is  according  to  holiness  ;  in  hope  of  eternal  life,  which  God,  who 
cannot  be  unfaithful,  promised  before  the  ancient  dispensations  ;  and  at 
an  appropriate  period  has  displayed  this  promise  by  a  proclamation 
with  which  I  was  entrusted,  in  conformity  to  a  commission  of  God  our 
Saviour  ;  to  Titus,  my  own  son  with  respect  to  the  common  faith ;  favor, 
mercy,  and  peace,  from  God  our  Father,  and  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ  our 
Saviour  ! 

For  this  purpose  I  left  you  in  Crete,  that  you  might  accomplish  the 
things  which  were  omitted,  and  constitute  presbyters  in  every  city,  as  I 
directed  you  : — If  any  one  is  irreproachable,  married  to  one  wife  only, 
who  has  believing  children,  not  under  accusation  of  profligacy,  or 
ungovernable.  For,  the  spiritual  supervisor  must  be  blameless,  as  the 
steward  of  God  ;  not  despotic,  not  irascible,  not  addicted  to  wine,  not  a 
violent  assaulter,  not  devoted  to  despicable  gain  ;  but  a  lover  of  hospi- 
tality, a  friend  to  goodness,  self-governed,  just,  beneficent,  temperate ; 
firmly  retaining  the  true  word  as  he  has  been  taught,  that  he  may  be 
able  both  to  exhort  by  sound  instruction,  and  to  confute  the  opposers. 

For  there  are  many  refractory  persons,  and  vain  declaimers  and 
deceivers,  particularly  those  of  the  circumcision  :  such  must  be  silenced; 
who  subvert  whole  families,  teaching  things  which  they  ought  not,  for 
the  purpose  of  dishonorable  gain.  One  of  themselves,  a  poet  of  their 
own,  has  asserted,  The  Cretans  are  perpetual  liars,  pernicious  beasts, 
insatiate  gluttons.  This  testimony  is  true.  For  this  reason,  reprove 
them  severely,  that  they  may  be  sound  in  the  faith  ;  not  giving  attention 
to  Jewish  fables,  and  the  commandments  of  men,  who  pervert  the  truth. 
To  the  pure,  all  things  are  indeed  pure ;  but  to  those  who  are  polluted 
and  unbelieving,  nothing  is  pure ;  for  even  their  mind  and  conscience 
are  contaminated.  They  profess  to  know  God,  but  in  works  they 
renounce  him ;  being  detestable,  and  disobedient,  and  as  to  every  good 
work  regardless. 

However,  announce  the  things  which  become  sound  instruction  ;  that 
the  aged  men  be  vigilant,  serious,  self-governed ;  sound  in  faith,  in 
love,  in  patience  ;  that  the  aged  women,  likewise,  be  in  deportment  as 
becomes  holiness,  not  slanderers,  not  enslaved  to  much  wine,  teachers 
of  that  which  is  good ;  that  they  may  wisely  admonish  the  younger 
women  to  love  their  husbands,  to  love  their  children,  to  be  discreet, 
chaste,  domestic,  good,  submissive  to  their  own  husbands,  that  the  word 
of  God  may  not  be  traduced. 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  TITUS.  323 

In  like  manner  exhort  the  young  men  to  be  self-controlled  :  in  all 
respects  showing  yourself  a  pattern  of  good  works  ;  in  instruction  exer- 
cising integrity,  seriousness,  sound  speech,  which  cannot  be  condemned  ; 
that  he  who  is  in  opposition  may  be  ashamed,  having  no  evil  thing  to 
say  of  us. 

Exhort  servants  to  be  obedient  to  their  own  masters,  to  please  them 
well  in  all  things,  not  contradicting,  not  stealing,  but  showing  all  good 
fidelity;  that  they  may  adorn  the  doctrine  of  God  our  Saviour  in  all 
things. 

For,  the  favor  of  God,  which  is  salutary  to  all  men,  has  appeared, 
teaching  us,  that  having  renounced  impiety,  and  worldly  passions,  we 
should  live  soberly,  righteously,  and  piously,  in  this  present  world  ; 
awaiting  the  blessed  hope,  even  the  glorious  appearance  of  the  great 
God,  and  our  Saviour  Jesus  Christ,  who  gave  himself  for  us,  that  he 
might  redeem  us  from  all  iniquity,  and  purify  to  himself  a  peculiar  peo- 
ple, devoted  to  good  works.  These  things  teach,  and  urge,  and  demon- 
strate, with  all  authority.     Let  no  one  despise  you. 

Remind  them  to  be  subject  to  authorities  and  powers,  to  obey  magis- 
trates, to  be  ready  for  every  good  work  ;  to  calumniate  no  man,  not  to 
be  contentious,  but  gentle,  showing  all  mildness  to  all  men. 

For,  we  also  were  formerly  unwise,  disobedient,  deceived,  enslaved  to 
various  evil  propensities  and  pleasures,  living  in  malice  and  envy,  odious, 
and  hating  each  other.  But,  when  the  kindness  and  philanthropy  of 
God  our  Preserver  appeared,  not  by  works,  (purchasing  pardon),  which 
we  had  performed,  but  according  to  his  own  mercy  he  saved  us,  by  the 
washing  of  renovation,  and  the  renewal  of  the  Holy  Spirit ;  which  he 
poured  on  us  richly,  through  Jesus  Christ  our  Saviour  ;  that  being  par- 
doned by  his  favor,  we  might  become  heirs,  according  to  the  hope  of 
eternal  life.  This  is  faithful  instruction  ;  and  respecting  these  things  I 
desire  you  earnestly  to  insist ;  that  those  who  have  believed  in  God,  may 
be  assiduous  to  advance  in  good  works. 

These  are  the  things,  which  are  good  and  useful  to  men.  But  avoid 
inconsiderate  inquiries,  and  genealogies,  and  contentions,  and  alterca- 
tions about  the  law,  for  they  are  useless  and  vain.  Discard  a  factious 
man,  after  the  first  and  second  admonition  ;  knowing  that  such  an  one 
transgresses,  being  self-condemned. 

When  I  shall  send  to  you  Artemas,  or  Tychicus,  endeavor  to  visit  me 
at  Nicopolis  ;  for  there  I  have  determined  to  pass  the  winter.  Dili- 
gently conduct  on  their  way  Zenas  the  lawyer,  and  Apollos ;  that 
nothing  be  wanted  by  them.  And  let  our  disciples  also  learn  to  excel 
in  virtuous  employments  for  necessary  objects  ;  and  not  to  be  unfruitful. 
All  that  are  with  me  salute  you.  Salute  those  who  love  us  in  the  faith. 
Divine  favor  be  with  you  all ! 


THE  LETTER   OF   PAUL   TO   PHILEMON. 

Paul,  a  prisoner  for  Christ  Jesus,  and  Timothy  our  brother,  to  Phile- 
mon, our  beloved  friend  and  co-operator,  and  to  our  dear  sister  Apphia, 
and  to  Archippus,  our  fellow-soldier,  and  to  the  religious  assembly  at 
your  house  ;  grace  be  to  you,  and  peace  from  God  our  Father,  and  from 
the  Lord  Jesus  Christ ! 

I  thank  my  God,  always  adverting  to  you  in  my  prayers,  (hearing  of 
the  reliance  which  you  have  towards  the  Lord  Jesus,  and  of  your  love 
to  all  the  Christians) ;  that  the  beneficence  of  your  faith  may  effectually 
avail  in  the  recognition  of  all  good  conduct,  that  characterizes  us,  in 
reference  to  Christ  Jesus.  For  we  have  great  joy  and  consolation  in 
your  faith,  O  brother,  because  the  tender  sensibilities  of  the  Christians 
are  refreshed  by  you  ! 

Therefore,  though  I  have  great  authority  through  Christ,  to  direct 
you  to  what  is  proper  ;  yet  from  love  I  rather  entreat  you,  in  the  char- 
acter of  Paul  the  aged,  and  now  also  a  prisoner  for  Jesus  Christ ;  I 
entreat  you  relative  to  a  son  of  mine,  whom  I  have  produced  in  my 
imprisonment,  —  even  Onesimus  ;  —  who  was  formerly  unprofitable  to 
you,  but  now  profitable  to  you  and  to  me  ;  whom  I  have  sent  back. 
Therefore,  receive  him  as  if  it  were  my  own  person  :  whom  I  wished  to 
retain  with  me,  that  as  your  substitute,  he  might  have  attended  me  in 
the  confinement  for  the  gospel :  but  without  your  consent  I  would  do 
nothing ;  that  your  kindness  might  not  appear  to  proceed  from  con- 
straint, but  from  cordiality.  Perhaps  indeed,  he  was  separated  from 
you  for  a  short  time,  on  this  account,  that  you  might  permanently  re- 
ceive him  ;  no  longer  as  a  servant,  but  as  superior  to  a  servant,  a  belov- 
ed brother,  particularly  to  me,  but  how  much  more  to  you,  both  as  he  is 
a  man  and  a  Christian.  If  therefore,  you  regard  me  as  a  companion, 
receive  him  as  myself.  But  if  he  has  injured  you  in  any  respect,  or  is 
indebted,  place  that  to  my  responsibility.  I  have  personally  pledged, 
under  my  own  signature,  that  I  will  indemnify  :  however,  I  forbear  to 
remind  you,  that  you  also  owe  me  even  yourself.  Yes,  brother,  let  me 
derive  advantage  from  you  in  the  Lord  ;  refresh  my  affectionate  sympa- 
thies in  the  Lord.  Having  confided  in  your  compliance,  I  have  written 
to  you,  aware  that  you  will  do  even  more  than  I  request. 

And,  at  the  same  time,  prepare  also  a  lodging  for  me  ;  since  I  trust, 
that  through  your  prayers,  I  shall  be  graciously  imparted  to  you. 

Epaphras,  my  fellow-prisoner  in  Christ  Jesus,  Mark,  Aristarchus, 
Demas,  Luke,  my  fellow-laborers,  salute  you.  The  favor  of  our  Lord 
Jesua  Christ  be  with  your  spirit ! 


THE  LETTER  TO  THE  HEBREWS. 

God,  who,  in  various  divisions,  and  in  different  modes,  anciently  com- 
municated to  the  fathers  by  the  prophets,  has  in  these  last  periods  com- 
municated to  us  by  a  Son,  whom  he  has  constituted  proprietor  of  all 
things,  through  whom  also  he  made  the  worlds  ;  who,  (being  an  efful- 
gence of  his  glory,  and  an  accurate  representation  of  his  existence,  and 
sustaining  all  things  by  his  own  powerful  word),  when  he  had  by  him- 
self accomplished  a  purification  for  our  sins,  sat  down  at  the  right  hand 
of  the  Majesty  in  the  highest  heavens,  being  rendered  as  much  superior 
to  the  angels,  as  he  has  attained  a  more  illustrious  appellation  than 
they. 

For,  to  which  of  the  angels  has  God  at  any  time  affirmed.  Thou  art 
my  Son,  this  day  I  have  produced  thee  1  And  again,  I  will  be  his 
Father,  and  he  shall  be  my  Son  1  But  in  addition,  when  he  introduces 
the  first-born  into  the  habitable  world,  he  declares.  Let  all  the  angels  of 
God  worship  him. 

Moreover,  concerning  the  angels  it  is  alleged.  He  makes  his  angels 
winds,  and  his  ministering  servants  a  flame  of  fire.  But  respecting  the 
Son  it  is  said.  Thy  throne,  O  God,  is  eternal ;  a  sceptre  of  integrity  is 
the  sceptre  of  thy  dominion.  Thou  hast  loved  righteousness  and  hated 
iniquity ;  therefore  O  God,  thy  God  has  consecrated  thee  with  the  oil 
of  joy  above  thy  associates.  Further,  Thou,  Lord,  in  the  commence- 
ment, didst  lay  the  foundations  of  the  earth,  and  the  heavens  are  the 
work  of  thy  hands ;  they  shall  perish,  but  thou  shalt  endure  ;  indeed, 
they  shall  all  become  old  like  a  garment,  and  as  a  vesture  shalt  thou 
fold  them  up,  and  they  shall  decay  ;  but  thou  art  the  same,  and  thy 
years  shall  never  cease. 

To  which  of  the  angels,  also,  has  he  ever  said.  Sit  thou  at  my  right 
hand,  till  I  make  thine  enemies  thy  footstool  ?  Are  not  all  of  them 
ministering  spirits  sent  forth  to  assist  those,  who  are  to  obtain  salva- 
tion ? 

It  behoves  us,  therefore,  the  more  abundantly  to  give  attention  to  the 
things  which  we  have  heard,  lest  at  any  time  we  should  disregard  them. 
For  if  the  law  communicated  by  angels  was  established,  and  every 
transgression  and  disobedience  received  a  just  retribution  ;  how  shall 
we  escape,  if  we  neglect  such  great  salvation  1  which  being  first  an- 
nounced by  the  Lord,  was  subsequently  confirmed  to  us  by  those  who 
heard  him  ;  God  also  bearing  testimony  with  them,  by  signs,  and  won- 
ders, and  various  miraculous  powers,  and  distributions  of  the  Holy 
Spirit,  in  conformity  to  his  will. 


326  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

Moreover,  God  has  not  subjected  to  angels  the  future  world,  of  which 
we  speak.  But  one,  in  a  certain  place,  has  thus  testified.  What  is  man, 
that  thou  shouldst  remember  him  ?  or  the  son  of  man,  that  thou  shouldst 
regard  him  7  Yet,  thou  hast  made  him  but  little  inferior  to  the  angels  ; 
thou  hast  crowned  him  with  glory  and  honor ;  thou  hast  put  all  things 
under  his  feet.  Now  by  putting  all  things  in  subjection  to  him,  he  left 
nothing  which  is  not  subject  to  him.  For  the  present,  indeed,  we  do 
not  perceive  all  things  yet  subjected  to  him  ;  but  we  behold  Jesus,  who 
was  made  but  little  inferior  to  the  angels,  crowned  with  glory  and  honor 
on  account  of  the  suffering  of  death,  when  by  the  grace  of  God  he  had 
experienced  death  for  all.  It  became  him,  also,  for  whom  are  all  things, 
and  through  whom  are  all  things,  to  bestow,  in  consequence  of  suffer- 
ings, the  highest  honor  upon  him  who  is  the  guide  of  their  salvation, 
conducting  numerous  sons  to  glory. 

Further,  both  he  who  consecrates,  and  they  who  are  consecrated,  are 
all  of  one  nature  ;  for  which  reason  he  does  not  disdain  to  denominate 
them  brethren,  saying,  I  will  announce  thy  name  to  my  brethren  ;  in 
the  midst  of  the  congregation  I  will  praise  thee  ;  and  also,  I  will  con- 
fide in  him.  And  moreover.  Behold,  I  and  the  children  whom  God  has 
given  me  !  Since  then,  the  children,  participated  in  flesh  and  blood, 
he  also  in  like  manner  participated  in  them ;  that  by  his  death  he  might 
subdue  him  who  had  a  deadly  power,  that  is,  the  enemy ;  and  might 
liberate  those,  who,  through  fear  of  condemnation,  had  during  their 
whole  lives  been  exposed  to  a  state  of  slavery. 

Besides,  he  does  not,  indeed,  assist  the  angels,  but  he  assists  the  pos- 
terity of  Abraham.  Hence  it  was  necessary,  that  in  all  respects  he 
should  resemble  his  brethren,  so  that  he  might  be  a  merciful  and  faith- 
ful high  priest,  ,as  to  things  which  relate  to  God,  with  a  view  to  make 
conciliation  for  the  sins  of  the  people.  For  whereas  he  himself  suffered, 
being  tempted,  he  is  able  to  relieve  those  who  are  tempted. 

Therefore,  holy  brethren,  receivers  of  the  heavenly  invitation,  atten- 
tively regard  Jesus,  the  apostle  and  high  priest  of  our  profession  ;  who 
was  faithful  to  him  that  appointed  him,  even  as  Moses  was,  in  all  his 
house.  For  he  is  esteemed  worthy  of  more  glory  than  Moses,  in  pro- 
portion as  the  architect  is  entitled  to  more  honor  than  the  edifice. 
(Now  every  structure  is  erected  by  some  one,  but  he  who  constructed 
all  things  is  God.)  Moses,  however,  was  faithful  in  all  his  house  as  a 
servant,  for  the  purpose  of  testifying  those  things  which  were  to  be  de- 
clared ;  but  Christ,  as  a  Son,  over  his  house ;  whose  house  we  are,  pro- 
vided we  firmly  retain  to  the  end  our  confidence  and  joyful  hope. 

Therefore,  as  the  Holy  Spirit  affirms,  To-day,  while  you  hear  his 
voice,  pervert  not  your  hearts,  as  in  the  provocation,  in  the  day  of  trial 
in  the  desert,  where  your  fathers  tried  me,  proved  me,  and  saw  my 
works  forty  years.  I  was  therefore  displeased  with  that  generation,  and 
said,  They  do  always  err  in  their  hearts,  and  they  have  not  acknowl- 


THE  LETTER  TO  THE   HEBREWS.  327 

edged  my  ways.  So  I  solemnly  announced  in  my  displeasure,  They 
shall  not  enter  my  rest. 

Beware,  brethren,  lest  there  be  in  any  one  of  you  an  evil  and  unbeliev- 
ing heart,  in  apostatizing  from  the  living  God.  But  admonish  each 
other  continually,  while  it  is  called  to-day,  lest  any  of  you  should  be 
perverted  by  sinful  delusion.  For  we  shall  participate  in  the  blessings 
of  Christ,  if  we  firmly  retain  even  to  the  end  our  first  coniidence. 

With  regard  to  the  declaration,  To-day,  while  you  hear  his  voice, 
pervert  not  your  hearts,  as  in  the  provocation  ;  who  now  were  those, 
that  when  they  heard  did  provoke  ?  Indeed,  did  not  all  who  came 
from  Egypt  under  Moses  1  And  with  whom  was  he  displeased,  forty 
years  1  Was  it  not  with  those  who  transgressed,  whose  dead  bodies 
fell  in  the  wilderness  ?  To  whom-  did  he  sacredly  affirm,  that  they 
should  not  enter  his  rest,  except  to  those  who  disbelieved  ?  We  per- 
ceive, then,  that  they  could  not  enter,  in  consequence  of  unbelief 

Let  us  beware,  therefore,  since  a  promise  is  still  left  of  entering 
his  rest,  lest  any  of  you  should  fail  of  attaining  it.  For  to  us  also  bless- 
ings are  announced,  as  well  as  to  them  ;  the  word,  however,  which  they 
heard,  did  not  profit  them,  not  being  blended  with  faith  in  those  who 
heard  it.  But  we  who  believe  enter  that  rest ;  as  he  says,  So  I  solemnly 
proclaim,  in  my  displeasure,  [unbelievers]  shall  not  enter  my  rest ;  name- 
ly, rest  from  the  works  which  had  been  performed,  after  the  foundation 
of  the  world  was  laid.  For  the  scripture  speaks,  in  a  certain  place, 
concerning  the  seventh  day,  in  this  manner.  And  God  rested,  on  the 
seventh  day,  from  all  his  works.  And  again,  in  this  manner,  They  shall 
not  enter  my  rest.  Since  then  it  remains,  for  some  to  enter  that  rest, 
and  those,  to  whom  this  blessing  was  formerly  proclaimed,  did  not  enter 
on  account  of  unbelief,  [it  follows  that  a  rest  remains  for  believers]. 

Again,  he  designates  a  particular  day,  This  day,  when  speaking  by 
David,  so  long  a  time  afterwards  ;  as  it  is  alleged,  This  day,  while  you 
hear  his  voice,  pervert  not  your  hearts.  Now,  if  Joshua  had  given  them 
rest,  then  David  would  not  have  subsequently  spoken  of  another  time. 

Consequently,  there  remains  a  rest  for  the  people  of  God.  He, 
moreover,  who  enters  God's  rest,  will  also  cease  from  his  own  works, 
as  God  did  from  his. 

Let  us  strive,  then,  to  enter  that  rest,  lest  any  one  should  perish,  in 
like  manner,  through  unbelief.  For  the  threatening  of  God  has  an 
active  and  powerful  energy  ;  indeed,  it  is  sharper  than  any  two-edged 
sword,  piercing  even  to  the  separation  of  both  life  and  spirit,  and  of  the 
joints  and  marrow  :  he  also  judges  the  thoughts  and  intentions  of  the 
heart ;  nor  is  there  any  thing  which  can  be  concealed  from  his  sight, 
but  all  is  open  and  exposed  to  the  view  of  him,  to  whom  we  are  account- 
able. 

Moreover,  since  we  have  a  high  priest  who  has  passed  through  the 
heavens,  Jesus  the  Son  of  God,  let  us  firmly  adhere  to  our  profession. 
For  we  have  not  a  high  priest  who  is  unable  to  sympathize  with  our  in- 


328  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

firmities  ;  but  one  who  was  tried  in  all  respects  as  we  are,  yet  without 
sin.  Let  us  therefore  approach  the  throne  of  grace  with  confidence, 
that  we  may  obtain  mercy,  and  find  favor  seasonably  to  assist. 

Now  every  high  priest  selected  among  men,  is  constituted  in  behalf  of 
men  over  things  which  relate  to  God,  that  he  may  present  both  oblations 
and  sacrifices  for  sin  ;  being  enabled  to  show  kindness  to  the  ignorant 
and  the  wandering,  since  he  himself  is  also  surrounded  by  infirmity. 
And  for  this  reason,  also,  he  ought  to  present  sin-offerings  as  well  for 
himself,  as  for  the  people.  Moreover,  no  one  can  assume  this  ofiice  to 
himself,  but  he  is  appointed  by  God,  even  as  Aaron  was. 

In  like  manner,  Christ  did  not  exalt  himself  to  the  honor  of  being 
high  priest ;  but  he,  who  declared.  Thou  art  my  Son,  this  day  I  have 
produced  thee,  [exalted  him.]  Thus  also  he  asserts,  in  another  place. 
Thou  art  a  priest  perpetually,  according  to  the  likeness  of  Melchisedek. 

The  same,  in  the  period  of  his  flesh,  (having  ofi"ered  prayers  and  sup- 
plications, with  strong  cries  and  with  tears,  to  him  who  was  able  to  save 
him  from  death,  and  being  rescued  from  what  he  feared),  though  a  Son, 
learned  obedience  from  his  sufferings  ;  and  having  been  perfected,  be- 
came the  author  of  eternal  salvation,  to  all  those  that  obey  him ;  being 
regarded  by  God,  a  high  priest,  according  to  the  hkeness  of  Melchi- 
sedek. 

Respecting  him  we  have  much  to  say,  which  it  will  be  difficult  to  elu- 
cidate, since  you  are  slow  in  comprehension.  For  even  when  you  ought 
to  be  able  to  instruct,  after  so  long  a  period,  it  becomes  necessary  that 
you  should  be  renewedly  taught  the  very  rudiments  of  the  oracles  of 
God,  and  you  require  milk  rather  than  solid  food.  For  every  one  who 
partakes  of  milk  is  unskilled  in  the  doctrines  of  religion ;  he  is  yet  a 
child.  But  solid  food  is  for  those  of  mature  age,  who  possess  faculties 
exercised  by  practice  for  the  discrimination  both  of  good  and  evil. 

Therefore,  leaving  the  first  principles  of  Christian  doctrine,  let  us 
advance  to  maturity  ;  not  laying  again  the  foundation,  concerning  refor- 
mation from  works  which  cause  death,  and  reliance  towards  God  ;  re- 
specting the  doctrine  of  baptisms,  and  the  imposition  of  hands,  and  the 
resurrection  of  the  dead,  and  eternal  judgment.  And  we  will  do  this,  if 
God  permit.  For  it  is  impossible  that  those,  who  have  been  once  en- 
lightened, and  have  enjoyed  the  celestial  gift,  and  have  been  rendered 
partakers  of  the  Holy  Spirit,  and  have  reaUzed  the  good  word  of  God, 
and  the  miraculous  powers  of  the  age  which  was  to  come,  and  have 
apostatized,  should  be  again  renewed  to  reformation,  since  they  have 
crucified  for  themselves  the  Son  of  God,  and  have  made  him  a  public, 
ignominious  example. 

Now  the  earth  which  imbibes  the  rain  that  frequently  falls  upon  it, 
and  produces  vegetation  useful  to  those  for  whose  purposes  it  is  cultivat- 
ed, receives  blessings  from  God.  But  that  which  produces  thorns  and 
briers,  is  rejected,  and  is  near  to  a  curse,  which  will  end  in  conflagra- 
tion. 


THE  LETTER  TO  THE  HEBREWS.  320 

But,  beloved,  we  confidently  hope  for  better  things  relative  to  you, 
even  those  connected  with  salvation,  though  we  thus  speak.  For-  God 
is  not  unkind,  so  that  he  wUl  forget  your  labor,  and  the  love  which  you 
have  shown  towards  his  name,  in  having  performed  kind  ofiices  to  the 
saints,  and  in  still  performing  them. 

Moreover,  we  earnestly  wish  that  every  one  of  you  would  manifest 
the  same  diligence,  for  a  full  assurance  of  hope,  even  to  the  end ;  so 
that  you  may  not  be  remiss,  but  imitators  of  those,  who,  through  faith 
and  patient  expectation  have  attained  the  possession  of  promised  bless- 
ings. When,  for  example,  God  made  a  promise  to  Abraham,  since  he 
could  make  oath  by  no  greater,  he  made  oath  by  himself,  saying,  As- 
suredly, I  will  greatly  bless  you,  and  exceedingly  multiply  you.  And 
thus,  having  patiently  waited,  he  obtained  the  promised  blessing.  Now 
men  make  oath  by  one  who  is  superior,  and  the  oath  for  confirmation 
terminates  all  dispute  among  them.  In  like  manner,  God,  desirous  of 
showing  more  abundantly  to  the  heirs  of  promise  the  immutability  of 
his  purpose,  interposed  by  an  oath  ;  so  that  by  two  immutable  things, 
respecting  which  it  is  impossible  that  God  should  be  faithless,  we,  who 
have  sought  a  refuge,  might  be  strongly  persuaded  to  hold  fast  the  hope 
that  is  set  before  us,  which  we  adhere  to  as  an  anchor  of  the  soul  sure 
and  firmly  fixed,  and  which  enters  within  the  veil,  where  Jesus  our  pre- 
cursor has  gone,  in  our  behalf,  being  constituted  high  priest  forever,  ac- 
cording to  the  likeness  of  Melchisedek. 

Now  this  Melchisedek  was  king  of  Salem,  and  priest  of  the  most 
high  God.  The  same  met  Abraham  returning  from  the  slaughter  of  the 
kings,  and  blessed  him.  To  him,  Abraham  gave  even  a  tenth  part  of 
all.  By  interpretation,  his  name  means,  first,  King  of  Righteousness  ; 
and  then,  he  is  also  King  of  Salem,  which  means,  King  of  Peace  :  re- 
specting whose  father,  mother,  lineage,  birth,  and  death,  there  is  no 
record ;  but  resembling  the  Son  of  God,  he  remains  a  high  priest  per- 
petually. 

Consider,  now,  how.  great  he  must  be,  to  whom  even  Abraham  the 
patriarch  gave  a  tenth  part  of  the  spoils  !  Moreover,  the  sons  of  Levi, 
who  take  the  ot&ce  of  priests,  have  indeed  authority  by  the  law  to  tithe 
the  people,  that  is,  their  brethren,  though  descended  from  Abraham  ; 
but  he,  whose  descent  is  not  traced  from  them,  tithed  Abraham,  and 
blessed  him  to  whom  the  promises  were  made.  And  beyond  all  contro- 
versy, the  inferior  was  blessed  by  the  superior. 

Here,  also,  men  receive  tithes  who  die  ;  but  there,  one  of  whom  it  is 
testified  that  he  lives.  Indeed,  (if  I  may  thus  speak),  even  Levi  him- 
self, who  receives  tithes,  was  tithed  in  Abraham  ;  since  he  was  unborn, 
when  Melchisedek  met  him. 

Further,  if  there  had  been  a  perfect  accomplishment  of  what  was  re- 
quired, by  the  Levitical  priesthood,  (for  the  law  was  given  to  the  people 
in  connexion  with  this,)  what  necessity  was  there  still,  that  another  priest 
should  arise  according  to  the  likeness  of  Melchisedek,  and  not  be  named 

42 


330  APOSTOLIC  PKODUCTIONS. 

according  to  the  likeness  of  Aaron  ?  But  if  the  priesthood  be  changed, 
there  must  necessarily  be  also  a  change  of  the  law.  Now  he,  con- 
cerning whom  these  things  are  affirmed,  belonged  to  a  different  tribe, 
none  of  whom  served  at  the  altar  ;  for  it  is  apparent  that  our  Lord  des- 
cended from  Judah,  respecting  which  tribe,  Moses  said  nothing  in  rela- 
tion to  the  priesthood.  And  it  is  still  more  impressively  manifest,  [that 
the  priesthood  is  changed],  if  another  priest  has  arisen  resembling  Mel- 
chisedek ;  who  has  not  been  made  so  by  a  law  of  temporary  obliga- 
tion, but  by  an  authority  of  endless  duration.  For  the  Scripture  de- 
clares. Thou  art  a  priest  forever,  according  to  the  likeness  of  Melchis- 
edek. 

There  is  also  an  abrogation  of  the  preceding  law,  because  it  was 
weak  and  unavailing.  For  the  law  did  not  fully  accomplish  any  thing  ; 
but  the  subsequent  introduction  of  a  better  hope  does,  by  which  we 
draw  near  to  God. 

Moreover,  in  as  much  as  not  without  an  oath  [Jesus  was  made  a 
priest],  (for  they  are  made  priests  without  an  oath,  but  he  with  an  oath ; 
by  him  who  said  to  him,  The  Lord  has  made  oath,  and  will  not  alter 
his  purpose.  Thou  art  a  priest  forever,  according  to  the  likeness  of  Mel- 
chisgdek),  by  so  much  has  Jesus  become  the  surety  of  a  better  cov- 
enant. 

Besides,  those  priests  are  numerous,  because  they  are  not  permitted 
to  continue  in  consequence  of  death ;  but  he,  because  he  continues  for- 
ever, has  a  priesthood  without  any  succession  ;  and  on  this  account  he 
is  able  alw^ays  to  save  those  who  come  to  God  by  him,  since  he  ever 
lives  to  intei^pose  in  their  behalf. 

Such  a  high  priest,  moreover,  was  requisite  for  us,  who  is  holy,  harm- 
less, uncontaminated,  separated  from  sinners,"  and  exalted  above  the 
heavens  ;  who  has  no  daily  necessity,  like  the  high  priests,  to  offer  sac- 
rifices, first  for  their  own  sins,  and  then  for  the  sins  of  the  people  ;  for 
he  did  this,  once  for  all,  when  he  offered  up  himself.  Now  the  law  con- 
stitutes men  high  priests,  who  have  infirmity  ;  bp.t  the  word  of  the  oath, 
which  succeeded  the  law,  constitutes  the  Son  high  priest,  who  is  eter- 
nally exalted  to  glory. 

The  most  important  thing,  however,  among  those  which  we  are  dis- 
cussing is,  that  we  have  such  a  high  priest,  who  is  seated  on  the  right 
hand  of  the  throne  of  Majesty  in  the  heavens,  a  minister  of  the  sanc- 
tuary and  of  the  true  tabernacle  which  the  Lord  has  constructed,  and 
not  man. 

Now  every  high  priest  is  appointed  to  present  oblations  and  sacrifi- 
ces ;  whence,  it  becomes  necessary,  that  this  one  also  should  have  some- 
thing which  he  may  present.  But  if  he  were  on  earth,  then  he  could 
not  be  a  priest,  since  there  are  priests  who  present  oblations  according 
to  the  law  ;  (the  same  who  perform  service  in  [that  sanctuary  which  is 
but]  a  mere  representation  of  the  heavenly  one ;  for  Moses,  when  about 
to  build  the  tabernacle,  was  divinely  admonished,  Attend  now,  said  God, 


THE  LETTER  TO  THE  HEBREWS.  331 

that  you  make  all  things  according  to  the  model  which  was  exhibited  to 
you  on  the  mount).  But  now,  Christ  has  obtained  a  service  wliich  is 
more  excellent ;  as  much  more  as  the  covenant  is  better  of  which  he  is 
mediator,  and  which  is  sanctioned  by  better  promises. 

Further,  if  that  first  covenant  had  been  faultless,  then  no  place  would 
have  been  sought  for  the  second.  But  finding  fault  [vrith  the  first],  he 
declares  to  them.  Behold,  the  days  are  coming,  says  the  Lord,  when  I 
will  make  a  new  covenant  with  the  house  of  Israel,  and  with  the  house 
of  Judah ;  not  according  to  the  covenant  which  I  made  with  their  fath- 
ers, in  the  day  when  I  took  them  by  the  hand,  to  bring  them  forth  from 
the  land  of  Egypt ;  for  they  did  not  continue  in  my  covenant,  and  I  re- 
jected them,  says  the  Lord.  But  this  is  the  covenant,  which  I  will  make 
with  the  house  of  Israel  after  those  days,  says  the  Lord  ;  I  will  impress 
my  laws  upon  their  minds,  and  engrave  them  on  their  hearts  ;  and  1 
will  be  their  God,  and  they  shall  be  my  people.  And  no  one  shall  teach 
his  fellow-citizen,  nor  any  one  his  brother,  saying.  Know  tlie  Lord  ;  for 
all  shall  know  me  from  the  least  to  the  greatest.  For  I  will  be  merciful 
in  respect  to  their  iniquities,  and  their  sins,  and  their  transgressions  I 
will  remember  no  more. 

By  saying,  A  new  covenant,  he  represents  the  first  as  old  ;  now  that 
wliich  has  become  old,  and  is  advancing  in  age,  is  near  to  dissolution. 

Moreover,  the  first  covenant  also  had  ordinances  for  service,  and  a 
sanctuary  of  an  earthly  nature.  For  an  exterior  tabernacle  was  pre- 
pared, in  which  was  the  candlestick,  and  the  table,  and  the  show-bread, 
which  is  called.  The  holy  place.  And  behind  the  second  veil  was  the 
tabernacle,  which  is  called.  The  holy  of  holies,  containing  the  golden 
censer,  and  the  ark  of  the  covenant  entirely  covered  with  gold,  in  which 
was  the  golden  urn  that  contained  the  manna,  and  the  rod  of  Aaron 
which  blossomed,  and  the  tables  of  the  covenant.  And  above  it  were 
the  splendid  Cherubs  over-shadowing  the  mercy-seat.  Concerning  these 
things,  it  is  not  my  intention,  at  this  time,  particularly  to  speak. 

Now  these  being  thus  prepared,  the  priests  performing  the  services 
entered  continually  the  exterior  tabernacle  :  but  the  interior  one,  the 
high  priest  alone  entered,  once  in  each  year,  not  without  blood, 
which  he  presented  for  himself  and  for  the  sins  of  the  people.  By  this 
the  Holy  Spirit  signified,  that  the  way  to  the  most  holy  place  was  not 
yet  opened,  while  the  first  tabernacle  had  an  establishment ;  which  has 
been  an  expressive  emblem  to  the  present  time,  in  which  both  oblations 
and  sacrifices  are  presented,  that  cannot  fully  accomplish  what  is  re- 
quired in  regard  to  the  conscience,  for  him  who  performs  the  services  ; 
[and  all  the]  ordinances  relating  to  the  flesh ;  had  reference  only  to 
meats  and  drinks,  and  various  ablutions  enjoined  till  the  period  of  refor- 
mation. But  Christ  being  come,  a  high  priest  of  fiiture  blessings, 
through  a  greater  and  more  perfect  tabernacle,  not  made  with  hands, 
that  is,  not  of  this  material  creation,  he  entered  once  for  all  into  the 
sanctuary,  offering  not  the  blood  of  goats  and  of  young  beeves,  but  his 


332  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

own  blood,  having  found  the  means  of  an  eternal  deliverance.  Now  if 
the  blood  of  goats,  and  beeves,  and  calves,  and  the  ashes  of  a  heifer 
sprinkUng  the  unclean,  consecrate  in  respect  to  external  purification  ; 
how  much  more  shall  the  blood  of  Christ,  who,  though  an  eternal  Spirit, 
olfered  himself  uncontaminated  to  God,  purify  our  conscience  from 
works  which  cause  death,  so  that  we  may  serve  the  living  God  ! 

For  this  reason,  also,  he  is  the  mediator  of  a  new  covenant,  so  that, 
his  death  being  a  ransom  for  the  sins  committed  under  the  former  cove- 
nant, those  who  have  been  invited  might  receive  the  promised  blessing 
of  the  eternal  inheritance.  For  where  there  is  a  testament,  it  is  neces- 
sary that  the  death  of  the  testator  should  occur  ;  because  a  testament  is 
valid  in  relation  to  those  only  who  are  dead,  since  it  has  no  force,  while 
the  testator  is  living. 

Hence,  not  even  the  first  covenant  was  ratified  without  blood.  For 
when  the  entire  commandment  according  to  the  law,  had  been  recited 
by  Moses  to  all  the  people,  taking  the  blood  of  young  beeves  and  of 
goats,  with  water,  and  scarlet  wool,  and  hyssop,  he  sprinkled  both  the 
book  itself  and  all  the  people,  declaring.  This  is  the  blood  of  the  cove- 
nant which  God  has  enjoined  upon  you.  The  tabernacle,  also,  and 
likewise  all  the  vessels  for  service,  he  sprinkled  in  the  same  manner 
with  blood.  Indeed,  almost  every  thing  is  required  by  the  law  to  be 
purified  by  blood  ;  and  without  the  effusion  of  blood  there  is  no  forgive- 
ness. 

Since,  then,  the  representations  of  heavenly  things  must  necessarily 
be  purified  in  this  manner,  the  heavenly  things  themselves  [must  be 
purified]  by  better  sacrifices  than  these.  For  Christ  did  not  enter  a 
sanctuary  made  with  hands,  which  is  only  an  emblem  of  the  true  one, 
but  into  heaven  itself,  thenceforth  to  appear  for  us  in  the  presence  of 
God  :  yet  not  that  he  might  frequently  make  an  ofifering  of  himself,  like 
the  high  priest  who  enters  the  sanctuary  every  year  with  blood  not  his 
own,  (for  then  he  must  necessarily  have  often  suffered,  since  the  foun- 
dation of  the  world)  ;  but  now,  at  the  close  of  this  dispensation,  he  has 
once  for  all  made  his  appearance,  that  he  might  remove  the  punishment 
due  to  sin,  by  the  sacrifice  of  himself.  For  since  it  is  appointed  to  men 
to  die  but  once,  and  after  this  comes  the  judgment ;  so  Christ  also, 
after  having  once  for  all  made  an  offering  of  himself  to  bear  the  sins  of 
many,  will  appear  at  his  second  advent,  without  a  sin-offiering,  for  the 
salvation  of  those  who  await  him. 

Moreover,  the  law,  which  presented  only  a  delineation  of  future  bless- 
ings, and  not  a  complete  representation  of  these  things,  can  never,  by 
these  annual  sacrifices  which  are  continually  oflfered,  fiilly  accomplish 
what  is  required  for  those  who  approach  the  altar.  For  if  it  could,  then 
these  offerings  would  not  have  ceased,  because  the  worshippers,  once 
for  aU  purified,  would  no  longer  have  been  conscious  of  sins.  On  the 
contrary  by  these  sacrifices  yearly  remembrance  is  made  of  sin. 


THE  LETTER  TO  THE  HEBREWS.  333 

And  truly,  it  is  impossible  that  the  blood  of  beeves  and  goats  should 
remove  sin.  Therefore,  Christ,  entering  the  world,  declares.  Sacrifice 
and  oblation,  thou  desiregt  not,  but  a  body  hast  thou  prepared  for  me  ; 
in  whole  burnt  offerings  and  offerings  for  sin,  thou  hast  no  delight. 
Then  he  said.  Behold,  I  come,  O  God,  to  perform  thy  will !  (in  the 
volume  of  the  book  it  is  written  respecting  me).  "When  he  affirms,  in 
the  first  place,  Sacrifice  and  oblation,  and  entire  burnt  offerings  and 
offerings  for  sin,  thou  desirest  not,  nor  hast  complacency  in  them, 
(which  are  presented  according  to  the  law)  ;  and  then  afiirms,  Behold, 
I  come  to  do  thy  will !  he  abolishes  the  first,  that  he  may  establish  the 
second.  By  this  will,  we  have  become  holy,  through  the  offering  of  the 
body  of  Jesus  Christ  once  for  all. 

Now  every  priest  continues  to  stand,  performing  daily  service,  and 
frequently  presenting  the  same  sacrifices  which  can  never  take  away 
sin  ;  but  this  one,  having  once  offered  a  perpetual  sacrifice  for  sin,  sat 
down  at  the  right  hand  of  God,  thenceforth  waiting  till  his  enemies  be 
made  his  footstool.  By  one  oblation,  therefore,  he  has  perpetually  con- 
summated those  who  are  purified. 

Moreover,  the  Holy  Spirit  also  testifies  this  to  us ;  for  after  affirming. 
This  is  the  covenant  which  I  will  make  with  them,  after  those  days, 
says  the  Lord,  I  will  write  my  laws  on  their  hearts,  and  engrave  them 
upon  their  minds  ;  then  he  declares.  Their  sins  and  their  iniquities  I  will 
remember  no  more.  But  where  there  is  remission  of  these,  there  is  no 
more  oblation  for  sin. 

Having  then,  brethren,  free  access  to  the  sanctuary,  by  the  blood  of 
Jesus,  in  a  new  and  living  way,  which  he  has  consecrated  for  us  through 
the  veil,  (that  is,  his  body) ;  and  having  also  a  high  priest  over  the  house 
of  God,  let  us  approach  in  fiiU  confidence,  with  a  true  heart,  being  pu- 
rified as  to  our  hearts  from  a  consciousness  of  evil.  Being  cleansed, 
also,  as  to  our  bodies,  with  pure  water,  let  us  hold  fast,  without  fluctu- 
ating, the  hope  which  we  profess  ;  for  he  is  faithful  who  has  promised. 
Let  us,  further,  attentively  regard  each  other,  for  the  purpose  of  incit- 
ing to  love  and  good  works ;  not  forsaking  the  assembling  of  ourselves 
together,  (as  the  custom  of  some  is),  but  admonisliing  each  other ;  and 
this  so  much  the  more,  as  you  perceive  the  day  approaching. 

Moreover,  should  we  voluntarily  sin,  after  having  received  the  knowl- 
edge of  the  truth,  there  remains  no  more  sacrifice  for  sin ;  but  a  cer- 
tain fearful  expectation  of  punishment,  indeed,  of  fiery  indignation, 
which  will  consume  the  adversaries.  Whoever  transgressed  the  law  of 
Moses,  suffered  death  without  mercy,  in  case  of  two  or  three  witnesses ; 
of  how  much  greater  punishment  think  you,  will  he  be  deemed  deserv- 
ing, who  has  trampled  under  foot  the  Son  of  God,  and  regarded  the 
blood  of  the  covenant,  by  which  he  has  been  consecrated,  as  impure, 
and  has  offered  indignity  to  the  Spirit  of  grace  !  Surely,  we  know  him 
who  has  declared,  To  me  belongs  punishment,  and  I  will  inflict  it,  says 


334  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

the  Lord ;  and  again,  The  Lord  will  judge  his  people.  It  is  a  feariul 
thing  to  fall  into  the  hands  of  the  living  God. 

Recollect,  now,  the  former  days,  in  which  after  jou  were  enlightened, 
you  endured  a  great  conflict  with  sufferings ;  because  some  of  you  were 
made  a  public  spectacle  both  by  reproaches  and  afflictions,  and  because 
others  were  associated  with  those  who  were  thus  treated.  For  indeed, 
you  sympathized  with  those  who  were  prisoners,  and  cheerfully  suffered 
the  plundering  of  your  property  ;  knowing  that  you  have  for  yourselves, 
in  heaven,  a  possession  of  a  superior  and  more  durable  nature.  Cast 
not  away,  therefore,  your  confidence,  which  will  obtain  a  great  reward. 

Assuredly,  you  require  patience,  that  when  you  have  accomplished 
the  will  of  God,  you  may  receive  the  promised  blessing.  Nevertheless, 
yet  a  very  little  while,  and  he  who  is  coming  will  come,  and  will  not 
delay.  The  acquitted  also,  shall  live  by  faith  ;  but,  if  any  man  draw 
back,  my  soul  has  no  pleasure  in  him.  We,  however,  are  not  of  those 
who  draw  back  to  destruction,  but  of  those  who  believe  to  the  salvation 
of  the  soul. 

Now  faith  is  confidence  in  respect  to  things  hoped  for,  and  convinc- 
ing evidence  of  things  unseen.  On  this  account,  moreover,  the  ancients 
obtained  commendation. 

By  faith  we  perceive,  that  the  worlds  were  formed  by  the  word  of 
God,  so  that  the  things  which  are  seen,  were  not  made  from  those  which 
previously  existed. 

By  faith  Abel  offered  to  God  a  better  sacrifice  than  Cain,  in  conse- 
quence of  which,  he  was  commended  as  righteous,  God  himself  bestow- 
ing approbation  upon  his  offerings  ;  and  by  the  same,  though  dead,  he 
still  speaks. 

By  faith  Enoch  was  translated,  so  as  not  to  see  death,  and  he  was  no 
longer  found,  because  God  translated  him.  He  is  applauded,  also,  as 
having  pleased  God,  before  his  translation.  But  without  faith,  it  is  im- 
possible to  please  him  ;  for  he  who  comes  to  God,  must  believe  that  he 
exists,  and  that  he  will  reward  those  who  seek  him. 

By  faith  Noah,  being  divinely  admonished  respecting  the  future,  with 
reverence  prepared  an  ark  for  the  safety  of  his  household,  by  which  he 
condemned  the  world,  and  attained  the  forgiveness,  which  is  by  faith. 

By  faith  Abraham  obeyed,  when  summoned  to  depart  to  the  place 
which  he  was  to  receive  as  a  possession  ;  indeed,  he  departed,  not  con- 
scious where  he  was  going.  By  faith  he  sojourned  in  the  land  of  prom- 
ise, while  it  belonged  to  strangers,  dwelling  in  tents  with  Isaac  and 
Jacob,  who  were  likewise  heirs  of  the  same  promise  ;  for  he  expected  a 
city  which  has  foundations,  whose  designer  and  architect  is  God.  By 
faith,  also,  Sarah  herself  received  the  power  of  conception,  and  this 
beyond  the  usual  period  of  hfe,  since  she  regarded  him  as  faithfiil 
who  had  promised.  Therefore,  from  a  single  individual,  who  was 
moreover,  dead  as  to  these  things,  there  proceeded  a  posterity  like 


THE  LETTER  TO  THE  HEBREWS.  335 

the  stars  of  heaven  in  multitude,  and  like  the  sand  on  the  shore  of  the 
sea,  which  cannot  be  numbered. 

All  of  these  died  in  faith,  not  having  received  the  promised  blessings  ; 
but  beholding  them  far  distant,  and  joyfully  anticipating  them,  they 
professed  themselves  to  be  strangers  and  sojourners  on  the  earth.  Novr 
those  who  thus  profess,  show  that  they  are  in  search  of  a  country ;  for 
if  they  had  cherished  the  remembrance  of  that  from  which  they  came, 
they  had  opportunity  to  return.  But  now,  they  were  desirous  of  a  bet- 
ter, that  is,  a  heavenly  country.  Therefore  God  is  not  ashamed  of 
them,  nor  to  be  called  their  God  ;   for  he  has  prepared  a  city  for  them. 

By  faith  Abraham,  when  tried,  made  an  offering  of  Isaac  ;  indeed,  he 
who  had  received  the  promises,  made  an  offering  of  his  only  son ;  to 
whom  it  had  been  announced,  After  Isaac  thy  offspring  shall  be  named ; 
reflecting  that  God  was  able  to  raise  him  even  from  the  dead,  whence, 
also,  in  a  comparative  sense,  he  obtained  him. 

By  faith  Isaac  blessed  Jacob  and  Esau,  in  reference  to  the  future. 
By  faith  Jacob,  when  about  to  die,  blessed  each  of  Joseph's  sons,  and 
bowed  himself  upon  the  head  of  his  staff.  By  faith  Joseph,  at  the  close 
of  life,  mentioned  the  departure  of  the  children  of  Israel  [from  Egypt], 
and  directed  respecting  his  own  bones. 

By  faith  Moses,  after  his  birth,  was  concealed  for  three  months,  by 
his  parents,  because  they  saw  that  he  was  a  beautiful  child,  and  they 
did  not  fear  the  king's  commandment.  By  faith  Moses,  when  arrived 
at  mature  age,  refused  to  be  called  the  son  of  Pharoah's  daughter, 
choosing  rather  to  suffer  affliction  with  the  people  of  God,  than  to  enjoy 
the  pleasures  of  sin  for  a  season  ;  considering  reproach,  such  as  Christ 
endured,  to  be  greater  riches  than  all  the  treasures  of  Egypt ;  because 
he  had  respect  to  a  state  of  reward.  By  faith  he  left  Egypt,  not  fear- 
ing the  indignation  of  the  king  ;  for  he  persevered,  as  one  who  sees  him 
that  is  invisible.  By  faith  he  observed  the  passover,  and  the  sprinkling 
of  blood,  so  that  he  who  destroyed  the  first-born  might  not  touch  them. 

By  faith  they  passed  through  the  Red  Sea,  as  on  dry  land  ;  which  the 
Egyptians  attempting  to  do  were  drowned.  By  faith  the  walls  of  Jeri- 
cho fell  down,  after  they  had  been  environed  seven  days. 

By  faith  Rahab,  the  hostess,  having  entertained  the  spies  in  a  friendly 
manner,  perished  not  with  the  unbelieving. 

And  what  shall  I  further  add  ?  since  time  would  fail  me  to  remark 
concerning  Gideon,  Barak  also,  and  Sampson,  and  Jepthah,  respecting 
David  likewise,  and  Samuel,  and  the  prophets  ;  who,  through  faith,  sub- 
dued kingdoms,  executed  justice,  obtained  promised  blessings,  stopped 
the  mouths  of  lions,  extinguished  the  violence  of  fire,  escaped  the  edge 
of  the  sword,  were  restored  to  energy  from  a  state  of  infirmity,  became 
powerful  in  war,  overthrew  the  armies  of  foreigners.  Women  recover- 
ed their  dead  by  a  restoration  to  life.  Some  were  tortured,  refiising 
liberation,  that  they  might  attain  to  a  better,  fiiture  existence.  Others 
were  tried  by  derisions  and  scourges,  and  also  by  bonds  and  imprison- 


336  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

ments.  They  were  stoned,  they  were  sawn  asunder,  they  were  tempted, 
they  perished  by  the  murderous  sword,  they  went  about  in  sheep-skins 
and  goat-skins,  enduring  want,  afflicted,  injuriously  treated,  (with  whom 
the  world  could  not  compare),  wandering  around  in  deserts  and  moun- 
tains, in  caves  also  and  dens  of  the  earth. 

Moreover,  none  of  these,  who  are  commended  in  consequence  of  their 
faith,  received  the  promised  blessing  ;  God  having  provided  some  better 
thing  for  us,  so  that  without  us  they  could  not  fully  attain  what  was 
required. 

Since,  therefore,  we  are  surrounded  by  so  great  a  cloud  of  witnesses,  lay- 
ing aside  every  incumbrance,  and  particularly  the  sin  that  most  impedes 
us,  let  us  run  steadily  the  course  marked  out  for  us ;  fixing  our  eyes  on 
Jesus,  the  guide  and  perfecter  of  the  faith,  who,  for  the  joy  proposed  to 
him,  endured  the  cross,  disregarding  ignominy,  and  is  now  seated  at  the 
right  hand  of  the  throne  of  God. 

Contemplate,  now,  him  who  endured  such  opposition  against  himself 
from  sinners,  lest  being  discouraged  in  your  minds,  you  become  wearied. 
You  have  not  yet  resisted  to  blood,  in  your  struggle  against  sin.  And 
have  you  forgotten  the  exhortation  which  is  addressed  to  you  as  chil- 
dren, My  son  do  not  disregard  the  chastisements  of  the  Lord,  nor  be 
disheartened  when  reproved  by  him  ;  for  whom  the  Lord  loves  he  chas- 
tens, and  scourges  every  son  whom  he  receives  1  If  you  endure  correc- 
tion, God  is  dealing  with  you  as  children  ;  for  what  son  is  there,  whom 
his  father  does  not  correct  1  But  if  you  are  without  chastisement,  of 
which  all  children  are  partakers,  then  you  are  spurious,  and  not  legiti- 
mate sons. 

Moreover,  we  have  had  fathers  of  our  flesh,  who  have  chastened  us, 
and  we  have  yielded  them  reverence  ;  shall  we  not  much  rather  yield 
subjection  to  the  Father  of  our  spirits,  that  we  may  live  1  They,  indeed, 
chastised  us  for  a  little  time,  according  to  their  own  pleasure  ;  but  he, 
for  our  welfare,  that  we  might  be  rendered  partakers  of  his  holiness. 
Now  all  chastening  appears,  for  the  present,  not  to  be  an  object  of  joy, 
but  of  grief;  yet  afterwards,  it  yields  the  happy  fruits  of  righteousness, 
to  those  who  are  exercised  by  it. 

Therefore,  Strengthen  the  weak  hands  and  the  feeble  knees,  and 
make  plain  the  paths  for  your  feet,  that  what  is  lame  may  not  be  dislo- 
cated, but  rather  healed. 

Assiduously  cultivate  peace  with  aU  men,  and  holiness,  without  which 
no  man  shall  see  the  Lord.  Be  attentive,  that  no  one  of  you  fail  of  the 
favor  of  God  ;  that  no  root  of  bitterness  spring  up  and  trouble  you,  and 
through  the  same  many  be  polluted.  Let  there  be  no  incontinent  nor 
profane  person,  like  Esau,  who  for  one  meal  sold  his  birthright.  For 
you  know  that  when  he  was  subsequently  desirous  to  obtain  the  bless- 
ing, it  was  refused  ;  indeed,  he  found  no  means  to  change  his  [father's] 
mind,  though  he  sought  it  with  tears. 


THE  LETTER  TO  THE   HEBREWS.  ;!37 

Moreover,  you  have  not  come  to  the  mount  wliich  could  be  touched, 
and  to  flaming  fire,  and  thick  clouds,  and  darkness,  and  tempest ;  nor 
to  the  re-sounding  of  a  trumpet,  and  the  voice  of  commands,  the  hearers 
of  which  entreated  that  not  another  word  should  be  added  to  them  ; 
(for  they  could  not  endure  the  admonition,  '  If  even  a  beast  touch  the 
mountain  it  shall  be  stoned  ; '  and  —  so  terrible  was  the  sight  —  even 
Moses  declared,  I  fear  and  tremble) :  but  you  have  come  to  mount  Zion ; 
and  to  the  city  of  the  living  God,  the  heavenly  Jerusalem  ;  and  to  myri- 
ads— the  joyful  host  of  angels  ;  and  to  the  assembly  of  the  first-born,  en- 
rolled in  heaven  ;  and  to  the  Judge,  the  God  of  all ;  and  to  the  spirits  of 
the  just,  who  have  obtained  their  final  reward  ;  and  to  the  mediator  of 
the  new  covenant,  —  Jesus  ;  and  to  the  sprinkling  of  that  blood  which 
speaks  better  things  than  the  blood  of  Abel. 

Beware,  that  you  do  not  reject  him  who  addresses  you  ;  for  if  they 
did  not  escape,  who  rejected  him  that  admonished  them  on  earth  ;  much 
less  shall  we  escape,  if  we  disregard  him  who  admonishes  us  from  heav- 
en. His  voice  then  shook  the  earth  ;  but  now  it  is  promised,  saying. 
Yet  once  more,  I  will  shake  not  only  the  earth,  but  also  heaven. 
Now  this,  '  Yet  once  more,'  denotes  a  removal  of  the  things  which  are 
shaken,  as  of  created  objects,  that  the  things  which  are  not  shaken,  may 
remain. 

Therefore,  having  obtained  a  kingdom  which  cannot  be  shaken,  let 
us  manifest  gratitude,  (by  which  we  may  serve  God  acceptably),  with 
reverence  and  devotion.     For  even  our  God  is  a  consuming  fire. 

Let  fraternal  love  continue.  Forget  not  hospitality  ;  for  by  this,  some 
have  unconsciously  entertained  angels.  Remember  those  who  are  im- 
prisoned, as  if  you  yourselves  were  fellow-prisoners  ;  those  who  are 
suffering  evil,  as  being  yourselves  yet  in  the  body.  Let  marriage  be 
honorable  among  all,  and  the  vow  inviolate  ;  for  the  sensual  and  adul- 
terous God  will  judge.  Let  your  conduct  be  divested  of  covetousness, 
and  be  contented  with  what  you  possess.  For  he  has  said,  I  will  never 
leave  thee,  nor  forsake  thee  ;  so  that  we  may  confidently  assert,  The 
Lord  is  my  helper,  and  I  will  not  be  afraid.     What  can  man  do  to  me  ! 

Remember  your  guides,  who  have  spoken  to  you  the  word  of  God  ; 
and  attentively  contemplating  the  result  of  their  course  of  life,  imitate 
their  faith.  Jesus  Christ  is  the  same  yesterday,  to-day,  and  forever. 
Be  not  driven  away  by  various  and  strange  doctrines  ;  for  it  is  good 
that  the  heart  should  be  confirmed  by  grace,  and  not  by  meats,  for  those 
have  not  been  thereby  profited,  who  have  attended  to  them.  We  have 
an  altar,  of  which  they  have  no  right  to  eat,  who  render  their  service  to 
the  tabernacle. 

Moreover,  the  bodies  of  those  animals,  whose  blood  was  carried  into 
the  sanctuary  as  a  sin-offering,  by  the  high  priest,  were  burned  with- 
out the  camp.  Therefore,  Jesus  also,  that  he  might  consecrate  the 
people  through  his  own  blood,  suffered  without  the  gate.  Let  us,  then, 
go  forth  to  him  without  the  camp,  bearing  reproaches  like  his ;  for  here 

43 


338  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

we  have  no  permanent  city,  but  are  seeking  for  one  yet  future.  By 
him,  therefore,  let  us  constantly  present  to  God  the  sacrifice  of  praise, 
that  is,  the  fruit  of  our  lips,  ascribing  praise  to  his  name. 

Besides,  forget  not  kindness  and  liberality  ;  for  with  such  sacrifices 
God  is  well  pleased.  Obey  your  conductors,  and  be  subject  to  them  ; 
for  they  watch  for  your  souls  as  those  who  must  give  an  account. 
[Thus  obey],  that  they  may  do  it  with  joy  and  not  with  grief;  for  this 
would  be  unprofitable  to  you. 

Pray  for  us  ;  for  we  trust  that  we  have  a  good  conscience,  being  de- 
sirous in  all  things  to  conduct  ourselves  with  integi-ity.  I  make  this  re- 
quest, also,  the  more  earnestly,  that  I  may  speedily  be  restored  to  you. 

Now  may  the  God  of  peace,  that  raised  from  the  dead  our  Lord  Jesus, 
(who  by  the  blood  of  an  everlasting  covenant  has  become  the  great 
Shepherd  of  the  sheep),  prepare  you  for  every  good  work,  that  you  may 
perform  his  will ;  producing  in  you  that  which  is  highly  acceptable  in 
his  sight,  through  Jesus  Christ,  to  whom  be  glory  for  ever  and  ever. 
Amen  ! 

Moreover,  I  entreat  you,  brethren,  to  bear  with  this  word  of  exhorta- 
tion ;  for  I  have  written  briefly  to  you. 

Know,  that  our  brother  Timothy  is  sent  away  ;  with  whom  if  he  re- 
turn immediately,  I  will  visit  you. 

Salute  all  your  directors,  and  all  the  saints.  They  of  Italy  salute  you. 
Grace  be  with  vou  all.     Amen  ! 


THE  GENERAL  LETTER  OF  JAMES. 

James,  a  servant  of  God,  and  of  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  to  the  twelve 
tribes  in  dispersion,  prosperity  to  you. 

My  brethren,  deem  it  all  joy  when  you  fall  into  various  trials  ;  know- 
ing that  the  proof  of  your  faith  produces  patience.  And  let  patience 
have  its  complete  operation,  that  you  may  be  perfect  and  entire,  defi- 
cient in  nothing. 

Now  if  any  of  you  want  wisdom,  let  him  ask  it  from  God,  who  im- 
parts liberally  to  all,  and  does  not  reproach  ;  and  it  shall  be  given  him. 
But  let  him  ask  in  faith,  in  no  respect  doubting.  For  he  that  doubts,  is 
like  a  billow  of  the  sea,  driven  and  tossed  by  the  wind.  Let  not  that 
man,  therefore,  think,  that  he  will  receive  any  thing  from  the  Lord.  A 
man  of  a  divided  mind  is  wavering  in  all  liis  conduct. 

Moreover,  let  the  humble  brother  exult  in  his  elevation  ;  but  the  rich 
in  bis  humiliation.  Since,  as  the  flower  of  vegetation  he  will  pass  away. 
For  the  sun  rises  with  a  burning  heat,  and  the  vegetation  is  withered, 
and  its  flower  falls,  and  the  beauty  of  its  appearance  perishes  ;  thus 
also,  the  rich  man  will  fade  in  his  course. 

Happy  is  the  man  who  endures  temptation  ;  for  being  approved,  he 
will  receive  the  crown  of  life,  which  the  Lord  has  promised  to  those  who 
love  him. 

Let  no  one  assert,  when  he  is  tempted,  I  am  tempted  by  God  ;  for 
God  cannot  be  tempted  by  evils,  nor  does  he  tempt  any  one.  But  every 
man  is  tempted,  when  he  is  allured  and  ensnared  by  his  own  inordinate 
propensities.  For  when  desire  has  originated,  it  produces  sin  ;  and  sin, 
when  it  is  accomplished,  produces  death. 

Be  not  deceived,  my  beloved  brethren.  Every  good  gift,  and  every 
perfect  benefit,  are  from  above,  and  descend  from  the  Father  of  lights, 
with  whom  there  is  no  vicissitude,  nor  the  least  variation.  Through  his 
own  will  he  produced  us  by  the  word  of  truth,  that  we  might  be  a  kind 
of  first-fruits  of  his  creatures. 

Therefore,  my  beloved  brethren,  let  every  man  be  swift  to  hear,  slow 
to  speak,  slow  to  anger ;  for  the  anger  of  man  does  not  produce  the 
integrity,  which  God  requires.  Therefore,  discard  all  impurity,  and 
iniquitous  excess,  and  receive  with  meekness  the  implanted  word,  wliich 
is  able  to  save  your  souls. 

But  be  doers  of  the  word,  and  not  hearers  only,  deceiving  yourselves. 
For  if  any  one  be  a  hearer  of  the  word  and  not  a  doer,  he  resembles  a 
man  viewing  his  natural  face  in  a  mirror  ;  for  he  beholds  himself,  and 
departs,  and  instantly  forgets  what  description  of  person  he  was.  But 
whoever  looks  into  the  perfect  law  of  freedom,  and  continues  in  the 
same,  this  man  not  being  a  forgetful  hearer,  but  an  accomplisher  of  the 


310  APOSTOLIC   PRODUCTIONS. 

work  enjoined,  will  be  happy  in  his  performance.  If  any  one  thinks 
himself  to  be  religious,  and  does  not  restrain  his  tongue,  but  deludes  his 
own  heart,  this  man's  religion  is  vain.  In  the  view  of  our  God,  and 
Father,  this  is  pure  and  spotless  religion,  to  relieve  orphans  and  widows 
in  their  adversity,  and  to  keep  himself  uncontaminated  from  the  world. 

My  brethren,  do  not  profess  the  religion  of  our  glorious  Lord  Jesus 
Christ,  with  a  partial  acceptance  of  persons.  For  if  a  man  enters  your 
assembly  with  a  gold  ring,  in  splendid  dress,  and  a  poor  man  also  enters 
in  abject  raiment ;  and  you  regard  him  who  wears  the  splendid  apparel, 
and  say.  Sit  here  in  an  honorable  place,  and  say  to  the  poor  man.  Stand 
there,  or  Sit  here  under  my  footstool  ;  do  you  not  make  a  distinction 
among  yourselves,  and  are  you  not  judges  who  reason  unjustly.  Attend, 
my  beloved  brethren,  has  not  God  chosen  the  poor  of  the  world  to  be 
rich  in  faith,  and  heirs  of  the  kingdom  which  he  has  promised  to  those 
who  love  him  ?  But  you  have  dishonored  the  poor  man.  Do  not  the 
rich  severely  oppress  you,  and  drag  you  to  the  tribunals  1  Do  they  not 
revile  that  illustrious  name  by  which  you  are  denominated  1  If  you 
absolutely  observe  the  distinguished  law  according  to  the  scriptures, 
Thou  shalt  love  thy  neighbor  as  thyself,  you  do  well ;  but  if  you  partial- 
ly accept  persons,  you  commit  sin,  and  are  convicted  by  the  law  as 
transgressors.  For  whoever  shall  obey  the  whole  law,  and  yet  violate 
one  precept,  he  disobeys  the  authority  of  all.  For,  he  who  said,  Thou 
shalt  not  commit  adultery,  has  also  declared.  Thou  shalt  do  no  murder. 
If  therefore,  thou  art  not  an  adulterer,  but  commitest  murder,  thou 
hast  become  a  violator  of  the  law.  Thus  speak,  and  thus  act,  as  those 
who  will  be  judged  by  the  law  of  freedom.  For  there  will  be  judgment 
without  mercy  to  him  who  has  shown  no  mercy  ;  but  mercy  will  triumph 
over  judgment. 

What  does  it  avail,  my  brethren,  if  any  one  assert  that  he  has  faith, 
but  has  not  works  1  can  that  faith  save  him  ?  If  a  brother  or  sister  be 
ill-clad,  and  destitute  of  daily  food  :  and  one  of  you  say  to  them.  De- 
part in  peace,  be  warmed  and  replenished ;  while  you  give  them  uot 
those  things  which  are  personally  necessary ;  what  does  it  avail  1 
Thus,  faith  also,  if  it  has  not  works,  is  dead,  being  by  itself.  Indeed, 
some  one  may  declare.  Thou  hast  faith,  and  I  have  works ;  show  me 
thy  faith  without  thy  works,  and  I  will  show  thee  my  faith  by  my 
works.  Thou  believest  that  there  is  one  God ;  thou  dost  well ;  the 
demons  also  believe  and  tremble.  But  wilt  thou  know,  delusive  man, 
that  the  faith,  which  is  without  works,  is  dead  1  Was  not  our  father 
Abraham  pardoned  by  works,  when  he  offered  his  son  Isaac  on  the 
altar  1  Dost  thou  see,  that  faith  co-operated  with  his  works  ;  and  that 
faith  was  consummated  by  works  1  agreeably  to  the  scripture  which 
affirms,  Abraham  confided  in  God,  and  it  was  conceded  to  him  in  refer- 
ence to  forgiveness  ;  and  he  was  called  the  friend  of  God.  You  per- 
ceive, how  that  a  man  is  acquitted  by  works,  and  not  by  faith  only. 
Moreover,  was  not  Rahabj  the  hostess,  in  like  manner,  pardoned  by 


JAMES'   GENERAL  LETTER.  341 

works,  when  she  entertained  the  messengers,  and  sent  them  out  another 
way  1  For  as  the  body  without  the  spirit  is  dead,  so  the  faith,  which  is 
without  works,  is  also  dead. 

My  brethren,  let  not  many  among  you  be  teachers,  conscious  that  we 
shall  receive  a  greater  condemnation.  For  in  many  things  all  of  us 
ofTend.  If  any  one  offend  not  in  word,  he  is  a  perfect  man,  able  also  to 
bridle  the  whole  body.  Behold,  we  place  bits  in  the  mouths  of  horses, 
that  they  may  obey  us  ;  and  we  turn  their  whole  body.  Behold  also 
the  ships,  though  so  great,  and  agitated  by  violent  winds,  yet  they  are 
turned  by  a  very  small  helm,  wherever  the  pilot  pleases.  Thus  also  the 
tongue  is  a  small  member,  and  greatly  boasts.  Behold,  how  extensive 
a  forest  a  little  fire  kindles  !  And  the  tongue  is  a  fire,  a  world  of 
iniquity.  The  tongue  is  so  situated  among  our  members,  that  it  pol- 
lutes the  whole  body,  and  inflames  the  course  of  nature,  and  is  set  on 
fire  by  gehenna.  Moreover,  every  kind  both  of  wild  beasts  and  of  birds, 
both  of  reptiles  and  marine  creatures,  is  subdued,  and  has  been  subdued, 
by  mankind.  But  no  man  can  subdue  the  tongue  ;  it  is  a  lawless  evil, 
full  of  deadly  poison.  By  it  we  bless  God,  even  the  Father,  and  by  it 
we  curse  men,  who  are  made  according  to  the  likeness  of  God.  From 
the  same  mouth  proceed  blessing  and  cursing.  My  brethren,  these 
things  ought  not  so  to  be.  Does  a  fountain  from  the  same  place  send 
forth  sweet  and  bitter  water  1  Can  a  fig-tree,  my  brethren,  produce 
olives  1  or  a  vine,  figs  1     Neither  can  salt  water  produce  fresh. 

Who  is  wise,  and  endued  with  knowledge  among  you  ?  Let  him 
manifest  by  a  good  conduct  the  effects  of  his  wisdom  with  meekness.  But 
if  you  have  bitter  zeal  and  contention  in  your  hearts,  do  not  boast  ;  and 
speak  not  falsely  concerning  the  truth.  This  is  not  the  wisdom  that 
descends  from  above  ;  but  is  earthly,  sensual,  fiend-like.  For  where 
bitter  zeal  and  contention  are,  there  disturbance  is,  and  every  evil  work. 
But  the  wisdom  which  is  from  above,  is  first  pure,  then  peaceable, 
gentle,  condescending,  full  of  mercy  and  good  fruits,  without  partiality 
and  dissimulation.  And  the  fruit  of  righteousness  is  sown  in  peace  for 
those  who  make  peace. 

Whence  proceed  wars  and  conflicts  among  you  ?  Proceed  they  not 
hence,  from  your  violent  desires  which  militate  in  your  members  1  You 
earnestly  desire,  but  possess  not ;  you  kill,  and  invidiously  strive,  but 
cannot  obtain  :  you  fight  and  wage  war  ;  yet  you  have  not,  because  you 
ask  not.  You  ask,  and  receive  not,  because  you  ask  amiss,  that  you 
may  lavish  it  upon  your  passions.  Iniquitous  beings  !  know  you  not, 
that  the  friendship  of  the  world  is  enmity  against  God  ?  Whoever 
therefore  desires  to  be  a  friend  of  the  world  is  an  enemy  of  God.  Do 
you  think  that  the  scripture  speaks  in  vain  1  Does  the  Spirit  that 
dwells  in  us  excite  to  envy  1  Indeed,  he  bestows  superior  favor. 
Therefore,  it  is  alleged,  God  resists  the  proud,  but  imparts  grace  to  the 
humble.  Submit  yourselves  therefore  to  God.  Resist  the  adversary, 
and  he  will  fly  from  you.    Draw  near  to  God,  and  he  will  draw  near  to 


342  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

you.  Cleanse  your  hands,  sinners,  and  purify  your  hearts,  men  of 
divided  minds  !  Lament,  and  mourn,  and  weep  ;  let  your  laughter  be 
turned  to  mourning,  and  your  joy  to  sorrow.  Humble  yourselves  before 
the  Lord,  and  he  will  exalt  you. 

Brethren,  speak  not  evil  of  each  other.  He  that  speaks  evil  of  his 
brother,  and  judges  his  brother,  speaks  evil  of  the  law,  and  judges  the 
law  :  but  if  thou  judgest  the  law,  thou  art  not  a  doer  of  the  law,  but  a 
judge.  There  is  one  lawgiver  and  judge,  who  is  able  to  save  and  to 
destroy.     Who  art  thou  that  judgest  another  1 

Come  now,  you  that  say.  To-day  or  to-morrow  let  us  go  to  such  a 
city,  and  continue  there  a  year,  and  negotiate,  and  acquire  gain  ;  you, 
who  know  not  the  events  of  to-morrow  !  For  what  is  your  life  1  It  is 
but  a  vapor,  which  appears  for  a  little  time,  and  then  vanishes.  Where- 
as, you  ought  to  say.  If  the  Lord  permit,  and  we  live,  we  will  do  this, 
or  that.  But  now,  you  exult  in  your  vauntings  :  all  such  exultation  is 
evil.  He,  therefore,  who  knows  what  is  right,  and  does  not  perform  it, 
is  a  transgressor. 

Come  now,  rich  men,  weep  and  lament  over  the  miseries  that  are 
coming  upon  you.  Your  wealth  is  decayed,  and  your  garments  are 
moth-eaten.  Your  gold  and  silver  are  corroded  ;  and  their  rust  will 
testify  against  you,  and  eat  your  flesh  like  fire.  You  have  accumulated 
treasure  in  the  last  days.  Behold,  the  hire  of  the  laborers  who  have 
reaped  your  fields,  which  is  fraudulently  withheld  by  you,  loudly  pro- 
tests ;  and  the  cries  of  the  reapers  have  entered  the  ears  of  the  Lord  of 
hosts.  You  have  lived  luxuriously  on  the  earth,  and  have  rioted  in  sen- 
suality ;  you  have  nourished  your  hearts,  as  in  a  day  of  sacrifice.  You 
have  condemned,  you  have  murdered  the  righteous,  who  did  not  resist 
you. 

Be  patient,  therefore,  brethren,  till  the  appearance  of  the  Lord.  Be- 
hold, the  husbandman  waits  for  the  valuable  fruit  of  the  earth,  and  is 
patient  for  it,  till  it  receive  the  early  and  latter  rain.  Be  ye  also  pa- 
tient ;  establish  your  hearts  ;  for  the  coming  of  the  Lord  draws  near. 

Do  not  impatiently  murmur  against  each  other,  brethren,  lest  you  be 
judged  :  behold,  the  Judge  stands  before  the  door.  My  brethren,  take 
the  prophets,  who  have  spoken  in  the  name  of  the  Lord,  as  an  example 
of  suffering  afiliction,  and  of  patience.  Observe,  we  pronounce  those 
happy,  who  patiently  endure.  You  have  heard  of  the  patience  of  Job, 
and  have  seen  the  ultimate  purpose  of  the  Lord  ;  for  the  Lord  is  very 
compassionate,  and  of  tender  mercy. 

But  above  all  things,  my  brethren,  swear  not,  either  by  the  heaven,  or 
the  earth,  or  by  any  other  oath  ;  but  let  your  yes  be  yes,  and  your  no, 
no  ;  lest  you  fall  under  condemnation. 

Does  any  among  you  sufier  affliction  1  let  him  pray.  Is  any  cheer- 
ful 1  let  him  sing  praise  to  God.  Is  any  one  among  you  sick  ■?  let  him 
call  to  him  the  presbyters  of  the  church  ;  and  let  them  pray  over  him, 
having  anointed  him  with  oil  in  the  name  of  the  Lord  :  and  the  prayer 


JAMES'   GENERAL  LETTER.  343 

of  faith  will  preserve  the  sick  person,  and  the  Lord  will  raise  him  up  ; 
and  if  he  has  committed  sins,  they  wUl  be  forgiven  him.  Acknowledge 
your  offences  to  each  other,  and  pray  for  each  other,  that  you  may  be 
healed.  The  energetic  supplication  of  a  righteous  man  avails  much. 
Elijah  was  a  man  similarly  constituted  with  us  ;  and  he  prayed  fervently 
that  it  might  not  rain  ;  and  it  rained  not  on  that  land  for  three  years 
and  six  months.  And  he  prayed  again,  and  the  heaven  gave  rain,  and 
the  earth  put  forth  her  fruit. 

Brethren,  if  any  one  of  you  deviate  from  the  truth,  and  one  restore 
him  ;  let  him  know,  that  he  who  restores  a  sinner  from  the  error  of  his 
way,  will  save  a  soul  from  death,  and  conceal  a  multitude  of  sins. 


THE  FIRST  GENERAL  LETTER  OF  PETER. 

Peter,  an  apostle  of  Jesus  Christ,  to  the  strangers  dispersed  through 
Pontus,  Galatia,  Cappadocia,  Asia,  and  Bythinia ;  chosen,  according  to 
the  previous  approbation  of  God  the  Father,  through  purification  of  the 
Spirit,  to  obedience,  and  the  sprinlding  of  the  blood  of  Jesus  Christ, 
divine  favor  and  peace  be  multiplied  to  you. 

Praised  be  the  God  and  Father  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  who, 
according  to  his  abundant  mercy,  has  reproduced  us  to  a  living  hope, 
by  the  resurrection  of  Jesus  Christ  from  the  dead,  to  an  inheritance  im- 
perishable, and  pure,  and  unfading,  reserved  in  heaven  for  you,  who  are 
defended  by  the  power  of  God,  through  faith  to  salvation,  prepared  to 
be  revealed  in  the  last  time.  In  which  you  greatly  rejoice,  though  now 
for  a  short  time,  if  it  be  requisite,  you  are  aflJicted  by  various  trials  ; 
that  the  proof  of  your  faith,  which  is  more  excellent  than  that  of  gold 
which  perishes,  though  tested  by  fire,  may  terminate  in  praise,  and 
honor,  and  glory,  at  the  manifestation  of  Jesus  Christ ;  whom,  not  hav- 
ing known,  you  love  ;  in  whom,  though  now  you  see  him  not,  yet  believ- 
ing, you  rejoice  with  joy  inexpressible,  and  full  of  glory ;  receiving  the 
result  of  your  faith,  even  the  salvation  of  your  souls.  In  respect  to 
which  salvation,  the  prophets,  who  predicted  concerning  the  goodness 
of  God  towards  you,  earnestly  inquired  and  carefully  investigated ; 
searching  to  what,  or  to  what  period  of  time,  the  Spirit  of  Christ  which 
was  in  them  referred,  when  it  antecedently  testified  the  sufferings  of 
Christ,  and  the  glorious  events  which  were  to  succeed  :  to  whom  it  was 
revealed,  that  not  to  themselves,  but  to  you,  they  dispensed  these  things, 
which  are  now  communicated  to  you,  by  those  who  have  proclaimed  the 
gospel  among  you,  through  the  Holy  Spirit  sent  down  from  heaven  ; 
which  things  the  angels  desire  reverently  to  contemplate. 

Therefore,  girding  up  the  loins  of  your  mind,  be  sober,  and  hope  to 
the  end  for  the  grace  which  will  be  brought  to  you  at  the  manifestation 
of  Jesus  Christ ;  as  obedient  children,  not  fashioning  yourselves  accord- 
ing to  your  former  excessive  desires,  in  the  period  of  your  ignorance : 
but  as  he  who  has  called  you  is  holy,  so  be  ye  holy  in  all  your  conduct ; 
because  it  is  written,  Be  ye  holy ;  for  I  am  holy.  And  if  you  invoke 
the  Father,  who  without  respect  of  persons  judges  according  to  every 
man's  work,  pass  the  time  of  your  pilgrimage  in  reverence ;  knowing 
that  you  were  not  redeemed  by  perishable  things,  —  silver  or  gold,  from 
your  unprofitable  course  of  life,  transmitted  from  your  fathers ;  but  by 
the  inestimable  blood  of  Christ,  as  of  a  spotless  and  unblemished  lamb ; 
who  indeed,  was  previously  designated  before  the  foundation  of  the 
world,  but  was  manifested  in  these  last  times  for  you,  who  by  him  trust 


PETER'S  FIRST  GENERAL  LETTER,  345 

in  God  that  raised  him  from  the  dead,  and  gave  him  glory  ;  so  that  your 
faith  and  hope  are  in  God. 

Having  purified  your  souls  by  obedience  to  the  truth,  through  the 
Spirit,  to  an  unfeigned,  fraternal  affection,  you  will  intensely  love  each 
other  with  a  pure  heart ;  having  been  reproduced,  not  in  a  perishable, 
but  an  imperishable  birth,  by  the  word  of  God,  which  lives  and  remains. 
For,  all  flesh  is  as  grass,  and  all  the  glory  of  man  as  the  flower  of  the 
grass  ;  the  grass  withers,  and  its  flower  falls ;  but  the  word  of  the  Lord 
endures  forever  :  now  this  word  is  the  gospel  which  has  been  proclaim- 
ed to  you.  Therefore,  laying  aside  all  malignity,  and  all  deceit,  and 
hypocrisy,  and  envy,  and  all  slander,  as  new-born  infants,  desire  the 
pure,  spiritual  milk,  that  you  may  thereby  advance  to  salvation ;  since 
you  have  realized  that  the  Lord  is  good :  to  whom  coming  as  to  a  living 
stone,  rejected  indeed  by  men,  but  chosen  and  honorable  with  God,  you 
also,  as  living  stones,  are  built  up  a  spiritual  temple,  a  sacred  priesthood, 
to  offer  up  spiritual  sacrifices,  acceptable  to  God  through  Jesus  Christ. 
Because  it  is  contained  in  the  scripture.  Behold,  I  place  in  Zion  a  chief 
corner-stone,  chosen,  honorable ;  and  he  who  confides  in  it  will  not  be 
confounded.  The  honor,  therefore,  is  to  you  who  believe  ;  but  to  those 
who  disbelieve,  the  stone  which  the  builders  rejected,  is  become  the  head 
of  the  corner,  and  a  stone  of  stumbling,  and  a  rock  of  offence,  at  which 
they  stumble  who  believe  not  the  word  ;  and  to  this  they  were  disposed. 
But  you  are  a  chosen  generation,  an  illustrious  priesthood,  a  consecrated 
nation,  a  purchased  people ;  that  you  might  exhibit  the  perfections  of 
him  who  has  called  you  from  darkness  to  his  wonderfiil  light ;  who 
formerly  were  not  a  people,  but  are  now  the  people  of  God  ;  who  had 
not  obtained  mercy,  but  have  now  obtained  it. 

Beloved,  I  entreat  you  as  strangers  and  sojourners  to  abstain  from 
sensual  desires  which  contend  against  the  soul ;  having  your  conduct 
good  among  the  Gentiles  ;  that  whereas  they  speak  against  you  as  evil- 
doers, they  may  by  your  good  works,  which  they  shall  behold,  praise 
God  in  the  day  of  Visitation. 

Submit  yourselves,  therefore,  to  every  human  authority  in  reference 
to  the  Lord ;  whether  it  be  to  the  emperor,  as  supreme  ;  or  to  gover- 
nors, as  sent  by  him  for  the  punishment  of  those  who  do  evil,  and  for 
the  praise  of  those  who  do  well.  Since  this  is  the  will  of  God,  that  by 
doing  good  you  should  silence  the  ignorance  of  inconsiderate  men  :  as 
free,  yet  not  using  your  freedom  as  a  cloak  of  iniquity,  but  as  the  ser- 
vants of  God.  Respect  all  men ;  love  the  brotherhood ;  reverence  God ; 
honor  the  emperor. 

Servants,  be  subject  to  your  masters  with  all  fear ;  not  only  to  the 
good  and  gentle,  but  also  to  the  perverse.  For  this  is  laudable,  if  any 
one,  through  conscience  towards  God  endures  calamity,  suffering  un- 
justly. For  what  is  the  glory,  if  when  you  transgress,  and  are  beaten, 
you  endure  it  ?  But  if,  when  you  do  good,  and  yet  suffer,  you  shall 
bear  it  patiently,  this  is  commendable  before  God.  For  to  this  you 
44 


346  APOSTOLIC   PRODUCTIONS 

were  called  ;  because  even  Christ  suffered  for  you,  leaving  you  an  ex- 
ample that  you  might  follow  his  footsteps  ;  who  committed  no  sin,  nor 
was  deceit  found  in  his  mouth  ;  who,  being  reviled,  did  not  revile  in  re- 
turn ;  when  he  suffered,  he  did  not  threaten ;  but  resigned  himself  to 
the  righteous  judge,  and  personally  endured  our  sins  in  his  own  body  on 
the  cross,  that  we  being  emancipated  from  sins,  should  live  to  righteous- 
ness ;  by  whose  scourges  you  have  been  healed.  For  you  were  as  sheep 
going  astray ;  but  have  now  returned  to  the  Shepherd  and  Guardian  of 
your  souls. 

In  like  manner,  wives,  be  subject  to  your  own  husbands  ;  that  if  any 
believe  not  the  word,  they  also,  without  the  word,  may  be  won  by  the 
demeanor  of  their  wives  ;  having  seen  your  chaste  deportment  blended 
with  respect.  Whose  decoration,  let  it  not  be  that  external  one,  of 
plaiting  the  hair,  and  of  wearing  gold,  and  of  putting  on  apparel ;  but 
the  internal  person  of  the  heart,  in  what  is  imperishable,  a  meek  and 
quiet  spirit,  which  is  highly  valuable  in  the  sight  of  God.  For  thus,  in 
ancient  times,  the  holy  women,  who  trusted  in  God,  adorned  themselves, 
submitting  to  their  own  husbands  ;  as  Sarah  obeyed  Abraham,  calling 
him  her  master  ;  and  her  daughters  you  are,  while  you  conduct  well, 
and  are  not  alarmed  by  any  terrors. 

Husbands,  Ukewise,  dwell  with  them  according  to  knowledge,  ren- 
dering respect  to  the  woman,  as  to  the  more  delicate  person,  and  as 
being  joint-heirs  of  the  grace  of  life  ;  that  your  prayers  may  not  be  im- 
peded. 

Finally,  be  all  of  the  same  mind,  sympathetic,  affectionate  to  the 
brethren,  tenderly  compassionate,  humble-minded  ;  not  returning  evil 
for  evil,  nor  reproach  for  reproach,  but  on  the  contrary,  benedictions  ; 
knowing  that  you  were  called  to  this,  that  you  might  inherit  a  blessing. 
For  whoever  desires  to  live,  and  to  see  good  days,  let  him  refrain  his 
tongue  from  evil,  and  his  lips  that  they  utter  no  deceit ;  let  him  avoid 
evil,  and  do  good ;  let  him  seek  peace  and  pursue  it.  For  the  eyes  of 
the  Lord  are  upon  the  righteous,  and  his  ears  are  open  to  their  suppli- 
cation ;  but  the  face  of  the  Lord  is  against  those  that  do  evil.  And 
who  is  he  that  will  injure  you,  if  you  imitate  that  which  is  good.  But 
if  you  even  suffer  in  the  cause  of  righteousness,  you  are  happy  :  and  be 
not  alarmed  at  their  terrors,  nor  be  troubled  ;  but  consecrate  the  Lord 
God  in  your  hearts. 

And  be  always  prepared  to  make  a  defence  to  every  one  that  solicits 
from  you  an  account  of  the  hope  which  is  in  you,  but  with  gentleness 
and  respect :  having  a  good  conscience,  that  in  what  they  allege  against 
you  as  evil-doers,  they  may  be  ashamed,  who  calumniate  your  good  con- 
duct in  Christ.  Since  it  is  better,  if  it  be  the  will  of  God,  that  you  suf- 
fer for  doing  good,  than  for  doing  evil.  For  even  Christ  once  suffered 
for  sins,  the  righteous  for  the  unrighteous,  that  he  might  introduce  us  to 
God ;  being  indeed  put  to  death  in  the  flesh,  but  restored  to  life  by  the 
Spirit ;  by  which,  having  departed,  he  preached  to  the  spirits  in  secure 


PETER'S  FIRST  GENERAL  LETTER.  347 

custody ;  who  formerly  disbelieved,  when  the  forbearance  of  God  once 
earnestly  waited  in  the  days  of  Noah,  while  the  ark  was  preparing,  in 
which  a  few,  that  is,  eight  persons,  were  carried  safely  through  the  wa- 
ter. The  likeness  of  which,  even  baptism,  (not  the  putting  away  the 
pollution  of  the  flesh,  but  the  answer  of  a  good  conscience  towards 
God),  now  saves  us,  through  the  resurrection  of  Jesus  Christ ;  who, 
having  gone  into  heaven,  is  on  the  right  hand  of  God,  angels,  and  au- 
thorities, and  powers,  being  subjected  to  him. 

Since  therefore,  Christ  has  suffered  for  us  in  the  flesh,  arm  yourselves 
also  with  the  same  mind  ;  (for  he  who  has  sufiered  in  the  flesh,  has 
ceased  from  sin) ;  so  as  no  longer  to  pass  the  remaining  time  in  the 
flesh  according  to  the  passions  of  men,  but  according  to  the  will  of 
God  :  since  the  preceding  part  of  our  life  may  be  sufficient  for  us  to 
have  wrought  the  will  of  the  Gentiles,  when  we  walked  in  Ucentious- 
ness,  inordinate  desires,  excess  of  wine,  dissolute  revels,  intemperate 
banquets,  and  lawless  idolatries.  In  respect  to  which  they  are  greatly 
astonished,  that  you  run  not  with  them  to  the  same  excessive  profligacy  ; 
and  they  speak  evil  of  you  ;  but  they  must  give  an  account  to  him,  who 
is  prepared  to  judge  the  living  and  the  dead.  For  this  indeed  was  the 
eflTect  of  proclaiming  the  gospel  to  the  dead,  that  some  will  be  chasten- 
ed as  sensual  men,  but  others  will  lead  a  spiritual  life  to  God. 

Moreover,  the  end  of  all  things  is  near  ;  be  therefore  self-governed, 
and  watchful  in  prayer.  And  above  all  things  cherish  fervent  love 
among  yourselves  ;  for  this  love  will  cover  a  multitude  of  sins.  Be 
hospitable  to  each  other  without  complaints.  Let  those,  who  have  re- 
ceived gifts,  employ  them  for  mutual  benefit,  as  good  stewards  of  the 
diversified  favor  of  God.  If  any  one  speak,  let  it  be  according  to  the 
divine  oracles ;  if  any  one  minister,  let  it  be  according  to  the  abiUty 
which  God  supplies ;  that  in  all  things  God  may  be  honored  through 
Jesus  Christ,  to  whom  belong  glory  and  power,  for  ever  and  ever. 
Amen  ! 

Beloved,  be  not  surprised  that  a  fiery  persecution  occurs  among  you 
for  your  trial,  as  though  some  strange  thing  befell  you  ;  but  rejoice,  even 
as  you  participate  in  the  sufferings  of  Christ ;  that  when  his  glory  shall 
be  revealed,  you  may  also  be  transported  with  joy.  If  you  are  reproach- 
ed for  the  name  of  Christ,  you  are  happy  ;  because  the  Spirit  of  glory, 
and  of  power,  and  of  God,  rests  upon  you.  By  them,  indeed,  he  is 
reproached ;  but  by  you  he  is  honored.  However,  let  none  of  you 
suffer  as  a  murderer,  or  a  thief,  or  a  malefactor,  or  an  officious  inspector 
of  others.  Yet,  if  any  one  sufier  as  a  Christian,  let  him  not  be  asham- 
ed ;  but  let  him  praise  God  on  this  account.  For  the  time  is  coming, 
when  judgment  will  begin  from  the  household  of  God ;  and  if  it  com- 
mence from  us,  what  will  be  the  end  of  those  who  disbelieve  the  gospel 
of  God  1  And  if  the  righteous  be  scarcely  preserved,  where  will  the 
impious  and  the  transgressor  appear  1     Therefore,  let  those  who  sufier 


348  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

according  to  the  will  of  God,  commit  the  custody  of  their  souls  to  him 
in  doing  good,  as  to  a  faithful  creator. 

The  presbyters  that  are  among  you  I  exhort,  who  am  an  associate 
presbyter,  and  a  witness  of  the  sufferings  of  Christ,  and  also  a  partaker 
of  the  glory  which  will  be  revealed  ;  feed  the  flock  of  God  which  is 
among  you,  taking  the  charge  of  it,  not  from  compulsion,  but  volun- 
tarily ;  not  from  sordid  interest,  but  with  a  ready  mind  ;  and  not  as 
domineering  over  those  allotted  to  you,  but  as  being  examples  to  the 
flock.  And  when  the  chief  Shepherd  shall  appear,  you  will  receive  an 
unfading  crown  of  glory. 

Younger  persons,  likewise,  submit  to  the  more  aged.  Indeed,  let  all 
be  subject  to  each  other,  and  be  clothed  with  humiUty  ;  since  God  op- 
poses the  haughty,  but  bestows  favor  on  the  humble.  Humble  your- 
selves, therefore,  under  the  powerful  hand  of  God,  that  he  may  exalt 
you  in  due  time  :  having  cast  all  your  anxious  care  upon  him,  for  he 
cares  for  you. 

Be  sober,  be  watchful ;  your  adversary  the  false  accuser,  walks  about 
like  a  roaring  lion,  seeking  whom  he  may  devour  ;  whom  resist,  being 
steadfast  in  the  faith ;  knowing  that  the  same  sufferings  are  fully  endur- 
ed by  your  brethren  who  are  in  the  world. 

Now,  the  God  of  all  grace,  who  has  called  us  to  his  eternal  glory  in 
Christ  Jesus,  when  you  have  suffered  a  short  time,  will  make  you  per- 
fect, will  confirm,  support,  and  establish  you  :  to  him  be  the  glory  and 
the  dominion,  for  ever  and  ever.     Amen  ! 

I  have  written  to  you,  as  I  consider,  briefly,  by  Silvanus,  the  faithful 
brother,  exhorting  you,  and  earnestly  testifying,  that  this  is  the  true  grace 
of  God  in  which  you  stand.  The  christian  community  at  Babylon, 
jointly  chosen  with  you,  salutes  you  ;  and  so  does  Mark,  my  son.  Salute 
each  other  with  a  kiss  of  love.  Peace  be  with  you  all  who  are  in  Christ 
Jesus ! 


THE  SECOND  GENERAL  LETTER  OF  PETER. 

Simon  Petek,  a  servant  and  an  apostle  of  Jesus  Christ,  to  those  who 
have  obtained  equally  valuable  faith  with  us,  through  the  forgiveness 
of  our  God  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ ;  grace  and  peace  be  multiplied 
to  you,  through  the  acknowledgment  of  God,  and  of  Jesus  our  Lord ; 
even  as  his  divine  power  has  endowed  us  with  the  gifts  that  relate 
to  life  and  piety,  through  the  knowledge  of  him  who  has  called  us  by 
his  own  illustrious  perfections  ;  through  which  he  has  freely  given  us 
exceedingly  great  and  invaluable  promises  ;  that  by  these  you  may 
become  partakers  of  a  divine  nature,  having  escaped  the  depravity  which 
is  in  the  woi'ld  through  inordinate  desire.  And  moreover,  for  this  ob- 
ject, applying  all  assiduity,  unite  to  your  faith  resolution,  and  to  resolu- 
tion knowledge,  and  to  knowledge  temperance,  and  to  temperance 
patience,  and  to  patience  piety,  and  to  piety  fraternal  Itindness,  and  to 
fraternal  kindness  love.  For  if  these  things  exist  and  abound  in  you, 
they  will  permit  you  to  be  neither  idle  nor  unfruitful  in  the  knowledge 
of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ.  But  he  who  is  deficient  in  these  things  is 
blind,  short-sighted,  having  forgotten  the  purification  from  his  former 
sins.  Therefore,  brethren,  strive  the  more  sedulously  to  establish  your 
calling  and  designation ;  since  if  you  do  these  things,  you  will  never 
fall.  For  thus,  an  entrance  will  be  richly  administered  to  you,  into  the 
everlasting  kingdom  of  our  Lord  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ. 

I  will  not,  therefore,  neglect  to  remind  you  sJways  of  these  things  ; 
though  you  know  them,  and  are  established  in  the  present  truth.  In- 
deed, I  think  it  right,  as  long  as  I  am  in  this  tabernacle,  to  incite  you  to 
recollection  ;  knowing  that  I  must  soon  put  off  my  tabernacle,  even  as 
our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  declared  to  me.  And  moreover,  I  will  endeavor 
that  you  may  severally  be  able,  after  my  departure,  to  have  these  things 
always  in  remembrance. 

Further,  we  have  not  been  pursuing  artfully  devised  fables,  while  we 
made  known  to  you  the  power  and  appearance  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ, 
but  were  personal  eye-witnesses  of  his  own  majesty.  For  he  received 
from  God  the  Father  honor  and  praise,  when  such  a  voice  came  to  him 
from  the  magnificent  glory.  This  is  my  beloved  Son,  in  whom  I  delight. 
And  this  voice  which  descended  from  heaven  we  heard,  when  we  were 
with  him  on  the  holy  mountain.  And  we  have  the  prophetic  word  addi- 
tionally confirmed ;  to  which  you  do  well  to  give  attention,  as  to  a  light 
shining  in  a  dark  place,  till  the  day  dawn,  and  the  morning-star  rise  in 
your  hearts :  knowing  this  first,  that  no  prophecy  of  scripture  proceeds 
from  private  impulse.  For  prophecy  came  not  in  any  former  period  by 
the  will  of  man,  but  holy  men  of  God  spoke,  moved  by  the  Holy  Spirit. 


350  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

However,  there  were  also  false  prophets  among  the  Jewish  people,  as 
there  will  likewise  be  false  teachers  among  you,  who  will  artfully  intro- 
duce pernicious  factions,  even  renouncing  the  Lord  who  purchased 
them,  and  bringing  upon  themselves  speedy  ruin.  And  many  will  fol- 
low their  impurities  ;  by  whose  means  the  way  of  the  truth  will  be 
reviled.  And  through  avarice  they  will  make  a  gain  of  you  by  their 
deceitful  words  ;  but  their  long-threatened  sentence  does  not  delay,  nor 
does  their  destruction  slumber. 

For,  if  God  did  not  spare  the  angels  who  sinned,  but  with  chains  of 
darkness  confining  them  in  Tartarus,  surrendered  them  to  be  reserved 
for  punishment ;  and  spared  not  the  ancient  world,  but  saved  Noah,  a 
herald  of  righteousness,  the  eighth  person  preserved,  when  he  brought 
the  deluge  on  the  world  of  impious  men ;  and  having  reduced  the  cities 
of  Sodom  and  Gomorrah  to  ashes,  condemned  them  to  destruction, 
making  them  an  example  to  those  who  should  afterwards  live  impiously ; 
and  rescued  righteous  Lot,  exceedingly  afilicted  by  the  vile  conduct  of 
these  lawless  men :  (for  that  just  man,  while  he  dwelt  among  them, 
seeing  and  hearing,  distressed  his  righteous  soul  from  day  to  day  with 
their  unlawful  deeds) ;  the  Lord  knows  how  to  rescue  the  pious  from 
temptation,  and  to  reserve  the  unrighteous  for  a  day  of  trial  to  be  chas- 
tened :  but  principally  those  who  walk  according  to  the  flesh  with  pol- 
luted desires,  and  despise  dominion.  Presumptuous  and  obstinate,  they 
are  not  afraid  to  calumniate  authorities  :  whereas  angels,  who  are  supe- 
rior in  strength  and  power,  bear  not  a  reproachful  testimony  against 
them  before  the  Lord.  But  these  men,  as  if  they  were  native,  irrational 
animals,  made  to  be  taken  and  destroyed,  reviling  things  which  they  do 
not  understand,  will  be  absolutely  dissolved  in  their  own  depravity; 
receiving  the  retribution  of  unrighteousness  ;  deeming  it  a  pleasure  to 
riot  in  the  day  time;  blemishes  and  reproaches,  living  luxuriously 
through  their  deceptions,  while  they  banquet  with  you  ;  having  eyes  full 
of  adultery,  and  which  cease  not  from  sin  ;  alluring  unstable  persons ; 
having  their  heart  practised  in  avaricious  schemes ;  execrated  children ; 
deserting  the  right  path  they  have  wandered,  following  in  the  way  of 
Balaam  the  son  of  Bosor,  who  loved  the  reward  of  iniquity ;  but  receiv- 
ed a  reproof  for  his  transgression ;  the  dumb  beast,  speaking  with  a 
man's  voice  forbid  the  madness  of  the  prophet.  These  are  fountains 
without  water  ;  clouds  driven  by  a  tempest ;  to  whom  the  mist  of  dark- 
ness is  reserved  forever.  For  when  they  utter  great,  inflated  words  of 
falsehood,  they  allure,  by  sensual  desires  and  impure  practices,  those 
who  had  really  escaped,  for  a  little  time,  from  such  as  live  in  error. 
While  they  promise  them  freedom,  they  themselves  are  the  slaves  of 
depravity:  since  by  whom  any  one  is  conquered,  by  him  he  is  also 
enslaved.  For  if,  having  escaped  the  pollutions  of  the  world,  by  the 
knowledge  of  the  Lord  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ,  they  are  again  entan- 
gled and  subdued  by  them,  their  last  state  is  worse  than  the  first.  Since 
it  would  have  been  better  for  them  not  to  have  known  the  way  of  right- 


PETER'S  SECOND  GENERAL  LETTER.  351 

eousness,  than  having  known  it  to  have  turned  from  the  holy  command- 
ment delivered  to  them.  But  it  has  occurred  to  them  according  to  the 
true  proverb,  The  dog  has  turned  to  what  he  cast  up ;  and  the  swine 
that  was  washed,  to  her  rolUng  in  the  mire. 

Behold,  I  now  write  this  second  letter  to  you ;  in  both  of  which  I 
awaken  your  pure  minds  to  recollection  ;  that  you  may  remember  the 
words  formerly  spoken  by  the  holy  prophets,  and  the  commandment  of 
us  the  apostles  of  the  Lord  and  Saviour  :  knowing  this,  particularly, 
that  at  the  last  periods  contemners  will  come,  in  derision,  walking  ac- 
cording to  their  own  passions,  and  saying.  Where  is  the  promise  of  his 
appearance  ?  for,  since  the  fathers  were  deceased,  all  things  remain  as 
from  the  commencement  of  the  creation. 

For  of  this  they  are  wilfully  ignorant,  that  the  heavens  were  anciently, 
and  the  earth  from  water  ;  and  through  water  the  earth  subsists  by  the 
word  of  God  ;  consequently,  the  world  that  then  existed,  being  deluged 
with  water,  perished.  But  the  heavens  and  the  earth  which  now  exist, 
are  retained  by  his  word,  being  reserved  for  fire,  at  the  day  of  judgment, 
and  of  the  ruin  of  impious  men. 

However,  beloved,  be  apprised  of  this,  that  one  day  is  with  the^Lord 
as  a  thousand  years,  and  a  thousand  years  as  one  day.  The  Lord  is 
not  remiss  respecting  his  promise,  as  some  regard  remissness,  but  is 
forbearing  towards  us  ;  disposed  that  none  should  perish,  but  that  all 
should  come  to  reformation.  Moreover,  the  day  of  the  Lord  will  come 
as  a  thief ;  in  which  the  heavens  will  pass  away  with  a  great  explosion 
and  the  elements  being  intensely  heated  will  be  dissolved,  and  the  earth 
and  its  works  will  be  consumed  by  fire. 

Therefore,  since  all  these  things  will  be  dissolved,  of  what  character 
ought  you  to  be  in  all  holy  conduct  and  piety  ;  earnestly  awaiting  the 
occurrence  of  this  day  of  God,  in  which  the  heavens  will  be  dissolved 
by  fire,  and  the  elements  will  melt  with  fervent  heat.  Yet,  we,  according 
to  his  promise,  anticipate  new  heavens  and  a  new  earth,  in  which  right- 
eousness will  dwell. 

Therefore,  beloved,  expecting  these  things,  diligently  endeavor  to  be 
found  by  him  in  peace,  uncontaminated  and  irreproachable.  And  re- 
gard the  forbearance  of  our  Lord  as  salvation  ;  even  as  our  beloved 
brother  Paul  also,  according  to  the  wisdom  imparted  to  him  has  written 
to  you ;  as  also  in  all  his  letters,  speaking  in  them  concerning  these 
subjects  ;  in  which  letters  are  some  things  difficult  to  be  comprehended, 
which  the  ignorant  and  unstable  pervert,  as  they  do  also  other  scriptures 
to  their  own  destruction. 

Since  you,  therefore,  beloved,  are  previously  informed,  beware,  lest 
being  seduced  by  the  error  of  the  wicked,  you  should  fall  from  your 
own  stability.  ISut  advance  in  divine  favor,  and  in  the  knowledge  of 
our  Lord  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ.  To  him  be  glory,  both  now,  and 
to  the  day  of  eternity.     Amen  ! 


THE    GENERAL  ADDRESS    OF   JOHN   TO   CHRISTIANS. 

Respecting  the  Word  of  Life,  him  who  was  from  the  commence- 
ment, whom  we  have  heard,  whom  we  have  seen  with  our  eyes,  whom 
we  have  attentively  beheld,  and  our  hands  have  realized  ;  (for,  the  life 
was  manifested,  and  we  have  seen,  and  testify,  and  proclaim  to  you  that 
Eternal  Life,  which  was  with  the  Father,  and  was  manifested  to  us)  ; 
him,  whom  we  have  seen  and  heard,  we  declare  to  you,  that  you  may 
also  have  participation  with  us  ;  and  indeed,  our  participation  is  with 
the  Father,  and  with  his  Son  Jesus  Christ.  And  we  write  these  things 
to  you,  that  your  joy  may  be  consummated. 

Moreover,  this  is  the  declaration  which  we  have  heard  from  him,  and 
announce  to  you,  that  God  is  light,  and  in  him  is  no  darkness  at  all.  If 
we  assert,  that  we  have  communion  with  him,  and  walk  in  darkness, 
we  speak  falsely,  and  do  not  conform  to  the  truth  :  but  if  we  walk  in 
the  light,  as  he  himself  is  in  the  light,  we  have  communion  with  each 
other,  and  the  blood  of  Jesus  Christ  his  Son  purifies  us  from  all  sin. 

If  we  affirm,  that  we  have  no  sin,  we  deceive  ourselves,  and  the  truth 
is  not  in  us.  If  we  acknowledge  our  sins,  he  is  faithful  and  just  to  for- 
give us  our  sins,  and  to  purify  us  from  all  iniquity.  If  we  say  that 
we  have  not  sinned,  we  charge  him  with  falsehood,  and  his  word  is  not 
in  us. 

My  beloved  children,  I  write  these  things  to  you  that  you  may  not 
sin.  And  if  any  one  has  sinned,  we  have  an  advocate  with  the  Father, 
Jesus  Christ  the  righteous  One,  and  he  is  a  conciliation  for  our  sins, 
and  not  only  for  ours,  but  also  for  those  of  the  whole  world.  And  by 
this  we  ascertain  that  we  know  him,  if  we  keep  his  commandments. 
He  who  says,  I  know  him,  and  keeps  not  his  commandments,  is  false, 
and  the  truth  is  not  in  him.  But  whoever  observes  his  word,  in  him, 
assuredly,  the  love  of  God  is  accomplished  :  by  this  we  know  that  we 
are  in  him.  He  who  says  that  he  abides  in  him,  ought  himself  thus  to 
walk,  as  he  walked. 

Beloved,  I  write  not  a  new  commandment  to  you,  but  an  old  com- 
mandment which  you  had  from  the  beginning.  The  old  commandment 
is  the  word  which  you  have  heard  from  the  beginning.  Again,  I  write 
a  new  commandment  to  you,  which  is  true  in  him  and  in  you :  for  the 
darkness  is  passing  away,  and  the  true  light  is  now  shining. 

He  Tvho  alleges,  that  he  is  in  the  light,  and  hates  his  brother,  is 
hitherto  in  darkness.  He  who  loves  his  brother,  abides  in  this  light, 
and  does  not  stumble.  But  he  who  hates  his  brother,  is  in  darkness, 
and  walks  in  darkness,  and  knows  not  where  he  goes,  because  darkness 
has  blinded  his  eyes. 


JOHN'S  GENERAL  ADDRESS  TO  CHRISTIANS.  353 

I  write  to  you,  beloved  children,  because  your  sins  are  forgiven  you, 
through  his  name. 

,  I  write  to  you,  fathers,  because  you  have  known  him  who  is  from  the 
commencement.  I  write  to  you,  young  men,  because  you  have  over- 
come the  evil  one.  I  write  to  you,  little  children,  because  you  have 
known  the  Father. 

I  have  written  to  you,  fathers,  because  you  have  known  him  who  is 
from  the  beginning. 

I  have  written  to  you,  young  men,  because  you  are  strong,  and  the 
word  of  God  remains  in  you,  and  you  have  subdued  the  evil  one.  Love 
not  the  world,  nor  the  things  which  are  in  the  world.  If  any  one  loves 
the  world,  the  love  of  the  Father  is  not  in  him  ;  for  all  that  is  in  the 
world,  (the  desire  of  the  flesh,  and  the  desire  of  the  eyes,  and  the  pride 
of  life),  is  not  from  the  Father,  but  is  from  the  world.  And  the  world 
passes  away,  and  the  desire  of  it ;  but  he,  who  performs  the  will  of 
God,  abides  forever. 

Little  children,  it  is  the  last  time  :  and  as  you  have  heard  that  anti- 
christ is  coming,  thus  even  now,  there  are  many  anti-christs  ;  by  which 
we  know  that  it  is  the  last  time.  They  departed  from  us,  but  they  were 
not  of  us  ;  since,  if  they  had  been  of  us,  they  would  have  remained  with 
us  :  yet  this  occurred,  that  they  might  be  made  apparent ;  because  all 
are  not  of  us.  But  you  have  a  consecration  from  the  Holy  One,  and 
know  all  things.  I  have  not  written  to  you  because  you  know  not  the 
truth  ;  but  because  you  know  it,  and  because  no  falsehood  is  from  the 
truth.  Who  speaks  falsely,  but  he  who  denies  that  Jesus  is  the  Messiah  1 
He  is  anti-christ,  who  denies  the  Father  and  the  Son.  No  one,  who 
denies  the  Son,  has  the  Father ;  but  he  that  acknowledges  the  Son,  has 
also  the  Father. 

Let  that  therefore  abide  in  you,  which  you  have  heard  from  the  com- 
mencement. If  that  which  you  have  heard  from  the  beginning  shall 
remain  in  you,  you  will  also  continue  in  the  Son,  and  in  the  Father. 
And  this  is  the  promise  which  he  has  made  to  us,  even  eternal  life.  I 
have  written  these  things  to  you  concerning  those  who  would  seduce  you. 
But  the  anointing  which  you  have  received  from  liim  abides  in  you,  and 
you  do  not  require  that  any  one  should  teach  you :  but  as  this  anointing 
teaches  you  respecting  all  things,  and  is  true,  and  is  no  deception  ;  and 
even  as  it  has  instructed  you,  remain  in  him. 

And  now,  beloved  children,  abide  in  him  ;  that  when  he  shall  appear, 
we  may  have  confidence,  and  not  be  ashamed  before  him  at  his  coming. 

Since  you  perceive  that  he  is  righteous,  you  know  that  every  one,  who 
practises  righteousness,  has  been  produced  by  him.  Behold,  what  great 
love  the  Father  has  bestowed  on  us,  that  we  might  be  regarded  children 
of  God.  In  this  respect  the  world  does  not  know  us,  because  it  knew 
not  him.  Beloved,  we  are  now  the  children  of  God,  and  it  is  not  yet 
declared  what  we  shall  be,  but  we  know  that,  when  he  shall  be  manifest- 
ed, we  shall  resemble  him ;  for  we  shall  see  him  as  he  is.     And  every 

45 


354  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

one,  who  has  this  hope  in  him,  purifies  himself,,  even  as  he  is  pure. 
Every  one  who  practises  sin,  also  violates  the  law  ;  for  sin  is  the  viola- 
tion of  the  law.  AncJ  you  know  that  he  was  manifested,  that  he  might 
take  away  our  sins  ;  and  that  in  him  there  is  no  sin.  He,  who  remains 
in  him,  does  not  sin  ;  he  who  sins,  does  not  see  him,  nor  know  him. 
Beloved  childi-en,  let  no  one  deceive  you :  he,  who  performs  righteous- 
ness, is  righteous,  even  as  he  is  righteous.  He,  who  commits  sin,  is 
of  the  enemy  ;  since  the  enemy  has  sinned  from  the  beginning.  The 
Son  of  God  was  manifested  for  this  purpose,  that  he  might  destroy  the 
works  of  the  adversary.  He,  who  has  been  produced  of  God,  does  not 
commit  sin  ;  for  his  seed  remains  in  him  ;  and  he  cannot  sin,  because 
he  has  been  produced  of  God.  In  this  the  children  of  God  are  mani- 
fest, and  the  children  of  the  adversary. 

He,  who  does  not  perform  righteousness,  is  not  of  God,  nor  he,  that 
loves  not  his  brother.  For  this  is  the  message,  which  yoii  heard  from 
the  beginning,  that  we  should  love  each  other  :  not  as  Cain,  who  was 
from  the  evil  one,  and  killed  his  brother.  And  why  did  he  destroy  him  1 
Because  his  own  works  were  evil,  and  his  brother's  righteous.  Wonder 
not,  my  brethren,  if  the  world  hates  you.  We  are  conscious  that  we 
have  passed  from  death  to  life,  because  we  love  the  brethren.  He,  who 
loves  not  his  brother,  remains  in  death.  Every  one,  who  hates  his 
brother,  is  a  murderer ;  and  you  know  that  no  murderer  has  eternal 
life  remaining  in  him.  In  this  we  have  known  what  love  is,  that  he 
surrendered  his  life  for  us ;  and  we  ought  to  surrender  our  lives  for  the 
brethren.  And  whoever  has  the  sustenance  of  this  world,  and  sees  his 
brother  in  want,  and  shuts  up  his  compassions  from  him,  how  dwells  the 
love  of  God  in  him  1  My  beloved  children,  let  us  not  love  in  word,  or 
in  tongue,  but  in  deed  and  in  truth.  And  by  this  we  know  that  we  are 
of  the  truth,  and  shall  assure  our  hearts  before  him.  For  if  our  heart 
condemns  us,  God  is  greater  than  our  heart,  and  knows  all  things.  Be- 
loved, if  our  heart  condemns  us  not,  we  have  confidence  before  God. 
And  whatever  we  ask,  we  receive  from  him,  because  we  keep  his  com- 
mandments, and  perform  those  things  which  are  pleasing  in  his  sight. 
And  this  is  his  commandment,  that  we  should  believe  in  the  name  of  his 
Son  Jesus  Christ,  and  love  each  other,  as  he  has  commanded  us.  And 
he,  who  keeps  his  commandments,  dwells  in  God,  and  God  in  him. 
And  by  this  we  know  that  he  remains  in  us,  by  the  Spirit  which  he 
has  given  us. 

Beloved,  believe  not  every  spirit,  but  try  the  spirits  whether  they  are 
of  God ;  because  many  false  prophets  have  gone  out  into  the  world. 
By  this  you  know  the  Spirit  of  God :  every  spirit  which  professes  Jesus 
Christ,  who  has  come  in  the  flesh,  is  of  God.  And  every  spirit  that 
does  not  profess  Jesus  Christ,  is  not  of  God  :  and  this  is  that  spirit  of 
anti-christ,  of  which  you  have  heard  that  it  should  come  ;  and  it  is  even 
now  in  the  world.  You  are  of  God,  beloved  children,  and  have  over- 
come them  ;  since  he  that  is  in  you,  is  greater  than  he  that  is  in  the 


JOHN'S  GENERAL  ADDRESS  TO  CHRISTIANS.  355 

world.  They  are  of  the  world ;  they  therefore  speak  of  the  world, 
and  the  world  hears  them.  We  are  of  God.  He  who  knows  God, 
hears  us ;  he  who  is  not  of  God,  does  not  hear  us.  By  this  we  know 
the  spirit  of  truth,  and  the  spirit  of  error. 

Beloved,  let  us  love  each  other ;  for  love  is  of  God  ;  and  every  one 
who  loves,  has  been  produced  of  God,  and  knows  God.  He  who 
does  not  love,  knows  not  God  ;  for  God  is  love.  In  this  the  love  of  God 
was  manifested  towards  us,  that  God  sent  his  only  produced  Son  into 
the  world,  that  we  might  live  through  him.  In  this  is  love,  not  that  we 
loved  God,  but  that  he  loved  us,  and  sent  his  Son  as  a  conciliation  for 
our  sins.  Beloved,  if  God  so  loved  us,  how  ought  we  to  love  each  other  1 
No  man  has  ever  seen  God.  If  we  love  each  other,  God  dwells  in 
us,  and  the  love  of  him  is  perfected  in  us.  By  this  we  know  that  we 
remain  in  him,  and  he  in  us,  because  he  has  imparted  to  us  of  his 
Spirit. 

And  we  have  seen,  and  we  testify,  that  the  Father  has  sent  the  Son 
as  the  Saviour  of  the  world.  Whoever  shall  profess  that  Jesus  is  the 
Son  of  God,  God  abides  in  him,  and  he  in  God.  And  we  have  known 
and  believed  the  love,  which  God  has  for  us.  God  is  love ;  and  he  who 
dwells  in  love,  dwells  in  God,  and  God  in  him.  By  this,  love  is  con- 
summated among  us,  that  we  may  have  confidence  in  the  day  of  judg- 
ment, because  as  he  is,  so  are  we  in  this  world.  There  is  no  fear  in 
love  ;  but  perfect  love  banishes  fear :  now  fear  is  a  miserable  restraint. 
He  therefore,  who  fears,  is  not  made  perfect  in  love.  We  love  him, 
because  he  first  loved  us. 

If  any  one  says,  I  love  God,  and  yet  hates  his  brother,  he  speaks 
falsely  ;  for  how  can  he,  who  loves  not  his  brother,  whom  he  has  seen, 
love  God,  whom  he  has  not  seen.  And  we  have  this  commandment 
from  him,  that  he  who  loves  God,  should  also  love  his  brother. 

Every  one,  who  believes  that  Jesus  is  the  Messiah,  has  been  produced 
of  God  ;  and  every  one,  who  loves  him  that  produces,  loves  also  him 
that  has  been  produced  by  him.  By  this  we  know  that  we  love  the 
children  of  God,  when  we  love  God,  and  keep  his  commandments  ;  for 
this  is  the  love  of  God,  that  we  obey  liis  commandments  :  and  his  com- 
mandments are  not  oppressive.  For  whatever  has  been  produced  of 
God,  conquers  the  world;  and  this  is  the  victory  that  subdues  the  world, 
even  our  faith.  Who  is  he  that  overcomes  the  world,  but  he  who  believes 
that  Jesus  is  the  Son  of  God  1 

This  is  he  who  came  by  water  and  blood  even  Jesus  Christ ;  not  by 
water  only,  but  by  water  and  blood.  And  it  is  the  Spirit  who  testifies, 
since  the  Spirit  is  truth.  For  there  are  three  that  testify,  the  Spirit, 
and  the  water,  and  the  blood  ;  and  these  three  agree  in  one.  If  we 
receive  the  testimony  of  men  the  testimony  of  God  is  superior  ;  for  this 
is  the  testimony  of  God,  which  he  has  attested  concerning  his  Son.  He, 
who  believes  in  the  Son  of  God,  has  the  testimony  in  himself:  he,  who 
believes  not  God,  charges  him  with  falsehood ;  because  he  has  not  be- 


ggQ  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

r  .A  tl,^  rpcord  which  God  has  attested  respecting  his  Son.  And  this 
nie  record  tt^God  has  given  us  eternal  Me  -,  and  this  life  is  in  his 
Son.  He,  who  has  the  son,  has  life  ;  and,  he  who  has  not  the  Son  of 
God,  has  not  life. 

I  have  written  these  things  to  you,  that  you  may  know  that  you  who 
believe  in  the  name  of  the  Son  of  God  have  eternal  life. 

And  this  is  the  confidence,  which  we  have  towards  him  ;  that  if  we 
ask  any  thing,  according  to  his  will,  he  hears  us.  And  if  we  know  that 
he  hears  us,  whatever  we  ask,  we  know  that  we  shall  realize  the  peti- 
tions which  we  offer  to  him.  If  any  one  see  his  brother  commit  a  sin 
not  punishable  with  death,  let  him  pray,  and  he  will  obtain  from  God 
life  for  those  who  have  not  fatally  sinned.  There  is  a  sin  deserving 
death :  I  do  not  assert  that  he  should  supplicate  concerning  that.  All 
unrighteousness  is  sin  ;  but  there  is  a  sin  not  terminating  in  death. 

We  know  that  whoever  has  been  produced  of  God,  does  not  sin ; 
but  he,  who  is  produced  of  God,  guards  himself,  and  the  evil  one  cannot 
injure  him.  We  know  that  we  are  of  God ;  and  the  whole  world  is 
immersed  in  wickedness.  And  we  know  that  the  Son  of  God  is  come, 
and  has  given  us  an  understanding,  that  we  might  know  the  true  God ; 
and  we  are  under  the  true  One,  under  his  Son  Jesus  Christ.  This  is 
the  true  God,  and  the  eternal  life.  Beloved  children,  keep  yourselves 
from  idols. 


THE   LETTER  OF   JOHN   TO  AN  EMINENT 
CHRISTIAN  WOMAN. 

The  senior  to  the  excellent  Cyria,  and  to  her  children,  whom  I  love 
sincerely  ;  and  not  I  alone,  but  all  those  likewise,  who  know  the  truth. 
We  love  you  with  that  faithfulness  which  dwells  in  us,  and  will  be  with 
us  forever.  Grace,  mercy,  and  peace,  be  with  you  from  God  the  Fath- 
er, and  from  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  the  Son  of  the  Father,  with  fidelity 
and  love. 

I  rejoiced  exceedingly,  that  I  found  some  of  your  children  walking  in 
truth,  as  we  received  commandment  from  the  Father.  And  now  I  en- 
treat you,  Cyria,  not  as  writing  to  you  a  new  commandment,  but  that 
which  we  had  from  the  commencement,  that  we  may  love  each  other. 
And  this  is  love,  that  we  walk  according  to  his  commandments.  This 
is  the  commandment,  even  as  ye  have  heard  from  the  beginning,  that 
ye  should  walk  in  it. 

For  many  deceivers  have  entered  the  world,  who  confess  not  that 
Jesus  Christ  is  come  in  the  flesh  :  such  an  one  is  that  deceiver,  and  that 
anti-christ.  Attend  to  yourselves,  that  you  may  not  lose  those  things 
which  you  have  wrought,  but  that  you  may  receive  an  ample  reward. 
Whoever  transgresses,  and  remains  not  in  the  doctrine  of  Christ,  has 
not  God.  He  who  remains  in  the  doctrine  of  Christ,  the  same  has  both 
the  Father  and  the  Son.  If  any  one  come  to  you,  and  bring  not  this 
doctrine,  do  not  receive  him  into  your  house,  nor  wish  him  prosperity  ; 
for  he  who  wishes  his  welfare,  is  a  partaker  of  his  evil  deeds. 

Having  many  things  to  write  to  you,  I  would  not  do  it  with  paper  and 
ink  ;  but  I  hope  to  come  to  you,  and  personally  to  communicate  ;  that 
our  joy  may  be  full. 

The  children  of  your  excellent  sister  salute  you. 


THE   LETTER   OF   JOHN   TO   A  DISTINGUISHED 
CHRISTIAN  MAN. 

The  senior  to  the  much  endeared  Caius,  whom  I  love  in  sincerity. 

Beloved,  I  pray  that  in  every  respect  you  may  prosper,  and  be  in 
health,  even  as  your  soul  prospers.  For  I  greatly  rejoiced,  when  the 
brethren  came  and  testified  to  the  fidelity  with  which  you  walk  in  the 
truth.  I  have  no  greater  happiness  than  this,  to  hear  that  my  children 
conduct  with  integrity. 

Beloved,  you  faithfully  perform  whatever  you  undertake  for  the  breth- 
ren, and  for  the  strangers  ;  who  have  testified  to  your  beneficence  be- 
fore the  church  :  and  you  will  do  well,  if  you  advance  them  on  their 
journey,  in  a  manner  acceptable  to  God.  For,  in  the  divine  cause  they 
departed,  receiving  nothing  from  the  Gentiles.  We  ought  to  entertain 
such  ;  that  we  may  become  co-operators  for  the  truth. 

I  would  have  written  to  the  church  ;  but  Diotrephes,^  who  aiFects  the 
ascendancy  among  them,  does  not  receive  us.  Therefore,  if  I  come,  I 
will  remind  him  of  his  practices,  —  declaiming  against  us  with  malig- 
nant words  ;  and  not  content  with  this,  he  himself  receives  not  the 
brethren,  and  prohibits  those  that  would,  and  banishes  them  from  the 
church.  Beloved,  do  not  imitate  that  which  is  evil,  but  that  which  is 
good.  He  who  does  good  is  from  God ;  but  he  who  does  evil,  has  not 
realized  God. 

Demetrius  receives  approbation  from  all,  even  from  the  truth  herself. 
And  we  also  bear  testimony,  and  ye  know  that  our  attestation  is  true. 

I  have  many  things  to  write  ;  yet  I  do  not  incline  to  correspond  with 
pen  and  ink  ;  but  I  hope  immediately  to  see  you  ;  and  we  will  speak 
face  to  face.     Peace  be  to  you ! 

Our  friends  salute  you.     Salute  the  friends  by  name. 


THE  GENERAL  LETTER  OF  JUDE. 

JuDE,  a  servant  of  Jesus  Christ,  and  brother  of  James,  to  those  who 
are  beloved  in  God  the  Father,  called  and  preserved  by  Jesus  Christ ; 
mercy,  and  peace,  and  love,  be  multiplied  to  you. 

Beloved,  when  I  was  intensely  desirous  to  address  you  respecting  the 
common  salvation,  it  became  necessary  that  I  should  write  to  you,  en- 
treating you  earnestly  to  contend  for  the  faith  which  was  once  com- 
municated to  the  saints.  For  some  men  have  insidiously  crept  in,  who 
were  long  since  publicly  condemned,  impious  men,  turning  the  grace  of 
our  God  into  licentiousness,  and  denying  the  only  Sovereign,  and  our 
Lord  Jesus  Christ. 

Now  I  wish  to  remind  you,  though  you  are  fully  instructed  in  this, 
that  the  Lord,  having  delivered  the  people  from  the  land  of  Egypt, 
afterwards  destroyed  those  who  disbelieved.  And  the  angels  who  kept 
not  their  own  principality,  but  left  their  appropriate  residence,  he  has 
reserved  in  perpetual  chains,  under  darkness,  to  the  judgment  of  the 
great  day.  Thus,  Sodom  and  Gomorrah,  and  the  cities  around  them, 
in  like  manner  with  them,  abandoning  themselves  to  impurity,  and  fol- 
lowing unnatural  passions,  are  exhibited  as  an  example,  suffering  the 
vengeance  of  perpetual  fire. 

And  these  dreamers,  likewise,  absolutely  pollute  the  flesh,  deride  gov- 
ernment, and  traduce  authorities.  Now  Michael  the  archangel,  when 
engaged  in  a  contest  with  the  false  accuser,  concerning  the  body  of 
Moses,  did  not  presume  to  bring  a  reproachful  accusation  against  him, 
but  said,  The  Lord  reprove  you.  Yet  these  revile  what  indeed  they  do 
not  understand  ;  and  what  they  know  naturally,  as  irrational  animals, 
in  these  they  are  depraved.  Alas  for  them  !  because  they  have  gone  in  - 
the  way  of  Cain,  and  rushed  on  in  the  error  of  Balaam  for  reward,  and 
destroyed  themselves  by  controversy  like  Korah. 

These  are  spots  in  your  love-feasts,  when  they  banquet  with  you, 
feeding  themselves  without  restraint :  clouds  without  water,  driven  away 
by  winds  ;  trees  whose  blossoms  are  withered,  sterile,  doubly  dead, 
eradicated  ;  raging  waves  of  the  sea,  foaming  out  to  their  own  disgrace  ; 
wandering  meteors,  to  whom  the  blackness  of  darkness  is  perpetually 
reserved. 

And  moreover,  Enoch,  the  seventh  from  Adam,  prophesied  against 
them,  declaring,  Behold,  the  Lord  comes  with  his  holy  myriads,  to  exe- 
cute judgment  upon  all,  and  to  convict  all  the  iniquitous  of  all  their  acts 
which  they  have  impiously  committed,  and  of  all  the  harsh  words  which 
impious  sinners  have  spoken  against  him.  These  are  murmurers,  com- 
plainers,  walking  after  their  own  pleasures,  and  their  mouth  utters  ex- 


360  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

travagant  expressions,  and  they  are  respecters  of  persons  for  the  pur- 
pose of  gain. 

But  you,  beloved,  remember  the  words  which  were  previously  spoken 
by  the  apostles  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ ;  for  they  informed  you  that, 
in  the  last  time,  there  would  be  deriders,  conducting  in  conformity  to 
their  own  impious  passions.  These  are  they  who  separate  themselves, 
sensual,  not  having  the  spirit. 

But  you,  beloved,  erecting  yourselves  on  your  most  holy  faith,  praying 
in  the  Holy  Spirit,  keep  yourselves  in  the  love  of  God,  looking  for  the 
mercy  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  to  eternal  life.  And  on  some  indeed 
have  compassion,  making  a  discrimination  ;  but  others  save  with  fear, 
wresting  them  from  the  fire  ;  detesting  even  the  vestment  contaminated 
by  the  flesh. 

Now  to  him  who  is  able  to  keep  you  from  falling,  and  to  present  you 
faultless  before  the  presence  of  his  glory  with  exceedingly  great  joy  ;  to 
the  wise  God  alone,  our  Preserver,  through  Jesus  Christ  our  Lord,  be 
glory  and  majesty,  dominion  and  power,  before  all  time,  and  now,  and 
through  all  futurity.     Amen  ! 


THE   LETTERS,  VISIONS,  AND  PROPHECIES,   OF 

JOHN. 

The  revelation  of  Jesus  Christ,  which  God  imparted  to  him,  to  mani- 
fest to  his  servants  things  which  must,  in  a  short  period,  occur.  And  he 
sent,  and  communicated  it  by  his  angel  to  his  servant  John  ;  who  has 
attested  the  word  of  God,  and  the  record  of  Jesus  Christ,  even  whatever 
he  saw.  Happy  is  he  who  reads,  and  they  who  hear  the  words  of  this 
prophecy,  and  keep  the  things  that  are  written  in  it ;  for  the  time  is 
near. 

John,  to  the  seven  churches  which  are  in  Asia ;  divine  favor  and 
peace  be  to  you,  from  him  who  is,  and  who  was,  and  who  is  to  come  ; 
and  from  the  seven  spirits  who  are  before  the  throne  ;  and  from  Jesus 
Christ,  the  faithful  witness,  the  first  produced  from  the  dead,  and  the 
prince  of  the  kings  of  the  earth. 

To  him  who  loves  us,  and  washed  us  from  our  sins  in  his  own  blood, 
and  has  made  us  a  kingdom  of  priests  to  his  God  and  Father,  to  him  be 
glory  and  dominion  for  ever  and  ever.     Amen  ! 

Behold,  he  is  coming  in  clouds,  and  every  eye  will  see  him,  even 
they  who  pierced  him  ;  and  all  the  tribes  of  the  land  will  lament  in 
consequence  of  him.  Indeed,  amen  !  I  am  the  Alpha  and  the  Omega, 
says  the  Lord,  who  is,  and  who  was,  and  who  is  to  come,  the  Almighty. 

I  John,  who  am  your  brother,  and  companion  in  the  adversity,  and 
kingdom,  and  patience  of  Jesus  Christ,  was  on  the  island  which  is  call- 
ed Patmos,  for  the  word  of  God,  and  for  the  testimony  of  Jesus  Christ. 
I  was  in  the  Spirit  on  the  Lord's  day,  and  heard  a  great  voice  behind 
me,  as  of  a  trumpet,  saying.  What  you  see,  write  in  a  book,  and  send  it 
to  the  seven  churches  ;  to  Ephesus,  and  to  Smyrna,  and  to  Pergamos, 
and  to  Thyatira,  and  to  Sardis,  and  to  Philadelphia,  and  to  Laodicea. 

And  upon  this,  I  turned  to  discover  the  voice  that  had  spoken  to  me. 
And  having  turned,  I  saw  seven  golden  lamps  ;  and  in  the  midst  of  the 
seven  lamps,  one  lilte  a  son  of  man,  clothed  with  a  long  robe,  and  en- 
circled about  the  breast  with  a  golden  girdle.  And  his  head  and  his 
hair  were  white  as  wool,  as  white  as  snow ;  and  his  eyes  resembled  a 
flame  of  fire  ;  and  his  feet  were  like  fine  brass,  as  if  they  had  been  puri- 
fied in  a  furnace  ;  and  his  voice  as  the  sound  of  many  waters.  And  he 
had  in  his  right  hand  seven  stars  ;  and  a  sharp  two-edged  sword  went 
from  his  mouth  ;  and  his  countenance  was  as  the  sun,  when  he  shines 
in  his  strength.  And  when  I  saw  him  I  fell  at  his  feet  as  dead.  And 
he  laid  his  right  hand  upon  me,  saying,  Fear  not ;  I  am  the  first  and 
the  last ;  and  he  that  lives,  and  was  dead  :  and  behold,  I  live  for  ever 
and  ever  ;  and  have  the  keys  of  death  and  of  hades.     Write  the  things 

46 


362  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

which  you  have  seen,  and  those  which  are,  and  those  which  will  happen 
hereafter.  As  to  the  secret  of  the  seven  stars  which  you  saw  in  my 
right  hand,  and  the  seven  lamps  of  gold  ;  the  seven  stars  are  the  direc- 
tors of  the  seven  churches  ;  and  the  seven  lamps  which  you  saw  are  the 
seven  churches. 

To  the  director  of  the  church  at  Ephesus,  write  ;  These  things  says 
he,  who  holds  the  seven  stars  in  his  right  hand,  who  walks  in  the  midst 
of  the  seven  golden  lamps  ;  I  know  thy  works,  and  thy  labor,  and  thy 
patience,  and  that  thou  canst  not  bear  those  that  are  evil ;  and  thou 
hast  tried  those  who  assert  that  they  are  apostles,  and  are  not,  and  hast 
found  them  false  ;  and  hast  patience,  and  thou  hast  endured  for  my 
name,  and  hast  not  fainted.  Yet,  I  have  something  against  thee,  be- 
cause thou  hast  lost  thy  first  love.  Remember  therefore  from  what  thou 
art  fallen,  and  reform,  and  achieve  the  first  works  ;  otherwise,  I  will 
immediately  come  to  thee,  and  remove  thy  lamp  from  its  place,  except 
thou  shouldst  reform.  But  thou  hast  this  praise,  that  thou  hatest  the 
deeds  of  the  Nicolaitans,  which  I  also  hate. 

Let  him  who  has  an  ear,  hear  what  the  Spirit  says  to  the  churches. 
Him  that  conquers,  I  will  permit  to  eat  of  the  tree  of  life,  which  is  in 
the  midst  of  the  paradise  of  God. 

And  to  the  director  of  the  church  at  Smyrna,  write  ;  These  things  says 
the  first  and  the  last,  who  was  dead,  and  is  alive  ;  I  know  thy  works, 
and  afiiiction,  and  poverty,  (but  thou  art  rich),  and  I  know  the  impious 
language  of  those  who  declare  that  they  are  Jews,  and  are  not,  but  are 
the  synagogue  of  the  adversary.  Fear  none  of  those  things  which  thou 
art  to  suifer.  Behold,  the  enemy  will  cast  some  of  you  into  prison,  that 
you  may  be  tried,  and  you  will  have  afiiiction  ten  days.  Be  thou  faith- 
ful unto  death,  and  I  will  give  thee  the  crown  of  life. 

Let  him  who  has  an  ear,  hear  what  the  Spirit  says  to  the  churches. 
He  who  conquers,  shall  not  be  injured  by  the  second  death. 

And  to  the  director  of  the  church  at  Pergamos,  write  ;  These  things 
says  he  who  has  the  sharp,  two-edged  sword  ;  I  know  thy  works,  where 
thou  dwellest,  even  where  the  adversary  has  his  throne  ;  and  thou  firmly 
retainest  my  name,  and  didst  not  renounce  my  faith,  even  in  those  days 
in  which  Antipas  was  my  faithful  martyr,  who  was  slain  among  you, 
where  the  adversary  dwells.  Yet,  I  have  a  few  things  against  thee,  that 
thou  hast  there  such  as  hold  the  doctrine  of  Balaam,  who  taught  Balak  to 
cast  a  stumbUng  block  before  the  sons  of  Israel,  that  they  might  eat  things 
sacrificed  to  idols,  and  might  commit  impurity.  And  thou  hast,  in  like 
manner,  those  who  hold  the  doctrine  of  the  Nicolaitans.  Reform  ;  or 
otherwise  I  will  instantly  come  to  thee,  and  will  contend  against  them 
with  the  sword  of  my  mouth. 

Let  him  who  has  an  ear,  hear  what  the  Spirit  says  to  the  churches. 
To  him  that  overcomes,  I  will  give  of  the  hidden  manna ;  and  will  give 
him  a  white  stone,  and  on  the  stone  a  new  name  written,  which  no  man 
knows,  except  he  who  receives  it. 


JOHN'S  LETTERS,  VISIONS,  AND  PROPHECIES.  363 

And  to  the  director  of  the  church  at  Thyatira,  write  ;  These  things 
says  the  Son  of  God,  who  has  his  eyes  like  a  flame  of  fire,  and  whose 
feet  resemble  fine  brass  ;  I  know  thy  works,  and  love,  and  faith,  and 
service,  and  thy  perseverance,  and  thy  last  works,  which  are  even  better 
than  the  first.  But,  I  have  something  against  thee,  because  thou  per- 
mitest  thy  wife  Jezebel,  who  calls  herself  a  prophetess,  to  teach  and  to 
seduce  my  servants  to  commit  impurity,  and  to  eat  things  offered  to 
idols.  And  I  have  given  her  to  reform,  but  she  will  not  reform  from 
her  incontinence.  Behold,  I  will  cast  her  on  a  bed  of  sickness,  and 
those  who  commit  impurity  with  her  into  great  affliction,  except  they 
reform  from  their  deeds.  And  I  will  destroy  her  children  by  the  pesti- 
lence ;  and  all  the  churches  shall  know  that  I  am  he  who  searches  the 
internal  thoughts  and  dispositions,  and  will  give  to  every  one  of  you, 
according  to  your  works.  But  I  say  to  you,  even  to  the  rest  at  Thya- 
tira, as  many  as  receive  not  this  doctrine,  and  who  have  not  known  the 
depths  of  the  adversary,  as  they  represent ;  I  will  lay  upon  you  no  other 
burden.     But  what  you  have,  hold  fast  till  I  come. 

And  he  who  overcomes,  and  performs  my  works  to  the  end,  to  him  I 
will  give  power  over  the  nations  ;  and  he  shall  rule  them  with  a  rod  of 
iron ;  they  shall  be  dashed  in  pieces  like  the  vessels  of  a  potter,  even  as  I 
have  received  from  my  Father.  And  I  will  give  him  the  morning-star. 
Let  him  who  has  an  ear,  hear  what  the  Spirit  says  to  the  churches. 

And  to  the  director  of  the  church  at  Sardis,  write  ;  These  things  says 
he,  who  has  the  seven  spirits  of  God,  and  the  seven  stars  ;  I  know  thy 
works,  that  thou  hast  the  character  of  being  alive,  but  art  dead.  Be 
vigilant,  and  strengthen  the  things  remaining,  which  were  ready  to  die  ; 
for  I  have  not  found  thy  works  ~  fully  performed  in  the  sight  of  God. 
Recollect  then,  how  thou  hast  received  and  heard  ;  and  firmly  retain, 
and  reform.  If  therefore,  thou  wilt  not  watch,  I  will  come  upon  thee 
as  a  thief;  and  thou  shalt  not  know  at  what  hour  I  will  come  upon  thee. 
Thou  hast  however,  a  few  persons  in  Sardis,  who  have  not  polluted  their 
garments  ;  and  they  shall  walk  with  me  in  white  ;  for  they  are  worthy. 

He,  that  overcomes,  shall  be  clothed  in  white  raiment  ;  and  I  will  not 
erase  his  name  from  the  book  of  life,  but  I  will  acknowledge  his  name 
before  my  Father,  and  before  his  angels.  Let  him  that  has  an  ear,  hear 
what  the  Spirit  says  to  the  churches. 

And  to  the  director  of  the  church  at  Philadelphia,  write  ;  These  things 
says  he  that  is  holy,  he  that  is  true,  he  who  has  the  key  of  David,  he 
who  opens,  and  no  one  shuts  ;  and  shuts,  and  no  one  opens  :  I  know 
thy  works  ;  behold,  I  have  placed  before  thee  an  open  door,  which  no 
man  can  shut ;  because  thou  hast  a  little  power,  and  hast  kept  my  word, 
and  hast  not  denied  my  name.  Behold,  I  will  cause  those  of  the  syn- 
agogue of  the  adversary,  who  assert  that  they  are  Jews,  and  are  not, 
but  speak  falsely  ;  behold,  I  will  make  them  to  come  and  pay  homage 
before  thy  feet,  and  to  know  that  I  have  loved  thee.  Because  thou  hast 
kept  my  word  respecting  patience,  I  will  .also  keep  thee  from  the  hour 


364  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

of  temptation,  which  shall  come  upon  all  the  world,  to  try  the  inhabit- 
ants of  the  earth.  I  come  quickly ;  keep  that  which  thou  hast,  that  no 
man  take  thy  crown. 

Him  that  overcomes,  I  will  make  a  pillar  of  fire  in  the  temple  of  my 
God,  and  he  shall  depart  no  more  ;  and  I  will  inscribe  upon  him  the 
name  of  my  God,  and  the  name  of  the  city  of  my  God,  of  the  new 
Jerusalem,  which  descends  out  of  heaven  from  my  God,  and  my  new 
name.  Let  him  who  has  an  ear,  hear  what  the  Spirit  says  to  the 
churches. 

And  to  the  director  of  the  church  at  Laodicea,  write.  These  things 
says  the  Amen,  the  faithful  and  true  witness,  the  beginning  of  the  crea- 
tion of  God  ;  I  know  thy  works,  that  thou  art  neither  cold  nor  hot :  I 
wish  that  thou  wert  cold  or  hot.  Therefore,  because  thou  art  luke- 
warm, and  neither  cold  nor  hot,  I  will  cast  thee  out  of  my  mouth.  Be- 
cause thou  declarest,  I  am  affluent,  and  enriched,  and  want  nothing  ; 
and  knowest  not  that  thou  art  most  wretched,  and  pitiable,  and  poor, 
and  blind,  and  naked  ;  I  counsel  thee  to  buy  of  me  gold  purified  in  the 
fire,  that  thou  mayst  be  rich ;  and  white  raiment  that  thou  mayst  be 
clothed,  and  that  the  dishonor  of  thy  exposure  may  not  appear  ;  and  to 
anoint  thine  eyes  with  eye-salve,  that  thou  mayst  see.  As  many  as  I 
love,  I  reprove  and  correct.  Be  zealous,  therefore,  and  reform.  Behold, 
I  stand  at  the  door  and  knock ;  if  any  one  hear  my  voice,  and  open  the 
door,  I  will  enter  his  house,  and  will  sup  with  him,  and  he  with  me. 

Him  who  overcomes  I  wiU  permit  to  sit  with  me  on  ray  throne,  as  I 
also  overcame,  and  do  sit  with  my  Father  on  his  throne.  Let  him  who 
has  an  ear,  hear  what  the  Spirit  says  to  the  churches. 

After  these  things  I  looked,  and  behold,  a  door  was  opened  in  hea- 
ven; and  the  first  voice  which  I  heard  resembled  a  trumpet  thus  speak- 
ing to  me.  Ascend  hither,  and  I  will  show  you  things  which  must  here- 
after happen.  And  immediately,  I  was  in  the  Spirit ;  and  behold,  a 
throne  was  placed  in  heaven,  and  one  was  sitting  on  the  throne.  And 
he  who  sat  on  it,  was  in  appearance  hke  a  jasper  and  a  sardius ;  and  a 
rainbow  resembling  an  emerald  surrounded  the  throne.  And  around 
the  throne  were  twenty-four  thrones ;  and  on  the  thrones  I  saw  twenty- 
four  seniors  sitting,  clothed  in  white  raiment ;  and  on  their  heads  crowns 
of  gold.  And  from  the  throne  proceeded  lightnings,  and  thunders,  and 
voices.  And  seven  lamps  of  fire  were  burning  before  the  throne,  which 
are  the  seven  spirits  of  God.  And  before  the  throne,  there  was  a  sea  of 
glass  like  crystal ;  and  in  the  midst  of  the  throne,  and  around  the  throne, 
were  four  living  ones,  full  of  eyes  before  and  behind.  And  the  first 
living  one  resembled  a  lion,  and  the  second  living  one  resembled  a  steer, 
and  the  third  living  one  had  the  face  of  a  man,  and  the  fourth  living 
one  was  like  a  flying  eagle.  And  each  of  the  four  living  ones  had  six 
wings,  and  they  were  full  of  eyes  around  and  within :  and  they  rest  not 
day  nor  night,  saying,  Holy,  holy,  holy,  Lord  God  Almighty,  who  was, 
and  is,  and  is  to  come.    -And  when  those  living  ones  give  glory,  and 


JOHN'S  LETTERS,  VISIONS,  AND  PROPHECIES.  365 

honor,  and  thanks,  to  him  who  sits  on  the  throne,  who  lives  forever  and 
ever,  the  twenty-four  seniors  fall  down  before  him  who  sits  on  the 
throne,  and  worship  him  who  lives  for  ever  and  ever,  and  cast  their 
crowns  before  the  throne,  saying.  Worthy  art  thou,  O  Lord,  to  receive 
glory,  and  honor,  and  power  ;  for  thou  hast  created  all  things,  and 
through  thy  will  they  existed,  and  were  created. 

And  I  saw,  on  the  right  hand  of  him  who  sat  on  the  throne,  a  volume, 
written  within  and  without,  sealed  with  seven  seals.  And  I  beheld  a 
powerful  angel  proclaiming  with  a  loud  voice.  Who  is  worthy  to  open 
the  volume,  and  to  loose  its  seals  1  And  no  one  in  heaven,  or  on  earth, 
or  under  the  earth,  was  able  to  open  the  volume,  or  to  look  thereon. 
And  I  wept  much,  because  no  one  was  found  worthy  to  open  the  volume, 
or  to  look  thereon.  Then  one  of  the  seniors  said  to  me.  Weep  not ; 
behold,  the  Lion  of  the  tribe  of  Judah,  the  Root  of  David,  has  been 
able  to  open  the  volume,  and  its  seven  seals. 

And  I  beheld,  in  the  midst  between  the  throne  and  the  four  hving 
creatures,  and  in  the  midst  between  the  seniors,  a  Lamb  standing  in  the 
act  of  being  slain,  having  seven  horns  and  seven  eyes,  which  are  the 
seven  Spirits  of  God,  sent  forth  into  all  the  earth.  And  he  came  and 
received  the  volume  from  the  right  hand  of  him  who  sat  on  the  throne. 
And  when  he  received  the  volume,  the  four  living  ones,  and  the  twenty- 
four  seniors,  fell  down  before  the  Lamb,  each  one  having  harps  and 
golden  urns  full  of  incense,  which  are  the  prayers  of  saints.  And  they 
sung  a  new  song,  saying.  Thou  art  worthy  to  take  the  volume,  and  to 
open  the  seals  of  it ;  for  thou  wast  slain,  and  hast  redeemed  us  to  God  by 
thy  blood,  from  every  tribe,  and  language,  and  people,  and  nation ;  and 
hast  made  them  kings  and  priests  to  our  God  ;  and  they  shall  reign  on 
the  earth.  And  I  looked,  and  heard  the  voice  of  many  angels  around  the 
throne,  and  of  the  hving  creatures,  and  of  the  seniors  ;  and  their  number 
was  myriads  of  myriads,  and  thousands  of  thousands  ;  saying  with  a  loud 
voice.  Worthy  is  the  Lamb  that  was  slain,  to  receive  power,  and  wealth, 
and  wisdom,  and  strength,  and  honor,  and  glory,  and  blessing.  And 
every  creature  that  is  in  heaven,  and  on  the  earth,  and  under  the  earth, 
and  such  as  are  on  the  sea,  and  all  that  are  in  them,  I  heard,  saying.  To 
him  who  sits  on  the  throne,  and  to  the  Lamb,  be  blessing,  and  honor, 
and  glory,  and  dominion,  for  ever  and  ever !  And  the  four  living  ones 
said,  Amen  !    And  the  seniors  fell  down  and  worshipped. 

Then  I  looked,  when  the  Lamb  opened  one  of  the  seven  seals ;  and 
I  heard  one  of  the  four  living  creatures,  that  said,  as  with  a  voice  of 
thunder,  Come  and  see.  And  I  looked,  and  behold,  a  white  horse,  and 
he  that  sat  on  him  had  a  bow ;  and  a  crown  was  given  him  ;  and  he 
went  forth  conquering,  and  to  conquer. 

And  when  he  opened  the  second  seal,  I  heard  the  second  hving  crea- 
ture, saying.  Come  and  see.  And  another  horse  came  out  which  was 
red ;   and  he  who  sat  on  it,  was  empowered  to  take  peace  from  the 


366  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

earth,  and  that  they  should  destroy  each  other  ;  and  a  great  sword  was 
given  to  him. 

And  when  he  opened  the  third  seal,  I  heard  the  third  living  creature, 
saying,  Come  and  see.  And  I  looked,  and  behold,  a  black  horse  ;  and 
he  who  sat  on  him  had  a  pair  of  balances  in  his  hand.  And  I  heard  a 
voice  in  the  midst  of  the  four  living  creatures,  A  small  measure  of  wheat 
for  a  denarius,  and  three  small  measures  of  barley  for  a  denarius ;  but 
injure  thou  not  the  oil  and  the  wine. 

And  when  he  had  opened  the  fourth  seal,  I  heard  the  fourth  living 
creature  say.  Come  and  see.  And  1  looked,  and  behold,  a  pale  horse  ; 
and  his  name  who  sat  on  him  was  Death  ;  and  Hades  followed  him. 
And  power  was  given  him  over  the  fourth  part  of  the  earth,  to  destroy 
by  the  sword,  and  by  famine,  and  by  pestilence,  and  by  the  wild  beasts 
of  the  earth. 

And  when  he  opened  the  fifth  seal,  I  saw  under  the  altar  the  souls  of 
those  who  had  been  slain  for  the  word  of  God,  and  for  the  testimony 
which  they  had  borne.  And  they  exclaimed,  with  a  loud  voice,  saying. 
How  long,  O  Sovereign  Lord,  holy  and  true,  ere  thou  wUt  judge  and 
avenge  our  blood  on  those  who  dwell  upon  the  earth  1  And  a  white 
robe  was  given  to  them,  and  they  were  enjoined  to  rest  yet  for  a  time, 
till  the  number  of  their  fellow-servants  and  brethren,  who  should  be 
slain  as  they  had  been,  might  be  completed. 

And  I  looked,  when  he  opened  the  sixth  seal,  and  there  was  a  great 
earthquake  ;  and  the  sun  became  black  as  sackcloth  of  hair,  and  the 
whole  moon  became  as  blood ;  and  the  stars  of  heaven  fell  to  the  earth, 
as  a  fig-tree  drops  its  premature  figs,  when  it  is  shaken  by  a  tempestu- 
ous wind.  And  the  heaven  departed  as  a  scroll ;  and  every  mountain 
and  island  were  moved  from  their  places.  And  the  kings  of  the  earth, 
and  the  great  men,  and  the  rich  men,  and  the  commanders,  and  the 
powerful  men,  and  every  slave,  and  every  free-man,  hid  themselves  in 
the  dens  and  rocks  of  the  mountains  ;  and  they  said  to  the  mountains 
and  the  rocks,  Fall  on  us,  and  hide  us  from  the  face  of  him  who  sits  on 
the  throne,  and  from  the  displeasure  of  the  Lamb  :  for  the  great  day  of 
his  displeasure  is  come  ;  and  who  is  able  to  stand. 

And  after  these  things  I  saw  four  angels  standing  on  the  four  parts  of 
the  earth,  restraining  the  four  winds  of  the  earth,  that  the  wind  should 
not  blow  on  the  earth,  nor  on  the  sea,  nor  on  any  tree.  And  I  saw 
another  angel  ascending  from  the  rising  of  the  sun,  having  the  seal  of 
the  living  God  :  and  he  exclaimed  vrith  a  great  voice  to  the  four  angels, 
who  were  empowered  to  injure  the  earth  and  the  sea,  declaring.  Injure 
not  the  earth,  nor  the  sea,  nor  the  trees,  till  we  have  sealed  the  servants 
of  our  God  on  their  foreheads.  And  I  heard  the  number  of  those  who 
were  sealed  ;  a  hundred  and  forty-four  thousand  were  sealed  from  all 
the  tribes  of  the  sons  of  Israel.  Twelve  thousand  were  sealed  from  the 
tribe  of  Judah  ;  twelve  thousand  were  sealed  from  the  tribe  of  Reuben  ; 


JOHN'S  LETTEES,  VISIONS,  AND  PROPHECIES.  367 

twelve  thousand  were  sealed  from  the  tribe  of  Gad  ;  twelve  thousand 
were  sealed  from  the  tribe  of  Asher  ;  twelve  thousand  were  sealed  from 
the  tribe  of  Naphtali ;  twelve  thousand  were  sealed  from  the  tribe  of 
Manasseh ;  twelve  thousand  were  sealed  from  the  tribe  of  Simeon ; 
twelve  thousand  were  sealed  from  the  tribe  of  Levi ;  twelve  thousand 
were  sealed  from  the  tribe  of  Issachar ;  twelve  thousand  were  sealed 
from  the  tribe  of  Zebulun  ;  twelve  thousand  were  sealed  from  the  tribe 
of  Joseph  ;  and  twelve  thousand  were  sealed  from  the  tribe  of  Ben- 
jamin. 

After  this  I  looked,  and  behold,  a  great  multitude,  which  no  one 
could  number,  from  every  nation,  and  tribe,  and  people,  and  language, 
stood  before  the  throne,  and  before  the  Lamb,  clothed  with  white  robes, 
and  with  palm-branches  in  their  hands  ;  and  they  cried  with  a  loud 
voice,  saying.  Salvation  to  our  God,  who  sits  on  the  throne,  and  to  the 
Lamb.  And  all  the  angels  stood  around  the  throne,  near  the  seniors, 
and  the  four  living  creatures,  and  they  fell  on  their  faces  before  the 
throne,  and  worshipped  God,  saying.  Amen,  the  praise,  and  the  glory, 
and  the  wisdom,  and  the  thanksgiving,  and  the  honor,  and  the  domin- 
ion, and  the  power,  be  to  our  God  for  ever  and  ever.     Amen ! 

And  one  of  the  seniors  addressed  me,  saying.  Who  are  these  that  are 
clothed  in  white  vestments,  and  whence  came  they  1  And  I  said  to 
him.  Sir,  thou  knowest.  And  he  replied  to  me.  These  are  they  who 
came  out  of  great  afl3iction,  and  have  washed  their  robes,  and  made 
them  white  in  the  blood  of  the  Lamb.  They  are,  consequently,  before 
the  throne  of  God,  and  serve  him  day  and  night  in  his  temple  ;  and  he 
who  sits  on  the  throne  will  dwell  among  them.  They  will  hunger  no 
more  ;  nor  will  they  thirst  any  more  ;  nor  will  the  sun  fall  on  them,  nor 
any  heat.  For  the  Lamb,  who  is  in  the  midst  of  the  throne,  will  feed 
them,  and  wUl  conduct  them  to  living  fountains  of  water  ;  and  God  will 
wipe  away  all  tears  from  their  eyes. 

And  when  he  had  opened  the  seventh  seal,  there  was  silence  in 
heaven  for  about  half  an  hour. 

And  I  saw  the  seven  angels  who  stood  before  God,  and  seven  trum- 
pets were  given  to  them.  And  another  angel  came  and  stood  at  the 
altar,  having  a  golden  censer  ;  and  to  him  much  incense  was  given,  that 
he  might  present  it  with  the  prayers  of  all  the  saints,  on  the  golden 
altar  which  was  before  the  throne.  And  the  smoke  of  the  incense,  from 
the  hand  of  the  angel,  ascended  before  God,  with  the  prayers  of  the 
saints.  And  the  angel  took  the  censer,  and  filled  it  with  fire  from  the 
altar,  and  threw  it  upon  the  earth  :  and  there  were  voices,  and  thun- 
ders, and  lightnings,  and  an  earthquake.  And  the  seven  angels  who 
had  the  seven  trumpets,  prepared  themselves  that  they  might  sound 
them. 

So  the  first  sounded  his  trumpet,  and  there  was  hail  and  fire  mingled 
\vith  blood,  and  it  was  cast  upon  the  earth  ;  and  the  third  part  of  the 


368  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

land  was  burned  up,  and  the  third  part  of  the  trees  was  burned  up,  and 
all  the  green  vegetation  was  burned  up. 

And  the  second  angel  sounded  his  trumpet ;  and  it  was  as  if  a  great 
mountain,  burning  with  fire,  were  cast  into  the  sea  :  and  the  third  part 
of  the  sea  became  blood ;  and  the  third  part  of  the  creatures  which 
were  in  the  sea  and  had  life,  died  ;  and  the  third  part  of  the  ships  was 
destroyed. 

And  the  third  angel  sounded  his  trumpet,  and  a  great  star,  burning 
like  a  lamp,  fell  from  heaven ;  and  it  fell  upon  the  third  part  of  the 
rivers,  and  upon  the  springs  of  waters  ;  and  the  name  of  the  star  is 
called  Wormwood ;  and  the  third  part  of  the  waters  became  worm- 
wood ;  and  many  men  died  of  the  waters,  because  they  were  embit- 
tered. 

And  the  fourth  angel  sounded  his  trumpet,  and  the  third  part  of  the 
sun  was  smitten,  and  the  third  part  of  the  moon,  and  the  third  part  of 
the  stars  ;  so  that  the  third  part  of  them  were  darkened,  and  a  third 
part  of  the  day  disappeared,  and  of  the  night  in  like  manner.  And  I 
looked,  and  heard  an  eagle  as  he  was  flyi»g  through  the  midst  of  heav- 
en, announcing  with  a  loud  voice,  Alas,  alas,  alas,  for  the  inhabitants 
of  the  earth,  because  of  the  other  blasts  of  the  trumpet  of  the  three 
angels,  who  are  yet  to  sound  ! 

And  the  fifth  angel  sounded  his  trumpet,  and  I  saw  a  star  fallen  from 
heaven  to  the  earth  ;  and  to  him  was  given  the  key  of  the  fathomless 
pit,  and  he  opened  the  abyss,  and  a  smoke  ascended  from  the  pit,  as 
the  smoke  of  a  great  furnace ;  and  the  sun  and  the  air  were  darkened 
by  the  smoke  of  the  pit.  And  from  the  smoke  locusts  came  upon  the 
earth ;  and  power  was  given  to  them,  as  the  scorpions  of  the  earth  have 
power.  And  it  was  announced  to  them,  that  they  should  not  injure  the 
vegetation  of  the  earth,  nor  any  green  thing,  nor  any  tree,  but  those 
men  who  had  not  the  seal  of  God  on  their  foreheads.  And  it  was  not 
permitted  that  they  should  destroy  them,  but  that  they  should  be  tor- 
mented five  months ;  and  their  torment  was  like  that  of  a  scorpion, 
when  it  strikes  a  man.  And  in  those  days  men  will  seek  death,  and 
will  not  find  it ;  and  they  will  desire  to  die,  and  death  will  fly  from 
them.  And  the  forms  of  the  locusts  were  like  horses  prepared  for  war ; 
and  on  their  heads  were  crowns  resembling  gold  ;  and  their  faces  rep- 
resented the  faces  of  men ;  and  they  had  tresses  like  the  tresses  of  wo- 
men ;  and  their  teeth  were  like  those  of  lions.  And  they  had  breast- 
plates like  breastplates  of  iron  ;  and  the  sound  of  their  wings  was  as 
the  sound  of  chariots  with  many  horses  rushing  to  battle.  And  they 
had  tails  like  scorpions,  and  stings  were  in  their  tails  ;  and  they  were 
empowered  to  hurt  mankind  five  months.  They  had  a  king  over  them, 
the  angel  of  the  abyss,  whose  name  in  the  Hebrew  language  is  Abad- 
don ;  but  in  the  Greek  he  has  the  name  of  ApoUyon.  One  calamity  is 
past,  behold,  two  other  calamities  are  yet  to  succeed. 


JOHN'S   LETTERS,  VISIONS,  AND   PROPHECIES  369 

And  the  sixth  angel  sounded  his  trumpet ;  and  I  heard  one  voice  from 
the  four  horns  of  the  golden  altar  which  was  before  God,  saying  to  the 
sixth  angel  who  had  the  trumpet.  Liberate  the  four  angels  who  are  bound 
at  the  great  river  Euphrates.  And  the  four  angels  were  loosed,  who 
were  prepared  for  an  hour,  and  a  day,  and  a  month,  and  a  year,  to  de- 
stroy the  third  part  of  men.  And  the  number  of  the  armies  of  the  horse- 
men was  two  hundred  millions  ;  I  heard  the  number  of  them.  And 
thus  I  saw  the  horses  in  the  vision,  and  those  who  sat  on  them,  having 
breastplates  of  fire,  and  of  hyacinth,  and  of  sulphur,  and  the  heads  of 
the  horses  were  like  the  heads  of  lions  ;  and  from  their  mouths  issued 
fire,  and  smoke,  and  sulphur.  By  these  three  scourges,  the  third  part 
of  men  was  destroyed  ;  by  the  fire,  and  the  smoke,  and  the  sulphur, 
which  issued  from  their  mouths.  For  the  power  of  the  horses  is  in  their 
mouth,  and  in  their  tails  ;  since  their  tails  are  like  serpents,  having 
heads,  and  with  them  they  annoy.  And  the  rest  of  the  men  who  were 
not  killed  by  these  scourges,  did  not  reform  from  the  works  of  their 
hands  ;  so  as  not  to  worship  demons,  and  idols  of  gold,  and  of  silver, 
and  of  brass,  and  of  stone,  and  of  wood,  who  can  neither  see,  nor  hear, 
nor  walk :  nor  did  they  reform  from  their  murders,  nor  from  their  mag- 
ical arts,  nor  from  their  impurities,  nor  from  their  thefts. 

And  I  saw  another  powerful  angel  descending  from  heaven,  arrayed 
with  a  cloud  :  and  a  rainbow  was  over  his  head,  and  his  face  was  as  the 
sun,  and  his  feet  like  pillars  of  fire.  And  he  had  in  his  hand  a  little 
book  opened  ;  and  he  placed  his  right  foot  upon  the  sea,  and  his  left 
upon  the  land,  and  cried  with  a  loud  voice  as  a  lion  roars  ;  and  when 
he  had  cried,  seven  thunders  uttered  their  voices.  And  when  the  sev- 
en thunders  had  uttered  their  voices,  I  was  about  to  write  ;  and  I 
heard  a  voice  from  heaven,  saying.  Seal  up  those  things  which  the 
seven  thunders  uttered,  and  write  them  not.  And  the  angel  whom  I 
saw  standing  on  the  sea,  and  on  the  land,  raised  his  right  hand  towards 
heaven,  and  made  oath  by  him  who  lives  for  ever  and  ever,  who  created 
the  heaven  and  those  things  which  are  in  it,  and  the  earth  and  the  things 
which  are  in  it,  and  the  sea  and  the  things  which  are  therein,  that  the 
time  should  no  longer  be  delayed  ;  but  in  the  days  of  the  blast  of  the 
seventh  angel,  when  he  shall  sound  his  trumpet,  the  secret  purpose  of 
God  should  be  accomplished,  as  he  has  proclaimed  the  joyful  message 
to  his  servants  the  prophets. 

And  the  voice  which  I  heard  from  heaven  spoke  to  me  again,  and 
said.  Go  and  take  the  little  book  which  is  opened  in  the  hand  of  the 
angel,  who  stands  on  the  sea  and  on  the  earth.  And  I  went  to  the  angel, 
desiring  him  to  give  me  the  little  book.  And  he  says  to  me.  Take  and 
eat  it ;  and  it  will  make  your  internal  part  bitter,  but  in  your  mouth  it 
will  be  sweet  as  honey.  And  I  took  the  little  book  from  the  hand  of  the 
angel,  and  did  eat  it ;  and  in  my  mouth  it  was  sweet  as  honey ;  but  when  I 
had  eaten  it,  my  internal  part  was  made  bitter.     And  he  said  to  me, 

47 


370  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

You  must  again  prophecy  to  many  people,  and  nations,  and  languages, 
and  kings. 

Then  a  reed  was  given  me  like  a  rod  ;  with  this  injunction  ;  Arise, 
and  measure  the  temple  of  God,  and  the  altar,  and  those  who  worship 
at  it.  But  omit  the  exterior  court  of  the  temple,  and  do  not  measure 
it ;  for  it  is  given  to  the  Gentiles ;  and  they  will  trample  upon  the  holy 
city  forty-two  months.  And  I  will  empower  my  two  witnesses,  and  they 
shall  prophecy  twelve  hundred  and  sixty  days,  clothed  in  sackcloth. 
These  are  the  two  olive-trees,  and  the  two  lamps,  standing  before  the 
Lord  of  the  earth.  If  any  one  intends  to  hurt  them,  fire  proceeds  from 
their  mouth,  and  devours  their  enemies  ;  and  whoever  designs  to  injure 
them,  he  must  be  destroyed  in  a  similar  manner.  These  have  power  to 
shut  heaven,  that  no  rain  should  fall  in  the  days  of  their  prophecy  ;  and 
they  have  power  over  the  waters  to  turn  them  to  blood,  and  to  smite 
the  earth  with  every  scourge,  as  often  as  they  choose.  And  when  they 
shall  have  finished  their  testimony,  the  wild  beast  ascending  from  the 
abyss  will  make  war  against  them,  and  conquer  them,  and  destroy  them. 
And  their  dead  body  will  lie  in  the  street  of  the  great  city,  which  is 
called,  spiritually,  Sodom  and  Egypt,  where,  indeed,  our  Lord  'was  cru- 
cified. And  some  of  the  people,  and  tribes,  and  nations,  will  see  their 
dead  body  three  days  and  a  half,  and  will  not  sufiier  their  dead  bodies  to 
be  entombed.  And  those  who  dwell  on  the  earth,  will  rejoice  over 
them,  and  exult,  and  send  gifts  to  each  other  ;  because  these  two  pro- 
phets tormented  those  who  dwelt  on  the  earth.  And  after  three  days 
and  a  half,  the  Spirit  of  life  from  God  entered  them,  and  they  stood  on 
their  feet ;  and  great  fear  fell  on  those  who  saw  them.  And  they  heard 
a  great  voice  from  heaven,  saying  to  them,  Ascend  hither.  And  they 
ascended  to  heaven  in  a  cloud  ;  and  their  enemies  beheld  them.  And 
at  the  same  time  there  was  a  great  earthquake,  and  the  tenth  part  of 
the  city  fell,  and  seven  thousand  men  were  destroyed  by  the  earthquake  ; 
and  the  rest  wei-e  terrified,  and  ofiiered  praise  to  the  God  of  heaven. 

The  second  calamity  is  past ;  behold,  the  third  calamity  is  coming 
quickly. 

And  the  seventh  angel  sounded  his  trumpet ;  and  there  were  great 
voices  in  heaven,  saying.  The  kingdom  of  this  world  is  become  the 
kingdom  of  our  Lord,  and  of  his  Messiah  ;  and  he  shall  reign  for  ever 
and  ever. 

And  the  twenty-four  seniors,  who  sat  before  God  on  their  thrones, 
fell  on  their  faces,  and  worshipped  God,  saying,  We  thank  thee,  O  Lord 
God,  the  Almighty,  who  art,  and  who  wast,  because  thou  hast  taken  to 
thee  thy  great  power,  and  hast  reigned.  And  the  nations  were  angry, 
and  thy  displeasure  came,  and  the  time  of  the  dead  that  they  should  be 
judged,  and  that  thou  shouldst  give  a  reward  to  thy  servants  the  pro- 
phets, and  to  the  saints,  and  to  those  who  fear  thy  name,  both  small  and 
great ;  and  shouldst  destroy  those  who  destroy  the  earth. 


JOHN'S  LETTEES,  VISIONS,  AND  PROPHECIES.  371 

And  the  temple  of  God  was  opened  in  heaven,  and  the  ark  of  the 
covenant  of  the  Lord  appeared  in  his  temple  :  and  there  were  lightnings, 
and  voices,  and  thunders,  and  an  earthquake,  and  great  hail. 

And  a  great  sign  appeared  in  heaven  ;  a  woman  clad  with  the  sun,  and 
the  moon  was  under  her  feet,  and  on  her  head  a  crown  of  twelve  stars  ; 
and  she  being  in  gestation,  cried  out  through  the  distress  and  anguish  of 
parturition.  And  another  sign  appeared  in  heaven  ;  for  behold,  a  great 
red  dragon,  having  seven  heads  and  ten  horns,  and  seven  crowns  on  his 
heads.  And  his  tail  drew  the  third  part  of  the  stars  of  heaven,  and 
cast  them  to  the  earth.  And  the  dragon  stood  before  the  woman,  who 
was  in  parturition,  that  when  it  was  consummated,  he  might  devour  her 
child.  And  she  had  a  powerful  son,  who  was  to  rule  all  the  nations 
with  a  rod  of  iron ;  and  her  child  was  caught  up  to  God,  even  to  his 
throne.  And  the  woman  fled  into  the  desert,  where  she  had  a  place 
prepared  by  God,  that  she  might  there  be  nourished  twelve  hundred  and 
sixty  days. 

And  there  was  war  in  heaven  :  Michael  and  his  angels  fought  against 
the  dragon  ;  and  the  dragon  fought  and  his  angels,  but  he  did  not  pre- 
vail ;  nor  was  their  place  found  any  more  in  heaven.  And  the  great 
dragon  was  expelled,  even  that  ancient  serpent,  denominated  the  enemy, 
and  the  adversary,  who  deceives  the  whole  world  ;  he  was  cast  out  to 
the  earth,  and  his  angels  were  cast  out  with  him.  And  I  heard  a  great 
voice,  announcing  in  heaven.  Now  is  come  the  salvation,  and  the  power, 
and  the  dominion  of  our  God,  and  the  authority  of  his  Messiah ;  because 
the  accuser  of  our  brethren  is  cast  down,  who  censured  them  before  our 
God  day  and  night.  But  they  have  subdued  .Jiim  through  the  blood  of 
the  Lamb,  and  by  the  word  of  their  testimony  ;  neither  were  they  so 
fond  of  life,  as  to  fear  even  death  itself.  Rejoice,  therefore,  ye  heavens, 
and  ye  that  inhabit  them.  Alas  for  the  earth  and  the  sea  !  because  the 
enemy  has  descended  to  you,  having  great  wrath,  aware  that  he  has  but 
a  short  time. 

And  when  the  dragon  saw  that  he  was  cast  out  to  the  earth,  he  pur- 
sued the  woman  who  was  the  mother  of  the  powerful  son.  And  two 
wings  of  the  great  eagle  were  given  to  the  woman,  that  she  might  fly 
into  the  wilderness,  to  her  place,  where  she  is  fed  for  a  time,  and  times, 
and  half  a  time,  from  the  face  of  the  serpent.  And  the  serpent  threw 
out  from  his  mouth,  water,  like  a  river,  after  the  woman,  that  he  might 
cause  her  to  be  carried  away  by  the  stream.  But  the  earth  assisted  the 
woman  ;  and  the  earth  opened  its  mouth,  and  drank  up  the  river  which 
the  dragon  cast  out  from  his  mouth.  And  the  dragon  was  enraged 
against  the  woman,  and  departed  to  make  war  with  the  rest  of  h«r  off- 
spring, who  keep  the  commandments  of  God,  and  retain  the  testimony 
of  Jesus. 

Then  I  was  placed  on  the  sand  of  the  sea,  and  I  saw  a  wild  beast 
ascending  from  the  sea,  having  seven  heads  and  ten  horns,  and  on  his 
horns  ten  crowns,  and  on  his  heads  impious  appellations.     And  the 


372  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

beast  whith  I  saw  resembled  a  leopard  ;  and  his  feet  were  like  those  of 
a  bear,  and  his  mouth  as  the  mouth  of  a  lion  :  and  the  dragon  gave  him 
his  power,  and  his  throne,  and  great  authority.  And  I  saw  one  of  his 
heads  wounded,  as  if  it  were,  fatally  ;  and  yet,  his  mortal  wound  was 
healed  ;  and  the  whole  earth  wondered  and  followed  after  the  beast. 
And  they  worshipped  the  dragon,  because  he  gave  authority  to  the 
beast ;  and  they  worshipped  the  beast  saying.  Who  is  like  the  beast  ? 
and  who  is  able  to  make  war  with  him  ?  And  there  was  given  to  him 
a  mouth  speaking  great  things,  and  impieties  ;  and  power  was  given 
him  to  continue  forty-two  months.  And  he  ojjened  his  mouth  in  re- 
proach against  God,  to  revile  his  name,  and  his  tabernacle,  and  those 
who  dwell  in  heaven.  And  he  was  permitted  to  make  war  with  the 
saints,  and  to  subdue  them  ;  and  authority  was  given  him  over  every 
tribe,  and  language,  and  nation.  And  all  the  inhabitants  of  the  earth 
will  worship  him,  whose  name  is  not  written  in  the  book  of  life  of  the 
Lamb  who  was  slain,  from  the  foundation  of  the  world.  If  any  one  has 
an  ear,  let  him  hear.  If  any  one  lead  into  captivity,  he  shall  go  into 
captivity  ;  if  any  one  destroy  with  the  sword,  he  must  be  destroyed  by 
the  sword.     Here  is  the  patience  and  the  faith  of  the  saints. 

Then  I  beheld  another  beast  ascending  from  the  earth  ;  and  it  had 
two  horns  like  a  Lamb,  but  it  spoke  as  a  dragon.  And  it  exercises  all 
the  authority  of  the  first  beast  in  its  presence,  and  causes  the  earth  and 
its  inhabitants,  to  worship  the  first  beast,  whose  deadly  wound  was 
healed.  And  he  performs  great  miracles  ;  so  that  he  makes  fire  de- 
scend from  heaven  to  the  earth,  in  the  presence  of  men  ;  and  he  deceives 
those  who  dwell  on  the  earth,  by  those  miracles  which  he  had  power  to 
perform  in  presence  of  the  beast ;  saying  to  the  inhabitants  of  the  earth, 
that  they  should  make  an  image  to  the  beast  which  had  the  wound  by 
the  sword,  and  yet  survived.  And  he  had  power  to  give  life  to  the 
image  of  the  beast,  that  the  image  of  the  beast  should  both  speak,  and 
cause  that  as  many  as  would  not  worship  the  image  of  the  beast,  should 
be  killed.  And  he  causes  all,  both  small  and  great,  rich  and  poor,  free 
and  enslaved,  to  receive  a  mark  on  their  right  hand,  or  on  their  fore- 
head ;  and  that  no  one  might  be  able  to  buy  or  sell,  but  he  who  has  the 
mark,  the  name  of  the  beast,  or  the  number  of  his  name.  Here  is 
wisdom.  Let  him  who  has  understanding,  compute  the  number  of  the 
beast ;  for  it  is  the  number  of  a  man,  and  his  number  is  six  hundred 
and  sixty-six. 

Then  I  looked,  and  behold,  the  Lamb  was  standing  upon  the  mount 
Zion,  and  with  him  a  hundred  and  forty-four  thousand  persons,  having 
his  name  and  his  Father's  name  written  on  their  foreheads.  And  I 
heard  a  voice  from  heaven,  as  the  sound  of  many  waters,  and  as  the 
sound  of  great  thunder  ;  and  the  voice  which  I  heard,  was  hke  that  of 
harpers  playing  on  their  harps.  And  they  sung  a  new  song  before  the 
throne,  and  before  the  four  hving  creatures,  and  the  seniors  :  and  no 
one  could  learn  the  song,  except  the  hundred  and  forty-four  thousand, 


JOHN'S   LETTERS,  VISIONS,  AND  PROPHECIES.  373 

who  were  redeemed  from  the  earth.  These  are  they  who  have  not  been 
contaminated  with  women  ;  for  they  are  virgins.  These  are  they  who 
follow  the  Lamb  wherever  he  goes.  These  were  redeemed  from  among 
men,  as  the  first-fruits  to  God,  and  to  the  Lamb.  And  no  falsehood 
was  found  in  their  mouth  ;  for  they  are  blameless. 

And  I  saw  another  angel  flying  through  the  midst  of  heaven,  having 
a  perpetual,  good  message  to  proclaim  to  those  who  dwell  on  the  earth, 
even  to  every  nation,  and  tribe,  and  language,  and  people,  declai-ing, 
with  a  loud  voice.  Fear  God,  and  give  praise  to  him  ;  for  the  hour  of 
his  judgment  is  come  ;  and  worship  him  who  made  heaven,  and  earth, 
and  the  sea,  and  the  springs  of  waters.  And  another  angel  followed, 
announcing,  She  is  fallen,  Babylon  the  Great  is  fallen,  because  she 
made  all  nations  drink  the  wine  of  her  raging  impurity.  And  another, 
a  third  angel  followed  them,  saying,  with  a  loud  voice,  If  any  one  wor- 
ship the  beast  and  his  image,  and  receive  the  mark  on  his  forehead,  or 
on  his  hand,  he  shall  drink  of  the  wine  of  the  indignation  of  God,  which 
is  prepared  without  mixture  in  the  cup  of  his  displeasure ;  and  he  shall 
be  tormented  with  fire  and  sulphur,  in  the  presence  of  the  holy  angels, 
and  in  the  presence  of  the  Lamb  :  and  the  smoke  of  their  torment 
ascends  for  ever  and  ever,  and  they  have  no  rest  day  nor  night,  who  wor- 
ship the  beast  and  his  image,  and  who  receive  the  mark  of  his  name. 
Here  is  the  patience  of  the  saints,  who  keep  the  commandments  of  God, 
and  the  faith  of  Jesus.  Then  I  heard  a  voice  from  heaven,  saying, 
Write,  From  this  time  happy  are  the  dead,  who  die  in  the  Lord  ;  indeed, 
says  the  Spirit,  they  rest  from  their  labors  ;  for  their  works  attend  them. 

Then  I  looked,  and  behold,  a  white  cloud,  and  on  the  cloud  one  sit- 
ting, like  the  Son  of  Man,  having  a  golden  crown  on  his  head,  and  a 
sharp  sickle  in  his  hand.  And  another  angel  came  from  the  temple, 
exclaiming  with  a  loud  voice  to  him  who  sat  on  the  cloud,  Put  in  your 
sickle  and  reap  ;  for  the  time  to  reap  is  come ;  since  the  harvest  of  the 
earth  is  ripe.  And  he  who  sat  on  the  cloud  applied  his  sickle  to  the 
earth  :  and  the  earth  was  reaped.  And  another  angel  proceeded  from 
the  temple  which  is  in  heaven,  and  he  also  had  a  sharp  sickle.  And 
another  angel  came  from  the  altar,  having  authority  over  the  fire,  and 
called  with  a  loud  cry  to  him  who  had  the  sharp  sickle,  saying.  Put 
forth  your  sharp  sickle,  and  cut  the  clusters  of  the  vine  of  the  earth,  for 
its  grapes  are  fully  ripe.  And  the  angel  thrust  out  his  sickle  to  the 
earth,  and  gathered  the  grapes  of  the  earth,  and  cast  them  into  the 
gi-eat  wine-press  of  God's  indignation.  And  the  wine-press  was  trodden 
on  the  outside  of  the  city ;  and  blood  issued  from  the  wine-press,  even 
up  to  the  bridles  of  the  horses,  for  the  distance  of  sixteen  hundred 
furlongs. 

Then  I  saw  another  great  and  wonderful  sign  in  heaven ;  seven  angels 
who  had  the  seven  last  scourges ;  for  by  them  the  displeasure  of  God 
was  accomplished.  And  I  saw,  as  if  it  were,  a  sea  of  glass  mingled 
with  fire ;  and  those  that  gained  the  victory  over  the  beast,  and  over  his 


374  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

image,  and  over  the  number  of  his  name,  standing  at  the  sea  of  glass, 
having  the  harps  of  God.  And  they  thus  chanted  the  anthem  of  Moses 
the  servant  of  God,  and  the  anthem  of  the  Lamb,  Great  and  wonderful 
are  thy  works.  Lord  God  Almighty !  righteous  and  true  are  thy  ways, 
King  of  the  nations !  who  shall  not  fear  thee,  O  Lord,  and  praise  thy 
name  !  for  thou  alone  art  perfect ;  since  all  the  nations  shall  come  and 
worship  before  thee ;  for  thy  righteous  judgments  are  fully  displayed. 

And  after  this  I  looked,  and  the  temple  of  the  tabernacle  of  the  testi- 
mony was  opened  in  heaven :  and  the  seven  angels  who  had  the  seven 
scourges,  came  out  of  the  temple,  clothed  in  pure,  white  linen,  and 
encircled  about  their  breasts  with  golden  girdles.  And  one  of  the  four 
living  beings  gave  to  the  seven  angels  seven  golden  vials  full  of  the  dis- 
pleasure of  God,  who  lives  for  ever  and  ever.  And  the  temple  was  filled 
with  smoke  from  the  glory  of  God,  and  from  his  power  ;  and  no  one 
could  enter  the  temple,  till  the  seven  scourges  of  the  seven  angels  were 
completed. 

Then  I  heard  a  loud  voice  from  the  temple,  saying  to  the  seven  angels. 
Go,  and  pour  out  the  vials  of  the  indignation  of  God  upon  the  earth. 

And  the  first  angel  went,  and  poured  out  his  vial  upon  the  earth  ;  and 
a  malignant  and  nauseous  ulcer  assailed  the  men  who  had  the  mark  of 
the  beast,  and  those  who  worshipped  his  image. 

And  the  second  angel  poured  out  his  vial  upon  the  sea ;  and  it  became 
blood  like  that  of  a  dead  man :  and  every  living  creature,  that  was  in 
the  sea,  died. 

And  the  third  angel  poured  out  his  vial  upon  the  rivers  and  springs 
of  waters  ;  and  they  became  blood.  And  I  heard  the  angel  of  the 
waters  declaring,  Thou  art  righteous.  Lord,  who  art,  and  who  wast ; 
and  thou  art  holy,  because  thou  hast  thus  executed  judgment.  For  they 
have  shed  the  blood  of  saints  and  prophets,  and  thou  hast  given  them 
blood  to  drink  ;  they  deserve  it.  And  I  heard  another  from  the  altar, 
saying.  Assuredly,  Lord  God  Omnipotent !  time  and  righteous  are  thy 
decisions. 

And  the  fourth  angel  poured  out  his  vial  upon  the  sun  ;  and  he  was 
permitted  to  burn  mankind  with  fire.  And  mankind  were  burned  with 
great  heat ;  and  yet  they  traduced  the  name  of  God  who  had  power 
over  these  scourges  :  and  reformed  not,  to  give  praise  to  him. 

And  the  fifth  angel  poured  out  his  vial  upon  the  throne  of  the  beast ; 
and  his  kingdom  was  darkened ;  and  they  gnawed  their  tongues  in  con- 
sequence of  anguish ;  and  reviled  the  God  of  heaven,  on  account  of 
their  pains  and  their  ulcers  ;  and  yet  reformed  not  from  their  deeds. 

And  the  sixth  angel  poured  out  his  vial  upon  the  great  river  Eu- 
phrates ;  and  its  water  was  dried  up,  that  the  way  for  the  kings  from 
the  rising  of  the  sun  might  be  prepared.  And  I  saw  three  unclean  spi- 
rits like  frogs  issuing  from  the  mouth  of  the  dragon,  and  from  the  mouth 
of  the  beast,  and  from  the  mouth  of  the  false  prophet ;  (for  they  are 
spirits  of  demons,  working  miracles) ;  who  go  forth  to  the  kings  of  the 


JOHN'S  LETTERS,  VISIONS,  AND  PROPHECIES.  375 

earth,  and  the  whole  world,  to  gather  them  to  the  battle  of  that  great 
day  of  the  Omnipotent  God.  (Behold,  I  come  as  a  thief.  Happy  is  he 
who  watches  and  keeps  his  garments,  that  he  may  not  walk  naked,  and 
be  exposed  to  shame).  And  the  spirits  assembled  the  kings  at  a  place, 
called  in  the  Hebrew  language  Armageddon. 

And  the  seventh  angel  poured  out  his  vial  into  the  air.  And  a  loud 
voice  came  from  the  temple  of  heaven,  even  from  the  throne,  saying.  It 
is  consummated.  And  there  were  voices,  and  thunders,  and  lightnings ; 
and  there  was  a  great  earthquake,  such  as  had  not  been  since  men  were 
upon  the  earth,  so  great  and  powerful  an  earthquake.  And  the  great 
city  was  divided  into  three  parts,  and  the  cities  of  the  nations  fell :  and 
the  great  Babylon  was  remembered  before  God,  so  that  he  gave  her  the 
cup  of  the  wine  of  his  fierce  indignation.  And  every  island  fled,  and  the 
mountains  were  found  no  more.  And  great  hail  of  the  weight  of  a 
talent,  fell  from  heaven  upon  men  ;  and  they  reviled  God  on  account  of 
the  scourge  of  the  hail ;  for  the  scourge  of  it  was  exceedingly  great. 

Then  one  of  the  seven  angels,  who  had  the  seven  vials,  came  and  thus 
conversed  with  me,  Come  here,  and  I  will  show  you  the  punishment  of 
the  great  courtesan,  who  sits  upon  the  many  waters  ;  with  whom  the 
kings  of  the  earth  have  committed  impurity  ;  and  with  the  wine  of 
whose  incontinence,  the  inhabitants  of  the  earth  have  been  inebriated. 
And  he  conducted  me  in  the  spirit  to  the  desert ;  and  I  saw  a  woman 
sitting  on  a  scarlet  beast,  full  of  impious  names,  having  seven  heads  and 
ten  horns.  And  the  woman  was  robed  in  purple  and  scarlet,  and  deco- 
rated with  gold  and  valuable  stones,  and  pearls,  having  in  her  hand  a 
golden  cup,  full  of  abominations,  and  the  pollution  of  her  sensuality  ; 
and  on  her  forehead  a  name  written  ; — Emblem;  the  great  Babylon, 
the  mother  of  courtesans,  and  of  the  abominations  of  the  earth.  And  I 
saw  the  woman  inebriated  with  the  blood  of  the  saints,  and  with  the 
blood  of  the  martyrs  of  Jesus ;  and  when  I  saw  her,  I  wondered  with 
great  astonishment. 

And  the  angel  said  to  me,  why  are  you  surprised  1  I  will  explain  to 
you  the  emblem  of  the  woman,  and  of  the  beast  that  carries  her,  which 
has  the  seven  heads  and  ten  horns.  The  beast  which  you  saw  was,  and 
is  not,  and  is  about  to  ascend  from  the  abyss,  and  to  go  to  destruction  ; 
and  the  inhabitants  of  the  earth,  (whose  names  are  not  written  in  the 
book  of  life  from  the  foundation  of  the  world),  will  wonder  when  they 
behold  the  beast,  which  was,  and  is  not,  but  will  appear.  Here  is  the 
mind  which  has  wisdom.  The  seven  heads  are  seven  mountains,  on 
which  the  woman  sits.  They  are  also  seven  kings  ;  five  are  fallen,  one 
is,  and  the  other  is  not  yet  come  ;  and  when  he  does  come,  he  must 
remain  but  for  a  short  time.  And  the  beast  which  was,  and  is  not,  even 
he  is  the  eighth,  and  is  as  one  of  the  seven,  but  goes  to  destruction. 
And  the  ten  horns,  which  you  saw,  are  ten  kings,  who  have  not  yet  re- 
ceived their  kingdom  ;  but  will  receive  authority,  as  kings,  at  the  same 
time  with  the  beast.     These  have  one  mind,  and  give  their  power  and 


376  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

authority  to  the  beast.  These  will  make  war  with  the  Lamb,  and  the 
Lamb  will  overcome  them  ;  for  he  is  Lord  of  lords,  and  King  of  kings  ; 
and  those  that  are  with  him  are  called,  and  chosen,  and  faithful.  And 
he  says  to  me,  The  waters  which  you  saw  where  the  courtesan  sits, 
are  people,  and  multitudes,  and  nations,  and  languages.  And  the  ten 
horns,  which  you  saw,  and  the  beast,  will  hate  the  courtesan,  and  will 
make  her  desolate  and  naked  ;  and  they  will  eat  her  flesh,  and  burn 
her  with  fire.  For  God  has  put  it  into  their  hearts  to  execute  his  sen- 
tence, and  to  agree,  and  to  give  their  kingdom  to  the  beast,  till  the 
words  of  God  shall  be  fulfilled.  And  the  woman  whom  you  saw,  is  that 
great  city,  which  has  dominion  over  the  kings  of  the  earth. 

And  after  these  things,  I  saw  another  angel  descending  from  heaven 
with  great  authority  ;  and  the  earth  was  illuminated  by  his  glory.  And 
he  cried  with  a  very  loud  voice,  saying.  She  is  fallen,  the  great  Babylon 
is  fallen  ;  and  is  become  a  habitation  of  fiends,  and  a  haunt  of  every 
impure  spirit,  and  a  refuge  for  every  unclean  and  hateful  bird.  For 
she  has  caused  all  nations  to  drink  of  the  wine  of  her  raging  sensuality ; 
and  the  kings  of  the  earth  have  committed  impurity  with  her,  and  the 
merchants  of  the  earth  have  been  enriched  by  the  abundance  of  her 
luxuries. 

And  I  heard  another  voice  from  heaven,  saying.  Depart  from  her  my 
people,  that  you  may  not  partake  of  her  sins,  and  that  you  may  not 
share  in  her  scourges.  For  her  sins  have  reached  to  heaven  ;  and  God 
has  remembered  her  iniquities.  Render  to  her  as  she  has  also  rendered ; 
and  recompense  to  her  double  according  to  her  works  :  in  the  cup  which 
she  has  mingled,  mingle  for  her  a  double  quantity.  In  proportion  as 
she  has  gloried  in  herself,  and  lived  luxuriously,  in  the  same  degree 
inflict  upon  her  distress  and  grief;  for  she  says  in  her  heart,  I  sit  as 
queen,  and  am  no  widow,  and  shall  see  no  sorrow.  Therefore,  her 
scourges  shall  come  in  one  day,  pestilence,  and  mourning,  and  famine  ; 
and  she  shall  be  entirely  consumed  by  fire  ;  for  strong  is  the  Lord  God 
who  has  judged  her. 

And  the  kings  of  the  earth  who  have  committed  impurity  and  lived  in 
luxury  with  her,  shall  bewail  and  lament  for  her,  when  they  shall  see 
the  smoke  of  her  burning  ;  standing  far  distant  through  the  fear  of  her 
anguish,  saying,  Alas,  alas,  the  great  city  Babylon,  the  powerful  city  ! 
for  in  one  hour  thy  judgment  is  come.  And  the  merchants  of  the  earth 
shall  weep  and  mourn  over  her  ;  for  no  man  buys  their  merchandise 
any  more  ;  the  merchandise  of  gold,  and  silver,  and  precious  stones, 
and  pearls,  and  fine  linen,  and  purple,  and  scarlet ;  and  all  aromatic 
wood,  and  every  kind  of  ivory  vessels,  and  every  kind  of  vessels  of  the 
most  valuable  wood,  and  of  brass,  and  iron,  and  marble  ;  and  cinnamon, 
and  amomum,  and  odors,  and  myrrh,  and  incense,  and  wine,  and  oil, 
and  fine  flour,  and  wheat,  and  cattle,  and  sheep,  and  horses,  and  chari- 
ots, and  slaves,  and  persons  of  men.  And  the  fruits  which  thy  soul  ar- 
dently desired,  are  gone  from  thee,  and  all  delicious  and  splendid  things 


JOHN'S  LETTERS,  VISIONS,  AND  FKOPHECIES.  377 

are  departed  from  thee,  and  thou  shalt  by  no  means  find  them  any  more. 
The  merchants  in  these  things  who  were  enriched  by  her,  shall  stand  far 
distant,  through  the  fear  of  her  distress,  weeping  and  mourning,  and 
saying,  Alas,  alas,  the  great  city,  that  abounded  in  fine  linen,  and  purple, 
and  scarlet,  and  was  adorned  with  gold,  and  precious  stones,  and  peails  ! 
For  in  an  hour  this  great  wealth  is  destroyed.  And  every  ship-com- 
mander, and  those  who  sail  from  place  to  place,  and  mariners,  and  as 
many  as  traverse  the  sea,  stood  at  a  great  distance,  and  thus  exclaimed, 
when  they  saw  the  smoke  of  her  burning.  What  is  like  to  this  great  city! 
And  they  cast  dust  on  their  heads,  and  cried,  weeping  and  mourning,  and 
said,  Alas,  alas,  the  great  city,  by  whose  magnificent  expense,  all  who 
had  ships  at  sea  were  enriched  !  since,  in  one  hour  she  is  annihilated. 

Rejoice  over  her,  thou  heaven,  and  ye  saints,  and  apostles,  and  pro- 
phets, for  God  has  avenged  you  on  her. 

And  a  powerful  angel  took  up  a  stone  like  a  great  millstone,  and 
hurled  it  into  the  sea,  saying,  Thus  shall  that  great  city  Babylon  be 
thrown  down,  and  shall  by  no  means  be  found  any  more.  And  the 
voice  of  harpers,  and  musicians,  and  those  who  sound  the  flute  and  the 
trumpet,  shall  no  more  be  heard  in  thee  ;  and  no  artist  of  any  descrip- 
tion shall  hereafter  be  found  in  thee  ;  nor  shall  the  sound  of  a  millstone 
be  heard  in  thee  any  more  ;  and  the  light  of  a  lamp  shall  no  longer 
shine  in  thee  ;  and  the  voice  of  the  bridegroom  and  the  bride  shall  be 
heard  in  thee  no  more  :  for  thy  merchants  were  the  great  men  of  the 
earth  ;  since  by  thy  enchantment  all  the  nations  were  deceived.  And 
in  her  was  found  the  blood  of  prophets,  and  of  saints,  and  of  all  who 
were  slain  on  the  earth. 

After  these  things  I  heard,  as  if  it  were,  a  loud  voice  of  a  great  multi- 
tude in  heaven,  saying,  Hallelujah  ;  salvation,  and  glory,  and  power,  to 
our  God ;  for  his  judgments  are  true  and  righteous  ;  because  he  has 
judged  the  great  courtesan,  who  contaminated  the  earth  by  her  inconti- 
nence, and  has  avenged  the  blood  of  his  servants  at  her  hand.  And  a 
second  time  they  said.  Hallelujah  :  and  her  smoke  ascends  for  ever  and 
ever.  And  the  twenty-four  seniors,  and  the  four  living  creatures,  fell 
down  and  worsliipped  God,  who  was  seated  on  the  throne,  saying.  Amen, 
Hallelujah  :  and  a  voice  came  from  the  throne,  which  said.  Praise  our 
God,  all  ye  his  servants,  and  ye  that  fear  him,  small  and  great.  And  I 
heard,  as  if  it  were,  the  voice  of  agreat  multitude,  and  as  the  sound  of 
many  waters,  and  like  the  sound  of  powerful  thunders,  saying.  Hallelu- 
jah ;  for  our  Lord  God  Omnipotent  reigns.  We  rejoice,  and  exult,  and 
give  glory  to  him  ;  for  the  marriage  of  the  Lamb  is  come,  and  his  wife 
has  prepared  herself.  And  it  was  permitted  her,  to  be  arrayed  in  fine 
linen,  pure  and  resplendent ;  for  the  fine  linen  is  the  righteousness  of 
the  saints. 

And  he  said  to  me.  Write,  Happy  are  those  who  are  invited  to  the 
marriage-supper  of  the  Lamb.  And  he  says  to  me,  These  are  the  true 
words  of  God.  And  I  fell  at  his  feet  to  worship  him.  But  he  said  to 
48 


378  APOSTQLIC  PRODUCTIONS, 

me,  by  no  means  ;  I  am  a  fellow-servant  with  you,  and  with  your  breth- 
ren who  retain  the  testimony  of  Jesus  ;  worship  God  ;  for  the  spirit  of 
this  prophecy  is  the  testimony  of  Jesus. 

Then  I  saw  heaven  opened,  and  behold,  a  white  horse  ;  and  he  who 
sat  on  him  was  Faithful  and  True,  and  with  righteousness  he  judges  and 
makes  war.  His  eyes  were  as  a  flame  of  fire  ;  and  many  diadems  were 
on  his  head  ;  and  he  had  a  name  written,  which  no  one  knows,  but  he 
himself.  And  he  was  clothed  with  a  mantle  dipped  in  blood ;  and  his 
name  is  called.  The  Word  of  God.  And  the  armies  which  were  in  hea- 
ven followed  him  on  white  horses,  clad  in  fine  linen,  white  and  unsul- 
lied. And  from  his  mouth  proceeded  a  sharp  two-edged  sword,  that 
with  it  he  might  smite  the  nations  ;  and  he  shall  rule  them  with  a  rod 
of  iron  ;  and  he  shall  tread  the  wine-press  of  the  indignant  displeasure 
of  Almighty  God.  And  he  had  on  his  vestment,  and  on  his  thigh  a 
name  written.  King  of  Kings,  and  Lord  of  Lords. 

And  I  saw  an  angel  standing  in  the  sun  ;  and  he  cried  with  a  loud 
voice,  saying  to  all  the  birds  that  fly  in  the  midst  of  heaven.  Come  and 
assemble  yourselves  at  the  great  banquet  of  God  ;  that  you  may  eat  the 
flesh  of  kings,  and  the  flesh  of  commanders,  and  the  flesh  of  powerfiil 
men,  and  the  flesh  of  horses,  and  of  those  who  sit  on  them,  and  the  flesh 
of  all  both  free  and  enslaved,  both  small  and  great. 

And  I  saw  the  beast,  and  the  kings  of  the  earth,  and  their  armies  as- 
sembled, to  make  war  with  him  who  sat  on  the  horse,  and  with  his  ar- 
my. And  the  beast  was  taken,  and  with  him  the  false  prophet  who  had 
wrought  signs  before  him,  by  which  he  had  deluded  those  who  received 
the  mark  of  the  beast,  and  those  who  worshipped  his  image.  These  two 
were  cast  alive  into  the  lake  of  fire,  which  burned  with  sulphur.  And 
the  rest  were  slain  with  the  sword  that  proceeded  from  the  mouth  of  him 
who  sat  on  the  horse  ;  and  all  the  birds  were  satiated  with  their  flesh. 

Then  I  saw  an  angel  descending  from  heaven,  who  had  the  key  of 
the  abyss,  and  a  great  chain  in  his  hand.  And  he  seized  the  dragon, 
that  ancient  serpent,  who  is  the  enemy  and  adversary,  and  bound  him 
for  a  thousand  years,  and  cast  him  into  the  abyss,  and  shut  him  up,  and 
set  a  seal  on  him,  that  he  might  not  deceive  the  nations  any  more,  till 
the  thousand  years  should  terminate,  and  then  he  must  be  liberated  for 
a  short  time. 

And  I  saw  thrones,  and  those  who  sat  on  them,  and  judgment  was 
given  to  them  ;  and  I  saw  the  souls  of  those  who  had  been  decapitated 
for  the  testimony  of  Jesus,  and  for  the  word  of  God,  and  those  who 
had  not  worshipped  the  beast  or  his  image,  and  had  not  received  the  mark 
on  their  foreheads,  or  on  their  hands  ;  and  they  lived  and  reigned  with 
Christ  that  thousand  years.  But  the  rest  of  the  dead  did  not  revive, 
till  the  thousand  years  were  completed.  This  is  the  first  resurrection. 
Happy  and  holy  is  he  who  has  a  part  in  the  first  resurrection  ;  on  such 
the  second  death  has  no  power  ;  but  they  shall  be  priests  of  God  and  of 
Christ,  and  shall  reign  with  him  a  thousand  years. 


JOHN'S  LETTERS,  VISIONS,  AND  PROPHECIES.  379 

And  when  the  thousand  years  are  expired,  the  adversary  will  be  dis- 
charged from  his  imprisonment,  and  will  depart  to  deceive  the  nations, 
which  are  in  the  four  sections  of  the  earth,  Gog  and  Magog,  to  assem- 
ble them  in  war  ;  whose  number  is  as  the  sand  of  the  sea.  And  they 
went  up  over  the  breadth  of  the  earth,  and  surrounded  the  camp  of  the 
saints,  and  the  beloved  city,  and  fire  descended  from  God  out  of  heav- 
en, and  devoured  them.  And  the  enemy  who  deceived  them,  was  thrown 
into  the  lake  of  fire  and  sulphur,  where  are  the  beast  and  the  false 
teacher,  and  they  will  be  tormented  day  and  night,  for  ages  of  ages. 

Then  I  saw  a  large  white  throne,  and  him  who  sat  on  it,  from  whose 
face  the  earth  and  the  heaven  fled  away,  and  no  place  was  found  for 
them.  And  I  saw  the  dead,  small  and  great,  standing  before  the  throne  ; 
and  the  books  were  opened ;  and  another  book  was  opened,  which  is 
the  book  of  life  ;  and  the  dead  were  judged  from  those  things  written 
in  the  books,  according  to  their  works.  And  the  sea  surrendered  the 
dead  that  were  in  it ;  and  death  and  hades  surrendered  the  dead  that 
were  in  them  ;  and  they  were  judged,  each  one  according  to  his  works. 
And  death  and  hades  were  cast  into  the  lake  of  fire.  This  is  the  sec- 
ond death.  And  if  any  one  were  not  found  written  in  the  book  of  life, 
he  was  cast  into  the  lake  of  fire. 

And  I  saw  a  new  heaven,  and  a  new  earth  ;  for  the  first  heaven  and 
the  first  earth  were  passed  away  ;  and  there  was  no  more  sea.  And  I 
saw  the  holy  city,  the  new  Jerusalem,  descending  from  God  out  of  hea- 
ven, prepared  as  a  bride  adorned  for  her  husband.  And  I  heard  a  great 
voice  from  heaven,  saying.  Behold,  the  tabernacle  of  God  is  with  men, 
and  he  will  dwell  with  them,  and  they  will  be^  his  people,  and  God 
himself  will  be  with  them,  as  their  God.  And  God  will  wipe  away  all 
tears  from  their  eyes  ;  and  there  will  be  no  more  death,  nor  sorrow, 
nor  crying  ;  nor  will  there  be  any  more  pain,  for  the  former  things  are 
passed  away.  And  he  who  sat  on  the  throne,  declared.  Behold,  I  make 
all  things  new.  And  he  says  to  me.  Write,  for  these  are  true  and  faith- 
ful words.  And  he  said  to  me,  it  is  accomplished.  I  am  the  Alpha 
and  the  Omega,  the  commencement  and  the  termination.  I  will  freely 
give  water,  from  the  fountain  of  life,  to  him  who  is  thirsty.  He  that 
overcomes  shall  inherit  these  things ;  and  I  will  be  to  him  a  God,  and 
he  shall  be  my  son.  But  the  fearfiil,  and  faithless,  and  iniquitous,  and 
detestable,  and  murderers,  and  sensualists,  and  magicians,  and  idolaters, 
and  all  liars,  shall  have  their  requital  in  the  lake  that  burns  with  fire 
and  sulphur,  which  is  the  second  death. 

Then  there  came  one  of  the  seven  angels,  who  had  the  seven  vials 
full  of  the  seven  last  scourges,  and  conversed  with  me,  saying,  come,  I 
will  show  you  the  bride,  the  wife  of  the  Lamb.  And  he  conducted  me 
in  the  spirit  to  a  great  and  high  mountain,  and  showed  me  that  holy 
city,  Jerusalem,  descending  out  of  heaven  from  God,  having  the  glory 
of  God  ;  her  lustre  was  like  an  invaluable  gem ;  as  a  jasper-stone  clear 
as  crystal :  and  having  a  great  and  high  wall ;  and  having  twelve  gates, 


380  APOSTOLIC  PRODUCTIONS. 

and  over  the  gates  twelve  angels,  and  names  superscribed,  which  are 
the  names  of  the  twelve  tribes  of  the  sons  of  Israel :  on  the  east,  three 
gates  ;  on  the  north,  three  gates  ;  on  the  south,  three  gates  ;  and  on  the 
west,  three  gates.  And  the  wall  of  the  city  had  twelve  foundations, 
and  on  them  twelve  names  of  the  twelve  apostles  of  the  Lamb.  And 
he  who  spoke  to  me  had  a  measuring-rod  made  of  gold,  to  measure  the 
city,  and  its  gates,  and  its  wall.  And  the  city  was  a  square  ;  its  length 
being  equal  to  its  breadth.  And  he  measured  the  city  with  the  rod, 
twelve  thousand  fiirlongs  ;  the  length,  and  the  breadth,  and  the  height 
of  it  are  equal.  And  he  measured  its  wall,  one  hundred  and  forty-four 
cubits,  according  to  the  measure  of  a  man,  that  is,  of  the  angel.  And 
the  building  of  its  wall  was  of  jasper  ;  and  the  city  was  pure  gold,  and 
resembling  refined  glass.  And  the  foundations  of  the  walls  of  the  city 
were  decorated  with  every  precious  stone.  The  first  foundation  was 
jasper  ;  the  second,  sapphire  ;  the  third,  chalcedony  ;  the  fourth,  eme- 
rald ;  the  fifth,  sardonyx  ;  the  sixth,  sardius  ;  the  seventh,  chrysolite  ; 
the  eighth,  beryl ;  the  ninth,  topaz ;  the  tenth,  chrysoprasus  ;  the  elev- 
enth, hyacinth ;  the  twelfth,  amethyst.  And  the  twelve  gates  were 
twelve  pearls  ;  every  gate  was  from  one  pearl :  and  the  street  of  the 
city  was  pure  gold,  as  transparent  as  glass.  And  I  saw  in  it  no  temple ; 
for  the  Lord  God  Almighty,  and  the  Lamb,  are  its  temple.  And  the 
city  had  no  need  of  the  sun,  or  of  the  moon,  to  shine  upon  it ;  for  the 
glory  of  God  enlightened  it,  and  the  Lamb  was  its  lustre.  And  the 
nations  shall  walk  in  its  hght ;  and  the  kings  of  the  earth  bring  to  it 
their  glory  and  honor.  And  its  gates  shall  not  be  shut  by  day  ;  for  there 
shall  be  no  night  there.  And  they  shall  bring  into  it  the  glory  and  honor 
of  the  nations.  And  nothing  that  pollutes,  or  practises  abomination  and 
falsehood,  shall  by  any  means  enter  it ;  but  those  only,  who  are  regis- 
tered in  the  Lamb's  book  of  life. 

Then  he  showed  me  a  pure  river  of  the  water  of  life,  clear  as  crystal, 
proceeding  from  the  throne  of  God,  and  of  the  Lamb.  Between  the 
principal  street  of  the  city,  and  the  river  that  flowed  around  it,  was  the 
tree  of  life,  which  yielded  twelve  fruits,  producing  its  fruit  every  month  ; 
and  the  leaves  of  the  tree  were  for  the  healing  of  the  nations.  And 
every  curse  shall  cease  ;  and  the  throne  of  God  and  the  Lamb  shall  be 
in  it ;  and  his  servants  shall  worship  him,  and  shall  see  his  face  ;  and 
his  name  shall  be  on  their  foreheads.  And  night  shall  be  no  more :  and 
there  will  be  no  necessity  for  a  lamp,  nor  for  the  light  of  the  sun  ;  for 
the  Lord  God  will  illuminate  them  ;  and  they  will  reign  for  ever  and 
ever. 

Then  he  said  to  me.  These  words  are  faithful  and  true  ;  and  the  Lord 
God  of  the  spirits  of  the  prophets  has  sent  his  angel  to  show  his  servants 
the  things  which  must  shortly  be  done.  Behold,  I  come  immediately ; 
happy  is  he  who  retains  the  words  of  the  prophecy  of  this  volume. 

And  I  John  heard  and  saw  these  things  ;  and  when  I  had  heard  and 
seen  them,  I  fell  down  to  worship  before  the  feet  of  the  angel  who  show- 


JOHN'S  LETTERS,  VISIONS,  AND  PROPHECIES.  381 

ed  me  these  things.  And  he  said  to  me,  Desist ;  for  I  am  a  feUow-ser- 
vant  with  you,  and  with  your  brethren  the  prophets,  and  with  those  who 
keep  the  words  of  this  volume  :  worship  God.  And  he  said  to  me,  seal 
not  the  declarations  of  the  prophecy  of  this  volume  ;  the  time  is  near. 
Let  him  who  is  unjust,  remain  unjust ;  and  let  him  who  is  polluted, 
remain  polluted  :  and  let  him  that  is  righteous,  still  perform  righteous- 
ness ;  and  let  him  that  is  holy,  continue  holy. 

Behold,  I  come  quickly ;  and  my  reward  is  with  me,  to  recompense 
to  each  according  as  his  work  shall  be.  I  am  the  Alpha  and  the  Omega, 
the  first  and  the  last,  the  beginning  and  the  end. 

Happy  are  those  that  obey  his  commandments,  that  they  may  have 
authority  over  the  tree  of  life,  and  may  enter  the  city  through  the  gates. 
Without,  are  dogs,  and  magicians,  and  sensualists,  and  murderers,  and 
idolaters,  and  every  one  who  loves  and  fabricates  a  falsehood. 

I  Jesus,  have  sent  my  angel  to  testify  to  you  these  things  in  the 
churches.  I  am  the  root  and  oiFspring  of  David,  and  the  resplendent 
morning-star. 

And  the  Spirit  and  the  bride  say,  Come  ;  and  let  him,  who  hears, 
say.  Come  ;  and  let  him  who  is  thirsty,  come  ;  and  let  him  who  will, 
receive  freely  the  water  of  life. 

I  testify  to  every  one  that  hears  the  words  of  the  prophecy  of  this 
volume  ;  if  any  one  add  to  these  things,  God  will  add  to  him  the 
scourges  which  are  written  in  this  volume  :  and  if  any  one  take  away 
from  the  words  of  the  volume  of  this  prophecy,  God  will  take  away  his 
part  from  the  tree  of  life,  and  from  the  holy  city  ;  which  are  written  of 
in  tliis  volume. 

He,  who  testifies  these  things,  declares,  Indeed,  I  am  quickly  coming. 
Amen,  come,  O  Lord  Jesus  ! 

May  the  favor  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  be  with  all  the  Christians. 
Amen  ! 


APPENDIX. 


NOTES   TO   THE   PREFACE. 

The  division  of  the  Holy  Scriptures  into  chapters  and  verses,  as  we  now  have  them, 
is  not  of  very  ancient  date.  About  the  year  of  our  Lord  1240,  Hugo  de  Sancto  Caro, 
conunonly  called  Cardinal  Hugo,  making  an  index  or  concordance  to  the  Latin  Bible, 
found  it  necessary  to  divide  it  into  the  parts  which  we  call  chapters  ;  and  further  di- 
vided each  chapter  into  sections,  by  placing  the  letters  of  the  alphabet  at  certain  dis- 
tances in  the  margin.  The  subdivisions  into  verses  came  afterwards  from  the  Jews  ; 
for  about  the  year  1430,  Rabbi  Nathan,  an  eminent  Jew,  publishing  a  concordance  to 
the  Hebrew  Bible,  adopted  the  division  into  chapters  made  by  Cardinal  Hugo,  and  di- 
vided the  chapters  by  affixing  numeral  letters  in  the  margin.  About  one  hundred 
years  after  this,  Vatablus,  a  Frenchman,  and  eminent  Hebrew  scholar,  taking  his  pat- 
tern from  him,  published  a  Latin  Bible  numbered  with  figures ;  and  this  example  has 
been  followed  in  all  subsequent  editions,  in  all  languages,  published  in  the  western 
parts  of  Christendom.  The  present  division  of  the  New  Testament  into  verses  was 
made  by  Robert  Stephens,  an  eminent  printer  at  Paris,  who  introduced  it  into  his  edi- 
tion of  1551.    Abstract  from  Prideaux,  by  D'Oyly  and  Mant. 

As  to  the  division  into  chapters  and  verses,  we  know  that  the  present  is  not  that 
which  obtained  in  primitive  ages,  and  that  even  the  earliest  division  is  not  derived  from 
the  Apostles,  but  from  some  of  their  first  commentators,  who,  for  the  conveniency  of 
readers,  contrived  this  method. 

It  is  not,  however,  without  its  inconveniences.  This  manner  of  mincing  a  connect- 
ed work  with  short  sentences,  not  barely  in  appearance,  by  their  being  ranked  under 
separate  numbers,  and  by  the  breaks  in  the  lines,  but  in  effect,  by  the  influence  which 
the  text  thus  psircelled  out,  has  insensibly  had  on  copiers  and  translators,  both  in  point- 
ing, and  in  translating,  is  not  well  suited  to  the  species  of  composition  which  obtains 
in  all  the  sacred  books,  except  the  Psalms,  and  the  Book  of  Proverbs.     CampheU. 

It  cannot  but  be  surprising,  that  by  these  divisions,  that  should  be  permitted  to  be 
done  to  the  Holy  Writings,  which  would  visibly  disturb  the  sense,  and  hinder  the  un- 
derstanding of  any  other  book.  However  plain  this  abuse  is,  and  whatever  prejudice 
it  does  to  the  understanding  of  the  Sacred  Scriptures,  yet  if  a  Bible  were  printed  as  it 
should  be,  ajid  as  the  several  parts  of  it  were  written,  in  continued  discourses,  where 
the  argument  is  continued,  I  doubt  not  but  the  several  parties  would  complain  of  it  as 
an  innovation,  and  a  dangerous  change  in  the  publication  of  those  Holy  Books.  And 
indeed,  those  who  are  for  maintaining  their  opinions,  and  the  systems  of  parties,  by 
sound  of  words,  with  a  neglect  of  the  true  sense  of  Scripture,  would  have  reason  to 
make  and  foment  the  outcry.  They  would  most  of  them  be  immediately  disarmed  of 
their  great  magazine  of  artillery,  wherewith  they  defend  themselves,  and  fall  upon 
others.  If  the  Holy  Scriptures  were  but  laid  before  the  eyes  of  Christians,  in  their 
connexion  and  consistency,  it  would  not  then  be  so  easy  to  seize  a  few  words,  as  if 


384  APPENDIX. 

they  were  separate  ftom  the  rest,  to  serve  a  purpose,  to  which  they  do  not  at  all  be- 
long, and  with  which  they  have  nothing  to  do.     Locke. 

Nothing  has  contributed  so  much  to  obscure  the  Inspired  Volume,  as  the  injudicious 
manner,  in  which  some  parts  of  it  are  divided.  It  is  no  uncommon  thing  for  a  chap- 
ter to  begin  in  the  midst  of  an  argument.  And  the  verses  often  carry  with  them  the 
appearance  of  so  many  distinct  propositions  or  aphorisms,  when,  in  reality,  they  are 
only  portions  of  some  narrative,  or  links  in  some  chain  of  reasoning.  This  is  an  in- 
convenience, both  to  the  learned,  and  unlearned  reader.  And  it  has  been  seriously 
lamented  by  many  commentators  on  the  Gospel.  One  of  the  most  celebrated  inquir- 
ers after  religious  truth,  considers  it  as  a  principal  cause  of  that  obscurity,  which  we 
perceive  in  some  of  the  writings  of  St  Paul.  He  observes,  that  '  our  minds  are  so 
weak,  that  they  have  need  of  all  the  helps  that  can  be  procured,  to  lay  before  them, 
undisturbedly,  the  thread,  and  coherence  of  any  discourse.'*  Hence,  he  infers,  that 
an  unnatural  separation  of  sentences,  and  the  breaking  up  of  narrations  and  arguments 
into  distinct  fragments,  must  render  it  difficult  to  follow  the  writer.  From  the  Epis- 
tles of  Paul,  he  makes  a  transition  to  those  of  Cicero ;  and  he  inquires,  whether  the 
latter,  if  divided  like  the  former,  would  not  be  far  less  intelligible  and  entertaining 
than  they  now  are  .'    John  Clarke. 

Suppose  you  were  to  receive  a  long  letter  from  a  person  in  a  distant  country,  on 
some  unknown  subject ;  and  that  you  should  begin,  before  you  read  it,  with  dividing 
it  into  sixteen  nearly  equal  parts,  and  then  subdividing  these  parts  into  several  hun- 
dreds of  others  of  two  or  three  lines  in  length. t  If  now  each  of  these  little  fragments 
should  be  read  as  if  it  contained  a  whole  and  complete  meaning  in  itself,  without  any 
regard  to  the  general  subject  of  the  letter,  or  any  attention  to  the  connexion  in  which 
it  stands,  could  you  wonder  that  the  meaning  of  your  correspondent  should  be  found 
with  difficulty .''  Indeed  can  you  think  of  any  method  of  making  a  writer  unintelligi- 
ble more  effectual  than  this  ?  Yet  this  is  exactly  what  has  been  done  with  every  part 
of  the  sacred  writings.  This  is  one  reason  why  the  followers  of  every  sect  are  all  able 
to  quote  passages  of  scripture,  which  appear  to  be  in  favor  of  opinions  the  most  vari- 
ous and  discordant.  Indeed  with  such  a  mode  of  studying  the  scriptures  it  is  only 
wonderful  that  the  number  of  sects  is  so  small ;  for  there  is  no  absurdity  so  great  that 
it  may  not  in  this  way  find  the  appearance  of  support.     Samuel  C.  Thacher. 

The  manner  in  which  the  customary  divisions  of  the  chapters  and  verses  are  intro- 
duced into  our  common  Bibles  universally  obscures  the  sense  of  the  Sacred  Writings. 
Many  serious  Christians,  and  those  not  merely  among  the  uninformed  and  illiterate, 
insensibly  acquire  the  habit  of  treating  every  part  of  the  Scripture  as  if  it  consisted  of 
a  series  of  unconnected  mottos  or  proverbs.!  An  inaccurate  habit  of  reading  the  Bible 
is  acquired  in  youth,  which  maturer  judgment  finds  it  very  difiicult  to  correct.  Even 
in  the  case  of  those  who  are  fully  sensible  of  the  evil,  the  mind  can  scarcely  avoid 
being  influenced  by  the  eye,  when  a  blank  space  presents  itself  in  the  midst  of  a  sen- 
tence, followed  by  the  appearance  of  a  new  paragraph  in  the  next  line.  And  this  may 
perhaps  account  for  a  circumstance  which  has  frequently  been  noticed  ;  namely,  that 
the  lessons  in  our  public  service  are  usually  read  with  much  less  propriety  than  the 
Epistles  and  Gospels.     Christian  Olserver. 

In  this  particular,  endless  citations  might  be  furnished  to  the  disparagement  of  the 
received  text.  Let  two  additional  authorities  be  sufficient.  Stuart,  in  the  Preface  to 
his  Commentary  on  the  Hebrews,  observes, '  I  have  purposely  avoided  the  usual  divi- 
sion into  chapters  and  verses,  which  is  exhibited  in  our  common  editions  of  the  Scrip- 
tures.   I  have  done  this,  because  the  sense  is  sometimes  disturbed  by  it,  and  the  reader 

*  Locke. 

t  The  Writer  probably  alludes  in  his  example,  to  Paul's  ao  much  perverted  Letter  to  tlie  Komans. 
Trans. 

t  The  book  ia  not,  oa  the  division  into  verses  might  lead  the  reader  to  suppose  it  is,  —  a  body  of  aphor- 
isms, or  of  sententious  paragraphs,  where  every  verse  or  chapter  by  itself  contains  a  complete  sense,  and 
vfhere  a  single  glance  sufBces  to  detect  the  meaning,  or  a  few  moment's  reading  to  master  the  subject. 
Christicm  Examiwr. 


NOTES  TO  THE    PREFACE.  385 

is  unwarily  led  to  associate  things  together,  in  a  manner  which  the  writer  of  the 
epistle  never  intended.'  And  Seeker,  in  remarks  on  Paul's  Letter  to  the  Philippians, 
represents  it '  as  under  all  the  disadvantages  of  a  translation  made  word  for  word,  and 
broken  into  short  verses.'  Is  it,  indeed,  inevitable,  that  the  memory  of  the  Apostle 
must  continue  to  be  thus  assailed  in  the  house  of  its  friends  ?  Let  such  as  persist  in 
countenancing  these  numberless  impositions  of  blanks  and  figures,  show  their  consist- 
ency, by  ceasing  to  denounce  those  who  add  to  or  diminish  from  the  scriptures  ;  and 
by  no  longer  pretending,  while  they  advocate  the  publication  of  the  Bible  in  such  u, 
form,  that  they  do  any  thing  more  than  merely  affect  to  present  it  to  the  world,  '  with- 
out note  or  comment.'     Trans. 

The  words  of  a  translation  that  has  long  been  in  common  use,  have  an  advantage,  of 
which  they  cannot  be  suddenly  divested.  The  advantage  results  from  this  very  cir- 
cumstance, that  it  has  been  long  in  general  use,  and  men  are  familiarized  to  its  expres- 
sions. But,  notwithstanding  this,  it  may  have  considerable  faults  ;  it  may,  in  several 
places,  be  obscure  ;  and  though  it  should  very  rarely  convey  a  false  sense,  it  may  be 
often  ambiguous.  In  this  case,  a  new  version  will  be  of  great  utility,  if  it  were  but  for 
rendering  the  old  more  intelligible.     Campbdl. 

That  one  version  expresses  the  sentiment  more  intelligibly,  more  perspicuously,  or 
more  emphatically,  than  another,  vi'ill  indeed  occasion  its  being  read  with  more  plea- 
sure, and  even  more  profit ;  but  it  will  never  on  that  account,  be  considered  by  any, 
as  giving  a  contradictory  testimony.     Campbell. 

I  am  sorry  to  observe  men  of  knowledge,  discernment,  and  probity,  appearing  in 
support  of  measures  which  seem  to  proceed  on  the  supposition,  that  a  sort  of  disin- 
genuous policy  must  be  used  with  the  people,  for  the  defence  of  the  truth.  However 
necessary  dissimulation  and  pious  frauds  as  they  are  called,  may  be  for  the  support  of 
false,  I  have  never  seen  them  of  any  use  to  true,  religion.  If  not  treacherous,  they 
are  dangerous  allies,  at  the  best.     Campbdl. 

Various  translations  are,  upon  the  whole,  much  better  calculated  for  confirming, 
than  for  weakening  the  faith  of  the  unlearned.     Campbell. 

We  think  that  to  secure  respect  to  the  Bible  is  even  more  important  than  to  dis- 
tribute it  widely.  For  this  purpose  its  exterior  should  be  attractive.  Christian  Ex- 
aminer. 

Every  thing  that  allures  the  world  to  peruse  the  Bible,  is  a  blessing  to  mankind. 
Watts. 

There  is  a  taste  in  moral  and  religious,  as  well  as  in  other  compositions,  which 
varies  in  different  ages,  and  may  very  lawfully  and  innocently  be  indulged.     Home. 

The  vicar's  daughters  regretted  that  religion,  instead  of  being  rendered  venerable 
for  its  authority,  should  be  degraded  by  the  vulgarity  of  its  medium  of  communication. 
They  longed  for  some  master  spirit  to  arise,  who  should  do  homage  to  the  majesty  of 
the  subject,  by  consecrating  to  it  those  lofty  talents,  which  would  be  elevated  by  an 
association  with  the  sublime  and  beautiful  of  religion.  It  was  to  them  a  subject  of 
deep  regret,  that,  while  works  of  imagination  were  constantly  teeming  from  the  press, 
displaying  the  varied  charms  of  brilliancy  of  imagination,  and  felicity  of  execution, 
works  of  a  professedly  religious  tendency  were  written  with  such  paucity  of  talent,  as 
to  lower  the  subject,  by  the  meanness  of  its  advocates.  They  knew  that  religion,  pre- 
sented in  its  native  dignity,  must  command  the  admiration,  if  it  did  not  win  the  hearts 
of  persons  of  cultivated  understanding.  The  progress  of  refinement  required  in  their 
opinion  a  corresponding  adaption  of  the  mode  of  asserting  the  claims  of  religion. 
They  were  far,  however,  from  thinking,  that  any  abatement  should  be  made  of  the  re- 
quirements of  piety,  in  accommodation  to  the  excess  of  refinement ;  but,  well  aware 
how  great  is  the  offence  of  the  cross  to  an  unrenewed  mind,  they  were  anxious  that 
that  offence  should  not  be  unnecessarily  increased.     Vicar  of  Tver. 

I  do  not  think  it  judicious  to  deny  our  language  those  variations  which  other  lan- 
guages so  readily  admit,  and  which  are  calculated  to  give  a  striking  representation  of 
the  transaction,  and  to  infuse  life  and  vigor  into  the  langour  of  a  narrative.     fVake/ield  ■ 

49 


386  APPENDIX. 

When  it  can  be  done  without  injury  to  the  sense,  there  seems  to  be  an  elegance  in 
diversifying  the  expression  as  much  as  possible.  Even  truths,  which  came  dpwn  from 
Heaven,  though  they  cannot  forego  their  meaning,  may  be  disguised  and  disgraced  by 
unsuitable  language.     Cowper. 

When  the  Almighty  himself  condescends  to  address  mankind  in  their  own  language, 
his  meaning  luminous  as  it  must  be,  is  rendered  dim  and  doubtful,  by  the  cloudy  me- 
dium through  which  it  is  communicated.     Madison. 

They  who  have  attended  to  the  causes,  by  which  the  understanding  is  misled  from 
the  imperfections  of  language,  will  not  be  surprised  at  the  deeper  errors,  into  which 
similar  causes  may  mislead  the  heart.    Mison. 

Ecclesiastical  history  is  a  proof  incontestable  of  the  dreadful  mischief,  which  has 
resulted  from  religious  maxims  ill  understood.     Bentham. 

One  defect  of  the  common  version  is,  that  it  abounds  with  ungramTnatical  construc- 
itions,  with  uncouth  and  vulgar  expressions,  and  obsolete  words  and  phrases.  A  version 
designed  for  general  use,  should  at  least  have  the  ordinary  qualifications  of  good  gram- 
mar, and  correct  and  intelligible  language.     Alexander  Young. 

Since  we  find  from  experience,  that  in  common  subjects,  the  force  of  a  sentiment  is 
often  lessened,  and  even  utterly  destroyed  when  a  writer  deviates  into  a  meanness  of 
language,  we  should  be  scrupulously  careful  to  guard  against  it  in  a  subject  of  the 
highest  importance  to  mankind,  a  Version  of  the  Holy  Scriptures.     Symonds. 

Almost  every  page  of  our  Version  abounds  with  uncouth  terms.  This  harshness 
arises  partly  from  an  injudicious  choice  of  words  and  phrases,  and  partly  from  a  stiff 
and  awkward  mode  of  arranging  them.  Had  our  translators  expressed  themselves  in 
an  easy  and  natural  manner,  they  would  have  fixed  more  effectually  the  attention  of 
their  readers,  and  of  course  led  them  to  a  more  frfequeat  perusal  of  the  Sacred  Scrip- 
tures.    Symonds. 

It  is  impossible,  in  a  brief  note,  even  to  glance  at  the  various  objectionable  phrase- 
ology, by  which  the  received  text  is  characterized.  My  views  relative  to  it  are  best 
illustrated  by  the  continual  departures  from  it,  which  are  found  in  this  volume.  Let 
the  reader  be  referred  to  the  quaint  and  obsolete  language  ;*  to  the  offensive,  unmean- 
ing, uncoath,  and  rugged  expressions  ;t  to  the  dull  routine  of  verbs  terminating  in  st 
and  th  ;t  to  the  frequent  and  unnecessary  occurrence  of  the  exploded  preposition  unto, 
and  to  that  of  upon,  instead  of  to  and  on  j  to  the  persevering  and  tiresome  din  of  say, 
and  said,  and  saith,  and  saying  ;  to  the  superfluous  use  of  thee,  and  thou,  and  ye,  in  a 
thousand  cases  where  it  is  not  even  demanded  by  perspicuity ;  and  add  to  this,  the 
abrupt  and  irreverent  manner  in  which  the  Deity  is  so  often  treated,  and  the  repulsive, 
severe,  and  despotic  character  so  frequently  ascribed  to  him  ;  all  offering  gross  injus- 
tice to  the  scriptures,  and  tending  greatly  to  deface  their  beauty  ;  and  he  will  have 
some  faint  idea  of  the  coarse  and  harsh  language,  which  pervades  the  ordinary  version. 
Trans. 

A  superstitious  fideUty  loses  the  spirit,  and  a  loose  deviation  the  sense  of  the  trans- 
lated author  —  a  happy  moderation  in  either  case  is  the  only  possible  way  of  preserv- 
ing both.     Cowper. 

There  are  minutiEB  in  every  language  which  transfused  into  another,  will  spoil  the 
version.     Such  extreme  fidelity  is  in  fact  unfaithful.     Such  close  resemblance  takes 

*  Such  ae  viot,  trow,  wist,  howbeit,  eschew,  loci;,  wax,  wagging,  kimfolks,  marotl,  twain,  an-hungered,  every 
whit,  jot  or  tittle,  was  nothing  bettered,  sore  of  redd,  to  Tiever  a  word,  this  ado,  on  this  wise,  do  you  to  wit,  htaze 
abroad  the  matter,  cast  the  same  in  his  teeth,  set  them  at  one  again,  and  numerous  others. 

t  For  example  ;  the  words  dcroil,  damnation,  and  hell,  with  their  variations,  are  extensively  foisted  into 
that  version,  in  defiance  of  the  original,  and  of  the  context.  With  regard  to  the  indecent  expressions,  this 
page  shall  not  be  sullied  even  by  an  exemplification. 

J  Verily,  verily,  I  say  unto  thee,  When  thou  wast  young,  thou  girdedst  thyself,  and  walkedst  whither  thou 
wouldest.  John  xxi,  18.  Is  it  not  time  that  such  a  style  of  expression  should  be  exploded  ?  Whom  the 
Lord  loveth  he  chasteneth,  and  scourgetk  every  son  whom  he  receiveth.  Heb.  xii,  6.  Is  it  possible  that  any 
taste  would  not  prefer  this  translation .''  Whom  the  Lord  loves,  he  chastens,  and  scourges  every  son  whom 
he  receives.    Trans. 


NOTES  TO  THE  PREFACE.  387 

away  all  likeness.  The  original  is  eloquent,  easy,  natural ;  the  copy  is  clumsy,  con- 
strained, unnatural :  to  what  is  this  owing .'  to  the  adoption  of  terms  not  congenial  to 
your  purpose,  and  of  a  context,  such  as  no  man  writing  an  original  work  would  make 
use  of.     Coicper. 

We  must  abandon  every  principle  of  common  sense,  as  well  as  every  rule  of  sound 
criticism,  to  restrict  to  a  literal  version,  on  every  occasion  the  phraseology  of  Scrip- 
ture.    Wakefield. 

The  Scriptures  are  ultimately  what  they  were,  as  they  came  from  the  hands  of  the 
writers  ;  not  as  they  came  from  the  hands  of  the  translators.     Dwight. 

It  might  easily  be  shown,  that  many  parts  of  the  received  version  were  originally 
founded  on  the  admission  of  the  most  feeble  authorities,  even  to  the  rejection  of  the 
most  powerful.     Tkans. 

I  would  ask,  if  there  be  no  extravagance  in  exalting  to  an  equality  with  the  word  of 
God,  those  errors  in  the  English  translation  of  the  Scriptures,  which  all  Greek  and 
[Hebrew  scholars  of  the  present  day,  of  every  denomination  without  exception,  concur 
in  admitting  to  exist ;  and  if  there  be  none  in  obstinately  maintaining  the  integrity  of 
those  passages  which  the  most  fair  and  learned  critics  of  all  denominations,  on  consult- 
ing the  best  manuscripts,  pronounce  to  be  spurious  .'     Samuel  Gilman. 

The  [English]  text  is  a  version  as  uninspired  as  the  annotation.  The  matter  of  in- 
spiration is  the  truth  of  God ;  and  even  admitting  a  plenary  inspiration  to  have  ex- 
tended to  the  original  expression  of  the  truth  conveyed,  the  interpretation  of  the  ori- 
ginal, whether  by  a  literal  rendering  of  the  words  or  by  an  explanation  of  their  mean- 
ing, can  pretend  to  no  such  character.  No  translation,  in  fact,  can  claim  to  be  defer- 
red to  as  ultimate  authority.  One  of  the  grossest  errors  of  the  church  of  Rome  con- 
sists in  her  putting  forth  this  claim  on  behalf  of  the  Vulgate.  All  translations  and  all 
annotations  on  the  sacred  volume  demand  to  be  scrutinized  with  the  most  rigid  seve- 
rity, on  account  of  the  infinite  importance  of  any  material  error  in  such  representations 
of  the  substance  of  revealed  truth.  The  appeal  from  the  mistakes  of  either  translators 
or  commentators  must  equally  lie  to  the  Hebrew  or  Greek  originals.     Eclectic  Review. 

In  regard  to  the  common  translation,  I  may  justly  say  that,  if  it  had  not  been  for  an 
immoderate  attachment  in  its  authors,  to  the  Genevese  translators,  Junius,  Tremellius, 
and  Beza,  it  would  have  been  better  than  it  is  ;  for  the  greatest  faults  with  which  it  is 
chargeable,  are  derived  from  this  source.     Camplell. 

Had  our  translators,  who  were  excellent  and  learned  men,  leaned  less  to  their  own 
peculiar  creed  in  the  present  authorized  Version ;  the  church  of  Christ  in  this  country 
would  not  have  been  so  agitated  and  torn  as  it  has  been  with  polemical  divinity.    Clarke. 

I  think  a  translator  is  Bound  to  abstract  from,  and  as  far  as  possible,  forget,  all  sects 
and  systems,  together  with  all  the  polemic  jargon  which  they  have  been  the  occasion 
of  introducing.  His  aim  ought  to  be  invariably  to  give  the  untainted  sentiments  of 
the  author,  and  to  express  himself  in  such  a  manner  as  men  would  do,  or  (which  is  the 
same  thing),  as  those  men  actually  did,  among  whom  such  disputes  had  never  been 
agitated.     Campbell. 

It  is  the  business  of  the  interpreter,  much  more  of  the  translator,  to  give  the  obvious, 
literal  sense  of  the  author ;  with  a  view  to  no  particular  system,  and  without  regard  to 
parties  or  principles.     Geddes. 

Unwedded  to  systems  of  any  kind,  literary,  physical,  or  religious,  a  translator  of  the 
Bible  should  sit  down  to  render  his  author  with  the  same  indifference  he  would  sit 
down  to  render  Thucydides  or  Xenophon.  He  should  try  to  forget  that  he  belongs  to 
any  particular  society  of  Christians ;  be  extremely  jealous  of  his  most  rational  prepos- 
sessions ;  keep  all  theological  consequences  as  far  out  of  his  sight  as  possible ;  and 
investigate  the  meaning  of  his  original  by  the  rules  only  of  a  sound  and  sober  criti- 
cism ;  regardless  of  pleasing  or  displeasing  any  party.     Geddes. 

King  James's  translators,  like  all  other  translators  of  their  day,  were  too  much 
guided  by  theological  system ;  and  seem,  on  some  occasions,  to  have  allowed  their 
religious  prejudices  to  prevail  over  their  judgment.     Geddes. 


388  APPENDIX. 

The  ambiguities  in  our  version  are  very  numerous ;  and  sometimes  too  gross  to  be 
defended.     Symonds. 

Whoever  examines  our  version  in  present  use  with  the  least  degree  of  attention, 
will  find,  that  it  is  ambiguous  and  incorrect ;  even  in  matters  of  the  highest  import- 
ance.    Symonds. 

There  are  writers  who  warmly  contend,  that  our  version  is  sufficiently  clear  and 
obvious  in  all  things  necessary  to  be  believed  and  practised  ;  and  that,  therefore,  to 
alter  it  in  the  least  degree  would  be  a  daring  and  mischievous  innovation.  On  this 
point  I  will  freely  join  issue  with  them;  and  rest  the  merits  of  the  case  upon  a  single 
argument.  Has  not  the  misrepresentation  of  one  word  driven  thousands  of  well- 
meaning  Christians  from  the  Holy  Communion.  For  the  truth  of  this  melancholy 
assertion,  we  may  safely  appeal  to  the  masters  of  families,  and  to  such  as  are  concerned 
in  parochial  cures.     Symonds. 

Innumerable  instances  might  be  made  [in  the  English  Bible]  of  faulty  translations 
of  the  divine  original ;  which  either  weaken  its  sense,  or  debase  and  tarnish  the  beauty 
of  its  language.     Blackwall. 

The  English  translation  is  undoubtedly  capable  of  very  great  improvements.  Water- 
land. 

The  authors  of  the  translation  of  James  1st,  adopted  modes  of  expression  which  are 
abhorrent  from  the  English  idiom  ;  and  perhaps  from  that  of  all  other  modern  tongues. 
Our  ears,  indeed,  are  now  accustomed  to  this  phraseology ;  and  the  language  is  become 
familiar  to  us,  by  being  the  language  of  the  national  religion  :  but  a  proof  tliat  many  of 
those  expressions  are  neither  natural  nor  analogous  is,  that  they  have  never  yet  been 
able  to  force  their  way  into  common  usage,  even  in  conversation ;  and  he  who  should 
employ  them,  would  be  supposed  to  jeer  at  Scripture,  or  to  aifect  the  language  of 
fanaticism.     Geddes. 

In  the  prosecution  of  the  work,  the  translator  has  been  similarly  impressed,  relative 
to  the  established  text,  with  the  subsequent  writer,  who,  in  the  Preface  to  his  Annota- 
tions on  the  New  Testament,  presents  the  following  just  remarks  : 

*  The  Compiler  was  wholly  unsuspicious,  when  he  began,  of  the  extent  of  the  mis- 
takes, which  the  negligence,  prejudice,  or  ignorance  of  the  authors  of  the  Received  or 
Public  Version,  had  created.  Upon  these,  as  they  have  multiplied,  he  has  felt,  here 
and  there,  constrained  to  animadvert.  Whether  any  other  European  translation,  so 
indifferent,  has  chanced  to  attain  the  same  consequence  and  authority,  may  well  admit 
of  a  doubt.  The  mention  of  the  prejudices,  which  disfigure  the  Common  Version, 
brings  to  the  mind  the  animadversions  of  Campbell  upon  Beza,  in  the  same  particular. 
What  then  must  be  the  condemnation  of  our  Translators  ?  They  were,  (by  general 
admission),  the  obsequious  imitators  of  Beza  in  their  own  work,  whose  single  authority 
sometimes  outweighed  in  the  scale,  that  of  the  learned  world  beside ;  and  engrafted 
on  the  stock  of  his  doctrinal  prejudices,  which  they  partook,  local  and  temporary  ones 
of  their  own.  In  connexion  with  the  charge  of  ignorance,  it  is  well  to  add  the  remark 
of  a  biblical  orthodox  friend,  (than  whom  no  one  has  for  years  been  more  assiduously 
occupied  in  these  studies), — that  the  authors  of  our  version  seem  often  not  to  have 
looked  into  their  grammar  or  lexicon,  and  (in  despite  of  the  profession  of  their  title- 
page),  to  be  little  else  than  the  Translators  from  Translators.  Even  where  they  appear 
to  be  exempt  from  this  censure,  praise  is  not  to  be  inferred  as  a  necessary  consequence. 
The  leading,  characteristic  fault,  (if  any  such),  of  this  Version,  is  servility  to  the  letter 
of  the  Greek.  Doubtless,  there  is  an  opposite  error ;  and  into  this  Wakefield  not 
unfrequently  falls.*     But  the  process  of  our  Translators  would  seem  literally  to  have 

*  Wakefield  observes  ;  '  V\1iat  are  called  liberal  translations^  I  never  could  approve,  considering  them  as 
too  much  calculated  to  weaken  the  dignity  and  efficacy  of  the  sacred  writings.'  He  appears,  therefore,  to 
have  estimated  his  undertaking  differently,  in  this  respect,  from  the  preceding  writer  ;  for  by  liberal  trans- 
lations he  probably  refers  to  those  that  are  diffuse  or  paraphrastic :  and  I  embrace  the  occasion,  and  I 
tliink  it  but  justly  due  to  the  present  work,  to  aver,  that  in  the  true  sense,  it  is  incomparably  divested  of 
paraphrase  ;  or,  that  in  all  probability,  it  is  by  far  the  most  brief  English  translation  of  the  Christian  Scrip- 
tures ever  presented  to  the  public.    Thaws. 


NOTES  TO  THE  PREFACE.  389 

been,  —  (let  not  this  be  thought  caricature)  —  duly  to  seek  out  in  the  lexicon,  each 
word  of  the  original,  and  to  place,  after  the  manner  of  the  tyro,  the  first  meanings 
there  found,  side  by  side,  till  the  sentence  was  complete.  What  result  the  aggregate 
might  show,  as  to  construction  or  sense,  this  they  left  to  those  who  came  after  them, 
as  being  no  part  of  their  province.  That  variety  of  meanings,  which  the  most  esteem- 
ed philologists  and  critics  now  sanction,  as  deducible  from  the  same  word,  was  clearly 
very  foreign  from  their  thoughts  ;  and  perhaps,  (in  their  reverence  for  God's  word), 
they  might  deem  all  exercise  of  the  judgment  on  the  literal  result  from  a  Greek  pas- 
sage, criminal ;  even  so  much  as  was  necessary  to  shape  it  into  propriety  and  sense.' 
Dabncy. 

If  Tyndal  and  Coverdale's  translation  was  made  from  the  vulgate  Latin,  and  if  the 
subsequent  English  translations,  as  they  have  been  called,  were  only  corrected  editions 
of  their  version,  and  if  the  corrections  made  from  time  to  time  in  the  different  editions, 
respected  the  language  more  than  the  sense,  is  it  to  be  thought  strange,  that  many 
of  the  errors  of  that  translation,  especially  those  copied  from  the  vulgate,  have  been 
continued  ever  since,  in  the  editions  of  the  English  Bible  ?  Even  that  which  is  called 
the  king's  translation,  though,  in  general,  much  better  than  the  rest,  being  radically 
the  same,  is  not  a  little  faulty,  as  it  was  not  thoroughly  and  impartially  corrected  by 
the  revisers.  It  is,  therefore,  by  no  means,  such  a  just  representation  of  the  inspired 
originals,  as  merits  to  be  implicitly  relied  on,  for  determining  the  controverted  articles 
of  the  Christian  faith,  and  for  quieting  the  dissensions  which  have  rent  the  Church. 
Macknight. 

The  same  writer,  after  citing  from  '  Beza  passages  which,'  as  it  is  alleged,  '  he  has 
mis-translated,  from  his  too  great  attachment  to  his  own  opinions,*  —  and  strained 
criticisms,  for  the  purpose  of  establishing  particular  doctrines,  which  the  reader  will 
find  in  Beza's  notes,'  further  remarks,  that  '  Examples  of  strained  criticism  might  be 
produced  from  Calvin,  Grotius,  Hammond,  Linborch,  Locke,  Taylor,  and  other  famed 
commentators.  But  the  above  are  all  quoted  from  Beza,  because  most  of  tlie  Calvin- 
ist  divines  since  his  time,  who  have  translated  and  interpreted  the  apostolical  epis- 
tles, and  among  the  rest  our  English  translators,  have  followed  him  too  implicitly.' 
Macknight. 

It  might  be  rather  unnecessary  than  difficult,  to  cite  similar  examples  of  versions, 
resting  too  much  on  the  preconceived  and  favorite  hypotheses  of  the  translators.  As 
an  illustration,  —  without  adverting  to  the  views  of  Socinians  on  the  subject,  it  is 
believed  that  some  of  the  assumed  principles  of  interpretation,  in  the  late  version  of 
the  apostolic  writings,  on  tlie  basis  of  Newcome's  translation,  with  respect  to  the 
characteristic  complexion  communicated  to  passages  involving  certain  contested  points 
of  theology,  are  thought  to  be  quite  unsustained,  even  by  some  of  the  most  learned, 
estimable,  and  distinguished  Unitarians  in  the  United  States.  The  most  impartial 
and  illustrious  men  of  every  name  still  coincide  in  reprehending  the  prevalent  version, 
and  in  the  conviction  that  some  substitute  is  indispensable.  But,  the  great  host  of  the 
orthodox  and  the  heterodox,  of  men  of  all  sects  and  classes  in  the  Christian  Church, 
seem  combined  to  subserve  the  supposed  interests  of  their  respective  divisions,  by 
retaining  that  version  with  all  its  imperfections,  by  vindicating  its  many  untenable 
interpretations,  or  by  attempting  to  force  upon  the  public  mind  criticisms  of  the  sacred 
text,  which  all  fair  men  of  every  class  must  pity  for  their  weakness,  if  not  abhor  for  a 
more  serious  reason.  Bigotry  on  this  subject  reigns  triumphant ;  the  complexion  of 
the  clan  must  prevail ;  the  object  is  sectarian  aggrandisement ;  and  a  just  translation 
of  the  Scriptures,  for  general  use,  is  interdicted  amid  this  remorseless  rage  of  party. 

In  the  present  work,  it  is  intended  to  present,  in  a  style  adapted  to  the  advanced  im- 
provements of  the  present  day,  the  most  elegant,  accurate,  and  impartial  translation  of 
the  Christian  Scriptures,  which  has  yet  appeared  in  our  language.    It  is  particularly 

*  Beza  did  not  scruple  to  admit  into  the  text  a  variety  of  readings,  whicli  were  established  by  one  MS 
alone,  merely  because  they  accorded  with  some  of  his  particular  tenets.    Symonds. 


390  APPENDIX. 

designed  for  the  general  reader ;  and  while  it  is  intended  to  enhance  the  word  of  God 
in  the  estimation  of  all,  it  is  peculiarly  addressed  to  persons  of  the  highest  cultivation 
and  refinement.  It  has  been  proposed  to  comprise  in  the  translation  every  correction 
of  any  value,  and  to  embody  in  the  notes  a  mass  of  illustration  saiEcient  for  general 
information.  By  a  diversified  interpretation,  an  extensive,  chaste,  and  beautiful  variety 
of  language  is  attempted  to  be  conveyed  :  and  it  is  one  of  the  principal  objects  of  this 
efibrt,  to  recommend  divine  revelation  to  the  perusal  of  those,  to  whom  the  prevalent 
translations  are  of  a  character  ambiguous  and  repulsive,  rather  than  lucid  and  alluring. 
And  if  the  work  does  not  carry  with  it  the  evidence  of  having  been  required  by  the 
many  faults  of  the  received,  and  other  versions,  and  generally  by  the  public  wants  in 
this  respect :  in  a  word,  if  these  purposes  of  the  translator  have  not,  on  his  part,  been 
faithfully  accomplished,  he  will  regard  his  undertaking  not  simply  as  an  obtrusive  oc- 
cupation of  the  public  attention,  but  as  an  absolute  failure. 

Men  will  possess  the  Bible  whether  they  confide  or  not  in  its  divine  authority ;  and 
for  the  cause  of  virtue,  for  the  honor  of  Christianity,  let  them  have  it  in  a  better  form ; 
in  such  an  one  as  will  not  so  narrowly  limit  improvement ;  as  will  no  longer  impose 
upon  so  many  persons  the  oppressive  burden  of  individually  carrying  about  a  thousand 
keys  to  unlock  intricate  paradoxes,  idle  solecisms,  or  absurd  falsities.  Our  religion 
presents  to  the  incredulous  sufficient  difficulties,  without  bewildering  them  with  those 
that  are  only  inherent  in  the  ordinary  version.  But,  libraries  are  adapted  to  the  old 
standard  ;  it  is  identified  with  the  speculative  views  of  ecclesiastics,  and  they  think  to 
govern  the  world  by  it.  They  ought,  however,  to  be  frankly  informed,  that  a  large 
and  respectable  part  of  the  world  correctly  appreciates  their  sophistry,  and  inclination 
to  power  ;  that  the  charm  of  infallibility  with  which  the  common  translation  has  been 
invested  by  its  friends,  is  to  some  extent  broken  ;  that  there  are  many  Grentlemen,  and 
I  trust,  that  I  may  assuredly  add,  many  Ladies,  who  will  not  submit  to  be  treated,  by 
an  assumed  authority,  as  mere  children  on  this  subject ;  who  will  not  tolerate,  w^ho 
indeed  revolt  at  the  petty  and  perplexing  restraints,  with  which  the  perusal  of  the 
scriptures  is  entangled ;  who  demand  in  their  behalf,  the  same  facilities,  for  a  free  re- 
ference to  their  invaluable  contents,  which  other  works  present ;  and  who  will  no 
longer  endure  the  shackles  of  those  obnoxious  associations,  which  have  been  fasten- 
ed upon  the  generally  received  word  of  God ;  that  numerous  readers  everywhere 
call  for  an  impartial  and  thorough  revisal  of  that  sullied  and  antiquated  work ;  that 
some  tribute  of  amelioration  is  still  due  to  enlightened  investigators  ;  that  among  such 
votaries  a  spirit  of  inquiry  has  gone  forth,  casting  off  the  trammels  of  a  blind  credulity, 
and  ardently  seeking,  amid  the  vast  resources  of  critical  research,  the  interesting  ma- 
terials for  a  more  correct  comprehension  of  the  sacred  writings ;  that  zealous  partizans 
of  all  classes  are  too  prejudiced  to  preserve  fidelity  ;  that  their  servile  translations  are 
not  to  be  accredited ;  that  the  public  version  cannot  continue  to  be  obtruded  upon  the 
great  community,  without  the  most  baleful  consequences  ;  tliat  it  has  become  a  dis- 
graceful reflection  upon  the  present  improved  age  ;  that  as  a  text-book  it  has  ceased 
to  be  conclusive  authority  with  the  impartial  and  well  informed ;  that  upon  many,  a 
devotion  to  it  can  no  longer  be  enforced  as  a  superstition  ;  tliat  it  must  at  no  distant 
period  be  superseded  by  a  more  general  acquiescence  in  the  adoption  of  a  corrected  sub- 
stitute ;  and  that  its  professional  advocates  eradicate  Christianity  more  rapidly  than  they 
can  plant  it,  by  this  stubborn  adherence  to  error,  this  unhallowed  persistance  in  arrogant 
imposture. — They  authoritatively  deprecate  change,  in  regard  to  the  received  text ;  lay- 
men servilely  respond ;  and  thus,  while  its  absurdities  confound  the  unlearned,  it  is  ex- 
tensively discarded  by  superior  minds,  and  banished  from  the  cultivated  circle.  It  can- 
not, indeed,  be  there  read,  in  course,  without  giving  just  occasion  for  offence.  Some, 
even  among  Christian  parents,  decline  to  use  it  in  their  families,  and  are  either  reluctant, 
or  absolutely  forbid,  that  their  children  should  peruse  it.  Its  present  aspect  nauseates  re- 
fined taste  ;  and  is  every  where  undermining  the  faith  of  man.  It  lies  on  the  shelf,  cov- 
ered with  dust, — a  neglected,  exploded  book,  —  food  for  worms.  Most  of  those,  whose 
unquestionable  duty  it  is,  to  engage  in  the  requisite  work  of  widely  disseminating  it,  in 


NOTES  TO  THE  PREFACE.  391 

an  improved  character,  complacently  represent  it  as  defective  in  detail,  and  with  the  same 
breath,  angrily  defend  it  as  infallible  in  mass  :  and  if  any  popular  complaint  is  started 
against  the  disgusting  object,  it  is  easy  with  a  view  of  quieting  conscience  in  the  inex- 
cusable indolence  of  declining  to  abate  the  nuisance,  gravely  to  assume  sanctity,  by 
referring  every  objection  to  a  '  natural  repugnance  of  the  human  heart  to  the  Word  of 
God ;'  and  by  vociferating, '  Depravity !'  vainly  to  attempt  the  suppression  of  all  in- 
quiry in  this  particular.  The  public  understanding  is  insulted,  overawed,  tantalized  ; 
and  by  this  treacherous  means,  the  cause  of  general  opposition  eifectually  cherished 
and  advanced.  In  a  word,  the  offence  of  thus  continuing  this  odious  public  and  gene- 
ral exhibition  of  the  vulgar  text,  must  appear,  to  the  impartial,  intelligent  observer, 
highly  atrocious,  when  it  is  considered,  that  by  its  interpolations,  omissions,  mistrans- 
lations, factious  perversions,  pernicious  obscurities,  terms  of  technical  cant  and  mum- 
mery, and  numerous  other  fallacies  of  various  descriptions,  it  has  become,  in  the  ag- 
gregate, one  of  the  most  infamously»successful  examples  of  theological  legerdemain, 
ever  practised  for  so  long  a  period,  upon  such  an  enlightened  and  extensive  portion  of 
mankind. 

With  respect  to  any  adverse  remarks,  previously  circulated,  or  which  may  subse- 
quently appear,  relative  to  this  publication,  or  to  the  representation  given  of  the  re- 
ceived version  of  the  Bible,  1  am,  and  shall  continue  to  remain,  unmoved.  Firmly  ] 
convinced,  that  the  continuance  of  that  version  directly  tends,  within  the  range  of  its 
poisonous  influence,  to  the  extensive  overthrow  of  Christianity,  I  could  not  rest  inac- 
tive. I  have,  therefore,  exerted  myself  to  accomplish  this  translation,  with  its  attend- 
ant elucidations ;  and  now  leave  the  work  to  itself,  under  the  protection  of  those  who 
may  view  it  with  approbation.  Opposition  to  it  may  be  fairly  sustained  ;  but  it  may 
also  originate  in  reprehensible  causes.  Its  annunciation  has  long  since,  in  repeated 
instances,  publicly  elicited  falsely  injurious  strictures,  descending  to  vulgar  personali- 
ties, from  those  who  were  perfectly  ignorant  of  its  contents,  yet  probably  claim  to  be 
gentlemen,  at  least  profess  to  be  Christian  ministers,  indeed,  some  of  them,  even 
clerical  brethren  of  the  same  communion  !  —  And  it  would  betray  great  inattention  to 
be  ignorant  of  the  ground  on  which  I  stand.  The  volume  has  been  driven,  under 
many  repulses,  to  beg  its  slow  and  unpleasant  way  into  existence.  It  is  obvious,  how 
public  opinion  is  farmed  out  and  fettered.  Indeed,  from  particular  observation,  I  can- 
not be  insensible,  that  sound  learning,  correct  discrimination,  honorable  repute,  and 
legitimate  pretensions,  are  extensively  imagined  to  be  the  exclusive  domain  of  a  cer- 
tain combination  of  dictators,  who,  inflated  with  the  disingenuously  acquired  and  idol- 
ized preferments,  or  with  the  ostentatious  and  equivocally  merited  applause  of  proud 
and  powerful  associations  and  communities,  regard  themselves  as  armed  with  authority, 
aside  from  their  officious,  partial,  and  shameless  interference  in  the  distribution  of  places 
among  their  respective  factions,  to  engross  and  control  all  subjects  of  this  class  and  its 
afiinities  ;  except,  in  emergencies,  as  clothed  with  a  dispensing  power  to  such  degraded 
agents,  as  are  satisfied  to  bask  in  the  beams  of  their  complacency  :  while,  they  either 
gravely  subject  others,  who  are  designated  as  the  victims  of  this  unprincipled  system 
of  favoritism,  management,  duplicity,  and  intrigue,  to  the  anathema  of  a  contemptuous 
silence,  for  engaging  in  projects  clandestinely  feigned  as  too  inconsiderable  to  deserve 
attention ;  or  otherwise,  openly  doom  them  to  the  ban  of  the  conspiracy,  for  pretended 
invasions  of  the  most  impudent  prerogatives.  Those  sycophantic  venders  of  reciprocal 
eclat,  adulation,  and  advancement,  affect  to  take  in  custody  all  objects  of  general  in- 
terest, and  to  guard  the  avenues  of  public  opinion,  against  the  alleged  intrusion  of  all 
strangers  to  the  confederacy.  From  such  dishonorable  and  rapacious  monopolists,  I 
have  no  eulogium  to  anticipate,  and  will  not  deign  to  deprecate  their  reproach.  I  am, 
however,  consoled  in  the  thought,  that  no  fearful  apprehension  should  be  entertained, 
that  wisdom  will  expire  with  them.  As  to  the  frivolous  echo  of  their  immediate, 
subordinate  instruments,  or  more  remote  and  numerous  adherents,  it  may,  deservedly, 
be  disregarded.    Trans. 


392  APPENDIX. 

In  respect  to  the  sense  and  the  accuracy  of  interpretation,  the  improvements,  of 
which  our  version  is  capable,  are  great  and  numberless  ;  and  the  expediency  of  revis- 
ing it  becomes  every  day  more  and  more  evident.     Lowth. 

Many  parts  of  it  abound  with  invincible  difficulties  to  the  English  reader ;  and  a 
sober  and  accurate  revisal  of  it  would  essentially  serve  the  cause  of  religion.     Jtewcome. 

The  history  of  ancient  and  modern  versions  of  the  scriptures  must  convince  every 
unprejudiced  reader,  that  a  translation  of  the  sacred  writings  more  agreeable  to  the  ori- 
ginal, and  more  intelligible  and  unambiguous,  than  any  hitherto  extant,  is  much 
wanted.    Macknigkt. 

The  reasons  for  desiring  a  new  translation  of  the  Bible  are  so  clear  and  strong,  that 
the  simple  statement  of  them  must  satisfy  any  one  who  is  not  secured  against  convic- 
tion by  his  prejudices  or  his  fears.     Ezra  S.  Gannett. 

A  new  translation  cannot  be  thought  superfluous,  unless  it  could  be  said  with  truth 
of  some  one  of  the  versions  extant,  that  it  is  every  where  accurate,  intelligible,  and 
unambiguous.  But  this,  it  is  supposed,  no  good  judge  will  take  upon  him  to  affirm. 
Macknight. 

If  it  be  indeed  true,  that  the  translation  of  the  Christian  Scriptures  which  is  in  gene- 
ral use  among  us,  and  which  is  constantly  appealed  to  by  so  many  millions  of  English 
readers  as  the  only  standard  of  faith  and  manners,  is  encumbered  by  defects,  it  certain- 
ly is  high  time  that  the  reputation  which  it  has  so  long  enjoyed,  and  to  which  it  can 
produce  no  other  title  but  prescription,  should  come  to  an  end.  A  new  translation  or 
a  thorough  revision  of  the  old  one  is  now  very  necessary,  and  it  becomes  all  who  call 
themsel  ves  Protestant  Christians,  to  contribute  their  effi>rts  to  the  accomplishment  of 
this  important  object.  These  efforts  may  be  made  in  various  ways  j  —  by  aiding  and 
encouraging  those  who  are  willing  and  qualified  to  undertake  the  work ;  by  removing 
any  unjust  prejudices  which  exist  in  favor  of  the  common  version ;  by  showing  the 
groundlessness  of  the  common  objections  to  a  new  translation ;  and  by  silencing  as 
far  as  possible  the  illiberal  clamors,  which  are  sometimes  raised  against  any  alteration 
of  the  common  version.  Let  all  those  who  have  the  interests  of  Christianity  at  heart 
—  who  are  desirous  that  the  Christian  Scriptures  should  be  understood  and  appreciated, 
do  something  that  will  help  to  carry  forward  this  highly  necessary  work.  All  are 
equally  concerned  in  having  a  correct  version  of  the  Word  of  Life,  and  of  course 
should  be  alike  willing  to  encourage  any  attempt  to  attain  this  object,  which  is  made 
with  a  good  spirit  and  purpose,  and  with  suitable  intelligence  and  sldll.  Mexander- 
Young. 

Persons  conversant  in  the  language  know,  that  many  Greek  words  have  more  mean- 
ings than  one,  all  of  them  equally  literal,  though  not  equally  common  ;  and  that  the 
skill  of  a  translator  is  shown,  in  his  choosing  from  among  the  different  literal  significa- 
tions, the  one  that  best  suits  the  scope  of  the  passage  where  it  is  found.  And  if  he 
chooses  judiciously,  his  translation  will  be  more  truly  literal  than  those  in  which  the 
more  ordinary  significations  of  the  Greek  words  have  been  adopted,  if  these  significa- 
tions do  not  accord  so  well  with  the  writer's  design.     Macknight. 

The  negligent  use  of  the  connecting  particles  between  chapters,  and  single  verses 
also,  is  one  of  the  most  prominent  errors  of  our  translators.     Dabney. 

The  Greek  particles,  as  used  by  the  writers  of  the  New  Testament,  have  a  great 
variety  of  significations.  No  translation,  especially  of  the  apostolical  epistles,  in  which 
the  Greek  particles  have  only  a  few  of  their  significations  given,  will  rightly  express 
the  meaning  of  these  writings  :  and  the  rectifying  of  the  translation  of  the  particles, 
though  it  be  only  by  substituting  one  monosyllable  for  another,  will  oiten  change  the 
sense  of  a  passage  entirely,  and  render  it  a  chain  of  strict  logical  reasoning :  whereas 
by  a  wrong  translation,  it  becomes  quite  incoherent,  if  not  inconsequent.     Macknight. 

Are  the  words  and  phrases,  employed  by  our  Translators,  generally  placed  in  their 
proper  order  i"  Are  they  so  arranged,  as  to  preclude  all  obscurity  and  ambiguity  .'  Do 
we  always  find  the  antecedents  to  which  the  relatives  refer .'     Has  a  right  attention 


NOTES  TO  THE  PREFACE.  393 

been  paid  to  the  Modes  and  Times  of  Verbs  ?  And  is  there  a  due  propriety  observed 
in  the  use  of  Particles,  upon  which  the  clearness  of  a  sentence  chiefly  depends  ?  I 
scarcely  think  that  any  one  will  venture  to  answer  in  the  affirmative.     Symonds, 

An  actual  examination  of  the  merits  of  the  common  version  in  respect  to  correct- 
ness or  propriety  would  show  that  in  innumerable  instances  it  might  be  amended. 
Mistranslation  of  a  very  serious  kind  is  comparatively  rare,  but  faults  which  even  one 
unacquainted  with  the  ancient  languages  would  discover  appear  on  every  page  ;  and 
he  who  should  institute  a  comparison  between  this  version  and  the  original  text  might 
make  a  long  list  of  undoubted  errors.  The  force  of  words  is  often  misapprehended, 
the  connexion  often  mistaken,  rules  of  interpretation  which  it  would  now  be  consider- 
ed shameful  to  disregard  are  neglected ;  in  the  rendering  of  particles  especially,  those 
connective  words  on  which  so  much  not  only  of  the  beauty  but  of  the  meaning  of  a 
writer  depends,  the  translators  evince  great  carelessness  or  ignorance  ;  words  frequent- 
ly occur,  which  are  now  used  in  a  widely  different  perhaps  an  opposite  sense  from  that 
which  they  bore  in  the  time  of  king  James  ;  some  passages  in  the  present  version  are 
absolutely  unintelligible  ;  the  punctuation  is  faulty,  and  this  circumstance  together 
with  the  division  into  chapters  and  verses,  by  which  the  argument  or  narrative  is  un- 
justly broken  into  fragments,  and  the  sense  is  both  interrupted  and  darkened,  impairs 
the  value  of  every  portion  of  the  volume  ;  in  fine,  obscurity,  harshness,  frequent  mis- 
representation of  the  meaning,  and  occasional  violation  of  correct  taste  are  charges 
which  may  be  brought  against  this  translation,  and  can  be  fully  substantiated.  E.  S. 
Gannett. 

A  translator,  I  apprehend,  then  most  effectually  performs  his  duty,  when,  with  all 
fidelity  to  the  words  of  his  authors,  he  expresses  their  thoughts  as  they  would  have 
expressed  them  in  his  times  and  in  his  language.     Wakefield. 

The  use  of  one  half  of  our  language,  in  a  translation  of  the  scriptures,  is  now  lite- 
rally proscribed  by  some  late  writers,  and  the  common  translators  actually  vindicated 
in  their  childish  and  scanty  materials,  and  this  mode  even  proposed  to  be  perpetuated 
in  present  and  future  efforts  of  this  kind.  Such  has,  indeed,  long  been,  and  is  still, 
the  prevalent  prejudice.  I  should  think,  however,  that  in  the  estimation  of  readers  of 
this  age,  who  should  forbear  to  look  through  the  defects  of  a  translation  to  the  excel- 
lencies of  the  original,  the  enlightened  would  readily  perceive,  that  a  more  effectual 
means  could  not  be  devised  to  degrade  our  Saviour  and  his  apostles,  than  to  attribute 
to  them  so  exclusively,  the  stinted,  and  worse  than  all,  puerile  language  comprised  in 
the  ordinary  version.  And  I  apprehend,  that  no  man,  who  at  this  day  cherishes  en- 
larged attainments,  would  be  thus  manacled  in  his  own  productions ;  and  that  any 
modern  author  of  a  distinguished  performance  in  a  foreign  language,  would  regard 
such  a  translation  of  it  into  ours,  as  a  gross  indignity,  and  palpable  injustice.     Trans. 

In  other  critical  inquiries,  wherein  religion  is  not  concerned,  there  is  little  to  bias 
the  judgment  in  pronouncing  on  which  side  the  truth  lies.  But  where  religion  is  con- 
cerned, there  are  often  not  only  inveterate  prejudices,  but  secular  motives,  to  be  sur- 
mounted, to  whose  influence  few  can  boast  an  entire  superiority.  Besides,  in  what 
relates  to  this  subject,  there  has  come  a  gradual  change  on  the  meaning  of  many 
words,  consequent  on  the  changes  which  have  been  gradually  introduced  into  the 
church,  in  religious  ceremonies,  modes  of  government,  and  formularies  of  doctrine. 
Old  names  are  given  to  things  comparatively  new,  which  have  by  insensible  degrees 
arisen  out  of  the  old,  and  have  at  last  supplanted  them.  To  trace  such  changes  with 
accuracy,  is  an  essential  quality  of  philology.  A  translator,  when  he  finds  that  the 
words  used  by  former  translators,  though  right  at  first,  have  since  contracted  a  mean- 
ing different  from  that  in  which  they  were  originally  employed,  sees  it  necessary,  that  he 
may  do  justice  both  to  his  author  and  to  his  subject,  to  substitute  such  terms  as,  to  the 
best  of  his  judgment,  are  adapted  to  convey  those  sentiments,  and  those  only,  intended 
by  the  author ;  and  should  endeavor,  in  the  interpretations  given,  to  avoid,  with  equal 
care,  an  immoderate  attachment  to  both  extremes  antiquity  and  novelty.     Campbell. 

50 


394  APPENDIX. 

Is  there  not,  even  in  some  who  are  the  friends  of  truth,  and  the  friends  of  freedom, 
who,  in  religion,  as  in  otlier  matters,  would  give  scope  to  inquiry  and  communication, 
a  sort  of  jealousy  on  the  article  of  translation,  which  makes  them  less  equitable,  less 
candid  judges,  in  regard  to  it,  than  in  regard  to  any  other  matter  that  comes  under 
their  discussion  ?  They  are  jealous  for  the  honor  of  the  common  version ;  and  though 
they  are  far  from  ascribing  any  supernatural  power  to  the  translators,  they  are  afraid 
of  the  detection  of  any  error,  which  might  make  that  version  sink  in  the  opinion  of 
the  people.     Campbell. 

It  has  been  said  that  the  introduction  of  different  translations  tends  to  unsettle  men 
in  their  principles,  particularly  with  regard  to  the  authority  of  sacred  writ,  which,  say 
they,  is  made  to  speak  so  variously  in  these  productions.  For  my  part  I  have  not  dis- 
covered that  this  is  in  any  degree  the  effect.     Campbell. 

Were  a  version  of  the  Bible  executed  in  a  manner  suitable  to  the  magnitude  of  the 
undertaking,  such  a  measure  would  have  a  direct  tendency  to  establish  the  faith  of 
thousands,  to  open  their  understandings,  to  warm  their  hearts,  and  to  delight  their  im- 
aginations. Absurd  belief  and  corrupt  practice  arise  from  an  ignorance  or  perversion 
of  the  scriptures ;  not  from  the  best  inducements  and  assistances  to  search  and  under- 
stand them.  It  is  the  nature  of  truth,  and  especially  of  divine  truth,  to  captivate  those 
who  contemplate  it,  in  proportion  as  the  veil  is  withdrawn,  and  its  genuine  features 
appear.    JVewcome. 

The  scholar  would  feel  a  very  sensible  satisfaction  at  seeing  errors  corrected,  obscu- 
rities illustrated,  contradictions  removed,  obsolete  expressions  modernized,  and  a  cor- 
rectness given  to  the  whole,  which  would  not  only  be  peculiarly  pleasing  to  the  friends 
of  Revelation,  but  might  be  the  means  of  recommending  to  the  more  serious  notice  of 
the  Philosopher  that  sacred  volume  which  he  is  too  apt  to  treat  with  the  most  unmerit- 
ed neglect  and  contempt,  merely  on  account  of  those  very  errors  in  the  translation, 
which  it  is  the  object  of  this  proposal  to  rectify.     Richard  Orvnerod. 

As  it  is  ultimately  from  the  scriptures,  and  not  from  creeds  ajid  systems,  by  whom- 
soever composed,  nor  even  from  the  decrees  of  councils,  whether  general  or  particular, 
that  the  genuine  doctrines  of  the  gospel  are  to  be  learned,  the  study  of  these  writings 
is  the  most  profitable  work,  in  which  any  man  can  be  employed,  especially  if  he  be  a 
teacher  of  religion ;  and  the  right  understanding  of  them  is  the  best  of  all  acquisitions. 
The  person,  therefore,  who  puts  it  in  the  power  of  others  to  attain  their  true  meaning, 
whether  it  be  by  faithfully  translating  them  into  a  known  language,  or  by  rightly  in- 
terpreting them  when  they  have  been  misunderstood,  performs  a  work  most  acceptable 
to  God,  and  does  the  greatest  possible  service  to  the  world.     Macknight. 

I  shall  not  take  up  my  own  time,  or  that  of  my  readers,  in  urging  the  expediency 
and  utility  of  an  amended  version  of  the  Christian  Scriptures.  Learned  and  ingenious 
men  of  all  persuasions  have  agreed  in  the  wisdom  of  this  measure,  and  have  rendered 
my  efforts  in  the  cause  unnecessary.  And,  though  it  be  true,  that  some,  equally  dis- 
tinguished for  general  learning  and  ingenuity,  have  pleaded  the  little  necessity,  and 
indeed  the  danger  of  a  new  version  of  the  scriptures  ;  these  writers,  to  the  best  of  my 
knowledge,  have  earned  no  reputation  from  their  theological  pursuits,  to  confer  author- 
ity on  their  opinions ;  nor  do  they  employ  any  arguments,  but  such  as  are  equally 
levelled  against  every  deviation  from  established  usages,  and  are  calculated  to  impede 
and  frustrate  the  grand  purpose  of  the  divine  administration ;  namely,  the  improvement 
and  exaltation  of  the  human  species.     Wakefield. 

The  change  which  our  language  has  undergone  within  the  space  of  two  hundred 
years,  must  render  a  translation  of  so  old  a  date  in  some  respects  unsuitable  for  readers 
at  the  present  day.  In  such  a  length  of  time  expressions  become  obsolete,  words  ac- 
quire new  senses  and  lose  the  old  ones,  different  associations  grow  up  around  words 
and  phrases  and  invest  them  with  another  character,  modes  of  construction  familiar  to 
one  period  are  supplanted  by  those  of  a  subsequent  age ;  and  while  these  and  other 
variations  in  the  use  if  not  in  the  structure  of  a  language  are  going  on,  a  book  written 
in  a  former  century  retains  its  original  garb,  and  appears  as  it  were  the  monument  of 
departed  sounds  and  feelings.     E.  S.  Gannett. 


NOTES  TO  THE  PREFACE.  395 

Since  the  age  of  the  common  translators,  the  facilities  for  understanding  the  Bible 
have  been  greatly  multiplied.  The  original  languages  are  better  understood.  The 
design,  scope,  and  tendency  of  the  several  books  have  been  more  clearly  discerned, 
and  their  contents  have  been  amply  illustrated  from  a  great  variety  of  sources.  We 
possess,  at  the  present  day,  much  better  opportunities  and  means  of  making  an  accu- 
rate translation  of  the  sacred  volume.  Scholars  of  all  sects  have  been  studying  and 
elucidating  it.  They  have  labored  diligently  and  faithfully  in  their  respective  walks. 
They  have  amassed  a  treasure  of  learned  criticism  and  sound  interpretation.  We 
think  that  it  is  now  time,  that  the  people  should  have  the  benefit  of  their  labors  and 
studies.  Of  what  use  is  it  for  the  critic  and  the  student  of  sacred  literature  to  settle  ' 
the  text,  and  discover  the  true  meaning  of  the  Scriptures,  if  the  people  are  not  to  have 
the  results  in  plain  English  —  if  they  are  not  to  have  the  common  English  transla- 
tion, which  they  read  every  day,  corrected  and  improved  .■■    Alexander  Young. 

The  authors  of  our  received  translation,  at  so  early  a  period  after  the  revival  of  let- 
ters, had  acquired  a  less  competent  knowledge  of  the  original  language,  than  many 
since  their  times  have  been  able  to  attain.  It  were  a  most  injurious  imagination  to 
suppose,  that  the  joint  exertions  of  so  many  scholars  for  such  a  length  of  time  have 
not  been  able  to  discover  many  things  unknown  to  their  predecessors.  Accordingly, 
some  mistakes  of  the  grossest  kind  deform  the  common  version  of  the  Scriptures  :  a 
multitude  of  elegancies,  depending  on  a  more  nice  and  accurate  perception  oithe  Greek 
and  Oriental  phraseology,  escaped  the  notice  of  those  who  first  engaged  in  this  work. 
If  readers  of  learning,  discernment,  and  taste,  can  make  no  discoveries  of  this  kind 
from  a  perusal  of  my  translation,  I  have  taken  some  pains  to  no  purpose.*     Wakefield. 

Whatever  is  discovered  to  be  the  sense  of  the  Spirit,  speaking  in  the  Scriptures, 
ought  to  be  regarded  by  us  as  of  the  greatest  consequence  :  nor  will  any  judicious  per- 
son, who  has  not  been  accustomed  to  consider  religion  in  a  political  hght,  as  a  mere 
engine  of  state,  deny  that  where  the  truth  appears,  in  any  instance,  to  have  been  either 
misrepresented,  or  but  obscurely  represented  in  a  former  version,  the  fault  ought,  in 
an  attempt  like  the  present,  as  far  as  possible  to  be  corrected.*  To  say  the  contrary, 
is  to  make  the  honorable  distinction  of  being  instruments  in  promoting  the  knowl- 
edge of  God,  of  less  moment  than  paying  a  vain  compliment  to  former  translators,  or, 
perhaps,  showing  an  immoderate  deference  to  popular  humor,  which  is  always  attached 
to  customary  phrases,  whether  they  convey  the  true  meaning,  or  a  false  meaning,  or 
any  meaning  at  all.  This,  therefore,  is  unquestionably  a  good  ground  for  varying  from 
those  who  preceded  us.     Campbell. 

Every  age,  since  the  reformation,  has  thrown  some  further  light  on  difficult  texts 
and  paragraphs  of  the  Bible,  which  have  been  long  since  obscured.  It  is  certain  tliere 
are  several  things  in  the  Bible  yet  unknown,  and  not  sufficiently  explained  ;  and  it  is 
certain  that  there  is  some  way  to  solve  these  difficulties,  and  to  reconcile  these  seeming 
contradictions.  And  why  may  not  a  sincere  searcher  after  truth  in  the  present  age,  i 
by  labor,  diligence,  study  and  prayer,  with  the  best  use  of  his  reasoning  powers,  find 
out  the  proper  solution  of  these  knots  and  perplexities,  which  have  hitherto  been  un- 
solved, and  which  have  afforded  matter  for  angry  quarrelling.  Happy  is  every  man 
who  shall  be  favored  of  heaven  to  give  a  helping  hand  towards  the  blessed  age  of  light 
and  love.     Watts. 

I  believe  that  a  new  translation  of  the  Scriptures  would  do  away,  in  a  considerable 
degree,  the  pernicious  habit  of  repeating  words  without  ideas,  and  reading  the  Bible 
without  understanding  it.  It  would  break  the  mystery  of  words  and  syllables,  and 
contribute  more  to  a  correct  apprehension  of  the  Scriptures  than  any  other  means 
whatever.  In  the  execution  of  such  a.  translation,  I  would  have  the  defects  of  lan- 
guage entirely  removed,  as  I  see  no  reason  why  elegant  taste,  pure  language,  perspicu- 
ous expressions,  and  correct  grammar,  should  be  inconsistent  with  Christian  piety  and 
a  correct  faitli.    Alexander  Y(ning. 

*  Referring  to  their  respective  publicatiout-.    Tuans. 


396  APPENDIX. 

It  is  time  that  we  went  beyond  the  measure  of  the  old,  technical,  and  almost  childish 
ideas  on  this  subject*  We  have  got  beyond  authoxitotive  restrictions  on  the  use  of 
the  sacred  volume.  We  are  getting  beyond  superstition  ;  and  knowledge  must  come. 
The  age  demands  it ;  the  Bible  demands  it ;  religion  demands  it ;  and  it  will  not  be 
always  withheld.      Christian  ExamiTier. 

Experience  has  taught  me,  that  to  get  a  victory  over  the  world,  over  the  love  of  fame 
and  to  hold  in  perfect  contempt  human  honor,  adulation,  and  popularity,  will  do  more 
to  make  the  New  Testament  intelligible,  than  all  the  commentators  that  ever  wrote. 
Alexander  Cww/pbell. 

We  hear  continual  expressions  of  reverence  for  the  Bible ;  but  the  most  unambigu- 
ous proofs  of  It,  we  mean  unwearied  efforts  to  purify  it  from  human  additions,  mutila- 
tions and  corruptions,  remain  to  be  given.     Christian  Examiner. 

The  general  tenor  of  our  present  Version  of  the  four  Gospels  and  of  the  Acts  of  the 
Apostles,  must  induce  us  to  conclude  that  the  Translators  had  not  a  thorough  knowl- 
edge of  Grammar  and  Syntax  ;  or,  at  least,  that  they  did  not  sufficiently  attend  to  the 
rules  of  them.     Symonds. 

We  are  desirous  that  the  epistles  should  be  understood  as  they  may  be  understood 
by  every  intelligent  Christian ;  that  correct  notions  should  be  entertained  of  their 
character  and  design  ;  that  they  should  not,  though  written  in  English  words,  speak 
an  unknown  tongue  to  the  great  majority  of  readers ;  that  they  should  not  remain 
veiled  in  almost  impenetrable  obscurity,  so  that  only  a  glimpse  of  the  true  meaning  of 
the  writer  here  and  there  appears ;  and  that  they  should  not,  in  consequence,  admit  of 
almost  any  perversion,  and  afford  a  lurking  place  for  almost  any  error.  When  the 
meaning  of  the  books  of  the  New  Testament  is  understood,  and  a  proper  use  is  made 
of  them,  then  will  the  true  character  of  our  religion  be  revealed  to  men  anew.  Jforton. 
Every  year  that  passes  over  us  is  throwing  light  on  parts  of  the  Scriptures  that  have 
been  obscure,  not  only  by  direct  theological  investigation,  but  by  the  discoveries  of 
science,  the  researches  of  travellers,  the  inquiries  of  historians, — and,  in  fact,  by  every 
intellectual  department,  in  which  the  minds  of  men  are  vigorously  exerted.  Iforth 
American  Review. 

Exegetical  inquiry,  rather  than  polemic  disquisition,  certainly  constitutes  the  best 
preparation,  for  forming  a,  true,  and  well  supported  system  of  Christian  Theology. 
Turner. 

Those  who  are  profoundly  read  in  theological  controversy,  before  they  enter  on  the 
critical  examination  of  the  divine  oracles,  if  they  have  the  discernment  to  discover  the 
right  path,  which  their  former  studies  have  done  much  to  prevent,  and  if  they  have 
the  fortitude  to  persevere  in  keeping  that  path,  will  quickly  be  sensible,  that  they  have 
more  to  unlearn,  than  to  learn ;  and  that  the  acquisition  of  truth  is  not  near  so  difficult 
a  task,  as  to  attain  a  superiority  over  rooted  errors  and  old  prejudices.     Campbell. 

A  simple  and  sincere  desire  to  arrive  at  the  truth,  without  any  predilection  in  favor 
of  emy  opinion  whatever,  and  without  any  disturbing  feeling  of  affection,  or  dislike, 
or  hope,  or  fear,  is  the  moral  state  of  mind  most  favorable  to  success  of  inquiry.  Free 
Enquirer. 

To  discover  truth,  and  to  represent  it  in  the  clearest  and  most  intelligible  manner, 
seem  to  me  the  only  proper  objects  of  all  inquiries.  Free  discussion  is  the  surest  way, 
not  only  to  disclose  and  strengthen  what  is  true,  but  to  detect  and  expose  what  is  fal- 
lacious.    W.  Lawrence. 

The  time  has  happily  come  when  names  have  lost  their  terror,  and  a  man  may  confess 
without  fear  through  what  channels  he  receives  knowledge  and  truth.     Sparks. 

He  whose  desires  are  directed  solely  to  the  attainment  of  correct  views,  will  naturally 
seek  for  information  wherever  it  is  likely  to  present  itself;  he  wiU  be  without  motive 
to  partiality,  and  susceptible  of  the  full  force  of  evidence.     Free  Enquirer. 

The  argument  against  the  expediency  of  divulging  an  opinion  although  it  may  be 
ti-ue,  from  the  possibility  of  its  being  perverted,  has  been  so  much  hackneyed,  so  often 

*  '  On  reading  tho  Scriptures.' 


NOTES  TO  THE  PREFACE.  397 

employed  in  the  last  resort  by  the  defenders  of  all  established  abuses  and  errors,  that 
every  one  who  is  conversant  with  controversy,  rejects  it  immediately,  as  the  sure  mark 
of  a  bad  cause,  as  the  last  refuge  of  retreating  error.     W.  Lavyrence. 

In  every  country,  no  doubt,  the  truth  will  always  excite  the  resentment  of  those 
men  whose  principles  or  pursuits  cannot  bear  its  piercing  eye  ;  while  an  easy  compli- 
ance with  their  views  will  alone  secure  their  friendship.  But  whatever  opinion  the 
world  may  entertain  of  that  left-handed  prudence,  or  whatever  apparent  advantages  it 
may  bring  along  with  it,  yet,  it  is  only  by  despising  and  violating  its  wretched  masims 
that  ignorance  can  be  banished,  error  detected,  or  truth  propagated.    John  JVelson. 

Reason  and  free  inquiry  are  the  only  eifectual  antidotes  of  error.  Give  them  full 
scope,  and  they  will  uphold  the  truth,  by  bringing  false  opinions,  and  all  the  spurious 
offspring  of  ignorance,  prejudice,  and  self-interest,  before  their  severe  tribunal,  and 
subjecting  them  to  the  test  of  close  investigation.  Error  alone  needs  artificial  support : 
truth  can  stand  by  itself.     W.  Lawrence, 

I  like  every  design  of  reconciling  religion  with  reason,  or,  where  that  may  not  be 
done,  of  bringing  them  as  near  together  as  possible.     Middleton. 

In  this  age  of  reasoning,  it  is  very  necessary  to  be  assured,  that  the  religion  which 
comes  from  God  is  perfectly  conformable  to  the  dictates  of  reason ;  it  is  of  the  first 
importance  to  evince,  that  those  religious  opinions,  which  have  created  the  greatest 
difiiculties,  and  become  the  strongest  impediments  to  embracing  the  Gospel,  constitute 
no  part  of  the  Gospel ;  that  they  are  pernicious  additions,  which  destroy  the  simplicity 
of  our  religion,  and  cast  a  deep  shade  over  its  native  excellency.*     Cogan. 

The  sober  inquirer  after  truth,  must  be  convinced  by  reason  and  argument.  All  else 
is  nothing  to  him.  And  where  these  lead  him,  he  will  go.  The  path  of  truth  is  the 
path  of  duty.  The  approbation  of  God,  for  a  sincere,  candid,  honest,  believing  heart, 
is  worth  infinitely  more  than  all  the  honor  which  party  zeal  can  bestow,  or  the  world 
is  able  to  give.     Stuart. 

If  there  be  a  right  more  sacred  than  any  other,  it  is  that,  which  gives  every  man  an 
unlimited  control  over  the  operations  of  his  own  mind,  especially  in  those  inquiries, 
for  the  result  of  which  he  is  accountable  only  to  God.     Sparks. 

There  is  not  a  more  striking  feature  in  the  religion  of  our  protestant  communities, 
than  a  fear  of  inquiry,  a  horror  of  innovation.  He,  who  does  not  know  that  this  spell 
is  on  the  faculties  of  men,  knows  nothing  about  them.     Christian  Disciple. 

Religion  must  be  regarded  as  the  revelation  of  a  common  Father,  to  whom  all  have 
equal  access,  who  invites  all  to  the  like  immediate  communion,  who  has  no  favorites, 
who  has  appointed  no  infallible  expounders  of  his  will,  who  opens  his  works  and  word 
to  every  eye,  and  calls  upon  all  to  read  for  themselves,  and  to  follow  fearlessly  the  best 
convictions  of  their  own  understandings.  Let  religion  be  seized  on  by  individuals  or 
sects,  as  their  special  province  ;  let  them  clothe  themselves  with  God's  prerogative  of 
judgment ;  let  them  succeed  in  enforcing  their  creed  by  penalties  of  law,  or  penalties 
of  opinion ;  let  them  succeed  in  fixing  a  brand  on  virtuous  men,  whose  only  crime  is 
free  investigation,  and  religion  becomes  the  most  blighting  tyranny,  which  can  estab- 
lish itself  over  the  mind.     Channing. 

The  day  of  authority  in  the  church  is  passed  by  ;  it  is  to  be  hoped,  that  the  day  of 
sound  reason  and  of  argumemt  is  to  follow.     It  is  better  to  convince  men  by  an  appeal  ' 
to  their  understandings  and  their  hearts,  than  it  is  to  terrify  them  by  holding  the  rod  of 
authority  over  them,  and  to  deter  them  from  speaking  out  their  convictions  by  eirgu- 

*  The  philosophic  enemies  of  Christianity  contemplate  these  adventitious  blemishes  with  pleasure. 
They  love  to  consider  them  as  the  most  important  parts  of  the  Christian  religion.  They  also  aiFect  to  cen- 
sure that  class  of  Christians,  vrho  deny  what  are  termed  the  peculiar  doctrines,  with  as  much  severity  as 
the  orthodox  believer.  They  are  hurt  when  they  meet  with  a  Christian,  who  presumes  to  be  rational,  and 
impertinently  insinuate  that  he  cannot  be  a  genuine  Christian.  The  reason  is  obvious.  The  primitive  un- 
adulterated religion  of  Jesus  consisting  of  a  few  principles,  as  rational  as  they  are  interesting,  these  oppo- 
nents are  disappointed  when  Christianity  is  confined  to  them  j  they  are  now  deprived  of  objects  against 
which  they  may  display  the  force  of  argument,  or  direct  the  shafts  of  ridicule.  They  weep  because  there  is 
nothing  left  to  conquer.    Cogan. 


398  APPENDIX. 

ments  ad  invidiam.  These  aie  the  never  faihng  resource  of  minds,  which  are  con- 
scious of  possessing  no  better  means  than  such  of  convincing  others,  and  which  natur- 
ally resort  to  these  which  are  most  within  their  reach.     Stuart. 

Whoever  is  afraid  of  submitting  any  question,  civil  or  religious,  to  the  test  of  free 
discussion,  seems  to  me  to  be  more  in  love  with  his  own  opinion  than  with  truth. 
Watson. 

There  are  victims  of  intolerance,  on  whom  I  look  with  unmixed  sorrow.  They  are 
those,  who,  spell-bound  by  early  prejudice,  or  by  intimidations  from  the  pulpit  and  the 
press,  dare  not  think ;  who  anxiously  stifle  every  doubt  or  misgiving  in  regard  to  their 
opinions,  as  if  to  doubt  were  a  crime  ;  who  shrink  from  the  seekers  after  truth  as  from 
infection ;  who  deny  all  virtue  which  does  not  wear  the  livery  of  their  own  sect :  who, 
surrendering  to  others  their  best  powers,  receive  unhesitatingly  a  teaching  which  wars 
against  reason  and  conscience ;  and  who  think  it  a  merit  to  impose  on  such  as  live 
within  their  influence,  the  grievous  bondage  which  they  bear  themselves.  How  much 
to  be  deplored  is  it,  that  religion,  the  very  principle  which  is  designed  to  raise  men 
above  the  judgment  and  power  of  man,  should  become  the  chief  instrument  of  usurpa- 
tion over  the  soul.     Channing. 

O  that  Christians  of  all  denominations  would  lay  aside  their  discordant  dialects,  and 
listen  to  the  voice  of  inspiration ;  to  that  grand  key-note,  whose  unadulterated  sounds 
alone  can  harmonize  the  world ;  to  whose  celestial  vibrations,  every  voice  and  every 
heart,  that  is  not  sadly  out  of  tune,  will  immediately  respond,!  O  that  they  would  re- 
nounce their  narrow  separations  and  party  animosities,  and  unite  on  earth  in  one  gen- 
era] and  perpetual  concert,  in  which  not  a  discordant  whisper  should  be  heard ;  and 
thus  prepare  for  the  blessedness  of  joining  in  the  grand  chorus  of  all  ages,  and  of  all 
nations,  and  of  all  worlds,  in  ascribing  '  blessing,  and  honor,  to  him  that  sitteth  on  the 
throne,  and  to  the  Lamb  forever  !     Samuel  WiUard. 

Note.  The  names  of  Campbell  and  Clarke,  unless  otherwise  designated,  uniformly  refer  in  tliis  Appen- 
dix, to  George  Campbell  and  Adam  Clarke.    Trans. 


ABBREVIATIONS 


EXPLANATORY    REMARKS 


The  figures  and  letters  following  the  citation  of  the  text  in  these  Notes,  designate 
the  page  and  line  in  this  work  where  the  text  may  be  found,  or  where  it  is  omitted,  if 
such  be  the  fact.  The  letter  T.  denotes  this  Translation  ;  R.  T.  the  Received  Text ; 
and  M.  R.  the  Marginal  Reading  to  that  Text.  The  initial  Capitals,  that  so  often  oc- 
cur, indicate  Manuscripts ;  and  the  general  and  particular  names,  that  frequently  fol- 
low, refer  to  Versions  and  Fathers.  The  passages  in  Italics,  extensively  succeeding 
the  Received  Text,  are  the  Translations  of  the  Writers  respectively  named ;  para- 
phrases and  conmientaries  being  in  Roman  letter,  and  sometimes  indicated  by  abbrevi- 
ations of  those  words.  My  own  remarks,  as  well  in  the  Notes  to  the  introductory  ob- 
servations as  to  the  body  of  the  work,  are  designated  by  the  contraction  of  the  title  of 
Translator.  I  have  usually,  but  not  implicitly,  relied  upon  the  amended  text  of 
Griesbach,  and  have  adverted  in  the  Notes  to  many  of  the  deviations  from  the  Com- 
mon Version,  deeming  an  entire  enumeration,  however,  to  be  rather  superfluous,  since 
the  Text  will  exhibit  the  real  extent  of  the  liberty  which  I  have  taken  with  that  Ver- 
sion. Indeed,  to  illustrate  all  the  variations,  would  require  voliimes.  I  here  insert 
some  remarks  relative  to  Griesbach's  Work,  which  are  contained  in  the  Advertisement 
to  the  recent  Edition  of  the  Christian  Scriptures  entitled  '  The  New  Testament  in 
the  Common  Version,  conformed  to  Griesbach's  Standard  Text'.     Trans. 

In  1775,  Dr  John  James  Griesbach  published  his  first  edition  of  the  New  Testament, 
exhibiting  in  notes  the  most  important  of  the  various  readings  contained  in  the  works 
of  Wetstein  emd  of  other  critics  since  his  time,  and  introducing  into  the  text  such 
amendments  of  the  received  edition  as  were  considered  to  be  established  by  conclusive 
evidence.  A  second  edition,  revised  and  greatly  enriched,  appeared  in  1796  — 1806, 
the  store  of  means  for  emendation  of  the  text  having  meanwliile  received  valuable 
contributions  from  the  researches  of  Matthai,  Alter,  Birch,  and  other  distinguished  bib- 
lical philologists.  The  work  in  its  present  state  is  the  fruit  of  more  than  thirty  years' 
devoted  study.  The  materials  for  it, — drawn  firom  nearly  four  hundred  Greek  man- 
uscripts, besides  large  collations  from  ancient  versions  and  citations  of  the  early  fath- 
ers,   amounted  to  not  less  than  a  hundred  and  thirty  thousand  various  readings ;  the 

critical  rules,  applied  in  deciding  between  conflicting  authorities,  have  been  generally 
approved,  and  the  impartiality  of  the  editor  may  be  considered  beyond  question,  the 
principal  alterations  which  he  has  introduced,  being  unfavorable  to  his  own  distinctly 
avowed  theological  opinions.    Considering  the  great  delicacy  of  this  work,  the  all  but 


400  APPENDIX. 

unanimous  favorable  testimony  of  learned  men,  of  whatever  denomination,  is  a  result 
which  it  would  have  been  extravagant  to  anticipate.     John  O.  Palfrey. 

It  is  very  extraordinary  after  all  that  has  been  said  on  this  subject,  that  so  many  peo- 
ple persist  in  talking  of  the  Bible,  as  if  the  only  one  which  was,  or  ever  had  been  m 
existence,  was  that  which  was  published  in  English  by  the  authority  of  James  I.  At 
the  bare  sound  of  the  word  manuscript,  they  start  and  look  incredulous  ;  just  as  if 
there  were  any  books  in  the  world  Imt  manuscripts,  till  about  four  hundred  years  ago, 
o,  mere  date  of  yesterday  ;  and  as  if  every  portion  of  the  Old  Testament  and  New, 
every  prophecy,  gospel  and  epistle,  had  been  printed  on  the  spot,  the  moment  it  was 
uttered  or  written,  and  had  been  in  type  ever  since.  These  are  conclusions,  to  be 
sure,  which  would  not  be  acknowledged  by  these  persons,  but  still  they  are  conclu- 
sions which  are  justifiably  drawn  from  their  conduct.     Francis  W.  P,  Greenwood. 

All  the  printed  editions  of  the  Scriptures,  however  many,  are  derived  from  a  very 
few  original  and  independent  editions  ;  the  authority,  therefore,  of  all  the  printed  edi- 
tions, resolves  itself  into  the  authority  of  these  few ;  and  in  like  manner  the  authority 
of  each  of  these  few  resolves  itself  into  that  of  the  particular  MSS  from  which  it  was 
printed.     Gilbert  Gerard. 

That  there  are  various  readings  in  the  copies  of  the  New  Testament,  and  that  it  is 
highly  useful  to  examine  them,  has  for  a  long  time  been  generally  confessed ;  and  they 
indeed  supply  the  means  of  rendering  the  text  of  that  part  of  Scripture  in  a  very  great 
degree  correct.     Walton. 


APPENDIX. 


NOTES     ON     THE     TEXT 


APOSTOLIC      PRODUCTIONS. 

TuE  original  H  Kst«»  AiuBhk)!,  which  we  translate  Tlie  Mew  Testament,  and  which  is 
the  general  title  of  all  the  contents  of  that  book,  simply  means  the  new  covenant. 

Clarke. 

The  original  word  Afctflwx  signifies  either  a  testament,  (that  is  to  say  a  will),  or  u, 
covenant ;  and  has  been  assigned  from  a  very  early  period  of  the  church  to  the  Chris- 
tian Scriptures.  The  term  '  Covenant'  would  however  have  been  on  the  whole  a, 
more  appropriate  translation.      Gisbome. 

The  New  Covenant  is  by  the  consent  of  all  critics,  the  true  title  of  the  Christian 
Scriptures.     Dahney. 

That  the  rendering  of  the  word  (TictfljjxH,  covenant,  is  the  better  version,  is  unquestion- 
able ;  but  the  title  appropriated  by  custom  to  a  particular  book,  is  on  the  same  footing 
with  a  proper  name,  and  is  hardly  considered  as  a  subject  of  criticism.     Campbell. 


MATTHEW  S      HISTORY. 

The  Christian  authors  of  the  second  and  many  following  centuries,  in  speaking  of 
the  Gospel  composed  by  Saint  Matthew,  concur  in  affirming  it  to  have  been  originally 
written  in  Hebrew.  A  Greek  translation  however  is  acknowledged  to  have  been 
speedily  made ;  and  in  consequence  of  the  destruction  of  Jerusalem  and  the  Jewish 
state,  soon  to  have  been  in  more  general  use  than  the  original.  That  every  other  part 
of  the  New  Testament,  the  Epistle  to  the  Hebrews  excepted,  was  composed  at  first  in 
Greek,  is  a  fact  universally  admitted.     Gisbome,  Pretyman. 

The  learned  world  have  been  nearly  equally  divided  on  the  question,  whether  Mat- 
thew wrote  his  Gospel  in  Hebrew  or  Greek.  Whether  the  Greek  was  written  by  him- 
self or  not,  it  is  certain  that  it  was  not  later  than  the  Apostolic  age.  It  seems  that  there 
was  but  one  opinion  among  the  ancients  with  regard  to  this  subject  of  controversy. 
With  one  voice  they  inform  us,  that  it  was  written  in  Hebrew ;  or  in  the  vernacular 
tongue  of  the  Jews,  which  in  the  Scriptures,  and  by  the  Christian  Fathers,  is  called 
Hebrew.  This  language  is  now  called  Syro-Chaldaic,  or  Western  Aramean,  but  it 
consisted  chiefly  of  words  derived  from  a  Hebrew  origin,  and  was  in  fact  the  Hebrew 
corrupted  by  a  large  mixture  of  foreign  words,  and  by  various  changes  in  the  prefixes 
and  affixes  of  the  words.  This  was  the  language  in  which  Jesus  Christ  spoke  and  de- 
livered all  his  discourses.  Mexander. 
51 


402  APPENDIX. 

The  native  language  of  the  writers  of  the  New  Testament  was  the  Hebrew  or  Syro- 
Chaldaic.     Macknight. 

Matt,  i,  1 ;  Page  41,  Line  1.  A  register  of  the  lineage.  T.  Tlie  look  of  the  genera- 
tion. R.  T.  A  history  of  the  life.  "Wakefield.  The  table  of  the  genealogy.  Mack- 
night.  Campbell  regards  /Si^xos  yama,;  as  a  Hebraism,  and  translates  it  lineage.  Reg- 
ister is  a  secondary  or  more  remote  sense  of  /Si/3mi5,  usually  rendered  book,  and  is  here 
the  more  appropriate  word.  The  phrase  book  of  the  generation  is  unmeaning,  and  if 
otherwise,  is  quite  inapphcable  even  to  the  lineage  of  our  Lord,  and  cannot  embrace 
Matthew's  entire  history.    Tkans. 

Matt,  i,  11 ;  p.  41, 1.  13.  Joachim.  This  name  is  added,  agreeably  to  a  reading 
found  in  numerous  manuscripts,  and  by  this  means  fourteen,  instead  of  thirteen,  are 
comprised  in  the  second  class  of  generations ;  thus  corresponding  with  the  number 
mentioned  in  the  recapitulation.     Trans. 

Josias  was  not  the  father  of  Jechonias  ;  he  was  only  the  grand-father  of  that  prince: 
1  Chron.  iii,  14 — 16.  There  are  only  thirteen  in  this  2d  class  of  generations ;  or 
forty-one  instead  oi  forty-two  in  the  whole.  These  and  other  difficulties  disappear  by 
adopting  Joakim,  a  reading  found  in  many  MSS.  Clarke.  I  here  follow  the  same 
reading  of  the  Bodleian  and  other  mantiscripts,  (notice  of  which  is  taken  in  the  margin 
of  our  Bibles).  And  this  seems  absolutely  necessary  to  keep  up  the  number  of  four- 
teen generations  ;  unless  we  suppose  that  the  Jeconiah  here  is  a  different  person  from 
that  Jeconiah  mentioned  in  the  next  verse,  which  seems  a  very  unreasonable  supposi- 
tion, since  it  is  certain  that  throughout  this  whole  table,  each  person  is  mentioned  twice, 
first  as  the  son  of  the  preceding,  and  then  as  the  father  of  the  following.  Doddridge. 
Jechonias,  mentioned  in  verse  12,  of  the  genealogy,  must  be  a  different  person  from 
Jechonias  in  the  11th  verse,  because  otherwise  the  number  of  fourteen  generations  will 
not  be  complete  in  the  last  class,  even  though  the  reading  taken  notice  of  in  the  mar- 
gin of  the  English  Bibles  were  adopted  :  a  blunder  that  no  author  whatever  can  be 
supposed  to  have  committed.     Macknight. 

Matt,  i,  17 ;  p.  41, 1.  24.  To  the  Messiah.  T.  Unto  Christ.  R.  T.  Eais  Tow  Xgio-rou. 
The  words  Messiah,  in  Hebrew,  and  Christ  in  Greek,  both  signify  anointed ;  and  are 
epithets,  often  applied  to  that  distinguished  person  who  came  to  be  the  Saviour  of  the 
world.      iVinthrop  Bailey. 

Matt,  i,  18;  p.  42,  1.  2.  Pledged  to  Joseph.  T.  There  was  a  previous  marriage 
agreement,  in  which  the  parties  mutually  bound  themselves  to  each  other ;  without 
which  no  woman  was  ever  married  among  the  Jews.     Clarke. 

Joseph  and  Mary  were  engaged  in  marriage,  but  not  married,  in  the  usual  accepta- 
tion. Much  profane  ridicule  of  unbelievers  might  have  been  spared,  had  these  and 
other  circumstances,  from  verses  18  to  25  inclusive,  been  duly  regarded;  and  much 
misapprehension  removed,  had  they  been  correctly  represented  in  the  received  version. 
Trans. 

Matt,  i,  18 ;  p.  42,  1.  3.  Through  the  Holy  Spirit.  T.  Of  the  Holy  Ghost.  R.  T. 
In  this  and  the  20th  verse,  and  also  in  Luke  i,  35,  there  is  no  article  in  the  Greek,  and 
A  holy  spirit  is  the  literal  rendering  of  the  passage.  See  last  Note  on  Matt,  xxviii, 
19.     Trans. 

Matt,  i,  19;  p.  42, 1.4.  Being  a  benevolent  man.  T.  Being  a  just  man.  R.  T.  A 
worthy  man.  Campbell.  Righteous.  Wakefield.  Conscientious.  Priestley.  Possess- 
ing the  character  of  clemency.  The  ordinary  inference  from  the  word  just,  in  this 
case,  would  be  a  disposition  to  punish,  rather  than  a  spirit  of  lenity,  or  extenuation. 
Trans. 

Matt,  i,  20 ;  p.  42, 1.  6.  A  messenger  of  the  Lord.  T.  The  angel  of  the  Lord.  R.  T. 
Campbell  refers  to  several  places  in  the  New  Testament  where  the  Greek  word  ayyixo; 
should  be  translated  messenger  instead  of  angel  as  in  the  common  version ;  and  with 
some  deviations  from  both,  I  have  followed  him,  to  a  considerable  extent,  in  the  pres- 
ent translation,  where  that  term  occurs.  '  One  case,'  he  remarks,  '  wherein  (I  do  not 
say  it  must,  but)  it  may  be  properly  rendered  messengers,  is  when,  though  it  evident- 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  403 

ly  refers  to  superior  beings,  it  is  joined  with  some  word  or  epithet,  which  sufficiently 
marks  the  reference,  as  ayyiMs  Ki-gioi/,  fi  messenger  of  the  Lord.'     Trans. 

Matt,  i,  21;  p.  42, 1.  10.  Jesus,  [that  is,  saviour].  T.  Jesus.  R.  T.  His  name  of 
Hebrew  derivation,  signifies  '  The  Saviour.'  Wake;  or  'A  Saviour.'  Porteus.  Je- 
sus, the  same  as  Joshua,  Yehoshud,  from  yaslui,  he  saved,  delivered,  put  in  a  state  of 
safety.  Clarke.  This  import  of  the  name  of  Jesus,  will  explain-  the  inference,  that 
he  will  save  his  people  from  their  sins.     Trans. 

Christ  came  to  deliver  from  the  power  still  more  than  from  the  punishment  of  sin; 
his  most  important  operation  is  within  us  ;  the  highest  end  of  his  mission  is  the  erec- 
tion of  God's  throne  in  the  soul,  the  inspiration  of  a  fervent  filial  piety,  a  piety  found- 
ed in  confiding  views  of  God's  parental  character,  and  manifested  in  a  charity  corre- 
sponding to  God's  unbounded  and  ever  active  love.     Channing. 

Matt,  i,  23 ;  p.  42, 1.  14.  God  with  us.  T.  and  R.  T.  Or  the  powerful  God  with  us. 
Trans.  He  shall  be  called  Im-menh-el  ;  literally,  The  strong  God  with  us.  Clarke. 
Matt,  ii,  2;  p.  42, 1.  20.  For,  at  the  east,  we  have  seen  his  star.  T.  For  we  have  seen 
his  star  in  the  east.  R.  T.  For  we  have  seen  his  rising  star,  or  meteor.  Trans,  lie 
have  seen  his  star  in  the  east  country.  Campbell.  JFe  have  seen  his  star  rise.  Wake- 
field. As  to  what  is  called  a  star,  some  make  it  a  meteor,  others  a  luminous  appear- 
ance like  an  Aurora  Borealis ;  others  a  comet !  There  is  no  doubt,  the.  appearance 
made,  was  very  striking :  but  it  appears  to  have  been  a  simple  luminous  meteor,  pro- 
vided for  the  occasion,  in  a  star-like  form,  and  at  a  very  short  distance  from  the  ground, 
otherwise  it  could  not  have  ascertained  where  the  child  lay.     Clarke. 

Tlie  star,  or  meteor.  I  say  meteor,  because  no  star  could  point  out  not  only  a  town, 
but  a  particular  house.  It  is  not  at  all  strange,  Justin  Martyr  and  other  fathers  should 
suppose  it  was  a  comet,  considering  how  little  astronomy  was  known  in  their  days  ;  but 
one  would  not  have  imagined  Grotius  should  have  gone  so  far  as  in  the  least  to  inti- 
mate such  a  suspicion.     Doddridge. 

Any  appearance  of  a  body  of  light  in  the  air  is  called  by  the  Greek  and  Latin  au- 
thors a  star,  though  it  be  only  a  meteor,  that  is,  a  transient,  accidental,  luminous  va-" 
por,  neither  of  considerable  height,  nor  long  continuance ;  in  wliich  sense  also  the 
scripture  speaks  of  stars  falling  from  heaven.  And  such  was  that  which  the  wise  men 
saw.     Porteus. 

To  see  either  star  or  meteor  in  the  east,  means  in  English  to  see  it  in  the  east 
quarter  of  the  heavens,  or  looking  eastward.  But  this  is  not  the  apostle's  meaning 
here.  The  meaning  here  manifestly  is,  that  when  the  Magians  themselves  were  in  the 
east,  they  saw  the  star.  So  far  were  they  from  seeing  the  star  in  the  east  according  to 
the  English  acceptation  of  the  phrase,  that  tliey  must  have  seen  it  in  the  West,  as  they 
were  by  its  guidance,  brought  out  of  the  east  country  westward  to  Jerusalem. 

Camphell. 
Their  seeing  the  star  in  the  east  is  not  to  be  understood  as  if  they  saw  it  to  the  east- 
ward of  themselves ;  but  means  that  they  being  eastward  of  Judea,  saw  the  star  seem- 
ing probably  to  hang  over  that  country.     Porteus. 

That  Christianity  has  elevated  the  character  of  man,  and  blessed  him  in  his  domestic 
connexions,  and  his  social  relations,  cannot  be  denied  by  the  most  obdurate  scepticism. 
We  must  indeed  shut  our  ears  against  the  voice  of  experience,  and  our  eyes  against 
the  light  of  truth,  if  we  do  not  yield  implicit  faith  to  the  exalting  and  meliorating  vir- 
tues of  our  divine  religion.  We  can,  perhaps,  form  a  striking  estimate  of  its  blessings, 
by  supposing  that  it  had  never  shed  its  effulgence  upon  the  nations.  What  then 
would  have  been  the  state  of  the  world  .?  In  all  probability  the  Gothic  darkness  which 
benighted  mankind,  on  the  breaking  up  of  the  Roman  empire,  would  have  been  per- 
petuated :  man  would  have  lost  his  recuperative  energies,  and  the  revolution  of  ages 
would  have  witnessed  his  torpid  inactivity  and  hopeless  debasement.  The  star  that 
attracted  the  wondering  curiosity  of  the  wise  men  of  the  east,  has  become  a  sun  of 


404  APPENDIX. 

light  to  the  human  race ;  and  wherever  its  radiations  have  reached,  it  has  been  the 
■  parent  of  cultivation,  of  civilization,  of  knowledge,  and  of  virtue.     De  Witt  Clinton.- 

Matt.  i,  22;  p.  42,  1.  11.  Agreeably  to  the  subsequent  declaration  of  the  Lord  by  the 
prophet.  T.  That  it  might  be  fulfilled  which  was  spoken  of  the  Lord  by  the  prophet.  R. 
T.  Verified,  ^xxgaSn.  Though  it  should  be  admitted,  that  the  word  srA«gai9«  is  here 
used  in  the  stricter  sense,  to  express  the  fulfilment  of  a  prophecy,  which  pointed  to 
the  single  event  j  it  cannot  be  denied  that  the  general  import  of  the  word  Trxytpom,  in 
the  Gospel,  is  more  properly  expressed  by  the  English  word  verify,  than  to  fulfil. 
Those  things  are  said  vf^x^xBiivai,  which  are  no  predictions  of  the  future,  but  mere 
affirmations  concerning  the  present,  or  the  past.  .  To  employ  the  word  fulfilling  for 
all  those  purposes,  is  to  give  a  handle  to  cavillers,  where  the  original  gives  none.  It 
makes  the  sacred  penmen  appear  to  call  those  things  predictions,  which  plainly  were 
not,  and  which  they  never  meant  to  denominate  predictions.  Campbell.  See  Note  on 
John  xii,  38.     Tkans. 

The  iva.  TTKHpteQi]  to  /jhQsv,  rendered  in  the  Common  Version,  that  it  might  be  fulfilled 
which  teas  spoken,  and  other  forms  equivalent  in  sense,  in  which  the  word  irAegoav,  ren- 
dered, to  fulfil,  is  used,  occur  frequently  in  the  Gospels  as  introductory  to  quotations 
from  the  Old  Testament.  .  .  The  common  rendering  by  the  term  fulfil,  fails,  in  some 
cases,  of  giving  the  proper  sense.  A  verbal  rendering  from  an  ancient  into  a  modern 
language,  must  often  misrepresent  the  meaning  of  the  original.  The  terms  correspond- 
ing to,  conformably  to,  or  others  equivalent,  may  sometimes  be  used  with  propriety  in 
rendering  the  formulas  under  consideration.     JYorton. 

Matt,  ii,  2 ;  p.  42,  1.  21.  To  render  him  homage.  T.  To  worship  him.  R.  T.  To 
revere  or  reverence  him.  Trans.  To  do  him  obeisance.  Newcome.  To  do  him  homage. 
Campbell.  To  prostrate  ourselves  before  him.  This  I  take  to  be  generally  the  significa- 
tion of  srgoo-Kyveiv.  It  is  a  ceremony  still  used  to  eastern  princes,  and  has  been  of  great 
antiquity.  Doddridge.  The  last  writer  translates  the  same  word,  in  verse  8,  pay  mtj 
liomage.     Campbell  renders  it  pay  him  homage.     Trans. 

The  homage  or  prostration,  which  is  signified  by  this  Greek  word,  in  sacred  authors, 
as  well  as  in  profane,  was  throughout  all  Asia,  commonly  paid  to  kings  and  other 
superiors,  both  by  Jews  and  Pagans.  When  God  is  the  object,  the  word  denotes  ado- 
ration in  the  highest  sense.  In  old  English,  the  term  worship  was  indifferently  used 
of  both.  It  is  not  commonly  so  now.  Campbell.  See  Notes  on  Matt,  v,  6 ;  viii,  2 ; 
Luke  xxiv,  52;  and  Heb.  i,  6.     Trans. 

Matt,  ii,  12 ;  p.  42,  1.  40.  Being  warned  in  a  dream.  T.  Being  warned  of  God  in  a 
dream.  R.  T.  That  the  warning  came  from  God,  there  can  be  no  doubt :  but  as 
this  is  not  expressed,  but  implied,  in  the  original,  it  ought  to  be  exhibited  in  the  same 
manner  in  the  version.     Campbell. 

Matt,  ii,  18;  p.  43, 1.  9.  Mourning.  The  word  S-gnvoc,  lamentation,  is  omitted  by 
the  Codex  Vatic.  Cypr.  one  of  Selden's  MSS,  the  Syriac,  Arabic,  Persic,  Ethiopic,  all  the 
ItaZa,  (except  that  in  the  Codex  Bezse)  Vulgate,  and  Saxon,  several  of  the  fathers  and 
above  all  Jeremiah,  chap,  xxxi,  15,  from  which  it  is  quoted.  Griesbach  leaves  it  in  the 
text  with  a  note  of  doubtfulness.  Clarke.  Sgiivoc  koj,  mourning  and,  are  both  included 
in  Griesbach's  marginal  doubt.     Trans. 

Matt,  ii,  23;  p.  43, 1.22.  JYazarean.  T.  Nazarene.  R.  T.  It  is  likely  that  before 
St  Matthew  wrote  his  gospel,  those  afterwards  called  Christians,  bore  the  appellation 
of  JYazarites  or  Mazoreans,  for  so  the  Greek  word,  Nafoija/O!:  should  be  written.   Clarke. 

Matt,  iii,  6;  p.  43,  1.  32.  In  the  Jordan.  T.  In  Jordan.  R.  T.  Many  of  the  best 
MSS  and  versions,  with  Mark  i,  5,  add  ircrufxai,  the  river  Jordan.     Clarke. 

Matt,  iii,  1;  p.  43, 1.  24.  Wilderness.  The  words  wilderness  and  desert,  (Luke  i, 
80),  do  not  bear  in  common  use  the  sense  which  should  be  given  them  in  reading  the 
Scriptures.  The  '  wilderness'  was  not  an  uninhabitable  nor  an  uninhabited  region, 
but  one  comparatively  barren  and  vacant  of  population.  In  Joshua  xv,  61,  62,  we 
find  the  names  of  '  six  cities  with  their  villages'  '  in  the  wilderness.'     Ezra  S.  Gannett. 


MATTHEW'S   HISTORY.  405 

Matt,  iii.a;  p.  43, 1.24.  Riform.  T.  Rqyent.  R.  T.  'Reform.'  The  word  '  re- 
pent' does  not  express  the  force  of  the  original;  which  signifies  a  change  of  character,' 
a,  permanent  alteration  of  the  dispositions  and  habits.  The  same  remark  may  be 
applied  on  the  noun  of  the  same  meaning  in  verse  8.     E.  S.  Gannett. 

Matt,  iii,  2 ;  p.  43, 1.  25.  Dominion  of  heaven.  T.  Tlie  kingdom  of  hearen.  R.  T. 
'  Tlie  kingdom  of  heaven,'  —  the  reign  of  the  Messiah ,  which  the  Jews  were  then  expect- 
ing ;  or  as  we  Christians  should  say,  the  religion  of  Jesus  Christ,  which  came  from 
God  to  reign  over  the  hearts  and  lives  of  men,  and  to  make  them  partakers  of  the  joys 
of  heaven  here  and  hereafter.     E.  S.  Gannett. 

Matt,  iii,  7;  p.  43,  1.  34.  Baptism.  I  should  think  the  word  immersion  a  better 
English  name  than  baptism,  were  we  now  at  liberty  to  make  a  choice.  But  we  are 
not.  The  latter  term  has  been  introduced,  and  has  obtained  the  universal  suffrage : 
and  though  to  us  not  so  expressive  of  the  action ;  yet,  as  it  conveys  nothing  false,  or 
unsuitable  to  the  primitive  idea,  it  has  acquired  a  right  by  prescription,  and  is  conse- 
quently entitled  to  a  preference.     Camphcll. 

Matt,  iii,  7;  p.  43, 1.  35.  The  approaching  vengeance.  T.  Tlie  wrath  to  come.  R.  T. 
*  The  approaching  vengeance'  —  the  destruction  which  is  about  to  fall  on  your  city  and 
nation,  the  just  punishment  of  your  crimes,  which  can  be  averted  only  by  reforma- 
tion.    E.  S.  Gannett. 

Matt,  iii,  8;  p.  43, 1.  36.  Appropriate  fruit.  T.  Fruits  meet.  R.  T.  A  very  great 
number  of  MSS  read  xagwov  ajiov,  proper  fruit,  among  which  are  some  of  the  oldest 
and  most  valued;  likewise  several  ancient  versions,  as  the  Arabic,  the  second  Syriac, 
Coptic,  Ethiopic,  Saxon,  and  Vulgate.  It  appears,  too,  that  some  of  the  earliest  fathers 
read  in  the  same  manner.  Of  the  moderns,  Luther,  Grotius,  Simon,  Bengelius,  Mill, 
and  Wetstein,  have  approved  it.  It  is  so  read  in  the  Complutensian,  and  some  other 
old  editions.  Kajsrout  a|ioDc,  proper  fruits,  is  universally  allowed  to  be  the  genuine 
readintr  in  Luke.  Some  ignorant  transcriber  has  probably  thought  proper  to  correct 
one  Gospel  by  the  other.  Such  freedoms  have  been  too  often  used.  Campbell.  Gries- 
bach  sanctions  the  amended  reading.     Trams. 

Matt,  iii,  11 ;  p.  43, 1.  41.     Baptize  you  with  water with  the  Holy  Spirit.    T.  and 

R.  T.     In  water in   the   Holy  Spirit,   ev  uifsTi ev    nym  TnivfixTi.     Vulgate    in 

aqua in  Spiritu  Sancto.     Thus  also  the  Syriac  and  other  ancient  versions.     All  the 

modern  translations  from  the  Greek  which  I  have  seen,  render  the  words  as  our  com- 
mon version  does,  except  Le  Clerc,  who  says,  Dans  I'eau dans  le  Saint  Esprit.     I 

am  sorry  to  observe,  that  the  Popish  translators  from  the  Vulgate  have  shown  greater 
veneration  for  the  style  of  that  version  than  the  generality  of  Protestant  translators 
have  shown  for  that  of  the  original.  For  in  this  the  Latin  is  not  more  explicit  than 
the  Greek.  Yet  so  inconsistent  are  the  interpreters  last  mentioned,  that  none  of  them 
have  scrupled  to  render  sv  ten  'iogia.n,  in  the  sixth  verse,  in  Jordan,  though  nothing 
can  be  plainer,  than  that  if  there  be  any  incongruity  in  the  expression  in  water,  this 
in  Jordan  must  be  equally  incongruous.  But  they  have  seen  that  the  preposition  in 
could  not  be  avoided  there,  without  adopting  a  circumlocution,  and  saying  tcith  the 
water  of  Jordan,  which  would  have  made  their  deviation  from  the  text  too  glaring. 
The  word  Buttti^uv,  both  in  sacred  authors,  and  in  classical,  signifies,  to  dip,  to  plunge,  to 
immerse,  and  was  rendered  by  TertuUian,  the  oldest  of  the  Latin  fathers,  tingere,  the  term 
used  for  dying  cloth,  which  was  by  immersion.*  It  is  always  construed  suitably  to  this 
meaning.  Thus  it  is  sv  vS'a.Ti,  &  tm  IdgJuvH.  But  I  would  not  lay  much  stress  on  the 
preposition  ev,  which  answering  to  the  Hebrew  3,  may  denote  with  as  well  as  in,  did 

*  The  body  of  learned  Critics  and  Lexicograpiiers,  declare  tliat  tlie  original  meaning  of  both  these  words, 
UttTTTt^iv,  and  its  root  Bi^rra),  is  to  tinge,  stain,  dye,  or  color  ;  and  that,  when  it  means  Immersion,  it  is 
only  in  a  secondary  and  occasional  sense ;  derived  fi-om  the  fact,  that  such  things  as  are  dyed,  stained,  or 
colored,  are  often  immersed  for  this  end.  This  interpretation  of  tlie  words,  also,  they  support  by  such  a 
series  of  quotations,  as  seem  unanswerably  to  evince,  that  this  was  the  original,  classical  meaning  of  these 
words.    DwigKt. 


406  APPENDIX, 

not  the  whole  phraseology,  in  regard  to  this  ceremony,  concur  in  evincing  the  same 
thing.  Accordingly  the  baptized  are  said  avaCcWiiv,  to  arise,  emerge,  or  ascend,  verse 
16,  aij-o  T-ou  uJ«Toc,  and  Acts  viii,  39,  ex  tou  vSclto;,  from,  or  out  of  the  water.  .  .  It  is  to 
be  regretted  that  we  have  so  much  evidence,  that  even  good  and  learned  men  allow 
their  judgments  to  be  warped  by  the  sentiments  and  customs  of  the  sect  which  they 
prefer.  The  true  partisan,  of  whatever  denomination,  always  inclines  to  correct  the 
diction  of  the  spirit  by  that  of  the  party.     Campbell. 

In  this  passage,  and  in  Mark  i,  8;  Luke  iii,  16;  John  i,  26;  Campbell  and  Wake- 
field use  in  instead  of  with  ;  and  the  latter  also  in  Acts  i,  5.     Trans. 

Matt,  iii,  16;  p.  44,  1.  6.  Immediately  ascended  from  the  water.  T.  Went  up  straight- 
way out  of  the  water.  R.  T.  It  is  said  of  our  Saviour,  that,  after  he  was  baptized, 
he  went  up  straighticay  from  the  water,  avsCh  atto  too  oJ^tTOf,  He  ascended  from  the  water: 
the  word  a.fcL&iim,  signifying  to  go,  or  come,  up  ;  to  ascend;  in  whatever  manner.  This 
passage  appears  to  be  descriptive,  solely  of  Christ's  ascending  the  banks  of  Jordan, 
after  he  had  received  baptism.  The  preposition  asro,  is  erroneously  rendered  out  of  in 
our  translation.  Its  proper  meaning,  as  every  Greek  scholar  knows,  is  from;  and  can 
be  out  of,  only  by  accident :  as  in  Matt,  vii,  4.  Let  me  pull  out  the  mote  out  of  thine 
eye.  Even  here  it  would  be  much  better  rendered.  Let  me  take  the  mote  from  thine  eye. 
Dwight. 

Matt,  iv,  1 ;  p.  44,  1.  11.  The  enemy.  T.  The  devil.  R.  T.  Tlie  devil,  or  traducer. 
Campbell.  Whatever  is  calculated  to  seduce  men  to  sin,  is  represented  by  the  sacred 
writers  under  the  figure  of  a  living  agent,  called  the  evil  one  —  the  adversary  —  the 
enemy  —  the  devil  —  and  Satan.  Wakefield.  It  is  extensively  believed,  that  unless  we 
adopt  a  construction  here,  and  in  other  places,  which,  if  extended,  would  confound  all 
distinction  between  figurative  and  real  representations  in  the  Scriptures,  we  must 
accredit  their  accumulated  testimony,  that  there  exists  in  the  universe  of  God  a  living, 
intelligent  being,  who  is  the  spiritual  assailant  of  human  virtue,  the  instigator  to  temp- 
tation among  men,  and  the  enemy  of  all  integrity ;  but  it  is  of  very  questionable,  moral 
effect,  or  critical  accuracy,  to  display  him  in  the  terms  of  the  ordinary  version.  We 
are  furnished  with  an  example  where  phraseology  similar  to  that,  which  I  have  adopt- 
ed, is  introduced  into  the  Episcopal  service,  in  the  prayer  for  a  sick  person,  in  which  we 
are  directed  to  supplicate,  that  God  would  '  preserve  him  from  the  temptations  of  the 
enemy.'  Who  does  not  perceive  that  this  expression  is  perfectly  intelligible,  and  suffi- 
cient for  all  good  purposes  .''     TE.tNS. 

The  Leader,  or  Prince  of  evil  angels,  is  styled  in  the  Scriptures,  '  the  adversary ;  the 
calumniator';  the  father  of  lies ;  the  destroyer  ;  a  murderer;  and  a  liar  from  the  begin- 
ning.'    Dwight. 

The  original  words  answering  to  this  and  the  similar  appellation  Satan,  are  now 
considered  by  the  best  critics,  to  bear  the  general  sense  of  adversary,  calumniator, 
tempter,  of  whatever  kind  or  order,  wherever  they  occur  in  the  New  Testament.  In 
many  of  these  instances,  they  are  thus  rendered  in  the  common  version ;  in  many 
others,  they  confessedly  do  not  apply  to  a  fallen  spirit  of  a  higher  nature.  (See  Matt. 
xvi,  23;  John  vii,  70;  1  Tim.  iii,  11,  translated  slanderers  ;*  Acts  xiii,  10  ;  Eph.  iv, 
27) .     Dabney. 

Because  the  old  Latin  translator  said  diaholus,  which  is  not  properly  a  Latin  word, 
we  say  devil,  not  originally  English.  Had  he,  on  the  contrary,  used  the  term  calum- 
niator, we  had  probably  substituted  for  it  slanderer,  or  some  term  equivalent.  Camp- 
bell. 

Aia/Soxoc,  fii/xm,  and  S'a.ifjtcvioii,  are  rendered  in  the  common  translation  almost  invMia- 
bly  devil.  The  word  h^t^oxoz,  in  its  ordinary  acceptation,  signifies  calwmmator ,  tra- 
ducer, false  accuser,  from  the  verb  Sinfia.Kxiiv,  to  calumniate,  &c.  Though  the  word  is 
sometimes,  both  in  the  Old  Testament  and  in  the  New,  applied  to  men  and  women  of 

*  See  also  2  Tim.  iii,  3 ;  Titus  ii,  3 ;  where  the  word  in  the  plural  ia  rendered,  by  the  common  transla- 
tors, false  accusers.     Trans. 


MATTHEW'S   HISTORY.  407 

this  character,  it  is  by  way  of  eminence,  employed  fo  denote  that  apostate  angel,  who 
is  exhibited  to  us,  particularly  in  the  New  Testament,  as  the  great  enemy  of  God  and 
man.     Campbell. 

AtifAWov  occurs  frequently  in  the  Gospels,  and  always  in  reference  to  possessions, 
real  or  supposed.  But  the  word  iut^uMs  is  never  so  applied.  .  .  What  places  the  differ- 
ence of  signification  in  the  clearest  light  is  that,  though  both  words  SixfiiKos  and  ioLi/jm- 
im,  occur  often  in  tlie  Septuagint,  they  are  invariably  used  for  translating  different 
Hebrew  words.  .  .  What  the  precise  idea  of  the  demons,  to  whom  possessions  were 
ascribed,  then  was,  it  would  perhaps  be  impossible  for  us,  with  any  certainty  to  affirm ; 
but  as  it  is  evident  that  the  two  words,  iiafinM!  and  Sn/tmov,  are  not  once  con- 
founded, though  the  first  occurs  in  the  New  Testament  upwards  of  thirty  times,  and 
the  second  about  sixty ;  they  can  by  no  just  rule  of  interpretation,  be  rendered  by  the 
same  term.  .  .  The  unlearned  English  reader  will  object.  Where  is  the  impropriety  in 
speaking  of  a  devil  .■'  Is  any  thing  more  common  in  the  New  Testament .'  How  oflen 
is  there  mention  of  persons  possessed  with  a  devil?  We  hear  too  of  numbers  of  them. 
Out  of  Mary  Magdalene  went  seven ;  and  out  of  the  furious  man  who  made  the  sepul- 
chres his  residence,  a  legion.  The  Greek  student  needs  not  to  be  informed,  that  in 
none  of  those  places,  is  the  term  ef«,2(!^oc,  but  ioLiftm  or  Saifnoym.  Nor  can  any  thing  be 
clearer  from  Scripture  than  that,  though  the  demons  are  innumerable,  there  is  but  one 
devil  in  the  universe.     Campbell. 

I  have  never  used  the  term  devil  in  this  translation,  and  from  the  same  consideration 
that  I  have  avoided  those  of  hdl,  damrmtion,  and  other  impertinent  and  repulsive 
expressions  of  that  class.  The  common  translation,  by  indiscriminately  denoting 
several  Greek  words  by  the  same  one  in  English,  has  thrown  the  latter  into  confusion, 
and  led  to  great  misapprehension.  I  have  chosen  to  adopt  various  other  terms,  which, 
while  more  consonant  to  the  original  and  the  respective  context,  are  neither  harsh, 
vindictive,  impious,  nor  vulgar.  The  sands  of  the  sea-shore  would  scarcely  outnumber 
the  examples  of  low  profanity  and  other  mischiefs,  which  have  followed  in  the  train  of 
such  unfortunate  interpretations  of  the  usual  version.     Trans. 

Matt,  iv,  3 ;  p.  44, 1.  12.  If  thou  art  a  son  of  God.  T.  If  thou  art  the  son  of  God.  R. 
T.  If  thou  be  a  son  of  God.  Campbell.  Or, asonof  God,uio;  too  emu:  viocisheTe,a.nd 
in  Luke  iv,  3,  written  without  the  article  ;  and  therefore  should  not  be  translated  The 
Son,  as  if  it  were  o  woe,  which  is  a  phrase  that  is  applicable  to  Christ  as  the  Messiah  : 
but  it  is  certain,  whatever  Satan  might  suspect,  he  did  not  fully  know  that  the  person 
he  tempted  was  the  true  Messiah.  Perhaps  one  grand  object  of  his  temptation  was  to 
find  him  out.     Clarke. 

Matt,  iv,  21 ;  p.  44, 1.  44.  In  a  fishing-boat.  T.  In  a  ship.  R.  T.  In  a  vessel.  It 
was  not  a  '  ship,'  and  hardly  a  '  vessel,'  which  the  fishermen  on  the  Sea  of  Galilee  used, 
but  a  large  kind  of  boat  or  bark.     E.  S.  Gannett. 

Matt,  iv,  17 ;  p.  44,  1.  37.  Reform.  T.  Repent.  R.  T.  Reform,  for  the  reign  of 
heaven,  &c.  Campbell.  Many  other  interpreters  also  prefer  the  word  reform  in  this 
passage,  and  wherever  this  exhortation  occurs,  as  better  expressing  the  full  extent  of 
the  original.  Clarke.  The  same  remark  may  be  extended  to  reformation  instead  of 
repentance  ;  but  Wakefield  on  Matthew  iii,  8,  observes,  '  This  verse  shows  how  im- 
properly Dr  Campbell  renders  /AiTuvoeiv  by  reform  :  for  the  proper  fruits  of  reformation 
is  absurd:  the  fruits  required  being  reformation  itself.'  Trans.  Min-ttnia.  implies  a 
change  of  conduct,  as  well  as  sorrow  for  what  is  past.     Campbell. 

Matt,  iv,  24 ;  p.  45, 1.  6.  Demoniacs.  T.  Those  which  were  possessed  with  devils. 
R.  T.  Our  common  version  which  renders  the  word  SAi/iovi^o/tivms,  those  possessed  by 
devils,  is  not  strictly  correct ;  as  the  word  devil,  S'mChm;,  is  not  found  in  the  plural  in 
any  part  of  the  Sacred  Writings,  when  speaking  of  evil  spirits  :  for  though  there  are 
multitudes  of  Demons,  Mark  v,  9;  yet  it  appears  there  is  but  one  devil,  who  seems  to 
be  supreme,  or  head  over  all  the  rest.  Clarke.  Those  possessed  with  devils :  rendered 
by  Campbell,  Wakefield,  and  most  translators,  in  this  and  similar  passages,  —  demoni- 
acs.    Dabneij. 


408  APPENDIX. 

The  proper  translation  of  JVi^cvjov  is  demon,  fiend,  or  evil  spirit,  improperly  rendered 
devil,  in  the  received  text;  and  thereby  confounding  the  use  of  the  word  imSoMt,  which 
is  also  translated  devil  in  that  version,  and  thus  in  both  cases  often  incorrectly,  applied 
to  Satan.     See  notes  on  Matthew  iv,  1 .     Tkans. 

Matt,  iv,  25  ;  p.  45, 1.  7.  This  verse  is  immediately  connected  with  the  5th  chapter, 
and  should  not  be  separated  from  it.     Clarke. 

Matt.  V.  5 ;  p.  45, 1.  12.  Happy  the  meek.  In  some  good  MSS.,  and  several  ancient 
versions,  the  fourth  and  fifth  verses  are  transposed.     Clarke. 

Matt.  V,  17 ;  p.  45, 1.  31.  I  have  not  come  to  subvert,  hut  to  establish.  T,  I  am  not 
come  to  destroy,  but  to  fulfil.  R.  T.  The  precepts  of  philosophy,  and  of  the  Hebrew 
code,  laid  hold  of  actions  only.  Jesus  pushed  his  scrutinies  into  the  heart  of  man ; 
erected  his  tribunal  in  the  region  of  his  thoughts,  and  purified  the  waters  at  the  foun- 
tain-head. .  .  He  taught  emphatically,  the  doctrine  of  a  future  state,  which  was 
either  doubted  or  disbelieved  by  the  Jews ;  and  wielded  it  with  efficacy,  as  an  impor- 
tant incentive,  supplementary  to  the  other  motives  to  moral  conduct.     Jefferson. 

Human  laws  labor  under  many  and  great  imperfections.  They  cannot  reach  that 
catalogue  of  secret  crimes  which  are  committed  without  any  witness,  save  the  all- 
seeing  eye  of  that  Being  whose  presence  is  every  where,  and  whose  laws  reach  the 
hidden  recesses  of  vice,  and  carry  their  sanctions  to  the  thoughts  and  intents  of  the 
heart.  In  this  view  the  doctrines  of  the  Bible  supply  all  the  deficiencies  of  human 
laws,  and  lend  an  essential  aid  to  the  administration  of  justice.     Kent. 

Purify  the  fountain,  and  the  stream  will  be  pure.  And  what  is  there  so  efficacious, 
nay,  what  is  there  that  has  any  power  at  all  to  produce  an  effect,  but  the  G-ospel  of  the 
Kedeemer  carried  home  to  the  heart  by'his  Spirit  ^  Mere  human  virtue  is  a  cheat  — 
a  scintillation  at  best,  which  we  see  continually  extinguished  by  temptation.  It  has 
no  power  to  resist  the  call  of  selfish  ambition,  and  the  tissue  of  vile  means  and  agents 
which  such  an  ambition  never  fails  to  employ.  It  may  make  a  show  in  public  ;  but  it 
has  no  power  to  resist  the  temptations  which  solicit  the  passions  of  man  in  private, 
and  which  have  already  poisoned  all  the  springs  of  moral  action  among  us.  Nothing 
less  than  the  living  conviction  of  an  ever  present  God,  before  whom  we  are  acting 
and  thinking  and  speaking,  and  that  we  have  a  future  state  of  never-ending  existence, 
dependent  on  his  approbation,  can  impose  a  moment's  restraint  on  the  indulgence  of 
human  passion  ;  and  nothing  can  reconcile  man  to  such  a  restraint,  but  the  formation 
of  a  new  spirit  within  him,  which  will  convert  that  restraint  into  liberty  and  privilege, 
and  make  the  service  of  God  his  highest  happiness  here,  as  well  as  his  only  hope  here- 
after. . — ■  This  is  the  spiritual  work  of  the  Gospel  of  the  Redeemer,  which  has  brought 
life  and  immortality  to  light,  and  furnished  to  man  a  motive  and  spring  of  action, 
which  enables  him  to  tread  the  earth  and  all  its  vile  pursuits  beneath  his  feet,  in  the 
contemplation  of  that  immortality  to  which  he  is  hastening.      Wirt. 

It  seems  to  me,  that  just  in  proportion  as  the  human  mind  makes  progress,  the  in- 
ward evidences  of  Christianity,  the  marks  of  divinity  which  it  wears  on  its  own  brpw, 
are  becoming  more  and  more  important.  I  refer  to  the  evidences  which  are  drawn 
from  its  excellence,  purity,  and  happy  influences  ;  from  its  adaptation  to  the  spiritual 
wants,  to  the  weakness  and  the  greatness,  of  human  nature,  from  the  original  and  un- 
borrowed character,  the  greatness  of  soul,  and  the  celestial  loveliness  of  its  founder  ; 
from  its  unbounded  benevolence,  corresponding  with  the  spirit  of  the  universe  ; 
and  from  its  views  of  God's  parental  character  and  purposes,  of  human  duty  and  per- 
fection, and  of  a  future  state  ;  views  manifestly  tending  to  the  exaltation  and  perpetual 
improvement  of  our  nature,  yet  wholly  opposed  to  the  character  of  the  age  in  which 
they  were  unfolded.     Channing. 

Matt.  V,  21 ;  p.  45, 1.  40.  To  the  ancients .  T .  By  them  of  old  time.  'S-.T.  To  them 
of  old  time,  (not  by  them).  This  change  of  preposition,  (and  in  verse  27,  and  33 
also),  is  approved  by  Grotius,  Whitby,  Campbell,  and  Wakefield.  Dabney.  Tliou 
shalt  not  kill.  In  our  translation  it  is,  ye  have  heard  that  it  was  said  by  them  of  old 
time.     However,  the  sense  of  the  passage  and  the  opposition  of  the  clause,  But  I  say 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  409 

unto  you,  require  that  a^^cucn  should  be  translated  not  by,  but  to  them  of  old  time,  in 
the  dative  case.    Macknight. 

Matt.  V,  22  ;  p.  45, 1.  45.  Will  be  exposed  to  the  gehenna  of  fire.  T.  Shall  be  in  dan- 
ger of  hell  fire.  R.  T.  Will  be  liable  to  the  torment  of  fire.  E.  S.  Gannett.  The  inter- 
pretation of  this  passage,  in  the  words  of  a  great  scripturist,  Dr  Samuel  Clarke,  is  as 
follows  ;  —  that  the  three  gradations  of  crimes  are  an  allusion  to  the  three  different 
degrees  of  punishment,  in  the  three  courts  of  judicature  among  the  Jews  ;*  —  and  our 
Saviour's  meaning  was,  that  every  degree  of  sin,  from  its  first  conception  to  its  out- 
rage, —  every  degree  of  malice  and  hatred,  shall  receive  from  God  a  punishment  pro- 
portionable to  the  offence.  Whereas  the  old  law,  according  to  the  Jewish  interpreta- 
tion, extended  not  to  these  things  at  all,  —  forbade  only  murder  and  outward  injuries  : 
—  whosoever  shall  say,  thou  fool,  shall  be  in  danger  of  hell-fire.  ■ —  The  sense  of  which 
is,  not  that  in  the  strict  and  literal  acceptation,  every  rash  and  passionate  expression 
shall  be  punished  with  eternal  damnation  —  (for  who  then  would  be  saved  ?)  —  but  that 
at  the  exact  account  in  the  judgment  of  the  great  day,  every  secret  thought  and  intent 
of  the  heart  shall  have  its  just  estimation  and  weight,  in  the  degrees  of  punishment 
which  shall  be  assigned  to  every  one  in  his  final  state.     Sterne. 

These  expressions  are  not  to  be  understood  literally,  for  our  Lord  did  not  describe 
in  them  the  administration  of  justice  which  then  prevailed,  but  by  comparisons  familiar 
to  those  whom  he  addressed  he  illustrated  the  truth,  that  they  might  commit  grievous 
sins  concerning  which  their  teachers  had  been  silent.  Unjust  or  immoderate  anger, 
contemptuous  epithets,  and  passionate  reproach,  were  in  fact  breaches  of  that  law  of 
social  duty,  every  violation  of  which  was  an  offence  of  greater  or  less  magnitude 
against  the  Supreme  Lawgiver  and  Judge.     E.  S.  Gannett. 

As  there  could  not  be  a  greater  punishment  inflicted  than  death,  in  the  above  terrific 
forms,  and  this  was  to  be  inflicted  for  minor  crimes  ;  then  the  punishment  of  murder 
must  not  only  have  death  here,  but  a  hell  of  fire  in  the  eternal  world  attached  to  it. 
Clarke. 

In  the  common  translations  of  this  verse,  there  is  a  confounding  of  things  present 
and  future,  of  things  human  and  divine,  that  illy  comports  with  the  wisdom  and  dignity 
of  the  speaker.  What  affinity  exists  between  judges,  a  council,  and  hell-fire  .'  Why 
should  one  expression  of  anger  only  subject  a  person  to  human  judges,  and  another 
subject  him  to  hell-fire,  in  the  usual  sense  of  these  words  !  Now  if  the  terms  in  this 
verse  conveyed  the  same  meaning  to  us  which  they  conveyed  to  the  audience  which 
the  Saviour  at  that  time  addressed,  we  would  discover  a  propriety  and  beauty  in  them 
which  is  not  manifest  in  the  common  translations  of  them.  The  fact  is  that  the  allu- 
sions in  this  verse,  are  all  to  human  institutions  or  customs  among  the  Jews ;  and  the 
judges,  the  sanhedrin,  and  the  hell-fire  here  introduced,  are  all  human  punishments. 
Parkhurst  observes  on  the  phrase  Tuna  jri/goc,  a  Gehenna  of  fire,  that  in  its  outward 
and  primary  sense,  it  relates  to  that  dreadful  doom  of  being  burnt  alive  in  the  valley 
of  Hinnom.    Alexander  Campbell. 

In  danger  of  helUfire :  this  figure  used  in  those  times  to  denote  future  punishment, 
is  borrowed  from  the  fire  which  was  burning  constantly  in  the  valley  of  Hinnom. 
MSS  Notes.    Dabney.    See  Note  on  Mark  ix,  43.    Trans. 

Shall  be  obnoxious  to  a  gehenna  of  fire,  that  is,  by  a  common  figure  of  speech,  '  ob- 
noxious to  the  fire  of  the  valley  of  Hinnom,'  obnoxious  to  a  degree  of  punishment 
which  may  be  fitly  represented  by  that  fire.    Macknight. 

That  ynnct,  gehenna,  is  employed  in  the  New  Testament  to  denote  the  place  of  future 
punishment  prepared  for  the  devil  and  his  angels,  is  indisputable.  Campbell.^  The 
word  yiinn  is  the  appropriate  name  of  hell  in  the  Scriptures.    Dwight. 

*  Judgment  and  counsel  probably  refer  to  different  courts  of  Judicature  among  the  Jews.    Priestley, 
t  Qehenna  is  found  twelve  times  in  the  New  Testament,  namely  j  Matt,  v,  92,29,  30  j  x,  28  j  xviii,  9; 

xxiii,  15, 23 ;  Mark  ix,  34, 44,  47 ;  Luke  xii,  5 ;  James  iii,  6.    In  2  Peter  ii,  4,  TagTajaxrat,  Tartarus,  is 

also  rendered  hell  in  the  received  version.    Trans. 

52 


410  APPENDIX. 

HeU  is  universally  and  exclusively  used  in  our  language  (excepting  when  it  is  figu- 
ratively  transferred  to  some  scene  or  condition  in  this  life)  to  represent  the  state  of  the 
wicked  after  death.  Unless  therefore  gehenna  is  meant  to  signify  exclusively  suffering 
or  punishment  in  another  life,  it  cannot  be  rendered  by  hdl.  To  define  a  general  term 
by  one  of  partial  signification  is  certainly  wrong.  Have  we  then  any  word  in  English 
that  will  exactly  express  the  force  of  the  Greek .'  I  believe  not ;  for  we  have  none 
that  suggests  that  idea  of  its  origin  which  was  also  included  in  the  word  gehenna. 
Unless  we  adopt  this  term  into  our  language,  we  must  be  satisfied  with  giving  the 
idea  which  it  ^vas  made  the  instrument  of  conveying,  viz.  extreme  and  excruciating 
punishment.  The  word  torment  1  have  thought  preferable  to  any  other  for  this  purpose 
and  have  therefore  used  it  in  the  translation.    E.  S.  Gannett.  ' 

The  common  method  of  distinguishing  yima.  from  ahs,  hitherto  observed  by  trans- 
lators, has  been  to  retain  the  word  gehemia,  and  translate  hades  either  heU  or  grave 
as  appeared  most  to  suit  the  context.  I  have  chosen  to  reverse  that  method,  to  render 
■yanct  always  hell  and  to  retain  the  word  hades.     Campbell. 

The  preceding  writer  assigns  as  one  reason  for  the  distinction  he  makes,  that '  though 
English  ears  are  not  entirely  familiarized  to  either  term,  they  are  much  more  so  to  the 
latter  than  the  former,  in  consequence  of  the  greater  use  made  of  the  latter  in  theo- 
logical writings.'  I  am  not  aware  that  such  is  the  fact  in  relation  to  the  mass  of  rea- 
ders ;  and  when  it  is  considered,  what  confusion  the  common  translation  of  the  Bible 
has  thrown  over  the  word  hdl,  by  the  almost  universal  and  indiscriminate  rendering  of 
the  Greek  words  by  that  term,  I  have  concluded  in  this  translation  to  adopt  the  terms 
gehenna  and  hades,  and  thus  uniformly  to  designate  the  difference  of  expression  em- 
braced in  the  original.  See  the  Notes  on  Matt,  xi,  23 ;  Luke  xvi,  23 ;  Acts  ii,  31. 
Trans. 

In  the  Scriptures,  the  punisbnent  of  sinners,  as  immediately  inflicted  by  the  hand  of 
God,  is  necessarily  exhibited  in  general  terms,  and  in  a  phraseology,  not  used  accord- 
ing to  its  simple,  or  literal  meaning,  but  employed  in  the  way  of  simile  and  allusion. 
It  is  called  Death.  It  is  presented  to  us  as  the  sufferance  of  the  Wrath  of  God.  It  is 
called  Darkness  and  the  Mist,  and  blackness  of  darkness  :  and  sometimes  the  Shadow 
of  Death.  It  is  often  styled  i^tre ;  a  Furnace  of  fire ;  a  Lake  of  fire  and  brimstone; 
the  fire  prepared  for  the  devil  and  his  angels.  AH  these  are  figurative  representations ; 
but  not  on  this  account  the  less  awful.  They  are  so  employed  as  to  convey  to  us  the 
most  terrible  images,  which  have  ever  been  presented  to  the  human  mind ;  and  such 
as  in  all  ages  have,  more  than  any  others,  awakened  alarm  and  anguish  in  the  heart 
of  man.  The  sufferings  of  the  impenitent  will  also  spring  from  themselves :  and  the 
moral  character  of  sinners  will  in  itsdf,  and  in  its  effects,  constitute  much  of  their  misery 
in  the  future  world.    Dwight. 

Men's  ignorance  of  the  great  truth  stated  in  this  discourse,*  is  seen  in  the  low  ideas 
attached  by  multitudes  to  the  word  salvation.  Ask  multitudes  what  is  the  chief  evil 
from  which  Christ  came  to  save  them,  and  they  will  tell  you  '  From  hell,  from  penal 
fires,  from  future  punishment.'  Accordingly  they  think,  that  salvation  is  something 
which  another  may  achieve  for  them,  very  much  as  a  neighbor  may  quench  a  confla- 
gration that  menaces  their  dwellings  and  lives.  That  word  hell,  which  is  used  so 
seldom  in  the  sacred  pages,  which  in  a  faithful  translation,  would  not  once  occur  in 
the  writings  of  Paul,  and  Peter,  and  John,  which  we  meet  only  in  four  or  five  dis- 
courses of  Jesus,  and  which  all  persons,  acquainted  with  Jewish  geography,  know  to 
be  a  metaphor,  a  figure  of  speech,  and  not  a  literal  expression,  this  word,  by  a  perverse 
and  exaggerated  use,  has  done  unspeakable  injury  to  Christianity.  It  has  possessed 
and  diseased  men's  imaginations  with  outward  tortures,  shrieks,  and  flames ;  given 
them  the  idea  of  an  outward  ruin  as  what  they  have  chiefly  to  dread ;  turned  their 
thoughts  to  Jesus,  as  an  outward  deliverer ;  and  thus  blinded  them  to  his  true  glory, 
which  consists  in  his  setting  free  and  exalting  the  soul.  Men  are  flying  from  an  out- 
ward hell,  when  in  truth  they  carry  within  them  the  hell  which  they  should  chiefly 

*  Tho  great  good  which  God  conrors  tlirough  Jesua  Christ ;  or,  tlie  ozcellonce  of  Christianity. 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  411 

dread.  The  salvation  which  man  chiefly  needs,  and  that  which  brings  with  it  all  other 
deliverance,  is  salvation  from  the  evil  of  his  own  mind.  There  is  something  far  worse 
than  outward  punishment.  It  is  sin  ;  it  is  the  state  of  a  soul,  which  has  revolted  from 
God,  and  cast  off  its  allegiance  to  conscience  and  the  divine  word  ;  which  renounces 
its  Father,  and  hardens  itself  against  Infinite  Love  ;  which,  endued  with  divine  powers, 
enthrals  itself  to  animal  lusts  ;  which  makes  gain  its  God  ;  which  has  capacities  of 
boundless  and  ever  growing  love,  and  shuts  itself  up  in  the  dungeon  of  private  inter- 
ests ;  which  gifted  with  a  self-directing  power,  consents  to  be  a  slave,  and  is  passively 
formed  by  custom,  opinion,  and  changing  events ;  which  living  under  God's  eye, 
dreads  man's  frown  or  scorn,  and  prefers  human  praise  to  its  own  calm  consciousness 
of  virtue  ;  which  tamely  yields  to  temptation,  shrinks  with  a  coward's  baseness  from 
the  perils  of  duty,  and  sacrifices  its  glory  and  peace  in  parting  with  self-control.  No 
ruin  can  be  compared  to  this.  This  the  impenitent  man  carries  with  him  beyond  the 
grave,  and  there  meets  its  natural  issue,  and  inevitable  retribution,  in  remorse,  self- 
torture,  and  woes  unknown  on  earth.  This  we  cannot  too  strongly  fear.  To  save  in 
the  highest  sense  of  that  word,  is  to  lift  the  fallen  spirit  from  this  depth,  to  heal  the 
diseased  mind,  to  restore  it  to  energy  and  freedom  of  thought,  conscience  and  love. 
This  was  chiefly  the  salvation  for  which  Christ  shed  his  blood.  For  this  the  holy 
spirit  is  given ;  and  to  this  all  the  truths  of  Christianity  conspire.     Channing. 

Matt.  V,  27;  p.  46, 1.  8.  You  have  learned  that  it  was  declared.  T.  Ye  have  heard 
that  it  was  said  ly  them  of  old  time.  R.  T.  By  the  ancients,  tois  aeX"^'"^  '^  omitted  by 
nearly  a  hundred  MSS,  and  some  of  them  of  the  very  greatest  antiquity  and  authority; 
also  by  the  Coptic,  Ethiopic,  .Armenian,  Gothic,  and  Slavonian  versions,  by  four  copies 
of  the  old  Itala  ;  and  by  Origen,  Cyril,  Theophylact,  Euthymius,  and  Hilary.  On  this 
authority  Wetstein  and  Griesbach  have  left  it  out  of  the  text.  Clarke.  The  words  are 
not  found  in  a  great  number  of  the  most  valuable  MSS  and  ancient  versions,  par- 
ticularly the  Syriac.  The  Vulgate  indeed  has  them.  Mill  and  Wetstein  reject  them. 
Camphell. 

Matt.  V,  34 ;  p.  46, 1.  24.  Swear  not  at  all.  It  seems  very  plain,  that  our  Lord  did 
not  have  in  view  judicial  oaths,  nor  oaths  that  might  be  taken  on  subjects  and  at  sea- 
sons the  solemnity  of  which  would  render  an  appeal  to  the  Supreme  Being  appropriate 
and  proper ;  but  those  frequent  and  familiar  oaths  which  were  allowed  in  the  conver- 
sation of  the  Jews,  and  are  still  heard  to  the  disgrace  of  Christian  communities.  E. 
S.  Gannett. 

How  directly  in  the  face  of  these  precepts  of  our  Master  is  that  habit  of  profane 
swearing,  in  which  so  many  who  bear  his  name  allow  themselves  to  their  own  great 
harm  and  to  the  discredit  of  religion.  Wherever  this  practice  prevails,  and  on  what- 
ever occasion  it  is  permitted  to  intrude  its  hateful  presence,  it  deserves  unqualified 
rebuke.  If  oaths  are  banished  from  what  is  called  genteel  society,  and  yet  are  pro- 
nounced in  the  common  scenes  of  life,  or  in  moments  of  passion  by  those  who  frequent 
the  higher  walks  of  society,  what  does  such  irregular  restraint  show  but  that  fear  of 
man  or  respect  for  woman  is  stronger  than  the  fear  or  the  love  of  God  .'  Alas,  it  is 
true  that  public  opinion  acts  more  powerfully  than  religious  principle  on  many  who 
profess  to  be  disciples  of  Jesus  Christ.     E.  S.  Gannett. 

Matt.  V,  37 ;  p.  46,  1.  29.  Originates  from  eoil.  T.  Cometh  of  evil.  R.  T.  The 
evil  one.  So  I  render  again  verse  39,  and  in  other  places  ;  as  our  translators  rightly 
render  below.  Nearly  in  the  same  manner,  chap,  xiii,  verse  19,  and  elsewhere,  the 
wicked  one.  Wakefield.  Proceedeth  from  evil,  ik  tou  atm^ou  ttrrir.  Some  render  it 
Cometh  from  the  evil  one,  supposing  Toy  B-ovugoy  to  be  the  genitive  of  o  n*ov«gof,  tJie  evil 
one,  that  is,  the  devil.  But  it  is  at  least  as  probably  the  genitive  of  to  irameov,  evil  in 
the  abstract,  or  whatever  this  epithet  may  be  justly  applied  to.  The  same  doubt  has 
been  raised  in  regard  to  that  petition,  in  the  Lord's  prayer,  Deliver  us  from  evil,  au-o 
Tou  ^tn^ou,  or  from  the  evil  one.  I  consider  it  as  a  maxim  in  translating,  that  when  a 
word  is,  in  all  respects,  equally  susceptible  of  two  interpretations,  one  of  which  as  a 
genus,  comprehends  the  other,  always  to  prefer  the  more  extensive.     Campbell. 


412  APPENDIX. 

Malt.' V,  38;  p.  46,1.30.  Eye  for  eye.  T.  An  eye  for  an  eye.  R.  T.  There  are 
two  opposite  descriptions  of  character,  under  which  mankind  may  generally  be  class- 
ed. The  one  possesses,  vigor,  firmness,  resolution;  is  daring  and  active,  quick  in  its 
sensibihties,  jealous  of  its  fame,  inflexible  in  its  purpose,  violent  in  its  resentments  : 
the  other,  meek,  yielding,  complying,  forgiving ;  not  prompt  to  act,  but  willing  to 
suffer ;  silent  and  gentle  under  rudeness  and  insult ;  suing  for  reconciliation  where 
others  would  demand  satisfaction.  The  former  of  these  characters  is,  and  ever  has 
been,  the  favorite  of  the  world.  It  is  the  character  of  great  men.  There  ia  a  dignity 
in  it,  which  universally  commands  respect.  The  latter  is  apt  to  be  deemed  poor-spirit- 
ed, tame,  and  abject.  Yet  so  it  has  happened,  that  with  the  Founder  of  Christianity 
this  latter  is  the  subject  of  his  commendation,  his  precepts,  his  example  ;  and  the  for- 
mer is  so  in  no  part  of  its  composition.  This  is  the  character  designed  in  the  follow- 
ing passage,  ver.  38  —  44.  The  morality  contained  in  this  is  no  common-place,  but  is 
truly  original.  Now  it  is  certainly  true,  however  contrary  it  may  be  to  popular  opin- 
ion, that  the  meek  and  yielding  character  possesses  most  of  true  worth,  both  as  being 
most  difficult  to  be  acquired  and  sustained,  and  as  contributing  most  to  the  happiness 
of  social  life  ;  for,  if  this  disposition  were  universal,  the  world  would  be  a  society  of 
friends ;  and,  if  the  disposition  be  only  partial,  as  is  the  case  in  the  world ;  if  a  few  be 
actuated  by  it,  among  a  multitude  who  are  not,  in  whatever  degree  it  does  prevail,  in 
the  same  proportion  it  prevents  and  terminates  quarrels,  the  great  disturbers  of  human 
happiness,  and  the  great  sources  of  human  misery,  as  far  as  happiness  and  misery  de- 
pend upon  man.     Paley. 

Matt.  V,  39,  40 ;  p.  46, 1.  31.  If  any  one  strike have  thy  mantle.  T.  Whoso- 
ever sliall  smite liave  thy  cloak.  R.  T.     '  If  a  man  smite  one  cheek,  turn  the 

other '  — '  If  he  take  thy  cloak,  let  him  take  thy  coat  also '  —  That  is,  I  suppose,  rather 
than  on  a  vindictive  principle  avail  yourself  of  that  remedy  the  law  allows  you,  in  the 
way  of  retaliation,  for  that  was  the  subject  immediately  under  the  discussion  of  the 
speaker.  Nothing  is  so  contrary  to  the  genius  of  the  Gospel,  as  the  gratification  of 
resentment  and  revenge  ;  but  I  cannot  easily  persuade  myself  to  think,  that  the  author 
of  that  dispensation  could  possibly  advise  his  followers  to  consult  their  own  peace  at 
the  expense  of  the  peace  of  society  ;  or  inculcate  an  universal  abstinence  from  the  use 
of  lawful  remedies,  to  the  encouragement  of  injury  and  oppression.     Cowper. 

St  Paul  again  seems  to  condemn  the  practice  of  going  to  law,  '  Why  do  ye  not 
rather  suffer  wrong  .'*  &c.'  But  if  we  look  again,  we  shall  find  that  a  litigious  temper 
had  obtained,  and  was  prevalent  among  the  professors  of  the  day.  This  he  condemned, 
and  with  good  reason  ;  it  was  unseemly  to  the  last  degree,  that  the  disciples  of  the 
Prince  of  Peace  should  worry  and  vex  each  other  with  injurious  treatment,  and  unne- 
cessary disputes,  to  the  scandal  of  their  religion  in  the  eyes  of  the  Heathen.  But 
surely  he  did  not  mean  any  more  than  his  Master,  in  the  place  above  alluded  to,  that 
the  most  harmless  members  of  society  should  receive  no  advantage  of  its  laws,  or 
should  be  the  only  persons  in  the  world,  who  should  derive  no  benefit  from  those  insti- 
tutions, without  which  society  cannot  subsist.  Neither  of  them  could  mean  to  throw 
down  the  pale  of  property,  and  lay  the  Christian  part  of  the  world  open,  throughout 
all  ages,  to  the  incursions  of  unlimited  violence  and  wrong.     Conner. 

I  think  it  plain,  that  the  expressions  of  smiting  on  the  cheek,  taking  away  the  coat, 
&c,  are  of  the  same  kind  with  those  ver.  19  ;  namely,  the  cutting  off  the  rigid  huind, 
and  the  plucking  out  the  right  eye.  They  are  all  figurative  ;  and  denote  sometlring  less 
than  they  literally  import.    Macknight. 

Matt.  V,  47;  p.-  46,1.  44.  Friends.  T.  Brethren.  R.  T.  Instead  of  uliX^ms, 
brethren,  upwards  ,  of  one  hundred  MSS,  and  several  of  them  of  great  authority  and 
antiquity,  have  <fiMus, friends.  The  Armenian,  Slavonic,  and  Gothic  versions,  with  the 
latter  Syriac,  and  some  of  the  primitive  Fathers,  agree  in  this  reading.     Clarke. 

Matt.  V,  47 ;  p.  46, 1. 45.  Pagans.  T.  Publicans.  R.  T.  Tixmxi,  — but  iSvikoi,  heathens, 
is  adopted  by  Griesbach,  instead,  of  riKmai,  on  the  authority  of  the  Vatican.  &  Bezce, 
and  several  others  ;  together  with  the  Coptic,  Syriac  later,  and  Syriac  Jerusalem  ;  two 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  413 

Arabic,  Persic,  Slavonic ;  all  the  Itala  but  one ;  Vvlgate,  Saxon,  and  several  of  the 
primitive  Fathers.  Clarke.  The  reading  is  0/  ihtKoi,  the  heathens,  in  the  Cambridge  and 
several  other  MSS.  It  is  supported  by  a  number  of  ancient  versions,  the  Vulgate, 
Coptic,  second  Syriac,  Ethiopic,  Arabic,  Saxon.  It  was  so  read  by  Chrysostom  and 
several  of  the  Fathers.  It  is,  besides,  much  in  our  Lord's  manner,  not  to  recur  to  the 
same  denomination  of  persons,  but  to  others  in  similar  circumstances.  Campbell. 
'  The  Gentiles'  —  the  Heathens,  whom  the  Jews  almost  held  in  abhorrence.  The 
common  version  has  '  publicans'  instead  of  Gentiles,  but  the  latter  reading  has  the 
better  support  from  manuscripts.     E.  S.  Gannett. 

Matt,  vi,  4,  6  ;  p.  47, 1.  10.  16.  Publicly.  T.  Openly.  R.  T.  Ev  to  <fav»g«.  Gries- 
baoh  retains  the  words  in  verse  4,  but  deems  them  of  very  doubtful  authority ;  and 
notes  the  same  expression  in  verse  6,  as  rejected  by  some  authorities,  but  thinks  it 
ought  not  to  be  omitted.  Trans.  Verse  4.  In  the  common  Greek  copies,  after 
an-oSna-it  <ra,  shall  reward  thee,  we  read  ev  to  <favfga>  j  which  our  translators  render  openly. 
But  these  words  aie  not  found  in  some  ancient  and  valuable  MSS,  were  not  received 
by  several  of  the  most  eminent  Fathers,  nor  have  been  admitted  into  the  Vulgate,  the 
Saxon,  or  the  Coptic  versions.     Campbell. 

Matt,  vi,  5  ;  p.  47, 1.  12.  Praying  —  at  the  corners  of  the  streets.  Our  Lord  is  here 
treating  of  private  prayer,  for  which  reason  his  rules  must  not  be  extended  to  public 
devotion.     Macknight. 

It  is  evident  that  the  force  of  this  precept  is  not  aimed  against  public  prayer,  but 
against  private  prayer  performed  in  public ;  against  the  ostentatious  display  which 
seeks  to  distinguish  us  from  others,  not  the  genuine  sympathy  which  makes  us  desi- 
rous of  blending  our  feelings  with  theirs  .'  It  was  devotion  obtruding  itself  in  the  face 
of  business,  amid  the  show  and  bustle  of  the  world.  It  did  not  seek  for  fellowship, 
.-  but  observation.  It  did  not  want  the  concurrence  of  men,  but  to  be  seen  by  them. 
Mrs  Barbauld. 

Matt,  vi,  11 ;  p.  47,  1.  23.  Necessary  subsistence.  T.  Daily  bread.  R.  T.  iirtiutrmv. 
This  interpretation  of  the  epithet  seems  to  be  as  just  as  any  :  That  which  is  sufficient  to 
our  life.    Macknight. 

Matt,  vi,  13 ;  p.  47, 1.  25.  For  thine  is  the  kingdom,  and  the  power,  and  the  glory,  for 
ever.  Amen.  R.  T.  The  whole  of  this  Doxology  is  rejected  by  Wetstein,  Griesbach, 
and  the  most  eminent  critics.  The  authorities  on  which  it  is  rejected  may  be  seen  in 
Griesbach  and  Wetstein,  particularly  in  the  second  edition  of  Griesbach's  Testament, 
who  is  fully  of  opinion,  that  it  never  made  a  part  of  the  sacred  text.  It  is  variously 
written  in  several  MSS,  and  omitted  by  most  of  the  Fathers,  both  Greek  and  Latin. 
As  the  Doxology  is  at  least  very  ancient,  and  was  in  use  among  the  Jews,  as  well  as 
all  the  other  petitions  of  this  excellent  prayer,  it  should  not,  in  my  opinion,  be  left  out 
of  the  text ;  merely  because  some  MSS  have  omitted  it,  and  it  has  been  variously 
written  in  others.   '  Clarke. 

This  doxology  is  wanting  not  only  in  several  ancient  Greek  MSS,  but  in  the  Vul- 
gate, Coptic,  Saxon  and  Arabic  versions.  It  was  not  in  the  Greek  copies  used  by 
Origen,  Gregory  Nyssen,  or  Cyril.  Cesarius  quotes  it,  not  as  from  the  scripture,  but 
as  from  the  liturgy  used  in  the  Greek  churches,  whence,  in  all  human  probability,  ac- 
cording to  the  judgment  of  the  most  celebrated  critics,  it  has  first  been  taken. 

Campbell. 

Matt,  vi,  18 ;  p.  47, 1.  34.  Will  reward  thee.  T.  Shall  reward  thee  openly.  R.  T. 
Openly.  Ev  tm  ipMi^tf.  These  words  are  omitted  by  nine  MSS  in  uncial  letters  ;  and 
by  more  than  one  hundred  others,  by  most  of  the  versions,  and  by  several  of  the  primi- 
tive fathers.  As  it  is  supported  by  no  adequate  authority,  Bengel,  Wetstein,  Gries- 
bach, and  others,  have  left  it  out  of  the  text.  Clarke.  In  regsCrd  to  the  18th  verse, 
the  number  of  MSS  as  well  as  of  ancient  versions  which  omit  the  phrase  are  so  many, 
that  Wetstein  has  thought  fit  to  reject  it.  Campbell.  The  same  expression  in  verse 
6,  as  well  as  18,  is  thought  by  Campbell  to  be  an  interpolation.    Tbahs. 


414  APPENDIX. 

Matt,  vi,  25;  p.  48, 1.  1.  Senot  amdotis.t.  Take  no  thought.  R.T.  Be  not  anx- 
iously careful,  /ah  ftt^i/jLvare ;  this  is  the  proper  meaning  of  the  word.  Mi^ifiiyit,  ataious 
solicitude,  from  fupt^m  tov  voot,  dividing,  or  distracting  the  mind.  Clarke.  Take  no 
thought.  I  do  not  think  there  is,  in  the  common  version,  a  more  palpable  deviation 
than  this  from  the  original.     Campbell. 

Home  takes  the  last  verse  of  this  chapter  as  a  text,  and  after  a  long  preamble,  de- 
precating in  a  facetious  strain  of  surprise  the  common  import  of  the  phrase,  take  no 
thought,  comes  to  this  grave  conclusion.  '  The  truth  is,  that  the  Greek  word  here 
rendered  take  no  thought,  signifies  properly,  Be  not  anxious,  solicitous,  miserable  about 
to-morrow ;  literally  and  strictly,  be  not  of  a  doubtful,  divided  mind.'  Moreover,  Park- 
hurst  remarks ;  '  The  word  in  the  original  Greek  bears  a  much  stronger  sense  than  is 
conveyed  by  our  expression, '  Take  no  thought.'  At  the  time  when  our  English  trans- 
lation was  made,  the  phrase  '  to  take  thought'  appears  to  have  implied  anxious  thought 
and  caieftdness.'  Now,  as  there  is  here  a  manifest  falsity  of  interpretation,  even  di- 
rectly opposed  to  other  parts  of  revelation,  why  not  correct  this  text,  with  numerous 
others  of  a  similar  class,  and  when,  in  the  revolutions  of  language,  the  word  anxious, 
like  the  words  take  no  thought,  shall  have  become  equivalent  to  the  word  regardless, 
it  will  then  be  in  time  to  search  the  vocabulary  for  some  other  materials,  which  will 
express  the  present  idea  of  inordinate  solicitude  ?    Tkans. 

Matt,  vi,  30 ;  p.  48, 1. 13.  Cast  into  the  furnace.  T.  Cast  into  the  oven.  R.  T.  To- 
m/rrrow  are  cast  into  the  oven.  The  scarcity  of  fuel  in  the  East  obliges  the  inhabitants 
to  burn  the  dried  stalks  of  plants  and  other  substances.     E.  S.  Gannett. 

Matt,  vii,  1 ;  p.  48, 1.  21.  Judge  not.  I  think  it  may  be  generally  asserted,  that  those 
who  are  the  readiest  to  examine  others,  are  the  most  backward  to  examine  themselves  ; 
that  the  more  we  feel  inclined  to  scrutinize  our  brother  Christians  with  severity,  the 
less  able  are  we  to  endure  such  a  scrutiny  ourselves.  Before  Christianity  can  arrive 
at  any  degree  of  perfection,  there  must  be  less  tongue,  and  more  heart  work.  If  a  man 
be  faithful  to  his  convictions,  he  will  find  too  much  to  do  at  home,  to  busy  himself 
with  what  he  has  no  opportunity  of  sufficiently  knowing,  —  his  neighbor's  heart.  We 
are  to  consider  ourselves  at  all  times  as  miserably  ignorant ;  and  it  is  only  while  we 
do  consider  ourselves  as  such,  that  we  are  in  a  disposition  to  learn  of  a  teacher  so 
averse  to  the  pride  of  the  human  heart,  as  Jesus  Christ.     Henry  Kirke  White. 

Matt,  vii,  4 ;  p.  48, 1.  25.  Let  me  take  the  splinter  from  thine  eye.  T.  Let  me  pull  out 
the  mote  out  of  thine  eye.  R.  T.  PuU  out  the  mote :  rather  an  extremely  small  splinter 
or  shiver  of  wood ;  so  Grotius,  Wakefield,  &c.  The  opposing  term  which  follows, 
Campbell  well  translates  thorn,  instead  of  beam ;  which  word  has  too  much  obscured 
the  true  meaning  of  the  text.    Ddbney. 

Matt,  vii,  14  ;  p.  48, 1.  45.  How  narrow  is  the  gate.  Because,  is  the  textual,  and 
How,  the  marginal  reading,  in  the  received  version.  Tkahs.  Instead  of  ot(,  because, 
I  should  prefer  t/,  how,  which  reading  is  supported  by  a  great  majority  of  the  best  MSS, 
versions  and  fathers.     Clarke.     Griesbach  adopts  the  corrected  reading.     Trans. 

Matt,  vii,  29 ;  p.  49, 1.  26.  Mt  as  the  scribes.  Several  excellent  MSS,  and  almost 
all  the  ancient  versions  read,  xai  o<  (fnpiirajct,  and  the  Pharisees.  Clarke.  The  Vulgate, 
Syriac,  Saxon,  and  Armenian  versions,  with  one  MS.,  add,  and  the  Pliarisees.  Camp- 
bell. 

Matt,  viii,  2 ;  p.  49, 1.  28.  Prostrating  himself.  T.  Worshipped.  R.  T.  Prostrated 
himself.  So  the  word  should  be  translated  here,  and  in  many  other  places,  where  in 
the  common  version  it  is  rendered  '  worshipped.'  This  appears  to  have  been  its  ori- 
ginal meaning,  signifying  an  act  expressive  of  great  respect,  whence  it  came  to  signify 
worship  paid  to  God,  as  in  Matt,  iv,  10.  E.  S.  Gannett.  See  Note  on  Matt,  ii,  2. 
Trans. 

Matt,  viii,  5 ;  p.  49, 1.  35.  M  centurion.  This  officer  in  the  Roman  army  had  the 
command  of  a  hundred  men.  Priestley,  Campbell.  Griesbach  removes  the  words  tm 
Iwrm,  Jesus,  from  the  text  into  the  margin,  as  an  interpolation.    Trans. 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  415 

Matt,  viii,  8,  p.  49, 1.  39.  But  command  hy  word.  T.  Sut  speak  the  word  only.  R.T. 
Or  instead  of  sure  \oyov,  read  iim  Kaya,  Speak  by  word  or  command.  This  reading  is 
supported  by  the  most  extensive  evidence  from  MSS,  versions  and  fathers.     Clarke. 

Matt,  viii,  11 ;  p.  49, 1.  46.  Will  recline.  T.  Shall  sit  down.  R.  T.  Will  he  placed  at 
table.  Trans.  Will  recline  with  Abraham  —  in  the  kingdom  of  God.  The  word  recline 
expresses  the  attitude  in  which  the  orientals  place  themselves  at  table.     E.  S.  Gannett. 

Matt,  viii,  15 ;  p.  50, 1.  8.  Entertained  him.  T.  Ministered  unto  them.  R.  T.  ai/To/f, 
them,  is  the  reading  of  most  of  the  printed  editions,  but  avrai,  to  him,  has  the  utmost 
evidence  in  its  support  from  MSS,  versions  and  fathers.  Clarke.  Him.  The  com- 
mon Greek  copies  have  ituTott,  them.  But  the  reading  is  aura,  him,  in  a  great  number 
of  MSS,  several  of  them  ancient ;  it  is  supported  also  by  some  of  the  old  versions  and 
fathers,  is  approved  by  Mill  and  Wetstein,  and  is  more  agreeable  than  the  other  to  the 
V7ords  in  construction,  none  but  Jesus  having  been  mentioned  in  the  preceding  words. 
Campbell. 

Matt,  viii,  18 ;  p.  50, 1. 14.  To  the  other  side.  T.  Unto  the  other  side.  R.  T,  To  go 
to  the  other  side,  i.  e.  of  the  Lake,  or  Sea,  of  Tiberias.  Capernaum,  where  Jesus  then 
was  (Matt,  viii,  5),  was  situated  at  the  northwestern  extremity  of  the  lake,  and  the 
territory  of  the  Gergesenes  lay  on  the  southeastern  shore.  It  was  necessary  therefore 
to  pass  over  the  whole  length  of  the  lake  in  going  from  the  one  place  to  the  other. 
E.  S.  Gannett. 

Matt,  viii,  29 ;  p.  50, 1.  34.  Son  of  God.  Griesbach  omits  the  word  Jesus,  on  the 
authority  of  several  MSS  of  the  greatest  antiquity  and  respectability ;  besides  some 
Versions,  and  several  of  the  Fathers,  I  heartily  concur  with  these  MSS,  &c.  Clarke. 
The  word  '  Jesus '  is  omitted  here  by  the  best  manuscripts,  but  it  is  found  in  Mark  and 
Luke.     E.  S.  Gannett. 

Matt,  viii,  31 ;  p.  50, 1.  37.  Send  us  away.  T.  Suffer  its  to  go  away.  R.  T.  Eir/Tfe^'ou 
»/<»  a<sri^6elv ;  this  is  the  common  reading,  but  amraa-TiiMt  nfta,!,  send  us  away,  appears 
more  genuine.  This  latter  reading,  Griesbach  has  adopted  on  the  authority  of  three 
ancient  MSS,  the  Coptic,  Sahidic,  Ethiopic,  Syriac,  all  the  AraMc,  Saxon,  most  of  the 
Itala,  and  the  Vulgate.  Send  us  away  seems  to  express  more  fully  the  absolute  power 
Jesus  Christ  had  over  them.     Clarke. 

Matt,  ix,  1 ;  p.  50, 1. 44.  This  verse  properly  belongs  to  the  preceding  chapter.    Clarke. 

Matt,  ix,  13;  p.  51,1.20.  But  sinners.  T.  But  sinners  unto  repentance.  K.T.  Most  of 
the  common  editions  add  e/c  ftitaLtokui,  unto  repentance  ;  but  this  is  omitted  in  the  Codex 
Vatic.  And  Bezai,  sixteen  others,  both  the  Syriac,  both  the  Persic,  Ethiop.  Armen. 
Gothic,  Anglo-Saxon,  all  the  Jtala  except  three,  the  Vulgate,  Clemens  Roman.  Origen, 
Basil,  Jerom,  Augustin,  Ambrose,  and  Barnabas.  The  omission  is  approved  by  Mill 
and  Bengel.     Griesbach  leaves  it  out  of  the  text.     Clarke. 

To  Reformation,  ut  /ivta.v(iia.v.  These  words  are  wanting  in  a  good  many  MSS.  There 
is  nothing  to  correspond  to  them  in  the  Vulgate,  Syriac,  Gothic,  Saxon,  and  Ethiopic 
versions.  Critics  are  divided  about  them.  To  me  there  scarcely  appears  sufficient 
evidence  for  rejecting  them.  Besides,  it  is  allowed  by  all,  that  if  they  be  not  expressed 
in  this  place,  they  are  understood.     CampbeU. 

Matt,  ix,  35 ;  p.  50, 1. 16.  Among  the  people.  R.  T.  Ev  tu  khu.  This  clause  is  omitted 
by  about  fifty  MSS,  several  of  them  of  the  first  antiquity  and  authority  ;  by  the  Com- 
plutensian,  and  by  Bengel ;  by  both  the  Syriac,  both  the  Arabic,  both  the  Persic  ;  the 
Ethiopic,  Gothic,  Saxon,  and  all  the  Jtala,  except  four.  Griesbach  has  left  it  out  of  the 
text.     Clarke. 

This  clause  is  wanting  in  many  MSS,  in  the  Vulgate,  the  Syriac,  and  most  other 
ancient  versions.  As  in  this  case  the  evidence  on  the  opposite  sides  may  be  said  to 
balance  each  other,  and  as  the  admission  or  the  rejection  makes  no  alteration  in  the 
sense ;  that  the  clause  possesses  a  place  in  the  common  Greek  editions,  and  in  the 
English  Translation  is  here  sufficient  ground  for  deciding  in  its  favor.     CampbeU. 

Matt,  ix,  36;  p.  52, 1.  18.  They  were  sorrowfully  afflicted.  T.  They  fainted.  R.  T. 
Instead  of  inKM/xmi,  fainted,  all  the  best  MSS,  Versions,  and  Fathers,  read  wmxfitia, 


416  APPENDIX. 

grieved,  and  melancholy.  Clarke.  Campbell  acknowledges  that  the  latter  is  the  word 
in  a  very  great  number  of  MSS,  but  prefers  the  common  reading,  translating  gtr«.v 
ix.MMIJ.tm  xnt  e^^i/jifiiyoi ,  they  were  scattered  and  exposed.  Griesbach  adopts  the  amended 
reading.     Trahs. 

Matt.  X,  1 ;  p.  52.  1.  23.  Over  impure  spirits.  T.  Mgainst  unclean  spirits.  R.  T. 
The  word  hhto.,  against,  which  our  translators  have  supplied  in  Italic,  is  found  in  many 
MSS  of  good  note,  and  in  the  principal  Versions.     Clarke. 

Matt.  X,  4 ;  p.  52, 1.  29.  Even  he  toho  betrayed  him,  or  delivered  him  up  ;  for  so,  I 
think,  0  XH.I  n-xfuScvs  tturoi,  should  be  translated.  The  common  translation,  who  also 
betrayed  him,  is  very  exceptionable,  as  it  seems  to  imply,  he  was  betrayed  by  some  others 
as  well  as  by  Judas.     Clarke. 

Matt.  X,  8 ;  p.  52, 1.  34.  Kaise  the  dead.  This  is  wanting  in  the  manuscripts 
marked  E  K  L  M  S  of  Griesbach,  and  in  those  marked  B  H  V  of  Matthai,  and  in  up- 
wards of  one  hundred  others.  It  is  also  wanting  in  the  Syriac,  (Vienna  edition)  latter 
Persic,  Sahidic,  Armenian,  Slavonic,  and  in  one  copy  of  the  Itala  ;  also  in  Mhanasius, 
Basil,  and  Chrysostom.  There  is  no  evidence  that  the  disciples  raised  any  dead  person 
previously  to  the  resurrection  of  Christ.  The  words  should  certainly  be  omitted, 
unless  we  could  suppose  that  the  authority  now  given  respected  not  only  their  present 
mission,  but  comprehended  also  their  future  conduct.  But  that  our  blessed  Lord  did 
not  give  this  power  to  his  disciples  at  this  time,  is,  I  think,  pretty  evident  from  verse  1 ; 
and  from  Luke  ix,  6, 10 ;  x,  19,  20 ;  where  if  any  such  power  had  been  given,  or  exer- 
cised, it  would  doubtless  have  been  mentioned.  JVetstein  has  rejected  it,  and  so  did 
Griesbach  in  his  first  edition ;  but  in  the  second  (1796)  he  has  left  it  in  the  text  with  a 
note  of  doubtfulness.  Clarke.  Campbell  and  Wakefield  reject  the  passage  as  an  in- 
terpolation.    Trans. 

In  several  copies,  the  clause,  raise  the  dead,  is  wanting  ;  for  which  reason,  and  be- 
cause the  disciples  did  not  raise  any  person  from  the  dead,  Dr  Mill  takes  it  to  be  an 
interpolation.  But  his  opinion  is  ill-founded,  as  it  is  certain  that  this,  with  several 
other  articles  in  the  apostles'  first  commission,  have  a  direct  relation  to  the  period  com- 
prehended under  that  more  extensive  commission,  which  they  received  after  their 
master's  resurrection.     See  ver.  18,  21,  23,  of  this  chapter.     Macknight. 

Matt.  X,  10 ;  p.  52, 1.  37.  Or  staves.  T.  JVor  yet  staves.  R.  T.  PafJoir,  a  staff,  as  in 
the  margin  ;  but  instead  of  ^nQov,  staff,  which  is  the  common  reading,  all  the  following 
MSS  and  versions  have  fiSims,  staves,  and  CEFGKLMPS  — V.,  ninety-three  others, 
Coptic,  .Armenian,  latter  Syriac,  one  of  the  Itala,  Chrysostom  and  Theophylact.  This 
reading  is  of  great  importance,  as  it  reconciles  this  place  with  Luke  ix,  3 ;  and  removes 
the  seeming  contradiction  from  Mark  vi,  8.     Clarke. 

The  common  reading  in  Greek  is  guSSoy,  staff.  This  is  one  of  the  few  instances  in 
which  our  translators  have  not  scrupled  to  desert  the  ordinary  editions,  and  say  staves, 
notwithstanding  that  the  Vulgate  agrees  with  the  common  Greek,  and  has  virgam, 
staff.  There  is  sufficient  ground,  however,  for  preferring  the  other  reading,  which  is 
not  only  well  supported  by  MSS,  some  versions,  and  old  editions,  and  is  approved  by 
Wetstein  and  other  critics ;  but  is  entirely  conformable  to  those  instructions  as  repre- 
sented by  the  other  Evangelists.  Campbell.  A  staff:  gafifov.  This  reading  has  the 
most  authority  from  versions  and  MSS.     Wakefield. 

Matt.  X,  12;  p.  52, 1.  40.  Thus  salute  it.  Peace  be  to  this  house.  T.  Salute  it. 
R.  T.  Wish  it  peace.  Wakefield.  Asj/ovrec  a^»i«  sv  rm  onun  toutoi,  saying,  '  Peace  be  to 
this  house.'  This  clause,  which,  as  explanatory  of  the  word  tt.tr71reLira.a6i,  is  necessary  to 
the  connexion  in  which  it  now  stands,  is  added  by  the  manuscripts  D  and  L,  forty- 
three  others,  the  Armenian,  Ethiopic,  Slavonic,  Saxon,  Vulgate,  all  the  copies  of  the  old 
Itala,  Theophylact  and  Hilary.  The  clause  is  also  found  in  several  modern  versions. 
Some  suppose  it  an  addition  taken  from  Luke,  but  there  is  nearly  as  much  reason  to 
believe  he  took  it  from  Matthew.     Clarke. 

Campbell  remarks,  that '  the  corresponding  words  in  Greek  are  found  in  some  MSS, 
but  not  in  bo  many  aa  to  give  any  countenance  for  relinquishing  the  common  reading.' 
Teans. 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  417 

Matt.  X,  23;  p.  53,  1.14.  In  this  city,  fly  to  another.  T.  In  this  city,  flee  ye  into 
another.  R.  T.  There  is  a  remarkable  repetition  of  this  clause  found  in  MSS  D  L, 
and  eight  others ;  the  Armenian,  Saxon,  all  the  Itala  except  three  ;  Mhan.  Theodor. 
Tertid.  August.  Amhr.  Hilar,  and  Juvencus.  Bengel  in  his  gnomon,  approves  of  this 
reading.  On  the  above  authorities,  Griesba«h  has  inserted  it  in  the  text.  It  probably 
made  a  portion  of  this  gospel  as  written  by  Matthew.     Clarke. 

Matt.  X,  25  ;  p.  53, 1.  20.  Bedzebul.  T.  Beelzebub.  R.  T.  This  name  is  variously 
written  in  the  MSS.  Beelzehoul,  Beelzehoun,  and  Beelzebud ;  but  there  is  a  vast  ma- 
jority in  favor  of  the  reading  Beelzebul,  which  should  by  all  means  be  inserted  in  the 
text  instead  of  Beelzebub.     Clarke.     Griesbach  introduces  the  correction.     Trans. 

Matt.  X,  29  ;  p.  53, 1.  28.  For  an  assarius.  T.  For  a  farthing.  R.  T.  The  value 
of  the  assarion  is  three  farthings  sterling.  Campbell.  This  is  equal  to  about  a  cent 
and  a  third.     Teans. 

Matt.  X,  29 ;  p.  53, 1.  29.  Without  the  permission  of  your  Father.  T.  Without  your  Fa- 
ther. R.  T.  Tut  Sou?i«t,  the  will  or  counsel  is  added  here  by  Origen,  Coptic,  all  the  Arabic, 
latter  Persic,  Gothic,  all  the  Itala  except  two  ;  Tert.  Iren.  Cypr.  JYovatian,  and  other 
Latin  fathers.  If  the  evidence  be  considered  as  insufficient  to  entitle  it  to  admission 
into  the  text,  let  it  stand  there  as  a  supplementary  Italic  word,  necessary  to  make  the 
meaning  of  the  place  evident.     Clarke. 

Matt.  X,  32;  p.  53,  1.  32.  Acknowledge  me.  T.  Confess  me.  R.  T.  The  verb 
iilJ.oh.iym  signifies  indifferently  to  profess  and  confess ;  and  these  words  differ  only  in 
this  ;  that  one  of  them  denotes  an  acknowledgement  made  with,  the  other  without  any 
supposed  present,  or  previous  reluctance.  Wherever  sucli  reluctance  is  not  supposed,  it 
ought  to  be  tTMislated  profess.     Dwight. 

Matt,  X,  34  ;  p.  53, 1.  35.  /  came  not  to  send  peace,  but  a  sword:  an  energetic  mode 
of  representing  the  actual  consequences  of  a  measure  clearly  foreseen,  as  if  it  had  been 
the  purpose  for  which  the  measure  was  adopted.  Campbell  and  Priestley,  cited  by 
Dahney.  In  consequence  of  the  perversion  of  his  advent  our  Lord  becomes  the  pre- 
cursor, not  of  temporal  prosperity,  but  of  desolating  calamities.     Tkans. 

The  expectation  of  the  Jews  was,  that  when  the  Messiah  should  come,  all  temporal 
prosperity  sliould  be  accumulated  on  the  land  of  Judea ;  therefore  t»v  ym,  in  this  verse, 
should  not  be  translated  the  earth,  but  this  land.  The  import  of  our  Lord's  teaching 
here,  is  this.  Do  not  imagine,  as  the  Jews  in  general  vainly  do,  that  I  am  come  to  send 
forth  {^ahhuv)  by  forcing  out  the  Roman  power,  that  temporal  prosperity  whicli  they 
long  for  ;  I  am  not  come  for  this  purpose,  but  to  send  forth  (^SaAxe/v)  the  Roman  sword, 
to  cut  off  a  disobedient  and  rebellious  nation,  the  cup  of  whose  iniquity  is  already  full, 
and  whose  crimes  cry  aloud  for  speedy  vengeance.     Clarke. 

Without  doubt  the  effect,  not  the  design  of  Christ's  coming  is  expressed.  Mack- 
night. 

In  Matt.  X,  34,  we  read  our  Saviour's  declaration,  that  he  had  not '  come  to  send 
peace  on  earth,  but  a  sword,'  to  promote  domestic  jealousies  and  quarrels.  It  is  quite 
unnecessary  to  prove,  that  the  chief  purpose,  for  which  Christ  came  into  the  world 
was,  to  promote  peace  ;  first,  between  God  and  man,  and  then  among  all  the  members 
of  the  human  family  ;  and  it  is  undeniable,  that  where  the  Gospel  is  cordially  receiv- 
ed, such  will  be  its  effects.  Still,  our  Lord,  foreseeing  tliat  in  consequence  of  its  par- 
tial reception,  animosities  and  dissensions  would  spring  up,  persecutions  and  violence 
be  excited,  speaks  as  if  these  effects  were  to  be  ascribed  to  his  Gospel,  when,  in  reality, 
they  resulted  from  human  passions.  The  tendency  of  his  system  was  indeed  pa- 
cific, but  tlie  wickedness  of  its  opposers  caused  it  to  give  rise  to  contention  and  blood- 
shed.    Turner. 

Matt.  X,  42 ;  p.  54, 1.  3.  A  cup  of  cold  water.  Tfa.m,  water,  is  not  in  the  common 
text,  but  it  is  found  in  the  Codex  Beza,  Coptic  Armenian,  Gothic,  Anglo-Saxon,  Sla- 
vonic, all  copies  of  the  Itala,  Vulgate,  and  Origen.  It  is  necessarily  understood,  the 
ellipsis  of  the  same  substantive  is  frequent,  both  in  the  Greek  and  Latin  writers. 

Clarke. 
53 


418  APPENDIX. 

Matt,  xi,  2 ;  p.  54, 1.  9.  Two  of  his  disciples.  Instead  of  <fuo,  two,  several  excellent 
MSS  with  both  the  Syriac,  .Armenian,  Gothic,  and  one  copy  of  the  Itala,  have  fia,  by  ; 
he  sent  by  his  disciples.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xi,  IG ;  p.  54,  1.  32.  Tlie  place  of  public  resort.  T.  The  markets.  Ajo^a/f. 
R.  T.  In  the  Market-place.  A  great  number  of  MSS,  as  well  as  the  Vulgate,  Gothic, 
and  Syriac  versions,  have  the  word  in  the  singular.  The  passage  was  also  read  thus 
by  some  of  the  ancient  expositors.  Moreover,  the  reading  itself  appears  preferable. 
Campbell.     Griesbach  hesitates  between  the  two  readings.     Teans. 

Matt,  xi,  16 ;  p.  54, 1.  34 ;  calling  to  their  companions.  T.  Fellows.  R.  T.  Instead  of 
iTici^oK,  companions,  many  of  the  best  manuscripts  have  stejoic,  others.  The  great  simi- 
larity of  the  words  might  have  easily  produced  this  diiference.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xi,  19 ;  p.  54, 1.  38.  But  wisdom  is  vindicated  by  her  works.  T.  But  wisdom  is 
justified  of  her  children.  R.  T.  It  is  likely  that  by  children  our  Lord  simply  means  the 
fruits  or  effects  of  wisdom,  according  to  the  Hebrew  idiom,  which  denominates  the  fruits 
or  effects  of  a  thing,  its  children.  It  was  probably  this  well  known  meaning  of  the  word, 
which  led  the  Codex  Vaticanus,  one  of  the  most  ancient  manuscripts  in  the  world, 
together  with  the  Syriac,  Persic,  Coptic,  and  Ethiopic,  to  read  i^ym,  works,  instead  of 
TiK^ui,  sons,  or  children.  Wisdom  is  vindicated  by  her  works,  i.  e.  the  good  effects 
prove  that  the  cause  is  excellent.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xi,  21 ;  p.  54, 1.  40.  Alas  for  thee,  Chorazin  —  Bethsaida!  T.  Woe  unto  thee, 
Chorazin  —  Bethsaida  .'  R.  T.  It  would  be  better  to  translate  the  word  ovxt  trn,  alas  for 
thee  than  woe  to  thee.  The  former  is  an  exclamation  of  pity  ;  the  latter  a  denunciation  of 
wrath.     It  is  evident  that  our  Lord  used  it  in  the  former  sense.     Clarke. 

Matt,    xi,  23  ;  p.    54,  1.  45.     Thou   Capernaum exalted   to  heaven.     A   Hebrew 

metaphor,  expressive  of  the  utmost  prosperity,  and  the  enjoyment  of  the  greatest  pri- 
vileges. This  was  properly  spoken  of  this  city,  because  that  in  it  our  Lord  dwelt, 
and  wrought  many  of  his  miraculous  works.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xi,  23;  p.  54, 1.  46.  Wilt  be  brought  down  to  hades.  T.  Shalt  be  brought  dovm, 
to  hell.  R.  T.  Perhaps  not  meaning  here,  the  place  of  torment,  but  rather  a  state  of 
desolation.  The  original  word  is  'A.Stic,  from  a,  not ;  and  lim,  to  see  —  the  invisible  recep- 
tacle or  mansion  of  the  dead,  answering  to  7lKy  sheol,  in  Hebrew ;  and  implying 
often,  1st,  the  grave;  2dly,  the  state  of  separate  souls,  or  unseen  world  of  spirits,  whe- 
ther of  torment,  Luke  xvi,  23;  or,  in  general.  Rev.  i,  18;  vi,  8;  xx,  13,14.  The  word 
hell,  used  in  ibe  common  translation,  conveys  now  an  improper  meaning  of  the  original 
word;  because  hell  is  only  used  to  signify  the  place  of  tlie  damned.     Clarke. 

The  literal  sense  of  the  word  hades  implies  properly  neither  hell  nor  the  grave,  but 
the  place  or  state  of  departed  souls.*     Campbell. 

Brought  down  to  hell,  &c.  This  is  not  to  be  taken  literally ;  for  as  the  exaltation  of 
Capernaum  into  heaven  was  not  a  local,  but  a  metaphorical  exEiltation,  denoting  the 
greatness  of  the  privileges  with  which  it  was  blessed,  so  its  being  thrust  down  into 
hell,  (stiJ»c),  signifies  the  greatness  of  the  judgments  which  were  to  fall  upon  it.  Mack- 
night. 

Matt,  xi,  25;  p.  55, 1.  4.  I  entirely  concur  with  thee.  T.  I  thank  thee.  R.  T.  'E^o/xa- 
Mym/jini  (rot,  I  fully  agree  with  thee  —  I  am  perfectly  of  the  same  mind.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xii,  31 ;  p.  56,  1.  19.  In.men  may  be  forgiven.  T.  Shall  be  forgiven  unto  men. 
R.  T.  In  men  is  pardonable.  As  the  Hebrew  has  no  subjunctive  or  potential  mood, 
the  future  tense  is  frequently  made  use  of,  for  supplying  this  defect.  This  idiom  is 
common  in  the  Septuagint,  and  has  been  thence  adopted  into  the  New  Testament.  It 
is  evidently  our  Lord's  meaning  here,  not  that  every  such  sin  shall  actually  be  paidon- 

*  Hades  is  found  eleven  times  in  the  New  Testament,  namely  ;  Matt,  xi,  23  ;  xvi,  18 ;  Luke  x,  15 ;  xvi, 
23  ;  Acts  ii,  21,  27  ;  1  Cor.  xv,  55  ;  Eev.  i,  18  ;  vi,  8 ;  xx,  13,  14.  lu  the  received  text,  the  word  in  Corin- 
thians is  rendered  grave,  and  in  all  the  other  place.«  hell ;  but  the  latter  is  now  universally  admitted  to  be 
an  incorrect  translation.  See  the  Notes  on  Matthew  v,  22 ;  Mark  ix,  43.  45  ;  Luke  xvi,  23  ;  Acts  ii,  31. 
Trans. 


MATTHEW'S   HISTORY.  419 

ed,  but  that  it  is,  in  the  divine  economy,  capable  of  being  pardoned,  or  ia  pardonable. 
The  words  remissible  or  irremissible,  would  have  been  less  equivocal,  but  are  rather 
technical  terms,  than  words  in  common  use.     Campbell. 

Matt,  xii,  35 ;  p.  56, 1.  28.  A  good  man  from  his  good  treasure.  T.  jJ  good  man 
out  of  the  good  treasure  of  the  heart.  R.  T.  T»f  m^Sim,  of  his  heart,  is  omitted  by 
upwards  of  one  hundred  MSS,  many  of  them  of  the  greatest  antiquity  and  authority : 
by  all  the  Syriac,  .Arabic,  and  Persic ;  by  the  Slavonic,  Saxon,  Vulgate,  and  Itala,  (ex- 
cept four),  and  by  several  of  the  primitive  fathers.  It  seems  to  have  been  added  here 
by  some  copyist,  merely  to  explain.  Clarhe.  The  words  th;  xn^Jmn,  of  his  heart,  are 
wanting  in  so  many  MSS,  even  those  of  the  greatest  note,  ancient  versions,  and  com- 
mentators, that  they  cannot  be  regarded  as  authentic.  Campbell.  Griesbach  rejects 
them.     Trans. 

Matt,  xiii,  11;  p.  57,  I.  30.  You  are  permitted  to  understand  the  secrets.  T.  It  is 
given  unto  you  to  know  the  mysteries.  R.  T.  The  secrets,  tit  /Ava-n^ia..  That  the  common 
signification  of  fivtriiigia  is  as  rendered  by  Castalio  arcana,  secrets,  there  can  be  no 
doubt.  The  moral  truths  here  alluded  to,  and  displayed  in  the  explanation  of  the  para- 
ble, are  as  far  from  being  mysteries,  in  the  common  acceptation,  doctrines  incompre- 
hensible, as  any  thing  in  the  world  can  be.     Campbell. 

The  Greek  word  ^inrTng/oii  occurs  frequently  in  the  New  Testament,  and  is  uniformly 
rendered  in  the  English  translation,  mystery.  If  I  mistake  not,  this  sense  is  unsup- 
ported by  the  usage  of  the  inspired  penmen.  After  the  most  careful  examination  of  all 
the  passages  in  the  New  Testament,  in  which  the  Greek  word  oocars,  and  after  con- 
sulting the  use  made  of  the  term,  by  tlie  ancient  Greek  interpreters  of  the  Old,  and 
borrowing  aid  from  the  practice  of  the  Hellenist  Jews,  in  the  writings  called  Apocry- 
pha, I  can  only  find  two  senses  nearly  related  to  each  other,  which  can  strictly  be 
called  scriptural.  The  first,  and  what  I  may  call  the  leading  sense  of  the  word,  is 
arcanum,  a  secret,  any  thing  not  disclosed,  not  published  to  the  world,  tliough  perhaps 
communicated  to  a  select  number.  There  is  another  meaning  which  the  term  //uo-TBg/ov 
sometimes  bears  in  the  New  Testament.  But  it  is  so  nearly  related  to,  if  not  coinci- 
dent with,  the  former,  that  I  am  doubtful  whether  I  can  call  it  other  than  a  particular 
application  of  the  same  meaning.  However,  if  the  thing  be  understood,  it  is  not 
material  which  of  the  two  ways  we  denominate  it.  The  word  is  sometimes  employed 
to  denote  the  figurative  sense,  as  distinguished  from  the  literal,  which  is  conveyed 
under  any  fable,  parable,  allegory,  symbolical  action,  representation,  dream,  or  vision. 
It  is  plain  that  in  this  case,  the  term  /jtua-'rti^m  is  used  comparatively ;  for,  however  clear 
the  meaning  intended  to  be  conveyed  in  the  apologue,  or  parable,  may  be  to  the  intel- 
ligent, it  is  obscure,  compared  with  the  literal  sense,  which,  to  the  unintelligent,  proves 
a  kind  of  veil.  The  one  is,  as  it  were,  open  to  the  senses ;  the  otlier  requires  penetra- 
tion and  reflection.     Campbell. 

The  difference  between  the  sense  of  the  word  (jtuim^iiii,  mystery,  as  used  by  the 
apostles,  and  its  popular  sense,  is  clear  and  easily  defined.  The  apostles  always  meant 
by  the  word  something  that  was  concealed,  but  which  might  be  made  known;  where- 
as, in  its  vulgar  signification,  it  is  employed  to  denote  a  thing,  which  is  not  only  con- 
cealed, but  incomprehensible.  This  difference  is  broad  and  important,  and  deserves  the 
careful  attention  of  every  one,  who  would  attain  just  conceptions  of  the  apostles' 
instructions.  It  may  be  stated  as  a  rule,  which  is  without  exception,  that  tliey  never 
used  the  term  to  express  any  truth  or  doctrine,  which  was  in  its  nature  incomprehen- 
sible, or  impossible  to  be  understood.  On  the  contrary,  it  is  uniformly  employed  by 
them  to  denote  something,  which  had  been  obscure,  or  unknown,  but  which  was  made 
clear  by  revelation,  or  would  be  made  so  by  the  means  that  were  employed  to  diffuse  a 
knowledge  of  truth,  and  of  divine  things.     Sparks. 

Matt,  xiii,  12;  p.  57, 1.  32.  He  who  has  much,  to  him  will  be  given.  T.  IVhosoexer 
hath,  to  him  shall  be  given.  R.  T.  This  is  an  allusion  to  a  common  custom  in  all  coun- 
tries :  he  who  possesses  much,  or  is  rich,  to  such  a  person  presents  are  ordinarily  given. 
Clarke. 


420  APPENDIX. 

Matt,  xiii,  12;  p.  57, 1.  33.  While  he  who  has  hit  little,  will  be  deprived  even  of  that 
little.  T.  Whosoever  hath  not,  from  him  shall  he  taken  away  even  that  he  hath.  R.  T. 
That  is,  the  poor  man :  he  that  has  little  may  be  easily  made  a  prey  of,  and  so  lose 
his  little.  This  is  a  proper  sense  of  the  word  s;^s(v  in  sacred  and  profane  writers. 
Clarke.  The  received  text  involves  an  obvious  contradiction.  How  can  a  person  be 
divested  of  any  thing,  who  possesses  nothing.'     Trans. 

Matt  xiv,  33  ;  p.  50, 1.  41.  Thou  art  a  Son  of  God.  T.  Thou  art  the  Son  of  God. 
K.  T.  Critics  have  remarked,  that  when  the  phrase  is  used  to  denominate  the  Mes- 
siah, both  the  articles  are  used:  o  i//oc  tcu  ©ecu,  and  the  words  without  the  articles 
mean,  in  the  common  phrase,  a  divine  person.     Clarke. 

Matt.  XV,  7;  p.  61,  1.  11.  Isaiah.  T.  Esaias.  R.  T.  In  every  place  where  the 
proper  names  of  the  Old  Testament  occur,  in  the  New  the  same  mode  of  orthography 
should  be  followed  :  I  therefore  write  Isaiah  with  the  Hebrew,  not  Esaias  with  the 
Greek.     Clarke. 

Matt.  XV,  8;  p.  61,  1.12.  This  people  approach  me  with  their  MonTH.  T. 
This  people  draweth  nigh  unto  me  with  their  moutli.  R.  T.  This  clause,  which  is 
taken  from  Isaiah,  chap,  xxix,  13,  is  omitted  by  several  excellent  MSS,  and  by  several 
versions  and  fathers.  Erasmus,  Mill,  Drusius,  and  Bengel,  approve  of  the  omission ; 
and  Griesbach  has  left  it  out  of  the  text ;  but  as  I  find  it  in  the  prophet,  the  place  from 
which  it  is  quoted,  I  dare  not  omit  it,  however  respectable  the  above  authorities  may 
appear.     Clarke. 

Matt.  XV,  19;  p.  61, 1.29.  Calumnies.  T.  Blasphemies.  R.  T.  B\a5-if»//ia,  properly 
denotes  calumny,  detraction,  reproachful  or  ahusive  language,  against  whomsoever  it 
be  vented.  There  does  not  seem,  therefore,  to  have  been  any  necessity  for  adopting 
the  Greek  word  into  our  language,  one  or  other  of  the  English  expressions  above  men- 
tioned, being  in  every  case,  sufhcient  for  conveying  the  sense.  Campbell.  Blasphe- 
mies. The  verb  0Mrpii/xm,  when  applied  to  men,  signifies  to  speak  ifUVRiovshY  of  their 
persons,  characters,  &c ;  and  when  applied  to  God,  it  means  to  speak  impiously  of  his 
nature,  works,  &c.     Cla/rke. 

Matt.  XV,  39;  p.  62, 1.  21.  Tlie  coast  of  Magdala.  In  the  parallel  place,  Mark  viii, 
10,  this  place  is  called  Dalmanutha.  Either  Magdala  was  formed  by  a  transposition  of 
letters  from  Dalman,  to  which  the  Syriac  termination  atha  had  been  added,  or  the  one 
of  these  names  refers  to  the  country,  and  the  other  to  a  town  in  that  neighborhood. 
Jesus  went  into  the  country,  and  proceeded  till  he  came  to  the  chief  town  or  village  in 
that  district.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xvi,  3 ;  p.  62, 1.  25.  Hypocrites.  R.  T.  TTroKgirai.  But  this  word  is  not  found 
in  some  of  the  most  valuable  MSS,  nor  has  it  been  in  tjiose  copies  from  which  the 
Vulgate,  second  Syriac,  Armenian,  Ethiopic,  and  Saxon  versions  were  made.  Nor 
was  it  in  the  copies  used  by  Chrysostom.  Campbell  —  who  excludes  it  from  the  text. 
Griesbach  notes  it  as  extremely  doubtful.     Trans. 

Matt,  xvi,  8 ;  p.  62, 1.  34.  But  Jesus,  perceiving  it,  said.  T.  When  Jesus  perceived, 
he  said  unto  them.  B.  T.  hmw,  unto  them,  is  wanting  in  B  D  K  L  M  S,  and  twenty 
others  ;  one  of  the  Syriac,  the  Armenian,  Ethiopic,  Vulgate,  and  most  of  the  Itala; 
also  in  Origen,  Thophylact,  and  Lucifer  Calaritanus.  Mill  approves  of  the  omission, 
and  Griesbach  has  left  it  out  of  the  text.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xvi,  18;  p.  63, 1.5.  On  that  very  Rock.  T.  Upon  this  Rock.  R.  T.  Upon  this 
very  Rock,  mi  Tuii-n  n  wstjoi  —  this  true  confession  of  thine  —  that  I  am  the  Mes- 
siah,* that  am  come  to  reveal  and  communicate  the  living  God.  .  .  That  Peter  is  not 
designed  in  our  Lord's  words,  must  he  evident  to  all  who  are  not  blinded  by  prejudice. 
Clarke. 

Matt,  xvi,  18;  p.  63, 1.  6.  My  church,  fjum  tm  cxxMnr/etv,  my  assembly,  or  congrega- 
tion.   In  the  proper  use  of  the  word,  there  can  be  no  such  thing  as  the  church,  exclu- 

*  Upon  this  very  rook,  myself,  thus  confessed,  alluding  probably  to  Psalm  cxviii,  22 ;  Isaiali  xxviii,  16. 
Cfarie. 


MATTHEW'S   HISTORY.  421 

Bively  — there  may  be  a  church,  and  the  churches,  signifying  a  particular  congrega- 
tion, or  the  different  assemblies  of  religious  people  :  and  hence,  the  Church  of  Rome, 
by  applying  it  exclusively  to  itself,  abuses  the  term,  and  acts  as  ridiculously,  as  it  does 
absurdly.  Church  is  very  properly  defined  in  the  19th  article  of  the  Church  of  Eng- 
land, to  be  'a  congregation  of  faithful  men,  in  which  the  pure  word  of  God  is  preach- 
ed, and  the  sacraments  duly  ministered,  according  to  Christ's  ordinance.'     Clarke. 

Matt,  xvi,  20 ;  p.  63,  1.  11.  That  he  was  the  Messiah.  T.  Tlmt  he  was  Jesus  the 
Christ.  R.  T.  The  common  text  has  Jems  the  Christ,  but  the  word  Jesus  is  omitted  by 
54  MSS,  some  of  which  are  not  only  of  the  greatest  authority,  but  also  of  the  greatest 
antiquity.  It  is  omitted  also  by  the  Syriac,  later  Persic,  later  Arabic,  Sclavonic,  six 
copies  of  the  Itala,  and  several  of  tlie  Fathers.  The  most  eminent  critics  approve  of 
the  omission,  and  Griesbach  has  left  it  out  of  the  text  in  both  his  editions.  I  believe 
the  insertion  of  it  here  to  be  wholly  superfluous  and  improper.  Clarke.  The  name 
Jesus  is  wanting  in  many  MSS,  and  some  ancient  versions.     Campbell. 

Matt,  xvi,  23;  p.  63,  1.  17.  Depart  from  me,  opposer !  T.  Get  thee  behind  me, 
Satan.  R.  T.  Tirnyi  mia-ai  ftm,  trwrayci.  Get  behind  me,  thou  adversary.  This  is  the 
proper  translation  of  the  Hebrew  word  ftDty,  Satan,  from  which  the  Greek  word  is 
taken.  Our  blessed  Lord  certainly  never  designed,  that  men  should  believe  he  called 
Peter,  DEVIL,  because  he,  through  erring  affection,  had  wished  him  to  avoid  that 
death  which  he  predicted  to  himself.  This  translation,  which  is  literal,  takes  away 
that  harshness  which  before  appeared  in  our  Lord's  words.  Clarke.  Satan,  though 
conceived  by  us  as  a  proper  name,  was  an  appellative  in  the  language  spoken  by  our 
Lord;  for  from  the  Hebrew  it  passed  into  the  Syriac,  and  signified  no  more  than 
adversary  or  opponent.     Campbell. 

Matt.  16,  25 ;  p.  63, 1.  22.  Wlwever  would  desire  to  save  his  life.  T.  IVhosoever  will 
save  his  life.  R.  T.  That  is,  shall  loish  to  save  his  life  at  the  expense  of  his  conscience. 
Clarke.     He  who  will  save  his  life,  by  violating  his  duty,  shall  lose  it.     Dwight. 

Matt,  xvi,  26 ;  p.  63, 1.  24.  Forfeit  his  own  life.  T.  Lose  his  own  soul.  R.  T.  Or, 
lose  his  life,  thv  4"%"''  ""tou.  On  what  authority  many  have  translated  the  word  •i.uyi:, 
in  the  25th  verse,  life,  and  in  this  verse,  soul,  I  know  not :  but  am  certain  it  means 
life  in  both  places.  Clarke.  Forfeit  comes  nearer  the  import  of  the  original  word, 
which  Doddridge  has  endeavored  to  convey  by  a  circumlocution.  Should  be  punished 
with  the  loss  of  his  life.  But  the  chief  error  in  the  English  translation  lies  in  changing, 
without  necessity,  the  word  answering  to  ■^vx»,  calling  it  in  the  preceding  verse,  life, 
and  in  this,  soul.  Campbell.  In  the  four  examples  occurring  in  those  verses,  Campbell, 
Newcome,  and  Wakefield,  translate  the  word,  life.     Trans. 

Matt,  xvi,  28 ;  p.  63, 1.  29.  Entering  upon  his  reign.  T.  Coming  in  his  kingdom. 
R.  T.  Or,  to  his  kingdom.  Instead  of  jSno-iKnx,  kingdom,  four  MSS,  later  Syriac, 
Coptic,  Ethiopic,  Saxon,  and  one  copy  of  the  Itala,  with  several  of  the  primitive  fathers, 
read  JVfa,  glory,  Eind  to  this  is  added,  tcu  jntTfot  nwrov,  of  his  Father,  by  three  MSS, 
and  the  versions  mentioned  before.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xvii,  1 ;  p.  63, 1.  30.  £fter  six  days.  Mark  ix,  2,  has  the  same  number ;  but 
Luke  says,  ix,  28,  after  eight  days :  The  reason  of  this  difference  seems  to  be  the  fol- 
lowing :  Matthew  and  Mark  reckon  the  days  from  that  mentioned  in  the  preceding 
chapter,  to  that  mentioned  in  this.  Luke  includes  both  days  as  well  as  the  six  interme- 
diate ;  hence  the  one  makes  eight,  the  other  six,  without  any  contradiction.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xvii,  21 ;  p.  64, 1.  23.  This  description,  however,  is  not  dispossesed,  except  by 
prayer  and  fasting.  T.  This  kind  goeth  not  out  but  by  prayer  and  fasting.  R.  T. 
There  is  great  difficulty  in  the  text.  The  whole  verse  is  wanting  in  the  Vatican  MS, 
one  of  the  most  ancient  and  most  authentic,  perhaps,  in  the  world ;  and  in  another, 
one  of  Colbert's,  written  in  the  11th  or  12th  century.  It  is  wanting  also  in  the  Coptic, 
Ethiopic,  Syriac  hieros,  and  in  one  copy  of  the  Itala.  But  all  the  MSS  acknowledge  it 
in  the  parallel  place,  Mark  ix,  29;  only  the  Vatican  MS  leaves  out  vntTaa,  fasting.  I 
strongly  suspect  it  to  be  an  interpolation ;  but  if  it  be,  it  is  very  ancient,  as  Origen, 


422  APPENDIX. 

Chrysostom,  and  others  of  the  primitive  fathers,  acknowledge  it.  Clarke.  Griesbach 
thinks  that  it  ought  not  to  be  omitted.     Tkans. 

Matt,  xvii,  22;  p.  64, 1.  26.  Is  about  to  be  surrendered.  T.  Shull  be  betrayed.  R.  T. 
The  Son  of  Man  shall  be  betrayed  into  the  hands  of  men.  MsxXit  —  Ttst^nJ'iSotrQsLi  e/c  ^u- 
gac  —  Tlie  Son  of  Man  is  about  to  be  delivered  into  the  hands,  &c.  I  am  fully  of  the 
mind  of  two  eminent  critics,  Grotius  and  Wakefield,  that  TragaiPiifoffQm  should  be  here 
translated,  delivered,  or  delivered  up,  not  betrayed.  Clarke.  Is  to  be  delivered  up,  /jtihxu 
sragaJ/Joo-fla;.  In  my  notion  of  the  import  of  this  compound  future,  there  is  much  the 
same  difference  between  Tra^uMwe'rai  and  «sxx»  TragiJiitiiricu  in  Greek,  as  there  is 
between  the  phrases  will  be  delivered  and  is  to  be  delivered,  in  English.  The  latter 
gives  a  hint  of  the  nearness  of  the  event,  which  is  not  suggested  by  the  other. 
Campbell. 

Matt,  xviii,  1 ;  p.  64, 1.  40.  At  that  period.  T.  M  the  same  time.  K.  T.  Or  hour  ; 
but  aga  is  frequently  used  to  signify  some  particular  time  :  however,  instead  of  a^a,  hour, 
three  MSS,  all  the  Itala  but  four,  and  Origen,  read  v^e^x,  day.  Origen  says  both  read- 
ings were  extant  in  MSS,  in  his  time.  Clarke.  Griesbach  cites  the  latter  in  the  mar- 
gin as  a  distinguished  reading.     Trans. 

Matt,  xviii,  7  ;  p.  65, 1.  4.  Alas  for  the  world  !  Woe  !  or  alas!  ma.i.  It  is  the  opin- 
ion of  some  eminent  critics,  that  this  word  is  ever  used  by  our  Lord  to  express  sympa- 
thy and  concern.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xviii,  8;  p.  65, 1.  6.  Cause  thee  to  offend.  T.  Offend  thee.  R.  T.  In  the  orig- 
inal language,  the  text  conveys  a  meaning  somewhat  different  from  that,  which  the 
English  reader  would  derive  from  our  translation.  The  word  here  rendered  offend, 
should  be  rendered  eause  to  offend.  Our  Saviour  is  not  designing  to  reprove  those, 
who  irritate  his  disciples ;  but  those,  who  would  in  any  way  withdraw  them  from  their 
christian  profession,  weaken  their  faith,  unsettle  their  principles,  or  cause  them  to  ne- 
glect or  violate  his  commands.     John  Emery  Abbot. 

Matt,  xviii,  10;  p.  65, 1.  13.  In  the  heavens.  T.  In  heaven.  R.  T.  The  clause,  sir 
oygtfvoif,  in  the  heavens,  is  wanting  in  several  MSS,  Versions  and  Fathers.      Clarke. 

Matt,  xviii,  17 ;  p.  65, 1.  26.  To  the  religious  assembly.  T.  Unto  the  church.  R.  T. 
The  congregation.  Campbell.  Or  Society  of  Christian  brethren.  Mann.  Lay  the 
whole  matter  before  the  congregation  of  Christian  believers,  in  that  place  of  which  he 
is  a  member,  or  before  the  minister  and  elders,  as  the  representatives  of  the  church  or 
assembly.  Clarke.  ExxxniriEt.  Congregation.  That  word  we  find  used  in  two  dif- 
ferent, but  related  senses,  in  the  Old  Testament.  One  is  for  a  whole  nation,  consider- 
ed as  constituting  one  commonwealth  or  polity.  The  other  is  for  a  particular  congre- 
gation or  assembly,  either  actually  convened,  or  accustomed  to  convene,  in  the  same 
place  ;  Now  as  the  nature  of  the  thing  sufficiently  shows  that  our  Lord,  in  this  direc- 
tion, could  not  have  used  the  word  in  the  first  of  the  two  senses  above  given,  and  re- 
quired that  every  private  quarrel,  should  be  made  a  national  affair,  we  are  under  the 
necessity  of  understanding  it  in  the  last,  as  regarding  the  particular  congregation  to 
which  the  parties  belonged.  What  adds  great  probability  to  this,  as  Lightfoot  and 
others  have  observed,  is  the  evidence  we  have  that  the  like  usage  actually  obtained  in 
the  synagogue,  and  in  the  primitive  church.  Whatever  foundation,  therefore,  there 
may  be,  from  those  books  of  scripture  that  concern  a  later  period,  for  the  notice  of  a 
church  representative ;  it  would  be  contrary  to  all  the  rules  of  criticism,  to  suppose 
that  our  Lord  used  this  term  in  a  sense  wherein  it  could  not  then  be  understood  by  any 
one  of  his  hearers ;  or  that  he  would  say  congregation,  for  so  the  word  literally  im- 
ports, when  he  meant  only  a  few  heads  or  directors.     Campbell. 

Matt,  xviii,  19 ;  p.  65, 1.  31.  Again,  I  assure  you.  T.  Again  I  say  unto  you.  R.  T. 
The  word  a/um,  verily,  is  added  here  in  ninety-eight  MSS,  (many  of  which  are  of  the 
greatest  antiquity  and  importance)  seven  editions,  all  the  Arabic,  the  Slavonic,  and 
several  of  the  Itala.     Clarke.     Griesbach  regards  it  as  a  respectable  reading.     Trans. 

Matt,  xviii,  28;  p.  66, 1.2.  A  hundred  denarii,  t .  A  hundred  pence.  R.T.  Rather 
denarii.    The  denarius  was  a  Roman  coin,  worth  about  seven  pence  halfpenny  Eng- 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  423 

lish.  The  original  word  should  be  retained,  as  our  word  penny  does  not  convey  the 
seventh  part  of  the  meaning.     Clarke. 

Matt.  xviii,29;  p.  66, 1.  4.  Falling  at  his  feet.  T .  FeU  down  at  his  feet.  R.T.  This 
clause  is  wanting  in  several  ancient  MSS,  Versions,  and  Fathers.  Several  printed 
editions  also  have  omitted  it ;  Griesbach  has  left  it  out  of  the  text.  U.a.t'rct,  all,  is 
omitted  by  a  multitude  of  MSS,  Versions,  and  Fathers.  Clarke.  Griesbach  retains 
in  the  text  Tnirm,  fell  dmon,  and  wavTa,  all,  but  notes  the  latter  as  a  questionable  read- 
ing ;  and  rejects  at  thus  irsJac  auTcu,  at  his  feet.  Trans.  The  common  Greek  adds 
wavTet,  all.  But  this  word  is  not  found  in  many  MSS,  several  of  them  of  principal 
note,  nor  in  some  ancient  versions  and  editions.  Mill  and  Wetstein  have  both  thought 
proper  to  reject  it.     Campbell. 

Matt,  xviii,  30  j  p.  66, 1.  6.  Committed  him  to  prison,  till  he  should  pay  the  debt. 
T.  Cast  him  into  prison,  till  he  should  pay  the  debt.  R.  T.  If  the  person  be  poor, 
or  comparatively  poor,  is  his  imprisonment  likely  to  discharge  his  debt  ?  His  creditor 
may  rest  assured  that  he  is  now  further  from  his  object  than  ever ;  the  man  had  no 
other  way  of  discharging  the  debt,  but  by  his  labor ;  that  is  now  impossible  through 
his  confinement,  and  the  creditor  is  put  to  a  certain  expense  towards  his  maintenance. 
How  foolish  is  this  policy  !  And  how  much  do  such  laws  require  revision  and  amend- 
ment. Imprisonment  for  debt  in  such  a  case  as  that  supposed  above,  can  answer  no 
other  end  than  the  gratification  of  the  malice,  revenge,  or  inhumanity  of  the  creditor. 
Better  sell  all  that  he  has,  and,  with  his  hands  and  feet  untied,  let  him  begin  the  world 
afresh.     Dr  Dodd  very  feelingly  inquires  here,  '  Whether  rigor  in  exacting  temporal 

debts,  in  treating  without  mercy  such  as  are  unable  to  satisfy  them whether  this 

can  be  allowed  to  a  Christian,  who  is  bound  to  imitate  his  God  and  Father  i*  To  a 
debtor,  who  can  expect  forgiveness  only  on  the  condition  of  forgiving  others  ?  To  a 
servant,  who  should  obey  his  Master  ?  and  to  a  criminal,  who  is  in  daily  expectation  of 
his  Judge  and  final  sentence  ?     Clarke. 

Matt,  xviii,  35 ;  p.  66,  1.  15.  Tlieir  trespasses.  R.  T.  T*  vratgn.TrTaifjLoi'TA  avrm. 
There  is  nothing  in  the  Vulgate  answering  to  these  words.  The  same  may  be  said  of 
tlie  Arabic,  the  Coptic,  the  Saxon,  and  the  Ethiopic  versions.  They  are  wanting  also 
in  the  Cambridge  and  three  other  MSS.  Campbell.  These  words  are  properly  left  out 
by  Griesbach,  and  other  eminent  critics,  because  they  are  wanting  in  some  of  the 
very  best  MSS,  most  of  the  Versions,  and  by  some  of  the  chief  of  the  Fathers.  The 
words  are  evidently  an  interpolation ;  the  construction  of  them  is  utterly  improper ; 
and  the  concord  false.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xix,  4  J  p.  66, 1.  21.  That  at  the  beginning,  wlien  the  Creator  made  man,  he 
formed  a  male  and  a  female.  T.  That  he  which  made  them  in  the  beginning,  made 
them  male  and  female.  R.  T.  In  this  translation,  our  Lord's  argument  does  not  appear. 
But  the  original,  literally  translated,  gives  this  meaning  :  That  he  who  made  them,  at 
the  beginning  made  a  male  and  a  fermale.  According  to  this  translation,  our  Lord's 
reasoning  is  clear  and  conclusive  :  At  the  beginning,  God  made  only  one  male  and 
one  female,  of  the  human  species,  to  show,  that  adultery  and  polygamy  are  contrary 
to  his  intention  in  creating  man.     Macknight. 

It  was  surely  unnecessary  to  recur  to  the  history  of  the  creation,  to  convince  those 
Pharisees  of  what  all  the  world  knew,  that  the  human  race  was  composed  of  men  and 
women,  and  consequently  of  two  sexes.  The  weight  of  the  argument,  therefore,  must 
lie  in  this  circumstance,  that  God  created  at  first  no  more  than  a  single  pair,  one  of 
each  sex,  whom  he  united  in  the  bond  of  marriage,  and,  in  so  doing,  exhibited  a  stand- 
ard of  that  union  to  all  generations.     Campbell. 

Matt,  xix,  16  ;  p  66, 1.  45.  Excellent  Teacher.  T.  Good  Master.  R.  T.  This  is  in- 
tended to  be  a  highly  respectful  mode  of  address,  and  demands  that  the  word  aya.Be, 
good,  should  be  used  in  its  highest  sense,  that  of  excellent:  for  any  construction  that 
might  convey  the  most  distant  inference  that  Christ  was  not  in  some  sense  good,  would 
be  absurd,  and  contradictory  to  numerous  other  scriptures.    Trans. 


424  APPENDIX. 

Matt,  xix,  17;  p.  67, 1.  1.  Why  do  you  denominate  me  excellent'!  Tliere  is  none  ex- 
cellent, hut  the  one  God.  T.  Why  callest  thou  me  good  ?  there  is  none  good  but  one, 
that  is,  God.  R.  T.  Why  callest  thou  me  good  ?  Or,  Why  dost  thou  question  me  con- 
cerning that  good  thing  7  T(  .us  texTHs  ■irigi  too  a.-yu6ov.  This  important  reading  is 
found  in  B  D  L,  three  others,  the  Coptic,  Sahidic,  Armenian,  Ethiopic,  latter  Syriac, 
Vulgate,  Saxon  ;  all  the  Itala  but  one.  Origen,  Eusebius,  Cyril,  Diimysius,  Areop.  An- 
tiochus,  JVovatian,  Jerom,  Augustin,  and  Juvencus.  This  authority  appears  so  decisive 
to  Griesbach,  that  he  has  received  this  reading  into  the  text  of  his  second  edition, 
which  in  the  first  he  had  interlined.  And  instead  of  JYone  is  good  but  the  one  God,  he 
goes  on  to  read,  on  nearly  the  same  respectable  authorities,  us  htih  o  aynBo;,  There  is  one 
who  is  good.  Let  it  be  observed  also  that  in  the  16th  verse,  instead  of  S'iSa.srx.nxi  aynSi, 
good  teacher,  itia-n^Ki  only,  is  read  by  B  D  L,  one  other,  one  Evangelistarium,  the 
Ethiopic,  three  of  the  Itala,  Origen  and  Hilary.  The  whole  passage  therefore  may  be 
read  thus:  0  Teacher!  what  good  thing  shall  I  do,  that  I  may  have  eternal  life?  And 
he  said  unto  hira,  why  dost  thou  question  me  concerning  that  good  thing  ?  There  is  one 
who  is  good.  (Or  he  who  is  good  is  one)  But  if  thou  art  icilling  to  enter  into  tliat  life, 
keep  the  commandments.     Clarke. 

Why  dost  thou  call  me  good  ?  It  is  certain,  that  some  very  ancient  manuscripts  read 
this  clause,  ti  ^s  ipaira.c  mgi  rou  aya.6cu  ;  Why  dost  thou  ask  me,  what  good  thing  is  to  be 
done  ?  But  neither  the  number  of  copies,  nor  the  turn  of  our  Lord's  answer,  wUl  by 
any  means  admit  of  such  a  reading.     Doddridge. 

Why  callest  thou  me  good  1  T;  fj-i  Myus  ayxBor;  Vulgate.  Quid  me  interrogas  de 
bono  1  Five  MSS  read,  in  conformity  to  the  Vulgate,  T(  |«s  itma-g  met  -rev  ay:t6cu ; 
with  this  agree  also  the  Coptic,  the  Armenian,  the  Saxon,  and  the  Ethiopic  versions. 
This  reading  is  likewise  approved  by  Origen,  and  some  other  ancients  after  him,  and 
also  by  some  moderns,  among  whom  are  Ernesti,  Grotius,  Mill,  and  Bengelius.  The 
other  reading  is,  nevertheless,  in  my  opinion,  preferable,  on  more  accounts  than  one. 
Its  evidence  from  MSS,  is  beyond  comparison  superior ;  the  versions  on  both  sides 
may  nearly  balance  each  other  ;  but  the  internal  evidence  arising  from  the  simplicity 
and  connexion  of  the  thoughts,  is  entirely  in  favor  of  the  common  reading.  Nothing 
can  be  more  pertinent  than  to  say,  '  If  you  believe  that  God  alone  is  good,  why  do  you 
call  me  so  .' '  whereas  nothing  can  appear  less  pertinent  than  '  If  you  believe  that 
God  alone  is  good,  why  do  you  consult  me  concerning  the  good  that  you  must  do .' 

Campbell. 

In  the  parallel  places  in  Luke  and  in  Mark,  the  epithet  it.ya.6i,  good,  is  applied  to 
SiSaiTK^f,!,  Teacher,  and  omitted  as  to  ti  Truao-ai,  the  action  to  be  performed.  In  the  sub- 
stituted reading,  *  There  is  one  who  is  good;'  or,  '  He  who  is  good  is  one,'  can  any 
connexion  with  the  previous  inquiry  be  perceived  ?  If  the  last  clause  might  be  sup- 
posed to  imply.  He  who  is  good,  is  consistent  or  uniform:  and  if,  ^c,  keep  the  com- 
m.andments,  it  might  better  comport  with  the  context.  The  conclusion  of  the  inter- 
views manifests,  on  the  part  of  the  young  man,  a  want  of  uniform  obedience,  or  an  in- 
congruity of  character.  It  is,  however,  very  singular,  that  our  Lord  should  instantly 
proceed  to  answer  a  question,  after  inquiring,  why  it  was  asked,  and  without  pausing 
for  a  reply ; — thus  presenting  a  most  irrelevant  circumstance,  on  the  very  face  of  the 
amended  reading.     Trans. 

Why  callest  thou  me  good  ?  Why  dost  thou  give  me  a  title  not  ascribed  to  your  most 
renowned  rabbies ;  not  due  to  any  mere  man ;  thou  oughtest  to  believe  that  1  am  more 
than  human,  and  that  the  Divine  nature  dwelleth  in  me,  if  thou  conceivest  this  title 
truly  to  belong  to  me,  since  '  there  is  none  good  but  One,  that  is,  God.     Whitby. 

The  title  that  thou  hast  given  me,  if  thou  desirest  it  to  be  understood  in  its  true  and 
full  import,  impUes  your  belief  that  I  am  come  from  God  ;  for  he  alone  is  the  author 
and  source  of  all  good.     Mann. 

But  one,  that  is,  God.  But  God  only  :  but  God  pre-eminently,  as  the  fountain  of 
all  wisdom,  sovereignty,  power,  immortality,  and  goodness,  which  in  all  other  beings, 
even  in  the  Son  himself,  are  derived  frora  the  Father.     Hales. 


MATTHEW'S   HISTORY.  425 

In  several  passages  of  scripture  the  Father  alone  is  declared  to  be  God.  .  We 
are  taught,  that  the  Father  is  the  only  true  God  :  and  that  Jesus   Christ  is  another 

being,  distinct  from  him. If  any  further  proof  were  necessary  to  show,  that  Christ 

and  the  Father  are  not  one  being,  I  might  refer  you  to  such  an  expression  as  the  fol- 
lowing.    '  Why  callest  thou  me  good  .'     None  is  good  but  one  ;  that  is,  God.' 

Wintkrop  Bailey. 

What  the  real  reason  was,  for  which  Christ  gave  this  answer,  I  shall  not  here  ex- 
amine. If  Christ  is  not  God ;  then  he  certainly  would  disclaim,  and  ought  to  dis- 
claim, this  character.  If  he  is ;  then  this  assertion  does  not  at  all  declare,  that  he  is 
not  possessed  of  this  goodness.  The  decision  of  this  question  will,  therefore,  deter- 
mine the  true  application  of  this  answer.     Dwight. 

Matt,  xix,  20  ;  p.  67, 1.  7.  From  my  childhood.  From  my  youth.  Several  MSS, 
Versions,  and  Fathers,  leave  out  these  words.  Grotius  and  Mill  approve  of  the  omis- 
sion, and  Griesbach  leaves  them  in  the  text  with  a  note  of  suspicion.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xix,  93;  p.  67, 1.  13.  It  will  be  difficult  for  a  rich  man  to  enter.  T.  A  rich 
man  shall  hardly  enter.  R.  T.  That  is  into  the  spirit  and  privileges  of  the  gospel  in 
this  icorld,  and  through  them  into  the  kingdom  of  glory.  Earthly  riches  are  a  great 
obstacle  to  salvation  ;  but  what  rich  man  can  be  convinced  of  this  .■■  Christ  himself 
aflBrms  the  difiiculty  of  the  salvation  of  a  rich  man  with  an  oath,  verily,  but  who  of  the 
rich  either  hears  or  believes  him !     Clarke. 

Matt,  xix,  24;  p.  67,  1.  15.  A  camel.  Instead  of  nn/juixn,  camel,  six  MSS  read 
xnfiiKcv,  cable,  a  mere  gloss  inserted  by  those  who  did  not  know  that  the  other  was  a 
proverb  common  enough  among  the  people  of  the  East.     Clarice. 

Matt,  xix,  28;  p.  67,1.24.  You  will  also  sit  on  twelve  thrones, presiding  over  the 
twelve  tribes  of  Israel.  T.  Ye  also  shall  sit  upon  twelve  thrones,  judging  the  twelve  tribes 
of  Israel.  R.  T.  That  is,  by  inspiration,  ye  shall  publish  laws  for  the  government  of 
all  the  members  of  the  visible  church  on  earth,  and,  by  authority  derived  from  me,  ye 
shall  declare,  that  all  shall  be  judged  by  these  laws  at  the  last  day.     Macknight. 

Matt.  XX,  7 ;  p.  67, 1.  35.  And  lohatever  is  reasonable,  I  will  give  you.  T.  And 
whatsoever  is  right,  that  shall  ye  receive.  R.  T.  This  clause  is  wanting  in  some  of  the 
best  MSS,  Versions  and  Fathers.     Clarke.     Griesbach  marks  it  as  doubtful.     Trans. 

The  hours  in  this  narrative  are  calculated  from  the  present  six  o'clock  in  the  morn- 
ing as  the  first  hour.  Hence,  the  third  hour  there  mentioned  answers  to  nine  of  our 
computation,  the  sixth  to  twelve,  the  ninth  to  three,  the  eleventh  to  five,  and  evening 
to  six,  being  the  termination  of  the  period  of  labor,  which  comprised  twelve  hours. 
This  statement  is  applicable  to  other  places  in  the  New  Testament,  where  the  hours  of 
the  day  are  mentioned.     Trans. 

Matt.  XX,  16 ;  p.  68, 1.  7.  The  last  shall  be  first,  and  the  first  last.  The  Gentiles, 
who  have  been  long  without  the  true  God,  shall  now  enjoy  all  the  privileges  of  the 
new  covenant ;  and  the  Jews  who  have  enjoyed  these  from  the  beginning,  shall  now 
be  dispossessed  of  them ;  for,  because  they  have  rejected  the  Lord,  he  also  has  rejected 
them.     Clarlte. 

Matt.  XX,  22,  23 ;  p.  68, 1.  22,  23.  And  to  be  baptized  with  the  baptism  that  I  am  bap- 
tized with.  R.  T.  This  clause  in  this  and  the  next  verse,  is  wanting  in  B  D  L,  two 
others  (7  more  in  ver.  23),  Coptic,  Sahidic,  Etkiopic,  Mr  Wheelock's  Persic,  Vul- 
gate, Saxon,  and  all  the  Itala  but  two.  Grotius,  Mill,  and  Bengel,  think  it  should  be 
omitted,  and  Griesbach  has  left  it  out  of  the  Text  in  both  his  editions.  It  is  omitted 
also  by  Origen,  Epiphanius,  Hilary,  Jerom,,  Ambrose,  and  Juvencus.  According  to  the 
rules  laid  down  by  critics,  to  appreciate  a  false  or  true  reading,  this  clause  cannot  be 
considered  as  forming  a  part  of  the  sacred  text.  It  may  be  asked.  Does  not  drink  of 
my  cup,  convey  the  same  idea .'  Does  the  clause  add  any  thing  to  the  perspicuity  of 
the  passage  .'  And  though  found  in  many  good  MSS,  is  not  the  balance  of  evidence 
in  point  of  antiquity  against  it .'     Clarke. 

The  whole  of  this  clause,  and  that  corresponding  to  it,  in  the  subsequent  verse,  are 
in  this  Gospel  wanting  in  the  Vulgate  and  several  MSS.    As  they  are  found,  how- 

54 


426  APPENDIX. 

ever,  in  the  far  greater  number  both  of  ancient  versions,  and  of  MSS,  and  perfectly 
coincide  with  the  scope  of  the  passage,  I  did  not  think  there  was  weight  enough  in 
what  might  be  urged,  on  the  opposite  side,  to  warrant  the  omission  of  them ;  neither 
indeed  does  Wetstein.     But  Grotius  and  Mill  are  of  the  contrary  opinion.     Campbell. 

Matt.  XX,  23  ;  p.  68, 1.  23.  To  sit  on  my  right  hand,  and  on  my  left,  is  not  mine  to 
impart,  except  to  those,  for  whom  it  is  prepared  hy  my  Father.  T.  To  give,  unless  to 
those.  Wakefield.  The  common  translation,  in  which  the  words,  it  shall  he  given  to 
them,  are  interpolated  by  our  translators,  utterly  changes  and  destroys  the  meaning  of 
the  translators.  It  represents  Christ  (in  opposition  to  the  whole  Scriptures),  as  hav- 
ing nothing  to  do  in  the  dispensing  of  rewards  and  punishments.  The  true  construc- 
tion of  the  words  is  this  —  to  sit  on  my  right  hand  and  on  my  left,  is  not  mine  to  give, 
except  to  them  for  lehom  it  is  prepared  of  my  Father.  Clarke.  I  cannot  give,  unless  to 
those.  The  conjunction  axxa,  when  as  in  this  place,  it  is  not  followed  by  a  verb,  but  by  a 
noun  or  pronoun,  is  generally  to  be  understood  as  of  the  same  import  with  si  f^«,  nisi, 
unless,  except.  Otherwise,  the  verb  must  be  supplied,  as  is  done  here,  in  the  common 
version.  But  as  such  an  ellipsis  is  uncommon,  recourse  ought  not  to  be  had  to  it 
without  necessity.  Of  the  interpretation  I  have  given  of  the  conjunction  a^xa,  we 
have  an  example,  Mark  ix,  8,  compared  with  Matthew  xvii,  8.     Campbell. 

Matt.  XX,  28;  p.  68,  1.  33.  A  ransom  for  many.  Avi-fov  ttvri  n-ohhav,  or,  a  ransom 
instead  of  many,  —  one  ransom,  or  atonement,  instead  of  the  many  prescribed  in  the 
Jewish  law.  Mr  Wakefield  contends  for  the  above  translation,  and  with  considerable 
show  of  reason  and  probability.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xxi,  42  ;  p.  70, 1.  33.  A  stone,  which  the  builders  rejected.  An  expression  bor- 
rowed from  masons,  who,  finding  a  stone,  which  being  tried  in  a  particular  place,  and 
appearing  improper  for  it,  is  thrown  aside,  and  another  taken  :  however,  at  last,  it  may 
happen  that  the  very  stone  which  had  been  before  rejected,  may  be  found  the  most 
suitable  as  the  head  stone  of  the  corner.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xxi,  44  ;  p.  70, 1.  36.  The  44th  verse  should  certainly  come  before  ver.  43, 
otherwise  the  narration  is  not  consecutive.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xxii,  7;  p.  71,  1.  6,  Tlie  king  himself .  T.  The  King.  R.  T.  But  when  the 
king  HIMSELF  :  or,  this  very  king.  I  have  added  gxe/vof,  on  the  authority  of  nine  of 
the  most  ancient  MSS,  and  nearly  one  hundred  others ;  the  later  Syriac,  six  copies  of 
the  Jtala,  and  some  of  the  Fathers.  Several  printed  editions  have  it,  and  Griesbach 
has  received  it  into  the  text.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xxii,  18;  p.  71, 1.  27.  Dissemblers.  T.  Hypocrites.  R.  T.  The  Greek  word 
wTrojtjjiTMff,  as  metaphorically  used  in  Scripture,  has  more  latitude  of  signification  than 
the  word  hypocrite  formed  from  it,  as  used  in  modern  languages.  The  former  is  alike 
applicable  to  all  who  dissemble  on  any  subject  or  occasion  ;  the  latter  is  in  strictness 
applied  only  to  those  who,  in  whatever  concerns  religion,  lead  a  life  of  dissimulation. 
It  must  be  owned,  that  it  is  to  persons  of  this  character,  that  it  is  most  frequently 
applied  in  the  Gospel ;  but  the  judicious  philologist  hardly  needs  to  be  informed,  that 
the  more  the  signification  of  a  word  is  extended,  the  more  vague  and  general  it  be- 
comes, and  consequently,  if  a  reproachful  epithet,  the  softer.     Campbell, 

Matt,  xxii,  23  —  31 ;  p.  71, 1.  33.  Who  deny  a  future  state.  T.  Wliich  say  that  there 
is  no  resurrection.  R.  T.  Avaa-rrat^is,  or,  future  existerwe  of  inan.  This  word  is  common- 
ly, but  often  erroneously  rendered  Resurrection.  So  far  as  I  have  observed,  it  usually 
denotes  our  existence  beyond  the  grave.  Its  original  and  literal  meaning  is  fo  stand  up, 
or  to  stand  again.  Many  passages  of  Scripture  would  have  been  rendered  more  intel- 
ligible, and  the  thoughts  contained  in  them  more  just  and  impressive,  had  this  word 
been  translated  agreeably  to  its  real  meaning.  TJten  came  to  him,  says  the  Evangelist, 
the  Sadducees,  who  say  there  is  no  resurrection  :  //.n  iivm  ctvuirrtKrii,  that  there  is  no  future 
state,  or  no  future  existence  of  mankind.  They  ask,  Whose  wife  shall  she  be  in  the  resur- 
rection :  sv  T«  a.voLa•^ttffU  ',  in  the  future  state?  They  could  not  suppose,  that  she  would 
be  any  man's  wife  in  the  resurrection  :  a  momentary  event ;  and  of  such  a  nature  as 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  427 

to  forbid  even  the  supposition,  that  the  relations  of  the  present  life  could  be  of  the 
least  possible  importance,  or  be  regarded  with  the  least  possible  attention,  dm-ing  its 
transitory  existence.  Our  Saviour  answers  them,  In  the  Resurrection,  or  as  it  should 
be  rendered.  In  the  future  state.  But  as  touching  the  resurrection  of  the  dead;  or  as  it 
ought  to  be  rendered,  concerning  the  future  existence  of  those  who  are  dead.     Dwight. 

Matt,  xxii,  34  ;  p.  72, 1.  5.  Convened  for  the  same  purpose.  T.  Jliey  were  gathered 
together.  R.  T.  E)rj  to  nvro  —  they  came  together  vnth  one  accord,  ot,  for  the  same  pur- 
pose; i.  e.  ol  ensnaring  him  va.  his  discourse,  aa  the  Sadducees  had  done,  ver.  16. 
Clarice.     For  the  same  purpose.    Wakefield. 

Matt,  xxii,  35 ;  p.  72, 1.  5.  Hcftixcs,  a  teacher  of  the  law.  What  is  called  lawyer  in 
the  common  translation,  conveys  a  wrong  idea  to  most  readers.  These  teachers  of  the 
law  were  the  same  as  the  Scribes.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xxiii,  5 ;  p.  72, 1.  27.  They  extend  the  breadth  of  their  scrolls.  T.  They  make 
broad  their  phylacteries.  R.  T.  Phylacteries  may  be  rendered  frontlets  or  scrolls. 
Newcome.  Phylacteries.  *u\*iiT«5(a  from  ^puxcuririe,  to  keep  or  preserve.  These  were 
small  slips  of  parchment  or  vellum,  on  which  certain  portions  of  the  law  were  written. 
The  Jews  tied  these  about  their  foreheads  and  arms,  for  three  purposes.  —  1.  To  put 
them  in  mind  of  those  precepts  which  they  should  constantly  observe.  2.  To  procure 
them  reverence  and  respect  in  the  sight  of  the  heathen.  And  3.  To  act  as  amulets  or 
charms  to  drive  away  evil  spirits.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xxiii,  7 ;  p.  72,  1.  31.  Teacher,  Teacher.  T.  RaJihi,  Rabbi.  R.  T.  The 
second  Rabbi  is  omitted  by  several  excellent  MSS,  by  most  of  the  ancient  Versions, 
and  by  some  of  the  Fathers.  Griesbach  has  left  it  in  the  text,  with  the  note  of  doubt- 
fulness, Clarke.  It  is  not  found  in  some  MSS,  and  in  all  the  ancient  versions  ;  by 
which  I  always  understand  those  in  the  London  Polyglott,  and  the  Coptic  version. 
Wakefield. 

Matt,  xxiii,  8  ;  p.  72, 1.  31.  You  have  only  oneteacher.  T.  One  is  your  Master.  R.  T. 
Instead  of  KaBnyhrm,  guide,  or  leader,  (the  common  reading  here,  and  which  occurs  in 
verse  10,)  the  famous  Vatican  MS.,  upwards  of  fifty  others,  and  most  of  the  ancient 
Versions,  read  SiSao-xnM;,  master.  The  most  eminent  critics  approve  of  this  reading  ; 
and  independently  of  the  very  respectable  authority  by  which  it  is  supported,  it  is 
evident  that  this  reading  is  more  consistent  with  the  context  than  the  other,  —  Be  not 
ye  called  masters,  for  one  is  your  master.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xxiii,  8 ;  p.  72,  1.  31.  Even  Christ.  R.  T.  Griesbach  has  left  this  out  of  the 
text,  because  it  is  wanting  in  many  of  the  most  excellent  MSS,  Versions,  and  Fathers. 
Mill  and  Bengel  approve  of  the  omission.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xxiii,  14, 13;  p.  72, 1.  38.  Mas  for  you,  scribes.  T.  Woe  unto  you,  scribes. 
R.  T.  I  think  the  fourteenth  and  thirteenth  verses  should  be  transposed.  This  trans- 
position is  authorized  by  some  of  the  best  MSS,  Versions,  and  Fathers.  The  four- 
teenth is  wanting  in  the  B  D  L,  and  in  many  others  of  inferior  note,  as  well  as  in 
several  of  the  Versions.  Griesbach  had  left  it  out  of  the  text  in  his  first  edition ;  I 
hesitated,  'and  left  it  in,  thus  transposed.  I  am  happy  to  find  that  a  more  extensive 
collation  of  MSS,  &c,  has  afforded  proof  to  that  eminent  critic,  that  it  should  be  re- 
stored to  its  place.  In  liis  second  edition  he  has  transposed  the  two,  just  I  have  done. 
The  ^<!ce»ii7t  reads  better  after  the  i/MXecntA.  Clarke.  Mas.' for  you:  cuai  v/jw.  So 
I  uniformly  render  this  interjection.  Woe  unto  you.'  is  an  exclamation  better  suited 
to  the  enthusiasts  of  modern  times,  who  denounce  damnation  against  all  but  their  own 
sect,  than  to  the  benevolent  Saviour  of  mankind.  Wakefield.  See  Note  on  Matthew 
xviii,  7.    Trans. 

Matt,  xxiii,  15 ;  p.  72,  1.  46.  Son  of  gehenna.  T.  The  child  of  hell.  R.  T.  A 
Hebraism  for  an  excessively  wicked  person.  Clarke.  A  Hebrew  expression  for  one 
deserving  of  hell.     Beausobre. 

Matt,  xxiii,  21 ;  p.  73, 1.  10.  By  him  who  dwelt  therein.  T.  By  him  that  dwelleth 
therein.  R.  T.  The  common  reading  is  iMtommiTi,  dwelleth  or  inhabiteth,  but  tutroi- 
KHrttvri,  dwelt  or  did  inhabit,  is  the  reading  of  CDEFGHKLM,  eighty-six 


428  APPENDIX. 

others  :  this  reading  has  been  adopted  in  the  editions  of  Complutum,  Colineus,  Bengel, 
and  Griesbach.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xxiii,  25;  p.  73, 1.  ]9.  Rapine  and  injustice.  T.  Extortion  and  excess.  R.  T. 
A^TTityiK  x.a.1  axgoLs-in;,  rapine  and  intemperance :  but  instead  of  xxgaa-ixs,  intemperance, 
many  of  the  very  best  MSS,  C  E  F  G  H  K  S,  and  more  than  a  hundred  others,  the 
Syriac,  Arabic,  Ethiopic,  Slavonic,  with  Chrysostom,  Euthymius,  and  Theophylact, 
have  aSmiis,  injustice,  which  Griesbach  has  admitted  into  the  text  instead  of  nxgaimts. 
Clarke.  There  is  such  a  general  consent  of  MSS  and  Fathers,  with  the  Syriac,  Arabic, 
and  Ethiopic  versions,  for  the  word  hS-ikio.;,  injustice,  that  it  is  hardly  possible  to  doubt 
of  its  being  the  genuine  reading.  Besides,  it  suits  much  better  with  all  the  accounts 
we  have,  in  other  places,  of  the  character  of  the  Pharisees,  who  are  never,  as  far  as  I 
remember,  accused  of  intemperance,  though  often  of  injustice.  The  former  vice  is 
rarely  found  with  those  who,  like  the  Pharisees,  make  great  pretensions  to  religion. 

Camplell. 

Matt,  xxiv,  2 ;  p.  74, 1.  5.  View  all  these  things.  T.  See  ye  not  all  these  things. 
R.  T.  The  common  text,  and  many  manuscripts  have  o-j  ^mttiti,  do  ye  not  see,  or  con- 
sider. But  the  negative  particle  is  omitted  by  several  excellent  manuscripts,  by  the 
Coptic,  Sahidic,  Armenian,  Ethiopic,  Slavonic,  Vulgate,  and  Itala  versions,  and  by 
some  of  the  primitive  fathers,  who  all  read  it  thus,  see  or  consider  all  these  things. 
Clarke.  All  this  ye  see.  The  w,  not,  is  wanting  in  many  MSS.  The  Vulgate,  Ethi- 
opic, Coptic,  Arabic,  and  Saxon  versions  have  no  negative  particle  in  this  place  As 
the  expression  must  be  read  interrogatively,  if  we  admit  the  negative  ;  and  affirma- 
tively, if  we  reject  it ;  the  difference  cannot  be  said  to  affect  the  sense.  The  compo- 
sition is  rather  simpler  without  it.  I  have,  therefore,  with  many  modern  critics,  omit- 
ted it.  Campbell.  Griesbach  leaves  it  in  the  text,  but  designates  it  in  the  margin  as 
in  the  highest  degree  doubtful.    Tkans. 

Matt,  xxiv,  3 ;  p.  74, 1.  9.  Conclusion  of  this  state.  T.  End  of  the  world.  R.  T. 
Tdu  nimnc,  or,  of  the  age  ;  viz.  the  Jewish  economy,  which  is  a  frequent  accommodated 
meaning  of  the  word  awiiv.     Clarke.    End  of  the  age.    Newcome.     Wakefield. 

Matt,  xxiv,  17 ;  p.  74, 1.  9.  The  tilings.  T.  Any  thing.  R.  T.  Instead  of  ri,  any 
thing,  we  should  read  th,  the  things  ;  which  reading  is  supported  by  all  the  best  MSS, 
Versions,  and  Fathers.  Clarke.  To  carry  things.  There  is  a  very  general  consent 
of  MSS,  early  editions,  ecclesiastical  writers,  and  some  ancient  versions,  which  read 
TO.  instead  of  ti.     This  reading  I  have,  after  Mill  and  Wetstein,  preferred.     Campbell. 

Matt,  xxiv,  22 ;  p.  74, 1.  37.  Unless  those  days  be  restricted,  no  individual  could  sur- 
vive. T.  Except  those  days  should  be  shortened,  there  should  no  jlesh  be  saved.  R.  T. 
Josephus  computes  the  number  of  those  who  perished  in  the  siege  at  eleven  hundred 
thousand,  besides  those  who  were  slain  in  other  places,  war,  book  vi,  c.  9 ;  and  if  the 
Romans  had  gone  on  destroying  in  this  manner,  the  whole  nation  of  the  Jews  would 
in  a  short  time  have  been  entirely  extirpated  :  but  for  the  sake  of  the  elect,  the  Jews, 
that  they  might  not  be  utterly  destroyed,  and  for  the  Christians  particularly,  the  days 
were  shortened.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xxiv,  22 ;  p.  74, 1. 38.  On  account  of  the  chosen.  T.  For  the  elect's  sake.  R.  T. 
W^e  frequently  find  in  the  New  Testament  those  who  are  called  to  the  knowledge  and 
belief  of  the  christian  faith,  called  the  elect.     Wliitby. 

Matt,  xxiv,  27;  p.  74, 1.  46.  As  the  lightning.  It  is  worthy  of  remark,  that  our 
Lord  in  the  most  particular  manner,  points  out  the  very  march  of  the  Roman  army  : 
they  entered  into  Judea  on  the  east,  and  carried  on  their  conquest  westward,  as  if 
not  only  the  extensiveness  of  the  ruin,  but  the  very  rmite  which  the  army  would  take , 
were  intended  in  the  comparison  of  the  lightning  issuing  from  the  east,  and  shining  to 
the  west.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xxiv,  28  ;  p.  75, 1.  1.  Where  the  dead  carcass  is,  there  the  eagles  will  be  collect- 
M.  T.  For  wheresoever  the  carcass  is,  there  will  the  eagles  be  gathered  together.  R.  T. 
Meaning  that,  as  the  eagles  collect  wherever  they  find  their  prey,  so  shall  the  Roman 


MATTHEWS   HISTORY.  429 

armies  follow  the  call  of  Divine  vengeance.  This  expression  contains  u,  beautiful  al- 
lusion to  the  eagles  of  the  Roman  Standards.     Kewcome. 

Matt,  xxiv,  29  ;  p.  75, 1.  3.  The  sun  will  be  darkened.  In  prophetic  language,  great 
commotions  upon  earth  are  often  represented  under  the  notion  of  commotions  and 
changes  in  the  heavens.     Clarke. 

These  which  follow  are  strong  figurative  expressions,  denoting  that  the  Jewish  state 
should  be  utterly  destroyed.  By  similar  figures  we  frequently  find  described  in  Scrip- 
ture an  utter  desolation,  and  terrible  destruction  brought  upon  nations  and  capital 
cities.     Whitby. 

Matt,  xxiv,  30 ;  p.  75, 1.  5.  And  the  sign  of  the  Son  of  man  will  then  appear.  The 
plain  meaning  of  this  is,  that  the  destruction  of  Jerusalem  will  be  such  a  remarkable 
instance  of  Divine  vengeance,  such  a  signal  manifestation  of  Christ's  power  and  glory, 
that  all  the  Jewish  tribes  shall  mourn,  and  many  will,  in  consequence  of  this  manifes- 
tation of  God,  be  led  to  acknowledge  Christ  and  his  religion.  By  tw  >«!,  of  the  land, 
in  the  text,  is  evidently  meant  here,  as  in  several  other  places,  the  land  of  Judea,  and 
its  tribes,  either  its  then  inhabitants,  or  the  Jewish  people  wherever  found.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xxiv,  31;  p.  75,  1.  8.  He  will  send  his  messengers.  T.  He  shall  send  his 
angels.  R.  T.  Toyf  ciyyixw;,  his  messengers,  the  apostles,  and  their  successors  in  the 
Christian  ministry.     Clarke. 

Then  it  shall  become  most  evident  that  Jesus  was  the  true  and  only  Messiah,  and 
the  Jews  shall  lament  and  mourn,  and  be  forced  to  acknowledge  the  power,  and  glory, 
and  majesty  of  Christ,  who  will  then  send  forth  his  ministers  among  the  Gentiles,  and 
will  gather  into  one  body  those  who  believe  and  obey  his  Gospel,  from  among  all  the 
nations  of  the  earth.  In  like  manner  at  the  end  of  the  world,  after  long  persecutions 
and  aiflictions  of  the  church,  and  after  great  disturbances  and  revolutions  in  all  the 
nations  of  the  world,  Christ  will  at  last  appear  in  the  clouds  of  heaven  with  power  and 
great  glory,  and  he  will  send  his  angels  through  the  world,  and  gather  together  his 
elect,  tliat  is,  all  good  men  who  have  believed  and  obeyed  him,  and  reward  them  with 
eternal  life.     S.  Clarke. 

Matt.  XXV,  9 ;  p.  76, 1.  6.  Go  rather  to  those  who  sell.  T.  But  go  ye  rather  to  them 
that  sell.  R.  T.  By  leaving  out  the  particle  Si,  but,  (on  the  indisputable  authority  of 
A  B  D  G  H  K  S  ,  and  H  V ,  of  Matthai,  with  sixteen  others,  the  Armenian,  Vulgate, 
and  all  the  Itala  but  one)  and  transposing  a  very  little  the  members  of  the  sentence, 
the  sense  is  more  advantageously  represented  and  the  reading  smoother  :  Rather  go  to 
them  that  sell,  and  buy  for  yourselves,  lest  there  be  not  enough  for  us  and  you.  Beza, 
Mill,  Bengel  and  Griesbach  approve  of  the  omission  of  the  particle  Si.     Clarke. 

Matt.  XXV,  13  ;  p.  76, 1.  13.  IVJierein  the  Son  of  Man  eometh.  R.  T.  Ev  n  o  uio;  tou 
nipdTnv  ee;^;sTa(.  These  words  are  omitted  by  many  excellent  MSS,  most  of  the 
Versions,  and  several  of  the  Fathers.  Griesbaeh  has  left  them  out  of  the  text :  Grotius, 
Hammond,  Mill,  and  Bengel,  approve  of  the  omission.  Clarke.  I  have  not  translated 
this  clause.  It  is  wanting  in  so  many  MSS,  and  in  the  Vulgate,  Syriac,  and  most  of 
the  ancient  versions,  as  well  as  the  early  ecclesiastical  writers  who  commented  on  the 
Gospel,  that  it  cannot,  in  a,  consistency  with  the  rules  of  criticism,  be  received. 


Matt.  XXV,  29;  p.  76,  1.  43.  To  every  one,  who  attends  to  what  he  has.  T.  Unto 
every  one  that  hath.  R.  T.  In  natural  things,  as  well  as  in  spiritual,  it  is  a  never  fail- 
ing truth,  that  to  him  who  hath,  (that  is,  to  him  who  occupies  what  he  hath  diligently, 
and  so  as  to  increase  it),  more  shall  be  given.  Coioper.  Doddridge.  Whosoever  hath, 
or  rather  improveth  what  he  hath,  to  him  shall  be  given ;  but  whosoever  hath  not,  or 
rather  neglecteth  what  he  hath,  from  him  even  that  shall  be  taken.  This  is  a  part  of 
the  parable  of  the  ten  talents,  and  relates  to  the  unprofitable  servant.  It  needs  no 
comment;  it  is  the  universal  rule  of  the  divine  dispensations.    Henry  Colman. 

Matt.  XXV,  31 ;  p.  77, 1.  2.  Angels.  T.  Holy  angels.  R.  T.  The  word  ^yiai,  lioly, 
is  omitted  by  many  excellent  Manuscripts,  Versions,  and  Fathers.  Mill  and  Bengel 
approve  of  the  omission,  and  Griesbach  has  left  it  out  of  the  text.     Clarke. 


430  APPENDIX. 

Matt.  XXV,  37;  p.  77, 1.  12.  Wlien  did  we  see  thee  hungry.  T.  JVlien  saw  we  thee  an- 
hungred.  R.  T.  This  barbarous  expression  an-hungred,  should  he  banished  out  of  the 
text,  wheresoever  it  occurs,  and  the  simple  word,  hungry,  substituted.     Clarke. 

Matt.  XXV,  40;  p.  77, 1.  16.  Since  you  performed  this.  T.  Ss  ye  have  done  it.  R.  T. 
It  is  a  most  remarkable  fact,  and  above  all  things,  let  every  one  remember  it,  that  in 
our  Saviour's  account  of  his  administrations  at  the  final  day,  he  has  founded  his  appro- 
bation of  good  men  and  their  everlasting  reward,  upon  their  performance  of  the  duties 
of  charity.     Dwight. 

Matt,  xxvi,  28  ;  p.  78,  1.  26.  And  having  praised  God.  T.  And  blessed  it.  R.  T. 
Many  Greek  copies,  [upwards  of  100],  have,  gave  thanks.  M.  R.  Both  StMatthew  and 
St  Mark  use  the  word  iu\oy«<i-a.s,  blessed,  instead  of  £u;^«g(crT»ir«t,  gave  thanks,  which  is 
the  word  used  by  St  Lmke  and  St  Paul.  But  instead  oi  ivKoyn^a.!,  blessed,  lu^a^iimio-a!, 
gave  thanks,  is  the  reading  of  ten  MSS  in  uncial  characters,  of  the  Dublin  Codex 
rescriptus,  published  by  Dr  Barrett,  and  of  more  than  one  hundred  others,  of  the 
greatest  respectability.  This  is  the  reading  also  of  the  Syriac,  and  Arabic,  and  is  con- 
firmed by  several  of  the  primitive  fathers.  The  terms,  in  this  case,  are  nearly  of  the 
same  import,  as  both  blessing  and  giving  thanks  were  used  on  these  occasions.  But 
what  was  it  that  our  Lord  blessed  ?  Not  the  bread,  though  many  think  the  contrary, 
being  deceived  by  the  word  it,  which  is  improperly  supplied  in  our  version.  Clarke. 
Griesbach  cites  the  corrected  reading  in  the  margin,  as  of  very  high  authority.  Th.^ns. 

Having  given  thanlis.  The  number  of  MSS,  many  of  them  of  principal  note,  edi- 
tions, fathers,  &c,  that  read  su^aL^ttrTita-cic,  instead  of  tv^oywa-a.;,  is  so  great  as  to  remove 
every  doubt  of  its  being  genuine.  Mill  and  Wetstein  both  receive  it.  Indeed  it  may 
be  said  to  be  of  little  consequence  here  which  way  we  read,  as  the  two  words  are 
admitted  by  critics  to  be,  in  this  application,  synonymous.     Campbell. 

Matt,  xxvi,  29 ;  p.  78,  1.  32.  Of  this  product  of  the  vine.  T.  Of  this  fruit  of  the 
vine.  R.  T.  Of  the  product  of  the  vine,  a  todtm/  ymufxiiTiic  ms  a.fi'jriKcu.  The  Greek 
term  for  fruit  is  xagjros.  The  word,  ymtt/Aa,  I  have  literally  rendered.  Besides,  The 
fruit  of  the  vine  is  not  icine,  but  grapes ;  and  we  speak  of  eating,  but  never  of  drink- 
ing, fruit.     Campbell. 

Matt,  xxvi,  29;  p.  78, 1.  32.  Drink  it  new  with  you.  That  is,  I  shall  no  more  drink 
of  the  produce  of  the  vine  with  you ;  but  shall  drink  new  wine  —  wine  of  a  widely 
different  nature  from  this  —  a  wine  which  the  kingdom  of  God  alone  can  afibrd.  The 
term  new,  in  Scripture,  is  often  taken  in  this  sense.  So  that  new  heaven,  the  new 
earth,  the  new  covenant,  the  new  man — mean  a  heaven,  earth,  covenant,  man,  of  a  very 
different  nature  from  the  former.  It  was  our  Lord's  invariable  custom  to  illustrate 
heavenly  things  by  those  of  earth :  and  to  make  that  which  had  last  been  the  subject 
of  conversation,  the  means  of  doing  it.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xxvi,  34 ;  p.  78, 1.  40.  Before  a  watch-trumpet  shall  sound.  T.  Before  the  cock 
craw.  R.  T.  That  is,  probably  'before  the- trumpet  sounds  for  the  third  watch.'  Im- 
proved Version.  Can  it  be  presumed,  that  the  accomphshment  of  the  predicted  defec- 
tion of  Peter  was  actually  indicated  by  the  crowing  of  a  particular  fowl  i  See  Note 
on  Luke  xxii,  34.     Trans. 

Matt,  xxvi,  38;  p.  97, 1.  1.  Jesus  then  says  to  them.  T.  Then  saith  he  unto  them.  R. 
T.  Then  saith  —  Jesus :  —  I  have  added  the  word  Jesus,  o  Isirot/t,  on  the  authority  of  a 
multitude  of  eminent  MSS.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xxvi,  45;  p.79, 1. 16.  Of  sinners.  A/M^Ta\m,viz.  the  Gentiles  or  heathens,  who 
were  generally  distinguished  by  this  appellation,  from  the  Jews.  Clarke.  Of  sinners, 
means  of  the  Gentiles;  as  is  plain  from  Matthew  xx,  18, 19.     Maclmight. 

Matt,  xxvi,  50 ;  p.  79, 1.  25.  Jesus  said  to  him,  Companion,  against  whom  are  you 
come  ?  T.  Jesus  said  unto  him,  Friend,  wherefore  art  thou  come  ?  R.  T.  Companion. 
M.  R.  Jesus  said  —  Friend.  Rather  companion,  sTa/j«  (not  friend)  tcherefore,  rather 
against  whom  (i^'  a,  the  reading  of  the  best  MSS)  art  thou  come  ?  Clarke.  This  is  tlie 
reading  of  Griesbach.    Trans. 


MATTHEW'S  HISTORY.  431 

Matt,  xxvi,  66;  p.  80, 1.  12.  He  deserves  to  die.  T.  He  is  guilty  of  death.  R.  T. 
The  latter  is  an  unmeaning  expression.     Trans. 

Matt,  xxvi,  71 ;  p.  66,  1.  20.  Said  to  them,  This  person  was  also  there.  T.  Said 
unto  them  that  were  there.  R.  T.  Instead  of  Myti  tok  tnu  xai,  tQoie  than  one  hundred 
MSS,  many  of  which  are  of  the  first  authority  and  antiquity,  have  \iyei  auTo«'  ixii  xxi, 
she  saith  unto  them,  This  man  was  there  also.  I  rather  think  this  is  the  genuine  read- 
ing. Griesbach  approves  of  it.  Clarke.  A  very  great  number  of  MSS,  among  which 
are  some  of  the  most  ancient,  read  j^iyti  awraic  E»«  xai  ouTOf  uv.  The  Syriao  and 
Gothic  have  read  so.  It  is  in  the  Com.  and  Aid.  editions.  It  is  supported  by  Origen 
and  Chrysostom,  and  preferred  by  Grotius,  Mill,  and  Wetstein.  I  might  add,  that,  in 
the  common  reading,  the  adverb  itm,  there,  is  absurdly  superfluous ;  for  who  can  im- 
agine that  she  addressed  herself  to  those  who  were  not  there.     Campbell. 

Matt,  xxvi,  74 ;  p.  66, 1.  24.  Positively  to  affirm  —  K.iTaBifiiiTi^iiv.  But  the  common 
reading  is  x.a.tm^ifAa.Ti^m,  which  signifies  to  wish  curses  on  himself.  The  former 
reading  is  supported  by  almost  every  MS.  of  value,  and  is,  beyond  dispute,  the  true 
reading.    Clarke.     Griesbach  adopts  it.     Teaks. 

Matt,  xxvii,  4 ;  p.  80, 1.  35.  Innocent  man.  T.  Innocent  blood.  R.  T.  Ai/xa.  a.8mti, 
a  Hebraism  for  an  innocent  man.  But  instead  of  aflaon,  innocent,  two  ancient  MSS, 
Syriac,  Vulgate,  Sahidic,  Armenian,  and  all  the  Itala ;  Origen,  Cyprian,  Lucifer,  Am- 
brose, Leo,  read  Sunm,  righteous,  or  just.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xxvii,  5;  p.  80,  1.  38.  Was  strangled.  T.  Hanged  himself.  R.  T.  Wa.s 
choked  with  anguish.  Wakefield.  Or  was  strangled  —  a.Tny^a.'ro.  Some  eminent 
critics  believe  that  he  was  only  suffocated  by  excessive  grief,  and  thus  they  think  the 
account  here  given  will  agree  with  that  in  Acts  i,  18.  Mr  Wakefield  supports  this 
meaning  of  the  word  with  great  learning  and  ingenuity.  I  have  my  doubts.  .  .  I  have 
thought  proper,  on  a  matter  of  such  diflaculty,  to  use  the  word  strangled,  as  possessing 
a  middle  meaning  between  choking  or  suffocation  by  excessive  grief,  and  hanging,  as 
an  act  of  suicide.  Clarke.  The  Greek  word  plainly  denotes  strangling  ;  but  does  not 
say  how,  by  hanging,  or  otherwise.  It  is  a  quite  different  term  that  is  used  in  those 
places  where  hanging  is  mentioned.  It  may  be  rendered,  was  strangled,  or  was  suffo- 
cated.    Campbell. 

Matt,  xxvii.  29 ;  p.  81,  1.  32.  An  acanthine  crown.  T.  A  crown  of  thorns.  R.  T. 
iTifaivov  ej  an^vBm.  It  does  not  appear,  that  this  crown  was  intended  to  be  an  instru- 
ment of  punishment  or  torture  to  his  head,  but  rather  to  render  him  ridiculous ;  for 
which  cause  also,  they  pat  a  reed  in  his  hand  by  way  o£ sceptre,  and  bowed  their  knees, 
pretending  to  do  him  homage.  The  crown  was  not  probably  of  thorns,  in  our  sense  of 
the  word  :  there  are  eminently  learned  men,  who  think  that  the  crown  was  formed  of 
the  herb  acanthus  ;  and  Bishop  Pearce  and  Michaelis  are  of  this  opinion.  Mark,  chap. 
XV,  17;  and  John,  chap,  xix,  5,  term  it  <m<pa.vtiv  aunvflwov,  which  may  very  well  be 
translated  an  acanthine  crown,  or  wreath  formed  out  of  the  branches  of  the  herb  acan- 
thus, or  bear's-foot.  This,  however,  is  a  prickly  plant,  though  nothing  like  thorns,  in 
the  common  meaning  of  that  word.  Many  Christians  have  gone  astray  in  magnifying 
the  sufferings  of  Christ  from  this  circumstance ;  and  painters,  the  worst  of  all  com- 
mentators, frequently  represent  Christ  with  a  crown  of  long  thorns,  which,  one  stand- 
ing by,  is  striking  into  his  head  with  a  stick.  These  representations  produce  ideas, 
both  false  and  absurd.     Clarke.  ^ 

Platted  a  crown  of  thorns.  '  This  may  have  been  made  of  the  herb  acanthus,  or 
bear's-foot,  said  to  be  very  common  in  the  vicinity  of  Jerusalem,  and  which  is  not 
thorny,  but  soft  and  smooth.  Bp  Pearce  also,  says,  that  he  does  not  find  it  mentioned 
as  an  instance  of  cruelty  towards  our  Saviour,  by  any  of  the  primitive  Christians,  tOl 
the  time  of  TertuUian,  nearly  two  centuries  after  Christ.  As  the  reed  in  his  hand  was 
intended  for  mockery  only,  the  same,  it  is  likely,  was  the  design  of  the  crown.'  Priest- 
ley. Grotius  expresses  a  similar  opinion.  That  it  was  not  made  ftom  the  above  herb, 
and  that  it  was  painful,  is,  on  the  other  hand,  strenuously  maintained  by  Campbell. 
Dabney. 


432  APPENDIX. 

Matt,  xxvii,  34;  p.  81, 1.  42.  They  gave  him  sour  wine.  T.  They  gave  him  vine- 
gar. R.  T.  Instead  of  ojop,  vinegar,  several  excellent  MSS  and  Versions  have  „my, 
wine;  but  as  sour  wine  is  said  to  have  been  a  general  drink  of  the  common  people,  and 
Roman  soldiers,  it  being  the  same  as  vinegar,  it  is  of  little  consequence  which  reading 
is  here  adopted.  Clarke.  Griesbach  regards  the  two  readings  as  of  equal  authority. 
Tkans. 

Matt,  xxvii,  35 ;  p.  81, 1.  44.  Thai  it  might  hefidfilled  which  was  spoken  by  the  proph- 
et, saying,  They  parted  my  garments  among  them,  and  upon  my  vesture  did  they  cast  lots. 
R.  T  The  whole  of  this  quotation  should  be  omitted,  as  making  no  part  originally  of 
the  genuine  text  of  this  Evangelist.  It  is  omitted  by  almost  every  MS.  of  worth  and 
importance,  by  almost  all  the  Versions,  and  the  most  reputable  of  the  primitive  Fath- 
ers, who  have  written  or  commented  on  the  place.  The  words  are  plainly  an  interpol- 
ation, borrowed  from  John  xix,  24.     Clarke. 

These  words  are  wanting  in  a  very  great  number  of  MSS,  in  which  the  most  val- 
uable are  included,  in  the  works  of  some  ancient  commentators,  in  several  early  ver- 
sions and  editions.  Though  the  Vulgate  in  the  common  editions,  has  this  clause,  it  is 
not  found  in  many  of  their  best  MSS.  As  it  was  a  practice  with  some  transcribers,  to 
correct,  and,  as  they  imagined,  improve,  one  Gospel  by  another,  it  is  extremely  prob- 
able, that  this  clause  has  been,  at  first,  copied  out  of  John,  to  whose  Gospel  it  properly 
belongs.     Campbell.     Griesbach  excludes  the  passage  from  the  text.     Tbans. 

Matt,  xxvii,  38 ;  p.  82, 1.  1.  Two  robbers.  T.  Two  thieves.  R.  T.  AatrTcti,  robbers. 
Clarke.  The  Greek  word  \wTa.i,  robbers,  is  in  this  verse,  and  in  Mark  xv,  27,  and  in 
Luke  i,  30,  as  well  as  in  other  places,  incorrectly  rendered  thieves,  by  the  English 
translators.  Tbans. 
Matt,  xxvii,  40 ;  p.  82, 1.  5.  If  thou  art  God's  Son.  T.  If  thou  be  the  Son  of  God.  R.  T. 
God's  Son.  Campbell.  T!te  Son  of  God.  Or  rather  Tizs  tou  escu,  A  son  of  God,  i.  e. 
a  peculiar  favorite  of  the  Most  High  ;  not  O  Tias  rou  eim,  The  Son  of  God.  '  It  is 
not  to  be  conceived,  says  a  learned  man,  that  every  passenger  who  was  going  to  the 
city,  had  a  competent  knowledge  of  Christ's  supernatural  conception  by  the  Holy 
Spirit,  or  an  adequate  comprehension  of  his  character  as  the  Messiah,  and  (jtetr'  t^axnv) 
The  son  of  God.  There  is  not  a  single  passage,  where  Jesus  is  designed  to  be  point- 
ed out  as  the  Messiah,  the  son  of  God,  where  the  article  is  omitted  :  nor  on  the  oth- 
er hand,  is  this  designation  ever  specified  without  the  article,  thus,  O  Ttog  tou  ©sco,  The 
Son  of  God.     See  chap,  xvi,  16 ;  xxvi,  63 ;  xxviii,  19.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xxvii,  42 ;  p.  82, 1.  8.  We  will  believe  in  him.  T.  We  will  believe  him.  R.  T. 
Instead  of  etuTa,  him,  many  excellent  MSS  have  i7r'  a.vroa,  in  him  :  this  is  a  reading 
which   Griesbach  and  other  eminent  critics  have  adopted.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xxvii,  46  ;  p.  81, 1.  14.  My  God,  my  God,  to  whom  hast  thou  surrendered  me? 
T.  My  God,  my  God,  why  hast  thou  forsaken  me  7  R.  T,  Some  have  taken  occasion 
from  these  words  to  depreciate  the  character  of  our  blessed  Lord.  '  They  are  unwor- 
thy,' say  they, '  of  a  man  who  suffers,  conscious  of  his  innocence,  and  argue  imbecility, 
impatience,  and  despair.'  This  is  by  no  means  fairly  deduoible  from  the  passage. 
However,  some  think  that  the  words,  as  they  stand  in  the  Hebrew  and  Syriac,  are 
capable  of  a  translation  which  destroys  all  objections,  and  obviates  every  difficulty. 
The  particle  HD?  larrmh,  mny  be  translated  to  what — to  whom  —  to  what  kind  or 
sort  —  to  what  purpose  or  profit.  .  .  The  words  taken  in  this  way,  might  be  thus  trans- 
lated :  My  God !  My  God !  to  what  sort  of  persons  hast  thou  left  me  7  The  words  thus 
understood  are  rather  to  be  referred  to  the  wicked  Jews,  than  to  our  Lord,  and  are  an 
exclamation  indicative  of  the  obstinate  wickedness  of  his  crucifiers,  who  steeled  their 
hearts  against  every  operation  of  the  Spirit  and  power  of  God.  .  .  Through  the  whole 
of  the  Sacred  Writings,  God  is  represented  as  doing  those  things,  which,  in  the  course 
of  his  providence,  he  only  permits  to  be  done;  therefore,  the  words,  to  whom  hast 
thou  left  or  given  me  up,  are  only  a  form  of  expression  for  '  How  astonishing  is  the 
wickedness  of  those  persons,  into  whose  hands  I  am  fallen  !'  If  this  interpretation  be 
admitted,  it  will  free  this  celebrated  passage  from  much  embarrassment,  and  make  it 


MATTHEW'S    HISTORY.  433 

speak  a  sense  consistent  with  itself,  and  with  the  dignity  of  the  Son  of  God.  .  .  The 
words  of  St  Mark,  chap,  xv,  34,  agree  pretty  nearly  with  this  translation  of  the  He- 
brew: Ei?  *Ti  fjit  ryKst*Tt\i7m )  TbwAat  [sori  of  persons,  understood]  hast  thou  left  me.  .  . 
It  may  be  objected,  that  this  can  never  agree  with  the  nxTi,  why,  of  Matthew.  To  this  it 
is  answered,  that  ituTt  must  have  here  the  same  meaning  as  eij  « —  as  the  translation  of 
no?  '<"«« ;  and  that  if  the  meaning  be  at  all  different,  we  must  follow  the  Evange- 
list, who  expresses  most  literally  the  meaning  of  the  original :  and  let  it  be  observed, 
that  the  Septuagint  often  translate  nD7  by  ivnn,  instead  of  sic  ti,  which  evidently 
proves  that  it  often  had  the  same  meaning.  .  One  thing  is  certain,  that  the  words 
could  not  be  used  by  our  Lord,  in  the  sense  in  which  they  are  generally  understood. 

Clarke. 

Matt,  xxvii,  54;  p.  82, 1.  27.  A  Son  of  God.  T.  The  Son  of  God.  R.  T.  This  was 
certainly  the  Son  of  a  God.  If  the  words  in  connexion  be  ever  sufficient  to  remove  all 
doubt,  they  are  sufficient  in  v.  54.  That  the  expression  in  question  came  from  one, 
who,  as  he  believed  a  plurality  of  Gods,  could  scarcely  have  spoken  otherwise  than 
indefinitely,  is  perfectly  decisive.  Let  it  be  observed,  further,  that  the  same  indefinite 
expression  is  used  in  the  parallel  place,  Mark  xv,  39.     Campbell. 

It  is  not  likely  that  this  centurion  had  any  knowledge  of  the  expectation  of  the  Jews 
relative  to  the  Messiah,  and  did  not  use  the  words  in  this  sense.  A  Son  of  God,  as  the 
Romans  used  the  term,  would  signify  no  more  than  a  very  eminent  or  divine  person ;  a. 
hero.     Clarke. 

The  centurion  being  convinced  (by  wh%t  he  had  beheld)  of  the  truth  of  our  Lord's 
assertions,  declared  his  belief  in  that  truth,  by  ascribing  to  him  the  title  which  he  had 
claimed  with  his  dying  breath,  and  for  claiming  which  he  had  been  sentenced  to  die ; 
and  consequently  used  the  phrase  in  the  sense  in  which  our  Lord  himself  applied  it, 
whatever  sense  that  might  be  — '  Truly  this  man  must  have  been  that  which  he  called 
himself,  The  Son  of  God.'  —  Besides,  it  still  remains  to  be  asked,  what  reason  is 
there  to  presume,  that  the  centurion,  who  had  been  a  resident  in  Judea,  was  not  a 
devout  man,  and  one  who  had  been  taught  to  look  for  the  kingdom  of  the  Messiah .''... 
The  Greek  article  is  not  necessarily  to  be  rendered  by  the  EngUsh  definite,  much  less 
is  the  English  indefinite  to  be  always  employed  where  the  Greek  article  is  wanting. 

Magee. 

The  presumption  that  the  centurion  did  not  refer  to  our  Lord  as  the  Messiah,  may 
be  derived  from  the  fact,  that  according  to  Luke,  he  simply  declares.  This  was,  assur- 
edly, a  righteous  man.  The  violation  of  the  Greek  in  this  placCj  appears,  therefore, 
to  be  unauthorized.     Trans. 

In  Jesus  Christ  we  have  such  an  e.xample  of  moral  excellence,  as  neither  before  nor 
since  that  time  has  been  exhibited  to  the  admiration  of  mankind.  Its  grandeur  com- 
pels our  homage  ;  its  benevolence  and  purity  speak  to  our  hearts.  To  act  upon  the 
best  principles  and  with  the  purest  intentions  ;  in  the  discharge  of  duty  to  rise  superior 
to  all  personal  considerations,  and  to  be  unappalled  by  the  anticipation,  and  unbroken 
by  the  reality  of  danger  and  suffering ;  to  sacrifice  every  valuable  interest  in  life,  and 
to  surrender  life  itself  with  a  single  reference  to  the  will  and  purposes  of  heaven ;  to  be 
entirely  devoted  to  truth  and  virtue,  to  the  good  of  mankind  and  the  glory  of  God  ; 
this,  my  brethren,  is  the  history  of  Jesus.  His  fidelity  and  perseverance  in  the  per- 
formance of  his  duty ;  his  courage,  and  patience,  and  meekness  amidst  the  greatest 
sufferings ;  his  superiority  to  every  emotion  of  resentment  under  accumulated  provo- 
cations ;  his  compassion  and  forgiveness  towards  his  betrayers  and  murderers ;  his 
forgetfulness  of  his  own  sufferings,  in  his  tenderness  and  affection  for  his  mother,  so 
touchingly  displayed  in  the  midst  of  his  agonies  ;  and  lastly,  his  rational  and  inflexi- 
ble piety,  and  the  lofty  spirit  of  religious  confidence,  which  sanctified  all  his  actions, 
and  sustained  him  under  all  his  trials ;  what  a  dazzling  constellation  of  the  most  dif- 
ficult, useful,  and  sublime  virtues !  what  a  perfect  test  of  the  efficacy,  and  what  a  glo- 
rious display  of  the  fruits,  of  the  religion  which  he  taught !     Such  virtues  define  the 

55 


434  APPENDIX. 

farthest  limits  of  human  excellence  ;  they  reflect  the  light  of  heaven  ;  they  bear  the 
impression  of  the  divinity  ;  truly  this  was  the  Son  of  God.     Henry  Colman. 

Matt,  xxvii,  63;  p.  82, 1.  41.  The  word  Kugis,  is  here  very  properly  translated  Sir, 
which,  in  many  other  places,  is  as  improperly  translated  Lord.  When  a  Roman  is  the 
speaker,  or  the  person  addressed,  Kug«  should  always  be  translated  Sir :  when  strangers 
addressed  our  Lord,  the  word  is  a  title  of  civil  respect ;  and  should,  in  general,  be 
translated  in  the  same  way.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xxvii,  64 ;  p.  82,  1.  44.  Lest  his  disciples  should  come,  clandestinely  convey 
him  away.  T.  Lest  his  disciples  come  by  night,  and  steal  him  away.  R.  T.  Ni/xtcc, 
hy  night,  is  wanting  in  ten  of  the  uncial  MSS,  and  in  several  others,  and  in  most  of 
the  Versions.  Erasmus,  Aldus,  Bengd  and  Boghard,  with  Griesbach,  leave  it  out  of 
the  text.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xxviii,  9 ;  p.  83,  1.  18.  And  as  they  went  to  tdl  his  disciples.  R.  T.  This 
clause  is  wanting  in  the  Codex  Vatican,  and  Codex  Bezse,  and  in  twenty  others,  and 
in  most  of  the  Versions.  The  omission  is  approved  by  Mill,  Bengel,  and  Schmid. 
Grieshack  leaves  it  in  the  text  with  a  note  of  doubtfulness.  It  appears  to  be  superflu- 
ous. To  connect  this  with  the  next  clause,  the  article  na.',  and,  is  obliged  to  be  sup- 
pressed in  all  the  translations.  I  think  the  verse  should  begin  with  And  behold,  &c, 
and  the  former  clause  be  suppressed.  Probabiliter  delenda,  [it  should  probably  be 
erased,]  says  Professor  White.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xxvii,  16 ;  p.  83, 1.  30.  The  eleven  disciples.  From  the  eleventh  to  the  ffteenth 
verse  inclusive,  should  be  read  in  a  parenthesis,  as  the  sixteenth  verse  is  the  contin- 
uation of  the  subject  mentioned  in  the  tenth.     Clarke. 

Matt,  xxviii,  19 ;  p.  83,  1.  34.  Christianize  all  the  nations.  T.  Teach  all  nations. 
R.  T.  Make  disciples,  or,  christians  of  all  nations.  M.  R.  Convert  all  the  nations. 
Campbell.  Make  disciples  of  all  nations.  Wakefield.  The  word  ^stSxTSyo-stTe,  ren- 
dered teach  in  the  common  translation,  is  literally  rendered  disciple.  AiSiaum  is  the 
proper  term  to  denote  teaching.  MaflaTeya)  denotes  to  make  a  person  a  disciple,  in  the 
same  sense,  in  which  the  Apostles  and  their  cotemporary  Christians,  were  disciples 
of  Christ.  Dwight.  There  is  no  such  verb  as  to  disciple  in  the  language.  Campbell. 
The  marginal  translation  in  our  Bible,  is  more  agreeable  to  the  Greek  Testament:  Go 
ye  therefore  and  make  disciples,  or.  Christians  of  all  nations  :  the  Greek  word  sig- 
nifying not  only  to  teach,  but  also  admit  as  a  scholar  ;  and  it  is  different  from  the  word 
rendered  teaching,  in  the  middle  of  the  text,  which  properly  signifies,  to  teach,  or  in- 
struct.    Seahury. 

Matt,  xxviii,  14.  Baptizing  them  in  the  name.  In,  or  into,  the  name.  Dwight, 
Winthrop  Bailey,  Improved  Version.  At  the  present  time,  into  is  known  to  be  pre- 
ferred in  the  performance  of  this  rite  by  many  pastors,  without  distinction  of  doctrinal 
belief.     Dabney. 

Matt,  xxvii,  19,  The  Holy  Spirit.  T.  TAe  Holy  Ghost.  R.  T.  rivio/^a,  in  this  con- 
nexion, is  uniformly  rendered  Spirit,  by  the  highest  authorities.     Trans. 

Matt,  xxviii,  20;  p.  83, 1.  37.  Amen.  This  word  is  omitted  by  some  of  the  oldest 
and  most  authentic  MSS,  and  by  some  Versions  and  Fathers.  When  it  is  considered 
that  the  word  amen  simply  means  so  be  it.'  we  may  at  once  perceive,  that  it  could  not 
be  added  by  our  Lord-  Clarke.  Griesbach  leaves  the  word  amen  out  of  the  text,  at 
the  conclusion  of  all  the  books  of  the  New  Testament,  except  Rom.,  1  Cor.,  Gal.,  and 
Jude,  where  he  inserts  it  as  of  unequivocal  authority,  and  also  Philip,,  2  Thess.,  Heb., 
and  2  Pet.,  in  which,  though  he  includes  the  word,  he  remarks  that  it  should  probably 
be  omitted.    Trans, 


MARK'S  HISTORY.  435 


MARK  S     HISTORY. 


Mark  i,  1 ;  p.  84, 1.  1.  The  heginning  of  the  gospel  of  Jesus  Christ,  the  Son  of  God. 
R.  T.  It  would  not  be  easy  to  decide,  whether  this  ought  to  be  accounted  part  of  the 
sacred  text,  or  a  title  afterwards  prefixed,  which  may  have  been  inadvertently  admitted 
into  the  text.     Campbell. 

Mark  i,  1,  2  ;  p.  84, 1.  2.  ^s  it  is  written  by  Isaiah  the  prophet.  T.  Ms  it  is  written 
in  the  prophets.  R.  T.  Rather,  as  it  is  written  by  Isaiah  the  prophet,  I  think  this  read- 
ing should  be  adopted,  instead  of  that  in  the  common  text.  It  is  the  reading  of  the 
Codex  Bezce,  Vatican.,  and  several  other  MSS  of  great  repute.  It  is  found  also  in  the 
Syriac,  Persic,  Coptic,  Armenian,  Gothic,  Vulgate,  and  Itala  versions,  and  in  several  of 
the  Fathers.  As  this  prophecy  is  found  in  Isaiah  and  Malachi,  probably  the  reading 
was  changed  to  rcit  7rgc?»Ta«,  tAepropAcis,  that  it  might  comprehend  both.  In  one  of 
Asseman's  Syriac  copies,  both  Isaiah  and  Malachi  are  mentioned.  The  parallel  place 
in  Matthew,  chap,  iii,  3,  where  the  prophet  Isaiah  is  mentioned,  seems  fully  to  establish 
the  authority  of  this  reading.  Clarke.  Griesbach  adopts  it ;  and  moreover,  he  rejects 
tjuirgoirSsii  (rm,  before  thee,  being  the  last  words  in  the  second  verse.     Trans. 

Mark  i,  28;  p.  85,  1.  5.  Rapidly.  T.  Immediately.  R.  T.  The  word  si/flsait,  imme- 
diately, occurs  more  frequently  in  this  Evangelist,  than  in  any  other  writer  of  the  New 
Covenant :  it  is  very  often  superfluous,  and  may  often  be  omitted  in  the  translation, 
without  any  prejudice  to  the  sense  of  the  passage  in  which  it  is  found.  It  seems  to  be 
used  by   St  Mark,  as  our  ancient  writers  used /orsooiA,  and  such  like   words.     Clarice. 

Mark  ii,  16 ;  p.  86, 1.  20.  Saxo  him  eating  with  the  tax-gatherers  and  pagans.  T. 
Sato  him  eat  with  publicans  and  sinners.  R.  T.  By  A/jt^^Tuxoi,  sinners,  the  Gentiles  or 
heathen  are  generally  to  be  understood  in  the  Gospels,  for  this  was  a  term  the  Jews 
never  applied  to  any  of  themselves.     Clarke, 

Mark  ii,  17;  p.  86,  1.  25.  To  repentance.  R.  T.  This  is  omitted  by  A  B  D  K  L, 
twenty-seven  others ;  both  the  Syriac,  Persic,  Coptic,  Ethiopic,  Armenian,  Gothic,  Vul- 
gate; six  copies  of  the  Itala;  Euthymius,  and  Augustin.  Griesbach  has  left  it  out  of 
the  text ;  Grotius,  Mill,  and  Bengel  approve  of  the  omission.  Properly  speaking,  the 
righteous  cannot  be  called  to  repentance.  In  the  other  parallel  place,  Luke  v.  32,  all 
the  MSS  and  Versions  retain  fAiTcmntv,  repentance.  Clarke.  To  reformation,  m  /htx- 
vcidiv.  This  clause  is  wanting  here  in  a  greater  number  of  MSS  and  ancient  versions 
than  in  Matthew  ix,  13.  It  is  rejected  by  Grotius,  Mill,  and  Bengel.  It  is  not  impro- 
bable that  it  has  originally,  by  some  copyist  who  has  thought  the  expression  defective 
without  it,  been  borrowed  from  Luke  v.  32 ;  about  which  there  is  no  diversity  of  read- 
ing. But  though  there  may  be  some  ground  to  doubt  of  its  authenticity  in  this  place, 
and  in  that  above  quoted  from  Matthew ;  yet,  as  there  can  be  no  doubt  of  its  apposite- 
ness,  I  thought  it  better  to  retain  it  in  both  places,  and  distinguish  it  as  of  doubtful 
authority.     Campbell. 

Mark  iii,  5 ;  p.  87, 1.  13.  IVkole  as  the  other.  This  is  omitted  by  the  best  MSS  and 
Versions.  Grotius,  Mill,  and  Bengel  approve  of  the  omission,  and  Griesbach  leaves  it 
out  of  the  text.     Clarke. 

Mark  iii,  9;  p.  87, 1.  59.  A  small  vessel.  T.  A  small  ship.  R.  T.  It  was  doubtless 
something  of  the  boat  kind.  The  word  sJdp  is  utterly  improper  in  many  places  of  our 
Translation ;  and  tends  to  mislead  the  people.  Clarke.  Campbell  generally  adopts 
the  term,  bark.     Trans. 

Mark  iii,  21 ;  p.  87, 1.  38.  To  restrain  the  multitude.  T.  To  lay  hold  on  him.  R.  T. 
Schoetgen  contends,  that  the  multitude,  and  not  Christ,  is  here  intended.  Christ  was 
in  the  house  :  the  multitude,  ox^d  verse  20,  pressed  upon  him  so,  that  he  could  not 
eat  bread.  His  disciples,  or  friends,  went  out,  ugiTsa-ai  auTov,  (sdl.  ^x'^w)  to  restrain  it, 
viz.  the  multitude,  to  prevent  them  from  rushing  into  the  house  and  disturbing  their 
Master,  who  was  now  taking  some  refreshment.    This  conjecture  should  not  be  lightly 


436  APPENDIX. 

regarded.     Clarke.     And  when  his  own  family  heard  of  it  they  went  out  to  secure 

him ;  for  some  had  told  that  he  was  gone  out. he  was  gone  out :  e^ea-Tii.     This  proper 

original  meaning  of  the  word  restores  this  passage  upon  which  critics  and  commentators 
have  so  long  labored  in  vain,  as  well  as  myself  to  perfect  good  sense  and  perspicuity. 
Indeed  it  is  now  so  clear,  as  to  need  no  comment  or  explanation.  Their  going  after 
him  is  here  spoken  of:  and  the  arrival  of  his  own  fa/mily  is  accordingly  mentioned  in 
verse  31,  and  all  between  verse  21  and  31  happened  whilst  they  were  on  the  way,  and 
is  in  a  parenthesis.     Wahefield. 

JVIark  iii,  21.  Most  translators  render  this  verse  as  we  do ;  but  the  meaning  which 
they  give  is  false,  and  such  as  suggests  a  very  unbecoming  idea  of  our  Lord,  who  on 
no  occasion  behaved  so  as  to  give  his  friends  room  to  suspect  that  he  was  mad.  The 
original  runs  thus.  Kst/  aLACu^A^Ti?  oi  vra^'  etuTov  6|m\9ov  K^n^tta-oLi  ccuTav  iXsyov  >ctg'  Oti 
i^erTn.  0(  irag'  civnu,  they  that  were  with  him,  namely  in  the  house,  (ver.  19)  OKOvntv- 
Tii,  hearing,  viz.  the  noise  which  the  mob  made  at  the  door,  they  went  out,  xe^t-Tmiit 
avTov,  to  restrain  or  rjuell,  not  Jesus,  for  he  was  in  the  house,  (ver.  19)  but  the  multi- 
tude or  mob,  (auTov,  it,  viz.  (i^>,n)  either  by  dispersing  them  or  keeping  them  out ;  ftrr 
they  said,  (i^vnu,  viz.  c^Ms)  TIte  multitude  or  mob  is  mad.    Maclmight. 

Mark  iii,  29 ;  p.  88,  1.  5.  Perpetual  transgression.  T.  Eternal  damnation.  R.  T. 
Or,  everlasting  judgment,  mmiou  ngwsaif.  But  instead  of  x^man,  B  L  and  two  others 
read  a/xa^mfntTig,  sin.  The  Codex  BezEE,  two  others,  and  some  of  the  Fathers  read 
cLfAn^TiAQ,  a  word  of  the  same  import.  Grotius,  Mill,  and  Bengel,  prefer  this  latter 
reading ;  and  Griesbach  has  queried  the  common  reading,  and  put  u/AngTu/xa.'rn,  sin, 
in  the  margin.  Sin  or  trespass  is  the  reading  of  the  Coptic,  Armenian,  Gothic,  Vulgate, 
and  all  the  Itala  but  two.  Everlasting  trespass  is  the  translation  in  my  Old  MS. 
English  Bible.     Clarice. 

Mark  iii,  31,  32 ;  p.  88, 1.  8.  Hi's  mother  and  his  brothers.  T.  His  brethren  and  his 
mother.  R.  T.  Or  rather,  his  mother  and  his  brethren.  This  is  the  arrangement  of 
the  best  and  most  ancient  M3S,  and  this  clause,  »«;  at  aJs^^a;  <ri>u,  and  thy  sisters,  verse 
32,  should  be  added,  on  the  authority  of  ADEFGMSUV,  fifty-five  others,  some 
editions,  the  margin  of  the  later  Syriac,  Slavonic,  Gothic,  and  all  the  Itola  except  four. 
Griesbach  has  received  this  reading  into  the  text.  Clarke.  It  is  excluded  in  the 
second  edition  of  Griesbach,  but  noted  in  the  margin  as  >•  reading  of  secondary  au- 
thority.    Tkans. 

Mark  iv,  4,9;  p.  88, 1.  22.  The  birds.  T.  The  fowls  of  the  air.  R.  T.  Tou  mgnnu, 
of  the  air,  is  the  common  reading;  but  it  should  be  omitted,  on  the  authority  of  nine 
uncial  MSS,  upwards  of  one  hundred  others,  and  almost  all  the  Versions.  Bengel  and 
Griesbach  have  left  it  out  of  the  text.  It  seems  to  have  been  inserted  in  Mark,  from 
Luke  viii,  5.     Clarke.    In  verse  9,  avrw,  to  them,  is  omitted  by  Griesbach.    Tbans. 

Mark  iv,  11 ;  p.  88, 1.  32.  It  is  imparted  to  you  to  know.  T.  Unto  you  it  is  given  to 
know.  R.  T.  Tvani,  to  know,  is  omitted  by  A  B  K  L ,  ten  others,  the  Coptic,  and  one 
of  the  Itala.  The  omission  of  this  word  makes  a  material  alteration  in  the  sense  ;  for 
without  it,  the  passage  may  be  read  thus  —  To  you  the  mystery  of  the  kingdom  of  God 
is  given;  but  all  these  things  are  transacted  in  parables  to  those  without.  Griesbach 
leaves  it  doubtful.  And  Professor  White  says,  proiaJiKier  (ZeZeradam.  [It  should  pro- 
bably be  erased.]  I  should  be  inclined  to  omit  it,  were  it  not  found  in  the  parallel  passa- 
ges in  Matthew  and  Luke,  in  neither  of  whom  it  is  omitted  by  -^ny  MS.  or  Version. 

Clarke. 

Mark  iv,  12  ;  p.  88, 1.  34.  So  that  they  do  not  perceive  what  they  look  at.  T.  That 
seeing  they  may  see,  and  not  perceive.  R.  T.  The  expression  is  somewhat  proverbial, 
and  relates  to  those  who  might  see,  if  they  would  use  their  faculties,  what  they  over- 
look through  their  inattention  and  folly.    Le  Clerk,  cited  by  Dabney. 

Mak  iv,  24 ;  p.  89, 1. 12.  And  unto  you  that  hear  shall  more  be  given.  R.  T.  This 
clause  is  wanting  in  D  G,  Coptic,  and  four  copies  of  the  Itala  ;  and  in  others  where  it 
is  extant,  it  is  variously  written.  Griesbach  has  left  it  out  of  the  text,  and  supposes  it 
to  be  a  gloss  on,  Whosoever  hath,  to  Mm  shaU  be  given.    Clarke.    In  some  noted  MSS, 


MARK'S  HISTORY.  437 

the  words  tojs  nxmnuatv,  that  hear,  are  wanting;  as  well  as  in  the  Vulgate,  Coptic,  and 
Arabic  versions.     Camphell. 

Mark  iv,  38  ;  p.  89, 1.  28.  In  such  comparisons.  T.  With  many  such  parables.  R.  T. 
nox\»if,  many,  is  omitted  by  L,  sixteen  others  ;  the  Syriac,  both  the  Persic,  one  Arabic, 
Coptic,  Armenian,  Ethiopic,  and  two  of  the  Itaila.  Mill  approves  of  the  omission,  and 
Griesbach  leaves  it  doubtful.  It  is  probably  an  interpolation :  the  text  reads  better 
without  it.     Clarke. 

Mark  v,  9  ;  p.  90, 1.  9.  My  name  is  Legion.  A  Roman  legion  consisted  at  that  pe- 
riod of  six  thousand  men ;  but  with  the  Jews,  it  was  only  a  usual  phrase  to  express  a 
great  number.     Le  Clerk,  cited  by  Dabney. 

Mark  v,  li ;  p.  90, 1.  12.  Tlie  mountain.  T.  The  mountains.  R.  T.  T*  o|».  The 
mountai^i.  There  is  so  great  a  concurrence  of  the  most  valuable  MSS,  early  editions. 
Fathers,  and  ancient  versions,  in  favor  of  tsj  ogu,  in  the  singular,  that  it  is  hardly  possi- 
ble to  question,  its  authenticity.  The  ancient  translations  which  corroborate  this  read- 
ing, are  all  those  that  are  of  any  account  with  critics ;  the  Vulgate,  both  the  Syriac, 
the  Arabic,  the  Gothic,  the  Coptic,  the  Saxon,  and  the  Ethiopic,  Grotius,  Mill,  and 
Wetstein  receive  it.     Campbell.     Griesbach  adopts  it.     Trans. 

Mark  v,  12  ;  p.  90, 1.  12.  The  demons  besought  him.  T.  Ml  the  devils  besought  him. 
R.  T.  n*vT«,  all,  is  omitted  by  many  MSS  and  Versions  :  Griesbach  leaves  it  out  of 
the  text  Oi  Sxi/MtK,  the  devils,  is  omitted  also  by  several :  Griesbach  leaves  it  doubt- 
ful. Probably  it  should  be  read  thus,  .Snd  they  besought  him  saying.  Clarke.  Gries- 
bach excludes  it  in  his  second  edition.     Tbans. 

Mark  V,  19;  p.  90, 1.  24.  This  he  did  not  permit.  T.  Howbeit  Jesus  suffered  him  not. 
R.  T.  O  Ji  I»rcu;,  howbeit  Jesus,  is  omitted  by  A  B  K  L  M ,  twenty-seven  others,  both 
the  Syriac,  both-  the  Persic,  Coptic,  Gothic,  Vulgate,  and  one  of  the  Itala.  Mill  and 
Bentrel  approve  of  the  omission  ;  and  Griesbach  leaves  it  out  of  the  text.  Clarke.  In- 
stead of  Si,  however,  Griesbach  inserts  xm,  and,  at  the  beginning  of  the  clause.  —  Were 
the  expression  authentic,  howbeit  is  exploded.     Thans. 

Mark  v,  34  ;  p.  91, 1.  5.  Rescued  from  your  disease.  T.  Be  whole  of  thy  plague.  R. 
T.     Rather,  continue  whole,  not  be  whole,  for  she  was  already  healed.     Clarke. 

Mark  vi,  2;  p.  91,1.  27.  .Snd  how  are  such  miracles.  T.  That  even  such  mighty 
works.  R.  T.  And  how  are  so  great  miracles,  oTt  kv.i  Suva-fjuic  TbtnuTAt.  The  conjunc- 
tion o'ri,  that,  is  wanting  in  a  great  number  of  MSS,  including  many  of  chief  note, 
and  in  several  of  the  oldest  and  best  editions.  Wetstein  and  other  writers  reject  it. 
Add  to  all  these  that  the  sense  is  clear  without  it.  Campbell.  Griesbach  omits  it. 
Trans. 

Mark  vi,  11 ;  p.  91, 1-  44.  Verily  I  say  unto  you,  it  shall  be  more  tolerable  for  Sodom 
and  Gomorrah  in  the  day  of  judgment,  than  for  that  city.  R.  T.  All  this  clause  is  omit- 
ted in  B  C  D  L,  two  others,  one  Arabic,  one  Persic,  Coptic,  Armenian,  Vulgate,  and  all 
the  Itala  but  three.  Mill  and  Beza  approve  of  the  omission,  and  Griesbach  leaves  it  out 
of  the  text.     It  has  probably  been  transferred  here  from  Matthew  x,  15.     Clarke. 

Mark  vi,  15;  p.  92, 1.  4.  It  is  a  prophet,  like  those  of  ancient  times.  T.  That  it  is  a 
prophet,  or  as  one  of  the  prophets.  R.  T.  H,  or,  is  omitted  byABCEGHKLMS  — 
B  H  V,  and  one  hundred  others,  Syriac,  all  the  Arabic,  all  the  Persic,  Coptic,  Arme- 
nian, Vulgate,  two  Itala,  Origen,  Victor,  an4  Theophylact.  Bengel,  Wetstein,  and 
Griesbach  leave  it  out  of  the  text :  the  omission  of  it  mends  the  sense  much.  Clarke. 
There  is  such  a  consent  of  MSS,  several  of  them  of  the  first  note,  versions,  as  Vul- 
gate, Syriac,  Arabic,  Gothic,  Coptic,  Saxon,  and  Ethiopic,  with  editions.  Fathers, 
critics,  for  rejecting  the  conjunction  »,  or,  as  to  remove  all  doubt  concerning  it.  The 
sentence  is  also  more  perspicuous  without  it.     Campbell. 

Mark  vi,  33  ;  p.  92, 1.  27.  The  people.  Or,  o;t'^o/,  the  multitudes.  This  is  wanting  in 
many  MSS,  but  it  seems  necessary  to  make  the  sense  clear.  There  is  scarcely  a  verse 
in  the  whole  New  Testament  that  has  suffered  so  much  from  transcribers  as  this  verse. 
Amidst  the  abundance  of  various  readings,  no  one  can  scarcely  tell  what  its  original 
state  was.     Clarke.    As  to  oi  oxmi,  the  people,  and  awrev,  him,  in  this  verse,  Campbell 


438  APPENDIX. 

thinks  that  there  is  sufficient  ground  for  their  omission  ;  and  Griesbach  rejects  them. 

Trahs. 

Mark  vi,  44  ;  p.  93, 1.  13.  Five  thousand  men.  T.  About  five  thousand  men.  R.  T. 
Chru,  about,  is  omitted  by  a  great  majority  of  the  best  MSS,  and  by  the  principal  Ver- 
sions. It  is  wanting  in  several  editions ;  Bengel,  Wetstein,  and  Griesbach,  leave  it  out 
of  the  text.  Clarke.  Five  thousand,  aiu  TrivrctX'^X"^'"-  ^^  have  the  authority  of 
all  the  best  MSS,  editions,  and  versions,  Vulgate,  both  the  Syriao,  Ethiopic,  Arabic, 
Saxon,  and  Coptic,  for  rejecting  am,  about.     Campbell. 

Mark  vii,  2 ;  p.  93, 1.  38.  They  found  fault.  R.  T.  This  is  wanting  in  A  B  E  H  L  V, 
nineteen  others,  and  several  versions.  Mill  and  Bengel  approve  the  omission,  and 
Griesbach  rejects  the  word.  If  the  third  and  fourth  verses  be  read  in  a  parentJiesis,  the 
second  and  fifth  verses  will  appear  to  be  properly  connected,  without  the  above  clause. 

Clarke. 

Mark  vii,  4 ;  p.  93,  1.  40.  ATid  returning  from.  T.  And  when  they  come.  R.  T. 
This  clause  is  added  by  our  translations,  to  fill  up  the  sense  ;  and  it  was  probably  a 
part  of  the  original :  for  suv  aSaai,  when  they  come,  is  the  reading  of  the  Codex  Bezm, 
Vulgate,  Armenian,  and  most  of  the  Itala.  .  .  The  words  seem  essentially  neces- 
sary to  a  proper  understanding  of  the  test ;  and  if  not  admitted  on  the  above  authority ; 
they  must  be  supplied  in  Italics,  as  in  our  common  translation.*     Clarke. 

Mark  vii,  26 ;  p.  94, 1.  34.  She  was  a  Grecian  woman.  T.  Tlie  woman  was  a  Greek. 
R.  T.  Or,  Gentile.  M.  R.  A  Greek.  EhMvis-  This  woman  is  called  Matthew  xv, 
21,  Canaanilish  ;  here  a  Syrophenician,  and  a  Greek.  There  is  in  these  denominations 
no  inconsistency.  By  birth,  she  was  of  Syrophenicia  ;  so  the  country  about  Tyre  and 
Sidon  is  denominated;  by  descent,  of  CaMoara,  as  most  of  the  Tyrians  and  Sidonians 
originally  were  ;  and  by  religion  a  Greek,  according  to  the  Jewish  manner  of  distin- 
guishing between  themselves  and  idolaters.  Campbell.  RosenmflUer  has  well  observ- 
ed, that  all  heathens  or  idolaters  were  called  'Ewmu,  Greeks,  by  the  Jews ;  whether 
they  were  Parthians,  Modes,  Arabs,  Indians,  or  Ethiopians.  Jews  and  Greeks  divid- 
ed the  whole  world  at  this  period.     Clarke. 

Mark  ix,  1 ;  p.  96, 1.  35.    And  Jesus  said the  reign  of  Godintroduced  wiihpower. 

T.     And  he  said  to  them the  kingdom  of  God  come  with  power.  R.  T.     Grotius,  Dr 

S.  Clarke,  and  others,  rightly  observe,  that  this  verse  belongs  to  the  foregoing  discourse, 
and  ought  not  to  have  been  separated  from  the  former  chapter.  We  find  it  actually 
joined  to  it  in  the  version  of  Wicklif,  Tyndal,  Coverdale,  and  L'Enfant  and  Beauso- 
bre.     Symonds. 

Mark  ix,  10 ;  p.  97, 1.  6.  When  he  would  arise  from  the  dead.  T.  What  the  rising 
from  the  dead  should  mean.  R.  T.  Otsii  ex  vsngav  niac-in,  when  he  should  arise  from  the 
dead,  is  the  reading  of  D,  six  others,  Syriac,  all  the  Persic,  Vulgate,  all  the  Itala,  and 
Jerom.  Griesbach  -approves  of  it.  Clarke.  Griesbach,  however,  notes  it  as  a  very 
respectable  reading,  but  as  inferior  to  the  common  one.     Trans. 

Mark  1x^12,  p.  97, 1.  9.  And  (as  it  is  recorded).  T.  And  liow  it  is  icritten.  R.  T. 
And  (as  it  is  written  of  the  Son  of  Man),  kH-I  irat  j-sjgijTTai  iiri  tou  vim  tov  avSpoin-^u. 
And  how,  &c.  Twelve  MSS,  among  which  are  the  Alexandrian  and  two  others  of 
note,  read  xaflat  for  xa/  irais.  I  cannot  help  thinking  this  a  sufficient  warrant  for  re- 
ceiving it,  when  by  the  rules  of  construction,  no  proper  meaning  can  be  drawn  from 
the  words  as  they  lie.  Campbell.  And  how  it  is  written.  Rather,  as  also  it  is  written. 
Instead  of  x.ii  7ra>;,  and  how,  I  read  xaSac,  as  also.  This  reading  is  supported  by 
A  K  M,  seventeen  others,  the  latter  Syriac  in  the  margin,  Slavonic,  and  Armenian. 
Some  think  that  the  propriety  of  adopting  this  reading  is  self-evident.     Clarke.    And 

how written,  &c.   The  sense  is  much  confused  by  this  rendering.   Dabney.   I  read 

Kut  x.tt6m,  and  even  as,  instead  oixui  ?ras,  and  how:  a  correction  which  the  scope  of  the 

*  The  ordinary  use  of  italic  letters,  is  fo  denote  impressive  sentiment.  The  impropriety  is  therefore 
obvious,  of  ever  thus  designating,  in  a  translation,  words  of  uncertain  addition,  or  of  doubtful  authenticity. 

Tr.\ns. 


MARK'S  HISTORY.  439 

passage ,  and  the  integrity  of  construction  would  demand ,  were  there  no  other  authority 
to  support  it :  but  the  Syriac  translator  thus  read  the  passage,  and  the  Vulgate  ;  and 
some  of  the  rest,  differently  fjom  the  received  text,  which  argues  a  corruption  of  it. 

Wakefield. 
.  Mark  ix,  24;  p.  97, 1.31.  I  do  believe.  T.  Lord,  I  believe.  K.T.  The  word  Lord 
is  omitted  by  A  B  C  D  L,  both  the  Syriac,  both  the  Arabic,  latter  Persic,  Elhiopic, 
Gothic,  and  three  copies  of  the  Ilala.  Griesbach  leaves  it  out ;  the  omission,  I  think, 
is  proper,  because  it  is  evident  the  man  did  not  know  our  Lord,  and  therefore  could 
not  be  expected  to  accost  him  with  a  title  expressive  of  that  authority,  which  he  doubt- 
ed whether  he  possessed,  unless  we  grant  that  he  used  the  word  xv^ii,  after  the  Roman 
custom,  for  Sir.     Clarke. 

Mark  ix,  25  ;  p.  97, 1.  33.  Dumb  and  deaf  spirit.  T.  Tfiou  dumb  and  deaf  spirit. 
R.  T.  If  this  had  been  only  a  natural  disease  ;  for  instance  the  epilepsy,  as  some  have 
argued,  could  our  Lord  have  addressed  it,  with  any  propriety,  as  he  has  done  here  ; 
Thou  deaf  and  dumb  spirit,  come  out  of  him,  and  enter  no  more  into  him.  Is  the  doc- 
trine of  demoniacal  influence  false  ?  If  so,  Jesus  took  the  most  direct  method  to  per- 
petuate the  belief  of  that  falsity,  by  accommodating  himself  to  the  deceived  vulgar.  But 
this  was  impossible  ;  therefore  the  doctrine  of  demoniacal  influence  is  a  true  doctrine, 
otherwise  Christ  would  never  have  given  it  the  least  countenance  or  support.     Clarke. 

Mark  ix,  38 ;  p.  98, 1.  14.  And  hefolloweth  not  us.  R.  T.  This  first  clause  is  omit- 
ted by  B  C  L,  three  others,  Syriac,  Armenian,  Persic,  Coptic,  and  one  of  the  Itala. 
Some  of  the  MSS  and  Versions  leave  out  the  first,  some  the  second  clause  :  only  one  of 
them  is  necessary.     Griesbach  leaves  out  the  first.     Clarke. 

Mark  ix,  40;  p.  98, 1.  16.  He  who  is  not  against  you  is  for  you.  T.  He  that  is  n.ot 
against  us,  is  on  our  part.  R.  T.  Or  rather,  whosoever  is  not  against  you  is  for  you. 
Instead  of  ufum,  us,  I  would  read  vfim,  you,  on  the  authority  of  A  D  S  H  V,  upwards 
o?  forty  others,  Syriac,  Armenian,  Persic,  Coptic,  EtJiiopic,  Gothic,  Slavonic,  Vulgate, 
Itala,  Victor,  and  Opt.  This  reading  is  more  consistent  with  the  context.  Clarke. 
Whoever  is  not  again.st  you  is  for  you,  Oc  ovk  tmv  x:t6'  »^aiv  vn-tg  jj^auv  ta-n-iv.  But  in  a 
great  number  of  MSS,  some  of  them  of  note,  in  several  editions,  in  the  Vulgate,  both 
the  Syriac  versions,  the  Saxon,  and  the  Gothic,  the  reading  is  uuuv  in  both  places, 
which  is  also  prefered  by  Grotius,  Mill,  and  Wetstein.  Campbell.  Griesbach  con- 
curs in  the  same  reading.     Trans. 

Mark  ix,  43,  45 ;  p.  98, 1.  24,  27.  To  depart  to  gehenna,  to  the  ihextinguishable 
riBE.  T.  To  go  into  hell,  into  the  fire  that  never  shall  be  quenched.  The  original  word 
yKyycL,  rendered  hell,  in  the  common  version,  denotes  strictly  a  place  near  Jerusalem, 
the  valley  of  Hinnom,  which  having  become  odious  by  the  sacrifice  of  infants  to  Mo- 
loch, was  in  detestation  of  them,  polluted  with  dead  bodies  by  King  Josiah,  and  a  fire 
to  consume  such  unclean  things,  was  kept  continually  burning  there.  Lightfoot,  cited 
by  Dabney.  The  fire  that  never  shall  be  quenched.  This  clause  is  wanting  in  L,  three 
others,  the  Syriac,  and  latter  Persic.  Some  eminent  critics  suppose  it  to  be  a  spurious 
reading ;  but  the  authorities  which  are  for  it,  are  by  no  means  counterbalanced  by 
those  which  are  against  it.  The  same  clause,  in  verse  45,  is  omitted  by  B  G  L,  seven 
others,  Syriac,  latter  Persic,  Coptic,  and  one  Itala.  Clarke.  Upon  the  authority  of 
most  of  the  versions,  X  have  omitted  the  words  to  jri/g  to  ac&o-Tov,  the  fire  that  sliall 
never  be  qtienched  ;  which  surely  proclaim  their  own  spuriousness,  as  a  mere  interpre- 
tation of  the  concomitant  expression.  Wakefield.  Griesbach  retains  the  words  in  the 
text,  but  notes  them  in  the  margin,  with  respect  to  both  verses,  as  of  doubtful  authen- 
ticity.    See  note  on  Matt,  v,  22.     Trans. 

Mark  ix,  49;  p.  98, 1.  32,  33.     For  everyone — seasoned  with  salt.  T.     For  every 

one salted  with  salt.  R.  T.     Some  take  the  whole  in  a  good  sense,  as  referring  to 

the  preserving  influence  of  the  Spirit  of  God  in  the  hearts  of  believers.  .  .  .  Perhaps 
the  whole  is  an  allusion  to  the  purification  of  vessels,  and  especially  such  metallic  ves- 
sels as  were  employed  in  the  service  of  the  sanctuary.    The  Codex  Bezse,  and  some 


440  APPENDIX. 

other  MSS  have  omitted  the  first  clause ;  and  several  MSS  keep  the  first  and  omit  the 
last  clause.     Clarice. 

Mark  x,  29 ;  p.  99, 1.  42.  In  the  cause  of  the  gospel.  T.  ^nd  the  gospel's.  R.  T. 
Read, /or  the  sake  of  the  gospel.  I  have  with  Griesbaoh  adopted  ikkiv,  for  the  sake,  on 
the  authority  of  B  C  D  E  G-  H  K  M  S,   V,  sixty  others,  and  almost  all  the  Versions. 

Clarke. 

Mark  x,  30 ;  p.  99, 1.  43.  And  fathers.  T.  This  is  added  by  K,  upwards  of  sixty 
others,  Ethiopic,  Gothic,  Slavonic,  Saxon,  Armenian,  Coptic,  and  in  one  of  my  own 
MSS  of  the  Vulgate.     Clarke. 

Mark  x,  43;  p.  98,  1.  22.  If  thy  hand  cause  thee  to  sin.  T.  If  thy  hand  offend  thee. 
R.  T.  Cause  thee  to  offend.  M.  R.  These  translators  looked  upon  themselves  as  au- 
thorized to  insert  nonsense  into  the  text,  provided  they  foisted  the  true  meaning  into 
the  margin.     Symonds. 

Mark  xi,  10;  p.  101, 1.  12.  In  the  name  of  the  Lord.  R.  T.  Omitted  by  B  C  D  L 
U,  some  others,  and  several  Versions.  Grieshach  leaves  it  out.  Clarke.  Immediately 
after  Sciiraeiit,  kingdom,  in  the  common  Greek  copies,  we  read  the  words  it  on/jLeuri  Ku- 
^lou,  in  the  name  of  the  Lord  ;  but  they  are  wanting  in  several  MSS,  some  of  them  of  prin- 
cipal note,  and  in  the  Vulgate,  Syriac,  Coptic,  Armenian,  Arabic,  and  Saxon  versions. 
Origen  did  not  read  them.     And  they  are  rejected  by  Grotius,  Mill,  and  Bengel. 

CampbeU. 

Mark  xi,  26;  p.  101, 1.  43.     Sut  if  you  do  not  pardon, your  transgressions.  T. 

But  if  ye  do  not  forgive, your  trespasses.  R.  T.     The  26th  verse  is  wanting  in 

B  L  S,  seven  others,  some  editions,  the  Coptic,  one  Itala,  and  Tlieophylact.  Clarke. 
I  have  omitted  this  verse  on  the  authority  of  the  Ethiopic  and  Coptic  versions,  and 
some  MSS.  Wakefield.  Griesbach  retains  it  in  the  text  without  noting  it  as  in  any 
degree  doubtful.     Trans. 

Mark  xi,  32;  p.  103, 1.  8.  We  fear  the  people.  T.  They  feared  the  people.  R.  T. 
Or  rather,  We  fear,  &c.  Instead  of  s<f  o^ouvto  ,  they  feared  ;  the  Codex  Beza,  seven  oth- 
ers, latter  Syriac,  Arabic,  Coptic,  Ethiopic,  Armenian,  Vulgate,  and  all  the  Rala,  read 
(fo^iUiMfV,  we  fear,  or  <fo^fji.Sa..  The  common  reading  appears  to  me  quite  improper. 
Eai>,  if,  before  imutJiii,  we  shall  say,  is  omitted  byABCEFGHLS,  and  more  than  fif- 
ty others.  Bengel  leaves  it  out  of  the  text,  and  puts  a  note  of  interrogation  after  Ef 
migmTrm  ;  and  then  the  whole  passage  reads  thus  :  But  shall  we  say,  Of  men  ?  Tltey 
feared  the  people,  ^c.  This  change  renders  the  adoption  of  (fo^ou/uiiv,  we  fear,  unne- 
cessary. Several  critics  prefer  this  mode  of  distinguishing  the  text.  Clarke.  We 
are  in  danger  from,  or  afraid  of:  ^£my.i^a..  So  I  read  with  some  MSS,  the  Arabic, 
Ethiopic,  Coptic,  and  Vulgate  versions.  It  is  incredible  that  any  author  in  his  senses 
could  write  t^cSwmi,  they  feared,  in  this  passage.  Wakefield.  Griesbach  adopts  the 
common  reading.     Trans. 

Mark  xii,  27  ;  p.  103, 1.  15.  But  of  the  living.  T.  But  the  God  of  the  living.  R.  T. 
em,  God,  is  left  out  by  A  B  C  D  K  L ,  and  in  more  iha.n  forty  others,  Syriac,  one  Arabic, 
one  Persic,  Coptic,  Armenian,  Gothic,  Saxon,  Vulgate,  Itala,  and  Origen.  Griesbach  has 
omitted  it.     Clarke. 

Mark  xii,  30,  31 ;  p.  103, 1.  15.  Thou  shalt  love  the  Lord  thy  God and  thy  neigh- 
bor as  thyself.  T.  You  open  the  Bible,  and  you  find  yourself  in  the  presence  of  God. 
Him  you  are  directed  to  worship  in  spirit  and  in  truth ;  to  exalt  him  above  every  rival ; 
to  enthrone  him  in  your  heart ;  to  give  him  all  honor  and  praise ;  to  delight  in  his 
character  ;  to  be  thankful  for  his  mercies  ;  to  be  submissive  to  his  will ;  to  rejoice  in 
his  government,  to  serve  him  with  the  whole  heart,  and  to  be  assimilated  to  his  moral 
image.  '  Thou  shalt  love  thy  neighbor  as  thyself.'  Here  every  grace  and  virtue  are 
required,  and  every  unamiable  and  unkind  affection  and  action  are  forbidden.  Every 
act  of  purity,  justice,  honesty,  and  benevolence  is  required  ;  every  act  of  impurity,  in- 
justice, hatred  and  selfishness  is  forbidden.  Every  thing  that  can  render  man  honora- 
ble and  useful  is  enjoined  ;  every  thing  that  can  render  him  mean,  base  and  injurious 


MARK'S   HISTORY.  441 

is  forbidden.  All  that  diifuse  peace  and  liappiness  in  his  own  bosom  and  throughout 
the  world  is  required  ;  all  that  can  rob  him  of  peace  and  joy  within,  and  diffuse  disaster 
and  calamity  without  is  forbidden.  All  that  can  assimilate  a  creature  of  yesterday  to 
his  Maker,  and  prepare  him  for  the  family  and  fellowship  of  angels  is  prescribed  ;  all 
that  can  render  him  deformed  and  odious,  —  that  can  sever  the  bonds  of  moral  union, 
and  fit  him  to  be  the  companion  of  foul  and  miserable  fiends,  and  the  eternal  outcast 
from  God  and  holiness  is  prohibited.  This  law  of  love  tolerates  no  vice,  and  patronizes 
every  virtue.  No  liberty  is  here  allowed  to  sinful  passions  and  propensities  ;  but  every 
corrupt  principle,  every  lurking  source  of  sin  is  discountenanced  and  condemned.  To 
every  relation  and  condition  of  life  the  Bible  extends  the  authority  of  its  pure  precepts, 
and  prescribes  tlie  duties  which,  in  all  their  diversified  circumstances,  men  are  bound 
to  perform  :  while  with  unyielding  severity  it  frowns  on  every  appearance  of  evil. 

Gardiner  Spring, 

The  motives,  which  are  most  commonly  urged  for  cherishing  supreme  affection  to- 
wards God,  are  drawn  from  our  frailty  and  weakness,  and  from  our  need  of  more  than 
human  succour  in  the  trials  of  life  and  in  the  pains  of  death.  But  religion  has  a  still 
higher  claim.  It  answers  to  the  deepest  want  of  human  nature.  We  refer  to  the  want 
of  some  being  or  beings,  to  whom  we  may  give  our  hearts,  whom  we  may  love  more 
than  ourselves,  for  whom  we  may  live  and  be  ready  to  die,  and  whose  character  re- 
sponds to  that  idea  of  perfection,  which  however  dim  and  undefined,  is  an  essential 
element  of  every  human  soul.  We  cannot  be  happy  beyond  our  love.  At  the  same 
time  love  may  prove  our  chief  wo,  if  bestowed  unwisely,  disproportionately,  and  on 
unworthy  objects  ;  if  confined  to  beings  of  imperfect  virtue,  with  whose  feelings  we 
cannot  always  innocently  sympathize,  whose  interests  we  cannot  always  righteously 
promote,  who  narrow  us  to  themselves  instead  of  breathing  universal  charity,  who  are 
frail,  mutable,  exposed  to  suffering,  pain  and  death.  To  secure  a  growing  happiness, 
and  a  spotless  virtue,  we  need  for  the  heart  a  being  worthy  of  its  whole  treasure  of 
love,  to  whom  we  may  consecrate  our  whole  existence,  in  approaching  whom  we  may 
enter  an  atmosphere  of  purity  and  brightness,  in  sympathizing  with  whom  we  cherish 
only  noble  sentiments,  in  devoting  ourselves  to  whom  we  espouse  great  and  enduring 
interests,  in  whose  character  we  find  the  spring  of  an  ever  enlarging  philanthropy, 
and  by  attachment  to  whom,  all  our  other  attachments  are  hallowed,  protected,  and 
supplied  with  tender  and  sublime  consolations  under  bereavement  and  blighted  hope. 
Such  a  being  is  God.     Charming. 

Mark  xii,  34  ;  p.  103, 1.  32.  JVo  one  presumed  to  interrogate  him.  T.  JVo  one  durst 
ask  him  any  question.  R.  T.  Meaning,  no  one  presumed  </m*  to  question  him.  Trahs. 
These  words  convey  a  suggestion  of  some  stern  prohibition,  or  terrible  menace,  de- 
nounced by  our  Lord,  which  frightened  every  body  from  further  attempts  this  way. 
But  this  vras  not  tlie  case.  The  people  saw  how  completely  those  were  foiled  who 
tried  to  ensnare  him  by  captious  questions  ;  and  how  ill  those  succeeded,  who  entered 
into  disputation  with  him,  and  were  therefore  naturally  led,  from  respect  to  a  superi- 
ority so  great,  and  so  manifest,  to  avoid  exposing  their  own  ignorance  or  bad  intention. 

Campbell. 

Mark  xii,  40 ;  p.  103, 1. 44.  Such  shall  receive  a  more  exemplary  judgment.  T.  These 
shall  receive  greater  damnation.  R.  T.  Punishment,  x^i/Ait.  E.  T.  Damnation.  I 
think  it  unwarrantable,  in  a  translator,  to  limit  the  words  of  the  sacred  penmen  to  this 
meaning,  when  neither  the  terms  used,  nor  any  thing  in  the  context,  can  be  said  to 
limit  them.  By  the  frequent,  unnecessary,  and  sometimes  censurable,  recourse  of 
translators  to  the  terms,  damned,  damnation,  damnable,  and  others  of  like  import,  an 
asperity  is  given  to  the  language  of  most  modern  translations  of  the  New  Testament, 
which  the  original  evidently  has  not.     Canipbell. 

Experience  proves,  that  such  expressions  are  of  profligate  and  otherwise  injurious 
tendency ;  but,  certain  purposes  are  to  be  answered  by  them,  and  it  is  not  to  be  ex- 
pected that  those  who  continue  to  perpetuate  them,  will  so  far  relent  as  to  correct 
errors,  while  such  objects  are  subserved.    These  and  other  odious  appendages  to  the 
56 


442  APPENDIX. 

English  Translation  originated  and  are  countenanced  from  considerations,  which  lie 
far  deeper  in  the  mazes  of  ecclesiastical  policy,  than  is  generally  imagined.     Trans. 

Markxiii,  14  ;  p.  104, 1.  36.  ANNonscED  by  danielthe  erophet.  T.  Spoken  of  by 
Daniel  the  prophet.  R.  T.  '  Foretold  by  the  prophet  Daniel,  to  g>i6ev  vtto  AunuX  tqv  wgo-^w- 
Tcu.  This  clause  is  not  in  the  Cambri  dg  and  three  other  MSS  of  some  note.  It  is 
wanting  also  in  the  Vulgate,  Coptic,  Saxon,  and  Armenian  versions.  Campbell. 
Griesbach  rejects  the  passage.    Trams. 

Mark  xiii,  32 ;  p.  10.5, 1.  22.  That  day  or  that  season.  T.  T%at  day  and  that  hour. 
R.  T.  Or.  The  common  Greek  copies  have  xat,and,  but  if  we  judge  from  the  value, 
as  well  as  number  of  MSS,  which  read  »,  or,  and  from  the  support  this  reading  has  in 
the  ancient  writers  and  versions,  we  cannot  hesitate  to  admit  it  as  genuine.  Campbell. 
Griesbach  adopts  it.     Trans. 

Mark  xiii,  32 ;  p.  105, 1.  22.  JVo  one  knows.  T.  Knoweth  no  man.  R.  T.  There 
is  no  small  reason  to  believe,  that  the  Greek  word  mfi,  has  here  the  signiiication  of 
yvme^i^ie,  according  to  the  comment  of  Dr  Macknight,  and  denotes  not  to  know;  but,  to 
cause  to  know  ;  a  signification  which  it  sometimes  has,  as  he  has  sufficiently  shown  : 
particularly  in  I  Cor.  ii,  2,  For  I  determined  to  know  nothing  among  you,  sate  Jesus 
Christ  and  Him  crucified :  that  is-,  /  determined  to  make  known  nothing  among  you, 
&c.  If  this  sense  of  the  word  be  admitted,  the  meaning  of  the  passage  will  be,  of 
that  day  no  one  causeth  m.en  to  know,  but  the  Father.     Dwight. 

Mark  xiii,  32 ;  p.  105, 1.  23.  JVor  indeed  the  Son.  T.  Neither  the  Son.  R.  T.  Ovii 
0  !/ioc.  Griesbach  notes  this  clause  as  rejected  by  some  authorities,  but  says  that  it 
ought  not  to  be  omitted.  Trans.  This  clause  is  not  found  either  in  Matthew  or 
Luke,  and  Ambrose  says  it  was  wanting  in  some  Greek  copies  in  his  time.  To  me  it 
is  utterly  unaccountable,  how  Jesus,  who  knew  so  correctly  all  the  particulars  which  he 
here  lays  down,  and  which  were  entirely  verified  by  the  event,  should  be  ignorant  of 
the  day  and  hour  when  this  should  be  done  ;  —  except  that  the  Deity  might,  at  one 
time,  communicate  less  of  the  knowledge  of  futurity  to  him,  than  at  another.  How- 
ever I  strongly  suspect  that  the  clause  was  not  originally  in  this  gospel.  Its  not  being 
found  in  the  parallel  places  in  the  other  Evangelists,  is  in-  my  opinion  a  strong  pre- 
sumption against  it.  But  Mr  Macknight  and  others,  solve  this  difficulty  in  the  follow- 
ing manner.  They  suppose  the  verb  o/tfsv  to  have  the  force  of  the  Hebrew  conjugation 
Iliphd,  in  which,  verbs  are  taken  in  a  caustive,  declarative,  or  perrmssive  sense  :  and 
that  it  means  here  make  hnown,  or  promulge,  as  it  is  to  be  understood  in  1  Cor.  ii,  2. 
This  intimates  that  this  secret  was  not  to  be  made  known,  either  by  men  or  angels,  no, 
not  even  by  the  Son  of  man  himself,  but  it  should  be  made  known,  by  the  Father  only, 
in  the  execution  of  the  purposes  of  his  justice.  I  am  afraid  this  only  cuts  the  knot, 
but  does  not  untie  it.     Clarke. 

Mark  xiii,  32.  There  is- no  doubt,  tha-t  the  verb  yivta-xM  sometimes  has  the  meaning 
of  making  known  ;  but  a  derivative  of  the  verb  ntfx  is  used  here,  which  does  not  bear 
such  a  sense  ;  nor  will  the  tenor  of  the  verse  admit  it.     Stuart. 

However  inexplicable  the  preceding  text  may  be  deemed  ;  and  in  regard  to  any  cor- 
rected interpretation  of  it,  which  might  be  supposed  to  remove  the  apparent  conflict 
with  the  omniscience  of  Christ,  as  invol-\red  in  the  common  version,  it  may  be  remark- 
ed, that  a  similar  difficulty,  which  attends  the  corresponding  passage  in  Matthew  xxiv, 
86,  page  75,  line  18,  where  this  knowledge  is  attributed  to  the  Father  alone,  and  thus 
negatively  withheld  from  the  Son,  will  still  remain  to  be  obviated.     Trass. 

Mark  xiv,  19;  p.  106,1.24.  And  another  repeated,  Is  it  i?  T.  And  another 
said.  Is  it  I?  R.  T.  This  clause  is  wantirsg  in  B  C  LP,  seventeen  others,  Syriac, 
Persic,  Arabic,  Coptic,  Ethiopic,  Vulgate,  and  four  of  the  Itala.  Griesbach  leaves  it 
doubtful :  others  leave  it  out.  Clarke.  I  have  omitted  the  clause.  And  another  said, 
Is  it  I?  a  mere  idle  repetition,  inconsistent  with  the  tenor  of  the  passage.  So  too  the 
ancient  versions,  and  some  MSS.     Wakefield. 

Mark  xiv,  22;  p.  106,1.31.  Eat.  This  is  omitted  by  many  MSS  and  versions, 
but  I  think  without  reason.    It  is  found  in  the  parallel  places  Matt,  xxvi,  26 ;  1  Cor. 


MARK'S  HISTORY.  443 

xi,  24.  Clarke.  Take,  eat,  this  is  my  body.  Vulgate.  Tumite,  hoc  est  corpus  mcum. 
Take,  this  is  my  body.  The  same  defect  is  in  both  the  Syriac,  the  Coptic,  the  Arabic, 
the  Saxon,  and  the  Ethiopic  versions.  The  Alexandrian,  and  some  other  noted  MSS 
omit  tj/^ycTi,  eat.     Campbell.     Griesbach  leaves  it  out  of  the  text.     Trans. 

Mark  xiv,  30  ;  p.  106,  1.  42.  That  you.  T.  That  tliou.  R.  T.  Su'.is  added  by  A 
B  E  G  H  K  L  M  S —  V,  eighty-eight  others,  Syriac,  Arabic,  Coptic,  Ethiopic,  Armenian, 
Slavonic,  Vulgate,  Saxon,  Theophylact,  and  Euihymius.  It  adds  much  to  the  energy  of 
the  passage,  every  vford  of  which  is  deeply  emphatical.     Verily  I  say  unto  thee,  that 

THOU,  THIS   DAY,  lu  THIS  YERV  NIGHT, THOO  wilt  deny  me.     Clarke.     Even  thou. 

Though,  in  the  common  Greek  we  have  not  the  pronoun  m,  thou,  after  an,  even,  or 
that,  it  is  found  in  so  great  a  number  of  MSS,  many  of  principal  note,  in  so  many 
ancient  versions,  fathers,  and  early  editions,  that  it  has  been  generally  received  by 
critics.     Campbell. 

Mark  xiv,  36 ;  p.  107, 1.  7.  0  Father,  Father.  T.  Mba,  Father.  R.  T.  Mba,  (that  is, 
Father).  Campbell.  The  repetition  of  the  same  word,  either  in  sentiment  or  in  fact, 
is  intensive,  and  might  here  be  correctly  translated,  0  affectionate  Father ;  as  the  rep- 
etion  of  Rabbi,  or  Master,  in  several  places,  might  be  properly  rendered,  eminent  or  il- 
lustrious Teacher,  or  Master. 

Mark  XV,  25 ;  p.  109, 1.  18.  The  third  hour.  Commentators  and  critics  have  found 
it  very  difficult  to  reconcile  this  third  hour  of  Mark  with  the  sixth  hour  of  John,  chap, 
xix,  14.  It  is  supposed  that  the  true  reading  of  John  xix,  14,  should  be  Tg/Tn,  the  third, 
instead  of  SKTD,  the  sixth;  and  in  that  place,  the  former  is  the  reading  of  some  very 
eminent  MSS.     Clarke. 

Mark  xv,  28;  p.  109, 1.  22.     Thus  the  scripture with  the  transgressors. 

All  this  verse  is  wanting  in  many  MSS,  some  Versions,  and  several  of  the  Fathers. 
Clarke.     Griesbach  regards  it  as  very  doubtful.     Trans. 

Mark  xvi,  8  ;  p.  110, 1.  27.  And  departing,  they  fled.  T.  And  they  went  out  quickly 
and  fled.  R.  T.  Getting  out,  fled.  The  word  tx^u,  quickly,  is  wanting  in  a  great 
number  of  MSS,  some  of  them  of  principal  note,  in  several  of  the  best  editions,  and 
ancient  versions,  particularly  the  Vulgate  and  both  the  Syriac.  It  is  also  rejected  by 
Mill  and  Wetstein.     Campbell.     Griesbach  also  rejects  it.     Trans. 

Mark  xvi,  9;  p.  110, 1.  31.  Moreover,  Jesus  having  arisen.  T.  JYoio  when  Jesus  was 
risen.  R.  T.  This,  to  the  conclusion  of  the  Gospel,  is  wanting  in  the  famous  Codex 
Vaticanus,  and  has  anciently  been  wanting  in  many  others.  Clarke.  Griesbach  rep- 
resents the  whole  passage  as  of  very  doubtful  authenticity,  but  retains  it  in  the  text. 

Trans. 

Mark  xvi,  16  ;  p.  110,1.  45.  Shall  be  condemned.  T.  and  Campbell.  Sliall  be  damned. 
R.  T.     This  is  not  a  just  version  of  the  Greek  word.     Campbell. 

This  Gospel  has  suffered  more  by  the  carelessness  and  inaccuracy  of  transcribers, 
than  any  of  the  others  :  and  hence  the  various  readings  in  the  MSS  are  much  more 
numerous  in  proportion,  than  in  the  other  Evangelists,     Clarke, 


LUKE'S    HISTORY. 

Luke  i,  77 ;  p.  114, 1.  35.  Tlie  science  of  salvation.  T.  The  knowledge  of  salvation. 
R.  T.  Zacharias  points  out  the  doctrine  or  teaching  of  John.  It  should  be  yvcetm  c-«- 
Tugiat,  the  science  of  salvation.  Men  are  ignorant,  and  they  must  be  instructed.  Hu- 
man sciences  may  be  profitable  in  earthly  matters,  but  cannot  profit  the  soul.  The  sci- 
ence that  teaches  God,  must  come  from  God.  No  science  is  of  any  avail  to  the  soul, 
that  does  not  bring  salvation  with  it :  this  is  the  excellence  of  heavenly  science,  and 
an  excellence  that  is  peculiar  to  itself.  No  science  but  that  which  comes  from  God, 
can  ever  save  a  soul  from  the  power,  the  guilt,  and  the  pollution  of  sin.     Clarke. 

It  is,  we  fear,  an  unquestionable  fact,  that  religion,  considered  as  an  intellectual  sub- 
ject, is  in  a  great  measure  left  to  a  particular  body  of  men,  as  a  professional  concern; 


444  APPENDIX. 

and  the  fact  is  as  much  to  be  wondered  at  as  deplored.  It  is  wonderful  that  any  mind, 
and  especially  a  superior  one,  should  not  see  in  religion,  the  highest  object  of  thought. 
It  is  wonderful  that  the  infinite  God,  the  noblest  theme  in  the  universe,  should  be  con- 
sidered as  a  monopoly  of  professed  theologians ;  that  a  subject  so  vast,  awful,  and  ex- 
alting, as  our  relation  to  the  Divinity,  should  be  left  to  technical  men,  to  be  handled  so 
much  for  sectarian  purposes.  Religion  is  the  property  and  dearest  interest  of  the  hu- 
man race.  JEvery  man  has  an  equal  concern  in  it.  It  should  be  approached  with  an 
independence  on  human  authority.  It  should  be  rescued  from  all  the  factions,  which 
have  seized  upon  it  as  their  particular  possession.  Men  of  the  highest  intellect  should 
feel,  that,  if  there  be  a  God,  then  his  character  and  our  relation  to  him,  throw  all  other 
subjects  into  obscurity,  and  that  the  intellect,  if  not  consecrated  to  him,  can  never  at- 
tain its  true  use,  its  full  dimensions,  and  its  proper  happiness.  Religion,  if  it  be  true, 
is  central  truth,  and  all  knowledge,  which  is  not  gathered  round  it,  and  quickened  and 
illuminated  by  it,  is  hardly  worthy  the  name.  To  this  great  theme  we  should  sununon 
all  orders  of  mind,  the  scholar,  the  statesman,  the  student  of  nature,  and  the  observer 
of  life.  It  is  a  subject  to  which  every  faculty  and  every  acquisition  may  pay  tribute, 
which  may  receive  aids  and  lights  from  the  accuracy  of  the  logician,  from  the  pen- 
etrating spirit  of  philosophy,  from  the  intuitions  of  genius,  from  the  researches  of  his- 
tory, from  the  science  of  the  mind,  fi:om  physical  science,  from  every  branch  of  crit- 
icism, and  though  last  not  least,  from  the  spontaneous  suggestions,  and  the  moral  as- 
pirations of  pure  but  unlettered  men.     Channing. 

Luke  iii,  23  j  p.  117, 1.  44.    Jesus being,  as  he  was  reputed,  a  son  of  Joseph.  T. 

Jesiis being  (as  was  supposed)  the  son  of  Joseph.  R.  T.     Much  learned  labor  has 

been  used  to  reconcile  this  genealogy  with  that  in  St  Matthew,  chap  1.  .  .  Matthew 
in  descending  from  Abraham  to  Joseph,  the  husband  of  Mary,  speaks  of  sons  properly 
such,  .  .  But  Luke  in  ascending  from  the  Saviour  of  the  world,  to  God  himself,  speaks 
of  sov^  either  properly  or  impi-operly  such  :  on  this  account  he  uses  an  indeterminate 
mode  of  expression,  which  may  be  applied  to  sons  either  putatively  or  really  such.  .  . 
That  St  Luke  does  not  always  speak  of  sons  properly  such,  is  evident  from  the  first 
and  last  person  which  he  names  :  Jesus  Christ  was  only  the  supposed  son  of  Joseph, 
because  Joseph  was  the  husband  of  his  mother  Mary  :  and  Adam  who  is  said  to  be  the 
son  of  God,  was  such,  only  by  creation.     Clarke. 

Luke  iv,  5;  p.  118, 1.  22.  The  kingdoms  of  the  land.  T.  The  kingdoms  of  the  world. 
R.  T.  Satan  is  said  by  the  Evangelists  to  have  taken  our  Saviour  up  into  a  very  high 
mountain,  and  to  have  shown  him,  all  the  kingdom,s  of  the  world  in  a  moment  of  time. 
The  Greek  atnoufjum,  here  translated  world,  very  frequently  signifies  land,  or  country  ; 
and  ought  to  have  been  thus  rendered  here  :  the  meaning  being  no  other,  than  that 
Satan  showed  our  Saviour  the  four  Tetrarchies,  or  kingdoms,  comprised  in  the  land  of 
Judea.  In  this  transaction  it  will  not  be  pretended,  that  there  was  any  thing  mirac- 
iilous.     Dwight. 

Luke  iv,  8 ;  p.  118, 1.  26.  Get  thee  behind  me  Solan.  R.  T.  Trtityt  avia-a  fnu  SuratsL. 
This  clause  is  not  only  wanting  in  some  of  the  best  MSS,  but  in  the  Syriac,  Vulgate, 
Gothic,  Saxon,  Coptic,  Armenian,  and  Ethiopic  translations.  Grotius  observes,  that 
before  Theophylact,  no  ancient  writer  considered  these  words  as  belonging  to  this 
place.  Mill  agrees  with  Grotius  in  rejecting  them.  Wetstein  who  is  more  scrupulous 
chooses  to  retain  them,  though  he  rejects  the  particle  j-aj,  for,  immediately  following 
to  which  the  introduction  of  this  clause  has  probably  given  rise.  Campbell.  Gries- 
bach  has  excluded  the  whole  passage  from  the  text.     Trans. 

Luke  iv,  9 ;  p.  118, 1.  29.  If  thou  art  A  Son  of  God.  T.  If  thou  be  the  Son  of  God. 
R.  T.  "Cios,  a  Son.  The  article  o,  the,  is  found  in  the  Greek  text  in  a  variety  of  MSS  ■ 
insomuch  that  it  has  hitherto  formed  a  part  of  the  received  text,  and  it  is  doubtful 
whether,  notwithstanding  Griesbach's  rejection,  it  should  not  do  so  still.     Magee. 

Luke  iv,  18  :  p.  118, 1.  45.  To  heal  those  whose  hearts  are  broken.  T.  To 
heal  the  broken-hearted.  R.  T.  IxrEtirSa<  toi/j  ruvrn^i/jtfimiius  -nv  KOfSiav.  These  words 
are  rejected  by  Griesbsich.    Trans. 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  445 

Luke  iv,  22 ;  p.  119, 1.  C.  Tliey  admired  the  elegance  of  language,  that  flowed  from 
his  lips.  T.  Wondered  at  the  gracious  words  which  proceeded  out  of  his  mouth.  R.  T. 
Testified  with  admiration  to  tiiose  gracious  words,  ^c.  Trans.  Were  astonished  at  the 
words,  full  of  grace,  which  he  uttered.  The  charms  of  his  elocution,  which  had  an 
irresistible  effect  on  the  hearers,  are  evidently  here  pointed  out.  Campbell.  The  har- 
mony and  beauty  of  his  diction,  as  well  as  the  importance  of  his  subject.     Macknight. 

Luke  iv,  41 ;  p.  119, 1.  43.  Thou  art  the  Messiah,  the  Son  of  God.  T.  and  Camp- 
bell. Thou  art  Christ,  the  Son  of  God.  R.  T.  Vulgate.  Tu  es  flias  Dei.  Thou  art 
the  Son  of  God.  O  Xg<irTot,  is  not  in  the  Cambridge  and  four  other  MSS.  It  has  no 
place  in  the  Coptic,  Armenian,  Saxon,  and  Arabic  versions,  any  more  than  in  the  Vul- 
gate.    Campbell.     Griesbach  rejects  it.     Trans. 

Luke  V,  39  ;  p.  121, 1.  35.  lie  affirms,  that  the  old  is  more  agreeable.  T.  He  saith, 
The  old  is  better.  R.  T.  That  is,  too  sudden  a  transition  from  one  practice  to  another 
is  not  pleasant ;  and  men  cling  to  their  old  habits  and  opinions  long  as  the  best.  Bp 
Pearce  and  Priestley,  cited  by  Dabney. 

Luke  vi,  1 ;  p.  121, 1.  37.  Ore  the  first  sabbath  after  the  second  [day  of  the  passover]. 
T.  On  the  second  sabbath  after  the  first.  R.  T.  The  Vulgar  Latin  renders  iivTtgoTreutn, 
secundo-primum,  second-first,  which  is  literal  and  right.  We  translate  it,  the  second 
sabbath  after  the  first,  which  is  directly  wrong ;  for  it  should  have  been  the  first  sab- 
bath after  the  second  day  of  the  passover.  The  word  fiwregoTrgie^a,  the  second  first,  is 
omitted  by  B  L,  four  others,  Syriac  latter  Mrabic,  all  the  Persic,  Coptic,  Ethiopic,  and 
three  of  the  Itala.  A  note  in  the  margin  of  the  latter,  Syriac  says.  This  is  not  in  all 
copies.  The  above  MSS  read  the  verse  thus  :  It  came  to  pass,  that  he  walked  through 
the  corn  fields  on  a  sabbath  day.  I  suppose  they  omitted  the  above  word,  because  they 
found  it  difficult  to  fix  the  meaning,  which  has  been  too  much  the  case  in  other  instan- 
ces. Clarke.  What  is  denoted  by  the  original  word  is  the  subject  of  varying  con- 
jecture ;  but  the  prevalent  explanation  is,  that  it  was  the  sabbath  which  next  succeed- 
ed the  second  day  of  the  Passover.     Dabney. 

Luke  vi,  24,  25,  26 ;  p.  122, 1.  35,  36,  37,  38.  ^Us  for  you.  T.  Woe  unto  you.  R. 
T.  These  expressions  are  not  to  be  taken  as  passionate  imprecations,  or  as  denuncia- 
tions of  judgments.  For  our  Lord  was  not  acting  here  at  all  in  the  character  of  a 
judge.  But  he  speaks,  as  I  conceive,  purely  in  the  character  of  a  prophet,  divinely 
enlightened  as  to  the  consequences  of  men's  actions,  and  whose  zeal  for  their  good 
obliged  him  to  give  them  warning.  It  is  then  an  interjection,  not  of  wrath,  but  of  the 
deepest  concern.     Campbell. 

Luke  vi,  26 ;  p.  122,  1.  38.  When  men  shall  applaud  you.  T.  ^Vlien  all  men  shall 
speak  well  of  you.  R.  T.  The  word  siLmt,  all,  is  wanting  in  many  MSS,  some  of  them  of 
principal  note ;  and  also  in  the  Syriac,  Vulgate,  Ethiopic,  and  Arabic  versions,  as  well 
as  in  several  of  the  best  editions  and  ancient  commentators.  Mill  and  Wetstein,  both 
reject  it.    Campbell.     Griesbach  excludes  it,  and  also  ufjuv,  of  you,  in  the  same  verse. 

Trans. 

Luke  vi,  32  ;  p.  123, 1.  2.  Since  even  sinners  love  those  who  love  them.  T.  For  sin- 
Tiers  also  love  those  that  love  them.  R.  T.  I  believe  the  word  nftttgraxoi,  sinners,  is  used 
by  St  Luke  in  the  same  sense  in  which  TsAava;,  tax-gatherers,  is  used  by  St  Matthew, 
chap.  V,  46,  47,  and  signifies  heathens;  not  only  by  men  who  have  no  religion,  but  men 
who  acknowledge  none.     Clarke. 

Luke  vi,  35 ;  p.  123,  1.  7.  Love  your  enemies.  This  is  the  most  sublime  precept 
ever  delivered  to  man  :  a  false  religion  durst  not  give  a  precept  of  this  nature,  because, 
without  supernatural  influence,  it  must  be  for  ever  impracticable.     Clarke. 

Luke  vii,  12 ;  p.  124, 1. 17.  A  deceased  person  was  carried  out.  The  Jews  usually 
buried  their  dead  without  the  city.  No  burying  places  should  be  tolerated  within  cities 
or  towns.  Churches  and  chapels,  situated  in  grave-yards,  and  those  especially,  within 
whose  walls  the  dead  are  entombed,  are  perfectly  unhealthy :  and  many,  by  attending 
such  places,  are  shortening  their  passage  to  the  house  appointed  for  the  living.  What 
increases  the  iniquity  of  this  abominable  and  deadly  work,  is,  that  the  burying-grounds 


446  APPENDIX. 

attached  to  many  churches  and  chapels,  are  made  a  source  of  private  gain.  The  whole 
of  this  preposterous  conduct  is  as  indecorous  and  unhealthy,  as  it  is  profane.  Supersti- 
tion first  introduced  a  practice,  which  self-interest  and  covetousness  continue  to  main- 
tain.     Clarke. 

Luke  vii,  31 ;  p.  125, 1.  9.  And  the  Lord  said.  R.  T.  Almost  every  MS.  of  authority 
and  importance,  with  most  of  the  Versions,  omit  these  words.  As  the  Evangelistaria, 
(the  books  which  contained  those  portions  of  the  Gospels,  which  were  read  in  the 
churches),  began  at  this  verse,  the  words  were  probably  at  first  used  by  them,  to 
introduce  the  following  parable.  There  is  the  fullest  proof,  that  they  never  made  a 
part  of  Luke's  text.  Every  critic  rejects  them.  Bengel  and  Griesbach  leave  them  out 
of  the  text.  Clarke.  Jind  the  Lord  said.  In  Greek,  this  clause  is  wanting  in  almost 
all  the  MSS,  both  of  great  and  of  small  account.  It  is  in  neither  of  the  Syriac  ver- 
sions, nor  in  the  Arabic,  Ethiopic,  Coptic,  and  Saxon.  In  many  Latin  MSS  also,  and 
ancient  commentaries,  it  is  not  to  be  found.  It  is  omitted  by  some  of  the  best  editors, 
and  rejected  by  Grotius,  Mill,  Wetstein,  and  other  critics.     Campbell. 

Luke  vii,  38 ;  p.  125,  1.  22.  And  as  she  stood  back  at  his  feet.  T.  Ajid  stood  at  his 
feet  behind  him.  R.  T.  This  is  not  intelligible,  without  adverting  to  the  posture  in 
which  the  ancients  took  their  meals.  They  placed  themselves  along  the  couch  on 
their  sides,  supported  their  heads  with  one  arm,  bent  at  the  elbow,  (see  Hor.  Od.  i,  27, 
8) ,  and  resting  on  the  couch ;  and  with  the  other  they  took  their  food,  and  were  sup- 
ported at  the  back  by  cushions.  Their  feet  of  course  were  accessible  to  one  who  came 
behind  the  couch.      Wakefield. 

Luke  viii,  34 ;  p.  127,  1.  25.  Fled,  and  announced  it.  T.  They  fled,  and  tcent  and 
told  it.  R.  T.  ATrihSoTiTif,  they  went,  is  omitted  by  almost  every  MS.  of  repute,  and  by 
the  best  of  the  ancient  Versions.  Griesbach  leaves  it  out,  and  with  propriety  too,  as  it 
is  not  likely  that  so  correct  a  writer  as  Luke,  would  say,  Tliey  fled,  and  went  and  told 
it.  Clarke.  ATrthBovnc  answering  to  went,  is  wanting  in  almost  all  the  MSS  of  any 
account,  in  the  Vulgate,  both  the  Syriac,  the  Gothic,  the  Saxon,  Coptic,  and  Arabic 
versions,  in  some  of  the  most  eminent  editions,  and  is  generally  rejected  by  critics. 

Campbell. 

Luke  viii,  51 ;  p.  128, 1. 13.  And  when  he  reached  the  house.  T.  And  when  he  came 
into  the  house.  R.  T.  Being  come  to  the  house,  ittrixBm  i't  tis  t»v  oixiav.  The  greater 
number  of  MSS,  especially  those  of  principal  note,  read  i\Bm,  being  come,  simply. 
This  has  also  been  read  by  the  authors  of  the  Vulgate,  of  both  the  Syriac,  the  Arabic, 
the  Gothic,  and  the  Saxon  versions.  It  is  in  some  of  the  best  editions,  and  is  approved 
by  Mill  and  Wetstein.  The  other  reading  seems  not  quite  consistent  with  the  follow- 
ing part  of  the  verse.   Campbell.    The  corrected  reading  is  supported  by  Griesbach. 

Trans. 

Luke  ix,  1 ;  p.  128, 1.  23.  Tlien  Jesus,  assembling  his  twelve  disciples.  T.  There 
are  probably  not  fewer  than  two  hundred  passages  in  the  four  Gospels,  where  sentences 
are  connected  by  the  Conjunction  and,  which  ought  to  have  been  disjoined ;  and  in 
which,  of  course,  the  sense  is  sometimes  materially  affected  by  it.  A  curious  instance 
of  this  kind  may  be  seen  in  the  ninth  chapter  of  Luke,  consisting  of  sixty-two  verses, 
forty-one  of  which  begin  with  this  conjunction.     Symonds. 

Luke  ix,  55,  56;  p.  130,  1.  38.  You  are  not  apprised  of  what  description  of  spirit 
you  are.  T.  Ye  know  not  what  manner  of  spirit  ye  are  of.  For  the  Son  of  Man  is  not 
come  to  destroy  men's  lives,  but  to  save  them.  R.  T.  These  words  are  wanting  in  A  B 
CEGHLS  —  V,  and  in  many  others.  Griesbach  leaves  the  latter  clause  out  of  the 
text.  It  is  probable  that  the  most  ancient  MSS  read  the  passage  thus :  But  he  turned, 
and  rebuked  them,  and  said.  Ye  know  not  of  what  spirit  ye  are.  And  they  went  to  an- 
other village.     Clarke. 

Luke  X,  6;  p.  131, 1.  12.  A  Son.  T.  The  Son.  R.  T.  i  vw.  The  article  before 
VIC!  is  wanting  in  many  MSS,  some  of  them  of  great  name,  in  all  the  best  editions, 
and  in  the  comments  of  several  Fathers.    Campbell.     Griesbach  rejects  it.     Trans. 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  447 

Luke  X,  21;  p.  131,  1.  38.  In  the  Hoi-y  Spirit.  T.  In  Spirit.  R.  T.  ya  maftATi 
TK  xyiie,  the  Holy  Spirit  is  the  reading  here  of  BCDKL,  six  others;  the  three 
SyriaCj  latter  Persic,  Coptic,  JEthiopic,  Armenian,  Vulgate,  all  the  Itala,  except  onCj  and 
.Siugustin  and  Bede.  These  might  be  considered  sufficient  authority  to  admit  the  word 
into  the  text.  Clarice.     Griesbach  regards  it  as  an  unauthorized  reading.     Trans. 

Luke  X,  22;  p.  131,  1.  42.  Ml  things  are  imparted  to  me  hy  my  Father.  T.  AU 
things  are  delivered  to  me  of  my  Father  R.  T.  The  use  of  the  preposition  of  for  by, 
as  the  cause  or  instrument,  with  which  the  common  version  so  much  abounds,  is 
exploded.  Tr.4ns.  The  Codex  Alexandrinus,  several  other  very  ancient  MSS,  and 
some  ancient  Versions,  as  well  as  the  margin  of  our  own,  begin  this  verse  with.  Jind 
turning  to  his  disciples,  he  said.  But  as  this  clause  begins  verse  23,  it  is  not  likely 
that  it  was  originally  in  both.  Griesbach  has  left  these  words  out  of  the  text ;  and 
Professor  White  says,  certissime  delenda,  '  these  words  should  most  assuredly  be 
erased.'     Clarke.  * 

Luke  X,  35 ;  p.  132, 1.  24.  Taking  out  two  denarii.  T.  He  took  out  two  pence.  R.  T. 
TVo  denarii,  about  fifteen  pence,  English ;  and  which  probably,  were  at  that  time  of 
ten  times  more  value  there,  than  so  much  is  with  us  now.  Clarke.  That  sum  is  equal 
to  about  27  1-2  cents,  and,  according  to  the  preceding  estimate  of  the  comparative 
value  of  money,  to  two  dollars  and  seventy-five  cents,  of  the  United  States  currency. 
These  were  two  Roman  silver  coins  ;  and  the  representation  in  the  received  text  is  not 
only  false,  but  contemptible.     Tkans. 

Luke  X,  41,  42 ;  p.  132, 1.  38.  Martha,  Martha,  you  are  distracted  and  disturbed  about 
many  provisions ;  when  but  one  kind  is  requisite.  J^ow,  Mary  has  preferred  the  good 
privilege,  of  which  she  shall  not  be  deprived.  T.  Martha,  Martha,  thou  art  careful  and 
troubled  about  many  things.  But  one  thing  is  needful :  and  Mary  has  chosen  that  good 
part,  lohich  shall  not  be  taken  away  from  her.  R.  T.  While  thou  art  busily  employed 
in  providing  that  portion  of  perishing  food  for  perishing  bodies,  Mary  has  chosen  that 
spiritual  portion,  which  endures  for  ever,  and  which  shall  not  be  taken  away  from 
her.  .  .  One  single  dish,  the  simplest  and  plainest  possible,  is  such  as  best  suits  me  and 
my  disciples,  whose  meat  and  drink  it  is  to  do  the  will  of  our  heavenly  Father.  .  . 
Bishop  PjEARCE  remarks,  that  the  XV^''-^  needful,  is  used  after  the  same  manner  for 
want  of  food  in  Mark  xi,  25,  where  of  David  it  is  said,  -^^ntLv  ia-^i,  he  had  need,  when 
it  means  he  was  hungry.  I  believe  the  above  to  be  the  true  meaning  of  these  verses, 
but  others  have  taken  a  somewhat  diff'erent  sense  from  them  :  especially  when  they 
suppose,  that  by  one  thing  needful  our  Lord  means  the  salvation  of  the  soul.  To  attend 
to  this,  is  undoubtedly  the  most  necessary  of  all  things,  and  should  be  the  first,  the 
grand  concern  of  every  human  spirit ;  but,  in  my  opinion,  it  is  not  the  meaning  of  the 
words  in  the  text.  It  is  only  prejudice,  from  the  common  use  of  the  words  in  this 
way,  that  could  make  such  an  interpretation  tolerable.  Kypke  in  loc.  has  several 
methods  of  interpreting  this  passage.  Many  eminent  commentators,  both  ancient  and 
modern,  consider  the  text  in  the  same  way  I  have  done.  But  this  is  termed  by  some 
*  a  frigid  method  of  explaining  the  passage  ;'  well,  so  let  it  be ;  but  he  that  fears  God, 
will  sacrifice  every  thing  at  the  shrine  of  truth.  I  believe  this  alone  to  be  the  true 
meaning  of  the  place,  and  I  dare  not  give  it  any  other.     Clarke. 

Luke  xi,  2.  4  ;  p.  132, 1.  44.     Our who  art  in  heaven may  thy  will 

BE  ACCOMPLISHED    ON  EARTH,  EVEN  AS  IN  HEAVEN BUT  PRESERVE  US  FROM    EVIL. 

T.     Our which  art  in/'heaven thy  will  be  done,  as  in  heaven,  so  in  earth 

but  deliver  us  from  evil.  R.  T.  These  words  have  nothing  in  the  Vulgate  correspond- 
ing to  them,  nor  in  the  Armenian  version.  They  are  wanting  also  in  several  MSS. 
Some  of  the  Fathers  have  given  what  I  may  call,  a  negative  testimony  against  their 
admission,  by  omitting  them  in  those  places  of  their  works  where  we  should  have 
expected  to  find  them  ;  but  Origen's  testimony  against  them  is  more  positive  :  for  he 
says  expressly  of  some  of  those  clauses  and  petitions,  that  they  aie  in  Matthew,  but 
not  in  Luke.  .  .  Some  of  our  best  modern  critics,  Grotius,  Bengelius,  Mill,  and  Wet- 
stein  seem  to  be  agreed  that,  in  this  place,  we  are  indebted  for  them  to  some  bold 


448  APPENDIX. 

transcribers,  who  have  considered  it  as  a  necessary  correction,  to  supply  what  they 
thought  deficient  in  one  gospel  out  of  another.  Campbell.  The  preceding  expres- 
sions are  included  by  Campbell  in  brackets  as  of  doubtful  authority,  and  by  Griesbach 
excluded  from  the  text.     Trans. 

Luke  xi,  2 ;  p.  132, 1.  44.  May  thyname  be  reverenced  ;  may  thy  dominion  come.  T. 
Hallowed  be  thy  name  :  thy  kingdom  come.  R.  T.  God's  name  is  already  hallowed, 
but  may  not  be  revered,  as  it  should  be  by  liis  intelligent  creatures,  who,  it  is  absurd  to 
assert,  could  hallow  his  name,  or  render  it  sacred.  We  might  as  well  pray  that  God's 
name  may  he  just,  as  that  it  may  be  hallowed.    Tkans. 

Luke  xi,  4  ;  p.  133, 1.  3.  Pbeserye  us  from  evil.  T.  Deliver  us  from  evil.  R.  T. 
Dr  Lightfoot  thinks  that  the  meaning  is  too  much  softened  by  our  translations.  De- 
liver us  from,  evil,  is  certainly  a  very  inadequate  rendering  of  juo-m  u/^a.;  aTra  tou  wovajoi/; 
literally.  Deliver  us  from  the  evil  one.  Clarke.  This  is  also  Wakefield's  translation. 
See  the  Note  on  Matthew  v,  37.     Trans. 

The  prayer  related  here  by  Luke  is  not  precisely  the  same  as  that  mentioned  by 
Matthew ;  and  indeed  it  is  not  likely  that  it  was  given  at  the  same  time.  .  .  There  are 
many  variations  in  the  MSS  in  this  prayer ;  but  they  seem  to  have  proceeded  princi- 
pally from  the  desire  of  rendering  this  similar  to  that  in  Matthew.  Attempts  of  this 
kind  have  given  birth  to  multitudes  of  the  various  readings  in  the  MSS  of  the  New 
Testament.  It  should  be  remarked  also,  that  there  is  no  vestige  of  the  doxology  found 
in  Matthew,  in  any  copy  of  St  Luke's  Gospel.     Clarke. 

Luke  xi,  7 ;  p.  133, 1.  9.  [If  he  persevere  in  knocking].  T.  But  if  he  persevere 
knocking  ;  (at  si  ille  perseveraverat  pulsans) .  This  sentence  is  added  to  the  beginning 
of  verse  8,  by  the  Armenian,  Vulgate,  four  copies  of  the  Itala,  Ambrose,  Augustin,  and 
Bede.  On  these  authorities  (as  I  find  it  in  no  Greek  MS.)  I  cannot  insert  it  as  a,  part 
of  the  original  text ;  but  it  is  necessarily  implied  ;  for  as  Bishop  Pearce  justly  observes, 
unless  the  man  in  the  parable  be'  represented  as  continuing  to  solicit  his  friend,  he  could 
not  possibly  be  said  to  use  importunity  :  once  only  to  ask,  is  not  to  be  importunate. 

Clarke. 

Luke  xi,  50 ;  p.  135, 1.  3.  So  that  the  blood.  T.  That  the  blood.  R.  T.  That  the 
particle  m,  that,  may  be  translated  so  that,  pointing  out  the  event  only,  not  the  design 
or  intention.  Bishop  Pearce  has  well  shown  in  his  note  on  this  place,  where  he  refers  to 
a  like  use  of  the  word  in  chap,  ix,  45 ;  xiv,  10  ;  John  x,  17 ;  Rom.  v,  20 ;  xi,  11 ;  1 
Cor.  i,  15,  31,  &c.  Clarke.  In  these,  and  various  other  places,  the  errors  of  the  com- 
mon translation,  in  that  respect,  have  been  corrected.     Trans. 

Luke  xii,  1 ;  p.  135, 1, 16.  Jesus  proceeded  to  say  to  his  disciples.  Above  all  things, 
guard  yourselves.  T.  Be  began  to  say  unto  his  disciples,  first  of  all.  R.  T.  First  of 
all.  Beware  ye  of  the  leaven  of  the  Pharisees  tohich  is  hypocrisy.  I  have  followed  Beza, 
Wetstein  and  Bowyer  in  joining  ii-goTiiv,  first,  with  7r^on}(i'ri,  beware,  and  not  with 
Touf  ftctSna!  auTcv,  his  disciples.  Thus  Tyndal :  First  of  all  beware  of  the  leaven  of 
the  Pharisees,  &c,  and  in  the  like  manner  Coverdale,  Mathew,  Tavener  and  Arch- 
bishop Parker.  The  three  last  words,  viz.  tin-is  2<rrtv  vTTOKpto-ts,  which  is  hypocrisy,  are 
with  reason  thought  by  Bishop  Pearce  to  be  an  interpolation.     Symonds. 

Luke  xii,  15.  19,  SO.  22,  23.  See  that  you  beware  of  all  excessive  propensities.  T. 
Take  heed,  and  beware  of  coveUmsness.  R.  T.  Or  rather  beware  of  all  inordinate  desires. 
I  add  TTcLnc,  aU,  on  the  authority  ofABDKLM  —  Q,  twenty-three  others,  both  the 
Syriac,  all  the  Persic,  all  the  AraMc,  Coptic,  Ethiopic,  Armenian,  Vulgate,  all  the  Itala, 
and  several  of  the  primitive  Fathers.  Clarke.  Griesbach  notes  it  in  his  margin  as  a 
highly  respectable  reading.  —  In  the  15th  verse,  where  the  subject  of  an  avaricious 
disposition  is  introduced,  the  term  faw  is  rendered  life,  in  the  common  version.  In 
verses  19  and  20  the  translators  twice  render  4''Z"i  soul;  and  though  the  same  topic  is 
continued,  they  suddenly  fly  off,  and  in  verses  22  and  23  twice  render  the  same  Greek 
word  4.";t''i  '*/^-  '^^'■s  aberration  might  have  originated  from  some  favorite,  metaphy- 
sical subtil ty,  as  well  as  from  the  difficulty  of  adopting  the  word  soul  as  the  uniform 
construction.    See  the  Note  on  Matthew  xvi,  26.    Trans. 


LUKE'S   HISTORY.  449 

Luke  xii,  25,  p.  136, 1.  13.  Fear*.  T.  Stature.  R.  T.  HwKia  in  this  passage  should 
be  translated  age,  because  the  caution  is  against  anxious  care  about  the  preservation  of 
life,  and  about  food,  the  means  of  prolonging  it.     Macknight. 

Luke  xii,  30;  p.  136, 1.  20.  Tlie  nations  of  the  world.  Dr  Lightfoot  observes  on  this 
place,  that  nca-fji^;,  the  world,  and  cwiv,  world,  or  age,  have  a  meaning  in  the  sacred 
writings  which  they  have  not  in  profane  authors.  Atm  has  relation  to  the  Jewish  ages, 
and  xoff-^oc  to  the  ages  that  are  jwt  Jewish :  hence  by  irvvTi\tA  tcu  etimo^y  Matt,  xxiv,  3, 
is  meant  the  end  of  the  Jewish  age  or  world  :  and  jrgo  ^.^cvm  ximitev,  Titus  i,  2,  means 
before  the  Jewish  world  began  ;  and  hence  it  is  that  the  term  world  is  very  often  in  the 
New  Testament,  to  be  understood  only  of  the  Gentiles.     Clarke. 

Luke  xiv,  10 ;  p.  139, 1.  30.  You  will  then  receive  deference.  T.  Tlien  shall  thou 
have  worship.  R.  T.  Worship,  for  honor,  or  civil  respect  paid  to  men,  does  not  suit 
the  present  idiom.  Campbell.  Had  the  English  translators  been  more  sparing  in  the 
use  of  the  word  *  worship,'  which  they  must  have  known  to  have  been  equivocal,  they 
would  have  represented  more  clearly  the  sense  of  the  Original.  One  of  the  strongest 
examples  of  this  kind  is  in  Luke  xiv,  10.  '  Thou  shall  have  worship  [honor,  or  re- 
spect] in  the  presence  of  them.'     Symonds. 

Luke  xiv,  26  ;  p.  140, 1.  15.  Does  not  subordinately  regard  his  father.  T.  Hate  not 
his  father.  R.  T.  Matthew,  chap,  x,  37,  expresses  the  true  meaning  of  this  word, 
when  he  says,  he  who  loveth  his  father  and  mother  more  than  me.  Clarke.  To  ascertain 
the  true  import  of  these  words,  compare  the  parallel  passage  Matt,  x,  37.  See  also 
Matt,  vi,  24;  Rom.  ix,  13.  Compare  Gen.  xxix,  30,  31.  The  original  word  therefore 
has  a  very  frequent  use  in  the  sense,  merely  of  comparative  preference  as  of  Rachel  to 
Leah,  &c.  Thus  Grotius,  Campbell,  Bp  Pearce,  Priestley,  and  other  critics.  Dahney. 
It  is  very  plain,  that  hating  used  in  this  manner,  was,  among  the  Hebrews,  an  idioma- 
tic expression  for  loving  less.     Campbell.     See  note  on  Rom.  ix,  13.     Thans. 

Luke  XV,  7  ;  p.  140, 1.  43.  Righteous  beings,  who  do  n.ot  require  reformation.  T.  Just 
persons,  which  need  no  repentance.  R.  T.  Who  do  not  require  such  a  change  of  mind 
and  purpose  as  these  do  —  who  are  not  so  profligate,  and  cannot  repent  of  sins  they 
have  never  committed.     Clarke. 

Luke  XV,  8  ;  p.  140, 1.  4.').  Ten  drachmas.  T.  Ten  pieces  of  silver.  R.  T.  A^t^^^j^nt 
Jw*.  I  think  it  always  best  to  retain  the  names  of  these  ancient  coins,  and  to  state 
their  value  in  English  money.  The  Grecian  drachma  was  worth  about  seven  pence 
three  farthings  of  our  own  money  ;  being  about  the  same  value  as  the  Roman  denarius. 
Clarke.  It  was  equivalent  to  13^  cents  of  the  American  currency;  being  also  one  half 
of  the  didrachma  page  64,  line  31,  denominated  tribute.  Matt.  xvii„24,  and  one  eighth 
of  the  stater  subsequently  mentioned  line  37,  and  called  in  verse  27,  a  piece  of  money, 
which  was  equal  to  a  hundred  and  ten  cents.     Trans. 

Luke  XV,  16 ;  p.  141 , 1.  13.  With  the  pulse.  T.  With  the  husks.  R.  T.  Kejit/w. 
Bochart,  1  think,  has  proved  that  nsg^TW  does  not  mean  husks :  to  signify  which  the 
Greek  botanical  writers  use  the  word  koSoi  ;  several  examples  of  which  he  gives  from 
Theophrastus.  He  shows  also,  that  the  original  word  means  the  fruit  of  the  ceratonia 
or  charub  tree,  which  grows  plentifully  in  Syria.  This  kind  of  pulse.  Columella  ob- 
serves, was  made  use  of  to  feed  swine.     Clarke. 

Luke  XV,  17 ;  p.  141, 1.  16.  /  am  perishing  heke  with  hunger.  T.  I  perish  with 
hunger.  R.  T.  Or,  /  perish  here.  nJ'e,  here,  is  added  by  B  D  L  ,  Syriac,  all  the 
Arabic,  and  Persic,  Coptic,  Ethiopic,  Gothic,  Saxon,  Vulgate,  all  the  Itala,  and  several 
of  the  Fathers.     Clarke.     Griesbach  inserts  it  in  the  text.     Trans. 

Luke  XV,  27 ;  p.  141, 1.  33.  In  good  health.  T.  Safe  and  sound.  R.  T.  Safe  and 
sound  appears  to  me  mean  and  vulgar.  Wakefield.  It  would  be  no  small  task  to  advert 
to  the  numerous  expressions,  in  the  common  version,  to  which  those  epithets  might  be 
justly  applied.     Trans. 

Luke  xvi,  6,  7  ;  p.  142, 1.  8.  A  hundred  baths  of  oil.  T.  A  hundred  measures  of  oil. 
R.  T.  The  bath  is  equal  to  seven  gallons  and  a  half  of  our  measure.  A  hundred  cors 
of  wheat.  T.    A  hundred  measures  of  xoheat.  R.  T.    The  cor  contained  about  seventy' 

57 


450  APPENDIX. 

five  gallons  and  five  pints  English.  For  the  same  reason  for  which  I  preserve  the 
names  of  the  ancient  coins,  I  preserve  the  names  of  the  ancient  measures.  What  idea 
can  a  mere  English  reader  have  of  the  -war a  measure  in  this  and  the  preceding  verse, 
vehen  the  original  words  are  not  only  totally  different,  but  the  quantity  is  as  seven  to 
seventy-five  ?  The  original  terms  should  be  immediately  inserted  in  the  text,  and  the 
contents  inserted  in  the  margin.     Clarke. 

Luke  xvi,  8  ;  p.  142, 1.  12.  The  master  teas  powerfully  impressed  by  the  unprincipled 
steward.  T.  The  Lord  commended  the  unjust  steward.  R.  T.  The  Ijrrd  commended. 
Viz.  the  master  of  this  unjust  steward.  He  spoke  highly  of  the  address  and  cunning  of 
his  iniquitous  servant.  He  had,  on  his  own  principles,  made  a  very  prudent  provision 
for  his  support ;  and  his  master  no  more  approved  of  his  conduct  in  this,  than  he  did  in 
wasting  his  substance  before.  From  the  ambiguous  and  improper  manner  in  which 
this  is  expressed  in  the  common  English  translation,  it  has  been  supposed  that  our 
blessed  Lord  commended  the  conduct  of  this  wicked  man :  but  the  word  jtwg/oc,  there 

translated  lord,  simply  means  the  master  of  the  unjust  steward To  insinuate, 

that  if  a  man  have  acquired  riches  by  unjust  means,  that  he  is  to  sanctify  them,  and 
provide  himself  a  passport  to  the  kingdom  of  God,  by  giving  them  to  the  poor,  is  a 
most  horrid  and  blasphemous  perversion  of  our  Lord's  words.  Ill  gotten  gain  must  be 
restored  to  the  proper  owners  :  if  they  are  dead,  then  to  their  successors.     Clarke. 

The  common  translation  of  this  passage  involves  the  pernicious  and  profligate  doc- 
trine, that  eternal  life  may  be  attained  by  temporal  frauds.  While  this  phraseology 
is  retained  and  vindicated,  no  explanation  can  remove  its  moral  pollution.     Trans. 

Luke  xvi,  23  ;•  p.  142, 1.  45.  Jlnd  in  hades.  T.  Literally ;  ./Ind  in  the  hades.  Trans. 
Jlnd  in  hell.  R.  T.  Jlnd  in  Hades:  Campbell's  Tr.  In  the  Greek,  gy  tu  cii'tt^  in 
Hades.  Dwight.  In  the  unseen  state  :  Imp.  Vers.  From  this  single  passage,  many 
have  been  led  to  think  Hades  to  be  the  place  of  future  suffering  ;  whereas  it  denoted 
according  to  the  Jewish  belief,  a  place  withdrawn  from  sight ;  when  speaking  of  the 
body,  the  sepulchre  ;  when  of  the  soul,  any  region  it  inhabits  in  its  separate  state.' 
Grotius  ;  and  thus  also  Le  Clerk,  Wetstein,  Pearce,  &c.  Dabney.  In  the  grave : 
ty  TO)  aSi) :  and  conformably  to  this  representation,  he  is  spoken  of  as  having  a  body, 
verse  24.  It  must  be  remembered,  that  cftf^f  —  no  where  means  heU,  yawa.  —  in  any 
author  whatever,  sacred  or  profane.  Wakefield.  This  word  denotes,  with  sufficient 
clearness,  a  different  state  of  suffering  from  that  which  is  intended  by  the  word  yana.. 
Dwight.  Clarke  regards,  a Jjit  here,  as  representing  a  place  of  punishment ;  and  in- 
deed, treats  the  rich  man,  in  the  whole  exposition,  as  if  he  were  actually  suffering  in 
what  is  vulgarly  denominated  hell.  Trans.  This  is  the  only  passage  in  holy  writ 
which  seems  to  give  countenance  to  the  opinion  that  mSus  sometimes  means  the  same 
thing  as  yisvvit.  Here  it  is  represented  as  a  place  of  punishment.  .  .  There  is  no  in- 
consistency in  maintaining,  that  the  rich  man,  though  in  torments,  was  not  in  gehenna, 
but  in  that  part  of  hades  called  tartarus,  2  Peter  ii,  4 ;  where  spirits  reserved  for  judg- 
ment are  detained  in  darkness.  .  .  In  my  judgment  aif»c,  hades,  ought  never  in  Scrip- 
ture to  be  rendered  hell,  at  least  in  the  sense  wherein  that  word  is  now  universally 

understood  by  Christians.  Campbell.  It  is  undoubtedly  true,  that  the  Hebrew  71Ky 
rendered  Sheol,  and  the  Greek  Atfx?  rendered  Hell,  or  the  Grave,  in  our  Translation, 
do  not  properly  signify  either  ;  but  always  the  world  of  departed  spirits.  Dwight.  See 
the  Notes  on  Matt,  v,  22 ;  xi,  23 ;  Mark  ix,  43,  45  ;  Acts  ii,  31.     Trans. 

Luke  xvii,  10 ;  p.  143, 1.  36.  We  thy  servants  have  conferred  no  favor.  T.  and  Camp- 
bell. We  are  unprofitable  servants.  R.  T.  The  epithet  n^^ius,  as  here  applied,  is  so 
far  from  suiting  the  sense  of  the  English  word  unprofitable,  by  which  it  is  rendered  in 
the  common  translation,  that  if  we  were  to  give  a  definition  of  an  unprofitable  servant, 
we  should  hardly  think  of  another  than  the  reverse  of  the  character  given  in  that  pas- 
sage, but  should  say,  '  he  is  one  who  does  not  that  to  his  master  which  it  is  his  duty  to 
do.'  From  the  context,  however,  no  person  can  be  at  a  loss  to  see,  that  the  import  of 
the  word  is,  '  We  have  conferred  no  favor,  we  have  only  fulfilled  the  terms  which  we 


LUKE'S  HISTORY.  451 

were  bound  to  perform.'  I  know  that  because  the  sentiment  is  not  expressed  with  the 
brevity  of  the  original,  many  would  call  this  a  comment,  or  rather  a  paraphrase,  and 
not  a  version.  It  is  expressed,  I  acknowledge,  by  a  periphrasis  ;  but  periphrasis  and 
paraphrase  are  not  synonymous  terms.  The  former  is  in  every  translation,  sometimes 
necessary,  in  order  to  transmit  the  genuine  thought  and  reasoning  of  the  author  ;  it  is 
only  when  more  than  this  is  attempted,  and  when  other  sentiments  are  introduced  or 
suggested,  for  the  sake  of  illustrating  an  author's  thoughts,  or  enforcing  his  argu- 
ments, that  men  employ  paraphrase.  It  is  not  denied,  that  periphrasis  in  translating, 
ought  to  be  avoided,  if  possible;  but  it  is  not  always  possible  to  avoid  it,  and  peri- 
phrasis is  preferable  to  single  words,  which  either  convey  no  meaning,  or  convey  a 
meaning  different  from  the  author's.      Campbell. 

Luke  xvii,  36;  p.  144,1.31.  Two  men  sIulU  lie  in  the  field ;  the  one  shall  he  taken, 
and  the  other  left.  R.  T.  This  36th  verse  is  wanting  in  most  of  the  Greek  copies. 
Marg.  JVote,  R.  T.  The  36th  verse  is,  without  doubt,  an  interpolation  ;  see  the  mar- 
gin. It  was  probably  borrowed  from  Matt,  xxiv,  40.  The  whole  of  this  verse  is  want- 
ing in  many  MSS,  some  of  them  of  great  note.  It  is  not  found  in  some  of  the  early 
editions,  nor  in  the  Coptic  and  Ethiopic  versions.  But  both  the  Syriac  versions,  also 
the  Arabic  and  the  Vulgate  have  it.  In  a  number  of  Latin  MSS,  it  is  wanting.  Some 
critics  suppose  it  to  have  been  added  from  Matthew.  This  is  not  improbable.  How- 
ever, as  the  evidence  on  both  sides  nearly  balances  each  other,  I  have  retained  it  in 
the  text,  distinguishing  it  as  of  doubtful  authority.  Campbell.  Griesbach  leaves  the 
verse  out  of  the  text.     Trans. 

Luke  xix,  13;  p.  146, 1.  35.  Tenminas.  T.  Ten  pounds.  R.T.  The  mane/i  appears 
from  Ezek.  xlv,  12,  to  have  been  equal  to  sixty  shekels  in  money.  Now  suppose  we 
allow  the  shekel,  with  Dean  Prideaux  to  be  3s,  then  the  minM  or  manch  was  equal  to 
91,  English  money.  The  impropriety  of  rendering  the  original  -worA  pound,  will  easily 
be  seen  by  the  most  superficial  reader.     We  should  therefore  retain  the  original  word. 

Clarke. 

Luke  XX,  16  ;  p.  148, 1.  30.  Let  it  not  he,  fjin  yivatro.  Our  phrase,  God  forbid,  ^n- 
swers  pretty  well  to  the  meaning  of  the  Greek,  but  it  is  no  translation.     Clarke. 

Luke  XX,  42 ;  p.  149, 1.  29.  The  Lord  said  to  my  Lord.  The  Lord,  (ov,  Jehovah,) 
said  to  my  Lord.  Campbell.  Jehovah  said  to  my  Lord,  Sit  thou  at  iny  right  hand,  until 
I  make  thy  foes  thy  footstool.     Psalm  ox,  1.    JVoyes. 

Luke  xxii,  34  ;  p.  152, 1.  17.  ^  watch-trumpet  will  not  sound.  T.  The  cock  will  not 
crow.  R.  T.  That  is,  '  the  trumpet  of  the  third  watch  will  not  sound.'  It  is  well 
known  that  no  cocks  were  allowed  to  remain  in  Jerusalem  during  the  passover  feast. 
The  Romans  who  had  a  strong  guard  in  the  castle  of  Antonia,  which  overlooked  the 
temple,  divided  the  night  into  four  watches,  beginning  at  six,  nine,  twelve,  and  three. 
Mark  xiii,  35,  alludes  to  this  division  of  time.  The  two  last  watches  were  both  called 
cock-crowings.  The  Romans  relieved  guard  at  each  watch  by  sound  of  trumpet :  the 
trumpet  of  the  third  watch  was  called  the  first,  and  that  of  the  fourth  the  second  cock. 
And  when  it  is  said  the  cock  crew,  the  meaning  is,  that  the  trumpet  of  tlie  third  watch 
sounded  :  which  always  happened  at  midnight.     Improved  Version. 

Luke  xxii,  44 ;  p.  152, 1.  35.  Great  drops  of  blood.  T.  Pearce  thinks  that  there 
may  have  been  a  resemblance  not  in  size  only,  but  in  color ;  for  in  cases  of  very  violent 
fears  and  agonies,  it  has  been  known,  that  the  sweat  of  persons  thus  affected  had  the 
color  of  blood.  Dr  Mead,  the  eminent  physician,  quotes  the  opinion  of  Galen,  derived 
from  his  own  experience,  to  this  effect.     Dabney.     Clarke. 

Luke  xxii,  43, 44 ;  p.  152, 1.  33.  .^nd  there  appeared  to  him  a  messenger  from  heaven. 
T.  And  there  appeared  an  angel  unto  him  from  heaven.  R.  T.  There  is  no  mention  of 
this  circumstance  in  any  of  the  other  Evangelists  :  and  it  is  worthy  of  remark,  that 
among  many  of  the  ancients,  the  authenticity  of  these  t%oo  verses,  the  43d  and  44th,  has 
been  doubted,  and  in  consequence,  they  are  omitted  in  several  MSS,  and  in  some 
Versions  and  Fathers.  The  Codex  Alexandrinus,  and  the  Codex  Vaticanus,  the  two 
oldest  MSS  in  the  world,  omit  both  verses ;  in  some  very  ancient  MSS  they  stand 


458  APPENDIX. 

with  an  asterisk  before  them,  as  a  mark  of  dubiousness  ;  and  they  are  both  wanting  in 
the  Coptic  fragments  published  by  Dr  Ford.  They  are  however  extant  in  such  a  vast 
number  of  MSS,  Versions  and  Fathers,  as  to  leave  no  doubt  with  most  critics,  of  their 
authenticity.  Clarke.  Griesbach  notes  them  as  wanting  in  some  authorities,  but 
thinks  that  they  ought  not  to  be  omitted.     Trans. 

Luke  xxiii,  15 ;  p.  154, 1.  15.  He  has  done  nothing  to  deserve  death.  T.  JVothing 
worthy  of  death  is  done  unto  him.  R.  T.  This  sentence  of  Pilate,  interpreted  by  the 
ordinary  rules,  and  considered  in  reference  to  his  subject,  is  downright  nonsense. 
Campbell.  This  is  considered  by  critics  for  the  most  part  as  an  unintelligible  or  an 
absurd  rendering  ;  and  following  a  less  usual  and  literal,  but  an  authorized  construc- 
tion of  the  original,  they  have  it  by  him.  Thus  Kenrick,  Pearce,  Beza,  Castalio,  and 
Improved  Version.  Campbell  and  Wakefield  give  a  like  sense.  Dabney.  Rather, 
nothing  worthy  of  death  is  committed  by  him,  Ui?r^ityy.vm  avTn,  not  done  unto  him.  This 
phrase  is  of  the  same  sense  with  m^a  iriTreit^fit  a-vrt,;,  he  hath  done  nothing,  and  is  fre- 
quent in  the  purest  Attic  writers.     Clarke. 

Luke  xxiii,  32 ;  p.  154,  1.  40.  J^ow  two  others,  who  were  criminals,  were  led  with  him, 
to  be  executed.  T.  And  there  were  also  two  other  malefactors  led  with  him  to  be  put  to 
death.  R.  T.  Two  other  malefactors.  ETsgar^Tyo  xajtcug^o/,  should  certainly  be  translated 
two  others,  malefactors,  as  in  the  bibles  published  by  the  King's  printer,  Edinburgh. 
As  it  now  stands  in  the  text,  it  seems  to  intimate  that  our  blessed  Lord,  was  also  a, 
mMefactor.     Clarice.    Most  critics  correct  in  the  same  manner  this  unfortunate  error. 

Dabney. 

Luke  xxiv,  49;  p.  157, 1.  25.  I  send  you  that  which  my  Father  has  promised.  T.  / 
send  the  promise  of  my  Father  upon  you.  R.  T.  This,  if  it  can  be  said  to  suggest  any 
thing  to  an  English  reader,  suggests  awkardly,  I  give  you  a  promise  on  the  part  of  my 
Father.  Yet  this  is  not  the  sense.  What  is  here  meant  is  the  fulfilment  of  a  promise 
formerly  given  them  by  his  Father,  and  is  therefore  properly  rendered,  /  send  you  that 
which  my  Father  hath  promised.  Campbell.  The  same  error,  in  the  common  transla- 
tion, occurs  in  the  Letter  to  the  Hebrews,  and  in  other  places.     Tkans. 

Luke  xxiv,  52;  p.  157, 1.  29.  And  they  worshipped  him.  T.  and  R.  T.  But  they  fell 
down  before  him.  Wakefield.  And  they  did  him  obeisance.  Newcome,  and  Received 
Version.  Did  him  obeisance  or  reverence,  or  prostrated  themselves  on  the  ground  : 
Thus  Kenrick,  Campbell,  Priestley,  and  Wakefield.  Dabney.  Having  worshipped  him,, 
5rgQirKyv«s-avT2c  rfuTov :  that  is  having  thrown  themselves  prostrate  before  him,  as  the 
words,  strictly  interpreted,  imply.  Campbell.  They  worshipped  him.  Let  it  be  ob- 
served that  this  worship  was  not  given  by  way  of  civil  respect,  for  it  was  after  he  was 
parted  from  them,  and  carried  back  into  heaven,  that  they  offered  it  to  him  :  but  acts 
of  civil  respect  are  always  performed  in  the  presence  of  the  person.  They  adored  him 
as  their  God,  and  were  certainly  too  much  enlightened  to  be  capable  of  any  species  of 
idolatry.  Clarke.  We  have  here  an  instance  of  religious  worship  paid  to  Christ,  after 
he  was  taken  out  of  the  sight  of  his  disciples,  and  had  ascended  up  into  heaven.  Mann. 
Christ  must  be  truly  God,  because  he  has  dominion  over  all  flesh,  and  all  power  in 
Heaven,  and  in  earth,  imparted  to  him.  For  this  dominion  is  the  ground  of  divine 
worship  and  authority.      Whitby's  Last  Thoughts. 

There  is  no  possibility  of  settling  the  true  interpretation  with  the  theological  parti- 
sans, encumbered  as  they  are  by  their  favorite,  tenacious,  pre-conceived,  doctrinal  dif- 
ficulties. Ugzncuvw  is  applied  twenty-four  times  in  the  New  Testament  to  the  adora- 
tion of  God ;  and  particularly,  in  Matthew  iv,  10,  by  our  Saviour  himself.  All  are 
here  satisfied  to  give  the  word  its  most  enlarged  and  intense  signification.  In  Acts  x, 
23,  Rev.  xix,  10,  xxii,  8,  it  is  applied  to  created  beings,  and  the  oflfered  homage  repre- 
sented as  idolatry ;  and  in  the  context  of  the  two  latter  passages,  the  suppliant  is 
directed  in  the  use  of  the  same  word,  and  as  a  substitute  for  the  object  of  idolatry,  to 
worship  God;  and  therefore,  the  term  cannot  in  those  instances  be  tortured  into  any 
other  meaning.  It  is  a  word  which  is  also  very  frequently  applied,  in  the  apostolic 
productions,  to  the  Lord  Jesua  Christ.    But,  on  the  miserable  assumption — According 


JOHN'S   HISTORY.  453 

to  the  creed,  the  scriptural  interpretation — the  case  stands  thus  with  the  two  parties. 
On  the  one  hand,  Christ  is  regarded  as  an  object  of  worship.  No  matter,  therefore, 
how  often,  by  whom,  or  in  what  connexion,  tlie  word  Tr^orKuim,  is  used  in  the  scriptures 
relative  to  him,  it  is  implicitly  supposed  always  to  mean  spiritual  worship.  And  on 
the  other  hand,  Christ  is  not  considered  as  entitled  to  the  offering  of  worship ;  and 
therefore,  in  the  application  of  the  Greek  word  to  him,  let  circumstances  be  what  they 
may,  it  is  either  never  permitted  in  our  language  to  express,  or  however  rendered,  un- 
derstood to  signify,  religious  adoration.  Those  have  great  reason  to  praise  God,  whose 
minds  are  not  thus  enslaved.     See  Notes  on  Matt,  ii,  2 ;  viii,  2 ;  Mark  v,  6 ;  Heb.  i,  6. 

Trans. 


JOHN  S     HISTORY. 

John  i,  1 ;  p.  158, 1.  1.  Existed  the  Word.  T.  Was  the  Word.  R.  T.  Or,  existed  the 
Logos.  This  term  should  be  left  untranslated.  .  .  The  Word  was  God.  Or,  God  was 
the  Logos.    Clarke. 

Ev  tfg;^«  XV  0  xo^of,  xsti  0  xcyac  m  ?rgof  tov  ©eovj  KUt  ©eoc  fiv  o  \oyii^.  Oums  nv  iv  cgyyi 
n'gof  TOV  ©60V.  IIotvTit  it  avrcu  e^evsTo"  x.At  ;taig/c  eivTcv  e^eveTo  avJ'i  ev,  o  ^ejovev.  Which, 
truly  translated,  means,  '  In  the  beginning  God  existed,  and  reason  [or  mind]  was 
with  God,  and  that  mind  was  God.  This  was  in  the  beginning  with  God.  All  things 
were  created  by  it,  and  without  it  was  made  not  one  thing  which  was  made.'  Yet  this 
text  so  plainly  declaring  the  doctrine  of  Jesus,  that  the  world  was  created  by  the  Su- 
preme Intelligent  Being,  has  been  perverted  by  modern  Christians  to  build  up  a 
second  person  in  their  tritheism,  by  a  mistranslation  of  the  word  Koyos.  One  of  its 
legitimate  meanings,  indeed,  is  '  a  word.'  But  in  that  sense  it  makes  an  unmeaning 
jargon:  while  the  other  meaning,  '  reason,'  equally  legitimate,  explains  rationally  the 
eternal  pre-existence  of  God,  and  his  creation  of  the  world.  Knowing  how  incompre- 
hensible it  was  that  ".  word,  the  mere  action  or  articulation  of  the  organs  of  speech 
could  create  a  world,  they  undertook  to  make  of  this  articulation  a  second  pre-existing 
being,  and  ascribe  to  him,  and  not  to  God,  the  creation  of  the  universe.  The  Atheist 
here  plumes  himself  on  the  uselessness  of  such  a  God,  and  the  simpler  hypothesis  of  a 
self-existent  universe.  The  truth  is,  that  the  greatest  enemies  of  the  doctrines  of  Jesus, 
are  those  calling  themselves  the  expositors  of  them,  who  have  perverted  them  for  the 
structure  of  a  system  of  fancy  absolutely  incomprehensible,  and  without  any  founda- 
tion in  his  genuine  words.     Jefferson, 

To  give  plausibility  to  the  preceding  construction  of  the  term  Aojot,  Word,  it  was 
deemed  requisite  to  give  three  different  interpretations  of  it  in  the  short  compass  of 
the  first  verse  ;  by  one  of  which  it  is  literally  admitted  to  denote  God  :  and  when  we 
pass  to  verse  14,  which  the  writer  has  declined  to  do,  in  not  giving  the  reader  a  trans- 
lation of  the  entire  context,  we  should  have,  on  his  hypothesis,  And  '  God,'  or  the 
'  supreme  intelligent  being''  became  fiesh,  —  the  very  position  of  his  opponents.  In  ren- 
dering the  second  and  third  verses,  the  writer  corresponds  with  Campbell,  Wakefield, 
and  many  other  critics,  and  is  probably  correct.     Tkans. 

In  the  beginning  was  Wisdom,  and  Wisdom  was  with  God,  and  Wisdom  was  God. 
That  by  this  Myos  of  John  is  meant  the  word  of  God  so  frequent  in  the  Chaldee  Tar- 
gums,  and  the  mens,  ratio  et  sapientia  —  the  mind,  reason,  and  wisdom  —  of  the  Greek 
and  Roman  philosophers  and  poets,  and  of  the  Christian  fathers,  is  a  point,  which 
seems,  to  myself  at  least,  very  clearly  settled  in  p.  102,  and  the  following  pages  of  my 
Inquiry  into  the  Opinions  of  the  Christian  Writers.    Wakefield. 

In  his  notes  on  the  first  chapter  of  John,  Dr  Priestley  informs  us,  that  the  word 
Aoj/oc,  which,  you  know,  is  translated  the  Word,  is  nothing  more  than  the  power  of  God, 
by  which  all  things  were  made ;  and  therefore,  he  says,  it  was  no  distinct,  inferior  prin- 
ciple, but  God  himself.  This  is  the  only  known  instance  in  which  an  attribute  of  God, 
either  in  sacred  or  profane  writings,  has  been  asserted  to  be  God.     Now  substitute  the 


454  APPENDIX. 

explanation  for  the  thing  explained ;  Power  and  God  for  the  TVm'd,  or  Acyos;  as  being 
the  two  things,  which  the  term  Aoyo;  is,  successively,  declared  to  denote.  This  experi- 
ment shall  be  first  made  with  power.  In  the  leginning  was  the  power  of  God,  and  this 
power  was  with  God,  and  this  power  was  God.  .  .  Jlnd  the  potoer  was  made  flesh  and 
dwelt  among  us.  .  .  Dr  Priestley  says  the  Power  was  God ;  St  John  says,  it  was  made 
flesh  and  dwelt  among  us,  full  of  grace  and  truth.  According  to  his  comment,  there- 
fore, God  became  flesh,  and  dwelt  among  us.  According  to  his  comment,  also,  this 
power  was  Christ;  for  he  says  it  dwelt  among  us  full  of  grace  and  truth  :  but  St  John 
immediately  subjoins,  grace  and  truth  came  (that  is,  into  this  world)  by  Jesus  Christ. 
Therefore,  Jesus  Christ  is  God.  .  .  Let  us  make  the  trial  with  the  other  term,  God. 
In  the  beginning  was  God,  and  God  was  with  God,  and  God  was  God.  Two  verses 
more  will  suffice,  .^nd  God  was  made  flesh,  and  dwelt  among  us,  and  we  heheld  his 
glory,  {tlic  glory  as  of  the  only  begotten  of  the  Father) ,  full  of  grace  and  truth.  JYo  one 
hath  seen  God  at  any  time,  but  the  only  begotten  Son,  who  is  in  the  bosom  of  the  Father,  he 
hath  declared  him.  .  .  This  will  serve  to  show  to  what  lengths  the  interpretation  of  the 
Scriptures,  according  to  our  pre-conceived  opinions,  will  lead  men  of  superior  learning 
and  abilities.     Dwight. 

In  the  beginning  of  the  world,  before  all  time,  before  any  thing  was  created,  the  Son 
of  God  had  a  subsistence,  and  that  subsistence  with  the  Father  from  all  eternity,  and 
was  himself  eternal  God,  being  by  his  Father  in  his  eternal  purpose  designed  to  be  the 
Messiah,  who  was  known  among  the  Jews  by  the  title  of  the  Word  of  God. 

Hammond. 

In  the  beginning,  viz.  of  the  creation  ;  for  the  evangelist  seems  here  to  allude  to  the 
first  word  of  Genesis.  The  word  existed  at  the  time  of  the  creation,  consequently 
from  all  eternity.  And  the  Word  was  with  God;  namely,  before  any  created  being 
had  existed.     Macknight. 

'  In  the  beginning'  is  here  used  in  the  same  sense  as  at  Gen.  i ,  1 :  for  the  Evangelist 
proposes  to  himself  to  show,  that  by  'the  Word,'  by  whom  the  creation  was  perfected, 
the  redemption  of  mankind  was  also  perfected.     Lightfoot. 

Nothing  can  be  more  clearly  written  to  prove  the  eternal  existence  and  the  divinity 
of  our  Saviour,  than  this  passage  of  St  John,  (ver.  1  —  3),  which  seems  purposely 
designed  with  a  singular  brevity  to  take  off"  all  objections  to  that  important  truth. 

Pearson. 

This  title  of  the  Word,  or,  the  Logos,  is  given  to  the  Son  of  God  from  the  Scriptures 
of  the  Old  Testament,  and  from  the  subsequent  style  of  the  ancient  Jews,  in  conformity 
thereto.  The  divine  Person,  who  has  accomplished  the  salvation  of  mankind,  is  called 
the  Word,  and  the  Word  of  God;  not  only  because  God  at  first  created,  and  still  gov- 
erns all  things  by  him  ;  but  because,  as  men  discover  their  sentiments  and  designs  to 
one  another  by  the  intervention  of  words,  speech,  or  discourse,  so  God,  by  his  Son,  dis- 
covers his  gracious  designs  to  men  in  the  fullest  and  clearest  manner  :  all  the  various 
manifestations  which  he  makes  of  himself,  whether  in  the  works  of  creation,  provi- 
dence, or  redemption ;  all  the  revelations  he  has  been  pleased  to  give  of  his  will,  are 
conveyed  to  us  through  him ;  and  therefore  he  is,  by  way  of  eminence,  styled  '  the 
Word  of  God.'     Macknight.     Pretyman. 

Was  God:  —  therefore,  no  subordinate  being;  no  second  to  the  Most  High;  but  the 
Supreme  Eternal  Jehovah.     Clarke. 

It  is  strictly  conformable  to  the  scriptural  use  of  language  to  render  this  passage  as 
follows :  — '  The  word  was  with  God,  and  the  word  was  a  god.'  He  was  one  of  those 
beings  to  whom  this  title  was  applicable.  —  The  foregoing  translation  is  exactly  suited 
to  the  original  of  the  passage.    Winthrop  Bailey.     Thus  also  the  Improved  Version. 

Trans. 

The  same  word,  in  the  same  passage,  must  be  used  in  the  same  sense ;  If  Sms 
[God]  then,  be  applied  to  the  Father,  in  the  highest  sense  of  the  word,  as  expressing  his 
nature  or  essence ;  in  the  same  sense  it  must  be  applied  to  the  Son  also ;  though  what 
their  specific  nature  or  essence  is,  none  can  intimately  know  but  themselves.    Hales. 


JOHN'S  HISTORY.  455 

On  these  important  passages,  (ver.  1  —  3),  I  find  that  many  eminently  learned  men 
differ  from  me :  it  seems  they  cannot  be  of  my  opinion,  and  I  feel  I  cannot  be  of 
theirs.     May  He  who  is  the  Light  and  the  Truth,  guide  them  and  me  into  all  truth  ! 

Clarice. 

John  i,  3 ;  p.  158, 1.  2.  Ml  things  loere  formed  hyit,  and  without  it  not  even  one  thing 
was  made^  which  has  existed.  T.  All  things  were  made  by  him  ;  and  without  him  was 
not  any  thing  made  that  was  made.  R.  T.  Without  him  was  not  eveji  one  thing  made, 
which  has  been  made.  See  the  Original.  Dwight.  Ml  things  were  made  by  it,  and 
without  it  not  a  single  creature  was  made.  In  it  loas  life.  It  is  much  more  suitable  to 
the  figurative  style  here  employed,  to  speak  of  the  word,  though  really  denoting  a  per- 
son, as  a  thing,  agreeably  to  the  grammatical  idiom,  till  a  direct  intimation  is  made  of 
its  personality.  This  intimation  I  consider  as  made  verse  4th,  In  it  was  life.  The 
way  of  rendering  here  adopted  is  agreeable  to  the  practice  of  all  translators,  except  the 
English,  as  far  as  I  have  had  occasion  to  observe.     Campbell. 

John  i,  1  —  3.     Stuart,  referring  to  some  conjectural  emendations  of  the  original 
text  cited  by  Griesbach,  observes,  '  All  known  Manuscripts  agree  in  the  text  here. 
I  have  a  great  regard  for  the  labors  and  learning  of  Griesbach ;  but  I  am  constrained 
to  ask  here,  why  should  he  have  condescended  to  notice  conjectures  so  gratuitous  and 
unfounded  as  these.'     Trans. 

John  i,  4 ;  p.  158, 1.  4.  In  it  was  life.  T.  In  him  was  life.  R.  T.  Many  MSS, 
Versions,  and  Fathers,  connect  this  with  the  preceding  verse,  thus  :  Wliat  was  made 
had  life  in  it.  Clarke.  The  common  interpretation  is  preferable,  because  more  simple 
and  perspicuous.     Campbell. 

John  i,  11;  p.  158, 1.  12.  He  came  to  his  own.  T.  and  R.  T.  He  came  unto  his  own 
things,  Tfit  ij/it;  and  his  own  men  or  hindred,  (omJ«/),  received  him  not  j  that  is  he 
came  into  the  world,  but  mankind  or  the  Jewish  nation  received  him  not.     Dwight. 

John  i,  13 ;  p.  158, 1.  15, 16.  Kotfrom  ancestry.  T.  Ifot  of  blood.  R.  T.  Neither 
by  circumcision  and  sacrifice,  nor  by  marriage  and  natural  descent,  nor  by  any  rite 
invented  by  man.     Macknight. 

John  i,  14  ;  p.  158,  1.  17.  The  Word  was  constituted  man.  T.  The  Word  was  made 
flesh.  R.  T.  In  the  human  nature  the  word  of  God  has  taught  mankind  fully  and 
powerfully  the  doctrines  of  salvation.  Macknight.  It  seems  to  us  no  very  harsh 
figure  to  denote  what  we  believe  to  have  been  intended  —  that  the  divine  power  was 
manifested  in  human  form,  through  Jesus  Christ.  But  if  there  should  be  a  difficulty 
in  this  representation,  it  may  assist  our  conceptions  to  know  that  according  to  a  com- 
mon use  of  the  term  logos,  it  might  be  applied  to  any  being,  through  whom  the  divine 
power  was  strikingly  manifested.  Thus  Philo  calls  Moses  tlie  divine  logos,  and  the 
high  priest  logos.    Morton. 

In  a  work  of  the  late  very  learned  Mr  Jacob  Bryant,  entitled  '  Tlie  sentiments  of 
Philo  Judceus  concerning  tlie  AOroS  or  WORD  of  GOD,'  he  remarks,  '  Philo  Judoeus 
speaks  at  large  in  many  places,  of  the  Word  of  God,  the  second  person,  which  he 
mentions  as  {JiuTepo;  ©cos)  the  second  divinity,  the  great  cause  of  all  things,  and  styles 
him  as  Plato,  as  well  as  the  Jews  had  done  before,  tlie  Locos.  Of  the  divine  Logos 
or  Word,  he  speaks  in  many  places,  and  maintains  at  large  the  divinity  of  the  Second 
person,  and  describes  his  attributes  in  a  very  precise  and  copious  manner.'     Clarice. 

John  i,  21 ;  p.  158, 1.  29.  IVJio  then  7  T.  Wliat  then  1  R.  T.  This  has  acquired  an 
idiomatical  acceptation,  which  answers  exactly  to  %ohat  would  you  infer  from,  that  ? 
than  which  nothing  could  be  more  foreign  to  the  purpose.     Campbell. 

John  i,  27 ;  p.  158, 1.  39.  Who  was  before  me.  T.  Is  preferred  before  me.  R.  T. 
This  clause  is  wanting  in  B  C*  L,  four  others,  the  Coptic,  Etkiopic,  Slavonic,  and  two 
copies  of  the  Itala;  and  in  some  of  the  primitive  Fathers.  Griesbach  has  left  it  out  of 
the  text.  It  is  likely  that  it  was  omitted  by  the  above,  because  it  was  found  in  verses 
15,  and  30.     Clarke. 

John  ii,  4 ;  p.  160,  1.  2.  0  rcoman.  T.  Woman.  R.  T.  The  compellation  with 
which  Jesus  addressed  his  mother,  though  anciently  a  term  of  honor,  sounds  harshly 


456  APPENDIX. 

in  our  language.  And  the  clause  that  follows  in  our  translation  might  be  justly  ren- 
dered so  as  to  have  a  milder  aspect.     Mackniglit. 

John  iii,  5 ;  p.  16i,  1.  2.  Unless  a  man  be  produce^  of  water  and  of  the  Spirit.  T. 
Except  a  man  be  born  of  water  and  the  Spirit.  R.  T.  The  strict  literal  translation  of 
the  original  is,  born  of  water  and  Spirit.  There  is  no  more  reason  for  writing  the  lat- 
ter part  of  the  expression  the  Spirit,  with  the  article  and  a  capital,  than  for  writing  the 
former  the  Water  ;  both  are  written  alike  in  the  original,  without  an  article,  or  a  capi- 
tal.    /.  H.  T.  Blanchard. 

John  iii,  5;  p.  161, 1.  3.  He  cannot  enter  the  kingdom  of  God.  T.  He  cannot  enter 
into  the  kingdom  of  God.  R.  T.  He  cannot  participate  in  the  influence  of  God. 
Trans.  Not  a  few,  I  suspect,  conceive  of  heaven  as  a  foreign  good.  It  is  a  distant 
country,  to  which  we  are  to  be  conveyed  by  an  outward  agency.  How  slowly  do  men 
learn,  that  heaven  is  the  perfection  of  the  mind,  and  that  Christ  gives  it  now  just  as 
far  as  he  raises  the  mind  to  celestial  truth  and  virtue.  It  is  true  that  this  word  is  often 
used  to  express  a  future  felicity ;  but  the  blessedness  of  the  future  world  is  only  a  con- 
tinuance of  what  is  begun  here.  There  i«  but  one  true  happiness,  that  of  a  mind  un- 
folding its  best  powers,  and  attaching  itself  to  great  objects  ;  and  Christ  gives  heaven, 
only  in  proportion  as  he  gives  this  elevation  of  character.  The  disinterestedness,  and 
moral  strength,  and  filial  piety  of  the  Christian,  are  not  mere  means  of  heaven,  but 
heaven  itself  and  heaven  now.     Clianning. 

John  iii,  6 ;  p.  161, 1.  3.  That  which  is  produced  from  the  body,  is  natural  life.  T. 
That  which  is  born  of  the  flesh  is  flesh.  B.  T.  lae^^,  flesh,  when  contrasted  with  ttvivia.^, 
spirit,  signifies  in  the  New  Testament,  1.  Sometimes  the  body — in  opposition  to  the 
soul ;  2.  Sometimes  the  human  nature  or  man  —  in  opposition  to  the  divine  nature  or 
God  ;  3.  Sometimes  the  unrenewed  or  corrupt  nature  of  man  — in  opposition  to  that 
purified  or  renewed  nature  which  is  eifected  by  the  operation  of  the  Holy  Spirit  on 
our  hearts ;  and  4.  Sometimes  by  a  bold  metonymy,  the  Mosaic  dispensation,  on 
account  of  its  numerous  external  observances,  and  its  containing  no  provision  of  par- 
don or  grace — in  opposition  to  the  Christian  or  gospel  dispensation,  the  observances 
of  which  relate  principally  to  the  state  of  the  soul,  and  which  conveys  to  all  who  em- 
brace its  offers  and  observe  its  conditions,  that  spiritual  strength  which  is  adequate  to 
the  saving  of  the  soul.     Sam/uel  Farmar  Jarvis. 

The  preceding  writer  appears  to  regard  the  text  as  coinciding  '  with  the  third  sense 
of  the  words  vnp^  and  TrvivjusL,  the  unrenewed  nature  of  man,  contrasted  with  his  renewed 
nature,  or  the  natural  life  contrasted  with  the  spiritual  life.'     Tkans. 

John  iii,  8  ;  p.  161,  1.  6.  The  wind  blows  where  it  will.  T.  The  wind  bloweth  where 
it  listeth.  R.  T.  In  our  language,  the  illustration  loses  much  of  that  beauty  and  force, 
which  it  has  in  the  original,  where  the  same  word  denotes  both  wind  and  spirit.  The 
wind  is  invisible,  and  superior  to  our  control.  We  know  nothing  of  its  existence  and 
its  operations  but  by  its  effects.  We  see  the  clouds  driven  by  its  force ;  we  hear  it 
sighing  among  the  leaves  of  the  forest;  we  feel  its  refreshing  coolness.  Sometimes  it 
seems  to  be  suspended,  and  we  should  almost  doubt  of  its  existence,  if  we  did  not 
perceive  the  thistle's  down  to  be  floating  gently  along  its  current.  It  is  so  with  the 
operations  of  the  Spirit  of  God  upon  the  soul  of  man.  We  know  its  presence  by  its 
effects.  We  are  told  that  '  the  fruit  of  the  Spirit  is  love,  joy,  peace,  long-sufiering, 
gentleness,  goodness,  faith,  meekness,  temperance.'  When  we  feel  these  holy  mo- 
tions, we  may  be  sure  that  the  Spirit  of  God  is  breathing  upon  our  hearts.  And  even 
when  the  corrupting  pleasures  and  occupations  of  the  world  have  deadened  its  influ- 
ence, and  all  that  is  holy  seems  to  be  expiring  in  the  soul,  there  may  still  be  some  gen- 
tle, undulating  motion,  some  solitary  and  some  slight  act  of  goodness,  which  will  show 
that  the  divine  principle  of  life  is  not  wholly  spent,  that  the  sinner  may  yet  revive, 
and  be  saved  from  everlasting  death.     Samuel  Farmar  Jarvis. 

Many  evils  would  arise,  were  it  distinctly  known  in  what  cases  and  to  what  a  de- 
gree, the  divine  aids  promised  in  the  gospel,  were  administered  to  each  individual 
Christian.    The  favored  mind  would,  in  that  instance,  possess  the  infallibility  of  in- 


JOHN'S   HISTORY.  457 

spiration,  which  might  inspire  it  with  arrogance  and  pride,  and  induce  it  to  neglect 
the  ordinary  means  of  improvement;  while  jealousy,  envy,  and  despair,  would  tor- 
ment those  who  were  less  fayored ;  and  the  free  agency  of  man  would  be  effect- 
ually destroyed.  '  The  wind  bloweth  where  it  listeth,  and  thou  hearest  the  sound 
thereof,  but  canst  not  tell  whence  it  comes,  and  whither  it  goeth ;  so  is  every  one' 
saith  our  Saviour,  '  that  is  born  of  the  Spirit.'  Whoever  confidently  maintains  that, 
in  any  particular  instance,  he  is  influenced  by  the  Spirit  of  God,  should  he  not  im- 
pose upon  others,  wretchedly  deceives  himself.  For  a  certain  knowledge  of  the  ope- 
ration would  render  it  miraculous.  His  feelings  must  be  fallacious,  for  in  this  depart- 
ment of  the  divine  government,  all  the  operations  of  God  are  designedly  and  wisely 
concealed  from  human  knowledge.  By  their  fruits  alone  are  such  influences  to  be  in- 
ferred. These  fruits  are  not  a  presumptuous  confidence,  but  '  love,  joy,  peace,  long- 
sufi*ering,  gentleness,  goodness,  faith,  meekness,  temperance.'     Cogan. 

John  iii,  8;  p.  ]61,  1.  8.  Thus  it  is  icith  every  one  who  is  produced  by  the  Spirit.  T. 
So  is  every  one  that  is  born  of  the  Spirit.  R.  T.  That  the  influence  and  assistance  of 
God's  Spirit  in  a  way  imperceptible  to  us,  do  enable  us  to  render  him  an  acceptable 
service,  we  learn  from  scripture.  In  what  particular  manner  this  is  effected,  so 
that  the  act  shall  be  imputed  ours,  the  scripture  says  not :  we  know  only  the  account 
is  so  ;  but  as  for  any  sensible  demonstration  of  its  workings  to  be  felt  as  such  within 
us,  the  word  of  God  is  utterly  silent ;  nor  can  that  silence  be  supplied  by  any  expe- 
rience. We  have  none  ;  unless  you  call  the  false  pretences  to  it  such,  suggested  by 
an  enthusiastic  or  distempered  fancy.  Expressly  as  we  are  told  and  pray  for  the  in- 
spiration of  God's  Spirit,  there  are  no  boundaries  fixed,  nor  can  any  be  ever  marked  to 
distinguish  them  from  the  efforts  and  determinations  of  our  own  reason  ;  and  as  firmly 
as  most  Christians  believe  the  eff'ects  of  them  upon  their  hearts,  I  may  venture  to  af- 
firm, that  since  the  promises  were  made,  there  never  was  a  Christian  of  a  cool  head 
and  sound  judgment,  that  in  any  instance  of  a  change  of  life,  would  presume  to  say 
which  part  of  his  reformation  was  owing  to  divine  help,  nor  which  to  the  operations  of 
his  own  mind ;  nor  who,  upon  looking  back,  would  pretend  to  strike  the  line,  and  say, 
here  it  was  that  my  own  reflections  ended ;  and  at  this  point  the  suggestions  of  the 
Spirit  of  God  began  to  take  place. 

However  backward  the  world  has  been  in  former  ages  in  the  discovery  of  such  points 
as  God  never  meant  us  to  know,  we  have  been  more  successful  in  our  own  days : 
thousands  can  trace  out  now  the  impressions  of  this  divine  intercourse  in  themselves, 
from  the  first  moment  they  received  it,  and  with  such  distinct  intelligence  of  its  pro- 
gress and  workings,  as  to  require  no  evidence  of  its  truth.  The  first  feelings  of  the 
Spirit's  entrance  are  recorded  with  as  particular  an  exactness  as  an  act  of  filiation  ;  so 
that  numbers  will  tell  you  the  identical  place,  the  day  of  the  month,  and  the  hour  of 
the  night,  when  the  Spirit  came  in  upon  them,  and  took  possession  of  their  hearts. 

Now  there  is  this  inconvenience  on  our  side,  that  there  is  no  arguing  with  a  frenzy 
of  this  kind  :  for  unless  a  representation  of  the  case  be  a  confutation  of  its  folly  to 
them,  they  mast  forever  be  led  captive  by  a  delusion,  from  which  no  reasoner  can  re- 
deem them.     Sterne. 

Let  us  suppose,  that  a  Christian  soul  who  has  lived  a  life  of  indifference  to  religious 
duty,  or  even  of  positive  and  atrocious  guilt,  is,  from  some  circumstance,  suddenly 
awakened  to  a  pungent  sense  of  his  guilt  and  wretchedness,  and  of  the  extreme  dan- 
ger to  which  he  was  exposed  in  a  state  of  impenitence.  Is  there  any  thing  wonderful 
or  even  extraordinary,  if  in  such  a  case,  religious  terror  seizing  upon  the  mind,  so  ope- 
rates upon  the  organs  of  the  body  by  which  it  acts,  as  to  produce  a  strange  and  dis- 
ordered action  in  the  whole  system,  absorb  the  whole  energy  of  the  soul  to  itself,  and 
suspend  all  the  powers  of  it  save  those  which  are  exercised  in  its  religious  feelings  ? 
Such  states  of  ecstasy,  trance  or  rapture,  are  as  naturally  the  result  of  excessive  re- 
ligious fear  or  joy,  as  those  which  are  produced  by  any  other  strong  passion  or  emotion. 
In  this  state  of  excitement  no  other  ideas  float  through  the  mind  but  those  which  re- 
late to  God,  the  Saviour,  the  joys  and  pains  of  futurity.     If  the  penitent  soul  is  just 

58 


458  APPENDIX. 

smitten  with  contrition,  alarmed  for  his  safety,  and  stung  with  a  sense  of  guilt,  his  re- 
flections are  sad  and  gloomy  ;  if  he  is  conscious  of  having  obtained  pardon  and  made 
his  peace  with  God,  his  ecstasy  translates  him  to  heaven,  and  unfolds  to  him  all  its 
glories  and  beatitudes.  Nothing  can  be  more  natural  than  all  results  of  this  kind. 
There  is  no  necessity  for  supposing  the  immediate  and  miraculous  interference  of  God 
on  such  occasions,  as  these  are  effects  which  flow  from  the  operation  of  principles 
known  to  exist  in  the  constitution  of  human  nature.     Beasley. 

The  great  work  of  religion  is  to  conform  ourselves  to  God,  or  to  unfold  the  divine 
likeness  within  us.  Let  none  infer  from  this  language  that  I  place  religion  in  unnat- 
ural effort,  in  straining  after  excitements  which  do  not  belong  to  the  present  state,  or 
in  any  thing  separate  from  the  clear  and  simple  duties  of  life.  I  exhort  you  to.no  ex- 
travagance. I  reverence  human  nature  too  much  to  do  it  violence.  I  see  too  much  di- 
vinity in  its  ordinary  operations  to  urge  on  it  a  forced  and  vehement  virtue.  To  grow 
in  the  likeness  of  God,  we  need  not  cease  to  be  men.  This  likeness  does  not  consist 
in  extraordinary  or  miraculous  gifts,  in  supernatural  additions  to  the  soul,  or  in  any 
thing  foreign  to  our  original  constitution ;  but  in  our  essential  faculties  unfolded  by 
vigorous  and  conscientious  exertion  in  the  ordinary  circumstances  assigned  by  God. 
To  resemble  our  Creator  we  need  not  fly  from  society,  and  entrance  ourselves  in  lonely 
contemplation  and  prayer.  Such  processes  might  give  a  feverish  strength  to  one  class 
of  emotions,  but  would  result  in  disproportion,  distortion,  and  sickliness  of  mind.  Our 
proper  work  is  to  approach  God  by  the  free  and  natural  unfolding  of  our  highest  pow- 
ers, of  understanding,  conscience,  love,- and  the  moral  will.     Charming. 

I  would  on  no  account  disparage  the  gracious  aids  and  influences  which  God  imparts 
to  the  human  soul.  The  promise  of  the  Holy  Spirit  is  among  the  most  precious  in  the 
sacred  volume.  Worlds  could  not  tempt  me  to  part  with  the  doctrine  of  God's  inti- 
mate connexion  with  the  mind,  and  of  his  free  and  full  communications  to  it.  But 
these  views  are  in  no  respect  at  variance  with  what  I  have  taught  of  the  method  by 
which  we  are  to  grow  in  the  likeness  of  God.  Scripture  and  experience  concur  in 
teaching,  that  by  the  Holy  Spirit  we  are  to  understand  a  divine  assistance  adapted  to 
our  moral  freedom,  and  accordant  with  the  fundamental  truth,  that  virtue  is  the  mind's 
own  work.  By  the  Holy  Spirit  I  understand  an  aid,  which  must  be  gained  and  made 
effectual  by  our  own  activity  ;  an  aid  which  no  more  interferes  with  our  faculties,  than 
the  assistance  which  we  receive  from  our  fellow  beings ;  an  aid,  which  silently  mingles 
and  conspires  with  all  other  helps  and  means  of  goodness  ;  an  aid  by  which  we  unfold 
our  natural  powers  in  a  natural  order,  and  by  which  we  are  strengthened  to  understand 
and  apply  the  resources  derived  from  our  munificent  Creator.  This  aid  we  cannot 
prize  too  much,  or  pray  for  too  earnestly.  But  wherein,  let  me  ask,  does  it  war  with 
the  doctrine,  that  God  is  to  be  approached  by  the  exercise  and  unfolding  of  our  highest 
powers  and  affections,  in  the  ordinary  circumstances  of  human  life.  Ckanning. 
-  To  moderate  the  love  of  excitement  is  the  chief  career  for  self-government;  and  it  is 
difficult  and  immense.  We  must  strengthen  the  soul  by  tempering  its  emotions ;  re- 
store it  to  health  by  calming  that  burning  fever  which  thirsts  for  excitement;  and  by 
teaching  the  will  to  stop  seasonably,  we  must  unfold  its  energies  at  the  time  of  need. 
We  must  also  moderate  impetuosity  by  exciting  gentle  affections  ;  and  arouse  dejec- 
tion by  awakening  noble  sentiments  ;  and  keep  all  the  powers  of  the  heart  attentive 
and  docile  to  the  signal  they  may  receive  from  reason.     Degerando. 

Religion,  I  mean  experimental  religion,  is  the  mind  or  heart,  enlightened  by  the 
truths,  governed  by  the  principles,  swayed  by  the  motives,  exercising  the  afiections, 
influenced  by  the  hopes,  and  filled  with  the  spirit  of  religion  ;  it  is  the  conscience,  the 
active  powers,  the  whole  moral,  spiritual  nature  of  the  man  directed  by  a  sense  of  his 
accountableness  to  God,  his  duty  to  Christ,  his  obligations  to  his  fellow-creatures,  and 
the  requisitions  of  his  high,  immortal  destiny.     I.  H.  T.  Blunchard. 

John  iv,  43;  p.  163,  1.32.  Weni  into  Galilee.  Bishop  Pearce  thinks  that  some 
words  have  been  lost  from  the  end  of  this  verse,  which  may  be  supplied  thus :  Went 
into  Galilee,  but  not  to  Nazareth.    Clarke.    There  is  a  probability,  that  something  to 


JOHN'S   HISTORY.  469 

this  purpose  has  been  very  early  omitted  in  transcribing.     The  causal  conjunction 
"§>  Z"''?  which  introduces  the  next  verse,  shows  that  it  contains  the  reason  of  what 
had  immediately  preceded.     Camphell. 

John  V,  20;  p.  164, 1.  43.  Even  such  as  will  astonish  you.  T.  That  ye  may  marvel. 
R.  T.  No  one  can  imagine,  that  the  design  of  Christ's  miracles  was,  to  excite  sur- 
prise, and  make  the  Jewish  populace  wonder;  doubtless  it  was  to  produce  and  estab- 
lish their  faith.  Yet,  since  their  admiration  and  astonishment  would  be  excited,  this 
is  mentioned  as  if  it  were  the  object,  for  which  they  were  wrought.     Turner. 

John  V,  27 ;  p.  165,  1.  10.  A  Son  of  Man.  T.  Tlie  Son  of  Man.  R.  T.  It  is 
observed  by  Markland,  (Bowyer's  Conjectures),  that  it  is  not  here  i  uinf  nu  arflgmirtu, 
the  Son  of  Man,  the  humble  appellation  by  which  our  Lord  commonly  distinguished 
himself,  but  simply  a  son  of  man,  vi:c  uvS^asr^v,  without  any  article,  a  common  Hebra- 
ism, and  still  more  common  Syriasm,  for  a  man,  a  human  being.  This  phrase  occurs 
in  the  same  sense,  Dan.  vii,  13,  and  Rev.  i,  13,  and  ought  to  be  so  rendered;  but  it 
occurs  no  where  in  the  Gospels,  except  in  this  passage.  None  of  the  English  transla- 
tions I  have  seen,  mark  this  distinction;  but  it  has  been  attended  to  by  some  foreign 
translators.  It  will,  perhaps,  be  asked,  but  what  is  the  meaning  of  the  clause  here, 
lecause  he  is  a  son  of  man?  In  my  judgment,  the  import  may  be  expressed  in  tliis 
manner  —  'because  it  suits  the  ends  of  divine  wisdom,  that  the  Judge,  as  well  as 
Saviour,  of  men,  should  himself  be  man.'    Campbell. 

John  vi,  44  ;  p.  167,  1.  30.  Unless  the  Father,  who  has  sent  mc,  draw  him.  T.  Ex- 
cept the  Father  which  hath  sent  me  draw  him.  R.  T.  This  drawing  is  not  physical,  nor 
mechanical,  nor  compulsory,  .and  yet  it  is  certain  in  its  effect.  It  is  suited  to  the 
faculty  of  a  rational  and  accountable  moral  agent.  It  usually  discovers  itself  by  its 
effects,  and  is  not  usually  to  be  distinguished  from  the  operations  of  our  own  minds. 
And  it  is  of  such  a  nature  as  to  render  it  extremely  dilBcult,  and  in  most  cases  impos- 
sible, to  determine  the  precise  time  at  which  the  sinner  is  first  affected  by  it. 

Gallaudet. 

We  do  not  mean  to  deny  the  importance  of  God's  aid  or  Spirit ;  but  by  his  Spirit, 
we  mean  a  moral,  illuminating,  and  persuasive  influence,  not  physical,  not  compul- 
sory, not  involving  a  necessity  of  virtue.  We  object,  strongly,  to  the  idea  of  many 
Christians  respecting  man's  impotence  and  God's  irresistible  agency  on  the  heart, 
believing  that  they  subvert  our  responsibility  and  the  laws  of  our  moral  nature,  that 
they  make  men  machines,  that  they  cast  on  God  the  blame  of  all  evil  deeds,  that  they 
discourage  good  minds,  and  inflate  the  fanatical  with  wild  conceits  of  immediate  and 
sensible  inspiration.     Channing. 

John  vii,  39;  p.  170, 1.  1.  The  Spirit  was  not  yet  imparted.  T.  The  Holy  Spirit  was 
not  yet  given."  R.  T.  inifz/jiim,  given,  is  added  by  the  Codex  Vaticanus  (B),  the  Syriac, 
all  the  Persic,  latter  Syriac,  with  an  asterisk,  three  copies  of  the  Slavonic,  Vulgate,  and 
all  the  Itala,  but  three ;  and  several  of  the  primitive  Fathers.  The  word  is  necessary 
to  the  completion  of  the  sense.  Clarke.  Ayrt,  Holy,  is  wanting  in  several  manu- 
scripts. Origen,  Cyril,  Hesychius,  and  Nonnus,  seem  not  to  have  read  it.  There  is 
nothing  corresponding  to  it  in  the  Vulgate,  Syriac,  Coptic,  Saxon,  and  Armenian  ver- 
sions. It  is  rejected  also  by  some  of  the  best  modern  critics. t  Though  there  is  no 
word  for  given  in  the  common  Greek,  it  is  in  the  Vatican  MS,  the  Vulgate,  both  the 
Syriac,  and  the  Saxon.  It  seems  necessary,  in  order  to  complete  the  sense.  The  evi- 
dence, in  its  favor,  would  otherwise  be  insuffioient.     Campbell. 

John  vii,  53,  to  viii,  11,  inclusive :  p.  170,  1.  18.  This  verse,  and  the  first  eleven 
verses  of  the  following  chapter,  are  wanting  in  several  MSS.  Some  of  those  which 
retain  the  paragraph,  mark  it  with  obelisks,  as  a  proof  of  spuriousness.  Those  which 
do  retain  it,  have  it  with  such  a  variety  of  reading  as  is  no  where  else  found  in  the 

*  Given  is  printed  in  italic  letter,  the  common  designation,  in  tlie  received  t«xt,  that  there  ie  nothing  in 
the  original  answering  to  the  expression  in  English.    Teamj. 
t  Griesbach  notes  it  as  doubtful.    TaiUs. 


460  APPENDIX. 

eacred  writings.  Professor  Griesbach  leaves  the  whole  paragraph  in  the  text  with 
notes  of  doubtfulness.  Most  of  the  modern  critics  consider  it  as  resting  on  no  solid 
authority.  .  .  The  passage  has  been  omitted  by  MSS  of  the  first  antiquity  and  authority. 
In  some  MSS,  it  is  found  at  the  end  of  this  Gospel;  in  others,  a  vacant  place  is  left  in 
this  chapter;  and,  in  others,  it  is  placed  after  the  21st  chapter  of  Luke.  Clarke.  These 
verses  are  wanting  in  a  great  number  of  MSS.  Origen,  Chrysostom,  Theophylact, 
the  Greek  catena,  though  containing  no  fewer  than  twenty-three  authors,  have  not 
read  these  twelve  verses.  Euthymius,  a  commentator,  so  late  as  the  twelfth  century, 
is  the  first  who  has  explained  them.  At  the  same  time  he  assures  us  in  his  commen- 
tary, that  they  are  not  to  be  found  in  the  most  correct  copies.  They  were  not  in  any 
good  copy  of  either  of  the  Syriac  versions,  printed  or  MS,  till  they  were  printed  in  the 
English  Polyglott,  from  a  MS  of  Archbishop  Usher.  They  are  neither  in  the  Gothic 
nor  the  Coptic.  They  have  been  long  read  by  the  Greeks  in  their  churches,  eire  in 
most  of  the  MSS  found  with  them  at  present;  although,  in  some  of  them,  they  are 
marked  with  asterisks  or  daggers,  to  show  that  they  are  considered  as  spurious.  If 
they  be  an  interpolation,  they  are  a  very  ancient  one,  having  been  found  in  some 
copies  before  Origen.  Many  of  the  best  critics  of  opposite  sects  have  entertained 
strong  suspicions  of  them.  There  are  some  strong  internal  presumptions,  as  well  as 
external,  against  the  authenticity  of  the  passage.  Campbell.  These  verses  are  not  found 
in  some  of  the  principal  manuscript  copies  of  the  New  Testament,  Mid  are  wanting  in 
some  of  the  best  and  earliest  versions.  They  are  never  cited  also  by  Origen,  Chrysos- 
tom, and  other  ancient  Christian  writers.  This  amount  of  evidence  against  them, 
leads  Calvin,  Le  Clerk,  Hammond,  Grotius,  Wetstein,  and  other  critics,  to  reject 
them  as  spurious.  The  Improved  Version,  and  Campbell,  enclose  them  in  brackets, 
as  doubtful.  Dahney.  In  addition  to  the  preceding  facts,  the  want  of  authenticity  is 
corroborated  by  the  indecorous  character  and  immoral  tendency  of  the  story,  which  no 
explanations  can  remove.     Tbans. 

John  viii,  24,  28 ;  p.  170, 1.  41 ;  p.  171, 1.  2.  That  I  am  from  above.  T.  That  I  am 
he.  R.  T.  '  That  is,  the  Messiah.  Compare  iv,  26.'  Pearce,  Kenrick,  Grotius,  &c. 
'  Of  this  claim,  there  would  be  after  the  death  of  Jesus,  abundant  evidence  from  his 
resurrection,  ascension,  effusion  of  tlie  Holy  Spirit,  and  their  consequent  effects.' 
Priestley.  Campbell  translates  verse  28, —  Ye  shall  know  what  I  am  *  '  in  which  way,' 
he  adds,  'there  is  a  direct  reference  to  the  question,  verse  25.'  And  so  Le  Clerk. 
Dabney.  .  In  this  passage,  (John  viii,  28),  Christ  informs  the  Jews,  that  after  they  had 
lifted  him  up,  on  the  cross,  they  should  know  that  he  was  the  Messiah.  Dwight. 
I  am  he,  is  wholly  unmeaning ;  and  some  substituted  expression  greatly  removes  the 
obscurity,  which,  in  the  common  version,  attends  this  discussion.     Traks. 

John  viii,  36;  p.  171, 1.  15.  If,  therefore,  the  Son  shall  liberate  you,  you  will  indeed 
be  free.  T.  If  the  Son,  therefore,  shall  make  you  free,  ye  shall  be  free  indeed.  R.  T 
Inward  spiritual  liberty,  this  is  the  great  gift  of  Jesus  Christ.  .  .  The  highest  interest 
of  communities,  as  well  as  individuals,  is  a  spiritual  interest;  outward  and  earthly 
goods  are  of  little  worth  but  as  bearing  on  the  mind,  and  tending  to  its  liberation, 
strength,  and  glory.  .  .  The  only  truth  which  is  to  do  men  lasting  good,  is  that  which 
relates  to  the  soul,  which  carries  them  into  its  depths,  which  reveals  to  them  its  pow- 
ers and  the  purposes  of  its  creation.  .  .  Man  is  an  ultimate  being.  .  .  Let  the  individual 
feel  that  he  is  placed  in  the  community,  not  to  part  with  his  individuality,  or  to  be- 
come a  tool,  but  that  he  should  find  a  sphere  for  his  various  powers,  and  a  preparation 
for  immortal  glory.  .  .  No  man  will  serve  his  fellow-beings  so  effectually,  so  fer- 
vently, as  he  who  is  not  their  slave,  as  he  who,  casting  off  every  other  yoke,  subjects 
himself  to  the  law  of  duty  in  his  own  mind.     Channing. 

If  one  would  be  pleased  and  happy  throughout  this  life,  he  must  respect  and  render 
due  honor  to  the  wonderful  composition  of  his  Creator,  which  constitutes '  his  iudi- 

»  Campbell  remarks,  '  With  Grotiug  I  understand  the  third  word  as  thus  divided,  o  Tl,  which  is  the 
same  as  Tt,  guid,  what.    Trans. 


JOHN'S   HISTORY.  461 

vidual  being.  He  must  so  conduct  himself,  that  when  memory  reminds  him  of  the 
past,  it  will  furnish  him  witli  no  causes  to  reproach  himself.     William  Sullivan. 

Johnviii,  55;  p.  172, 1.  4.  I  should  speak  falsely.  T.  I  shall  be  a  liar.  R.  T.  The 
word  .^svirnt,  has  not  that  harshness  in  Greek  that  liar  has  in  English.  Though  often 
properly  rendered  liar,  it  is  not  limited  to  what  we  mean  by  that  term.  Every  man 
who  tells,  or  teaches,  what  is  false,  whether  he  know  the  falsehood  of  what  he  says  or 
not,  is  what  the  sacred  authors  justly  denominate  ^j.£[/o■Tllc,  a  false  speaker ;  but  he  is 
not  what  we  call  a  liar,  unless  he  know  it  to  be  false,  and  deceives  intentionally.  For 
this  reason  I  have,  in  some  instances,  considered  it  as  no  more  than  doing  justice  to 
the  spirit  of  the  original,  to  soften  the  expression  in  the  common  version,  though 
otherwise  unexceptionable.     Campbell. 

Johnviii,  58;  p.  172, 1.  9.  Before  Jlbraham  was  horn,  I  existed.  T.  Before  Abraham 
was  I  am.  R.  T.  Campbell,  who  translates  the  passage,  Before  .Abraham  was  born  I 
am,  remarks,  '  6>ai  e/^i  may  be  rendered  I  was.  The  present  for  the  imperfect,  or 
even  for  the  preterperfect,  is  no  unusual  figure  with  this  writer.*  However,  as  an 
uninterrupted  duration  from  the  time  spoken  of  to  the  time  then  present,  seems  to 
have  been  suggested,  I  thought  it  better  to  follow  the  common  method.'  There  is  no 
apology  for  leaving  the  translated  expression  in  an  ungrammatical  form.     Trans. 

The  Jews  cavil  at  the  literal  meaning  of  the  words  of  Jesus,  as  if  he  had  lived  before 
Abraham,  which  he  no  more  meant,  than  that  his  disciples  literally  would  not  die, 
verse  51.     Priestley,  cited  by  Dabney. 

I  am  he.  Or,  '  I  was  he.'  See  Grotius,  Bishop  Pearce,  Campbell,  and  Newcome, 
who  renders  the  clause,  '  Before  Abraham  was  born,  I  am :'  explaining  it  as  many 
others  do,  as  an  assertion  of  the  pre-existence  of  Christ,  and  even  of  his  divinity,  in 
allusion  to  Exod.  iii,  14,  though  the  texts  are  quite  dissimilar,  excepting  in  the  English 
translation.  The  expression,  zyu  eifxi,  is  uniformly  used  in  the  sense  of  'I  am  he,'  or 
'  I  am  the  Christ:'  it  occurs  twice  in  this  discourse,  ver.  24.  28.  It  must,  therefore, 
in  all  reason  be  taken  in  the  same  sense  here,  especially  as  this  signification  best  suits 
the  connexion.     Improved  Version. 

I  have  rendered  the  words  eyu  u/ai — Tamhe:  viz.  —  the  Messiah  —  the  Christ:  and 
the  peculiar  force  of  the  present  tense,  in  the  usage  of  scriptural  expression,  is  to  imply 
determination  and  certainty :  as  if  he  had  said :  '  My  mission  was  settled  and  certain 
before  the  birth  of  Abraham.'  See  Matt,  xvii,  11.  And  the  reader  may  observe,  that 
our  Lord  is  elsewhere  spoken  of,  even  after  his  arrival  as  well  as  before,  under  the 
term  o  e^^of^tn;,  the  comer,  or  he  who  cometh.  —  He  must  observe  also,  that  the  transla- 
tors violate  their  usual  practice,  in  this  place,  by  omitting  he  after  I  am:  and  for  no 
other  reason,  than  because  their  notion  of  Christ  being  the  same  as  Jehovah,  prevailed 
over  their  judgment  on  this  occasion  :  their  critical  knowledge  was  no  match  for  their 
superstitious  prejudices.     Wakefield. 

Grotius  and  others  are  of  opinion,  that  our  Lord  only  affirms  of  himself  that  he  was 
before  Abraham  in  the  divine  decree.  But  this  sense  of  the  passage  is  trifling,  if  our 
Lord  was  no  more  than  a  man,  it  being  certain  that  all  creatures  of  whatever  order, 
existed  equally  in  the  divine  decree.  Besides,  that  our  Lord  did  truly  exist  at  the 
time  mentioned  in  the  text,  is  plain  likewise  from  chap,  xvii,  5.     Macknight. 

Here  Christ  does  not  say,  Before  Abraham  was,  I  was;  but  /  am,  teaching  us 
explicitly,  that  past  and  future  are  perfectly  present  to  himself;  and  that  his  own  exist- 
ence is  one  present  time.     Dwight. 

The  use  of  the  expression  '  I  am'  sufficiently  maintains,  and  the  nature  of  the  pas- 
sage absolutely  requires  that  it  should  denote,  not  merely  a  present  being,  but  a  pri- 
ority of  existence,  together  with  a  continuation  of  it  to  the  present  time.  '  Before  ever 
Abraham,  of  whom  ye  speak,  was  born,  I  had  a  real  being  and  existence,  (by  which  I 
was  capable  of  seeing  him),  in  which  I  have  continued  until  now.'     Pearson. 

*  In  the  perfect  sense  wo  find  the  present  U/Al  used  John  xiv,  9 ;  TOiroUTOV  Xi'^'''  l"'^'  "i""*  "l"'i 
Havt  I  been  so  long  viith  you  ?    Macknight. 


462  APPENDIX. 

Suppose  he  had  said,  Before  Abraham  was,  I  was ;  thus  much  at  least  would  have 
been  the  consequence,  that  he  had  an  existence  before  Abraham,  and  yet  he  was  born 
into  the  world  long  after  Abraham  :  Evidently  then  the  result  would  have  been,  that 
he  had  long  existed  before  his  coming  into  the  world  :  But  now  that  he  says,  '  Before 
Abraham  was,  I  am,'  something  more  is  implied ;  something  that  peculiarly  belongs  to 
the  expression,  '  I  am  ;'  and  what  that  is  we  may  learn  from  the  original  use  of  the 
words.  They  are  the  words  which  God  made  choice  of  to  express  his  own  eternity 
and  power,  when  Moses  inquired  after  the  name  of  God  :  He  answered  him,  '  I  AM 
that  I  AM.  Thus  shalt  thou  say  to  the  children  of  Israel,  I  AM  hath  sent  me  unto 
you,'  Exodus  iii,  14.  What  now  could  tempt  our  Saviour  to  use  and  apply  this  ex- 
pression to  himself.''  He  knew  it  never  had  been  applied  to  any  but  "God,  and  would 
have  been  in  the  man  so  applying  it,  in  the  highest  degree,  committing  '  the  robbery'  of 
making  himself  '  equal  with  God  :'  besides,  they  are  a  mere  solecism,  and  according 
to  analogy  of  language,  express  nothing.  No  idea  belongs  to  them  ;  for  a  man  cannot 
in  his  mind  carry  the  present  time  back,  and  make  it  antecedent  to  the  time  already 
past ;  and  therefore  to  say.  Before  such  a  thing  was,  I  am,  is  shuffling  ideas  together, 
which  can  have  no  place  in  the  mind  or  understanding.  If  therefore  you  admit  the 
expression  to  have  any  meaning,  you  must  allow  the  '  I  am  '  to  belong  to  Christ,  in 
its  proper  and  peculiar  use,  as  signifying  eternity  and  permanency  of  duration. 

Sherlock. 

John  xii,  5;  p.  177, 1.  19.  Three  hundred  denarii.  T.  Three  hundred  pence.  R.  T. 
Or  denarii :  about  9Z,  13s,  9(i  sterling ;  reckoning  the  denarius  at  7Jd.  Clarke.  This 
sum  is  equivalent  to  a  small  fraction  over  forty-three  dollars,  American  currency. 
Trans. 

John  xii,  38 ;  p.  178, 1.  32.  Thus  the  word  of  Isaiah  the  prophet  was  verified.  T. 
That  the  saying  of  Esaias  the  prophet  might  be  fulfilled.  R.  T.  Or,  thus  the  loord  of 
Isaiah  was  fulfilled.  So  I  think  ita.  (commonly  rendered  that,)  should  be  translated. 
For  it  certainly  does  not  mean  the  end  the  Pharisees  had  in  view  by  not  believing ; 
nor  the  end  which  the  prophet  had  in  view  in  predicting  the  incredulity  of  the  Jews ; 
but  simply,  such  a  thing  was  spoken  by  the  prophet,  concerning  the  Jews  of  his  own 
time,  and  it  had  its  literal  fulfilment  in  those  of  our  Lord's  time.      Clarke. 

It  is  material  that  the  names  of  the  same  persons  should  be  written  in  the  New 
Testament  as  it  is  judged  most  proper  to  write  them  in  the  old.  JYeiocome.  The  dif- 
ference of  orthography  with  respect  to  names  occurring  in  the  Old  and  New  Testa- 
ment, constitutes  one  of  the  absurd  incidents  of  the  common  version.  For  example, 
not  to  enumerate  many  others,  • —  Isaiah,  Elijah,  Elisha,  Hosea,  Noah,  and  Korah, 
must  be  transformed  into  something  so  much  unlike  as  Esaias,  Elias,  Eliseus,  Osee, 
JVoe,  and  Core,  and  thus  result  in  absolute  confusion.  Uniformity  has  been  attempted 
in  this  edition.     Trans. 

John  xii,  39,  40  ;  p.  178, 1.  35.  Isaiah  in  another  passage  affirmed.  T.  Because  that 
Esaias  said  again,   &c  :  Isaiah,  Ch.  vi,  9.     Dodson's  Translation  of  this  passage   is, 

they  have  blinded  their  eyes  and  hardened  their  hearts.     And  so  the   Syriac  and 

Arabic  Translators  on  the  place.  '  There  is  no  coercive  blindness,'  says  Whitby, 
'  from  the  decrees  of  God.'  Compare  Matt,  iii,  15 ;  Acts  xxviii,  27.  Dahney.  Those 
things  were  true  which  the  prophet  had  predicted,  and  were  sure  to  come  to  pass  ;  but 
this  certainty  by  no  means  caused  these  events  to  be  determined  by  the  decrees  of  God. 

Pretyman.     Lightfoot. 

The  original  or  elementary  principles  of  human  nature  are  useful,  and  of  virtuous 
influence.  It  is  only  when  they  degenerate  into  passions  that  their  tendency  is  per- 
nicious. Fear,  for  example,  may  operate  as  a  salutary  caution  against  danger,  or  be 
transformed  into  rashness,  or  become  a  miserable  cowardice  tamely  yielding  to  every 
oppression  and  wrong.  A  just  self-estimation  may  preserve  us  from  dishonor,  or  be 
perverted  to  arrogance  and  vanity.  Hunger  and  thirst  may  lay  the  foundation  of  a 
thousand  duties  and  delights,  or  be  prostituted  to  gluttony  and  intemperance.  The 
flush  of  anger  or  indignation  may  put  us  on  a  necessary  self-defence,  or  impel  to  the 


JOHN'S  HISTORY.  463 

most  terrible  ravages  of  human  life  and  happiness.  And  love  may  become  the  element 
of  widely  diversified  joys,  or  be  converted  to  a  baleful  hatred,  the  source  of  unnum- 
bered sorrows.    Trans. 

John  xvii,  11 ;  p.  184, 1.  42.  Preserve  them,  through  thy  name  which  thou  hast  given 
m.e.  T.  Keep  through  thine  own  name  those  whom  thou  hast  given  me.  R.  T.  Instead 
of  ouc  iitamm,  those  whom  thou  hast  given  me,  A  B  C  E  H  L  M  S,  Mt.  B  H  V,  and 
nearly  one  hundred  others,  read  a>,  which,  referring  to  the  Tat  oyo^MstTi  irou,  thy  name,  im- 
mediately preceding.  This  reading  is  supported  by  the  most  ample  evidence  and  in- 
disputable authority.  Griesbach  has  admitted  it  into  the  text,  and  Professor  White  in 
his  CRISEnS  says  of  it.  Lectio  induhie  genuina,  '  It  is  without  doubt  the  genuine 
reading.'  Clarke.  There  is  a  great  majority  of  MSS,  and,  among  them,  those  of  prin- 
cipal consideration,  which  reject  the  word  ow,  whom,  in  this  place.  A  few  substitute 
0,  that,  in  its  room,  but  tlie  much  greater  number  have  i,  which.  For  reading  i,  there 
is  also  the  authority  of  the  Complutensian  edition,  both  the  Syriac  translations,  and 
the  Arabic.  Of  the  fathers,  there  are  Athanasius,  Cyril,  Theophylact,  and  Euthy- 
mius  ;  likewise  many  modern  critics ;  among  them  are  Hammond,  Mill,  and  Wetstein. 

Camphell. 

John  xviii,  13  ;  p.  186, 1.  4.  (Snnas  had  sent  him  bound  to  Caiphas  the  high  priest). 
T.  And  Annas  sent  Christ  hound  unto  Caiphas  the  high  priest.  M.  R.  What  is  related 
in  the  24th  verse,  JVoto  Annas  had  sent  him,  hound  to  Caiphas,  comes  properly  in  after 
the  13th  verse.     Clarke. 

John  xix,  14  ;  p.  187, 1.  43.  TIlc  third  hour.  T.  Tlie  sixth  hour.  R.  T.  Mark  says, 
chap.  XV,  25,  that  it  was  the  tlurd  hour.  TgiTu,  the  third,  is  the  reading  of  D  L,  four 
others,   the    Chron.,  Alex.,  Severus,  Antioohen.,  Ammonius,  with  others  mentioned  by 

Theophylact.    JYonnus,  who  wrote  in  the  fifth  century,  read  Tgirw,  the  third The 

major  part  of  the  best  critics  think  that  t|it»,  the  third,  is  the  genuine  reading.  Clarke. 
Griesbach  adopts  the  common  reading,  but  cites  tlie  other  as  of  equal  authority. 

Trans. 

With  respect  to  the  discrepancy  in  the  common,  version  between  Mark  and  John,  as 
to  the  time  of  the  crucifixion,  the  subsequent  writer  observes, '  For  my  part,  I  prefer 
the  solution,  (tliough  it  may  be  accounted  but  an  imperfect  one)  given  by  those  who 
consider  the  day  as  divided  into  four  parts,  answering  to  tlie  four  watches  of  the  night. 
These  coincided  with  the  hours  of  3,  6,  9,  and  12,  or,  in  our  way  of  reckoning,  9, 12, 
3,  and  6,  which  suited  also  the  solemn  times  of  sacrifice  and  prayer  in  the  temple  ; 
that,  in  cases  wherein  they  did  not  think  it  of  consequence  to  ascertain  the  time  with 
great  accuracy,  tliey  did  not  regard  the  intermediate  hours,  but  only  those  more  noted 
divisions  which  happened  to  come  nearest  the  time  of  the  event  spoken  of.  Mark 
says  iiv  aja  t|it»,  it  was  the  third  hour ;  from  which  we  have  reason  to  conclude,  that 
the  third  hour  was  past.  John  says,  aigi  uiru  ektb  ;  from  which  I  think  it  probable,  that 
the  sixth  hour  was  not  yet  come.  On  this  supposition,  though  the  Evangelists  may,  by 
a  fastidious  reader,  be  accused  of  want  of  precision  in  regard  to  dates,  they  will  not 
by  any  judicious  and  candid  critic,  be  charged  with  falsehood  or  misrepresentation. 
Who  would  accuse  two  modern  historians  with  contradicting  each  other,  because  in 
relating  an  event  which  had  happened  between  10  and  11  forenoon,  one  had  said  it 
was  past  9  o'clock ;  the  other,  it  was  drawing  towards  noon  ?'     Camphell. 

Various  solutions  have  been  given  of  this  difficulty,  none  of  which  satisfied  Doctor 
Middleton  ;  but  there  is  a  solution  not  noticed  by  him,  in  which  many  judicious  men 
have  acquiesced That  John,  writing  his  Gospel  in  Asia,  used  the  Roman  me- 
thod of  computing  time  ;  which  was  the  same  as  our  own  :  so  that  by  the  sixth  hour, 
when  Jesus  was  condemned,  we  are  to  understand  six  o'clock  in  the  morning ;  the 
intermediate  time  from  six  to  nine,  when  he  was  crucified,  being  employed  in  prepar- 
ing for  the  crucifixion.     Watson. 

John  xix,  34  ;  p.  188, 1.  41.  And  blood  and  water  instantly  issued.  T.  And  forth- 
with came  thereout  blood  and  water.  R.  T.  It  may  be  naturally  supposed,  that  the 
spear  went  through  the  pericardium  and  pierced  the  heart ;  that  the  water  proceeded 


464  APPENDIX. 

from  the  former,  and  the  blood  from  the  latter.  Clarke.  John  saw  blood  and  water 
flowing  from  the   wound ;  the  blood  is  easily  accounted  for ;  but  whence  eame   the 

water .'     The  anatomist  tells  us that  it  came  from  the  pericardium ; r-  so 

consistent  is  evangelical  testimony  with  the  most  curious  researches  into  natural 
science.     Watson. 

John  XX,  23;  p.  190, 1.  8.  If  you  remit  the  siiis  of  any.  T.  Whose  soever  sins  ye  re- 
mit. R.  T.  That  is,  Ye  shall  prescribe,  and  publish  the  terms  on  which  the  sins  of 
the  whole  human  race  shall  be  remitted  or  retained.     Dwight. 

John  -xxi,  24,  25;  p.  191, 1.  33.  It  is  this  disciple that  would  be  writ- 
ten.   T.     This  is  the  disciple -that  should  be  Written.    R.  T.     It  is,  I  think,  very 

likely  that  these  two  verses  were  added  by  some  of  the  believers  at  that  time,  as  a  tes- 
timony to  the  truth  of  the  preceding  narration  ;■ — and  I  allow,  with  Bishop  Pearce 

and  others,  that  it  is  possible  that  John  may  mean  himself  when  he  says,  we  hnow,, 
&c  ;  yet  I  think  that  it  is  very  unlikely.  It  is  certain  that  this  gospel  loses  no  part  of 
its  authority  in  admitting  the  suffrage  of  the  church  of  God  .'  it  rather  strengthens  the 
important  truths  which  are  delivered  in  it ;  and  in  the  mouths  of  so  many  witnesses 
the  sacred  matters  which  concern  the  peace  and  salvation  of  the  world  are  still  more 
abundantly  established.     Clarke. 

I  agree  perfectly  with  those  interpreters  who  think  that  the  hyperbole  contained  in 
this  verse  is  much  more  tolerable,  than  the  torture  to  which  some  critics  have  put  the 
words  in  order  to  make  them  speak  a  different  sense.     Campbell. 

Instead  of/  suppose^  Ca.mphell  translates,  —  I  imagine.  Now,  conceding  that-  the 
expression  is  a  hyperbole,  it  is  certainly  doing  injustice  to  the  apostleto  say  that  he 
supposed  the  world  could  not  contain,  &c ;  an  idea  which  he  could  not  seriously  have 
entertained ;  though  the  sentiment  might  very  properly  be  attributed  to  him  as  a  figu- 
rative illustration.    Trans. 


LUKE  S    APOSTOLIC    AND    ECCLESIASTICAL    TRANSACTIONS. 

Acts  i,  18 ;  p.  193, 1,  9.  This  man,  indeed^  caused  afield  to  be  purchased.  T.  Tliis 
man  purchased  afield.  R.  T.  This  man  (Judas)  purchased  a  field  with  the  reward  of 
iniquity,  that  is,  occasioned  it  to  be  purchased ;  as  is  plain  from  Matt,  xxvii,  7. 

Macknight. 

Acts  i,  18, 19 ;  p.  193, 1.  9  — 13.     Now  this  man, The  field  of  blood.     It  is  veTy 

likely  that  the  18th  and  19th  verses  are  not  the  words  of  Peter,  but  of  the  historian  St 
Luke ;  and  should  be  read  in  a  parenthesis,  and  then  the  17th  and  20th  verses  will 
make  a  connected  sense.     Clarke. 

Acts  i,  20  ;  p.  193, 1.  15.  Let  another  take  his  superintendency.  T.  His  bishopric  let 
another  take.  R.  T.  His  office  let  another  take.  It  is  curious  enough  to  represent 
bishoprics  as  subsisting  under  the  Mosaic  dispensation.  But  this  mode  of  translating, 
strange  as  it  is,  has  been  adopted  by  several  Versions.  King  James's  translators  ought 
at  least  to  have  turned  their  attention  towards  the  109th  Psalm,  8th  verse,  where  it  is 
rendered  both  in  the  old  and  new  Version, '  And  let  another  take  his  office.'     Symonds. 

Acts  i,  25  ;  p.  193, 1.  24.  To  repair  to  his  appropriate  station.  T.  That  he  might  go 
to  his  own  place.  R.  T.  Some  of  the  best  critics  assert  that  these  words  belong  to 
Matthias  —  his  own  place,  being  the  office  to  which  he  was  about  to  be  elected. 

Clarke. 

Acts  ii,  34 ;  p.  194, 1.  23.  Of  death:  Instead  of  Bimnv,  of  death,  the  Codez  Bezte, 
Syriac,  Coptic,  and  Vulgate,  have  AJ^ov,  of  Hell,  or  the  place  of  separate  spirits;  and 
perhaps  it  was  on  no  better  authority  than  this  various  reading,  supported  but  by  slen- 
der evidence,  that.  He  descended  into  hell,  became  an  article,  in  what  is  called  the 
Apostle's  creed.     Clarke. 

Acts  ii,  31 ;  p.  194, 1.  36.  He  was  not  left  in  hades.  T.  His  soul  was  not  left  in  hell. 
R.  T.     The  words  »  4"*"  ""tou,  his  soul,  are  omitted  by  A  B  C  D,  Syriac,   Coptic,  Ethi- 


APOSTOUC   TKANSACTfONS.  465 

opic,  and  Vulgate.  Griesbacli  has  left  them  out  of  the  text,  and  Professor  White  says 
again,  certissime  delenda.  The  passage  may  be  thus  read  :  '  he  spake  of  the  resurrec- 
tion of  Christ,  that  he  was  not  left  in  Hades,  neither  did  his  flesh  see  corruption.' 

Clarke. 

We  know  from  our  Saviour's  own  declaration,  that  his  spirit  went  not  to  hell,  but  to 
Hades  or  Sheol.  For  in  the  sixteenth  Psalm  He  himself  says,  '  Thou  wilt  not  leave 
my  soul  in  Sheol ;'  rendered  both  by  the  Septuagint  and  by  St  Peter,  (quoting  this  pas- 
sage, Acts  ii,  27,  and  referring  to  it  in  verse  31),  by  Hades,  the  Greek  word  by  which 
Sheol  is  til  ways  translated  both  in  the  Old  and  New  Testament.  Thus  it  is,  Tliou  loilt 
Tiot  leave  my  soul  in  Hades,  and  in  verse  31,  his  soul  was  not  left  in  Hades.  Dwight. 
How  long  must  adherence  to  the  common  version  continue  to  give  sanction  to  such  an 
impious  suggestion .'     Trans. 

Acts  T,  38 ;  p.  199, 1.  34.  Tolerate  them.  T.  Let  them  alone.  R.  T.  In  all  former 
ages,  not  wholly  excepting  even  those  of  Greece  and  Rome,  religious  sects,  and  here- 
sies, and  schisms,  had  been  esteemed  dangerous,  if  not  pernicious,  to  civil  govern- 
ment, and  were  regarded  as  the  source  of  faction,  and  private  combination,  and  oppo- 
sition to  the  laws.  The  magistrate,  therefore,  applied  himself  directly  to  the  cure  of 
this  evil,  as  of  every  other ;  and  very  naturally  attempted,  by  penal  statutes,  to  sup- 
press those  separate  communities,  and  punish  the  obstinate  innovators.  But  it  was 
found,  by  fatal  experience,  and  after  spilling  an  ocean  of  blood  in  those  theological 
quarrels,  that  the  evil  was  of  a  peculiar  nature,  and  was  both  inflamed  by  violent  reme- 
dies, and  difll'used  itself  more  rapidly  throughout  the  whole  society.  Hence,  though 
late,  arose  the  paradoxical  principle,  and  salutary  practice  of  toleration.     Hume. 

Torrents  of  blood  have  been  spilt  in  the  old  world  by  vain  attempts  of  the  secular 
arm  to  extinguish  religious  discord,  proscribing  all  diiferences  in  religious  opinion. 
Time  has  at  length  revealed  the  true  remedy.  Every  relaxation  of  narrow  and  rigor- 
ous policy,  wherever  it  has  been  tried,  has  been  found  to  assuage  the  disease. 

Madison. 

Almighty  God  created  the  mind  free  ;  all  attempts  to  influence  it  by  temporal  pun- 
ishment or  civil  incapacitations,  tend  only  to  produce  habits  of  hypocrisy  and  mean- 
ness, and  are  a  departure  from  the  plan  of  the  holy  author  of  our  religion,  who  being 
lord  of  body  and  mind,  yet  chose  not  to  propagate  it  by  coercions  on  either,  as  was  in 
his  almighty  power  to  do.    Jefferson. 

The  whole  Christian  world  at  one  time  believed  that  the  freedom  of  religious  opin- 
ions, and  the  privilege  of  every  man  to  worship  God  in  his  own  way,  would  be  utterly 
subversive  of  Christianity  itself.  How  diflerent  has  been  the  experience  of  the  world. 
—  The  freedom  of  discussion,  and  the  variety  of  religious  sects,  each  independent  of 
the  other,  have  placed  the  Christian  church  upon  an   everlasting  foundation. 

Me  Duffie. 

Acts  vi,  1 ;  p.  199, 1.  45.  Grecian  Jews.  T.  Grecians.  R.  T.  Ex^wv/o-tov.  Hellenists. 
Though  the  word  Grecian  made  use  of  in  our  translation  is  synonymous  with  Greek, 
yet  the  term  employed  in  the  original  is  never  applied  in  the  New  Testament  to  Pagan 
or  Gentile  Greeks,  but  solely  to  those  Jews  who  had  resided  always  or  mostly  in  Gre- 
cian cities,  and  consequently  whose  common  language  was  Greek.  Campbell.  The 
Palestine  Christians  are  expressly  called  EjSjsijoi,  Hebrews,  in  contradistinction  from 
the  foreign  Jews  who  are  called  BKKmxrTcti,  Hellenists.     Stuart. 

Acts  vii,  45;  p.  203, 1.  24.  Joshua.  T.  Jesus.  R.  T.  That  is,  with  Joshua,  whom 
the  Greek  version,  quoted  by  St  Stephen,  always  writes  Unu!,  Jesus  ;  but  which 
should  certainly  be  written  Joshua  in  such  cases  as  the  present,  in  order  to  avoid  am- 
biguity and  confusion.     Clarke. 

Acts  vii,  59;  p.  203, 1.  1.  God.  The  word  God,  as  all  admit,  is  not  in  the  Greek, 
and  it  is  urged  that  its  insertion  by  our  translators  was  not  only  needless,  to  make  out 
the  sense,  but  is  a  perversion  of  it.  Dahney.  The  word  God,  is  not  found  in  any  MS 
or  Version,  nor  in  any  of  the  primitive  Fathers  except  Chrysostom.  It  is  not  genuine, 
and  should  not  be  inserted  here ;  the  whole  sentence  literally  reads  thus  :  Jlnd  they 

69 


466  APPENDIX. 

stoned  Stephen,  invoking  and  saying,  Lord  Jesus  receive  my  Spirit!  Clarke.  They 
stoned  Stephen,  calling  upon  God,  or  as  in  the  original,  they  stoned  Stephen,  invoking, 
and  saying,  Lord  Jesus  receive  my  Spirit.  Duoight.  The  word  God  is  not  in  the 
original.     T.  Scott. 

Acts  viii,  9 ;  p.  203, 1.  18.  Astonished.  T.  Bewitched.  R.  T.  Efio-Tuiv,  astonishing, 
amazing,  or  confounding  the  judgment  of  the  people.  Clarke.  The  extreme  preju- 
dices of  the  authors  of  the  common  version  are  perhaps  no  where  more  glaring  through- 
out the  New  Testament,  than  in  the  use  of  the  word  bewitched,  verses  9,  11.  As  it  is 
now  confessed  by  all  to  be  very  wide  of  the  meaning,  it  must  be  deemed^a  gross 
example  of  servile  court  to  the  humors  of  their  royal  master,  (King  James),  under 
whose  authority  that  version  was  made,  and  whose  faith  in  the  powers  of  witchcraft  is 
notorious.     Daiyney. 

Acts  viii,  37;  p.  204, 1.  24.    .Snd  Philip  said I  believe  that  Jesus  Christ  is  the 

Son  of  God.  R.  T.  This  whole  verse  is  omitted  by  A  B  C  G,  several  others  of  the 
first  authority,  Erpen's  edition  of  the  Arabic  ;  the  Syriac,  the  Coptic,  Sahidic,  Ethiopic, 
and  some  of  the  Slavonic  ;  almost  all  the  critics  declare  against  it  as  spurious.  Gries- 
bach  has  left  it  out  of  the  text ;  and  professor  White  in  his  Crisems  says,  '  Hie  versus 
certissime  delendus,'  this  verse,  rtwst  assuredly,  should  be  blotted  out.  It  is  found  in  E, 
several  others  of  minor  importance,  and  in  the  Vulgate  and  Arabic.  In  those  MSS 
where  it  is  extant,  it  exists  in  a  variety  of  forms,  though  the  sense  is  the  same.      Clarke. 

Acts  ix,  -5  ;  p.  204,  1.  39.     It  is  hard  for  thee and  the  Lord  said  unto  him.  R.  T. 

The  preceding  words,  with  those  that  intervene,  making  20  in  the  original,  and  30  in 
our  version,  are  found  in  no  Greek  MS.  It  is  not  very  easy  to  account  for  such  a  large 
addition  which  is  not  only  not  found  in  any  Greek  MS.  yet  discovered,  but  js  wanting 
in  the  Itala,  Erpen's  Arabic,  the  Syriac,  Coptic,  Sahidic,  and  most  of  the  Slavonian.  It 
is  found  in  the  Vulgate,  one  of  the  Arabic,  the  Ethiopic,  and  Armenian ;  and  was  pro- 
bably borrowed  from  chap,  xxvi,  14,  and  some  marginal  notes.  It  is  wanting  also  in 
the  Complutensian  edition,  and  in  that  of  Bengel.  Griesbach  also  leaves  it  out  of  the 
text.     Clarke. 

Acts  xii,  4;  p.  909, 1.  38.  Passover.  T.  Easter.  K.  T.  Perhaps  there  never  was  a 
more  unhappy  translation  than  that  in  our  text.  Every  view  we  can  take  of  this  sub- 
ject, shows  the  gross  impropriety  of  retaining  a  name  every  way  exceptionable,  and 
palpably  absurd.     Clarke. 

Acts  xiii,  48 ;  p.  213,  1.  2.  Favorably  inclined.  T.  Ordained.  R.  T.  Disposed. 
JVewcome.  The  word  TtTctyfiivt^  has  been  considered  here  as  implying  the  dispositi.on 
or  readiness  of  mind  of  several  persons  in  the  congregation,  such  as  the  religious  prO' 
selytes  mentioned  verse  43,  who  possessed  the  reverse  of  the  disposition  of  those  Jews, 
who  spake  against  those  things,  &c,  verse  45.  Though  the  word  in  this  place  has  been 
variously  translated  ;  yet  of  all  the  meanings  ever  put  on  it,  none  agrees  worse  with  its 
nature  and  known  signification,  than  that  which  represents  it  as  intending  those  who 
were  predestinated  to  eternal  life  :  this  is  no  meaning  of  the  term,  and  should  never  be 
applied  to  it.  Clarke.  One  import  of  the  words  is, '  As  many  of  the  Gentiles  believed 
as  were  inwardly  disposed  to  receive  the  doctrine  of  everlasting  life  ;  as  had  an  orderly 
and  well-prepared  mind  for  that  purpose  ;  as  had  disposed  them  to  it.'  Or,  *  as  many 
as  were  disposed,  believed  to  everlasting  life.'  See  1  Tim.  i,  16.  JVewcome;  cited 
from  the  Improved  Version.     Trans. 

Acts  xiv,  15  ;  p.  213, 1.  35.  We  are  also  men  similarly  constituted  with  yourselves.  T. 
We  also  are  men  of  like  passions  with  you.  R.  T.  The  expression  means  no  more  than, 
'  we  are  truly  human  beings,  with  the  same  powers  and  appetites  as  your  own  ;  need  food 
and  raiment  as  you  do;  and  are  all  mortaHike  yourselves.'  Clarke.  It  would  have 
been  impertinent  to  say  to  idolaters,  who  mistook  them  for  Gods,  '  We  are  subject  to 
the  like  passions  with  you  ;  for  of  this  their  priests  and  poets  had  uniformly  taught 
them  both  of  Jupiter  and  of  Mercury.'  But  it  was  pertinent  to  say,  '  We  are  your 
fellow-mortals,'  as  liable  as  you  to  disease  and  death.  For,  if  that  was  the  case  with 
the  two  Apostles,  the  people  would  readily  admit,  they  were  not  the  gods  they  sup- 


APOSTOLIC  TRANSACTIONS.  467 

posed  them.  From  this  passage  and  James  v,  17, 1  have  heard  it  gravely  inferred,  that 
a  superiority  over  the  passions  is  hardly  to  be  expected  from  the  influence  even  of  the 
most  divine  religion,  or  the  most  distinguished  lights  of  the  Spirit.  But  this  arises 
merely  from  the  mistranslation  of  the  word  ofioKuraSm.  If  we  recur  to  classical  use, 
we  find  that  it  implies  no  more  than  fellow-mortal,  and  has  no  relation,  to  what,  in  our 
language,  is  peculiarly  called  passion.     Campbell. 

Acts  xviii,  5 ;  p.  219, 1.  38.     Paul testified  to  the  Jeiosthat  Jesus  wastke  Messiah. 

T.     Paul testified  to  tke  Jews  that  Jesus  was  Christ.  R.  T.     In  such  expressions  as 

these,  Paul  testified  to  the  Jews  that  Jesus  was  Christ :  Tills  Jesus  whom  I  preach  ujito  you 
is  Christ,  xvii,  3 :  Showing  hy  the  Scriptures  that  Jesus  was  Christ,  xvii,  28  :  the  unlearn- 
ed reader  forms  no  distinct  apprehension,  as  the  common  application  of  the  words 
leads  him  uniformly  to  consider  Jesus  and  Christ,  as  no  other  than  the  name  and  sur- 
name of  the  same  person.  It  would  have  conveyed  to  such  a  reader  precisely  the 
same  meaning  to  have  said,  Paul  testified  to  the  Jeios  that  Christ  was  Jesus  ;  and  so  of 
the  rest.  The  article  alone,  therefore,  in  such  cases,  adds  considerable  light  to  the  ex- 
pression ;  yet  no  more  than  what  the  words  of  the  historian  manifestly  convey  to  ev- 
ery reader  who  understands  his  language.  It  should  be,  therefore,  Paul  testified  to  the 
Jews  that  Jesus  was  the  Christ,  or  the  Messiah,  &c.  Many  other  examples  might  be 
brought  to  the  same  purpose ;  but  these  are  sufficient.     Campbell. 

Acts  xviii,  15;  p.  220, 1.  12.  I  will  not  adjudicate  on  such  subjects.  T.  I  will  be  no 
judge  of  such  matters.  R.  T.  A  better  answer  could  not  be  given  by  man  ;  and  it  was 
highly  becoming  the  acknowledged  meekness,  gentleness,  and  benevolence  of  this 
amiable  man.  He  concluded  that  the  state  had  no  right  to  control  any  man's  religious 
opinion;  that  was  between  the  oJ;cci  of  his  worship  and  his  own  conscience;  and  there- 
fore he  was  not  authorized  to  intermeddle  with  subjects  of  this  nature,  which  the  law 
left  to  every  man's  private  judgment.     Clarke. 

Acts  xviii,  17 ;  p.  220, 1.  15.  Gallio  did  not  interfere  in  any  cf  these  transactions,  T. 
Gallio  cared  for  none  of  those  things.  R.  T.  K«i  mim  Twrm  too  ^«t^waH  ifyHMv.  And 
Gallio  did  not  concern  himself,  did  not  intermeddle  with  any  of  these  things.  As  he 
found  that  it  was  a  business  that  concerned  their  own  religion ;  and  that  the  conten- 
tion was  among-  themselves;  and  that  they  were  abusing  one  of  their  own  sect  only, 
he  did  not  choose  to  interfere.  In  consequence  of  this  conduct,  Gallio  has  been  rep- 
resented as  a  man  perfectly  careless  and  unconcerned  about  religion  in  general :  but  he 
who  preaches  on  Gallio  cared  for  none  of  those  things,  in  the  way  in  which  the  passage 
has,  through  mismanagement,  been  popularly  understood,  either  does  not  understand 
it ;  or  he  wilfully  perverts  the  meaning.     Clarke. 

Acts  xviii,  24 ;  p.  220, 1.  29.  Apollos,  —  a  literary  man.  T.  Jlpollos, — an  eloquent 
man.  R.  T.  A  man  of  letters.  Norton.  Having  strong  rhetorical  powers;  highly 
cultivated,  no  doubt,  in  the  Alexandrian  schools.     Clarke. 

The  pulpit  is  especially  the  throne  of  modern  eloquence.  There  it  is,  that  speech  is 
summoned  to  realize  the  fabled  wonders  of  the  Orphean  lyre.  The  preacher  has  no 
control  over  the  will  of  his  audience,  other  than  the  influence  of  his  discourse.  Yet 
as  the  Embassador  of  Christ,  it  is  his  awful  duty  to  call  sinners  to  repentance.  His 
only  weapon  is  the  voice;  to  rouse  the  indifferent  and  to  shame  the  scorner. — He  is 
to  inflame  the  lukewarm,  to  encourage  the  timid,  and  to  cheer  the  desponding  believer. 
— He  is  to  pour  the  healing  balm  of  consolation  into  the  bleeding  heart  of  sorrow,  and 
to  soothe  with  celestial  hope  the  very  agonies  of  death.  Now  tell  me  who  it  is  that 
will  best  possess  and  most  effectually  exercise  these  more  than  magic  powers  ?  Who 
is  it  that  will  most  effectually  stem  the  torrent  of  human  passions,  and  calm  the  rag- 
ing waves  of  human  life  and  folly .'  Who  is  it,  that  with  the  voice  of  Joshua,  shall 
control  the  force  of  nature  herself  in  the  perverted  heart,  and  arrest  the  luminaries  of 
wisdom  and  virtue  in  their  rapid  revolution  round  this  Uttle  world  of  man  P  Is  it  the 
cold  and  languid  speaker,  whose  words  fall  in  such  sluggish  and  drowsy  motion  from 
his  lips,  that  they  can  promote  nothing  but  the  slumbers  of  his  auditory,  and  adminis- 
ter opiates  to  the  body  rather  than  stimulants  to  the  soul .'    Is  it  the  unlettered  fanatic, 


468  APPENDIX. 

without  method,  without  reason ;  with  incoherent  raving  and  vociferous  ignorance, 
calculated  to  fit  his  hearers,  not  for  the  kingdom  of  Heaven,  but  for  a  hospital  of  lun- 
atics ?  Is  it  even  the  learned,  ingenious  and  pious  minister  of  Christ,  who  by  neglect 
or  contempt  of  the  oratorical  art,  has  contracted  a  whining,  monotonous  singsong  of 
delivery  to  exercise  the  patience  of  his  flock  at  the  expense  of  their  other  Christian 
graces  ?  Or  is  it  the  genuine  orator  of  heaven  with  a  heart  sincere,  upright  and  fervent ; 
a  mind  stored  with  that  universal  knowledge,  required  as  the  foundation  of  the  art ; 
with  a  genius  for  the  invention,  a  skill  for  the  disposition,  and  a  voice  for  the  elocution 
of  every  argument  to  convince,  and  of  every  sentiment  to  persuade.  John  Quincy 
AdaTns, 

Acts  XX,  28 ;  p.  223, 1.  44.  Tlie  church  of  the  Lord.  T.  The  church  of  God.  R.  T. 
The  community  of  God,  Trans.  The  true  reading  is  undoubtedly  tw  sxx\iKr;av  tou 
Tii/^iou,  the  church  of  the  Lord.  For,  first  it  is  supported  by  the  authority  of  the  most 
ancient  MSS,  Versions,  and  Fathers.  Secondly,  the  assembly  of  Christians  is,  in  the 
New  Testament,  no  where  called  enKXna-ia  thu  Kv^ku,  the  church  of  the  Lord,  but  exxxmria 
Tou  Qsou,  the  church  of  God,  (see  1  Cor.,  i,  2 ;  x,  32 ;  xi,  22 ;  xv,  9  ;  2  Cor.,  i,  1 ;  Gal., 
i,  13 ;  1  Tim.,  iii,  5 ;  v,  15 ;)  and  Trci/jiviov  ton  ©sou,  thefloch  of  God ;  1  Peter  v,  2.  Yet 
iiMtJiirui.  rov  Kugmu,  the  church  of  the  Lord,  is  quite  correct,  since  Christ  has  called  the 
Church  his,  in  Matt,  xvi,  18 ;  and  he  is  said  to  be  '  head  over  the  church.'  See  Ephes., 
i,  22seqq;  Col.,  i,  24  ;  and  Rom.,  xvi,  16.     S.   T.  Bloomfield. 

The  church  of  God :  im  mxt^nc-iitv  tou  ©sou  :  1  have  altered  my  opinion  of  this  pas- 
sage, and  have  determined  for  this  reading  from  the  same  considerations,  that  would 
have  influenced  me  in  the  case  of  any  indifferent  and  uncontroverted  text.  It  is  the 
reading  of  the  Ethiopic  version,  whose  authority  is  with  me  irresistible  on  this  occa- 
sion :  and  most  unjustifiable  is  this  assertion  of  Gricsbach,  JEthiops  habet  vocdbulum  quo 
semper  utiter,  sive  ©soc  in  grieca  veritate  legatur,  sive  Kug;oc'  neutri  igitur  lectioni 
favet  :*  which  is  infamously  false.  On  the  contrary,  as  far  as  my  recollection  will 
carry  me,  this  translator  never  employs  the  word  here  introduced,  but  to  signify  the 
SUPREME  God  alone.  This  was  my  first  inducement  to  retain  this  reading.  My 
next  was  the  variation  between  the  Syriac  and  Coptic  versions  ;  the  former  of  which 
has  the  church  of  the  Messiah  ;  and  the  latter  the  church  of  the  Lord  :  and  this  want 
of  uniformity  excites  in  me  a  strong  suspicion  of  interpolation  in  consequence  of  the 
peculiar  sentiments  of  the  translators,  or  the  authors  of  those  MSS,  which  they  fol- 
lowed.    Wakefield. 

His  oum  son :  Tou  iSiou  tn/jaios  ■  literally  his  own  blood  :  but  as  this  expression  could 
answer  no  good  purpose,  and  would  unavoidably  lead  those  unacquainted  with  the 
phraseology  of  these  languages  into  erroneous  doctrines  and  impious  conceptions  of 
the  Deity,  I  could  not  justify  myself  in  employing  it  in  this  place.     Wakefield. 

Feed  the  church  of  God.  This  verse  has  been  the  subject  of  much  controversy,  par- 
ticularly in  reference  to  the  term  ©sou,  of  God,  in  this  place  :  and  concerning  it  there 
is  great  dissension  among  the  MSS  and  Versions.  Three  readings  exist  in  them,  in 
reference  to  which,  critics  and  commentators  have  been  much  divided  ;  viz.  sKx\»nxv 

Tou  ©sou,  the  church  of  God  ; tou  Kug/ou,  of  the  Lord  :  Kugiou  »sti  Siov,  of  the  Lord 

and  God  .  From  the  collections  of  Wetstein  and  Griesbach,  it  appears  that  but  few 
MSS,  and  none  of  them  very  ancient,  have  the  word  ©sou,  of  God  ;  with  these  only 
the  Vulgate,  and  the  latter  Syriac  in  the  text  agree.  Kugioa,  of  the  Lord,  is  the  read- 
ing of  A  C  D  E,  several  others,  the  Sahidic,  Coptic,  latter  Syriac  in  the  margin,  jir- 
menian,  Ethiopic,  and  some  of  the  Fathers.  Kuj/ou  nai  ©sou,  of  the  Lord  and  of  God, 
is  the  reading  of  the  great  majority ;  though  the  most  ancient  are  for  Kugiou,  of  the 
Lord  ;  on  this  ground  Griesbach  has  admitted  this  reading  into  the  text,  and  put  Kugiou 

*  Translation.  The  Ethiopic  translator  adopts  a  word,  which,  according  to  invariable  use  in  that  ver- 
sion, may  bo  correctly  rendered  in  Greek,  ©soc  or  Kujlot,  (God  or  Lord),  and  therefore  fevers  a  neutral 
reading.    Thaws. 


APOSTOLIC  TRANSACTIONS.  409 

Kni  ©SOU,  in  the  margin,  as  being  next  in  authority.     The  greater  evidence  appears  to 
be  in  favor  of  tou  Kug»i/,  of  the  LiOrd.     Clarke. 

Tlie  church  of  God :  The  word  God  is  by  the  majority  of  critics  thouglit  to  be  a  cor- 
ruption of  the  original.  The  best  Greek  MSS,  with  the  Syriac,  Coptic,  and  other  an- 
cient versions,  read  Lord  ;  and  vrith  this,  the  quotations  from  the  earliest  ecclesiastical 
writers  correspond.  This  also  is  adopted  by  Kenrick,  Imp.  V.,  Wetstein,  Rosenmfll- 
ler,  and  others.  Kenrick  adds, '  Common  sense  indeed  seems  to  require  this  con- 
struction of  the  apostle's  language,  whatever  his  words  may  be  supposed  to  be  ;  for  to 
talk  of  the  blood  of  God,  applied  to  a  spiritual,  omnipresent  being,  is  little  short  of 
impiety.'     So  Wakefield;  who  sees  reason  to  retain  the  present  reading  of  the  text, 

but  translates the  church  of  God,  which  he  gained  for  himsdf  by  his  own.  son. 

Dabney. 

Whatever  view  may  be  entertained  of  the  abstract  nature,  or  entire  character  and 
attributes  of  the  Saviour  of  mankind,  if  the  variation  from  the  received  text  be  estab- 
lished, the  passage  ceases  to  be  so  entirely  figurative,  and  the  reading  substituted  will 
have  the  advantage  of  being  conformed  to  historical  fact,  as  abundantly  contained  in 
the  Christian  Scriptures,  where  it  appears,  for  example,  that  the  blood  of  our  Lord 
Jesus  Christ  was  shed  on  the  cross,  and  not  the  blood  of  him  who  sent  him  ;  the  blood 
of  him  who  is  represented  as  supplicating,  and  not  of  him  whom  he  supplicates  ;  the 
blood  of  a  physical  body,  and  not  of  him,  who,  according  to  the  universal  sentiment 
of  the  Christian  church,  is  '  without  body,  parts,  or  passions.'     Trans. 

Acts  xxi,  31 ;  p.  225, 1.  39.  Intelligence  reached  the  tribune  of  the  cohort.  T.  Tidings 
came  unto  the  chief  captain  of  the  band.  R.  T.  Roman  names  of  ofiice  are  naturalized 
in  most  modern  languages,  particularly  in  English.  This  makes  the  adoption  of  the 
Latin  name  for  an  office,  or  any  other  thing  which  the  Jews  had  solely  from  the  Ro- 
mans, peculiarly  pertinent.  The  remark  now  made  holds,  especially  when  the  persons 
spoken  of  were  either  Romans,  or  the  servants  of  Rome.  If,  therefore,  after  the  Vul- 
gate, we  had  rendered  ;^i?i/flt|;^oc,  tHbune,  A\Bv7rATii^,'pro-cxnisul,  and  perhaps  o-Trg/gtt,  cohort, 
the  expression  without  losing  any  thing,  in  perspicuity,  to  those  of  an  inferior  class ; 
would  have  been,  to  the  learned  reader,  more  significant  than  chief -captain,  deputy, 
band.     Campbell. 

Acts  xxiii,  3 ;  p.  227, 1.  33.  God  will  smite  you.  T.  God  shall  smite  thee.  R.  T. 
The  common  version  of  the  Bible  abounds  in  the  imperative  mode,  on  the  part  of  man, 
of  representing  Divine  Agency.  This  phraseology  is  irreverent ;  and  it  would  be 
more  correct  and  becoming  to  ascribe,  even  to  a  prophet  or  an  apostle,  the  declaration 
that  God  will,  rather  than  shall,  exercise  any  of  the  attributes.  .  .  I  have  endeavored, 
in  this  translation,  invariably  to  obviate  all  errors  of  that  description.     Trans. 

Acts  xxiii,  27:  p.  228, 1.  40.  Was  about  to  be  destroyed  by  them.  T.  Should  have 
been  killed  of  them.  R.  T.  The  indiscriminate  use  of  should,  would,  and  could,  which 
is  taken  notice  of  by  Bishop  Lowth,  has  introduced  strange  confusion  into  our  Vulgar 
Translation.  In  this  instance  Lysias  informs  Felix,  that  he  rescued  a  man,  who  had 
deserved  death ;  and  what  is  not  a  little  extraordinary,  he  employed  nothing  less  than 
an  army  in  taking  him  out  of  the  hands  of  the  Jews.     Symonds. 

Acts  xxiv,  14  ;  p.  229, 1.  37.  Which  they  style  a  sect.  T.  Which  they  call  heresy.  R. 
T.  Which  they  call  a  sect.  Nothing  could  have  been  more  ridiculous,  than  for  the 
apostle  seriously  to  defend  his  doctrine  against  the  charge  of  heterodoxy,  before  an 
idolater  and  polytheist,  who  regarded  both  him  and  his  accusers  as  superstitious  fools, 
and  consequently  as,  in  this  respect,  precisely  on  a  footing ;  but  it  was  entirely  perti- 
nent in  him  to  evince,  before  a  Roman  magistrate,  that  his  faith  and  mode  of  worship, 
however  much  traduced  by  his  enemies,  were  neither  essentially  different  from,  nor 
any  way  subversive  of,  that  religion  which  the  senate  and  people  of  Rome  were 
solemnly  engaged  to  protect.     Campbell. 

Acts  xxvii,  9 ;  p.  233,  1.  28.  Tlie  Jewish  fast.  This  was  about  the  time  of  the 
autumnal  equinox,  when  the  Mediterranean  sea  was  sufiiciently  tempestuous.  To 
sail  after  this  fast  was  proverbially  dangerous  among  the  ancient  Jews.     Clarke. 


470  APPENDIX. 


PAUL  S  LETTER  TO  THE  ROMANS. 


Rom.  i,  13 :  p.  237, 1.  23.  Prevented.  T.  Let.  R.  T,  The  received  text  incorrectly 
implies,  that  the  apostle's  visit  had  been  permitted,  rather  than  debarred.     Trahs. 

Rom.  i,  14;   p.  237,  1.  24.    My  duty  extends to  the  unenlightened.    T.     1  am 

debtor  —  to  the  umoise.  R.  T.  Throughout  the  entire  existence  of  Christianity,  it  has 
been  a  favorite  object  of  its  ardent  disciples  and  pious  professors  to  diffuse  its  blessings 
by  converting  the  Heathen.  This  duty  is  enjoined  by  its  own  sacred  precepts,  and 
prompted  by  considerations  of  humanity.  All  Christendom  is  more  or  less  employed 
on  this  object  at  this  moment,  in  some  part  or  other  of  the  earth.  But  it  must,  in  can- 
dor be  owned,  that  hitherto  missionary  efforts  have  not  had  a  success  corresponding, 
in  extent,  with  the  piety  and  benevolence  of  their  aim,  or  with  the  amount  of  the 
means  which  have  been  applied.  Some  new  and  more  efficacious  mode  of  accomplish- 
ing the  beneficent  purpose  must  be  devised,  which,  by  concentrating  energies  and 
endeavors,  and  avoiding  loss  in  their  diffuse  and  uncombined  application,  shall  ensure 
the  attainment  of  more  cheering  results.     Henry  Clay. 

Rom.  i,  17 ;  p.  237, 1.  30.  For  therein  God's  plan  of  pardoning  by  faith  those  who 
believe,  is  revealed  ;  according  to  which  the  scripture  declares,  the  pardoned  shall  live  by 
faith.  T.  For  therein  is  the  righteousness  of  God  revealed  from  faith  to  faith  :  as  it  is 
written,  The  just  shall  live  by  faith.  R.  T.  For  the  justification  which  is  of  God  is 
revealed  by  it,  ^justification']  by  faith,  in  order  that  we  may  believe ;  as  it  is  written, 
'  The  just  shall  live  by  faith.'  Stuart.  For  thereby  a  pardon  from  God  is  proclai-med 
to  a  reliance  upon  faith  ;  as  it  is  written,  He  who  trusteth  to  faith  for  pardon,  will  save 
his  life.  It  is  impossible  to  convey  the  sense  of  the  original  in  this,  and  an  infinity  of 
other  places,  by  any  thing  like  a  literal  translation.  How  can  the  poor,  or  unlearned, 
have  the  gospel  preached  to  them,  if  we  keep  the  Scriptures  locked  up  in  a  phrase- 
ology, which  is  all  but  nonsensical  in  a  modern  tongue,  and  wants  an  interpreter 
almost  as  much  as  the  original  itself  i  The  term  justification,  which  is  Latin,  no  two 
unlearned  men  would  explain  alike  :  pardon  every  body  understands.  Wakefield.  I 
have  long  thought  that  Axmoirvm  Ssoi/,  the  righteousness  of  God,  means  here  and  in 
some  other  places,  not  the  righteousness  or  rather  justification  itself  which  the  epistle 
speaks  of,  but  the  mode  of  justification  which  God  hath  exhibited  in  the  Gospel. 
Turner.  The  just  by  faith,  shall  live,  that  is,  he  alone  that  is  justified  by  faith,  shall 
be  saved.  This  is  probably  the  true  meaning.  Clarke.  Macknight  translates  thus : 
'  the  just  by  faith,  shall  live.'  I  cannot  think  that  there  is  much  force  in  his  reason- 
ing, note  3,  not  to  say,  that  to  speak  of  the  just  by  faith,  seems  to  imply  the  possibility 
of  becoming  just  by  some  other  means,  which  the  whole  scope  of  the  epistle  opposes. 

Turner. 

Rom.  i,  21 ;  p.  237, 1.  38.  Divine  agency.  T.  Godhead.  R.  T.  ©sjotuc,  his  acting 
as  God  in  the  government  and  support  of  the  universe.  His  works  prove  his  being; 
the  government  and  support  of  these  works  prove  it  equally.  Creation  and  providence 
form  a  twofold  demonstration  of  God.  1st.  In  the  perfections  of  his  nature ;  and, 
2dly.  In  the  exercise  of  those  perfections.     Clarke. 

We  are  generally  disposed  to  confine  the  course  of  nature  entirely  to  physical 
causes,  or  to  the  influence  which  one  body  is  ordained  to  have  upon  another,  accord- 
ing to  certain  immutable  rules.  But  if  the  ever-active  Deity  has  not  retired  from  his 
operations,  something  more  must  be  understood.  It  is  possible,  that  the  permanency 
of  physical  powers  may  totally  depend  upon  the  permanency  of  his  agency.  Nor  is  it 
irrational  to  suppose,  that  in  certain  cases,  where  the  usual  course  of  tilings  is  not 
equal  to  the  production  of  important  events  pre-ordained,  this  ever-active  Being  exerts 
an  extraordinary  energy,  according  to  certain  moral  laws  of  his  own  appointment. 

Cogan. 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  ROMANS.  471 

Rom.  i,  28 ;  p.  238,  I.  15.  Regardless  mind.  T.  Reprobate  mind.  R.  T.  Un- 
searching  mind.  Clarke.  ^  mind  void  of  judgment.  Seabary.  Reprobate  belongs  not 
to  the  word  of  God,  but  is  one  of  the  characteristic  epithets  of  a  harsh  and  vindictive 
theology.     Trans. 

Rom.  iii,  10 ;  p.  240, 1.  7.  Tliere  is  none  righteous,  not  even  one.  T.  TItere  is  none 
righteous,  no,  not  onev  R.  T.  Surely  there  is  none  righteous,  no  not  one.  This  and  the 
following  affirmations,  must  not  be  interpreted  according  to  the  strictness  of  modern 
speech.  For  it  can  hardly  be  supposed,  that  in  any  period  the  Jewish  nation  was  so 
universally  wicked,  that  there  was  not  a  single  righteous  man  in  it.  These  strong 
expressions  were  used  by  the  Psalmist,  according  to  the  genius  of  the  eastern  lan- 
guages, in  which  universal  propositions  were  used,  not  according  to  their  strict  logical 
meaning,  but  to  denote  a  great  number,  as  in  this  passage,  where  they  are  very  few  in 
comparison  of  the  wicked.  Of  this  manner  of  speaking,  we  have  an  undoubted  exam- 
ple, John  iii,  32  ;  where  the  Baptist  says  of  Jesus  ovhiz,  no  one,  receiveth  his  testimony, 
that  is,  fexo  received  it,  in  comparison  of  those  who  rejected  it ;  for  the  same  evangelist 
has  mentioned  a  number  who  believed  on  Jesus.     Macknight. 

Rom.  iii,  25,  26 ;  p.  240, 1.  27.  Whom  God  has  publicly  constituted  as  the  means  of 
conciliation,  (by  faith  in  his  blood),  to  exhibit  the  righteousness  he  requires,  for  the  for- 
giveness, through  the  divine  lenity,  of  sins  formerly  committed  ;  and  to  display  the  right- 
eousness required  by  him  at  this  present  time ;  that  he  might  exercise  his  clemency,  and 
pardon  him,  who  believes  in  Jesus.  T.  Whom  God  hath  set  forth  to  be  a  propitiation, 
through  faith  in  his  blood,  to  declare  his  righteousness  for  the  remission  of  sins  that  are 
past,  through  the  forbearance  of  God  ;  to  declare,  I  say-,  at  this  time  his  righteousness  : 
that  he  might  be  just,  and  the  justijier  of  him  which  believeth  in  Jesus.  R.  T.  Wtom 
God  hath  set  forth  as  a  propitiatory  [sacrifice']  by  faith  in  his  blood,  in  order  to  declare 
his  justification  with  respect  to  the  remission  of  siris  formerly  cmnmitted  during  the  for- 
bearance of  God ;  in  order  to  declare  his  justification  at  the  present  time ;  so  that  he 
Tnight  be  just  and  yet  the  justifier  of  him  that  believeth  in  Jesus.  Stuart.  ^  propitia- 
tion :  properly,  the  mercy  seat :  Locke,  Grotius,  Wetstein,  Taylor,  and  others.  Dab- 
ney.  I^atn-ngdiv,  the  mercy-seat,  or  place  of  atonement.  Clarke.  Belsham.  The  word 
here  rendered  propitiation,  is  usts-Tngiov.  This  word  is  used  only  twice  in  the  Greek 
Testament ;  viz.  in  the  text,  and  Hebrews  ix,  5.  Its  proper  meaning  is  the  propitia- 
tory, or  mercy-seat ;  as  it  is  rendered  in  the  latter  passage.     Dwight. 

There  is  little  doubt  that  the  word  iKn^Tngm  rendered,  in  the  Common  Version,  ^ro- 
pitiation,  should  be  translated  mercy  seat.  It  occurs  often  in  the  Septuagint,  common- 
ly in  the  latter  sense,  and  never  in  the  former.  Supplying  the  chasms  in  St  Paul's 
elliptical  style,  which  we  are  often  compelled  to  do  in  order  to  render  his  meaning 
intelligible  to  an  English  reader,  the  verse  may  be  thus  rendered  ;  '  Whom  God  hath 
set  forth,  a  mercy  seat,  to  be  approached  through  faith,  sprinkled  with  his  own  blood.' 

JYorton. 

Michaelis  remarks,  that '  in  Rom.  iii,  25,  ixxa-'n^m  has  been  taken  by  some  in  the  sense 
of  mercy-seat,  but  that  Kypke  has  properly  preferred  the  translation,  pkopitiatoky 
SACRIFICE.     Magee. 

Wliom  God  hath  set  forth  a  propitiatory.  The  cover  of  the  ark  is  called.  Exodus 
XXV,  17,  LXX,  iXtta-'nigtiiv  sTTtQu/jLtt,  a  propitiatory  cover ;  because  it  was  the  throne  on 
which  the  glory  of  the  Lord  received  the  atonements  made  by  the  high  priest  on  the 
day  of  expiation,  and  from  which  God  dispensed  pardon  to  the  people.  In  allusion  to 
this  ancient  worship,  the  apostle  represents  Christ  as  a  propitiatory  or  mercy-seat,  set 
forth  by  God  for  receiving  the  worship  of  men,  and  dispensing  pardon  to  them.  Or 
if  a  propitiation  is,  by  a  common  metonomy,  put  for  a  propitiatory  sacrifice,  the  apos- 
tle's meaning  will  be,  that,  by  the  appointment  of  God,  Christ  died  as  a  sacrifice  for 
sin,  and  that  God  pardons  sin  through  the  merit  of  that  sacrifice.  Hence  Christ  is 
called  iKtur/AOs,  a  propitiation,  1  John  ii,  2 ;  iv,  10.  By  teaching  this  doctrine  the  apostle 
removed  the  great  objection  of  the  Jews  and  heathens  against  the  gospel,  That  it  had 
neither  a  priest  nor  a  sacrifice     Macknight. 


472  APPENDIX, 

Baxter,  Campbell,  Newcome,  Macknight,  and  Adam  Clarke  are  agreed,  that  in  Matt, 
vi,  33 ;  James  1,  20 ;  1  Cor.  v,  21 ;  Rom.  i,  17,  and  x,  3  ;  '  the  righteousness  of  God' 
means  the  righteousness  which  God  requires, '  the  righteousness  which  is  by  faith,' 
and  which  God  approves  for  there  mission  of  sins.     The  phrase  occurs  five  times  in  one 

chapter Rom.  iii,  5, 21,  22.  25,  26.     Of  these  the  first  is  the  only  one  in  regard 

to  which  the  meaning  appears  to  be  at  all  doubtful.  The  righteoiisness  which  God  re- 
quires seems  to  be  clearly  meant  in  the  other  four  instances.  .  .  It  was  for  the  purpose 
of  the  sinner's  pardon  and  salvation  that  God  set  forth  his  Son  to  declare  the  right- 
eousness which  he  requires  for  the  remission  of  sins ;  and  if  he  has  proposed  righteous 
terms  of  forgiveness,  a  compliance  with  those  terms  on  the  part  of  the  sinner,  renders 
it  'just'  in  God  to  justify  or  pardon  his  offences.  As  impenitency  renders  it  just  in 
God  to  punish,  so  repentance  renders  it  just  in  him  to  forgive.    JV.  Worcester. 

As  to  the  entire  passage,  and  especially  to  that  part  in  verse  26,  which  I  have  ren- 
dered, that  ke  might  exercise  his  clemency,  and  pardon  him,  (in  the  received  text,  that  he 
might  be  just,  and  the  justijier  of  him),  many  distinguished  critics,  from  an  attentive 
examination  of  the  original  and  the  context,  have  concluded,  that  something  equiva- 
lent to  Worcester's  translation  and  explication  of  the  passage,  as  previously  cited,  is 
the  true  construction  ;  and  that,  in  the  particular  clause,  no  antithesis  is  here  intended 
to  be  drawn  by  the  apostle  between  the  integrity  and  benevolence  of  God,  in  the  for- 
giveness of  mankind  through  the  Christian  dispensation.     Trans. 

I  had  formerly  adopted  Newcome's  explanation  of  the  word  S'luntoirvn ;  conceiving 
the  idea  o?  justification,  or  mciAoti  of  _;tt5it/ica^£>7i,  to  be  better  calculated  than  that  of 
righteousness,  (the  term  employed  by  the  common  version),  to  convey  an  adequate 
sense  of  the  original.  On  perusing  the  observations  of  Mr  Nares,  I  am  now  induced 
to  alter  my  opinion  :  being  fully  satisfied  that  that  learned  and  ingenious  writer  has 
caught  the  true  spirit  of  the  original  passage  ;  and  that  the  object  of  the  inspired  rea- 
soner  is  not  so  much  to  show  how,  in  the  method  adopted  for  the  remission  of  sins, 
mercy  was  to  be  displayed,  as  how,  notwithstanding  this  display  of  raeicy ,  justice  was 
to  be  maintained.  In  either  view  the  sense  undoubtedly  terminates  in  the  same  point, 
the  reconciling  with  each  other  the  two  attributes  of  mercy  and  justice  ;  but  the  em- 
phasis of  the  argument  takes  opposite  directions ;  and  that,  in  the  view  which  Mr 
Nares  has  preferred,  it  takes  the  right  direction,  must  be  manifest  on  considering  that, 
in  the  remission  of  sins,  mercy  is  the  quality  that  immediately  presents  itself,  whilst 
justice  might  seem  to  be  for  the  time  superseded.  On  this  principle  of  interpretation, 
the  sentence  will  stand  thus.  Whom  God  had  set  forth  to  he  a  propitiation  through  faith 
in  his  blood,  for  the  manifestation  of  his  jvstice  (his  just  and  righteous  dealing)  con- 
cerning the  remission  of  past  sins,  through  the  forbearance  of  God :  for  the  manifesta- 
tion, at  this  time,  of  his  justice,  that  he  Ttiight  he  just,  and  (i.  c.  although)  the  justi- 
FiER  of  him  that  helicveth  in  Jesus.  The  justice  of  the  Deity,  or  his  regard  to  what  is 
righteous  and  just,  is  thus  declared  to  have  been  departed  from  in  the  scheme  of  re- 
demption :*  this  scheme  bearing  a  twofold  relation  to  sinners,  in  such  a  manner,  that 
whilst  it  manifested  the  irtercy  of  God,  it  should  at  the  same  time  in  no  degree  lay  a 
ground  for  the  impeachment  of  his  justice.   Magee. 

If  we  consult  our  natural  sentiments,  we  are  apt  to  fear,  lest  before  the  holiness  of 
God,  vice  should  appear  to  be  more  worthy  of  punishment,  than  the  weakness  and  im- 
perfection of  human  nature  can  ever  seem  to  be  of  reward.  Man,  when  about  to  ap- 
pear before  a  being  of  infinite  perfection,  can  feel  but  little  confidence  in  his  own 
merit,  or  in  the  imperfect  propriety  of  his  own  conduct.  If  he  would  hope  for  happi- 
ness, he  is  conscious  that  he  cannot  demand  it  from  the  justice,  but  he  must  entreat  it 
from  the  mercy  of  God.  He  even  distrusts  the  efficacy  of  repentance,  sorrow,  humilia- 
tion, or  contrition  for  his  past  conduct ;  and  naturally  fears,  lest  the  wisdom  of  God 
should  not,  like  the  weakness  of  man,  be  prevailed  upon  to  spare  the  crime,  by  the 

*  The  word  scheme,  so  often  used  by  writers  on  this  subject,  is  a  very  improper  expression  in  reference  to 
the  delineation  of  any  Divine  purpose.    Trans. 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  ROMANS.  473 

most  importunate  lamentations  of  the  criminal.  Some  other  intercession,  some  other 
sacrifice,  some  other  atonement,  he  imagines,  must  be  made  for  him,  beyond  what  he 
himself  is  capable  of  making,  before  the  purity  of  the  divine  justice  can  be  reconciled 
to  his  manifest  offences. 

The  doctrines  of  revelation  coincide,  in  every  respect,  with  those  original  anticipa- 
tions of  nature  ;  and  as  they  teach  us  how  little  we  can  depend  upon  the  imperfection 
of  our  own  virtue,  so  they  sliow  us,  at  the  same  time,  that  the  most  powerful  interces- 
sion has  been  made,  and  the  most  dreadful  atonement  has  been  paid  for  our  manifold 
transgressions.     Admti  Smith. 

These  two  things  may  be  regarded  as  axioms  of  the  religious  life  ;  first,  that  a  man's 
own  labors  are  essential  to  his  salvation  ;  second,  that  his  utmost  virtue  does  nothing 
toward  purchasing  or  meriting  salvation.  When  he  has  done  all  his  duty,  he  is  still, 
as  the  Saviour  declares,  but  an  '  unprofitable  servant.'  He  has  been  more  tlian  recom- 
pensed by  the  blessings  of  this  present  life.  That  the  happiness  of  an  eternal  state 
may  be  attained,  in  addition  to  these,  is  a  provision  of  pure  grace  ;  and  it  is  mere  in- 
sanity to  neglect  the  duties  of  religion  through  any  fear  lest  you  should  seem  to  be 
seeking  heaven  on  the  ground  of  your  own  desert.  Virtue  would  be  yourduty,  though 
you  were  to  perish  forever  at  the  grave,  and  that  God  has  opened  to  liis  children  the 
prospect  of  a  future  inheritance  infinitely  disproportioned  to  their  merit,  is  only  a  fur- 
ther I'eason  for  making  virtue  your  first  and  chief  pursuit.     Henry  ITare,  Jr. 

Rom.  iii,  28  ;  p.  240, 1.  35.  Man  is  pardoned  through  faith,  and  not  by  legal  obedience.  T. 
M  man  is  justified  by  faith,  without  the  deeds  of  the  law.  R.  T.  Jl  man  is  justified  by  faith, 
without  worlis  of  laic.  Stuart.  It  was  Paul's  continual  purpose  to  fix  it  in  the  minds 
of  his  spiritual  church,  that  now,  under  the  gospel,  men  are,  every  where  justified  by 
faith  without  the  deeds  of  the  law.  The  condition  of  human  salvation  was  not  the 
observance  of  any  external  rites,  like  the  Mosaic,  not  the  belonging  to  any  national 
church,  like  the  Jewish,  not  the  submission  to  circumcision  and  the  burthensome  ob- 
ligations it  entailed,  and  not  even  a  course  of  unsinning  obedience,  which  was  at  all 
times  impossible,  but  faith,  and  faith  alone,  or  a  principle  of  sincere,  though  imperfect 
obedience,  a  principle  beginning  in  belief,  discovering  itself  in  love,  and  proved  and 
fortified  by  persevering  obedience.     Buehminster. 

If  any'  doctrine  be  plainly  taught  in  the  sacred  volume  it  is  this,  that  if  we  do  well 
we  shall  be  accepted  ;  and  that  we  shall  find  acceptance  on  no  other  condition.  We 
may  torture  particular  texts  of  scripture,  and  force  them  to  speak  a  different  language. 
We  may  comment  on  the  goodness  of  God,  and  the  sacrifice  of  his  son  :  and  may  en- 
deavor to  infer  from  thence  the  future  impunity  of  vice.  We  may  flatter  ourselves, 
that  the  tlireatenings  of  the  gospel  will  never  be  executed.  Still  the  general  strain  of 
revelation  will  be  against  us.  And  it  will  be  our  future  condemnation,  that  we  did 
not  give  credit  to  its  testimony.     John  Clarke. 

Rom.  iv,  3 ;  p.  240, 1.  45.  Abraham  believed  in  God,  and  it  was  ascribed  to  him  for 
pardon.  T.  Abraham  heliered  God,  and  it  teas  counted  unto  him  for  righteousness.  R. 
T.  To  have  his  belief  imputed  or  counted  for  righteousness,  must  mean,  that  in  conse- 
quence of  his  belief,  he  icas  treated  as  righteous,  he  teas  accepted  as  righteous,  i.  e.  he 
was  gratuitously  justified.  Stuart.  It  is  no  where  said  in  scripture,  that  Christ's 
righteousness  was  imputed  to  Abraham ;  so  neither  is  it  said  any  where,  that  Christ's 
righteousness  is  imputed  to  believers.     Macknight. 

Rom.  V,  5 ;  p.  242, 1.  10.  The  love  of  God  is  diffused  in,  our  hearts.  T.  We  con- 
ceive that  the  true  love  of  God  is  a  moral  sentiment,  founded  on  a  clear  perception, 
and  consisting  in  u,  high  esteem  and  veneration,  of  his  moral  perfections.  Thus,  it 
perfectly  coincides,  and  is  in  fact  the  same  thing,  with  the  love  of  virtue,  rectitude, 
and  goodness.  Tou  will  easily  judge  tlien,  what  we  esteem  the  surest  and  only  de- 
cisive signs  of  piety.  We  lay  no  stress  on  strong  excitements.  We  esteem  him,  and 
him  only  a  pious  man,  who  practically  conforms  to  God's  moral  perfections  and 
government ;  who  shows  his  delight  in  God's  benevolence,  by  loving  and  serving  his 
neighbor;  his  delight  in  God's  justice,  by  being  resolutely  upright;  his  sense  of  God's 

60 


474  APPENDIX. 

purity,  by  regulating  his  tlioughts,  imagination,  and  desires  ;  and  whose  conversation, 
business,  and  domestic  life  are  swayed  by.  a  regard  to  God's  presence  and  authority. 
In  all  things  else  men  may  deceive  themselves.  Disordered  nerves  may  give  them 
strange  sights,  and  sounds,  and  impressions.  Texts  of  scripture  may  come  to  them  as 
from  Heaven.  Their  whole  souls  may  be  moved,  and  their  confidence  in  God's  favor 
be  undoubting.  But  in  all  this  there  is  no  religion.  The  question  is,  do  they  love 
God's  commands,  in  which  his  character  is  fully  expressed,  and  give  up  to  these  their 
habits  and  passions  ?  Without  this,  ecstasy  is  a  mockery.  One  surrender  of  desire 
to  God's  will,  is  worth  a  thousand  transports.  We  do  not  judge  of  the  bent  of  men's 
minds  by  their  raptures,  any  more  than  we  judge  of  the  natural  direction  of  a  tree 
during  a  storm.  We  rather  suspect  loud  profession,  for  we  have  observed  that  deep 
feeling  is  generally  noiseless,  and  least  seeks  display.     Channing, 

Rom.  V,  11 ;  p.  242,  1.  22.  Reconciled.  T.  The  atonement.  R.  T.  Reconciliation. 
M.  R.  T»v  x^Tit^Astj.jjv  gxafc^sv.  f^e  have  obtained  reconciliation.  Stuart.  '  We  have 
received,'  (not  so  properly  '  the  atonement,'  as  our  translation  has  it,  but)  reconciliation. 
Turner.  The  word  x*Tstx\a^»,  which  is  here  translated  atonement,  should  not  have 
been  so  rendered,  but  should  have  been  translated  reconciliation.  Magee.  It  was 
certainly  improper  to  translate  K*Tit\xst;^«  here  by  atonemewf,,  instead  of  reconciliation  ; 
as  K.'J.TA\a.!T<rai  signifies  to  reconcile,  and  is  so  rendered  by  our  translators  in  all  the  places 
where  it  occurs.  Clarke.  The  atonement :  properly,  Tlie  reconciliation  :  as  all  critics 
and  translators  admit.  This  is  the  only  place  in  the  New  Testament  where  this  term, 
now  so  familiar,  occurs.  At  the  period  indeed,  when  our  common  version  was  made, 
atonement  had  not  the  sense  which  it  has  since  acquired  in  technical  theology )  but 
merely  and  strictly,  that  of  the  word  substituted  for  it  in.  the  text,  to  wit,  reconciling 
or  setting  at  one,  those  who  before  were  at  variance.  Dabney.  The  word  means  re- 
conciliation ;  and  such  is  the  sense  in  which-our  English  translators  here  used  the 
word  atonement  (quasi  at-one-ment.')  Stuart.  The  Greek  noun  itATUXKuyvv,  translated 
reconciliation,  comes  from  the  verb  K^T^Ktitra-a!,  which,  in  the  preceding  verse,  our 
translators  have  rendered  reconcile.  Wherefore,  the  noun  derived  from  it  should  not 
have  been  translated  by  them,  in  this  passage,  atonement,  but  reconciliation,  as  it  is  in 
all  the  other  passages  where  it  occurs.  Besides,  it  ought  to  be  considered,  that  men 
do  not  receive  the  atonement.  The  atonement  is  made  to  God.  In  what  follows,  the 
apostle  shows  the  reasonableness  of  putting  all  men  in  a  state  of  reconciliation  or 
salvation,  through  Christ.     Macknight. 

The  idea,  which  is  conveyed  to  common  minds  by  the  popular  system,  that  Christ's 
death  has  an  influence  in  making  God  placable  and  merciful,  in  awakening  his  kind- 
ness towards  men,  we  reject  with  strong  disapprobation.  We  are  happy  to  find  that 
this  very  dishonorable  notion  is  disowned  by  intelligent  Christians  of  that  class  from 
which  we  differ.  We  recollect  however,  not  long  ago,  it  was  common  to  hear  of 
Christ,  as  having  died  to  appease  God's  wrath,  and  to  pay  the  debt  of  sinners  to  his 
inflexible  justice  ;  and  we  have  a  strong  persuasion,  that  the  language  of  popular 
religious  books,  and  the  common  mode  of  stating  the  doctrine  of  Christ's  mediation, 
still  communicate  very  degrading  views  of  God's  character.      Channing. 

The  sacrifice  of  Christ  was  never  deemed  by  any  who  did  not  wish  to  calumniate 
the  doctrine  of  atonement,  to  have  made  God  placable,  but  merely  viewed  as  the  means 
appointed  by  divine  wisdom,  through  which  to  bestow  forgiveness.     Magee. 

There  is  a  constant  tendency  in  our  nature  to  be  '  wise  above  what  is  written ;'  and 
to  push  arguments,  and  to  draw  inferences,  which  are  altogether  unauthorized  by  any 
fair  construction  of  the  word  of  God.  The  result  has  been  pernicious,  not  only  in  the 
strife  and  debate,  which  have  so  often  aflilicted  the  church  of  Christ,  but  in  giving  the 
greatest  advantage  to  its  common  enemies.  They  have  associated  these  extravagant 
notions  with  Christianity  itself;  and  gloried  in  their  victory  over  their  feeble  oppon- 
ents, as  though  they  had  gained  a  triumph  over  truth  itself.  This  has  in  no  case, 
perhaps,  been  more  remarkable,  and  more  to  be  regretted,  than  in  the  attacks  which 
have  been  made  on  the  doctrine  of  the  atonement.     Many  of  its  advocates  have  ex- 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  ROMANS.  475 

ceeded  all  the  limits  which  the  Scriptures  and  sober  criticism  prescribe,  and  have 
spoken  so  incautiously  of  the  Supreme  Being  in  his  character  of  Judge  and  Moral 
Governor,  with  the  view  of  establishing  the  necessity  of  an  exact  equivalent,  even  to  the 
minutest  calculation,  being  given  to  his  violated  laws,  as  apparently  to  divest  him  of 
love  and  mercy,  and  to  transform  him  into  a  being,  not  only  of  inflexible  justice,  but 
of  inexorable  wrath,  without  feeling  the  least  relentings  of  compassion  towards  the 
returning  prodigal.  These  representations  have  been  insidiously  identified  with  the 
doctrine  of  the  Atonement,  and  exliibited  as  belonging  to  its  very  essence  :  and  when 
its  adversaries  have  established  the  doctrine  of  the  divine  goodness  and  compassion, 
they  seem  to  think  they  have  given  a  fatal  blow  to  the  doctrine  of  the  Atonement,  and 
that  little  also  remains  than  to  enjoy  the  honors  of  a  triumph.  But  when  this  doctrine 
is  placed  on  its  plain  scriptural  ground,  and  stripped  of  the  ill-judged  appendages  with 
which  some  of  its  injudicious  friends  have  encumbered  it,  it  remains  untouched  by 
such  arguments,  and  will  retain  its  place  till  truth  itself  meets  with  a.  victorious  ad- 
versary.   JerraTn. 

Rom.  V,  15;  p.  242, 1.  31.  For  if  through  the  offence  of  one,  many  were  subject  to 
death,  how  much  more  shall  the  grace  of  God— — through  the  favor  of  one  man,  Jesus 
Christ,  abound  to  the  many.  T.     For,  if  through  the  offence  of  one,  many  he  dead,  much 

more  the  grace  of  God, by  one  man,  Jesus  Christ,  hath  abounded  unto  inany.  R.  T. 

That  the  it  TroT^km,  the  many,  of  the  apostle,  here  means  all  mankinil,  needs  no  proof  to 
any  but  that  person  who  finds  himself  qualified  to  deny  that  all  men  are  mortal.  And 
if  the  many,  that  is,  all  mankind,  have  died  through  the  oflFence  of  one  ;  certainly  the 
gift  ly  grace,  which  abounds  unto  tci/c  ■ttokmih,  the  many,  by  Christ  Jesus,  must  have 
reference  to  every  human  being.  Clarke.  That  It  ttokxoi,  the  many,  is  equivalent  to 
jravTss,  all,  in  these  epistles,  every  body  knows  ;  and  that  this  usage  of  the  phrase  is 
common  to  other  authors.     Wakefield.     Oi  B-oxxoi  is  equivalent  to  Trivn;  and  ttslvtck,  all 

[men]  in  verses  12.  18.     Turner.     Many  be  dead abounded  unto  many  :  that  is,  nf/. 

Wakefield,  Wetstein,  Locke,  &c.  Compare  verses  12.  18,  1  Cor.  xv,  22.  That  this 
is  the  sense  of  the  Greek  word  rendered  many,  in  numerous  passages,  is  allowed  by 
the  best  critics.     Dabney. 

The  Gospel  or  glad  tidings  published  by  Christ,  is  said  to  be  good  tidings  unto  all 
people.  But  if  there  be  no  atonement  made  for  the  sins  of  all  people  ;  the  Gospel, 
instead  of  being  good  news  to  them,  is  not  addressed  to  them  at  all.     Dwight. 

Rom.  vii,  22 ;  p.  245, 1.  1.  /  concur  with  the  law  of  God.  T.  It  is  not  true,  that,  in 
strictness  of  speech,  fallen  man  has  originally  no  principle  of  what  is  right  left  in  him. 
.  .  We  are  not  to  look  on  those  dreadful  pictures,  which  the  sacred  writers  draw  of 
the  most  depraved  of  the  heathen,  as  being  just  representations  without  abatement,  of 
the  natural  state  of  all  mankind.     Seeker. 

It  has  been  said,  neither  unfre^uently,  nor  by  men  void  of  understanding,  that  man 
is  as  depraved  a  being  as  his  faculties  xoill  permit  him  to  he;  but  it  has  been  said  with- 
out consideration,  and  without  truth.  Neither  the  Scriptures  nor  Experience  warrant 
this  assertion.  .  .  We  see,  daily,  many  men,  who  neither  are,  nor  profess  to  be,  Chris- 
tians, and  who,  instead  of  being  wicked  to  a  degree  commensurate  to  the  extent  of 
their  faculties,  go  through  life  in  the  exercise  of  dispositions  so  sincere,  just,  and  ami- 
able, and  in  the  performance  of  actions  so  upright  and  beneficent,  as  to  secure  a  high 
degree  of  respect  and  affection  from  ourselves,  and  from  all  with  whom  they  are  con- 
nected. .  .  Those,  who  make  the  assertion,  will  find  themselves,  if  they  will  examine, 
rarely  believing  that  their  wives  and  children,  though  not  Christians,  are  Fiends. 

Ihcight. 
Ingenuity  is  employed  to  disparage  what  is  interesting  in  the  human  character. 
Whilst  the  bursts  of.  passion  in  the  new-born  child  are  gravely  urged  as  indications  of 
a  native  rooted  corruption ;  its  bursts  of  affection,  its  sweet  smile,  its  innocent  and  ir- 
repressible joy,  its  loveliness  and  beauty,  are  not  listened  to,  though  they  plead  more 
eloquently  its  alliance  with  higher  natures.  The  sacred  and  tender  affections ;  the 
unwearied  watchings  and  cheerful  sacrifices  of  parents  ;  the  reverential,  grateful  as- 


476  APPENDIX. 

siduity  of  children,  smoothing  an  aged  father's  or  mother's  descent  to  the  grave ; 
woman's  love,  stronger  than  death ;  the  friendship  of  brothers  and  sisters ;  the  anxious 
affection,  wliich  tends  around  the  bed  of  sickness ;  the  subdued  voice,  vrfiich  breathes 
comfort  into  the  mourner's  heart ;  all  the  eridearing  offices  which  shed  a  serene  light 
through  our  dwellings ;  these  are  explained  away  by  the  advocates  of  this  gloomy 
theology,  so  as  to  include  no  real  virtue,  so  as  to  consist  with  a  natural  aversion  to 
goodness.     Channing. 

Rom.  viii,  1 ;  p.  245, 1.  9.  Who  walk  not  after  the  flesh,  hut  after  the  Spirit.  R.  T. 
This  last  clause  is  wanting  in  some  of  the  principal  MSS,  Versions,  and  Fathers. 
Griesbach  has  excluded  it  from  the  text,  and  Dr  Tf7tite  says,  certissime  delcnda ;  it 
should  most  undoubtedly  be  expunged.  Clarke.  The  clause,  which  I  have  here  sup- 
pressed, seems  to  have  been  drawn  from  verse  4.  It  is  entirely  omitted  by  the  Ethiopia 
and  Coptic  versions,  and  partly  by  the  Syriac  and  Vulgate.  Wakefield.  Stuart  omits 
the  passage.     Traks. 

Rom.  ix,  5;  p.  247, 1.  5.  Who  is  over  all,  God  perpetually  praised.  T.  Who  is  over 
all,  God  blessed  forever.  R.  T.  Who  is  God  over  all,  blessed  forever.  Stuart.  O 
m  iTFt  TT^VTm  06DC  fiy^o^uTCf  iic  TOO?  atmvuc-  Griesbach  adopts  the  common  Greek 
text.  Tkans.  By  merely  inverting  the  two  words  in  the  Greek,  i  m,  who  is, 
the  passage  will  read,  whose  is  the  God  over  all,  blessed  forever.  Some  of  the 
Polish  brethren,  with  Whitby  and  Taylor,  conjecture  this  to  be  the  true  construc- 
tion of  the  original ;  although  it  wants  the  support  of  any  external  evidence.  Eras- 
mus, Locke,  and  Dr  S.  Clarke,  who  follow  the  present  text,  give  a  diiferent  punctua- 
tion to  the  verse,  which  will  then  read, —  Christ  catne  wlio  is  over  all,  —  God  be  blessed 
forever  :  i.  e.  taking  the  last  clause  as  a  doxology  to  God,  for  such  a  series  of  distinc- 
tions and  blessings.     Dabney. 

Locke  thus  renders  the  last  clause  of  the  verse,  Christ  is  come,  he  who  is  over  all, 
God  be  blessed  for  ever ,  but  he  has  not  attempted  to  vindicate  the  version.     Trans. 

Some  critics  have  proposed  to  distinguish  the  verse  in  the  following  manner  :  of 
whom  were  the  Fathers,  of  ichom  was  the  Christ  according  to  the  flesh.  God,  who.  is  over 
all,  be  blessed  for  evermore  !  Amen.  Or  thus  :  of  whom,  were  the  Fathers,  of  whom  was 
the  Christ  according  to  the  flesh,  who  is  over  all.  God  he  blessed  for  evermore  !  Jimcn. 
Both  these  constructions,  though  the  original  will  certainly  admit  them,  appear  so  awk- 
ward, so  abrupt,  so  incoherent,  that  it  must  be  confessed,  I  never  yet  could  bring  my- 
self to  relish  them  in  the  least  degree.  There  seems  to  be  no  reason  from  the  spirit  of 
the  context,  for  such  an  instantaneous  and  solemn  conversion  from  the  main  subject  to 
the  Deity ;  nor  do  I  believe,  that  a  parallel  instance  of  so  disjointed  an  address  can  be 
produced  from  the  whole  Bible.     Wakefield. 

Who  is  above  all,  God  blessed  for  ever.  Common  sense  must  teach,  what  Vhristians 
have  always  believed,  that  it  is  not  with  respect  to  the  Father,  but  to  the  created  world, 
that  this  august  title  is  given  to  Christ.     Doddridge. 

That  interpretation,  which  refers  these  words  to  the  Father,  neither  comports  with 
the  context,  nor  with  grammatical  construction.     Rosenmllller. 

There  is  no  omission  of  these  important  words  in  any  MS.  or  Version  yet  discovered. 

Clarke. 
The  word  '  God'  in  this  text,  the  authority  of  which  it  has  been  attempted  to  shake, 
is  found  in  every  known  manuscript  of  this  Epistle,  in  every  ancient  version  extant,  and 
in  every  father  who  has  had  occasion  to  cite  the  passage  :  so  that  in  truth,  there  can 
scarcely  be  instanced  a  text  in  the  New  Testament,  in  which  all  the  ancient  authorities 
more  satisfactorily  agree.     Magec. 

Mr  Wakefield's  translation,  '  who  is  as  God  aver  all,  &c,'  is  evidently  indefensible. 

Turner. 

In  regard  to  this  text,  it  may  be  remarked,  that  although   Griesbach  has  filled  his 

margin  with  conjectural  and  other  readings,  he  attributes  no  considerable  weight  to 

any  of  them,  for  all  the  Manv.scripts  of  the  Epistle  to  the  Romans,  which  have  been 

collated,  contain  the  text  as  it  stands;  as  do  all  the  ancient  Versions,  and  nearly  all  the 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  ROMANS-  477. 

Fathers.  ...  In  accordance  with  Greeek  usage,  we  find  five  instances  of  doxology  in 
the  New  Testament,  and  about  forty  in  the  Old,  in  whicli  iuKo-imo;  is  uniformly  placed 
riRST.  .  .  .  The  text  must  be  changed  to  make  out  a  doxology ;  and  we  must  read  J 
©SOS  instead  of  ©sot ;  for  universal  usage  prescribes  luKtyxTos  i  ©.-oc.  .  .  .  All  conjectures 
and  theories  appear  to  be  quite  incompetent  to  explain  away  the  common  rendering  of 
this  verse,  and  the  meaning  connected  with  it.  .  .  .  Neither  the  grammatical  arrange- 
ment of  the  text,  nor  the  sentiments  of  the  apostle  elsewhere,  require  us,  (may  I  not 
say.')  permit  us,  to  give  a  different  interpretation  of  the  words  in  question.  Nor  do 
any  various  readings  of  the  verse  occur,  which  are  of  any  authority  at  all.     Stuart. 

God  blessed  for  ever;  that  is,  God  honored  and  praised  for  ever  by  all.  Mill  on  this 
verse  proves  against  Erasmus,  that  the  omission  of  the  word  ©soc,  God,  in  some  MSS 
of  Cyprian's  works,  and  its  not  being  commented  upon  by  Chrysostom,  is  of  no  value, 
in  opposition  to  the  best  and  most  ancient  MSS  and  versions,  the  Syriac  not  excepted, 
who  all  have  the  word  ©sot  here.  Whitby  in  his  Last  Thoughts,  says  the  true  reading  of 
the  verse  is,  m  esri  Travrm  ©eot,  IV/iose  is  the  God  over  all :  because  by  this  reading  the 
climax  is  completed,  and  the  privilege  in  which  the  Jews  gloried  above  all  others,  of 
having  the  true  God  for  their  God,  is  not  omitted.  But  as  this  reading  is  found  in  no 
copy  whatever,  it  ought  not  to  be  admitted  on  conjecture.*     The  Greek  text  runs  thus; 

KAt  e^  fflV  0  X^lffTOS  TO  H-SLTA  ITA^tCA  0  Q>V  tTTt  ^O-VTOIV  ©SOC  Ct/AC^HTOf  6/C  TCVS  ittmAg  AJU}t]i.       ErasmUS 

proposed  two  methods  of  pointing  and  translating  this  passage .  The  first  is,  to  place  the 
comma  afler  the  word  Truvrm,  all,  so  as  to  join  who  is  over  all,  with  Christ  thus,  Christ 
descended  according  to  the  flesh,  who  is  over  all;  and  to  make  a  separate  sentence  of  the 
clause,  God  he  blessed  for  ever.  The  second  is,  to  end  the  sentence  with  the  word 
ffttgKot,  flesh,  in  this  manner  ;  Christ  descended  according  to  the  flesh,  and  to  make  what 
follows  a  new  sentence,  God  wlio  is  over  all,  be  blessed  for  ever,  namely  for  the  great 
privileges  bestowed  on  the  Jews.  But  as  the  phrase  Blessed  be  God,  occurs  above 
twenty  times  in  scripture,  and  as  often  as  it  occurs,  (See  Luke  i,  68;  2  Cor.,  i,  3; 
Ephes.,  i,  3;  1  Pet.,  i,  3,)  euMyuTC!,  blessed,  goes  before  ©eot,  God,  and  ©ecc  always  has 
the  article  prefixed,  the  common  pointing  and  translation  of  the  clause  o  m  t'Tt  TraaTcm 
0SO5  su\o).»Tof,  who  is  over  all,  God  blessed,  ought  to  be  retained,  even  in  the  opinion  of 
Socinus,  as  more  agreeable  to  the  scripture  phraseology,  than  the  pointing  proposed  by 
Erasmus.     MadknigM. 

Rom.  ix,  11 ;  p.  247,  1.  17.  That  the  purpose  of  God  might  he  accomplished,  and  this 
gratuitously,  not  as  a  claim,  hut  by  his  choice.  T.  That  the  purpose  of  God  according  to 
election  might  stand,  not  of  worlcs,  but  of  him  that  calleth.  R.  T.  That  the  purpose 
of  God  might  stand  by  an  election,  not  on  account  of  worlcs,  but  of  him  wlio  calleth. 
Jacob  ctnd  Esau  are  not  spoken  of  as  individuals,  but  as  representing  the  two 
nations  springing  from  them.  The  election  of  which  the  apostle  speaks,  is  not  an 
election  of  Jacob  to  eternal  life,  but  of  his  posterity  to  be  the  visible  church  and 
people  of  God  on  earth,  and  heirs  of  the  promises  in  their  first  and  literal  meaning, 
agreeably  to  what  Moses  declared,  Deut.  vii,  6, 7, 8;  and  Paul  preached.  Acts  xiii,  17. 

Maeknigkt. 

In  the  New  Testament,  the  word  (decree)  as  referring  to  God,  is  not  used  at  all. 
Whenever  the  subject  is  mentioned  in  the  Scriptures,  the  words  counsel,  purpose, 
cJwice,  pleasure,  will,  or  some  other  equivalent  words,  are  employed  to  express  it. 


Rom.  ix,  13 ;  p.  247, 1.  20.  /  liavc  preferred  Jacob  to  Esau.  T.  Jacob  have  I  lov- 
ed, hut  Esau  have  I  Jutted.  R.  T.  This  verse  is  not  to  be  taken  in  a  personal  but  in  a 
national  sense,  for  God's  preference  of  one  of  them  to  be  his  peculiar  people,  and  to 
possess  the  promised  land,  before  the  other.  This  is  no  arbitrary  interpretation  of  the 
word  hated,  but  one  agreeable  to  the  Hebrew  idiom.     Clarke.    Locke. 

*  Whitby  notes  it  as  '  tlie  ingenious  conjecture  of  a  learned  critic ;'  and  Sparks  observes,  that  '  the  con- 
jecture here  alluded  to,  originated  with  ScUichtingius.*    Trans. 


.47a  APPENDIX. 

Rom.  xi,  2;  p.  249,  I.  13.  He  so  long  acknowledged.  T.  He  foreknew.  R.  T. 
Whom  he  has  loved,  (or  approved)  so  long,  a  Tru^ceyvu:,  for  this  is  evidently  the  mean- 
ing of  the  word  in  this  place.  Clarke.  Ylgoiyiai,  foreknew.  The  last  clause  in  this  ver- 
sion conveys  to  my  mind  no  meaning  whatever.  It  is  thus,  however,  both  clear  and 
pertinent :  '  God  hath  not  cast  off  his  people  whom  heretofore  he  acknowledged.' 

Camphell. 

Rom.  xi,  9;  p.  249,  1.  26.  Their  table  will  become  a  snare.  T.  Lei  their  table  be 
made  a  snare.  R.T.  And  David  saith,  Let  their  table,  &c.  Or,  This  table  shall  be,  &c. 
The  words  may  be  properly  rendered  in' the  future  tense.  Whitby.  As  the  Hebrews 
used  the  Imperative  mode  for  the  Future,  this  passage  may  be  translated,  '  Their  table 
sliall  be  for  a  snare,^  ^c,  and  so  may  be  considered  as  a  prophecy.  Macknight.  What 
David  said  prophetically  to  some  in  his  time,  applies  to  the  hardening  of  the  Jews  on 
the  preaching  of  the  gospel.     Hammond. 

Rom.  xi,  10 ;  p.  249, 1.  28.  Their  eyes  will  be  darkened.  T.  Let  their  eyes  be  darken- 
ed. R.  T.  All  these  words  are  declarative,  and  not  imprecatory.  God  declares  what 
will  be  the  case  with  such  obstinate  unbelievers,  till  they  acknowledge  Jesus  as  the 
promised  Messiah.     Clarke. 

Rom.  xi,  29 ;  p.  250, 1.  22.  JYot  to  he  revoked.  T.  Without  repentance.  R.  T.  The 
gifts,  which  God  has  bestowed  upon  them  ;  and  the  calling,  the  invitation  with  which 
he  has  favored  them,  he  will  never  revoke.  Clarke.  God  will  never  repent  of  the 
blessings,  which  he  freely  bestowed  on  Abraham  and  his  posterity,  and  of  his  calling, 
or  making  them  his  people.  Macknight.  Without  repentance :  that  is,  such  as  he  will 
not  absolutely  revoke.     Taylor's  par.,  cited  by  Ddbney. 

Rom.  xi,  36 ;  p.  250, 1.  32.  Of  him, are  all  things.  Have  you  ever  contem- 
plated the  wonderful  magnificence  of  this  controller  of  the  universe.  .  .  How  inex- 
pressibly great  is  that  being  who  penetrates  at  once  the  recesses,  and  circumscribes 
within  himself  the  boundless  ranges  of  creation  ;  who  pierces  into  the  profound  medi- 
tations of  the  most  profound  intelligence.  .  .  How  transcendent  that  mind,  to  which 
all  other  minds  are  infinitely  inferior.  How  vast  that  comprehension,  to  which  all 
the  sciences  of  all  the  ages  of  the  world,  are  not  less  intelligible  than  the  first  proposi- 
tion of  the  infant's  earliest  lesson.  How  wonderful  is  that  power,  which  wields  with 
equal  ease  the  mightiest  and  the  feeblest  agents  ;  directs  the  resistless  thunderbolt,  or 
wafts  a  feather  through  the  air ;  bursts  out  in  the  imprisoned  lava,  or  rests  on  the 
peaceful  bosom  of  the  lake  ;  rides  in  the  rapid  whirlwind,  or  whispers  in  the  evening 
air.  Think  I  pray  you  of  that  wisdom  which  conducts,  at  the  same  moment,  the  innu- 
merable purposes  of  all  his  creatures,  and  whose  own  grand  purpose  is  equally  accom- 
plished by  the  failure  or  by  the  success  of  all  the  plans  of  all  his  creatures.  Think  of 
him  under  whom  all  agents  operate,  because  by  him  all  beings  exist.  Think  of  him 
who  has  but  to  will  it,  and  all  moving  nature  pauses  in  her  course,  chaos  succeeds  to 
the  harmony  of  innumerable  spheres,  and  eternal  darkness  overwhelms  this  universe 
of  light.     BuckmiTister. 

Rom.  xii,  20;  p.  251,  1.  21.  You  wUlheap  coals  of  fire  on  his  head.  T.  This 
strong  expression  is  a  metaphor,  supposed  to  be  taken  from  the  metals,  by  cover- 
ing the  ore  with  burning  coals.  The  meaning  is,  that  by  constant,  persevering  kind- 
ness to  an  enemy,  you  will  melt  down  the  hardest  heart,  and  bring  it  to  a  better  tem- 
per.    Mbid  Abbot. 

Rom.  xiii,  1 ;  p.  251, 1.  24.  Let  every  individual  be  subject  to  the  superior  authorities. 
T.  Let  every  soul  be  sidiject  unto  the  higher  powers.  R.  T.  Let  every  soul  be  subject  to 
the  supreme  authorities.     Stuart. 

Subjects  are  bound  faithfully  to  obey  their  rulers,  when  acting  agreeably  to  the  laws, 
in  all  cases  not  contrary  to  the  will  of  God,  as  unfolded  in  the  Scriptures.  .  .  Subjects 
are  not  bound  to  obey  the  commands  of  magistrates,  as  such,  when  they  are  not  war- 
ranted by  law.  The  law  creates  magistrates  ;  and  defines  all  their  powers,  and  rights. 
Whenever  they  require  that,  which  is  not  warranted  by  law,  they  cease  to  act  as  ma- 
gistrates ;  and  return  to  the  character  of  mere  citizens.    In  this  character  they  have 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE   ROMANS.  479 

plainly  no  authority  over  their  fellow-citizens.  It  is  not  the  man  bat  the  magistrate, 
whom  God  requires  us  to  obey.  .  .  Despotism,  according  to  the  universal  and  uniform 
experience  of  man,  has  regularly  been  fatal  to  every  human  interest.  .  Is  there  any 
principle,  either. scriptural,  or  rational,  which  demands  of  any  nation  such  a  sacrifice  .•" 
But  were  we  to  admit,  that  such  a  sacrifice  might  lawfully  be  made  by  us,  so  far  as 
ourselves  only  are  concerned,  it  is  further  to  be  remembered,  that  we  are  entrusted 
with  all  tlie  possessions,  privileges,  blessings,  and  hopes,  of  our  offspring  through  every 
succeeding  generation.  Guardians  appointed  by  God  himself,  how  can  we  fail  of  dis- 
charging punctiliously  this  sacred  trust .'  The  deposit  is  of  value,  literally  immense. 
It  involves  the  education,  the  comfort,  the  safety,  the  usefulness,  the  religious  system, 
tlie  morals,  the  piety,  and  the  eternal  life,  of  millions,  which  can  neither  be  known  nor 
calculated.  This  is  a  trust  which  cannot  lawfully  be  given  up,  unless  in  obedience  to 
a  known  and  unquestionable  command  of  God  :  and  no  such  command  can  be  pleaded. 
Equally  important  is  it,  that  we  prevent,  (for,  under  God  none  but  we  can  prevent,) 
the  contrary  innumerable  and  immeasurable  evils.  .  .  It  is  unquestionably  evident, 
that  nations  are  bound,  so  far  as  it  is  possible,  to  maintain  their  freedom,  and  to  resist 
every  serious  encroachment  upon  it,  with  sutfh  efforts,  as  are  necessary  for  its  preser- 
vation.    Dwight. 

In  all  nations  of  the  earth,  there  is  what  may  be  called  a  Constitution,  a  plan  by 
which  a  particular  country  or  state  is  governed  ;  and  this  constitution  is  less  or  more 
calculated  to  promote  the  interests  of  the  community.  The  civil  governor  agrees  to 
rule  according  to  that  constitution  :  and  if  he  govern  according  to  the  constitution, 
nothing  can  justify  rebellion  against  his  authority.     Clarke. 

He  who  setteth  himself  in  opposition  to  the  power.  Verse  2.  Since  the  Power  of 
which  the  apostle  speaks  in  botli  verses,  is  the  form  of  government,  and  not  the  Kulers 
of  a  country,  the  subjection  to  the  liigher  powers  enjoined  in  the  first  verse,  is  not  an 
unlimited  passive  obedience  to  rulers  in  things  sinful,  but  an  obedience  to  the  whole- 
some laws  enacted  for  the  good  of  the  community,  by  common  consent,  or  by  those 
who  according  to  the  constitution  of  the  state,  have  the  power  of  enacting  laws. . .  The 
opposition  to,  and  resistance  of -the  power,  forbidden  in  the  second  verse,  is  an  opposition 
to  and  resistance  of  the  established  government,  by  disobeying  the  wholesome  laws  of 
the  state  ;  or  by  attempting  to  overturn  the  government,  from  a  factious  disposition,  or 
from  ill  will  to  the  persons  in  power,  or  from  an  ambitious  desire  to  possess  the  govern- 
ment ourselves.  These  precepts  therefore,  do  not  enjoin  obedience  to  the  magistrates 
in  things  sinful,  but  in  things  not  sinful ;  and  more  especially  in  things  morally  good, 
and  which  tend  to  tlie  welfare  of  tlie  state.  Besides,  as  in  the  following  verses,  the 
apostle  has  shown  from  the  nature  and  end  of  their  office,  that  the  duty  of  rulers  is  to 
promote  the  happiness  of  the  people,  it  is  plain  from  the  apostle  himself,  that  they  who 
refuse  to  do  things  sinful,  or  even  things  inconsistent  with  the  fundamental  laws  of 
the  state,  do  not  resist  the  ordinance  of  God,  although  these  things  should  be  com- 
manded by  a  lawful  magistrate  ;  because  in  commanding  them  he  exceeds  his  power. 
And,  that  opposition  to  a  ruler,  who  endeavors  utterly  to  subvert  the  constitution,  or 
to  enslave  a  free  people,  is  warranted  not  only  by  right  reason,  but  by  the  gospel,  which 
teaches,  that  rulers  are  the  servants  of  God,  for  good  to  the  people,  and  are  supported  by 
God  only  in  the  just  execution  of  their  office.     Macknight. 

It  becomes  you  to  remember,  that  government  is  a  divine  institution,  essential  to  the 
improvement  of  our  nature,  the  spring  of  industry  and  enterprise,  the  sliield  of  pro- 
perty and  life,  the  refuge  of  the  weak  and  oppressed.  It  is  to  the  security  which  laws 
afford,  that  we  owe  tlie  successful  application  of  human  powers.  Government,  though 
often  perverted  by  ambition  and  other  selfish  passions,  still  holds  a  distinguished  rank 
among  those  influences,  by  which  man  has  been  rescued  from  barbarism,  and  conduct- 
ed through  the  luder  stages  of  society,  to  the  habits  of  order,  the  diversified  employ- 
ments and  dependencies,  the  refined  and  softened  manners,  the  intellectual,  moral  and 
religious  improvements  of  the  age  in  which  we  live.     We  are  bound  to  respect  gov- 


480  APPENDIX. 

ernment,  as  the  great  security  for  social  happiness ;  and  we  should  carefully  cherish 
that  habit  of  obedience  to  the  laws,  without  which  the  ends  of  government  cannot  be 
accomplished.  All  wanton  opposition  to  the  constituted  authorities ;  all  censures  of 
rulers,  originating  in  a  factious,  aspiring,  or  envious  spirit ;  all  unwillingness  to  sub- 
mit to  laws,  which  are  directed  to  the  welfare  of  the  community,  should  be  rebuked 
and  repressed  by  the  frowns  of  public  indignation. 

It  is  impossible,  that  all  the  regulations  of  the  wisest  government  should  equally 
benefit  every  individual ;  and  sometimes  the  general  good  will  demand  arrangements, 
which  will  interfere  with  the  interests  of  particular  members  or  classes  of  the  nation. 
In  such  circumstances  the  individual  is  bound  to  regard  the  inconveniences  under 
which  he  sufiers,  as  inseparable  from  a  social,  connected  state,  as  the  result  of  the 
condition  which  God  has  appointed,  and  not  as  the  fault  of  his  rulers  ;  and  he  should 
cheerfully  submit,  recollecting  how  much  more  he  receives  from  the  community,  than 
he  is  called  to  resign  to  it.  Disaffection  towards  a  government,  which  is  administered 
with  a  view  to  the  general  welfare,  is  a  great  crime  ;  and  such  opposition  even  to  a 
bad  government,  as  springs  from  and  spreads  a  restless  temper,  an  unwillingness  to 
yield  to  wholesome  and  necessary  restraint,  deserves  no  better  name.  In  proportion 
as  a  people  want  a  conscientious  regard  to  the  laws,  and  are  prepared  to  evade  them  by 
fraud,  or  to  arrest  their  operation  by  violence  —  in  that  proportion  they  need  and 
deserve  an  arbitrary  government,  strong  enough  to  crush  at  a  blow  every  symptom  of 
opposition. 

These  general  remarks  on  the  duty  of  submission,  are  by  no  means  designed  to  teach 
that  rulers  are  never  to  be  opposed.  Because  I  wish  to  guard  you  against  that  turbu- 
lent and  discontented  spirit,  which  precipitates  free  communities  into  anarchy,  and 
thus  prepares  them  for  chains,  you  will  not  consider  me  as  asserting,  that  all  opposition 
to  government,  whatever  [be  the  occasion,  or  whatever  the  form,  is  to  be  branded  as  a 
crime.  The  citizen  has  rights  as  well  as  duties.  Government  is  instituted  for  one  and 
a  single  end,  —  the  benefit  of  the  governed,  the  protection,  peace,  and  welfare  of  socie- 
ty :  and  when  it  is  perverted  to  other  objects,  to  purposes  of  avarice,  ambition  or  party 
spirit,  we  are  authorised  and  even  bound  to  make  such  opposition,  as  is  suited  to  re- 
store it  to  its  proper  end,  to  reader  it  as  pure  as  the  imperfection  of  our  nature  and 
state  will  admit. 

The  scriptures  have  sometimes  been  thought  to  enjoin  an  unqualified,  unlimited  sub- 
jection to  the  '  higher  powers  ;'  but  in  the  passages,  which  seem  so  to  teach,  it  is  sup- 
posed, that  these  powers  are  '  ministers  of  God  for  good,'  are  a  terror  to  evil  doers, 
and  an  encouragement  to  those  that  do  well.  When  a  government  wants  this  charac- 
ter, when  it  becomes  an  engine  of  oppression,  the  scriptures  enjoin  subjection  no  long- 
er. Expediency  may  make  it  our  duty  to  obey,  but  the  government  has  lost  its  rights ; 
it  cam  no  longer  urge  its  claims  as  an  ordinance  of  God.     Channing. 

Christianity  teaches  true  equality  of  rights,  true  spiritual  and  civil  freedom. . .  It  de- 
cides, in  its  very  nature,  that  all  governments,  and  all  civil  orders  and  distinctions, 
should  be  only  for  the  public  good.  It  admits  no  divine  right  of  one  man  to  be  lord 
over  another  ;  it  is  at  open  and  eternal  war  with  all  the  mere  claims  of  birth,  and  pride , 
and  oppression.  The  universal  good,  the  equal  rights,  the  peaceful  state  of  man,  is 
the  object  at  which  it  aims  ;  and  whatever  is  incompatible  with  these,  is  incompatible 
with  the  fundamental  principles  of  the  great '  law  of  liberty  and  love.'     Stuart. 

Rom.  xiv,  4  ;  p.  252, 1.  13.  To  his  oicn  master  he  stands  or  falls.  T.  It  was  a  case 
of  conscience  to  which  the  apostle  referred,  and  in  all  cases  of  conscience,  whether  of 
faith  or  practice,  we  are  to  satisfy  our  own  minds,  and  are  amenable  only  to  God. . . 
Self-evident  as  this  proposition  may  be,  there  have  been  many,  in  all  ages,  and  all 
churches,  who  have  not  discerned  it,  who  have  erected  a  tribunal,  and  arraigned  their 
brother,  and  sat  in  judgment  on  his  faith,  and  passed  sentence  of  condemnation  or  ac- 
quittal. It  is  because  this  proposition  is  denied,  or  forgotten,  or  disregarded,  that  there 
is  so  much  contention  among  Christians  about  the  mode  of  faith.     If  every  man  was 


PAUL'S  FIRST  LETTER  TO  THE  CORINTHIANS.  481 

persuaded  that  his  brother  was  answerable  to  God,  and  not  to  him,  for  his  opinions, 
and  would  act  agreeably  to  this  persuasion,  there  would  be  an  end  of  all  this  conten- 
tion,    diaries  Lowell. 

Rom.  xiy,  33,  23;  p.  253, 1.  1.  You  have  conscious  rectitude.  T.  Hast  thou  faith. 
R.  T.  The  tetra  faith  seems  to  signify,  in  this  place,  a.  full  persuasion  in  a  man's  mind 
that  he  is  right,  that  what  he  does  is  lawful,  and  has  the  approbation  of  God  and  his 
conscience.  Clarke.  The  scope  of  this  reasoning  shows  that  nothing  is  here  meant  by 
faith,  but  a  conviction  of  the  truth,  in  regard  to  the  article  of  which  he  had  been  treat- 
ing, the  equality  of  days  and  meats  in  point  of  sanctity  under  the  gospel  dispensation. 
The  same  is  evidently  the  meaning  of  the  word,  verse  23 ;  Whatsoever  is  not  of  faith, 
is  sin;  where  without  regard  to  the  morality  of  an  action,  abstractly  considered, 
that  is  concluded  to  be  sin  which  is  done  by  one  who  doubts  of  its  lawfulness.  Camp- 
bell. Augustine  mistook  the  meaning  of  this  text,  when  from  it  he  inferred  that  all 
the  best  actions  of  the  heathen  were  no  better  than  splendid  sins.    Macknight. 

There  are  few  readers  who  have  not  remarked  that  the  three  last  verses  of  this  Epis- 
tle, (chapter  xvi,  25,  26,  27,)  appear  to  stand  in  their  present  place,  without  any  ob- 
vious connexion  ;  and  apparently  after  the  Epistle  is  concluded.  And  it  is  well  known 
to  critics  that  two  MSS  in  uncial  letters,  the  Codex  A  and  I,  with  upwards  of  100 
others,  together  with  the  Sclavonic,  the  latter  Syriac,  and  Jirahic,  add  those  verses  at  the 
end  of  the  14th  chapter.  The  transposition  is  acknowledged  by  Cyril,  Chrysostom, 
Theodoret,  Ecumcnius,  Theophylact,  Damaseenus,  and  Tertullian,  see  Wetstein.  Gries- 
bach  inserts  them  at  the  end  of  this  chapter  as  their  proper  place  ;  and  most  learned 
men  approve  of  this  transposition.     Clarke. 


PAUL  S    FIRST    LETTER    TO    THE    CORINTHIANS. 

1  Cor.  i,  21 ;  p.  256, 1.  35.  Tlie  world  by  its  wisdom  knew  not  God.  T.  The  world 
by  wisdom  knew  not  God.  R.  T.  The  human  mind  needs  a  support.  The  great  mas- 
ters of  antiquity,  of  the  Grecian  and  Roman  schools,  sought  it  in  philosophy.  And 
they  brought  to  the  search  a  maturity  and  perfection  of  judgment,  and  a  strength  of 
resolution ;  and  they  poured  upon  their  way  a  blaze  of  intellect  which  none  can  hope  to 
surpass,  and  few  to  equal,  yet  their  search  ended  in  conjecture  merely.     Isaac  C.  Bates. 

The  doctrines  of  the  Bible,  its  discoveries,  its  code  of  morals,  and  its  means  of 
grace,  are  not  only  overwhelming  evidence  of  its  Divine  origin,  but  they  confound 
the  pretensions  of  all  other  systems,  by  showing  the  narrow  range  and  the  feeble 
efforts  of  human  reason,  even  when  under  the  sway  of  the  most  exalted  understand- 
ing, and  enlightened  by  the  accumulated  treasures  of  science  and  learning.    Kent. 

Even  philosophers  are  apt  to  bewilder  themselves  in  the  subtilty  of  their  specula- 
tions ;  and  we  have  seen  some  go  so  far  as  to  deny  the  reality  of  all  moral  distinctions. 

Hume. 

The  plain  meaning  of  the  verse  is,  that  the  wise  men  of  the  world,  especially  the 
Greek  philosophers,  who  possessed  every  advantage  that  human  nature  could  have, 
independently  of  a  divine  revelation,  and  who  had  cultivated  their  minds  to  the  utter- 
most, could  never,  by  their  learning,  wisdom,  and  industry,  find  out  God  :  nor  had  the 
most  refined  philosophers  among  them,  just  and  correct  views  of  the  Divine  Nature  : 
nor  of  that  in  which  human  happiness  consists.     Clarke. 

1  Cor.  ii,  14  ;  p.  257, 1.  38.  The  animal  man.  T.  The  natural  man.  R.  T.  The 
original  word  would  be  more  properly  translated  '  the  animal  man,'  —  the  man,  whose 
animal  propensities  and  powers  only  have  been  developed,  and  whose  spiritual  capaci- 
ties have  all  been  left  unexercised  and  uncultivated.     Cazneau  Palfrey. 

ICor.  ii,  15;    p.  257, 1.  40.     The  spiritual  man.    T.     He  that  is  spiritual.    R.  T.    It 
is  the  distinction  of  the  Christian,  that  he  lives  for  the  soul,  for  his  intellectual  and 
moral  nature,  for  that  part  of  him  which  is  noblest  now,  and  which  alone  shall  live  for 
ever.    He  has  passed  out  of  the  animal,  into  the  spiritual,  life.     Henry  Ware,  Jr. 
61 


482  APPENDIX. 

1  Cor.  iii,  7;  p.  258,  1.  7.  So  that  neither  is  he  who  plants  amy  thing.  T.  So  then 
neither  is  he  that  planteth  any  thing.  R.  T.  So  that  neither  the  planter  is  any  thing. 
This  is  said  after  the  manner  of  the  easterns,  who  represent  things  comparatively 
small,  as  nothing.    Macknight, 

1  Cor.  iv,  1 ;  p.  258, 1.  34.  Dispensers  of  the  secret  purposes  of  God.  T.  Dispensers 
to  mankind  of  the  gracious  purposes  of  heaven,  heretofore  concealed,  and  therefore 
denominated  secrets.  Campbell.  The  same  writer  thinks  that  the  word  mystery,  in 
the  New  Testament,  usually  refers  to  secret  things  that  are  openly  revealed ;  and  not 
to  any  thing,  in  its  own  nature  dark  and  inconceivable.     Tkans. 

1  Cor.  V,  9 ;  p.  259, 1. 44.  /  have  vyritten  to  you  in  this  letter.  T.  /  wrote  unto  you  in 
an  epistle.  R.  T.  The  words  in  the  original  are,  Ej/ga^*  "i""  ^^  ''"  ^"'"''''"M,  the 
literal  version  of  which  is,  /  have  written  to  you  in  the  Epistle,  or,  in  this  Epistle;  that 
is,  in  the  former  part  of  it ;  where,  in  fact,  we  find  the  very  thing  which  he  says,  that 
he  had  written :  see  verses  2.  5,  6,  of  this  same  5th  chapter.  But  it  is  thought  by 
learned  and  judicious  commentators,  that  the  words  following.  Nun  Ji  ej,ja»).a  vftiv, 
but  now  I  have  written  unto  you,  require  that  we  should  understand  the  former  clause, 
as  relating  to  some  former  time ;  but  a  careful  attention  to  the  context  will  convince 
us  that  this  reference  is  by  no  means  necessary.    Mexander. 

1  Cor.  ix,  22 ;  p.  264, 1.  2.  That  I  might  save  all.  T.  That  I  might  by  all  means 
save  some.  R.  T.  On  this  clause,  there  are  some  very  important  readings  found  in  the 
MSS  and  Versions.  Instead  of  jravTac  T/vac  o-ao-a,  '.that  I  might  by  all  means  save 
some  ;  ^ntwaf  cum-ai,  that  I  might  save  all,  is  the  reading  of  D  E  F  Gr,  Syriac,  Vulgate, 
Ethiopic,  all  the  Itala,  and  several  of  the  Fathers.  This  reading  Bishop  Pearce  pre- 
fers, because  it  is  more  agreeable  to  St  Paul's  meaning  here,  and  exactly  agrees  with 
what  he  says  chapter  x,  33 ;  and  makes  his  design  more  extensive  and  noble.  Wake- 
field also  prefers  this  reading.  Clarke.  It  is  noted  by  Griesbach  as  a  probable  reading, 
though  he  adopts  the  other.  Trans.  The  Vulgate,  Syriac,  and  Ethiopic  versions  read 
simply  —  TTAvToLs  iruiru  :  which  I  follow.  —  And  the  Vulgate,  Ethiopic,  and  Coptic  agree 
in  reading  sratu  or  TrmTct  at  the  beginning  of  the  next  verse.     Wakefield. 

1  Cor.  X,  9 ;  p.  264, 1.  24.  JVor  let  us  grievously  tempt  Christ.  T.  I  follow  the 
Ethiopic  version  and  the  Alexandrine  MSS  in  reading  Qmy,  God,  for  Xjio-tov,  Christ: 
an  error,  which  probably  arose  from  the  abbreviated  mode  of  writing.     Wakefield. 

Instead  of  X^kttov,  Christ;  several  MSS  and  a  few  Versions,  have  Kugisv,  the  Lord, 
and  some  few  @m,  God.  But  though  some  respectable  MSS  have  the  Lord,  instead  of 
Christ;  yet  this  latter  has  the  greatest  proportion  of  authority  on  its  side.     Clarke. 

Griesbach  leaves  Xgio-TOv,  Christ,  in  the  text,  but  inserts  Kugiov,  Lord,  in  the  margin, 
as  a  rival  reading.    Trans. 

Shall  we  take  the  report  of  Griesbach  upon  the  evidence  of  the  MSS  and  Versions  ? 
What  effect  do  these  variations  of  the  MSS  produce  upon  his  judgment  ?  None  what- 
ever to  lead  him  to  disturb  the  usual  reading  of  the  text :  which,  on  the  fullest  inves- 
tigation, and  after  the  interval  even  between  the  first  and  second  editions  of  his  work, 
allowing  ample  time  for  further  consideration,  he  has  pronounced  to  be  the  true  one. 
Erasmus  acknowledges  '  Christ'  as  the  genuine  reading  without  dispute.  Locke  does 
the  same.  RosenmOUer  does  the  same.  Wolf,  Mill,  and  Whitby  do  the  same.  The 
last  of  these  indeed  asserts,  that  the  case  is  so  clear,  that  '  this  reading  ought  not  to 
be  questioned.'  In  truth,  there  can  be  no  reasonable  doubt  which  way  the  evidence 
lies  as  to  the  true  reading.    Magee. 

Most  commentators  suppose,  the  person  tempted  by  the  Israelites  was  Christ,  be- 
cause he  is  mentioned  immediately  before.  But  that  supposition  makes  Christ  the 
person  who  spoke  the  law  to  the  Israelites  at  Sinai,  contrary,  I  think,  to  Hebrews  i,  1, 
where  it  is  said,  God  who  spake  to  the  fathers  by  the  prophets,  liath  in  these  last  days 
spoken  to  us  by  his  Son.  For  God  who  spoke  to  the  fathers  by  the  prophets,  being  the 
person  who  hath  spoken  to  us  by  his  Son,  he  cannot  be  the  Son.  See  also  Heb.  ii,  2, 
3;  xii,  26.  I,  therefore,  think  that  the  person  tempted  by  tlie  Israelites  was  God  the 
Father,  and  that  the  word,  God,  might  be  supplied  as  properly  as  the  word  Christ. 


PAUL'S  FIRST  LETTER  TO  THE  CORINTHIANS.  483 

Yet  I  have  not  ventured  to  insert  it  in  the  translation,  lest  it  should  be  thought  too  bold 
an  innovation;  though  I  am  sensible  it  is  the  true  method  of  completing  the  sentence. 

Macknight. 

1  Cor.  xi,  27;  p.  266, 1.  18.  Profanes  the  body.  T.  Sliall  be  guilty  of  the  body.  R. 
T.  It  is  certain  that  an  alteration  ought  to  be  made  in  the  translation  of  tvox's  i'r'ra.i, 
shall  be  guilty  of,  for  as  it  stands  in  the  text,  it  is  not  English,  and  nothing  but  habit  can 
make  us  digest  it.    Symonds. 

1  Cor.  xi,  29  ;  p.  266, 1.  21.  Eats  and  drinks  correction  to  himself.  T.  Eateth  and 
drinketh  damnation  to  himself .  R.  T.  Judgment.  H.  R.  T/i^ifta.,  judgment,  punishment; 
and  yet  this  is  not  unto  damnation,  for  the  judgment  or  punishment  inflicted  upon  the 
disorderly  and  the  profane  was  intended  for  their  emendation ;  for  in  verse  32,  it  is 
said,  when  we  lire  judged,  xgiyofteni,  we  are  chastened,  fruiSimfitSm,  corrected  as  a  father 
does  his  children,  that  we  should  not  be  condemned  with  the  world.     Clarke. 

There  is  so  great  danger  of  the  word  '  damnation'  being  understood  here  in  too  strong 
a  sense,  that  it  would  be  much  safer  and  more  exact  to  translate  it,  (as  it  is  often  trans- 
lated elsewhere,  and  once  in  a  few  verses  after  this  passage,  and  from  what  follows 
ought  undeniably  to  be  translated  here),  '  judgment,'  or  '  condemnation.'     Seeker. 

I  think  it  the  most  unhappy  mistake  in  all  our  version  of  the  Bible,  that  the  word 
xgi|Ua  is  here  rendered  damnation.  It  has  raised  a  dread  in  tender  minds  which  has 
greatly  obstructed  the  comfort  and  edification  they  might  have  received  from  this  ordi- 
nance. The  apostle  afterwards  says,  we  are  judged,  (that  is,  as  he  afterwards  explains 
it,  we  are  corrected),  that  we  may  not  be  condemned;  which  plainly  shows  that  the  judg- 
ments spoken  of,  might  be  fatherly  chastisements.     Doddridge. 

The  damnation  here  spoken  of  means  worldly  punishment;  or,  as  we  say,  judgment 
upon  the  offender  in  this  world,  and  not  everlasting  perdition  in  the  world  to  come,  as 
the  term  damnation  commonly  signifies  in  our  mouths.     Foley. 

1  Cor.  xiii,  1 ;  p.  267, 1.  41.  Have  not  love.  T.  Have  not  charity.  R.  T.  Wiclif, 
translating  from  the  Vulgate,  has  the  word  charity,  and  him  our  authorized  version  fol- 
lows. But  Coverdale,  Matthews,  Cranmer,  and  the  Geneva  Bible,  have  love ;  which  is 
adopted  by  recent  translators  and  commentators  in  general ;  among  whom  the  chief 
are  Dodd,  Pearce,  Purver,  Wakefield,  and  Wesley  ;  all  these  strenuously  contend  that 
the  word  charity,  which  is  now  confined  to  almsgiving,  is  utterly  improper  ;  and  that 
the  word  love  alone  expresses  the  apostle's  sense.  As  the  word  charity  seems  now  to 
express  little  else  than  almsgiving,  which,  performed  even  to  the  uttermost  of  a  man's 
power,  is  nothing,  if  he  lack  what  the  apostle  terms  aj/aim,  and  which  we  here  trans- 
late charity  ;  it  is  best  to  omit  the  use  of  a  word  in  this  place,  which,  taken  in  its  ordi- 
nary signification,  makes  the  apostle  contradict  himself;  see  verse  3.  Though  I  give 
all  my  goods  to  feed  the  poor,  and  have  not  charity,  it  profiteth  me  nothing.  —  That  is, 
'  though  I  have  the  utmost  charity,  and  act  in  every  respect  according  to  its  dic- 
tates ;  yet  if  I  have  TWt  charity  my  utmost  charity  is  unprofitable.'  Therefore,  to  shun 
this  contradiction,  and  the  probable  misapplication  of  the  term.  Love  had  better  be 
substituted  for  Chakitv.     Clarke. 

1  Cor.  xiv,  2 ;  p.  268, 1.  15.  He  who  speaks  in  an  unknown  language.  T.  He  that 
speaketh  in  an  ujikruium  tongue.  R.  T.  He  who  speaketh  in  a  foreign  language.  Mack- 
night.  There  was  no  reason  in  rendering  yxaa-ira.,  to  put  unknown  in  Italics,  before 
the  word  Umgue,  a  strange  or  unknown  tongue  being  one  very  common  signification 
in  the  best  authors.     Campbell. 

1  Cor.  xiv,  12;  p.  268,  1.  36.  nvtu/xura,  is  very  properly  rendered  spiritual  gifts: 
it  means  no  less  in  the  apostle  Paul's  language ;  but  there  was  no  propriety  in  distin- 
guishing the  word  gifts  by  the  Italic  letter  :  for  7ntv/xa.ra,  a  substantive,  can,  in  no  in- 
stance, be  rendered  barely  by  the  adjective  spiritual.     Campbell. 

1  Cor.  XV,  26 ;  p.  270, 1.  32.  Tlie  last  enemy,  even  death,  will  be  destroyed.  T.  JTie 
last  enemy  that  shall  be  destroyed  is  death.  R.  T.  TTie  last  enemy,  death,  shall  be  de- 
stroyed. The  common  version  of  this  passage,  as  Hallet  observes,  implies  that  there 
are  some  enemies  who  shall  not  be  destroyed  ;  which  is  wrong.  For  all  enemies  shall 
be  destroyed,  verse  25.    Macknight. 


484  APPENDIX. 

1  Cor.  XV,  33 ;  p.  270, 1.  46.  Vicious  intercourse.  T.  Evil  communications.  R.  T. 
No  Englishman,  if  he  meant  to  be  understood,  would  express  the  sense  of  the  original 
by  the  phrase  evil  communications,  at  this  time  of  day  at  least.     Wakefield. 

1  Cor.  XV,  55 ;  p.  271, 1.  37.  Where,  thy  victory,  O  hades  !  T.  0  grave,  where  is  thy 
victory  7  R.  T.  Hades,  which  we  here  translate  grave,  is  generally  understood  to  be 
the  place  of  separate  spirits.  Clarke.  The  word  afns,  translated  the  grave,  literally 
signifies  the  invisible  world,  or  the  place  of  departed  spirits.     Macknight. 

1  Cor.  XV,  58;  p.  271, 1.  40.  Mways  abounding  in  the  work  of  the  Lord.  T.  The 
doctrine  of  the  resurrection  appears  to  have  been  thought  of  much  more  consequence 
among  the  primitive  Christians  than  it  is  now  !  How  is  this :"  The  apostles  were  con- 
tinually insisting  on  it,  and  exciting  the  followers  of  God  to  diligence,  obedience,  and 
cheerfulness  through  it.  And  their  successors  in  the  present  day  seldom  mention  it! 
So  apostles  preached  ;  and  so  primitive  Christians  believed :  so  we  preach,  and  so  our 
hearers  believe.  There  is  not  a  doctrine  in  the  Gospel  on  which  more  stress  is  laid  : 
and  there  is  not  a  doctrine  in  the  present  system  of  preaching,  which  is  treated  with 
more  neglect !     Clarke, 


PAUL  S    SECOND    LETTER    TO    THE    CORINTHIANS. 

2  Cor.  i,  17,  to  20,  inclusive ;  p.  273, 1.  35.     When  therefore,  I  intended  this,  did  I 

really  show  any  inconstancy  7 For  all  the  promises  of  God,  announced  through  us, 

were  confirmed  in  hijn,  and  verified  in  him,  to  the  glory  of  God.  T.     When  I  therefore  was 

thus  minded,  did  I  use  lightness  7 For  all  the  promises  of  God  in  him  are  yea,  and 

in  him  Amen,  unto  the  glory  of  God  by  us.  R.  T.  Wakefield  in  his  note  on  the  Letter 
to  Philemon,  observes,  *  I  would  gladly  have  followed  my  inchnation  on  many  other 
occasions,  in  anglicising  the  peculiar  phraseology  of  the  original,  if  prejudice  could 
have  borne  it ;  but  too  many  still  look  with  pious  admiration  on  unintelligible  obscu- 
rity ;  and  are,  doubtless,  much  edified  thereby.'  Regarding  public  prejudice  as  en- 
titled to  no  such  respect,  and  having  long  since  become  divested  of  all  fear  of  man,  I 
have  diligently  labored  through  the  entire  translation ,  to  explore  the  sentiment,  amid  the 
deep  obscurity  of  exploded  diction ;  and  to  present,  with  integrity,  what  was  deemed 
most  correct  and  acceptable,  —  regardless  of  results,  fearless  of  hostile  opinions. 

Trans. 

2  Cor.  iv,  3 ;  p.  275, 1.  34.  It  is  veiled  to  those  who  ruin  themselves;  by  lokom  the 
God  of  this  world  has  blinded  the  minds  of  the  unbelievers.  T.  Jt  is  hid  to  them  that  are 
lost.  In  whom  the  god  of  this  world  liath  blinded  the  minds  of  them  which  believe  not.  R. 
T.  What  idea  can  any  reader  form  of  Satan's  blinding  the  minds  of  them  who  be- 
lieve not,  in  other  persons  who  are  lost.     Macknight. 

2  Cor.  V,  2 ;  p.  276, 1. 19.  Desiring  permanently  to  occupy  our  heavenly  habitation.  T. 
Desiring  to  be  clothed  upon  with  our  house  which  is  from  heaven.  R.  T.  To  be  clothed 
upon  with  our  Iwuse.  This  is  a  jumble  of  metaphors  which  no  ordinary  reader  can 
understand.    Macknight. 

2  Cor.  vi,  6 ;  p.  277, 1.  20.  By  a  pious  spirit.  T.  By  the  Holy  Ghost.  R.  T.  By  a 
lioly  spirit.  Ev  naiixtLTi  aym.  Others  translate  this  by  the  Holy  Spirit,  understanding 
thereby,  the  spiritual  gifls  with  which  the  ministers  of  the  gospel  were  furnished. 
But  as  in  the  following,  imd.(jM  ©eou,  the  power  of  God,  which  no  doubt  signifies  the 
power  of  miracles,  is  mentioned  separately  ;  and  as  a  holy  spirit,  is  placed  among  the 
good  dispositions  which  the  ministers  of  the  gospel  were  to  possess,  I  think  it  signifies 
a  well  regulated  spirit.     Macknight. 

2  Cor.  xi,  1 ;  p.  281, 1. 11.  /  wish.  T.  Would  to  God.  R.  T.  O^sJiov  imiXi'rBe  fuu 
|W«gov*  as  the  word  God  is  not  mentioned  here,  it  would  have  been  much  better  to  have 
translated  the  passage  literally  thus  :  I  wish  ye  could  bear  a  little  with  me.  The  too 
frequent  use  of  this  sacred  name,  produces  a  familiarity  with  it  that  is  not  at  all  con- 
ducive to  reverence  and  pious  fear.     Clarke. 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE   GALATIANS.  485 

2  Cor.  xii,  11 ;  p.  283, 1.  2.  Thmigh  I  am  nothing.  T.  Though  I  he  nothing.  R.  T. 
Though  I  have  been  thus  set  at  nought  by  your  false  apostle  ;  and  though,  in  conse- 
quence of  what  he  has  said,  some  of  you  have  been  ready  to  consider  me  as  nothing. 
This  must  be  the  meaning  of  the  apostle,  as  the  following  verses  prove.     Clarke. 

2  Cor.  xiii,  5 ;  p.  283, 1.  38.  Examine  yourselves.  T.  It  is  above  all  things  interest- 
ing to  know  in  what  measure  our  lives  are  conformed  to  the  will  of  our  heavenly 
Father,  and  to  the  example  of  our  beloved  Saviour,  whose  blessed  memory  is  the  light 
of  the  world.  We  can  only  learn  our  religious  character  by  examination  of  our  own 
hearts ;  .and  when  we  reflect  upon  the  great  importance  and  high  interest  of  moral  ex- 
cellence, and  the  ruin  which  may  follow  self-deception  upon  this  subject,  we  must  be 
convinced  that  tliis  examination,  above  all  others,  is  to  be  performed  with  the  utmost 
sincerity  and  fairness.     Charles  Eliot. 

The  knowledge  of  one's  self,  though  so  interesting,  is  not  an  easy  acquisition  ;  and 
to  pass  a  strictly  unbiassed  judgment  on  our  own  character,  is  an  act  of  impartiality, 
of  which  the  records  of  the  human  mind  never  have  furnished,  and,  probably,  never 
will  furnish  an  example.     Buchminster. 

2  Cor.  xiii,  7 ;  p.  283,  1.  40.  Unapproved.  T.  Reprobates.  R.  T.  Afoxi/aoi.  Unap- 
proved. Dwight.  In  this  passage  the  word  aSoiu/noi  signifies  persons  without  proof, 
and  not  reprobates.  In  the  language  of  modern  times,  a  reprobate  is  one  who  is  ex- 
cluded from  the  possibility  of  salvation  by  an  absolute  decree  of  God ;  one  who  is  de- 
livered over  to  perdition.  But  no  where  in  scripture,  is  the  word  afmifMs  used  in  that 
sense.     Macknight. 


PAUL  S  LETTER  TO  THE  GALATIANS. 

Gal.  i,  4  ;  p.  285, 1.  6.  Evil  age.  T.  Evil  world.  R.  T.  A/avoc  arovagou.  In  scrip- 
ture, the  age  or  world  is  often  put  for  the  men  of  the  world,  and  for  their  evil  princi- 
ples and  practices.     Macknight. 

Gal.  i,  4 ;  p.  285,  1.  6.  The  conjunction  khi,  and,  is  rendered  exactly,  in  many 
cases,  by  the  English  word  even  ;  particularly  in  the  phrase  God  and  our  Father,  found 
Gal.  i,  4  ;  1  Thess.  1,  3.  In  these  places,  the  Translators  ought  to  have  rendered  it 
even :  since  the  present  rendering  makes  the  apostle  speak  nonsense.  Dwight.  All 
eastern  versions  but  the  Coptic,  omit  the  xeti,  and,  before  IIctTgot,  Father.     Wakefield. 

Gal.  iii,  1 ;  p.  287, 1.  1.  That  ye  should  not  obey  the  truth.  R.  T.  This  clause  is 
wanting  in  A  B  D*  F  G,  some  others ;  the  Synac,  Erpeidan,  Coptic,  Sahidic,  Jtala,  Vul- 
gate MS.,  and  in  the  most  important  of  the  Greek  and  Latin  Fathers.  Of  the  clause, 
Professor  White  says,  certissime  delenda,  '  It  should  certainly  be  expunged.'  Clarke. 
Griesbach  excludes  it  from  the  text.     Tkans. 

Gal.  iii,  15;  p.  287,  1.  29.  Covenant.  T.  and  R.  T.  Agreement.  Wakefield. 
It  is  doubtful  whether  SutBuKii  has  the  sense  of  testament  in  this  passage.     Stuart. 

Gal.  iii,  20;  p.  287,  1.  41.  JVow  the  Mediatm-  is  not  of  one;  but  God  is  one.  T. 
Jfow  a  mediator  is  not  a  mediator  of  one,  but  God  is  one.  R.  T.  A  mediator  is  not 
employed  between  parties  who  are  in  friendship.  But  God  is  in  friendship  with  the 
righteous.     Macknight's  Com. 

Gal.  iv,  3;  p.  288,  1.  14.  Elements  of  the  world,  i.  e.  the  ritual  ceremonies  of  the 
Mosaic  law.     Stuart. 

Gal.  vi,  14 ;  p.  290, 1.  32.  The  cross  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  by  which  the  world  is 
crucified  to  me.  T.  The  cross  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  by  icliom  Hie  world  is  crucified 
unto  me.  R.  T.  By  which  the  world  is  crucified  to  me,  &c.  As  believers  are  no  where 
said  to  be  crucified  by  Christ,  the  words  cf*  ou,  must  be  translated,  by  which,  and  not 
by  whom;  for  the  pronoun  ov,  is  put  for  o-Taugou,  cross.    Macknight. 

Gal.  vi,  16;  p.  290,  1.  36.  Even  to  the  Israel  of  God.  T.  jjjid  upon  the  Israel  of 
God.  R.  T.  The  xa/,  and,  which  stands  before  tliis  clause,  seems  clearly  to  be  expli- 
cative, and  not  conjunctive;  amounting  merely  to  our  English  namely,  even,  to  wit,  or 
to  some  word  of  the  same  import.     Stuart. 


486  APPENDIX. 


PAUL  S  LETTER  TO  THE  EPHESIANS. 

Eph.  i,  18;  p.  291, 1.  31,  Heart.  T.  Understanding.  R.  T.  Instead  of  t»c  JVamiaf, 
of  your  understanding  ;  t«c  xa^S'ia.;,  of  your  heart,  is  the  reading  of  A  B  D  E  F  G,  and 
several  others :  also  both  the  Syriac,  all  the  Arabic,  the  Coptic,  the  Ethiopic,  Armenian, 
Sahidic,  Slavonian,  Vulgate,  and  ItaZa,  besides  several  of  the  Fathers.  The  eyes  of 
your  HEART  is  undoubtedly  the  true  reading.     Clarke.     Griesbach  adopts  it.     Trans. 

Eph.  ii,  5;  p.  292, 1.  9.  By  grace  you  are  saved.  T.  The  apostle's  meaning  cannot, 
perhaps,  be  more  exactly  expressed  in  English,  than  in  these  words,  By  God's 
unmerited  favor  are  ye  delivered.     Buckminster. 

Eph.  iii,  9 ;  p.  293, 1.  8.  Who  created  all  things.  T.  Who  created  all  things  by  Jesus 
Christ.  R.  T.  Some  very  judicious  critics  are  of  opinion  that  this  does  not  refer  to 
the  material  creation  ;  and  that  we  should  understand  the  whole  as  referring  to  the 
formation  of  all  God's  dispensations  of  grace,  mercy,  and  truth :  which  have  been  plan- 
ned, managed,  and  executed  by  Christ,  from  the  foundation  of  the  world  to  the  present 
time.  But  the  words  Jw  Iso-oi/  X^itrtav,  hy  Jesus  Christ,  are  wanting  in  A  B  C  D*  F  G, 
and  several  others  ;  also  in  the  Syriac,  Arabic  of  Erpen,  Coptic,  Ethiopic,  Vulgate,  and 
Itala  ;  as  also  in  several  of  the  Fathers.  Griesbach  has  thrown  the  words  out  of  the 
text ;  and  Professor  White  says,  '  certissime  delenda,'  they  are  indisputably  spurious. 
Of  their  spuriousness  there  is  the  strongest  evidence.     Clarke. 

The  latter  clause,  S'la,  lao-oo  x^io-tou,  is  indeed  wanting  in  some  Codices  of  good 
estimation,  and  is  rejected  by  Griesbach  from  the  text.  But  Knapp  and  Tittraan  have 
inserted  it,  and  the  weight  of  authority  seems  to  favor  the  admission  of  it.     Stuart. 

Eph.  V,  9 ;  p.  294, 1.  46.  Tlie  fruit  of  the  light.  T.  The  fruit  of  the  Spirit.  R.  T. 
Instead  of  Spirit,  TrvsufMroe,  A  B  D  *  E  F  G,  the  Syriac,  Coptic,  Sahidic,  Ethiopic,  Ar- 
menian, Vulgate,  and  Itala,  together  with  several  of  the  Fathers,  read  <fams,  light, 
which  is  supposed  by  most  critics  to  be  the  true  reading,  because  there  is  no  mention 
made  of  the  Spirit  in  any  part  of  the  context.     Clarke. 

Eph.  V,  21 ;  p.  295, 1. 15.  In  the  fear  of  Christ.  T.  In  the  fear  of  God.  R.  T.  In- 
stead of  sv  <piiCa  Bau,in  the  fear  of  God,  eKfaCa  XgijTou,  in  the  fear  of  Christ, is  the  read- 
ing of  A  B  D  E  F  G,  with  all  others  of  most  value  ;  besides  the  Syriac,  Coptic,  Sa- 
hidic, Ethiopic,  Armenian,  Vulgate,  and  Itala;  Basil  the  Great,  and  Chrysostom. 
Clarke.     Griesbach^ has  introduced  the  corrected  reading.     Trans. 

Eph.  V,  232 ;  p.  95, 1.  32.  Tliis  is  an  important  emblem.  T.  This  is  a  great  mystery. 
R.  T.  This  new  doctrine  is  of  great  worth.  The  term  /avo-th^iov  rendered  mystery,  is 
in  its  primary  signification  best  translated  by  the  word  secret.  When  used  in  the  New 
Testament  respecting  any  doctrine  or  truth,  it  means  one  which  has  been  secret  or  un- 
known, but  is  now  revealed.  It  never  denotes  one  which  is  obscure  or  mysterious, 
because  partially  incomprehensible.  The  term  new  doctrine  in  general  answers  to  its 
meaning  as  nearly  as  any  which  can  be  conveniently  used.     Norton. 


Paul's  letter  to  the  philippians. 

PHii,.  ii,  6;  p.  298, 1. 19.  Wlw,  being  in  the  similitude  of  God,  did  not  violently  strive 
to  resemble  God.  T.  Wlio,  being  in  the  form  of  God,  thought  it  not  robbery  to  be  equal 
with  God.  R.  T.  It  is  generally  admitted,  I  believe,  that  our  translation  of  this  pas- 
sage is  not  correct ;  though,  probably,  all  would  not  agree  in  any  other,  which  could 
be  offered.     Winthrop  Bailey. 

Many  critics  translate  these  words,  ovk.  Kywcm  n  ant  ;<ra  0a»,  Was  not  eager  in  retain- 
ing that  likeness  to  God  (or,  divine  likeness ;  Wakefield)  :  Js  Pierce,  Pyle,  Grotius. 
The  Greek,  to  ma.,  «r«,  to  be  equal,  is  on  all  sides,  admitted  to  be  wrongly  rendered;  as 
it  has  the  force  of  similitude,  and  not  equality.    Dabney. 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  PHILIPPIANS.  487 

One  mode  in  which  the  Unitarians  take  unwarrantable  license  with  the  language  of 
the  Scriptures,  is,  to  annex  a  meaning  to  some  particular  word,  or  phrase,  which  suits 
their  own  purpose,  but  which  is  entirely  aside  from  all  customary  use.  Thus  Pierce  in- 
terprets cuK  a^irayfin  uywuTo  to  «»«(  itra.  ©eo) ;  He  thought  it  no  robbery  to  he  equal  with 
God  ;  to  mean,  He  was  not  eager,  or  tenacious,  to  retain  that  likeness  to  God :  a  transla- 
tion, which  no  criticism  can  justify ,  or  satisfactorily  explain.     Dwight. 

The  construction  put  on  this  passage  by  tlie  opponents  of  Christ's  divinity  is  so 
forced,  and  so  disingenuous,  that  it  scarcely  deserves  a  serious  notice.  They  will  have 
the  original  word  for  form,  to  signify  only  image  or  similitude ;  whereas  every  one 
skilled  in  the  Greek,  knows  it  implies  rather  an  internal,  inherent  form,  or  the  essence 
of  any  thing.  '  Thought  it  not  robbery'  is  a  most  close  and  faithful  translation ;  yet 
they  would  translate  the  words, '  was  not  in  haste  to  take  to  himself  and  boast ;'  where- 
of it  is  difficult  to  determine  whether  the  folly  or  the  impudence  is  greatest.  '  Equal 
to  God'  is  also  the  most  exact  translation  our  language  will  bear,  and  perfectly  expresses 
the  sense.  But  they  will  have  the  words  mean  only  '  like  God ;'  that  is  they  will 
have  the  word  of  God  speak  a  meaning  quite  foreign  to  the  common  known  accepta- 
tion of  the  terms,  purely  that  it  may  accommodate  itself  to  their  prepossessions. 

Skelton. 

The  structure  and  import  of  the  Greek  are  widely  abandoned  in  the  received  version. 
And  the  preceding  construction  or  substituted  interpretation,  so  confidently  impugned, 
is  not  confined  to  the  class  of  Christians  thus  reprehended  ;  but  is  abundantly  sustain- 
ed by  distinguished  opposers,  in  reference  to  the  doctrine  supposed  to  be  involved  in 
the  text.    Trans. 

By  the  form  of  God,  we  are  to  understand  that  visible  glorious  light  in  which  the 
Deity  is  said  to  dwell,  1  Tim.  vi,  16 ;  and  by  which  he  manifested  himself  to  the  pa- 
triarchs of  old.  Dent,  v,  22,  24  ;  which  was  commonly  accompanied  with  a  numerous 
retinue  of  angels,  Psal.  Ixviii,  17 ;  and  which  in  Scripture  is  called  The  Similitude, 
Numb,  xii,  8 ;  The  Face,  Psal.  xxxi,  16 ;  The  Presence,  Exod.  xxxiii,  15 ;  and  The 
Shape  of  God,  John  v,  37.  This  interpretation  is  supported  by  the  term  fiiig<pii,  form, 
here  used,  which  signifies  a  person's  external  shape  or  appearance,  and  not  his  nature 
or  essence.    Macknight,  Whitby,  Clarke. 

Who, did  not  think  it  a  matter  to  be  earnestly  desired.  Clarke.  Did  not  earn- 
estly affect.  Cyprian,  cited  by  Alexander.  Was  not  fond  or  tenacious ;  or,  did  not 
greedily  retain  ;  or,  did  not  eagerly  insist.  Sherlock.  Did  not  think  of  eagerly  retain- 
ing.    Wakefield.     Did  not  regard as  an  object  of  solicitous  desire.     Stuart. 

The  word  a^wity/Aiiv,  which  we  translate  robbery,  has  been  supposed  to  imply  a  thing 
eagerly  to  be  seized,  coveted,  or  desired  ;  and  on  this  interpretation,  the  passage  has  been 
translated,  who  beingin  the  form  of  God,  did  not  think  it  a  matter  to  be  earnestly  desired, 
to  appear  equal  to  God;  but  made  himself  of  no  reputation,  &c. ...  I  prefer  this  sense 
of  the  word  agray/aot,  before  that  given  in  our  text ;  which  does  not  agree  so  well  with 
the  context.     Clarke. 

He  thought  it  not  robbery  to  be  equal  with  God.  I  shall  not  insist  upon  this  transla- 
tion ;  for  it  is  more  agreeable  to  the  apostle's  argument,  and  to  the  language  made  use 
of,  to  suppose  him  to  intend,  in  these  words,  to  express  the  first  degree  or  instance  of 
his  humiUty,  and  that  the  verse  should  be  rendered  by  words  to  this  efiect :  Who  being 
in  the  form  of  God,  was  not  fond,  or  tenacious,  of  appearing  as  God,  but  made  him- 
self of  no  reputation.     Sherlock. 

Let  the  same  mind  be  in  you  which  was  in  Christ  Jesus  ;  who  being  in  the  condi- 
tion of  God,  did  not  regard  his  equality  with  God  as  an  object  of  soUcitous  desire,  but 
humbled  himself,  (assumed  an  inferior  or  humble  station),  taking  the  condition  of  a 
servant,  being  made  after  the  similitude  of  men,  and  being  found  in  fashion  as  a  man, 
he  exhibited  his  humility  by  obedience,  even  to  the  death  of  the  cross.  Such  is  the 
rendering,  which,  after  laborious  examination,  I  am  persuaded  the  Greek  of  this  pas- 
sage not  only  admits  but  demands.  Stuart.  He  states  his  reasons  '  for  dissenting  from 
the  common  method,  in  which  either  Trinitarians  or  Unitarians  have  translated  it :' 
and  as  to  the  first  clause  he  remarks, '  Our  common  version  runs  thus,  "  vvho  being  in 


488  APPENDIX. 

the  form  of  God,  thought  it  not  robbery  to  be  equal  with  God,  but  humbled  himself," 
&c.  This  version  seems  to  render  nugatory  or  at  least  irrelevant,  a  part  of  the  Apos- 
tle's reasoning  in  the  passage.  He  is  enforcing  the  principle  of  Christian  humility, 
upon  the  Philippians. . . .  But  how  was  it  any  proof  or  example  of  humility,  that  he 
did,  Tiot  think  it  robbery  to  be  equal  with  God .?'     Trans. 

Phil.  ii,6;p.  298,  1.20.  To  resemble  God.  T.  To  be  equal  loith  God.  R.  T.  To 
be  as  God.  Doddridge.  To  be  like  God.  Macknight.  It  is  believed,  that  to  be  as,  to 
be  like,  and  to  resemble,  constitute  as  perfect  synonymes  as  can  be  found  in  our  leiu- 
guage.     Trans. 

To  be  and  appear  as  God.  So  im  But  is  most  exactly  rendered,  agreeable  to  the 
force  of  lo-at  in  many  places  in  the  Septuagint,  which  Dr  Whitby  has  collected  in  his 
note  on  this  place.  The  proper  Greek  phrase  for  equal  to  God  is  i<rm  toi  Bm,  which  is 
used  John  v,  18.  Mr  Pierce  thus  paraphrases  the  clause  before  us, '  He  was  not  eager 
in  retaining  that  likeness  to  God,'  of  which  he  was  before  possessed ;  and  he  observes, 
that  had  it  been  referred  to  what  was  considered  as  future,  the  expression  would  have 
been  ttrurbm,  not  mm,  and  further  pleads,  that  the  apostle's  design  here  is  not  to  caution 
the  Philippians  against  coveting  what  they  had  no  claim  to,  but  to  engage  them  after 
the  example  of  Christ,  to  give  up  their  own  right  for  the  advantage  of  others.  Dod- 
dridge.   These  observations  are  very  just.     Macknight. 

To  be  like  God.  So  to  ami  ic-a.  Bex,  literally  signifies.  For  Whitby  has  proved  in 
the  clearest  manner,  that  /-ra  is  used  adverbially  by  the  LXX,  to  express  likeness  but 
not  equalitij,  the  proper  term  for  which  is  mv.  So  that  if  the  apostle  had  meant  to 
say,  equal  with  God,  the  phrase  would  have  been  la-ov  Bm,  as  we  have  it  John  v,  18 ; 
/5-oy  EituTcv  TTtiim  Tffl  ©Eftt,  making  himself  equal  with  God.     Macknight. 

Phil,  ii,  7,  8 ;  p.  298, 1.  21.  Having  been  formed  in  resemblance  of  men  ;  and  being 
found  in  constitution  as  a  man.  T.  Was  made  in  the  likeness  of  men  :  .And  being  found 
in  fashion  as  a  man.  R.  T.  Being  made  like  other  men,  with  the  dispositions  of  a  man. 
Wakefield.  Of  men.  Of  common  and  ordinary  mortals.  See  Mr  Lindsey.  When 
found  in  fashion  as  a  man.  Or  '  appearing  only  as  an  ordinary  mortal.'  Mr  Lindsey. 
—  Christ,  invested  with  miraculous  powers,  was  in  the  form  of  God  ;  but  declining  to 
use  them  for  his  own  personal  advantage,  he  appeared  like  any  other  frail  and  weak 
mortal.    Improved  Version. 

The  Person  here  spoken  of,  Jesus  Christ,  was  in  the  form  of  God,  but  laid  aside 
the  glories  proper  to  the  form  of  God,  and  took  upon  him  the  form  of  a  servant,  in  the 
likeness  of  men.  Whatever  he  was  as  to  nature  and  essence,  when  he  was  in  the  form 
of  God,  that  he  continued  to  be  still,  when  he  became  man  :  but  the  glories  of  the 
form  of  God  he  laid  down ;  and  though  he  continued  to  be  the  same,  yet,  as  to  the  out- 
ward dignity  and  appearance,  he  was  mere  man,  being  found  as  the  Apostle  says,  '  in 
fashion  as  a  man.'  Had  the  Apostle  conceived  him,  whilst  here  on  earth,  to  have  been 
mere  man  only,  in  what  tolerable  sense  could  he  say  of  him, '  being  found  in  fashion 
as  a  man .'''  for  in  what  fashion  should  man  be  found,  but  in  the  fashion  of  a  man  ? 
What  need  was  there  of  this  limitation,  that  he  was  found  a  man  as  to  his  fashion, 
unless  in  reality  he  was  something  more  than  man .''  But  if  you  consider  the  man 
Jesus  Christ  to  be  the  same  Person  who  was  in  the  form  of  God,  and  who,  according 
to  that  dignity  of  nature,  had  a  right  to  appear  in  the  majesty  and  glory  of  God,  it  is 
proper  to  ask.  How  did  he  appear  on  earth  ?  And  the  Apostle's  words  are  a  proper 
answer  to  the  question, '  He  was  found  in  fashion  as  a  man.'     Sherlock. 

Phil,  ii,  10 ;  p.  298, 1.  25.  In  the  name  of  Jesus.  T.  At  the  name  of  Jesus.  R.  T. 
Rather,  In  the  name  :  as  most  critics.  Dabney.  Doddridge  and  Seeker,  among  others, 
use  in,  and  this  is  more  conformable  to  other  Scriptures.  See,  for  example,  John  xiv, 
13, 14  ;  XV,  16  ;  xvi,  23 ;  Eph.  v,  20  ;  and  Col.  iii,  17.    Trans. 

Phil,  iii,  10;  p.  299, 1.  31.  That  I  might  know  him.  Nothingso  much  brightens  and 
strengthens  the  eye  of  the  mind  to  understand  an  excellent  being  as  likeness  to  him. 
We  never  know  a  great  character  until  something  congenial  to  it  has  grown  up  with- 
in ourselves.    No  strength  of  intellect,  and  no  study  can  enable  a  man  of  a  selfish  and 


PAUL'S  LETTER  TO  THE  COLOSSIANS.  489 

sensual  mind  to  comprehend  Jesus.  Such  a  mind  is  covered  with  a  mist ;  and  just  in 
proportion  as  it  subdues  evil  within  itself,  the  mist  will  be  scattered,  Jesus  will  rise 
upon  it  with  a  sunlike  brightness,  and  will  call  forth  its  most  fervent  and  most  en- 
lightened affection.     Clianning. 

Phil,  iii,  19 ;  p.  300, 1.  4.  Wlio  are  engrossed  by  earthly  things.  T.  JVho  mind  earth- 
ly things.  R.  T.  *giiiiiit/irTS{, — relish  them,  making  them  the  only  object  of  their  wish- 
es ;  taking  aim  at  nothing  better,  and  nothing  higher.     Sterne. 

Phil,  iv,  6;  p.  300, 1.  16.  Be  not  anxious  in  amj  particular.  T.  Be  careful  for  noth- 
ing. R.  T.  The  following  writer,  referring  to  this  passage,  in  connexion  with  that  in 
Matthew  vi,  28.  31,  observes, '  These  texts  thus  rendered,  by  seeming  to  enjoin  what  is 
plainly  inconsistent  with  the  present  condition  of  humanity,  are  apt  to  make  men  less 
scrupulous  in  repressing  that  anxious  solicitude  about  worldly  things,  which  is  indeed 
absolutely  forbidden  to  Christians  in  these  very  passages.'     Parkhurst. 

Phil,  iv,  7 ;  p.  300, 1.  18.  The  peace  of  God,  which  exceeds  all  comprehension.  T. 
There  is  a  twofold  peace.  The  first  is  negative.  It  is  relief  from  disquiet  and  cor- 
roding care.  It  is  repose  after  conflict  and  storms.  But  there  is  another  and  a  higher 
peace,  to  which  this  is  but  the  prelude,  '  a  peace  of  God  which  passeth  all  understand- 
ing,' and  properly  called  '  the  kingdom  of  heaven  within  us.'  This  state  is  any  thing 
but  negative.  It  is  the  highest  and  most  strenuous  action  of  the  soul,  but  an  entirely 
harmonious  action,  in  which  all  our  powers  an(i  affections  are  blended  in  a  beautiful 
proportion,  and  sustain  and  perfect  one  another.  It  is  more  than  silence  after  storms. 
It  is  as  the  concord  of  all  melodious  sounds.  Has  the  reader  never  known  a  season, 
when,  in  the  fullest  flow  of  thought  and  feeling,  in  the  universal  action  of  the  soul,  an 
inward  calm,  profound  as  midnight  silence,  yet  bright  as  the  still  summer  noon,  full  of 
joy,  but  unbroken  by  one  throb  of  tumultuous  passion,  has  been  breathed  through  his 
spirit,  and  given  him  a  glimpse  and  presage  of  the  serenity  of  a  happier  world  ?  Of 
this  character  is  the  peace  of  religion.  It  is  a  conscious  harmony  with  God  and  the 
creation,  an  alliance  of  love  with  all  beings,  a  sympathy  with  all  that  is  pure  and  hap- 
py, a  surrender  of  every  separate  will  and  interest,  a  participation  of  the  spirit  and 
life  of  the  universe,  an  entire  concord  of  purpose  with  its  Infinite  Original.  This  is 
peace,  and  the  true  happiness  of  man ;  and  we  think  that  human  nature  has  never  lost 
sight  of  this,  its  great  end.  It  has  always  sighed  for  a  repose  in  which  energy  of 
thought  and  will  might  be  tempered  with  an  all-pervading  tranquillity.     Clianning. 


Paul's  letter  to  the  colossians. 

Col.  i,  14 ;  p.  302, 1.  23.  The  clause  fia,  tcv  cufna'ros  avrcu,  through  his  Hood,  is 
omitted  by  A  B  C  D  E  F  G,  and  by  most  others  of  weight  and  importance  ;  by  the 
Syriac,  Arabic  of  Erpen,  Coptic,  Ethiopic,  Sahidic,  some  copies  of  the  Vulgate,  and  by 
the  Itala  ;  and  by  most  of  the  Greek  Fathers.  Griesbach  has  left  it  out  of  the  text. 
It  is  likely  that  the  reading  here  is  not  genuine.  Clarke.  The  three  most  valuable  ver- 
sions, Syriac,  Coptic,  and  Ethiopic,  take  no  notice  of  the  words  Stu  tov  aiftAtot  avrov. 

Wakefield. 

Col.  i,  15 — 17;  p.  302, 1.  24.     Who  is  a  representation  of  the  invisible   God and 

in  him  all  things  subsist.  T.     Who  is  the  image  of  the  invisible  God and  by  him  all 

things  consist.  R.  T.  '  Who  is  the  image  of  the  invisible  God,  the  head  of  all  crea- 
tion ;  for  by  him  were  all  things  created,  both  celestial  and  terrestrial,  visible  tmd  in- 
visible, of  whatever  order  or  rank  they  are ;  all  things  were  created  by  him  and  for 
him.  Therefore  he  was  before  all  things,  and  by  him  are  all  things  sustained.'  Some 
ingenious  commentators  have  supposed,  that  '  things  in  heaven,  and  things  on  earth' 
mean  Jews  and  Gentiles.  How  very  unnatural  this  explanation  is,  no  one  can  help 
feeling,  who  reads  the  passage  in  an  unbiassed  manner.     Stuart. 

Col.  i,  16 ;  p.  302, 1.  25.    By  him  all  things  were  created.    The  interpretation  which 
refers  what  i9  here  said  of  our  Saviour,  to  the  new  creation,  or  the  renovation  of  all 
62 


490  APPENDIX. 

things,  is  so  forced  and  violent,  that  it  can  hardly  be  thought,  that  men  would  ever 
have  espoused  it,  but  for  the  sake  of  an  hypothesis.  The  reader  may  meet  with  a  con- 
futation of  it  in  most  commentators.     Pierce, 

Col.  i,  23;  p.  303, 1.  12.  That  we  may  present  every  man  perfect  in  Christ.  The 
christian  minister  needs  often  to  be  reminded  of  this  great  end  of  his  office,  the  per- 
fection of  the  human  character.  He  is  too  apt  to  rest  in  low  attainments  himself,  and 
to  be  satisfied  with  low  attainments  in  others.  He  ought  never  to  forget  the  great  dis- 
tinction and  glory  of  the  gospel,  that  it  is  designed  to  perfect  human  nature.  All  the 
precepts  of  this  divine  system  are  marked  by  a  sublime  character.  It  demands  that 
our  piety  be  fervent,  our  benevolence  unbounded,  and  our  search  for  righteousness 
strong  and  insatiable.  It  enjoins  a  virtue  which  does  not  stop  at  what  is  positively 
prescribed,  but  which  is  prodigal  of  service  to  God  and  mankind.  The  gospel  enjoins 
inflexible  integrity,  fearless  sincerity,  fortitude  which  despises  pain,  and  tramples  plea- 
sure under  foot  in  the  pursuit  of  duty,  and  an  independence  of  spirit  which  no  scorn 
can  deter,  and  no  example  seduce  from  asserting  truth  and  adhering  to  the  cause  which 
conscience  approves.  With  this  spirit  of  martyrs,  this  hardness  and  intrepidity  of 
soldiers  of  the  cross,  the  gospel  calls  us  to  unite  the  mildest  and  meekest  virtues ;  a 
sympathy  which  melts  over  others'  woes ;  a  disinterestedness  which  finds  pleasure  in 
toils  and  labors  for  others'  good ;  a  humility  which  loves  to  bless  unseen,  and  forgets 
itself  in  the  performance  of  the  noblest  deeds.  To  this  perfection  of  social  duty,  the 
gospel  commands  us  to  join  a  piety  which  refers  every  event  to  the  providence  of  God, 
and  every  action  to  his  will ;  a  love  which  counts  no  service  hard,  and  a  penitence 
which  esteems  no  judgment  severe;  a  gratitude  which  ofiers  praise  even  in  adversity; 
a  holy  trust  unbroken  by  protracted  suffering,  and  a  hope  triumphant  over  death.  In 
one  word,  it  enjoins,  that  loving  and  confiding  in  Jesus  Christ,  we  make  his  spotless 
character,  his  heavenly  life,  the  model  of  our  own.  Such  is  the  sublimity  of  charac- 
ter which  the  gospel  demands,  and  such  the  end  to  which  our  preaching  should  be  di- 
rected.    Charming. 

Col.  iii,  15;  p.  304, 1.  33.  The  peace  of  Christ.  T.  The  peace  of  God.  R.  T.  In- 
stead of  ©sou,  God,  Xgio-Tou,  Christ,  is  the  reading  of  A  B  C*  D*  F  G,  several  others; 
both  the  Syriac,  the  Mrabic  of  Erpen,  Coptic,  Ethiopic,  .Armenian,  Vulgate,  and  ItaZa, 
with  several  of  the  Fathers:  on  this  evidence,  Grieshach  has  inserted  it  in  the  text. 
Clarke.  All  the  eastern  versions,  but  the  Arabic,  read  XgWTcu,  Christ,  and  not  ©sou, 
God.     Wakefield. 

Col.  iii,  16;  p.  304, 1.  35.  Let  the  doctrine  of  Christ  dwell  richly  among  you;  teach- 
ing and  admonishing  each  other  in  all  wisdom ;  singing  with  grace  in  your  hearts  to 
God,  in  anthems  and  sacred  melodies,  and  spiritual  odes.  T.  This  arrangement  the 
original  will  not  only  bear,  but  it  absolutely  requires  it,  and  is  not  sense  without  it. 

Clarke. 

The  singing  which  is  here  recommended,  is  widely  different  from  what  is  commonly 
used  in  most  Christian  congregations ;  a  congeries  of  unmeaning  sounds,  associated  to 
bundles  of  nonsensical  and  often  ridiculous  repetitions,  which  at  once  both  deprave  and 
disgrace  the  church  of  Christ.  Melody,  which  is  allowed  to  be  the  most  proper  for 
devotional  music,  is  now  sacrificed.     Clarke. 

The  law  of  numbers  is  not  confined  to  poetry.  It  has  been  discovered,  that  prose 
also  is  capable  of  numerous  composition ;  not  that  it  should  be  strictly  metrical,  for 
then  it  is  not  prose ;  yet  if  it  had  no  rhythm,  such  vague  effusion  would  fatigue,  and 
the  reader  would  seek  in  vain  for  those  returning  pauses  so  helpful  to  his  reading,  and 
so  grateful  to  his  ear.  There  is  much  complaint,  and  it  is  considered  a  capital  defect, 
that  music  is  at  perpetual  variance  with  this  law  of  numbers.  William  Bull's  Mus. 
adap.  to  Lan. 

Sound  was  intended  to  be  the  vehicle  of  sentiment,  and  should  be  employed  in  the 
conveyance  of  such  sentiments  as  may  instruct,  improve,  purify,  and  exaJt  the  mind  ; 
such  as  when  received  and  retained,  may  inspire  resolutions,  and  produce  actions, 
tending  to  the  glory  of  God,  and  the  good  of  mankind.    How  can  this  purpose  ba 


PAUL'S  LETTERS  TO  THE  THESSALONIANS.  491 

more  effectually  answered,  than  it  is,  when  the  most  beautiful  and  sublime  passages  of 
Holy  Writ,  set  to  the  finest  music,  are  heard  outwardly  with  our  ears,  and  engrafted 
inwardly  in  our  hearts  ?     What  can  we  have,  what  can  we  desire  more  upon  earth  ? 

Home. 

Who  has  not  felt  the  mild,  gentle,  soothing,  and  salutary  influence  of  sacred  music, 
chastening  the  heart,  and  expanding  it  with  meek,  reverent,  and  holy  feelings  —  and 
its  almost  supernatural  power  to  dispel  the  busy,  troublous,  and  then  seemingly  sacri- 
legious thoughts  of  the  vain  and  delusive  world  without,  and  supply  their  place  with 
those  which  '  cling  not  to  earth,'  but  mount  upward  on  its  buoyant  and  invisible 
wings,  to  him  whose  abiding  place  is  the  centre  of  all  harmony,  and  whose  breath  is 
'  the  music  of  the  spheres'  !     A.  H.  Pemberton. 

Col.  iv,  16 ;  p.  305, 1.  32.  The  letter  from,  Laodicea.  T.  Or,  the  Laodicean  letter. 
Trans.  The  epistle  from  Laodicea.  R.  T.  What  evidence  is  there  that  Paul  ever 
wrote  an  Epistle  to  the  Laodiceans  ?  The  text  on  which  this  opinion  is  founded,  in 
ancient  and  modern  times,  correctly  interpreted,  has  no  such  import.  The  words  in 
the  original  are  ua;  t»v  sk  Auifmuas  iva,  luti  v/ms  avxyvari.  And  that  ye  likewise  read 
the  Epistle  from  Laodicea.  Paul  could  not  with  any  propriety  of  speech,  have  called 
an  Epistle  written  by  himself,  and  sent  to  the  Laodiceans  an  Epistle  from  Laodicea. 
He  certainly  would  have  said  jrjot  AaeJixeia-v,  or  some  such  thing.  Who  ever  heard  of 
an  Epistle  addressed  to  any  individual,  or  to  any  society,  denominated  an  Epistle  from 
them.     Alexander. 


PAULS    FIRST    LETTER    TO    TOE    THESSALONIANS. 

1  Thess.  iv,  13  ;  p.  308, 1.  22.  fVe  wish  you  to  he  informed.  T.  I  would  not  have  you 
to  be  ignorant.  R.  T.  Instead  oft^afAit,  have,  SeKa/Aiv,  wish,  is  the  reading  of  A  D  E  F  G-, 
and  many  others  ;  besides  the  Arabic,  Ethiopic,  Armenian,  some  of  the  Sclavonian,  the 
Vulgate,  and  Itala,  with  many  of  the  G-reek  Fathers.  This  is  undoubtedly  the  true 
reading.     Clarke. 

1  Thess.  iv,  15 ;  p.  308, 1.  27.  Will  7iot  precede.  T.  Shall  not  prevent.  R.  T .  Shall 
not  go  before.  This  appears  to  be  the  meaning  of  the  apostle's  words,  /mi  «9ao-a)/xE», 
which  we  translate  shall  not  prevent;  for  although  this  word  prevent,  from  prce  and 
venio,  literally  signifies  to  go  before,  yet  we  use  it  now  in  the  same  sense  of  to  hinder, 
or  obstruct.  Clarke.  To  prevent  is  hardly  ever  now  used,  in  prose,  for  to  go  before. 
Campbell.    In  such  a  sense,  it  has  indeed  become  obsolete  and  unintelligible.    Teans. 


PAUL  S  SECOND  LETTER  TO  THE  THESSALONIANS. 

2  Thess.  ii,  4;  p.  310, 1.  33.  As  God.  R.  T.  The  words  as  ©sov,  as  God,  are  want- 
ing in  ABD.,  many  others,  Eipea's  Arabic,  the  Coptic,  Sahidic,  Ethiopic,  Armenian, 
the  Vulgate,  some  copies  of  the  Itala,  and  the  chief  of  the  Greek  Fathers.  Griesback 
has  left  them  out  of  the  text,  and  Professor  White  says,  certissime  delenda :  they  should 
most  certainly  be  erased.  There  is  indeed  no  evidence  of  their  being  authentic,  and 
the  text  reads  much  better  without  them.     So  that  he  sitteth  in  the  temple  of  God,  ^c. 

Clarke. 

2  Thess.  ii,  7 ;  p.  310, 1.  37.  Restrains.  T.  Letteth.  R.  T.  The  word  letteth,  in  the 
common  version,  by  a  change  of  meaning,  now  implies  permission  rather  than 
restraint;  conveying  an  idea  directly  the  reverse  of  its  correspondent  x*Ts;^aiir,  in  the 
original.     Trans. 

2  Thess.  ii,  12;  p.  311, 1.  8.  And  thus  they  all  may  he  condemned.  T.  Or  —  may  he 
judged.  Trans.  That  they  might  all  he  damned.  R.  T.  Campbell,  referring  to  the 
improper  rendering  of  the  verb  xttTaxgiOvreTU/,  shall  be  damned,  in  Mark  xvi,  16, 
remarks,  '  It  is  still  worse  to  render  the  simple  word  icgivuv,  (2  Thess.  ii,  12),  to  damn  ; 


402  APPENDIX. 

that  verb  properly  signifying  not  so  much  as  to  condemn,  but  to  judge,  to  try :  though 
sometimes  used  by  a  figure,  the  cause  for  the  consequence,  to  denote  to  punish.' 

Tears. 


PAUL  S    FIRST    LETTER    TO    TIMOTHY. 

1  Tim.  iii,  16 ;  p.  315, 1.  2.  God  was  displayed  in  humanity.  T.  God  was  manifest 
in  the  flesh.  R.  T.  We  are  perplexed  by  various  readings  on  the  first  clause,  esoc 
I'^a.iigaSti  6»  nt^xt,  God  was  manifest  in  the  flesh  ;  for,  instead  of  Saf,  God,  several  MSS, 
Versions,  and  Fathers,  have  «  or  l,  which  or  who.  And  this  is  generally  referred  to 
the  word  mystery  :  Great  is  the  mystery  of  Godliness,  •which  was  manifest  in  the  flesh. 
.  .  .  We  read,  God  loas  manifested  in  the  flesh  ;  and  I  cannot  see  what  good  sense  can 
be  taken  out  of  the  Gospel  was  manifested  in  the  flesh  ;  or  the  mystery  of  godliness 
was  manifested  in  the  flesh.  After  seriously  considering  this  subject,  in  every  point  of 
light,  I  hold  with  the  reading  in  the  commonly  received  text.     Clarhe. 

There  is  a  difference  between  the  several  manuscripts  of  the  Greek  Testament  in 
respect  to  the  word  '  God  manifest  in  the  flesh.'  The  larger  number  of  manuscripts 
agree  with  our  translation,  but  others  of  great  weight  and  antiquity,  have,  instead  of 
'  God,'  the  pronoun  '  Who ;'  a  word  the  form  of  which  in  Greek  very  nearly  resembles 
the  form  of  the  Greek  word  '  God.'  On  the  ground  as  well  of  these  various  readings, 
as  of  some  other  considerations,  I  should  not  choose  to  lay  much  stress  upon  the  proof 
which  the  term  '  God,'  here  used,  affords  of  the  Divinity  of  our  blessed  Saviour.  God 
forbid  that  we  should  attempt  to  support  truth  by  arguments  which  we  deem  to  be  not 
decisive.      Venn. 

God  was  manifest.  This  reading  differs  from  that  of  the  two  most  ancient  versions 
the  Syriac  and  the  Vulgate,  and  some  of  the  oldest  manuscripts.     Campbdl. 

God  was  manifest :  rather  which  was  manifest  in  the  flesh.  Dr  Samuel  Clarke, 
Newton,  and  the  best  modern  critics,  now  conclude,  that  the  true  text  of  the  original, 
is  which  or  he  who  ;  the  present  text  being  contradicted  by  several  MSS,  all  the  early 
versions,  and  virtually  so,  by  all  the  early  Fathers.  Between  the  claims  of  which  or 
he  who  to  the  true  reading,  the  evidence  is  nearly  balanced  ;  which  has  been  preferred, 
because  the  sense  given  to  the  whole  passage  (and  which  must  turn  upon  the  pronoun) 
has  so  much  more  fitness  and  beauty,  when  understood  of  the  doctrine,  rather  than  of 
the  person  of  Christ.     Dahney. 

Not  ©iof,  but  0,  or  h;,  is  the  reading  of  the  Syriac,  Coptic,  Ethiopic,  and  Vulgate  ver- 
sions :  otherwise  ©sos  would  have  stood  very  well,  to  the  same  sense  as  Matt,  i,  23. 

Wak^ieid. 

By  changing  o  into  ec,  the  abbreviation  of  ©a>c,  the  Greeks  now  read, '  Great  is  the 
mystery  of  godliness ;  God  manifested  in  the  flesh.'  Whereas  all  the  churches  for  the 
first  four  or  five  hundred  years,  and  all  the  ancient  versions,  Jerome  as  well  as  the  rest, 
read, '  Great  is  the  mystery  of  godliness,  which  was  manifested  in  the  flesh. '  Sir  Isaac 
JVewton. 

The  insertion  of  Qeog  for  og,  or  og  for  0Eog  may  be  easily  accovmted  for.  In  an- 
cient times  the  Greek  was  all  written  in  capitals ;  for  the  common  Greek  character  is, 
comparatively,  of  modern  date.  In  these  early  times,  words  of  frequent  recurrence 
were  written  corUractedly  ;  thus  for  mxzrjq,  ng  ;  Qeog,  6g ;  ICvgiog,  xg  ;  Itjaovg,  iijg  ; 
&c.  This  is  very  frequent  in  the  oldest  MSS,  and  is  continually  recurring  in  the  Codex 
Beza,  and  Codex  Alexandrinus.  If  therefore  the  middle  stroke  of  the  0  in  0f  hap- 
pened to  be  faint,  or  obliterated,  and  the  dash  above  not  very  apparent,  both  of  which 
I  have  observed  in  ancient  MSS,  then  0C ,  the  contraction  for  BEOC ,  God,  might  be 
mistaken  for  OC ,  which  or  who,  and  vice  versd.  This  appears  to  have  been  the  case 
in  the  Codex  Mexandrinus,  in  this  passage.  To  me  there  is  ample  reason  to  believe 
that  the  Codex  AlexandrinUs  originally  read  ©C,  God  in  this  place.     Clarke. 


PAUL'S  FIRST  LETTER  TO  TIMOTHY.  493 

A  translator,  in  the  case  under  consideration,  having  his  attention  riveted  to  words 
and  not  to  tilings,  would  be  more  likely,  I  apprehend,  to  commit  an  error  by  omission 
than  by  addition  ;  to  overlook  horizontal  lines  which  distinguish  02  from  02,  than 
to  supply  them.     Richard  Laurence. 

Those  who  oppose  the  primitive  reading  of  Bus,  are  not  agreed  among  themselves, 
what  word  should  be  substituted  in  its  place.  Griesbach  contends  for  ot ;  Sir  Isaac 
Newton  for  S.  .  .  Dr  Samuel  Clarke,  having  arrived  at  the  conclusion  that  the 
ancient  reading  was  os  not  ©soc,  adds,  '  But  it  is  not  in  reality  of  great  importance  :  for 
the  sense  is  evident ;  that  that  person  was  manifested  in  the  flesh,  whom  St  John  in 
the  beginning  of  his  Gospel  styles  Gsor,  God.'     Magee. 

Nothing  is  more  evident  than  that  these  things  are  said  of  Christ,  and  that  they  can 
be  said  of  no  other.  JVo  other  person,  and  no  attribute  can  be  said  to  be  God,  manifested 
in  the  fiesh,  justified  in  the  Spirit,  seen  of  Angels,  preached  unto  the  Gentiles,  believed  on 
in  the  world,  and  received  up  into  glory.  Let  any  person  make  the  experiment ;  and 
he  will  find  it  impossible  to  make  the  application  of  all  these  things  to  any  other,  than 
the  Redeemer.     Dwight.* 

In  regard  to  this  text,  it  appears  to  me  a  plain  case,  that  the  authorities,  which 
Griesbach  himself  has  adduced,  would  fairly  lead  to  a  decision  different  from  his  own, 
respecting  the  genuineness  of  the  reading  ©esc     Stuart. 

It  is  admitted  that  all  known  manuscripts,  leith  the  exception  of  four,  which  have  os, 
he,  read  ©los,  God.  The  readings  of  three  more,  A  C  D  ,  have  been  controverted.  .  . 
Respecting  the  true  readings  of  A  and  C  in  this  passage  Griesbach  discusses  the 
question  at  much  length  in  his  Symbolse  Criticse ;  where  although  his  own  opinion 
remains  by  no  means  problematical,  he  nevertheless  so  expresses  himself,  as  if  he  were 
contented  to  rank  the  manuscripts  A  and  C  as  mere  neutrals  in  the  contest.  .  .  In  his 
notes  however  of  the  New  Testament,  he  admits  neither  neutrality  in  one  case,  nor 
probability  in  the  other ;  but  assumes  certainty  in  both.     Richard  Laurence. 

This  celebrated  passage  is  one  in  which  the  consequences  deducible  from  Griesbach's 
theory  and  comparison  of  manuscripts  are  most  conspicuous.  He  is  deficient  in  the 
direct  testimony  of  Fathers,  and  even  upon  his  own  statement  but  partially  supported 
by  the  collateral  one  of  versions ;  yet  he  pronounces  oc  to  be  the  Alexandrine  reading, 
principally  influenced  by  the  presumed  authority  of  certain  supposed  Alexandrine 
manuscripts  ;  then  annihilating  the  Western  reading  o,  which  is  in  his  judgment  a 
mere  corruption  of  is,  (the  very  reverse  of  Wetstein's  argument)  he  represents  is,  he, 
as  common  to  both  the  Alexandrine  and  Western  texts,  and  thus  establishes  a  prepon- 
derance of  classes  against  the  Byzantine .  Yet  even  admitting  his  principle,  but  cor- 
recting his  inaccuracy,  ought  we  not  to  draw  a  very  different  conclusion  ?  Should  we 
not  rather  say,  that  because  the  Byzantine  text,  with  an  infinity  of  manuscripts  and 
Fathers,  reads  ©cos,  God,  and  because  8  (viz.  6,  10,  23,  31,  37,  39,  46,  47.)  out  of  eleven 
Alexandrine  manuscripts  coincide  with  it,  while  only  one  certainly  opposes  it,  the  other 
two  being  doubtful,  therefore  the  preponderance  of  classes  is  against  the  Western ; 
and  that  @tt)S,  God,  not  i  or  hs,  who  or  which,  seems  to  be  the  genuine  reading. 

Richard  Laurence. 

God  was  manifested  in  the  flesh.  The  Clermont  MS.  with  the  Vulgate  and  some 
other  ancient  versions,  read  here  o,  which,  instead  of  Qfoc,  God.  The  Syriac  version  as 
translated  by  Tremellius,  has  Quod  Deus  reedatus  est  in  came  ;  Thai  God  was  revealed 
in  the  flesh.  The  Colbertine  MS.  has  is,  who.  But  Mill  says,  it  is  the  only  Greek 
MS.  which  has  that  reading.  All  the  others  with  one  consent  have  ©sot,  God,  which 
is  followed  by  Chrysostom,  Theodoret,  and  Theophylact,  as  appears  by  their  Commen- 
taries. Mill  says  oj  and  h  were  substituted  in  place  of  the  true  reading.  .  .  The  thing 
asserted  in  this  verse,  according  to  the  common  reading,  is  precisely  the  same  with 
what  John  has  told  us  in  his  gospel,  chap,  i,  14.     The  word  (who  is  called  God,  verse  1) 

*  The  author  waa  satisfied  from  an  examination  of  the  results  of  Griesbach  and  others,  that  the  common 
is  the  genuine  reading  of  the  text.    Editor^a  Note  to  Druight^a  Thtol, 


494  APPENDIX. 

was  made  flesh,  and  dwelt  among  us.  —  The  other  reading,  not  very  intelligibly,  repre- 
sents the  gospel  as  manifested  in  the  ilesh,  and  taken  up  in  glory.     Mackmght. 


PAUL  S  SECOND  LETTER  TO  TIMOTHY. 

2  Tim.  ii,  19 ;  p.  319, 1.  25.  Let  every  one,  who  professes  the  natne  of  the  Lord.  T. 
Let  every  one  tliat  nameth  the  name  of  Christ.  R.  T.  Yivpov^  Lord,  instead  of  Xg/o-Tcw, 
Christ,  is  the  reading  of  almost  all  the  MSS  of  importance  ;  and  the  principal  Ver- 
sions. Clarke.  Griesbach  adopts  it.  Tkaks.  The  common  translation  abounds  with 
such  tautological  expressions  as  '  nameth  the  name,  work  the  works,  live  the  life,  die 
the  death,  dream  dreams,  hands  have  handled,  judge  with  a  judgment,  and  baptized 
with  a  baptism,'  which  with  many  others  I  have  attempted  to  correct.     Trans. 

2  Tim.  iii,  16;  p.  320, 1.  20.  Every  divinely  inspired  composition  is  useful  for  doc- 
trine. T.  All  scripture  is  given  by  inspiration  of  God,  and  is  profitable  for  doctrine. 
R.  T.  This  sentence  is  not  well  translated ;  the  original  Trtta-a.  y^a,<fit  ^aaienriiit,  u^i- 
Ktjuos  TT^tii  ^iSAffK^xictY,  should  be  rendered.  Every  writing,  divinely  inspired,  is  profita- 
ble for  doctrine,  fyc  The  particle  khi,  and,  is  omitted  by  almost  all  the  Versions,  and 
many  of  the  Fathers;  and  certainly  does  not  agree  well  with  the  text.     Clarke. 


PAUL  S    LETTER    TO    TITUS. 

Titus  ii,  13 ;  p.  323, 1.  13.  Awaiting  the  blessed  hope,  and  the  glorious  appearance 
of  the  great  God,  and  of  our  Saviour  Jesus  Christ.  T.  Looking  for  that  blessed 
hope,  and  the  glorious  appearing  of  the  great  God  and  our  Saviour  Jesus  Christ.  R.  T. 
The  appearing  of  the  glory  of  our  great  God  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ;  or,  the  glorious 
appearing  of  the  great  God  even  our  Saviour  Jesus  Christ.  Thus  Hall,  Hammond,  T. 
Scott,  Jones  of  Nayland,  Clarke,  Dwight,  Stuart,  and  other  critics,  render  the  pass- 
age. Trans.  JVamdy,  the  appearing  of  the  glory  of  the  great  God,  and  our  Saviour 
Jesus  Christ.  This,  which  is  the  exact  literal  translation  of  the  clause,  Kctt  ejrt^Anictv 
'^«ff  Jo^Hff  Tov  fjiiyuxou  Qiou  nai  trajTagoff  H/jiatv  Itta-cv  Xgio-TOu,  is  adopted  both  by  the  Vul- 
gate and  Beza.  —  Considered  as  a  Hebraism,  the  clause  may  be  translated,  as  in  our 
Bible,  The  glorious  appearing  of  the  great  God  and  our  Saviour  Jesus  Christ.  Never- 
theless, the  literal  translation  is  more  just,  as  the  apostle  alludes  to  our  Lord's  words, 
Luke  ix,  26.  Of  him  shall  the  Son  of  Man  be  ashamed  crav  6ji9«  ev  t>i  Jofn  auTcu,  xat 
Tflo  TToLTgos,  KcLi  Toov  dytm  Ayytxm.  JVhen  he  shall  come  in  his  own  glory,  and  in  the 
glory  of  the  Father,  and  of  the  holy  angels.  —  Matt,  xvi,  27.  For  the  Son  of  Man  will 
come,  ty  t«  tfo^w  tsu  ttat^os  avrou  in  the  glory  of  his  Father,  with  his  angels  ;  and  then 
he  mil  render  to  every  man  according  to  his  works.  —  But  if  Jesus  is  to  appear,  at  the  last 
day,  in  his  own  glory,  and  in  the  glory  of  the  Father,  that  event  may  fitly  be  termed 
the  appearing  of  the  glory  of  the  great  God,  and  of  our  Saviour  Jesus  Christ.  —  It  is 
true,  the  article  is  wanting  before  iramgt!.  Tet  it  may  be  supplied  as  our  translators 
have  done  here,  before  im^nyuav;  and  elsewhere,  particularly  Ephes.  v,  5.  In  the 
kingdom  tm  'X^tr'viiv  mm  ©sou,  of  Christ  and  of  God.  Besides,  as  (raTtgoi  is  in  tlie 
genitive  case,  it  will  bear  to  be  translated  of  our  Saviour,  although  the  article  is  want- 
ing. Tet  I  have  not  ventured  to  translate  it  in  that  manner,  because  the  meaning  of 
this  text  has  been  much  disputed.     Macknight. 

Titus  iii,  10 ;  p.  323, 1.  24.  Discard  a  factious  man  T.  A  man  that  is  an  heretic  — 
reject.  R.  T.  The  word  cU^nMot,  translated  heretic  in  this  place,  does  not  mean  a 
member  of  an  aifiri;  or  sect,  who  may  be  unconscious  of  any  fault,  and  so  is  not  equi- 
valent to  our  word  sectary ;  much  less  does  it  answer  to  the  English  word  heretic, 
which  always  implies  one  who  entertains  opinions  in  religion  not  only  erroneous,  but 
pernicious;  whereas  the  word  ni^itrif,  in  scriptural  use,  has  no  necessary  connexion 
with  opinion  at  all.    Its  immediate  connexion  is  with  division  or  dissension,  as  it  is 


THE   LETTER  TO  THE  HEBREWS.  495 

thereby  that  sects  and  parties  are  formed.  Aigtrme!  ttv6go?n;  must,  therefore,  mean  one 
who  is  the  founder  of  a  sect,  or  at  least  has  the  disposition  to  create  ai^itii;,  or  sects, 
in  the  community,  and  may  properly  be  rendered  a  factious  man.     Campbell, 


PAUL  S    LETTER    TO    PHILEMON. 

Philem.  ver.  5 ;  p.  324, 1.  7.  Of  the  reliance  which  you  have  towards  the  Lord  Jesus, 
and  of  your  love  to  all  the  Christians.  T.  Of  thy  love  and  faith,  which  thou  hast  towards 
the  Lord  Jesus,  and  towards  all  saints.  R.  T.  By  a  very  common  transposition,  faith 
is  to  be  referred  to  Christ,  and  love  to  the  saints.  Buckminster.  Several  excellent 
MSS  and  some  Versions,  put  faith  before  love,  which  makes  a  more  natural  reading. 
There  is  no  figure  of  speech  which  would  vindicate  our  saying  faith  in  the  saints :  so 
that  if  we  do  not  allow  of  the  arrangement  in  the  MSS  referred  to,  we  shall  be 
obliged  to  have  recourse  to  the  transposition ;  because  faith  must  refer  to  Jesus  Christ, 
and  love  to  the  saints.  Clarke.  A  transposition  not  uncommon  in  the  most  elegant 
writings.    Macknight. 

Phil.  ver.  10;  p.  324,  1.17.  Imprisonment,  —  even  Onesimus.  T.  The  tenderness 
and  delicacy  of  tliis  Epistle  have  long  been  admired.  Foley.  The  name  of  Onesimus, 
in  the  end  of  this  sentence,  has  a  fine  effect,  by  keeping  the  reader  in  suspense.  This 
every  person  of  taste  must  perceive.  Macknight.  This  keeping  the  reader  in  suspense 
till  the  very  close  of  the  period,  as  to  the  name  of  the  offender,  has  been  oi\en  pro- 
duced as  a  great  rhetorical  beauty  in  the  apostle's  style.  Buckminster.  The  delicacy 
of  Paul's  address,  in  waving  his  apostolic  autliority,  is  also  noticed  by  all :  but  our 
translators  little  felt  this  beauty,  (as  might  be  supposed) ;  since,  by  their  neglecting 
the  order  of  the  Greek,  they  show  it  only  in  part.     Dabney. 

Phil.  ver.  15  ;  p.  324, 1.  24.  That  you  might  permanently  receive  him,.  T.  Tliat  thou 
shouldst  receive  him.  for  ever.  R.  T.  The  word  mmiot  may  be  translated /or  life;  which 
i  take  to  be  the  apostle's  meaning.  Macknight.  '  This  is  one  instance,  in  which,' 
says  Benson,  '  the  Greek  word  aimm,  forever,  must  stand  for  a  finite  and  indefinite 
duration,  and  there  are  otlier  instances  in  the  Sacred  Scriptures.'     Dabney. 


THE  LETTER  TO  THE  HEBREWS. 

Heb.  i,  1 ;  p.  325, 1.  1.     In  various  divisions.  T.    At  sundry  tim.es.     R.  T.     The  word 

TnM/jttgac  does  not  of  itself,  signify  sundry  times  ;  but  still,  the  idea  of  various  parts  or 

^^VortUms,  which  it  does  properly  signify,  may  very  naturally  be  understood  as  implying, 

diverse  times  at  which,  or  occasions  on  which,  the  different  parts  of  revelation  were 

communicated.     Stuart.     Several  parts.     Wakefield. 

Heb.  i,  2 ;  p.  325, 1.  3.  By  a  Son.  T.  By  his  Son.  R.  T.  and  Stuart.  It  is  very 
remarkable  that  the  pronoun  auTou,  his,  is  not  found  in  the  text ;  nor  is  it  found  in  any 
MS.  or  Version.  We  should  not,  therefore,  supply  the  pronoun  as  our  translators 
have  done ;  but  simply  read  tir  Tim,  by  a  Soy,  or  in  a  Son.  Clarke.  All  the  Codices 
of  the  New  Testament  agree  in  omitting  uvrov.     Stuart. 

Heb.  i,  3;  p.  325,  1.  5.  Existence.  T.  Person.  R.  T.  Substance.  Stuart.  The 
word  uB-oo-rao-ic  occurs  four  times  in  the  New  Testament,  but  in  no  other  place  is  it 
rendered  person.  However  much  this  may  suit  the  scholastic  style,  which  began  to 
be  introduced  into  theology  in  tlie  fourth  century,  it  by  no  means  suits  the  idiom  of  a 
period  so  early  as  that  in  which  the  books  of  the  New  Testament  were  written.  It  is 
of  real  consequence  to  scriptural  criticism,  not  to  confound  the  language  of  the  sacred 
penmen  with  that  of  the  writers  of  the  fourth,  or  any  subsequent  century.  Campbell. 
In  the  sense  of  person,  it  first  began  to  be  used  by  the  Greek  writers  after  the  Arian 
controversy  commenced.  .  .  This  sense,  then,  .being  attached  to  this  word  long  after 
the  New  "Testament  was  written,  it  cannot  be  properly  assigned  to  the  word  here.  It 
plainly  retains  the  more  ancient  meaning  o{  substance  or  essence.    Stuart. 


496  APPENDIX. 

Christ  appears  to  have  represented  those  attributes,  which  comprise  the  divine  exist- 
ence ;  and  some  of  the  terms  used  by  commentators  are  of  too  physical  a  character  to 
be  appropriated  to  the  Deity.     Trans. 

Heb.  i,  6;  p.  325,  1. 14.  Let  all  the  angels  of  God  worship  him.  TJgorKvvea,  so  far 
as  I  have  been  able  to  observe,  is  certainly  the  appropriate  word  to  denote  religious 
worship,  if  there  is  any  such  appropriate  word  in  the  New  Testament.  That  religious 
worship  is  here  intended  is  certain.     Dwight. 

While  Christ  was  on  earth,  many  who  came  to  request  favors  of  him  are  said  to 
have  worshipped  him.  This  circumstance  has  been  considered  a  decisive  proof  that 
he  was  GSd,  in  as  much  as  he  accepted  this  worship.  It  would  be  easy  to  show,  that 
the  original  word  is  used  to  denote,  not  only  religious  worship,  but  that  homage  * 
respect  which  men  pay  to  their  superiors.     Winthrop  Bailey. 

The  word  worship,  it  is  said,  has  two  significations ;  viz.  obeisance  and  spiritutA 
homage.  This  is  true ;  and  the  first  of  these  meanings  often  presents  itself  in  the  Old 
Testament,  and,  as  I  am  willing  to  concede,  in  the  Gospels.  Many  who  worshipped 
Christ  while  he  sojourned  among  men,  that  is,  prostrated  themselves  before  him,  pro- 
bably knew  or  acknowledged  nothing  of  his  divine  nature.  But  what  shall  we  say  of 
the  angels  ?  Are  they  ignorant  of  his  true  nature  ?  And  is  not  the  worship,  which 
they  who  are  pure  spirits  pay,  of  course  spiritual,  and  not  simple  obeisance  .''    Stuart. 

Heb.  i,  7 ;  p.  325, 1.  16.  Moreover,  concerning  the  angels,  it  is  alleged,  He  makes  his 
angels  winds  and  his  ministering  servants  a  flame  of  fire.  T.  And  of  the  angels  he 
saith,  who  maketh  his  angels  spirits,  and  his  ministers  a  flame  of  fire?  R.  T.  Some 
reverse  the  translation  here  given,  and  render  :  Who  mxikeih  winds  his  messengers,  and 
flaming  fire  his  ministers :  which  makes  the  passage  just  nothing  at  all  to  the  writer's 
purpose.  Wakefield.  The  Hebrew  does  not  allow  us  properly  to  translate.  Who 
maketh  the  winds  his  angels  or  messengers.     Stuart. 

Heb.  vi,  2  ;  p.  328, 1.  33.  The  imposition  of  hands.  T.  Of  laying  on  of  hands.  R. 
T.  It  is  a  very  palpable  mistake,  into  which  many  Christians  fall,  who  are  not  well 
acquainted  with  the  rites  of  the  primitive  church,  to  suppose  that  imposition  of  hands 
was  practised  only  in  the  case  of  ordaining  persons  to  the  holy  ministry.  It  was  com- 
mon for  the  apostles  to  bestow  extraordinary  gifts  upon  converts  to  Christianity,  im- 
mediately after  their  baptism,  by  the  imposition  of  hands.     Stuart. 


JAMES      GENERAL    LETTER. 

James  i,  2 ;  p.  339, 1.  4.  The  proof  of  your  faith  produces  patience.  T.  The  trying 
of  your  faith  worketh  patience.  R.  T.  Patience  is  beautiful  in  either  sex,  and  every 
age.  Behold  her  appearance  and  her  attire.  Her  countenance  is  calm  and  serene  as 
the  face  of  heaven  unspotted  by  the  shadow  of  a  cloud,  and  no  wrinkle  of  grief  or 
anger  is  seen  in  her  forehead.  Her  eyes  are  as  the  eyes  of  doves  for  meekness,  and  on 
her  eyebrows  sit  cheerfulness  and  joy.  Her  mouth  is  lovely  in  silence ;  her  complex- 
ion and  color  that  of  innocence  and  security ;  while,  like  the  virgin,  the  daughter  of 
Zion,  she  shakes  her  head  at  the  adversary,  despising  and  laughing  him  to  scorn.  She 
is  clothed  in  the  robes  of  the  martyrs,  and  in  her  hand  she  holds  a  sceptre  in  the  form 
of  a  cross.  She  rides  not  in  the  whirlwind  and  stormy  tempest  of  passion,  but  her  throne 
is  the  humble  and  contrite  heart,  and  her  kingdom  is  the  kingdom  of  peace. 

Tertullian,  by  Home. 


PETER  S   FIRST    GENERAL    LETTER. 

1  Pet.  i,  22 ;  p.  345, 1.4.  You  will  intensely  love  each  oilier  with  a  pure  heart.  T.  See 
that  ye  love  one  another  with  a  pure  heart  fervently.  R.  T.  The  natural  fruit  of  the 
operation  of  Christian  truth  on  the  heart  is  enlarged,  generous,  and  sincere  love ;  the 


JOHN'S   GENERAL  ADDRESS  TO  CHRISTIANS.  497 

love  of  all  that  is  good,  pure,  and  beautiful  in  God's  universe,  which  conies  upon  the 
soul  like  the  still  sunshine  of  a  calm  and  gentle  day  upon  one,  who  reposes  in  silence 
and  solitude ;  that  compassion  for  those  who  wander  from  the  path  of  life  into  the 
ways  of  sin,  which  springs  from  a  full  and  affecting  sense  of  the  deadly  evil  of  sin, 
and  of  the  misery  which  is  seen  in  its  course.  The  love,  which  looks  from  man  up  to 
God,  and  sees  the  connecting  line  between  them,  which  delights  in  the  good  of  a  fel- 
low immortal,  wherever  he  may  be  found,  which  rejoices  to  see  him  ascending  in  the 
path  of  virtue  and  ef  spiritual  life,  and  blesses  God  for  it,  and  which  weeps  as  angels 
do,  to  see  him  going  to  degradation  and  ruin  at  the  bidding  of  bad  passions  and 
depraved  propensities ;  —  this  is  the  love  tliat  results  from  purification  through  the 
tiuth  of  God  which  liveth  and  abideth  forever.     Convers  Frayicis. 


PETER  S  SECOND  GENERAI-  LETTER. 

2  Peter  1,1;  p.  349,  1.  3.  Of  our  God  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ.  T.  Of  God  and 
our  Saviour  Jesus  Christ.  R.  T.  According  to  the  original,  of  our  God  and  Saviour 
Jesus  Christ;  Tou  Qau  I'ifim,  k^i  2ttT»fsc,  Imnu  ^gitrTW.  The  common  translation  is 
a  violation  of  the  Greek.  Dwight.  '  Of  our  God  and  our  Saviour  Jesus  Christ,'  as 
the  words  may  be  literally  rendered.  T.  Scott.  Our  God  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ. 
Wakefield  and  Stuart.  The  order  of  the  original  words  rather  favors  this  translation, 
though,  I  confess,  it  is  not  absolutely  necessary,  and  it  may  be  rendered  as  in  our  ver- 
sion, of  God,  and  our  Saviour.  Doddridge.  Of  God  and  our  Saviour  Jesus  Christ. 
This  is  not  a  proper  translation  of  the  original,  which  is  literally,  of  our  God  and 
Saviour  Jesus  Christ ;  and  this  reading,  which  is  indicated  in  the  margin,  should  have 
been  received  in  the  text.  Clarke.  The  passage  is  so  rendered  in  Wickliff 's,  Cover- 
dale's,  Cranmer's,  the  Bishops'  and  other  ancient  versions ;  as  also  in  the  margin  of 
many  editions  of  our  present  version,  with  the  usual  mark  of  reference  to  the  Greek 
text,,  where  a  more  literal  translation  is  given.     D'Oyly  and  Mant. 


John's  general  address  to  christians. 

1  John  iii,  14  ;  p.  354, 1.  19.  We  are  conscious  tJiat  we  have  passed  from  death  to  life, 
because  we  love  the  brethren.  T.  We  are  often  solicitous  to  trace  the  evidences  of  re- 
generation ;  but  whilst  we  search  for  them  in  abstruse  theories,  we  neglect  to  mark 
the  .dispositions  we  cultivate,  and  the  tempers  we  cherish.     Mary  Grafton. 

1  John  V,  5  ;  p.  355, 1.  38.  That  Jesus  is  the  Son  of  God.  Compare  verses  1.  4,  5. 
'  The  position  that  the  Messiah  and  Son  of  God  are  equivalent,  is  in  these  three  verses 
made  out  by  John,  with  the  precision  of  a  syllogism.'     Prof  Everett,  cited  by  Dahneij. 

1  John  V,  part  of  verses  7,  8 ;  p.  355, 1.  41.  In  heaven,  the  Father,  the  Word,  and  the 
Holy  Spirit,  and  these  three  are  one  :  and  there  are  three  that  testify  on  the  earth.  Tkans. 
In  heaven,  the  Father,  the  Word,  and  the  Holy  Ghost,  and  these  three  arc  one.  And  tlicre 
are  three  that  hear  witness  in  earth.   R.  T. 

In  the  omission  of  the  seventh  verse,  and  of  the  words  sy  t»  yu  of  the  eighth,  I  follow 
precisely  the  Syriac,  Coptic,  Ethiopic,  and  Arabic  translations.     Wakefield. 

It  is  likely  this  verse  is  not  genuine.  It  is  wanting  in  every  Greek  MS  of  this  Epis- 
tle .  written  before  the  invention  of  printing ;  one  excepted,  the  Codex  Montfortii,  in 
Trinity  College,  Dublin  :  the  others  which  omit  this  verse  amoimt  to  one  hundred  and 
twelve.  It  is  wanting  in  both  the  Syriac,  all  the  Arabic,  Ethiopic,  the  Coptic,  Saliidic, 
Armenian,  Slavonian,  &c,  in  a  word,  in  all  the  ancient  Versions  but  the  Vulgate  ;  and 
even  of  this  Version  many  of  the  most  ancient  and  correct  MSS  have  it  not.  It  is 
wanting  also,  in  all  the  ancient  Greek  Fathers ;  and  in  most  even  of  the  Latin.  Many 
of  the  Greek  Fathers  quote  both  verse  6,  and  verse  8,  applying  them  to  the  Trinity 
and  Divinity  of  Christ,  and  the  Holy  Spirit;  and  indeed  endeavor  to  prove  the  doc- 

63 


408  APPENDIX. 

trine  of  the  Trinity  from  verse  6,  and  verse  8,  witliout  referring  to  any  such  verse  as 
the  7th,  which,  had  it  existed,  would  have  been  a  more  positive  proof,  and  one  that 
could  not  have  been  overlooked.  The  Latin  Fathers  do  not  quote  it,  even  where  it 
would  have  greatly  strengthened  their  arguments  ;  and  where,  had  it  existed,  it  might 
have  been  most  naturally  expected.  The  Latin  writers  who  do  refer  to  the  Three  hea- 
venly Witnesses  vary  greatly  in  their  quotations  ;  the  more  ancient  placing  the  eighth 
verse  before  the  seventh;  and  very  many  omitting,  after  the  earthly  witnesses,  the 
clause  these  three  are  one,  add  in  Christ  Jesus  —  others  use  different  terms.  It  is  want- 
ing in  the  first  edition  of  Erasmus,  A.  D.  1516;  in  his  second  edition  1519 ;  but  he 
added  it  in  the  third  from  the  Codex  Montfortii.  It  is  wanting  in  the  editions  oi  Mdtis, 
Gerbelins,  Cephalins,  &c.  It  is  wanting  in  the  German  translation  of  Luther,  and  in 
all  the  editions  of  it  published  during  his'lifetime.  It  is  inserted  in  our  early  English 
translations,  but  with  marks  of  doubtfulness.  In  short,  it  stands  on  no  authority  suffi- 
cient to  authenticate  any  part  of  revelation,  professing  to  have  come  from  God. 

Clarke. 

By  the  best  inquiry  that  I  have  been  able  to  make,  this  verse  is  wanting  in  the 
manuscripts  of  all  languages  but  the  Latin.     Sir  Isaac  JVewton. 

I  am  little  disposed  to  seek  support  for  an  awful  truth  from  materials  of  suspected 
soundness  :  —  and  more  disposed  to  avoid  entering  into  the  discussion,  since  the  par- 
ticular verse  in  question,  so  far  as  the  main  purpose  and  connexion  of  the  apostle's 
argument  are  concerned,  is  illustrative  and  ornamental  only.     Heber. 

I  must  own,  that  after  an  attentive  consideration  of  the  controversy  relative  to  that 
passage,  I  am  convinced  that  it  is  spurious.     Pretyman. 

It  appears  rather  below  the  Christian  cause  to  be  so  zealous  in  defending  a  text, 
which  in  all  ages  has  been  thought  so  very  doubtful.     William  Gilpin. 

Professor  Griesbach,  who  does  not  appear  to  be  an  enemy  to  the  doctrine,  and  who 
has  carefully  and  critically  examined  all  the  evidences  and  arguments  on  both  sides, 
has  given  up  the  text  as  utterly  defenceless  ;  and  thinks,  that  to  plead  for  its  authen- 
ticity is  dangerous.  '  For  if,'  says  he, '  a  few  dubious,  suspicious,  and  modern  eviden- 
ces, with  such  weak  arguments  as  are  usually  adduced,'are  sufficient  to  demonstrate 
the  authenticity  of  a  reading,  then  there  remains  no  longer  any  criterion  by  which  the 
spurious  may  be  distinguished  from  the  genuine  ;  and  consequently,  the  whole  text  of 
the  New  Testament  is  unascertained  and  dubious.'     Clarke. 

Clarke,  Griesbach,  and  other  critics,  in  the  style  of  apology,  accompany  their  rejec- 
tion of  the  text  by  an  avowal  of  their  faith  in  the  doctrine,  which  it  is  supposed  to  sus- 
tain. What  connexion  has  this  with  the  subject  ?  A  translator  is  not  thus  on  confes- 
sion. It  is  degrading.  He  ought  to  disdain  it.  Facts  are  his  elements,  not  theories  ; 
results  of  truth  his  objects,  not  the  tendencies  upon  theological  polemics.  —  The  pre- 
ceding passage  is  incontestably  an  interpolation.  Its  authenticity,  as  a  part  of  the 
original  text,  has  long  since,  in  many  instances,  been  completely  invalidated :  and 
that  indiscretion,  which  still  persists  in  vindicating  the  integrity  of  the  clause,  would 
seem  prepared,  that  the  foundations  of  the  great  deep  of  sacred  criticism  should  be 
broken  up,  and  the  floodgates  of  indefinite  glosses  thrown  open,  to  create  universal 
confusion,  and  to  contaminate  and  overwhelm  the  unadulterated  word  of  God. 

Trans. 


JOHN  S    LETTER    TO    AN     EMINENT    CHRISTIAN    WOMAN. 

2  John  8 ;  p.  357, 1.  16.  Attend  to  yourselves,  that  you  may  not  lose.  T.  Look  to 
yourselves,  that  ice  lose  not.  R.  T.  lnsled.d  of  the  first  person  plural,  ATrahirai/in,  &c, 
WE  lose,  &c,  many  MSS,  Versions,  and  Fathers,  read  the  whole  clause  in  the  second 
person  plural,  a.m>.mn,  ve  lose,  &c.  Take  heed  to  yourselves,  that  ye  lose  not  the  things 
which  YE  have  torought,  but  that  ye  receive  a  full  retcard.     This  reading  is  more  consist- 


JOHN'S  LETTERS,  VISIONS,  AND   PROPHECIES.  499 

ent  and  likely,  and  is  supported  at  least  by  as  good  evidence   as  the  other.     Clarke, 
Macknight,  Grotius.     Some  copies  read,  which  ye  have  gained,  hut  that  ye  receive. 

Marg.  Read.  R.  T.* 


JOHN  S    LETTER    TO    A    DISTINGUISHED    CHRISTIAN     MAN. 

3  John  1 ;  p.  358, 1.  1.  To  the  much  endeared  Caius.  T.  To  the  well  beloved  Gaiua. 
R.  T.  raw,  Gains,  is  the  Greek  mode  of  writing  the  Roman  name  Caius ;  and  thus 
it  should  be  rendered  in  European  languages.     Clarke. 

3  John  8  ;  p.  358, 1.11.  To  entertain  such.  T.  To  receive  such.  R.  T.  Instead  of 
a.jri»\.ii/jtCcu/m,  to  receive,  the  most  ancient  and  reputable  MSS  have  ujnhnfiSnyin,  to  take 
up,  undertake  for,  or  kinMy  receive.     Clarke. 


JUDE  S    GENERAL    LETTER. 

Jude  4,  p.  359, 1.  9.  Denying  the  only  Sovereign,  and  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ.  T. 
Denying  the  only  Lord  God,  and  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ.  R.  T.  ©»v,  God,  is  omitted  by 
ABC,  sixteen  others,  with  Erpen's  Arabic,  the  Coptic,  Ethiopic,  Armenian,  and  Vul- 
gate, Eind  by  many  of  the  Fathers.  It  is  likely  that  it  was  originally  inserted  as  a  gloss. 
Clarke.  Rejecting  God  the  only  supreme  ruler,  and  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ.  Wake- 
field.    Griesbeich  omits  the  word.     Trans. 


JOHN  S    LETTERS,    VISIONS,    AND    PROPHECIES. 

Sir  Isaac  Newton,  with  great  truth,  says,  he  does  not  find  any  other  book  of  the 
New  Testament  so  strongly  attested,  or  commented  upon,  so  early  as  this.  Indeed,  I 
think  it  impossible  for  any  intelligent  and  candid  person  to  peruse  it  without  being 
struck,  in  the  most  forcible  manner,  with  the  peculiar  dignity  and  sublimity  of  its  com- 
position, superior  to  that  of  any  other  writing  whatever ;  so  as  to  be  convinced  that, 
considering  the  age  in  which  it  appeared,  none  but  a  person  divinely  inspired  could 
have  written  it.  These  prophecies  are  also  written  in  such  a  manner  as  to  satisfy  us, 
that  the  events  sumounced  to  us  were  really  foreseen ;  being  described  in  such  a  man- 
ner as  no  person  writing  without  that  knowledge,  could  have  done.  This  requires 
such  a  mixture  of  clearness  and  obscurity,  as  has  never  yet  been  imitated  by  any  forg- 
ers of  prophecy  whatever.  Forgeries,  written  of  course  after  the  events,  have  always 
been  too  plain.  It  is  only  in  the  Scriptures,  and  especially  in  the  book  of  Daniel,  and 
this  of  the  Revelation,  that  we  find  this  happy  mixture  of  clearness  and  obscurity  in 
the  accounts  of  future  events.     Priestley. 

*  I  have  found  on  collating  many  of  the  Marginal  Readings,  in  the  authorized  Translation,  with  the 
Originala,  that  those  in  the  Margin  are  to  be  preferred  to  those  in  the  Text,  in  the  proportion  of  at  least 
eight  to  ten.  Clarke,  The  most  eligible  of  the  various  readings  are  therefore  lost  to  most  readers,  not 
being  comprised  in  many  of  the  large,  nor,  in  any  of  the  small  Bibles.    Tbaiss. 


END    OF    THE    NOTES. 


NAMES  OF  SOME  OF  THE   SUBSCRIBERS  TO  THE  WORK. 


SOUTH  CAROLINA. 

Pendleton. 
John  C.  Calhoun. 
Langdon  Cheves. 
James  Hamilton,  Jr. 
Thomas  Pinckney. 
John  B.  Earle. 
John  £.  Colhoun. 
Francis  K.  Huger. 
Thomas  Harrison. 
Edward  Harleston. 
Frederick  W.  Symmes. 
Jacob  Warley. 
Francis  Burt. 
Bentley  Hasell. 
Samuel  A.  Maverick.* 
Joseph  V.  Shanklin. 
Joseph  T.  Whitefield. 
John  B.  Fen-ell. 
Madison  C.  Livingston. 
Thomas  Lamar. 
Nathan  Boon. 
Stephen  Ellis. 
Baily  Barton. 
Weyman  Holland. 
William  L.  Keith. 
James  O.  Lewis. 
Thomas  H.  Harris. 
Edwin  Reese. 
Henry  G.  DrefFsen.* 
William  Werner. 
John  Hunter. 
James  Lawrence. 
Richard  Holden. 
John  Sitton. 
Thomas  Gassaway. 
Thomas  Garvin. 
William  T.  Gass. 
Turner  Goldsmith. 
Allen  C.  Harbin. 
John  W.  Gassaway. 
Jeremiah  Wilson. 
William  K.  Stringer. 
Henry  Cobb. 
James  C.  Griffin. 
O,  R.  Broyles.* 
Henry  D.  Reese. 
John  F.  Thompson. 
Samuel  H.  Brewster. 
John  T.  Broyles. 
Saxon  Anderson. 
David  S.  Taylor.* 
Mary  M.  Taliaferro. 
Mary  Du  Pre. 
James  L.  M'Cann. 
Samuel  C.  M'Crosky. 
John  Archer. 
Van  A.  Lawhon. 
John  M'Fall,  Jr. 
George  E.  W.  Foster. 
James  M'Kinney. 
William  Holcome. 
James  Osborn.* 
Franklin  W.  Gaylord. 
James  Oliver. 

Greenville. 
Baylis  J.  Earle. 
Waddy  Thompson,  Jr. 


Jeremiali  Cleveland. 
James  W.  Thompson. 
WilHam  Choice,  Jr.* 
Tandy  Walker. 
F.  H.  Macleod. 
Edward  Croft. 
John  S.  Field. 
Edmund  Waddill. 
William  E.  Wickliffe. 
David  Long. 
Benajah  Dunham. 
John  Crittenden. 
Roger  Loveland. 
O.  H.  Wells. 
Willis  Wells. 
Roger  Burnham. 
Bluford  Dyer. 
Benjamin  F.  Horton. 

Abbeville. 
Armatead  Burt. 
Warren  R.  Webb. 
Lemuel  Felt. 

Charleston. 
Samuel  Gilman. 
Sidney  Babcock. 
John  C.  Shulfi. 

GEORGIA. 

Savannah. 
James  M.  Wayne. 
Thomas  U.  P.  Charlton. 
James  B.  Read. 

SCRIVEN  COUNTT. 

William  C.  Wayne. 

BuKKE   County. 
David  Taylor. 
James  Jones. 
A.  Pemberton. 
James  M.  Reynolds. 
John  W.  Reynolds. 
Benjamin  F.  Verdery. 

Richmond  County. 
Lewis  Harris. 
Valentine  Walker. 
George  Twiggs. 
George  A.  Turknett. 
William  Clayton.* 
Bennett  Crafton. 
Benjamin  F.  Harris. 
Waiter  Harris. 
Henry  M'Cullough. 

Augusta. 
Stephen  G.  Bulfinch. 
Eliza  Bacon. 
William  Savage. 
A.  Cunningham. 
A.  H.  Pemberton.* 
William  Shannon. 
Thomas  Glascock. 
Thomas  S.  Metcalf. 
George  A.  B.  Walker. 
George  W.  Summers. 
E.  W.  Couch.* 


Leon  Bruce. 
William  Kibbe. 
M.  E.  Brenan. 
John  M.  Kunze. 
Crosby  Dickinson. 
Robert  Raiford. 

Montgomery,  Ala. 
Joseph  Hutchinson. 

BuNCOME  County,  N.  C. 
William  Paxton. 

Baltimore,  Md. 
Joseph  Rhodes. 

Geauga  County,  Ohio. 
Lewis  Hunt. 

New  York. 
Josiah  Dow. 
Asaph  Stone. 

Providence,  R.  I. 
Frederick  A.  Farley. 

MASSACHUSETTS. 

Boston. 
M.  I.  Motte. 
Francis  Alger. 
William  S.  Wait. 
Ezra  S.  Gannett. 
Gray  &  Bowen. 
HiHiard,  Gray,  &  Co. 
George  Ripley. 
N.  L.  Frothingham. 
Edmund  D wight. 
John  Picrpont. 
Samuel  Barrett. 
E.  P.  Hartshorn. 
Henry  Williams.* 
Abner  H.  Bowman. 
Robert  Williams. 
John  C.  Putnam. 
Thaddeus  Nichols,  Jr. 
Peter  Coffin. 
Elijah  Williams. 
Wyatt  Richards. 
Edward  H.  Child. 

ROXBURT. 

Henry  A.  S.  Dearborn. 

HiNGHAM. 

Charles  Brooks. 
Samuel  Willard. 

Braintree. 
Joseph  Richards. 

Needham. 
Daniel  Kimball. 

Medway. 
George  Holbrook. 
Thomas  Pons. 

Framingham. 
B.  Frost. 


Cameridgbport. 
Lucius  R.  Page. 

Charlestown. 
Walter  Balfour. 

Medford. 
Edward  B.  Hall. 

Lynn. 
Henry  A.  Breed. 

Salem. 
Stephen  C.  Phillips. 

HUBBARDSTON. 

A.  Dumont  Jones. 

New  SALEM. 
Alpheus  Harding. 
Frederick  Allen. 

NORTHFIELD. 

Samuel  C.  Allen. 

Bernardston. 
Timothy  F.  Rogers. 

Greenfield. 
Daniel  Wells. 
Horatio  G.  Newcomb. 
Nathaniel  E.  Russell. 
Thaddeus  Colman. 

Deebfield. 
Henry  Colman. 
John  Fessenden. 
Winthrop  Bailey. 
Stephen  W.  Williams. 
John  Wilson. 
George  Dickinson. 
Aaron  Arms. 
Lucy  Arms. 

Conway. 

Luther  Hamilton. 

Northampton. 
Oliver  Stearns. 
Joseph  Lyman. 
George  Bancroft. 
Thomas  Shepherd. 

South  Hadley. 
Wells  Lathrop. 

Springfield. 
William  B.  O.  Peabody. 
William  B.  Calhoun. 
Justice  Willard. 
John  Howard. 
Henry  Sterns. 
Joseph  Carew. 
David  Ames,  Jr. 
George  Colton. 
Charles  Howard. 
Ethan  A.  Clary. 
N.  B.  Moseley. 


BodTON,  January  10,  1833. 

Those  Persons,  whose  names  are  thus  designated,  (*)  have  rendered  me  particular  assistance,  in  reference 
to  the  circulation  of  the  present  work,  or  in  the  advancement  of  its  prospects,  and  they,  with  other  Gen- 
tlemen in  this  city,  and  elsewhere,  who  have,  in  any  respect,  bestowed  their  kind  countenance  and 
encouragement,  will  please  accept  my  sincere  thanks. 

To  the  Subscribers,  generally,  who  have  thus  extended  their  favor  to  me  in  advance,  I  am  under  great 
obligations  ;  and  should  they,  on  the  possession  and  perusal  of  the  work,  be  satisfied  that  their  confidence 
has  not  been  misplaced,  my  joy  will  be  full. 

To  my  Brother,  David  F.  Dickinson,  of  M'Bean,  Richmond  County,  Georgia,  for  his  great  kindness  in 
furnishing  the  essential  aid,  preliminary  to  the  publication,  and  without  which  it  could  not  have  been 
accomplished,  I  am  very  highly  indebted. 

To  A.  H.  Pemberton,  the  able  and  enlightened  Editor  of  the  Augusta  Chronicle,  who,  in  that  inde- 
pendent and  fearless  manner,  so  characteristic  of  his  signal  purity  of  purpose,  and  inflexible  perseverance  in 
the  great  cause  of  truth,  favorably  noticed  my  undertaking,  gratuitously  published  the  prospectus,  and  so 
extensively  aided  me  in  obtaining  patronage  for  the  work,  by  particularly  commending  it  in  that  Journal  to 
the  public  attention,  accompanied  by  enlarged  views  and  powerful  illustrations  on  the  general  subject,  I 
embrace  the  occasion,  with  sincere  pleasure,  to  present  the  feeble  tribute  of  my  most  grateful  acknowledg- 
ments. R.   DICKINSON.